《The Hero Returns》
Chapter 1
Chapter 1: Chapter 1
The sky was blue, and the smell of the rich, earthy soil was carried by a seasonal breeze. 1
The sight still came to him when he closed his eyes.
As it could never be seen again, it was much more precious.
¡°The past is the past.¡±
He looked up only to see the ck sky. Instead of the smell of soil, the smell of blood was everywhere. Was it a seasonal smell? No, there was only a repetitive, freezing winter that made the world nearly uninhabitable.
[Name: Kim Sung-in] [Another name: Hero] 2
[Spell counts: 97] [Spell grade: 9]
Sung-in went through his Ability Record in his mind, which was initially not a lot, but now it had beprehensive. Among those statuses, he checked his one specific status.
[Fatigue level: 88]
¡°I knew it,¡± he murmured as he checked his fatigue level on the bottom. ¡°That¡¯s why my body feels so heavy.¡±
The fatigue level showed a numerical representation of his current fitness state, with 0 meaning the best physiological condition and 100 meaning the opposite. 88 was quite high. No wonder his body felt as heavy as soaked cotton. Normal people couldn¡¯t even move their bodies in such a state.
Sung-in sighed as he looked around him. All he could see was the corpses of monsters, piles of them from a distance. That was his masterpiece.
Thump, thump.
He heard footsteps in the distance, and one set sounded particrly familiar.
¡°You guys are so fast.¡± He was being sarcastic.
They must have noticed the fight, but they were still sote. He realized it was their strategy to get rid of him once and for all. That meant all those monsters had just been decoys.
This is the end. He thought this would be thest, but it was not as bad as he thought.
The reason was obvious. There was no more reason to resist.
¡°Now...¡± Sung-in stood up from the pile of dead monsters. ¡°It is time to die.¡±
* * *
The Hero.
That was another name for Sung-in. The title was from his ability, which increased his physical and magical damage by 20% and reduced the damage he would receive.
However, that was not just another name for Sung-in.
¡°Spell power of 9 grade? Was there such a magical awakener?¡±
¡°For a guy like you, it may be.¡±
¡°It might be possible. No, it has to be possible.¡±
¡°Do you think he may be able to restore our world?¡±
He¡¯d heard those kinds of words many times.
At the time, he didn¡¯t know what they meant. No, he knew what they meant but wasn¡¯t able to understand.
They demanded a lot of things from him.
They said, ¡°Sung-in, you are our hope.¡± ¡°You know what a hero is? The person who can save the world. You should consider yourself a hero. You understand what Mommy means, right?¡± That was his mother.
He was a good son, and at one point, he did consider himself a hero.
¡°You are the hero.¡±
¡°Please, please, save this world.¡±
¡°Mr. Kim, you are the only one now.¡±
Hero, hero, hero... That almost drove him crazy. Stop calling me that. Are you not getting tired of the word?
It had been about 40 years ago when the monsters first appeared. Many magical awakeners like him had be heroes as they fought the monsters. The monsters had been too many and indeed so strong that even those heroes with magical powers struggled. People needed a stronger hero, and Sung-in had been one of them.
¡°Hero, my ass.¡±
He plunged to the ground and looked up, but only the dark, murky sky came to his sight. His vision was slowly getting blurry.
Fafnir. An ancient hero, a dragon that was killed by Sigurd.
But Fafnir was a nickname for a giant with a dragon head, who had killed so many human heroes. The war was bing advantageous for the monsters. Even Sung-in had to fight the giant for three years straight, although he had been the one who frequently retreated. Fafnir was not to be defeated easily by any human.
[Though you are my enemy, I admire your power], Fafnir said.
That isn¡¯t really surprising. For a monster like Fafnir, anything he did was not that surprising anymore. He was almost like a demigod; being able to speak a humannguage was nothingpared to his other powers.
¡°Bull...sh*t...¡± Sung-in mouthed. ¡°Do you also think I¡¯m a hero?¡±
[You are indeed a hero. You deserved that title, even if it is from others], Fafnir said.
A hero created by others. He sounded like he knew everything. Obviously, he knew about Sung-in, as he must have spied on him ever since they first fought.
But that wasn¡¯t like him. That wasn¡¯t like a monster.
[You are thest one.]
Thest. That was self-exnatory; everyone had been killed.
For the past year, there had been no one other than Sung-in. He had been fighting alone for all that time. And here was the oue: let¡¯s fight until one of us dies.
Fafnir had destroyed the whole world. Sung-in may as well pay the worth of his name.
¡°I¡¯ll die with Fafnir and kill as many monsters as I can. What¡¯s the point of dwelling on this destroyed world with no one else around?¡±
However...
¡°This is what I¡¯ve got.¡± Sung-inughed at his own poor condition.
Fafnir was much more powerful than he had thought. He was also without any weak points. He still had billions of his monsters, and Sung-in was all alone. Even worse, Fafnir didn¡¯t seem to move until Sung-in moved first.
Even if his fatigue level was 0, it would still be a struggle to win.
Fafnir finally opened his enormous mouth.
[By eating your flesh, I will be devouring this world.]
A story of a hero who killed an evil monster and saved the world. That kind of happy ending was far from being realistic.
¡°So, basically, you mean I won¡¯t be a hero.¡±
Crash¡ª
Chapter 2
Chapter 2: Chapter 2
In a room in a Dong-ha University hospital, Su-hyeun was changing his clothes as he was listening to his doctor.
¡°Please make sure to avoid any intensive exercise ande back if you feel sick again.¡±
¡°Thank you so much, doctor.¡±
Su-hyeun kept on buttoning his clothes. Beside Su-hyeun, Shin Su-yeong, his mother, thanked the doctor.
While they were talking, Su-hyeun looked out the window at the sight of the city beneath the hospital building and the blue sky above. With a flock of cumulus clouds slowly flying over the sky, the whole world seemed cid and peaceful.
¡°It¡¯s rather awkward everytime I see it.¡±
It had been a month since he was hospitalized. For four weeks of recovery, he had looked out the window like this every day as he enjoyed the peaceful sight.
¡°This sight ¡ª it will be all gone by 2030. All that will remain is pictures and paintings.¡±
2018.
Everytime he checked his smartphone, he was surprised by the year and date.
Back in the past, in a different person¡¯s body.
His death from the battle with Fafnir would ur more than 20 yearster.
Now, there was only news of a monster and dungeon. The outbreak and the initial invasion of monsters had yet to happen.
¡°I¡¯vee back to the past.¡± However, not in Sung-in¡¯s body, but Su-hyeun¡¯s.
2
He took out a hand mirror from the drawer. He was slightly smiling.
¡°Why is he smiling?¡±
Since it wasn¡¯t his face, Su-hyeun¡¯s smile felt quite awkward. But, after about a month, he¡¯d begun to acknowledge it as his own.
¡°Mom, please. Shall we go now?¡± he asked, stopping to look at Su-hyeun¡¯s smile while his mother was still talking to the doctor.
¡°Wait a second. You should properly thank the doctor before you leave.¡±
¡°I¡¯m so hungry for anything other than tasteless hospital food.¡±
¡°You want to eat out? I actually have to go back to work soon.¡±
For the past month, he had learned about his mother¡¯s personality as he talked with her.
¡°In that case...¡±
¡°No, Mom. I want your delicious cooking,¡± he said, implying that her food was the most delicious in the whole world. And being so sweet paid off.
¡°Okay. If that¡¯s the case, let¡¯s hurry and go home. Goodbye, doctor.¡±
The doctor moved on to the next patient. As they were leaving the hospital, Sung-in snuck a peek at Shin Su-yeong.
¡°So this is Su-Hyeun¡¯s mother.¡±
No, now she was his mother.
Though it was confusing at first, it wasn¡¯t hard to ept as time passed. He was now quite attached to Shin Su-yeong.
She was quite different from his real mother in every way. She was so cheerful that it made him think maybe all mothers were supposed to be like her.
¡°I want nothing but for you to stay healthy.¡±
Comparing Shin Su-yeong, who wanted nothing but her son¡¯s wellness ¡ª
¡°I believe you will do better than this.¡±
¡ª to his previous mother, who wanted her son to be the best in every possible way, they were so different. He felt a huge discrepancy and awkwardness.
His previous mother was too cold, too strict. It wasn¡¯t just because she wanted him to be a hero. From just this one month, he felt he had learned much more about his new mother than his old one.
Shin Su-yeong hade to see her son every day to check on him after work. She never forgot to do so even though she got tired from work.
Su-hyeun looked at his mother again, and their eyes meet.
¡°Why do you keep looking at me, Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°Nothing, Mom.¡± He nonchntly turned to attention to his smartphone.
¡°Su-hyeun, I feel that you¡¯ve changed.¡±
¡°How?¡±
¡°You speak differently these days. More politely, I suppose.¡±
Right, that must be why she seemed a little taken aback when I first spoke to her in the hospital.
¡°You¡¯re like a totally different person.¡±
¡°Well.¡± He wondered what he should say. ¡°I¡¯ve just decided to change.¡±
¡°Change?¡±
¡°Yeah.¡± He said whatever popped into his mind, but it was partly true because he was still Sung-in, not Su-hyeun. It was not possible to be like Su-hyeunpletely, as he didn¡¯t know what Su-hyeun was like to begin with.
Shin Su-yeong hugged him all of a sudden.
¡°Mom?¡± he asked, quite surprised. ¡°What are you doing?¡±
¡°Su-hyeun?¡± She continued, ¡°No matter how you change, you know I always love you.¡±
¡°Okay...¡±
¡°Good. That¡¯s all we need to know as long as you don¡¯t do anything bad and we stay near each other.¡±
¡°I understand.¡±
¡°Good. You¡¯re the only one I care about.¡± She released him after she heard his answers.
¡°Actually, Mom. I need to go somewhere,¡± Su-hyeun said as he checked his phone.
¡°Where? You¡¯re not 100% well.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll be right back before dinner. You can go back to your work.¡± As he said this, he walked away.
¡°Then don¡¯t bete.¡± Shin Su-yeong waved at him.
With Shin Su-yeong¡¯s voice far behind him, he shook his head sideways.
¡°That always gives me goosebumps.¡±
He was still not used to his new mother¡¯s affectionate expressions that sometimes came so suddenly. He wasn¡¯t sure how to react to it.
Of course, he didn¡¯t dislike it. Rather, it made him feel good.
¡°Right! I don¡¯t have much time before dinner.¡± He nned to go back home before Shin Su-yeong came back from work; he didn¡¯t want to make her worry.
Using his smartphone app, he navigated toward his destination, although it took him a long time. The ce he arrived at turned out to be an alley inside a small residential area.
¡°Ah, finally you came.¡±
¡°That was so fast.¡±
Some guys in a shaded spot beckoned him toe near. All four of them were around Su-hyeun¡¯s age.
¡°Are you guys the people I¡¯ve been looking for?¡± Su-hyeun asked as he checked with his phone.
¡°What are you saying?¡±
¡°I guess I¡¯m right.¡±
He checked a text message he got from a guy named Gwan Jang-hyeok.
¡ªI heard you¡¯ve been in a hospital.
¡ªWhen are youing back? I want to see you.
¡ªI¡¯m a little strapped for cash these days. Can you help?
¡ªAre you f*cking ignoring me? Pick up your damn phone.
¡ªYou said you¡¯reing back today. I¡¯m where west met. Come right away, otherwise I¡¯ll get you rehospitalized.
The text messages were all so mean. They didn¡¯t seem to care if he called the police.
It wasn¡¯t the first time, anyway. He could see how they bullied Su-hyeun.
He had learned from his mom that Su-hyeun dropped out of high school. Perhaps those guys were the main reason for that.
¡°Did you bring my money?¡±
So Su-hyeun was supposed to bring some money to them.
¡°Sure. I should also get rid of all the scumbags like you.¡±
¡°What the f*ck?¡±
¡°I can¡¯t believe this.¡±
¡°Have you gone crazy?¡±
One of the guys nearest to Su-hyeun swung his fist.
Then, all of sudden, ¡°AHH!¡±
Su-hyeun snatched his fist and twisted it. The man screamed, looking at his broken wrist.
¡°What the ¡ª?¡±
While the rest of them were caught off guard, Su-hyeun had already be aware of his surroundings. There were no passersby who could witness anything and no surveince cameras. That was probably why they had called him here in the first ce.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll make it quick.¡± He walked toward the now frightened men.
***
Ahh...
Ahhhhh...
It felt nice to beat up all the bullies who were now squirming in pain like worms.
That was easy.
It was nothing to him. He had been through much harder fights countless times before, as it was important for heroes to practice fighting in order to defeat monsters. Comparing this to those asions, those four bullies did not have any special fighting skills; they were absolutely nothing.
Of course, Su-hyeun must have been the same as them, helpless and weak, but basic experience and insight made the huge difference.
He could tell how ruthlessly they must have tormented Su-hyeun, judging by all those evil text messages from them.
Just from those guys.
All he needed was a little bit of courage. Su-hyeun also could get help fromw enforcement, but what appeared to work best for the bullies was a little bit of a lesson from Su-hyeun himself.
Su-hyeun threw the clubs and metal pipes right beside Gwan Jang-hyeok. Those weapons are all theirs.
¡°Hey.¡±
¡°Yes.... Yes.... Sir.¡± Jang-hyeok was obviously terrified.
What a dumbass! You¡¯d been bullied by those cowards for years during school?
¡°Tell me. Why did you bring all these pipes and weapons?¡±
¡°Well, that was just....¡± Su-hyeun could tell he was trying to give him an answer that would save himself.
¡°You were trying to kill me, right?¡±
Jang-hyeok went pale at his question.
¡°Then I suppose I can kill you too. Self-defense, you know. ¡±
As he said this, he picked up one of the metal pipes that was thrown beside him. He swung it toward Jang-hyeok¡¯s head. As it almostnded on him. ¡°Ahh, please save me!¡±
Tap¡ª
It just lightly tapped his head. At that moment, Jang-hyeok wet himself.
He was such a coward.
Su-hyeun leaned toward him. ¡°If you do this again...¡±
Bump¡ª!
Su-hyeun said this as he beat him on his forehead. He gave all of the others the same warning. He didn¡¯t know how it would turn out, but surely, they had learned their lesson.
So, I got one out of the list.
As he walked out of the alley, he checked his phone. October 2018.
He thought about what he was doing in his former life around this time of year.
My school.
At that time, before he became a hero, he was just an ordinary college student.
Dong-ha University.
He realized where to go next. Before he went back home, he needed to check his past life.
Chapter 3
Chapter 3: Chapter 3
Act 2
Dong-ha University was one of the top three renowned universities in Korea. Su-hyeun was still attending this school until the day before, when he was Sung-in in his past life. But....
¡°It¡¯s not here?¡±
¡°How many times must I tell you?¡± The man who looked like the faculty¡¯s teaching assistant replied nervously. Su-hyeun knew him. It was the same teaching assistant back when he had studied here. It was this school, but....
¡°Student number 201413109, Kim Sung-in. This student isn¡¯t from our school. You may havee to the wrong ce; it¡¯ll be faster for you to double-check.¡± It was evident that the teaching assistant was suppressing his anger while answering. Perhaps he should have been, since he was wasting his time on something so time-consuming. Su-hyeun could only trudge out of the faculty department.
As sses ended, students came pouring out of the ssrooms. Seeing this brought a probable thought to Su-hyeun¡¯s mind. However, no one knew of the student named Kim Sung-in, even if he remembered their faces and names.
It couldn¡¯t be....
A sudden thought got Su-hyeun to flip out his smartphone. Su-hyeun opened his bank¡¯s website and entered his name and resident number, which then brought him to the authentication page.
The result: The name and resident number do not match.
The result was the same, regardless of how many times he tried. Could he have misremembered? No, it couldn¡¯t be. Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t be able to get into Dong-ha University if he couldn¡¯t even remember his resident number. Did I... disappear?
It was hard to believe. As Su-hyeun¡¯s mind turned nk and cooled, his steps steered toward one direction. He immediately headed to his old house.
Su-hyeun rang the doorbell to his old house in Pyeongchon, Anyang. Ding-dong. The bell rang. Su-hyeun¡¯s heart started racing, and his nk mind was immediately filled withplicated thoughts as soon as the door opened. ¡°Who is this?¡±
It was his mother. Not Su-hyeun¡¯s, but Kim Sung-in¡¯s mother. Why was she home? She wouldn¡¯t be in most of the time, except for a day or two a month. Should he consider himself lucky? But Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t bring himself to speak in front of his mother. ¡°Who are you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m....¡± Su-hyeun then forced a smiling face and asked, ¡°Is there... someone named Kim Sung-in here?¡±
¡°Kim Sung-in? No, I live alone here. Did you perhaps get the wrong ce?¡± As expected, the answer was no different. It was his mother, not anyone else. Su-hyeun half-expected that she might not have remembered him. He was now certain that his life as Kim Sung-in did not exist in this world.
¡°Ha....¡± It eventually came to this. It didn¡¯t take him long to get this straight in his mind. It was one of the possibilities he had in mind.
That¡¯s true ¡ª I¡¯m here. There shouldn¡¯t be another me since I¡¯m here. It was easier to think of it that way.
If so, mother too... would not have remembered Su-hyeun. It was an awkward feeling. The woman standing in front of him now was no longer his mother. But why? She didn¡¯t look disturbed. It was just him who felt confused. If so....
As expected, I can¡¯t get any closer.
Su-hyeun lowered his head and bowed. ¡°I seem to have found the wrong ce. I¡¯m sorry.¡± Su-hyeun left the premises and headed towards town with a knotted heart. He gradually calmed down as he walked along the busy streets.
I¡¯m Kim Su-hyeun. There was a question that he had been asking himself numerous times for the past month: Am I Su-hyeun or Sung-in? And the answer to his question finally came. I¡¯m now... Su-hyeun.
He repeated this countless times in his head so as to not be wavered by it, and to avoid confusion. Out of nowhere, he heard Shin Su-yeong¡¯s voice. ¡°I¡¯ll not ask why you¡¯re trying to change. Just don¡¯t go astray, and don¡¯t go too far away from home.¡±
Why would she say that? Now he seemed to have understood. Shin Su-yeong felt anxious. Su-hyeun realized that she too had the same worries that he was having now ¡ª that he might leave for somewhere further away, that he might go somewhere far away and not return at all.
He pped both his cheeks hard with his hands. That woke him up. He was no longer attached to his past life. There was no one to remember him and nothing else for him to leave or regret.
No, just one. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes sank as he started to walk. Fafnir.
Not from the past, but the future. No, more urately, something that he would encounter in the future. If it was 2018 now, Fafnir would appear someday, and this world would fall. If this was a world where Kim Sung-in did not exist, then this world would only be worse, not better. That is, if he did nothing.
On his way home, Su-hyeun observed his surroundings while walking on the busy streets. The sky was blue. Being in the bustling and livelyndscape seemed to make one feel strangely excited. Until now, he would not have thought that he would miss this moment. In thisndscape, in this setting. He wanted to protect the future that he would be living in.
To do that, first.... Su-hyeun turned his head and muttered while looking far into the horizon. ¡°I¡¯m going to have to suffer for a while.¡±
* * *
Su-hyeun took the bus and arrived home. It wasn¡¯t hard finding his way back. While preparing to be discharged, he noted down his house address in advance. A two-room semi-basement apartment. Su-hyeun entered the house feeling awkward. Click¡ª
As soon as Su-hyeun entered after opening the door with his keys, he could see the small living room and two rooms at once. It wasn¡¯t that small for two to live, but it was apparent that they were not so well-to-do since it was a semi-basement.
Seems that she isn¡¯t back yet. It was early evening. Though it was time for the office workers to get off from work, Shin Su-yeong had yet to return. She usually endedte.
I think we may have ate dinner.... There¡¯s still some time. Su-hyeun went into what seemed to be his room of the two. In a small room of 10 square meters, Su-hyeun sat on the bed that took up half that space.
Although it was his first time, it did not feel unfamiliar. A weird feeling came to him. It was a different sense of relief andfort aspared to when he stayed in the hospital. It seemed that his body remembered this ce.
Pull yourself together. He was quite affected by Shin Su-yeong. It wasn¡¯t in the wrong way. Instead, he liked thefort, relief, and warmth, which was different from before. But from now on, these emotions would be poison to him.
Smack¡ª
Su-hyeun pped both of his cheeks hard. Pull yourself together, he repeatedly muttered in his mind.
From now on... I¡¯ll be back as Sung-in. He had lived as Su-hyeun for the past month, and it would stay that way in the future. But besides that, as a Magical Awakener, no one else would be able to catch up to Kim Sung-in.
I¡¯m now.... As if chanting a spell, Su-hyeun continued muttering in his mind. Sung-in. As the spell was finally controlling Su-hyeun. Whoosh¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s hand stretched forward and grasped his wide-open hand tightly. Rip! Su-hyeun made a tear in the air, and a space formed. A ¡°doorway¡± was made such that only Su-hyeun could see it.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun walked towards the door. And after taking the first step, thendscape changed in front of Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes.
* * *
Su-hyeun opened his eyes. The white space came back to him. A familiar ce, one that he had seen before. The warm feeling from earlier subsided quickly. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes changed to those from his past life.
[Wee to the Tower of Trials.]
[Kim Su-hyeun, will you start the trials now?]
It started.
The Tower of Trials. A cemonly referred to as an abyss by outsiders. Those who passed the first floor would be able to gain their abilities and be ¡°Magical Awakeners.¡± Of course, it was just the first step, but that performance was also equivalent to the Magical Awakener¡¯s level of awakening. If so, how could one enter the Tower of Trials?
No precise requirements were stated yet. And that was the same for Su-hyeun when he was still Sung-in who lived in the future. It was such that one would know when the moment arrived. For Su-hyeun, the moment he opened his eyes in this life, he realized the method of entering the Tower of Trials. No, more urately, it seemed as though he remembered the way to enter it. His past life had a positive influence. However, Su-hyeun dyed the beginning of the trials until now.
And the only reason. In the best condition.
For the past month, Su-hyeun had been hospitalized. He had been waiting for his fractured bone to heal and for his health to recover fully. His body now had been fully recovered. While he was hospitalized, he had also done rehabilitation training on his own. He was convinced that this was sufficient.
¡°Let¡¯s start.¡±
[Kim Su-hyeun, the trials start now.]
[Choose the level of difficulty.]
[Levels 1~10]
[As the level goes up, the level of difficulty increases, and the reward for clearing each level gets better.]
The exnation for the trials appeared in front of Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. The trials were divided into a total of 10 levels. The most manageable level started at Level 1, and the difficulty would have reached its highest point at level 10.
It was a tough question. There was no right answer, and since there was no wrong answer, it was even tougher ¡ª to choose level 1 and clear the level with perfection, or to choose a higher level and scrape through the level.
The choice was up to him. And....
¡°Level 10.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s choice was already made.
[You have chosen Level 10.]
Su-hyeun had chosen Level 8 in his past life. It was quite difficult, and as tough as it was, the bounty was quite rewarding.
The trials did not start easy. But.... It¡¯s not enough with just this.
There was no end to the Tower of Trials. No one knew how many floors existed within this colossal tower. That was how it was known as being endless. But going up the higher floors did not mean that one was deemed to be stronger. There were cases where some Magical Awakeners who only cleared a few levels were stronger than those whopleted dozens of levels. That was the difference when clearing levels and the levels of difficulty for the Tower of Trials.
High risks, high returns. Su-hyeun thought as the world began its fall. What would happen if he had chosen a level of greater difficulty? What if he had taken a tougher route? Su-hyeun soon came to regret his choice for the first time.
This time.... That was how he made up his mind then.
[Level 10 of the Tower of Trials¡¯ First Floor will start.]
Chapter 4
Chapter 4: Chapter 4
A dull voice was heard as the scene before Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes changed.
The white scene from before had colors added to it. The precious scene was one of those that couldn¡¯t be seen outside the Tower of Trials.
The chilly air tickled his skin.
The background of the trials was the Colosseum.
Grrr¡ª
Kyaaa¡ª!
The Colosseum was empty, but the cries of the monsters could be heard from somewhere.
What great sound effects.
Starting from the first floor, the background looked great.
One floor, ten levels ¡ª he knew about its theme.
Though the trials vary from the second floor onwards, the first level¡¯s trial was determined by its difficulty.
There was almost no one who cleared the first level trials.
Su-hyeun, too, had internal conflicts.
Would this be the right choice? On the contrary, wouldn¡¯t choosing those with greater difficulties bring worse results?
But his concern did notst long.
Nothing changes if there are no differences.
Change does note without one¡¯s will. There¡¯s nothing else as stupid and selfish as expecting positive changes while doing nothing.
[Choose your weapon.]
A variety of weapons appeared around Su-hyeun.
Sword, spear, katana, ax, hammer, bow, etc.
Just the weapon types alone went well over the hundreds.
And Su-hyeun knew how to use more than half the weapons.
But there was no need to contemte over which weapon to choose. Though Su-hyeun knew how to use more than half of them, there was the only one which he knew inside out.
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun grabbed the sword.
1
The best weapon that was prepared to deal with Fafnir, the Balmung.
It was a sword type weapon, and Su-hyeun had used it for the longest time.
In terms of skills, no other weapons are on par with the sword.
[You have chosen the ¡®Silver Longsword.¡¯]
[Check its state.]
As Su-hyeun ascended the levels, the exnations would get less amiable, and the difficulty would get higher. Compared to that, the description now was so much friendlier.
¡°State.¡±
[Name: Kim Su-hyeun]
[Strength: 11] [Agility: 12]
[Health: 10] [Reflex: 14]
[Fatigue: 10]
Its overall stats were not inferior.
The average stats could be seen as 10, so there weren¡¯t any stats lower than that.
Particrly, the reflex stat was well above average.
¡°Why did I get beaten up so much with such stats?¡±
Perhaps Su-hyeun¡¯s personality was the most significant contributing factor.
¡°Although my magic level and magic count were not evaluated...¡±
It was not bad at this level.
All preparations werepleted.
Up until then, nothing had happened in the Colosseum.
It seemed that time was given to the neer to check his own condition and adapt to the new environment.
No matter how Su-hyeun thought about it, the system was treating him quite well up until now.
Of course, Su-hyeun didn¡¯t need this friendliness.
Su-hyeun stood in the middle of the Colosseum and looked up into the sky.
¡°Stop wasting time and start now.¡±
[Do you wish to start now?]
Indeed, the system here felt vaguely like a game.
Like a meticulously built artificial intelligence, it understood every intention and gave the right replies.
It was a very convenient point.
¡°Yes.¡±
[The trials starts now.]
[Fight and obtain victory.]
Simple and concise.
There¡¯s no need toplicate things. Su-hyeun knew what to do as soon as he saw the monsters appear in front of him.
Plonk, grrrr¡ª
A red-furred wolf growled as it watched Su-hyeun.
If there was one more unique feature, it would be its third eye.
He wasn¡¯t sure where it came from. Not from the sky, nor from the ground.
There would be people flustered at the monster which appeared suddenly. But Su-hyeun knew about the trials beforehand, as well as the beast standing before him.
The Vampire Wolf.
Amongst all monsters, the Vampire Wolf was considered the weakest and of the lowest rank.
Its physical and abilities did not have much of a difference from ordinary wolves.
But the tricky part was its ¡°bloodsucking¡± trait.
¡°Its bloodsucking trait helps strengthen itself. On the other hand, a small amount of poison on its teeth reduces its movement speed.¡±
Plonk¡ª!
The Vampire Wolf dashed towards Su-hyeun.
At that moment.
m¡ª!
St¡ª!
Su-hyeun swung his sword at the charging Vampire Wolf and chopped off half its head.
It was a masterpiece done at a timely moment with a fully prepared stance.
Although Su-hyeun could notpletely chop off its head due tock of strength, it made the Vampire Wolf plunge headfirst onto the floor as if losing its breath.
Squash¡ª!
Su-hyeun picked up his sword and swung in the opposite direction, cutting off the wolf¡¯s head entirely.
Its breathing stopped.
[You have gained 10 achievement points.]
[You have killed your first enemy.]
[You have gained 1 strength point.]
The reward at the beginning was great.
It was a great kill that gained Su-hyeun a precious point in stats.
Could there be more rewards?
Every time a floor was cleared in the Tower of Trials, rewards were given based on the results and permission to advance to the next floor was given.
In some cases, rewards were also given while clearing the floor. But those were sporadic cases.
Grrrr¡ª
Plonk, plonk¡ª!
The in Vampire Wolf¡¯s corpse disappeared, and two other Vampire Wolves materialized.
Two more.
It was still manageable.
Su-hyeun raised his sword again.
This time, Su-hyeun made his move first.
Slide¡ª
Su-hyeun slid his newfound body between the two Vampire Wolves.
It wasn¡¯t as quick. This was the movement limit of Su-hyeun¡¯s newfound body.
The Vampire Wolves, too, began running at the same time Su-hyeun did.
And at that moment, Su-hyeun withdrew his body deep into the ground.
At the same time, he swung his sword upwards.
Slit¡ª
sh¡ª
Arge cut was made across the Vampire Wolf¡¯s abdomen as it flew above Su-hyeun.
The other Vampire Wolf missed its target andnded lightly. The injured wolf cried painfully while squirming about on the floor.
Dash¡ª!
It wasn¡¯t certain if it was because of the death of its friend or its instinctive hunger for blood, but the remaining Vampire Wolf ran tirelessly towards Su-hyeun.
And...
Rip¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword ripped the running Vampire Wolf¡¯s mouth apart.
Thud¡ª!
The two injured Vampire Wolves were not dead.
Of course, they would gradually die if he left them alone.
Shaking off the blood off his sword, Su-hyeun muttered.
¡°Indeed... I still haven¡¯t gotten used to it.¡±
He was hospitalized for a month and still hasn¡¯t gotten used to fighting in a new body.
If he could use his strength to the fullest, he could have amputated the heads of the Vampire Wolves.
¡°But it was pretty good earlier,¡± he added, referring to him making use of the opponent¡¯s charging momentum to fly the counter.
It was the best way that Su-hyeun coulde up with from his current strength and agility, which were lower than before.
To make use of the counter, Su-hyeun had to continuously observe his opponent¡¯s movement and lure them into action.
¡°I¡¯ll just have to get used to it bit by bit.¡±
The trials on the first floor until then were splendid.
As the theme was the Colosseum, only simple battles with the low-rank monsters urred.
There was no better way than this for Su-hyeun to adjust to his new body.
Poke, poke¡ª
Su-hyeun did not forget to kill off the Vampire Wolves that were lying on the floor.
[You have gained 20 achievement points.]
The second reward popped up in Su-hyeun¡¯s mind.
Unfortunately, no stats were increased this time.
What was the difference?
There was no other way to test the hypothesis that he came up with besides continuing the battle.
Grrr¡ª
Plonk, plonk¡ª!
Another two Vampire Wolves appeared before Su-hyeun.
This time, it wasn¡¯t just the Vampire Wolves.
Different from the Vampire Wolves, what could be called something close to a real monster had appeared.
Grrr¡ª
A beast with dark red fur and a build smaller than the Vampire wolf.
Even though it had two eyes closed, its third eye was wide open. It was drooling as if watching Su-hyeun as its meal.
¡°Mad Wolf.¡±
Also known as the Rabid Wolf.
The reason why the level 10 trial was so tough was due to this beast.
Of course, the Vampire Wolf was not an easy opponent for normal humans, but as long as one had a weapon in his hands, it was manageable.
But the beast ahead was the real deal.
It wasn¡¯t one that should appear on the first floor.
It was a monster that even well-trained soldiers couldn¡¯t catch.
¡°That¡¯s why it¡¯s level 10.¡±
Grin¡ª
It had been a while.
Su-hyeun felt as though he was back in his past life.
The bodily senses from his past life seemed to have recovered.
But Su-hyeun was still alert.
¡°I¡¯m Su-hyeun.¡±
He mustn¡¯t be mistaken.
Any small delusion would bring about a considerable side effect.
Putting aside his emotions, he had to view this situation objectively.
And objectively...
¡°Now.¡±
Step¡ª
Su-hyeun took a step towards the Mad Wolf and two Vampire Wolves.
¡°I¡¯m stronger.¡±
Plonk, plonk¡ª!
Grrr¡ª
The Vampire Wolves and Mad Wolf howled menacingly at Su-hyeun.
But Su-hyeun didn¡¯t even snort.
Su-hyeun had fought with monsters for many years in his past life.
And he knew instinctively that the monsters are scared of him now.
If so...
¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
It was now or never.
Tap¡ª
The Mad Wolf was running towards Su-hyeun.
At the same time, the Mad Wolf, who was the size of a tiger, stretched its ws swiftly towards Su-hyeun. The Vampire Wolves were no different.
Slide¡ª
Rip¡ª
Su-hyeun did not go deep.
Instead, he dodged the Mad Wolf¡¯s ws and left a long cut along its side.
At the same time he dodged, his body flew past the Vampire Wolves, taking care to avoid their sharp ws and teeth.
A dig, and an immediate escape. Su-hyeun¡¯sck of agility was reced with his high concentration and broad vision.
That was Su-hyeun¡¯s strategy.
But it was only for that moment.
Grr¡ª
Plonk, plonk¡ª
The reactions of the two Vampire Wolves had changed.
The Vampire Wolves that barred their teeth at Su-hyeun looked at Mad Wolf.
¡°The unique feature of the Vampire Wolf is that it can¡¯t use blood unnecessarily.¡±
It couldn¡¯t have the blood of the same race; unfortunately, for the Mad Wolf, he was not a member of their family.
It was just a coincidence that their priority was focused on Su-hyeun.
But since the Vampire Wolves have smelt blood...
Plonk, plonk¡ª!
They started dashing towards the Mad Wolf.
And soon a fight between the two Vampire Wolves and the Mad Wolf started.
Not a three vs one, but a one vs one vs two fight.
No, more urately...
¡°Only the winneres this way.¡±
The winner from their fight would go against Su-hyeun.
Chapter 5
Chapter 5: Chapter 5
Su-hyeun¡¯s past life, Sung-in, excelled in every way.
Not only were his overall stats remarkable thanks to his regr exercises since his youth, but due to his mother¡¯s influence, he knew the signs of his awakening and thus had received various training.
1
He understood the characteristics of the monsters, clearly knew their weaknesses, and came up with strategies to handle them.
Injuring the Mad Wolf and making use of the Vampire Wolves¡¯ instinct to engage them in a fight was thanks to that.
Ugh, ugggh¡ª
Even though blood was gushing out and life was slowly draining, Mad Wolf was still drooling and swallowing its saliva.
Its instinct for food was more of an obsession. It didn¡¯t think of running away even though it was close to dying.
¡°But that was better for me.¡±
It wouldn¡¯t be as knotty if it used its quick movement to escape and fought back.
Thankfully, it was an insane monster that lived up to its name. Its intelligence wasn¡¯t that high.
Stab¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword prated deep into the Mad Wolf¡¯s head through the eye on its forehead.
At that moment, the Mad Wolf, which was barely alive, died.
[You have gained 50 achievement points.]
[You have passed the first floor¡¯s trial.]
[You have gained 300 achievement points.]
[All stats have been increased by 5 points.]
It was the end of the first floor.
Su-hyeun was wide-eyed.
¡°What a reward...¡±
300 achievement points.
All stats increased by five.
The reward exceeded his expectations.
Besides the achievement points, the reward was hard to ept as it was rare to be awarded an increase for all stats.
Plus, it was increased by 5 points for all.
No matter if this was a level 10 trial, the reward was beyond imagination.
¡°I knew the rewards would depend on the course of the trial and the performance, but...¡±
It did not ur to him that the difference would be this great.
Perhaps being rewarded with a stat increase for the first Vampire Wolf kill could be due to the time taken to finish it off.
Whatever the reason, it was satisfying for Su-hyeun.
If he were to be continuously rewarded in this way, he would be able to earn much more than he did in his previous life.
[You may use the first floor¡¯s store.]
[Do you wish to advance to the next level?]
Another message appearedter on.
It was the message that Su-hyeun was waiting for.
At the store, one could use their achievement points to purchase various weapons, shields, armor, and other equipment.
Currently, Su-hyeun had a total of 380 achievement points.
It was quite a substantial amount of achievement points earned from the first floor. It was thanks to the fact that Su-hyeun managed to swiftly pass the trial that got him a higher amount of points.
¡°Store.¡±
Su-hyeun opened the store immediately.
Various categories appeared before him, such as equipment, consumer goods, medication, food, etc. As long as one had achievement points, he could do anything in this world.
Amongst them, there was only one that Su-hyeun was thinking of.
¡°Here it is.¡±
[Lowest grade mana catalyst: 300p]
The item that came into Su-hyeun¡¯s view was a small bottle located in the consumer goods section.
The small bottle containing a violet-colored potion was the first item that Su-hyeun had wanted to purchase long ago.
¡°I thought it would only be avable for purchase at the second level....¡±
It was thanks to the high achievement points he was rewarded that his ns were hastened.
¡°Purchase.¡±
[You have purchased the lowest grade mana catalyst.]
[You have used 300 achievement points.]
As soon as the purchase had been confirmed, the violet-colored potion appeared in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand.
Su-hyeun opened the thumb-sized bottle cap and gulped the potion down.
Gulp¡ª
The catalyst had no taste to it.
But a bitter aftertaste cameter.
It was inevitable since the catalyst had been diluted in water.
¡°Pant¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun threw the now empty bottle on the floor.
He flopped down to take a seat.
¡°Pant¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun exhaled long and deep, focusing on the catalyst that was spreading throughout his body.
The magic factor also referred to the maximum amount of mana in his body.
If the magic level measures the power level, the magic factor would determine how much magic power could be released.
The awakener could never ignore neither the magic factor nor the magic level.
If the level was low, the overall power that could be released would be weak no matter how high the factor is; and if the factor was low, no matter how high the magic level is, only a small amount of magic power could be used.
¡°Firstly, mana¡¯s maximum limit.¡±
Currently, his body wasn¡¯t carrying any magic powers.
The mana catalyst acts as a stimnt that forces the awakener to have magic power.
Of course, if an average person were to drink a small amount like this, it wouldn¡¯t make much of a difference....
Wiggle¡ª
Since Su-hyeun had been dealing with magic for a long time, he reacted to the catalyst¡¯s effect of magic awakening quite sensitively.
¡°It¡¯s done.¡±
[Responding to magic power.]
[Your magic factor has been increased by 1 point.]
[Responding to magic power.]
[Your magic level has advanced by 1 level.]
***
One point.
It was slightly humiliating.
However, not many would be able to respond to magic power from the first floor. If it weren¡¯t for this particr case, one would only encounter this on the third floor.
Initially, the first floor¡¯s level 10 was only a trial testing on one¡¯s physical abilities, and not rted in any way to the magic power.
Whirl, whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
Su-hyeun sent magic power into the sword in his hands.
He felt the sword feeling better in his hands. But it was hard to have the magic power wrap around the sword itself.
¡°I can¡¯t hold this out for too long....¡±
It might have been better to get items like a sword or armor than to raise his magic level and factor.
But Su-hyeun was considering the long run.
¡°I should get stronger on this floor while I can.¡±
The items couldn¡¯t be taken out of the Tower of Trials anyway.
The only thing he could take out would be the body that he built.
¡°For the sake of the future....¡±
As the sword¡¯s magic power ran out, Su-hyeun lowered it.
¡°As expected, magic power is most important.¡±
[Will you advance to the next floor?]
As if knowing that Su-hyeun has finished using the store, the system asked if he would like to advance to the next floor.
Would he?
Or would he stop here, and pause the trials temporarily?
Or...
¡°No.¡±
Su-hyeun expressed his refusal when the system asked if he would like to advance to the next floor.
Grrr¡ª
Kyaaa¡ª!
Su-hyeun heard the monsters growling in the Colosseum and said, ¡°Call the next one out.¡±
No pain, no gain.
You must suffer the equivalent hardship before gaining something.
It was the principle that Su-hyeun had from his past life, and it was also the truth in this life.
Even if he couldn¡¯t endure it, it was still a go.
There was no stopping.
¡°Before we advance, we should see it until the end, shouldn¡¯t we?¡±
Act 3
In the Tower of Trials, there were some rules to adhere to get stronger.
¡ªChoose the higher levels.
¡ªClear the higher floors.
¡ªGive a better performance.
Although there were several other expedients like the catalyst that Su-hyeun used, they were just additives.
The crucial point was how high the level, the floor, and how to get a better performance to clear the trials.
And depending on the circumstances, it was better to find a way to get a better performance at certain levels instead of the predetermined.
[Will you advance to the next floor?]
There were two choices to this question.
Yes and No.
Most would choose ¡°Yes,¡± as they would have decided to start the next floor of trials by quickly heading to the next floor.
But asionally, there was another type of trial that is simr to the one Su-hyeun was at now.
A bonus mission that could be taken up after the trial ended.
¡°Where¡¯s the end of this Colosseum?¡±
A fight that only had three battles.
Su-hyeun thought it was boring.
All his stats had increased, and now that he had his magic awakened, fighting would be a lot easier.
It was a pity to stop here. Also, it was apparent that the trial¡¯s achievement level would get higher after clearing and getting more bonus missions.
No words were needed for the rewards. Plus, Su-hyeun was taking on level 10 of the trial at the moment.
Su-hyeun took on the Colosseum¡¯s next challenge.
And the one after.
And....
[You have cleared stage 10 of the first floor.]
[There is nothing else after this.]
[You have wlessly cleared the first trial.]
[You will be ranked ording to your achievement.]
[You are ranked first.]
[You have gained 1000 achievement points.]
[All stats have been increased by 1 point.]
[Your magic factor has been increased by 2 points.]
[Your magic level has increased by 1 level.]
¡°Pant, pant¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun looked at the great wolf that was the size of a bull lying on the floor.
This wolf, whose whole body had been raked, was called the ¡°Raked Wolf.¡± It was a monster that had rtively keen senses.
It was hard for even a skilled magic awakener to deal with this beast, and it appeared on the first floor of the trials.
¡°I wondered what happened.¡±
He did expect that it wouldn¡¯t be easy when he decided to clear all the 10 stages on the first floor.
But never did he expect to meet the Raked Wolf on the first floor.
¡°But still...¡±
As tough as it was, the reward was bountiful.
It was a given to be ranked first in the trials¡¯ ranking. Su-hyeun was also ranked first in most of the records in his past life.
But he never expected to be able to gain a magic level of 2 on just the first floor.
¡°Status.¡±
[Name: Kim Su-hyeun]
[Magic Factor: 8] [Magic Level: 2]
[Strength: 28] [Agility: 29]
[Health: 28] [Reflex: 34]
[Fatigue: 55]
His overall stats had increased tremendously.
One would not have thought that he had just cleared the first floor of the trials.
This situation surpassed his expectations much more than he had imagined.
¡°Should I continue on to the second floor now?¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head at the sudden thought which surfaced in his mind.
¡°No. Let¡¯s stop here for today.¡±
He could not ignore his level of fatigue now.
He needed enough rest, had used his achievement points, and was required to maintain himself. Furthermore, he could not ignore the reality.
¡°I¡¯m returning.¡±
[Your qualifications are distinct.]
[You have cleared the first floor.]
[You will now exit the Tower of Trials.]
The world before Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes changed once again.
* * *
Cut, cut, cut, cut.
Boiling, boiling.
As Su-hyeun stepped into the now-familiar room, he heard soundsing from the living room ¡ª the sounds of soup boiling and some excellent cutting skills.
Su-hyeun opened his room door and went out to the living room.
¡°Oh, son, you were home?¡±
Shin Su-yeong, who was preparing dinner, turned around.
Su-hyeun nodded his head slightly and looked at the food set on the dining table. He was at a loss for words.
¡°Pork rib stew, stir-fried mix vegetable noodles, and bean paste soup... Why did you prepare so much?¡±
Although the house was small, the dining table had a sumptuous feast that would make many feel envious. Just by looking at it, one could tell it was a feast that needed a lot of preparations.
¡°My son just got discharged, so of course I have to prepare this much.¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t you juste back from work?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. The soup is almost ready, so take a seat. I¡¯ll get you a bowl of rice.¡±
¡°It¡¯s alright. I¡¯ll get it myself.¡±
Su-hyeun checked small the wall clock hung on one side of the living room. It had been well after 10PM.
Shin Su-yeong arrived back home after work at around 9PM.
If it were other families, their son would be eating alone at this time. Nevertheless, it seemed that Shin Su-yeong had been preparing dinner thatte into the night every day after work.
As soon as the soup was done, Su-hyeun got his bowl of rice and sat down at the dining table. They turned on the television and started their meal.
¡ªRecently, there has been an increase in the number of dungeons. Whenparing the first-time dungeons that appeared back in 2013, in 2018, it was discovered that the number has multiplied by threefold.
As expected, the issues raised in the news recently were about dungeons and magical awakeners. As it was something Su-hyeun was used to, he did not show much interest in it.
¡°Aren¡¯t you fascinated at it?¡±
¡°What about?¡±
Su-hyeun focused on his meal and replied to Shin Su-yeong¡¯s question in a mundane manner.
If she asked about fascination, his answer was predetermined. To him, it was his daily life and lifestyle.
¡°Suddenly monsters and people with weird supernatural powers are appearing. These only came out in theics and stuff that you liked when you were young.¡±
¡°Well, it has nowe to reality.¡±
That¡¯s right. It had be a reality.
¡ªMeanwhile, the prices of energy sources and ether stones found in the dungeons continue to skyrocket due to its wide variety of uses. Though some people mentioned the dangers of the phenomenal dungeon outbreak, it still has had a positive impact on our society...
Of course, the reality wasn¡¯t as hopeful as what was reported on the television.
¡°It wasn¡¯t hope, but more of desperation.¡±
This happiness would not go on for long.
The dungeons that came to the world with a hopeful image would soon change into a huge disaster.
Knowing this fact, Su-hyeun could not ept the news that this was being reported as a trivial story.
They ended their meal, and Su-hyeun pushed Shin Su-yeong into her room, saying that he would do the dishes.
Su-hyuen went back into his room after he finished doing the dishes.
Creak¡ª
¡°Mom, I¡¯ve finished doing the.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s voice turned softer.
During that short time, Shin Su-yeong fell asleep while lying against the wardrobe.
It seemed that she was quite exhausted, seeing that she might not have known how she fell asleep.
Su-hyeun looked quietly at the sleeping Shin Su-yeong before spotting a folded nket on the side and covering her with it.
¡°Mother.¡±
Looking at her face, his insides turned.
He still felt awkward at that term. Even though he had decided to live as Su-hyeun, he nevertheless felt some awkwardness.
But...
Of course, it would be hard for anyone to understand why her devotion to Su-hyeun was so great.
¡°Just wait a while more.¡±
He wanted to repay as much as he had received.
Even though it was a devotion that wasn¡¯t directed entirely at him....
The end of this devotion must not lead to the end of this world.
¡°Even though I can¡¯t be your real son...¡± he thought while he closed his eyes and held her hands.
¡°I¡¯ll definitely make you happy.¡±
Certainly.
He would not have anyone die under his watch.
Chapter 6
Chapter 6: Chapter 6
Shin Su-yeong woke upte from her sleep. In the wee hours of the morning, dawn had just started to break.
¡°When did I fall asleep?¡±
She rubbed her blurry eyes and looked around her.
Got to do theundry and clean the floor.... House chores are piling up like a mountain. But ¡ª
¡°Oh?¡±
The room was clean.
The untidy pile of clothes had been neatly folded and the floor had been cleaned without a single strand of hair left behind. The piling trash can in the living room had been emptied as well.
¡°You¡¯re awake?¡±
Shin Su-yeong turned around.
Su-hyeun was carrying a change of clothes and a bag. Shin Su-yeong, in turn, spoke to Su-hyeun while she looked inside the recently cleaned room.
¡°You did all this?¡±
¡°The cleaning?¡±
¡°Yeah.¡±
¡°Since you were sleeping, I didn¡¯t want to wake you up. I didn¡¯t know where to put theundry, so I just left it aside. Please do itter. The toilet was dirty, so I cleaned it as well.¡±
Shin Su-yeong stared nkly with a loss for words. Although he did asionally clean the floor and do simple household chores, she never thought that her son would clean up the house so neatly while she was asleep.
¡°There¡¯s nothing much left for me to do.¡±
It seemed that she could sleep more before heading to work.
¡°But son, where are you heading at this hour? Do you have ns?¡±
¡°I¡¯m heading to the library.¡±
¡°The library?¡±
¡°Yes. I might stay at my friend¡¯s house for the night, too. My phone will be turned off, but don¡¯t worry.¡±
¡°To study?¡±
¡°Yes. I have to attend university.¡±
It was ame excuse, but there were no other excuses that he coulde up with.
Su-hyeun scratched his head and turned away.
¡°Well, I¡¯ll be back.¡± Su-hyeun put on his shoes and headed out.
Shin Su-yeong looked out into the dark, early morning sky where the sun had yet to rise and muttered.
¡°Oh my, what is going on?¡±
It might have been too much to go back to sleep immediately.
* * *
Trudge, trudge.
5AM in the morning. It was dark out on the streets. It was quiet outside except for the sounds of a few people who started work early in the morning.
¡°I should start studying for a bit.¡±
Since he used studying as an excuse, he couldn¡¯t help but do it.
¡°Although I won¡¯t need it much.¡±
Anyway, he did more than enough studying in his past life.
He had been admitted into a reasonably respectable university and still remembered a fair bit from those times. It had been a short-term investment while he was recovering from his fatigue.
¡°Before that...¡±
Slide¡ª
Su-hyeun headed into a deserted alley. The narrow alley wasn¡¯t hard to find, as this was an area where few people lived. He came up with the excuse of going to the library to exin his long absences, but actually, he had something else to do.
¡°Ha. What am I even doing?¡±
He wasn¡¯t a criminal, but found himself pathetic to be hiding away in a ce like this.
¡°I had to hide it immediately, so I had no choice.¡±
It had only been a few years since the appearance of magical awakeners and dungeons. As precious as each magical awakener was, great attention was also given to every new magical awakener.
Therefore, moving on with the Tower on Trials in the middle of the streets would only garner more attention.
¡°I would never be able to go back again.¡±
Su-hyeun reached out and shook his head clear when he thought about where he belonged in his past life.
Rip¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s grasp tore a space in the air. The entrance to the Tower of Trials appeared before him. The gigantic tower could be seen once he stepped in.
Step, step¡ª
He had be familiar with the route towards the tower. Su-hyeun could now pass the doors without any hesitation.
Thendscape turned white before him and was recolored once again, revealing apletely different scene. Regardless of how many times he had crossed the entrance to the tower, he would always find this change fascinating.
[Wee to the Tower of Trials.]
The message appeared in his mind.
Su-hyeun stood in the middle of the vast city, where people were walking in the square around theke.
¡°Tower of Trials.¡±
In the outside world, it was known as ¡°The Abyss.¡±
Different from its dark and dreary title, this world was quite habitable. One could live considerably well without having to clear the floors of the tower.
¡°It¡¯s a nice ce.¡±
Compared to the nearly destroyed future, the world now was very much better to live in.
¡°Because of that day, the Day of Selection...¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head. It was too far into the future to think about it now. Instead, now he had to resolve issues and prepare for the Day of Selection.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun immediately headed to arge department store located outside of the square. It wasposed of a dwellers who did not appear to have any items on disy, but the ce was clearly meant to be a store.
A voice piped up while Su-hyeun walked in. ¡°What are you here for?¡±
A beautifuldy with ck hair, soft skin, and a slender jawline gained Su-hyeun¡¯s attention.
¡°If you¡¯re here to buy stuff,e here. Are you looking for anything in particr?¡±
Su-hyeun looked at her.
What a charmingdy. Su-hyeun knew just who she was.
Dark Elf Velly. One of the merchants found on the second floor of the Tower of Trials selling skill books.
Dark Elf was a nickname that was widely known amongst the magical awakeners. Although Velly was not an elf, it meant that her beauty was equivalent to one.
Su-hyeun walked towards Velly¡¯s calling. Velly leaned her face and body up close to Su-hyeun.
¡°Is this your first time?¡±
¡°What about it?¡±
¡°It¡¯s my first time seeing you, but your eyes don¡¯t seem so. It¡¯s as if you¡¯ve returned to somece familiar.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t mind me. Just think of me as a passing customer.¡±
¡°How snippy. So, what are you looking for? I usually sell skill books. If you¡¯re not looking for anything in particr, shall I show you the whole list?¡±
Su-hyeun looked at her seductive appearance from the bottom up. It wouldn¡¯t be weird if anyone were tomit an impulse purchase to win her favor. It seems that many stupid customers would fall for this.
Those stupid customers would not live for long. Su-hyeun ignored Velly¡¯s gaze and spoke.
¡°Do you sell the transfiguration skill?¡±
¡°...Sell what?¡±
Velly¡¯s eyes turned small with Su-hyeun¡¯s question. With that change in expression, Su-hyeun was able to confirm that he had found the right ce.
¡°I don¡¯t want to go around in circles finding it.¡±
Su-hyeun bent down to meet Velly¡¯s eyes. Velly pulled back and distanced herself from him.
¡°How much is it? I¡¯m looking for it.¡±
¡°I do have it... But why are you looking for it?¡±
¡°Because I need it.¡±
¡°And you can afford it? Even if it costs a whopping 1,000 points?¡±
1,000 points. A ridiculous amount for someone who just cleared the first floor. It was rare to gain stats or achievement points at the first level, especially since it was just a level to be cleared for formality¡¯s sake.
¡°Even so, the transfiguration skill is only essible for those with magic level 2. You¡¯re just a newbie who recently cleared the first floor....¡±
¡°Stop your nagging and give it to me. I have the 1,000 points.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Give it to me.¡±
Velly considered Su-hyeun¡¯s request for a moment and slowly took out a book.
¡°Here it is. The transfiguration skill book.¡±
¡°Thanks.¡±
Su-hyeun took the book from Velly. At the same time:
[You have used 1,000 achievement points.]
The achievement points which he had umted were gone. Although there were still some left, most of them were used.
¡°What are you?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Are you sure you¡¯ve just cleared the first floor? You were looking for the transfiguration skill, and you already had that many points as well...¡±
¡°Stop being nosy. I won¡¯t be staying here for long, either.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Forget it. Give me the leap skill. It¡¯s 150 points, right?¡±
¡°...Are you really supposed to be on the second floor?¡±
Velly looked suspiciously at Su-hyeun. But still took out the leap skill book and handed it to him.
Soon, her expression changed into curiosity, much like when he first met her. Su-hyeun judged that Velly must have known the value of the transfiguration skill. Indeed, she¡¯s not a normaldy.
How did shee to live here? All dwellers here had their own unique story to tell. Velly probably had something simr.
¡°I¡¯m off.¡±
Su-hyeun walked into another store and bought some simple equipment.
To move equipment from the Tower of Trials a separate item was needed, one different from skills. But that item was not avable to purchase on the second floor, so the equipment that Su-hyeun had got to use was quite a steal.
¡°It¡¯s not bad for this much.¡±
A total of 200 achievement points.
Add another 100 points for dry rations, bandages, medication, and more.
The remaining 700 points were used to purchase a low-grade mana catalyst.
¡°Appraisal.¡±
[Transfiguration Skill.]
-Magic level: 2
-LV: 1
-Can mimic a specific target¡¯s physical ability. Depending on the transfiguration level, the level of imitating the opponent will increase.
[Leap.]
-Magic level: 2
-Ability: 0.
-Able to do one more leap in the air. Depending on the ability, the number of leaps and height will increase.
These were the two skills bought from Velly. They were the two most useful skills known to Su-hyeun on the second floor.
¡°It was an excellent choice to purchase transfiguration skill.¡±
A skill worth 1,000 achievement points.
In fact, it was almost impossible to obtain it. The person whom Su-hyeun knew to have gotten this skill appeared only 10 yearster. That person was a magical awakener who chose the ninth level, and like Su-hyeun, had out-performed when clearing the first floor.
Although he used up 1,000 points in one go, he didn¡¯t find it to be a waste.
¡°Level-dependent skill.¡±
Unlike the leap skill, which was determined by ability, the transfiguration skill was determined by magic level. A skill¡¯s required magic level was the minimum needed to learn it, and at the same time, it referred to its own level as well.
Of course, it was a skill that showed excellent efficiency anytime, anywhere, regardless of the level. It was simr to the leap skill in that it could perform evasions and deceptions in various situations.
But most of the skills were not like that. Thus, this level-dependent skill was one that many magical awakeners would kill to have while they ascended the tower.
¡°Still, I have no use for it now.¡±
He was prepared to the best of his ability. Su-hyeun used 50 points to purchase a small pouch to contain his rations and some thin armor that would not hinder his movement.
He had used up all his achievement points gained from the first floor ¡ª it was all to achieve even better performance on the next floor.
¡°Before that, first...¡±
Su-hyeun went to book his amodation. All the tower¡¯s dwellers used achievement points as currency. The remaining small amount of achievement points were used to rent a ce for himself.
COMMENT
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun stepped in and ced the sword and spear, which were slung over his shoulder, in a corner. He then pulled out the violet-colored bottle from the small pouch hung around his waist.
[Low-grade mana catalyst.]
-Mana catalyst diluted with distilled water. Depending on the user¡¯s level, it permanently amplifies the magic level and factor.
Such a slipshod exnation for an item that could make one waste 700 points if misused.
In fact, it wasmon to see many magical awakeners who wanted high magic factor to not see much effect after taking the catalyst. Because of this, the catalysts were often described as a lottery amongst magical awakeners.
¡°Strictly speaking, they aren¡¯t lotteries.¡±
But now, Su-hyeun did not even have an item like this.
Pop¡ª
Su-hyeun sat down and immediately opened the catalyst¡¯s lid.
Chapter 7
Chapter 7: Chapter 7
Gulp, gulp¡ª
As if downing a hot drink, the feeling of the catalyst flowing down his esophagus was intense. Su-hyeun put the empty bottle down beside him. He could feel the same intensity that he had felt when he first had the low-grade mana catalyst.
Focus, focus. Like a spell, he chanted it twice in his mind. From now on, the value of the catalyst would vary depending on how focused he was. The 700 points which he spent might be for naught if there was no effect, but on the contrary, it could also worth thousands of points.
Wriggle¡ª
The catalyst that went into his body started reacting. It was the real deal now.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Sizzle¡ª
The magic¡¯s build started growing after reacting with the catalyst. Its properties did not change. If it did change, it would have meant that the magic level had increased.
Greed was taboo. Instead of the properties, it was more important to focus on the maximum amount of mana, which in this case was the magic factor.
[Your magic factor has increased by 1 point.]
[Your magic factor has increased by 1 point.]
[Your magic factor...]
As the magic properties increased, the magic factor increased as well. Su-hyeun tried to ignore the message that popped up in his head. If he lost focus now, all that he had done up until now would have been for nothing.
Tch¡ª
Rumble, rumble¡ª
At that moment, some changes were visible in the magic properties. Now is the time.
Although he tried not to be greedy, the situation changed. The effect of the catalyst was beyond his expectations. Su-hyeun quickly focused on the remaining catalyst. The magic properties changed rapidly in response to it. The color changed slowly from one to another until it was one of a better grade.
The results.
[Your magic level has increased by 1.]
Compared to the first time, the effect had exceeded expectations.
¡°Huuuu¡ª¡± After thest message popped up, Su-hyeun let go of his breath, which he had held for so long. At the same time, he let go of his concentration, and the magic that gathered at the catalyst had dissipated.
But the magic that had undergone change once would not change anymore. After sweating it out, Su-hyeunid on the floor. As expected... It¡¯s tiring.
Extreme concentration brought severe fatigue. As his vision blurred, all his energy left his body. He needed to rest.
Great. Awesome. Unlike the fatigue in his body, Su-hyeun¡¯s mind was feeling quite refreshed. Magic level of 3. On top of that, he also attained a magic factor of 16. The maximum amount of mana had definitely changed. Not only that, but the magic properties had also increased to a higher level.
I¡¯ll rest for awhile... Su-hyeun took smaller breaths and closed his eyes.
And move on to the next floor.
Act 4
Su-hyeun headed out to the square after taking a rest. The second floor of the Tower of Trials was a city so vast it was as if it had no end. In the city existed several squares, and most of the squares had portals that were linked to the upper floors.
¡°Looking for people to challenge the third floor! Willing topromise on the level!¡±
¡°Cleared level 5 challenger attempting level 4! 2-person party, looking for one more to join!¡±
It was as if looking at a scene from a game. There were those who were reluctant to head up to the next floor on their own. They introduced themselves and started to look for parties to head up with.
¡°Are you going up to the next floor?¡± An amiable looking young man appeared beside Su-hyeun. He looked almost the same age as Su-hyeun. It seemed like he, too, would like to challenge the next floor.
¡°I want to go to level 8. Do you want to join? You seem to be quite skillful, judging by your equipment.¡±
Level 8. A fairly high-level challenger. Seeing that the young man was as well-equipped as Su-hyeun himself, it seemed that he had passed the first floor with a high performance.
Where have I met him before? Su-hyeun did not answer immediately, but instead scrutinized his face ¡ª it looked familiar. Soon, Su-hyeun was able to recall where he had seen the young man.
Choi Hak-joon.
He wasbeled as a genius amongst the promising magical awakeners at a certain point in time. Unfortunately, he had lost his life in an ident. He had seen him a few times before, but he did not look this young even then. More urately, it wasn¡¯t just his face that was different.
His aura feels different. The Hak-joon he remembered was not this affectionate and sociable. Even his expression was different. That was why Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t recognize him at first.
Some events had caused people to change, and it seemed that it was before the ident happened. That ident... which guild¡¯s extermination was it?
The ident was the wipeout of the guild that he was in. It was a rtivelyrge guild, and the future Hak-joon was a highly skilled magical awakener. News of a guild being wiped out was the talk of the town. Strictly speaking, it wasn¡¯t strange if one had enemies amongst the magical awakeners. Hak-joon was finally acquitted when the rtionship between him, the guild, and the syndicate came to light.
Level 8... Although he did challenge a higher level, Su-hyeun shook his head.
¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡± Hak-joon smiled awkwardly with a look of regret on his face at Su-hyeun¡¯s refusal.
¡°Haha. It¡¯s quite a high difficulty, isn¡¯t it? If I can¡¯t get anyone to join me today, I might have to head up on my own.¡±
Most would not bother to challenge level 8. It was because the moment one cleared level 5, the subsequent levels¡¯ difficulty would increase exponentially. Hak-joon thought that it was because of the high difficulty that Su-hyeun had to consider joining him. But it was actually the opposite, and Su-hyeun did not bother to exin.
¡°Don¡¯t you want to lower the difficulty?¡± Su-hyeun became curious about the man standing before him. As Hak-joon passed on too early, he never had the chance to talk to him. On top of that, the Hak-joon he remembered wasn¡¯t such an amiable person.
Something must have triggered a change in him. Exactly what had made him change? Hak-joon answered Su-hyeun¡¯s question. ¡°I don¡¯t.¡±
¡°Why must you challenge level 8 then?¡±
¡°The higher levels seem to be a lot tougher...¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t level 8 of a high difficulty as well?¡±
¡°Of course, it is.¡±
¡°But why?¡±
¡°Well...¡± Hak-joon shook his head to avoid answering the question.
¡°It¡¯s nothing. If it¡¯s tough for you, I¡¯ll just go by myself.¡± Su-hyeun also had no intention of forcing an answer from him. Eventually, Su-hyeun left Hak-joon and went into the square.
Hoping to find others who would join him, Hak-joon approached some others who were equipped well enough. Others had also expressed interest, but only for a while.
Although some saw Su-hyeun¡¯s equipment and approached him to clear the levels together, he rejected them all.
No one would want to attempt level 10, right? Even if there was someone, he wouldn¡¯t want to do it together.
Chuck¡ª
Su-hyeun went into the portal located in the center of the square. His vision turned white, and he felt his body float in the air. Soon, a message appeared in his mind.
[Kim Su-hyeun, your second-floor trial starts now.]
[Choose the level of difficulty.]
[1~10 Lv.]
[The difficulty gets higher as you go up the levels. The reward after you clear the level would also get better.]
His decision had already been made. ¡°Level 10.¡±
Although he could choose the level of difficulty at each floor, Su-hyeun had already decided on the difficulty himself. High risks, high returns. This absolute principle would never fail on its own.
[Level 10. The second-floor trial will begin.]
The white space in Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes was colored again. Thendscape and the temperature on his skin changed. It was not clear if the surroundings changed with Su-hyeun in the center, or if he fell into another world. But this feeling was not bad. Su-hyeun observed his surroundings.
Caw, caw¡ª!
Hwing¡ª!
There were the calls of some unknown species of birds and a chilly wind blowing. Before he knew it, Su-hyeun was standing in the middle of the deep forest.
[The trial begins now.]
[You are being pursued. Your opponents are the Shayres, a species that dominates this forest.]
[You must take the Shayres¡¯ treasure and escape from the forest. If it is stolen or if you die, you will fail this trial.]
[Survive.]
[Protect the treasure.]
As soon as the message ended, a ne appeared in Su-hyeun¡¯s hands. He didn¡¯t know when he started carrying the ne. It was most likely the treasure that was mentioned before. The treasure of Shayres.
He knew what species they were. Although they were categorized as a species, the magical awakeners identified them as monsters that moved in tribes.
Hunter-type monsters. They were excellent at tracking. It definitely would not be easy trying to escape from them in this dense forest. Although the Shayres did not have exceptional physical abilities, they were hard to deal with, especially for someone who was just about to take on the second floor¡¯s challenge.
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun wore the ne that he was holding onto. There was no effect from it. It didn¡¯t look like a treasure at all. It could also be that only after clearing the trial that the ne show its effect.
It would have been better if the ne were sealed. Sealed items had a far better effect than ordinary objects. Treasure of the Shayres...
Crack, caw¡ª!
Caw¡ª!
A terrible cry could be heard from somewhere within the woods. It was the cry of a Shayre. It seemed outraged by the fact that its treasure had disappeared.
¡°It seems to be quite angry.¡± Su-hyeun grinned.
Protect the treasure, escape, and survive. Now he clearly understood the objective of this trial. If so... ¡°Forget about escaping.¡±
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun started walking towards the Shayres¡¯ cries. I¡¯ll face them head-on.
* * *
A monster with an oval-shaped face, no facial features, and white skin appeared before him. The Shayres were quite intelligent monsters. While their physical abilities were not particrly outstanding, they were civilized and moved in groups, which made them a species that was quite difficult to deal with.
Crr, crrr¡ª
Caw, caw¡ª!
The Shayres were outraged. The reason was simple: their treasure had disappeared. Tens of Shayres sat on the trees above and looked at one side of the forest. The treasure was nearby; the Shayres knew this because a unique scent had been sprayed on the ne for them to track it easily.
Crr, crack¡ª
It was him. The human who had stolen their treasure. The human wasing closer ¡ª not escaping, but returning again? It was weird.
The Shayres were intelligent creatures. There was no way that the human would return here without any reason. But even so, they would not be scared enough of just one human being to retreat.
Creak, creak¡ª
The leader of the Shayres raised his hand. The others widened their formation and got prepared. It was not for pursuit, but to prepare for defense. The culprit would soon enter their territory.
Step, step¡ª
The human walked in slowly. He wore thin armor and had a sword and spear slung over his shoulders. He was strolling. Su-hyeun greeted the Shayres.
¡°I¡¯ve heard that you are the predators in this part of the forest.¡± Su-hyeun spoke as he held the sword and spear in each of his hands. ¡°So...¡±
Crr¡ª?
Unable to understand Su-hyeun, the Shayres¡¯ leader tilted his head to one side. At that moment ¡ª
Sleek¡ª
Plop¡ª!
The spear came flying and pierced the Shayre leader¡¯s head into the tree. As soon as they were angered, Su-hyeun raised his sword. ¡°From now on, I will change the predators of this forest.¡±
Chapter 8
Chapter 8: Chapter 8
The night grew deeper in the forest.
Shuffle, shuffle¡ª
The forest shook in an uproar. Countless shadows were in pursuit of one human.
Creak, creak¡ª!
Squeal¡ª!
The Shayres pulled their bows with a lunatic cry. And at that moment:
Snap, snap¡ª
Su-hyeun lightly stepped on a few branches. He was waiting for that moment.
Swoosh¡ª!
The arrows flew in Su-hyeun¡¯s direction, but they couldn¡¯t hit him. As the thin branches snapped, Su-hyeun¡¯s body bounced upwards.
t¡ª
He had used the Leap skill. The unexpected movement got the flustered Shayre to take off.
sh¡ª!
[You have gained 20 achievement points.]
The Shayre¡¯s throat was shed and bright red blood came gushing out like a fountain.
Wooong¡ª
t, t¡ª
Su-hyeun moved fast. He focused the magic on his legs and was able to move around in the forest¡¯splicated terrain freely. Even the Shayres, who dominated the forest, were unable to catch up to him.
Caw, caw¡ª!
The Shayres panicked as half of their tribe was lost. They had to run. They were not the hunters. At this moment, the hunter was Su-hyeun. But...
Jingle¡ª
¡°Going to run?¡± Su-hyeun said as he showed them the ne on his neck. The Shayres turned furious upon seeing the ne, though they did not understand his words. The remaining Shayres headed towards Su-hyeun in unison. They probably realized that bows would not work on Su-hyeun, who could leap into the air. ¡°Of course. That¡¯s right.¡±
Pssh¡ª
Plop¡ª!
The spear in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand pierced through the forting Shayre¡¯s head. ¡°There¡¯s no need to drag it on any further....¡±
Pick, pick¡ª
Tung¡ª
Su-hyeun shed the two Shayres near him and leaped to get to the Shayres that were in the distance.
¡°Let¡¯s finish up quickly.¡±
sh¡ª!
He shed thest Shayre.
[You have gained 20 achievement points.]
[Your strength has increased by 1 point.]
Drip, drip¡ª
His blood dripped on the floor and covered his body. The tension in Su-hyeun eased and fatigue came over him. ¡°Huuu¡ª¡±
He lost count of how many tribes there were. The numbers were increasing. There¡¯s no end to them.
Although it was a level 10 trial, not all the rewards were equivalent to the effort put in the trials. Su-hyeun had the first-hand experience of clearing the level with better than expected performance, where the reward was even more bountiful than usual.
Su-hyeun had thought about it when he started the second floor¡¯s trial here. If the purpose was to run away from the Shayres and survive without losing the treasure...
It would end if the Shayres were wiped out, regardless of how long it took. It was best to get the highest reward possible if he were to continue challenging the level 10 trials for each floor. To do that, Su-hyeun did not run from the Shayres, but chose to face them head-on instead.
The numbers are slowly increasing. No, it wasn¡¯t just the numbers. Even amongst the Shayres, there were the strong and the weak. Not only were their numbers increasing, but their level was also getting higher as well.
I¡¯ll stop here for today. His fatigue level was increasing. Not only had his stamina reached its limits, but the magic that he had been cherishing was also nearly used up.
It wasn¡¯t a trial that could be cleared in a day or two. One also needed to know when to stop and take a rest toplete this long-running marathon.
Su-hyeun went into a nearby cave that he found. He could see lighting through the ceiling as he entered the deep cave.
[You have entered a safe zone.]
[You are safe from attackers here.]
He had found a safe zone, also known as a neutral zone. It was first ce Su-hyeun entered after his fight with the Shayres. There were several other safe zones in different types of trials. Although there were some trials where safe zones did not exist, they were umon. Additionally, the safe zones were treated as separate spaces, disconnected from the trial.
¡°Status.¡±
[Name: Kim Su-hyeun]
[Magic Factor: 16] [Magic level: 3]
[Strength: 32] [Agility: 31]
[Health: 30] [Reflex: 35]
[Fatigue: 79]
The increase in the stats range was quite slowpared to the first floor, but Su-hyeun thought that it was fast enough. As each stat increased, a vast difference could be seen, and it also got harder to increase.
It was not advisable to be too ambitious. Although things seemed slow on the second floor, it was imperative to increase his stats and magic factor steadily.
Fatigue has piled up, as expected.... He needed to rest right now. Thankfully, it was a trial without any time limit. Su-hyeun just couldn¡¯t focus on clearing the floors now.
¡°It¡¯s better to head back.¡± There was no reason for him not to take a rest here. Su-hyeun reached his hand out.
Rip¡ª!
Once again, Su-hyeun opened the door back to reality.
* * *
It waste at night in reality. Su-hyeun hurried down the mountain and headed home. Although he was exhausted from fighting all day, he had no intention of worrying Shin Su-yeong.
11PM. It was nearly time for the library to close. As Su-hyeun turned on his mobile phone, a few missed calls from Shin Su-yeong popped up.
She must have been quite worried. He did tell her that he might stay out for the night just in case, but of course, such words would not make her worry less.
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun unlocked the door as he arrived home. The light in the living room was turned on, but it was dead quiet.
¡°I¡¯m home.¡± Su-hyeun stood stiff at the entrance as he spoke in a small voice. Food wasid on the dining table, and Shin Su-yeong was there asleep. How long did she wait? Su-hyeun went to shake Shin Su-yeong¡¯s shoulder.
¡°...Mom. Sleep in your room.¡±
¡°Mm... Umm... Son... You¡¯re back?¡± Shin Su-yeong asked as she rubbed her eyes and stretched her back.
¡°Yes. Did you not eat?¡±
¡°I ate first since I was hungry. You¡¯d better eat, too.¡±
¡°Okay. Go to bed first.¡±
¡°No. I¡¯ll have to do the dishes and the floor...¡±
¡°I¡¯ll do it. Hurry.¡± Su-hyeun adamantly pushed Shin Su-yeong into her room. Although Su-hyeun had been taking mixed grains and dry food to keep himself satisfied, he could not turn away from Shin Su-yeong¡¯s food.
He finished his meal and did the dishes. He even cleaned the floor thoroughly, took a shower, and returned to his room.
Whirl¡ª
The oldputer turned on with a loud whirl. It took quite a while to boot up.
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun opened the Inte browser and searched ¡°Abyss Online.¡± It was a representative site for magical awakeners that had over a million members. Of course, most of them were ordinary people. In fact, the site was for the public to be updated about news rted to magical awakeners and not meant solely for the magical awakeners themselves. Every Tom, Dick, and Harry is here.
Su-hyeun grinned after checking out some of the articles on the main page. He knew even just by reading the headlines whether the author was a real magical awakener or he was just trying to show off.
2018 October. Su-hyeun took out a notebook that was stuck in the corner of his desk. He took a pen and recorded today¡¯s date.
What I have to change. What I must not change. What I must achieve.
Complicated thoughts filled his mind. In the past month, he did not waste his time while he was hospitalized. He was organizing his future ns in his mind during that time. He worked hard to not forget the future events. The final goal was Fafnir.
Firstly, the fourth floor is my target. In 2018, around this time, the appearances of magical awakeners were not a public issue. The dungeons appeared and were swiftly dealt with by the awakeners, and the resources collected were treated as new energy and raw materials for social development.
But as time passed, the monsters in the dungeons became more robust for the awakeners to deal with alone.
¡°Thankfully... it¡¯s still manageable now.¡± The atmosphere on the Abyss Online was lively. There were many humor-rted posts, and some were rted to ranked awakeners. There was even an article about a celebrity¡¯s awakening on the bulletin board.
It¡¯s almost like entertainment.
Up until now, the appearance of dungeons and awakeners was nothing but the start of a new topic in society.
A dungeon attack led by top-notch awakeners was filmed on-air and boasted a dramatic amount of viewership ¡ª its poprity did not lose out to any celebrities or politicians. Abyss Online became a tform for people tomunicate with their favorite awakener, much like a fan cafe.
It was clear that the dungeons had yet to be a huge social issue. Until now, that is.
One of the reasons why Su-hyeun wanted to check out the posts on Abyss Online was to gather information on the current events between the dungeons and awakeners around the world.
Even at this period, Su-hyeun was not an awakener. Naturally, he wasn¡¯t aware of the happenings in this period; if he did, it was vague.
¡°There are no visible problems right now....¡± Su-hyeun sent a couple of links to his email. ¡°But there were still some catches.¡±
Although there¡¯s no way to verify them now, there were signs that something was about to happen. As he read some tabloids and posts, he began to recall some memories from before. Amongst them was some information that he wasn¡¯t aware of. Meanwhile...
[A divinity appeared on the second floor of the Tower of Trials.]
Shivers went down his spine. A new post appeared. Su-hyeun clicked on it with doubts in his mind.
Title: A Divinity Appeared on the Second Floor
Content: 2,230 points lolololololol is this possible? What did he do to get that record on the second floor?
¡ªno no how did he get 2,230 points on the second floor lolololololol
¡ªhow many points can you get from the first floor?
©¸ probably 940 points?
¡ªno. you can check the rank in the northern square. A rookie named kim su-hyeun was ranked first.
An exploding reaction.
One could even get his face on the main page if the reaction was this huge. The click count was already in the ten thousands. And one of thements under that post...
¡ªI¡¯m Kim Min-soo, an awakener from the Blue Dragon Guild. Kim Su-hyeun, if you are reading this, please contact me here. We at Blue Dragon...
¡ªI¡¯m Yoo Jung-gyu, an awakener from the Ares Guild. If you¡¯re reading this post...
There was a message left for him. Groups that were centered on the awakeners were interested in ¡°Kim Su-hyeun,¡± who appeared on the second floor.
Chapter 9
Chapter 9: Chapter 9
Are they fostering new n members? Some awakeners created guilds through mutual cooperation. They were a kind of faction; they were also created for more effective dungeon attacks.
Having a great awakening was also directly connected to the guild¡¯s status and power. As a result, guilds also recruited awakeners and even trained budding rookie awakeners.
Blue Dragon, Paradise, Association... Quite a number came.
Though he thought this would happen, the reaction came earlier than expected. Not even a day had passed and there was already a post about him.
True, the points themselves were quite ridiculous.
The person who ranked first before Su-hyeun had recorded 940 points. Since the difference between the first and second ce was huge, it was expected that the appearance of divinity would appeal to many.
Still, there is a difference between the present and the future.
In the future, a system was made to optimize datapiled on awakeners who were heading to the next floor. It was the result of a long period of countless guilds and organizations studying the awakeners. But that system had not been created in this world yet.
In fact, if anyone who challenged from the second floor onwards recorded 1,000 points, it would be of note to them. Even if it were the same floor, the standard would be different.
This isn¡¯t good.
Su-hyeun did not want his name to be known so soon. If his name were made known, problems would be inevitable; additionally, he did not want to worry Shin Su-yeong too much.
There are not many benefits.
No matter how amateur an awakener was, there was something for one to benefit from by joining a guild. The resources and items rted to the Tower of Trials would be of enormous help. But to Su-hyeun, that information was not required. Instead, they needed help from him.
¡°There¡¯s not much they could tell just by my name....¡±
He ignored it for now. Su-hyeun had no intention to join any organization or guild from the start. Su-hyeun ideally wanted to be a mercenary soldier, not belonging anywhere.
It was best for him since he knew about the future. Su-hyeun, who had decided his path, turned off theputer and went to bed. Now, what he needed most was not a guild, but rest.
Act 5
Kim Su-hyeun. The name that excited many guilds. The second floor¡¯s new awakener, who just stepped into the tower. It wasn¡¯t enough for the guilds to notice someone usually; instead, it was because of his record and ranking.
¡°Hak-joon, do you know of a guy named Kim Su-hyeun?¡± Ares Guild¡¯s leader, Jung Dong-yeong, asked.
Hak-joon, who sat on the hard sofa in a spacious office, shook his head. ¡°I don¡¯t.¡±
¡°Really? I heard that he just entered the second floor like you.¡±
¡°The second floor is so vast. Although it¡¯s iparable to the upper floors, what would the probability be of me meeting a certain person in that vast city?¡±
¡°Hmm, is that so?¡± Jung Dong-yeong lightly smacked his lips. It seemed that he was also coveting for the new awakener, Kim Su-hyeun. Hak-joon could easily sense that.
¡°So, what happened to the third floor¡¯s attack?¡± Jung Dong-yeong asked again after organizing his thoughts.
Hak-joon was one of the new awakeners that the Ares Guild was supporting. They were supporting him with various information as well as equipment. He had the talent and had already proven it on the first floor. He, too, knew that he was supported by the Ares Guild.
¡°There¡¯s no one suitable to join me yet. If I can¡¯t get someone by tomorrow, I might have to head up myself.¡±
¡°Really? Good. If you maintain this, just head up till the tenth floor. Until then, we¡¯ll give you our full support.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
¡°You know what to do next, right?¡± Hak-joon closed his eyes and nodded at Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s question.
Of course he knew. How could he not know? He had been asked countless times. Did Jung Dong-yeong like the obedient Hak-joon? Jung Dong-yeong put on a satisfied expression and waved his hand.
¡°Go on. Let¡¯s go over it again a week from now. If possible, try to beat Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°I got it.¡± Hak-joon slightly bowed his head and hurried out the office.
Kim Su-hyeun, Kim Su-hyeun... The name was left in his head. At the same time, a familiar face appeared in his mind.
Could it be him? The guy whom he approached to join hands together. Hak-joon had a sudden thought that he might be Kim Su-hyeun.
He couldn¡¯t be. Even if he was right, there was no way to verify. Hak-joon shook his head.
No other thoughts were needed. He just had to focus on his goal now. Now, he was exhausted just looking after himself.
* * *
t, t, t¡ª
Swoosh¡ª
Countless arrows fell overhead like rain. To avoid them, Su-hyeun hid behind a tree.
Pababak¡ª!
Pong, pong¡ª!
Due to some of the Shayres¡¯ special items or energy, a few arrows made arge hole in a tree, but Su-hyeun was no longer behind the tree that they were targeting.
Swoosh¡ª!
Su-hyeun sneaked up on the Shayre who had used magic and shed its neck using the sword in his hand. This was the priority of a fight: when there was one that used magic, exterminate it immediately. Su-hyeun was reminded of it the moment he encountered them.
Creak, creak¡ª!
Squeal¡ª!
With a grotesque cry, the Shayres drew their swords. Su-hyeun distanced himself from the Shayres and looked at the gigantic Shayre standing amongst them.
The Shayres¡¯ chief.
The ruler of this vast forest.
It looked at Su-hyeun with terrified eyes. The Shayres here were the remaining ones who survived after a month-long battle. If they were considered seasoned troops, the Shayre chief was the final boss of this trial.
¡°Why don¡¯t you fight me head-on?¡±
Though he did not expect it to understand his words, he was confident that his intention was conveyed. Sure enough, the Shayre chief raised its hand and walked towards Su-hyeun.
Creak, creak¡ª
ng¡ª
The Shayres that stood between their chief and Su-hyeun started murmuring. They were possibly saying that there was no need for the chief to do it personally. But it seemed the chief had no wishes to lose more men, and he asked them to step back as he walked up to Su-hyeun.
Stomp, stomp¡ª
The size of the nearing chief was enormous. Unlike a usual Shayre, who was a head taller than a grown man, the chief had a build that was many times taller than Su-hyeun. Furthermore, its body was entirely made of muscles.
¡°You should have done this earlier,¡± Su-hyeun said, but he was d to see such a reaction from the chief.
I¡¯ve waited for a long time.
It had been an entire month. Su-hyeun was buried in the second floor¡¯s trial while moving between reality and the Tower of Trials during this period. It wasn¡¯t easy meeting the Shayres¡¯ chief. Their chief was surrounded by numerous Shayres, and the chief seemed to have no intention of taking the first action. Eventually, Su-hyeun made the decision to wipe them all out.
Creak, creak¡ª
The chief said something to Su-hyeun. Of course, Su-hyeun could not understand. But he understood the gist of it.
¡°Are you saying that you¡¯ll avenge your men?¡±
Creak¡ª
The chief nodded. Su-hyeun turned speechless. How did he understand my words enough to nod his head?
He didn¡¯t understand why he was trying tomunicate with a monster. Su-hyeun sighed and picked up his sword. ¡°Forget it...¡±
Pat, pat¡ª
¡°I¡¯m sick of this. Let¡¯s end it.¡± Su-hyeun leaped and jumped a few flights of stairs in a sh.
Zong-!
The chief¡¯s ax blocked Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. As his magic-filled sword and the chief¡¯s ax struck, a sharp pain was left on Su-hyeun¡¯s grip.
Pat¡ª!
The chief swung its ax again, this time passing by Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes.
Swish¡ª
A thin cut. At the same time, Su-hyeun shrunk his body downwards.
sh¡ª
Stab, stab¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword stabbed deep into the chief¡¯s shoulder.
Ssh, ssh¡ª!
Su-hyeun stabbed the chief continuously, but none of his blows were deadly. If he got ambitious, the chief¡¯s ax might still swing towards him if he wasn¡¯t careful.
Slowly, steadily. No matter how small the stabs were, if they umted, the chief would eventually fall. If the opponent were superior in health, Su-hyeun would merely crumble when going head-on. Thus, he needed a more flexible fight.
Roarrrr¡ª!
The chief couldn¡¯t stand it any longer and had an outburst. At that moment, the chief had gotten more agile. His pure white skin turned red.
Stomp¡ª!
Soon enough, the chief dashed towards Su-hyeun and swung its ax widely.
Fwooom¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s body flew up as the strong wind ripped the still air. The faceless Shayre¡¯s chief looked up following Su-hyeun¡¯s body. The chief stepped back and took out a huge bow and arrow in its hands from behind.
Stretch¡ª
The bowstring was stretched taut and aimed at Su-hyeun. A force was applied on the bow, which was simr to the magic that awakeners use.
Twang¡ª!
Swoooosh¡ª!
The arrow flew at a terrifying speed too fast to avoid. However, Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t looking at the chief¡¯s arrow, but its hand.
Boom¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s body bounced forward. The repeated leap was not restricted to just leaping upwards. It was possible to go in any direction one wanted.
¡°Bingo.¡±
Screeeech¡ª
A bow that he picked up from one of his previous fight was in his hands. Su-hyeun held the bow at the chief¡¯s head the moment he reduced the distance between himself and the chief.
Twang¡ª!
Swooosh¡ª
The arrow went flying as soon as the bowstring was released.
Stab¡ª!
Kyaaaaaaa¡ª!
The chief grabbed the arrow stuck in its head and screamed.
Swash, swash¡ª
The other Shayres who were watching started to move. As it wasn¡¯t a fair fight from the start, the Shayres came forward to protect their chief.
It was expected.
Pooot¡ª
Su-hyeun grabbed the spear from behind him after releasing the arrow.
¡°I said to end this quickly, right?¡± This time, Su-hyeun¡¯s body became the bow. He widely swung the spear and released it.
The magic filled spear smashed the chief¡¯s head. It was a moment when no other Shayres could have helped. Suddenly:
[You have gained 300 achievement points.]
[Your Health has increased by 1 point.]
[The Shayres have been defeated. There is no other enemy who can harm you.]
[You have perfectly passed the second floor¡¯s trial.]
[Your achievement will be ranked.]
[You are ranked first.]
[Your Strength has increased by 2 points.]
[Your Agility has increased by 1 point.]
[Your Reflex has increased by 1 point.]
[You have gained 25,000 achievement points.]
[Your Magic Factor has increased by 3 points.]
[You have obtained the Shayres¡¯ treasure.]
[Will you advance to the next floor?]
Chapter 10
Chapter 10: Chapter 10
It was a pleasing message. Su-hyeun liked that the message said he had perfectly cleared the trial. He was right to exterminate the Shayres.
The slowly increasing stats and magic factor had risen by a few points at once, as well as his achievement points. Not to mention, he had obtained even more stats and achievement points from battling the Shayres in the past month. Since the Leap skill¡¯s mastery had increased, it wasn¡¯t a waste of time.
I¡¯ve stayed for too long. Although he very much wanted to advance to the next floor, there was something else he had to do.
Creak, creak¡ª
Su-hyeun, who watched as the remaining Shayres escaped, looked back at their chief. And...
¡°Transfiguration skill.¡±
The moment he had been waiting for had arrived.
[The transfiguration skill will be used with the ¡°Shayre Chief¡± as the target.]
[Some parts of the target¡¯s characteristics will be absorbed.]
[Trait: ¡°Berserk¡± has been acquired.]
Berserk. Su-hyeun had known of its trait.
¡°A trait that increases the physical ability in proportion to one¡¯s fatigue, health, and blood loss.¡±
It was quite the useful trait. One¡¯s physical ability would naturally decrease as fatigue and health got worse. But the berserk traits could reverse the effect exponentially. It would be quite handy in times of emergency.
It was worthwhile learning the transfiguration skill, capturing the chief, and obtaining this trait.
In the meantime, there¡¯s no need to change the trait.
The Shayre chief was a monster simr to the Shayre¡¯s boss. If it was the monster boss¡¯s trait, a normal monsters¡¯ trait would be iparable. If there was only one trait that could be attained through the transfiguration skill, there would be no use for others for the time being.
Anyway, I¡¯ve been here for way too long.
It was only the second floor. There were many more floors to ascend. Although Su-hyeun chose a higher difficulty level to receive better rewards, he could not continue to stay on the lower floors.
Time to speed up. Su-hyeun increased his abilities while hunting the Shayres in the past month. Although his magic level did not increase, his magic factor increased. His stats, too, had been raised significantly, and he umted arge number of achievement points.
He could get himself a few more useful skills with this amount of achievement points. It would be much easier to climb the tower. In the next year.
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes narrowed. The goal... tenth floor.
It was easier to make concrete ns with a clear goal. Su-hyeun quickly organized his future ns and goals in his mind. The determined Su-hyeun finally spoke.
¡°Next.¡± Su-hyeun immediately ascended to the third level. He had spent a month there, as well as on the fourth and fifth floors. Su-hyeun ascended the floors without rest. A year had passed.
* * *
Wednesday, December 7, 2019. It was a day that caught the hearts of many students. There were some satisfied with their results after a long period of suffering, but most were disappointed and frustrated.
It¡¯s alright. Su-hyeun headed out after verifying his results slip in the mail.
Eating out... It was rare for Su-hyeun and Shin Su-yeong to dine outside. If it were a special day, Shin Su-yeong would prepare a fancy feast, but Su-hyeun would bring up the excuse of studying and not make time for it.
But now he could no longer use that as an excuse. The exams were over, and the results of Su-hyeun¡¯s studies were shown to Shin Su-yeong. I can¡¯t afford to use working part-time as an excuse.
He thought it would be better if he were to live independently. Otherwise, I¡¯ll reveal the truth.
It wasn¡¯t easy hiding the truth for a year. Moreover, Su-hyeun felt guilty about it. Su-hyeun left the house and took the subway. Although Shin Su-yeong ended workte, Su-hyeun personally went to find her at her workce.
Su-hyeun arrived at the subway station by bus and took Line 1 towards Suwon Station. Although it was after office hours, the station was still packed.
Screech¡ª
nk¡ª
It was noisy. Although Su-hyeun had earphones plugged in, he couldn¡¯t focus on the music.
It¡¯ll soon be... 2020? It was now December 2019. Time flew quickly.
1
Su-hyeun looked out of the window in the crowded subway. The densely packed buildings and people passing through them looked peaceful at that moment.
Crash¡ª!
Shatter¡ª
The world turned upside down in front of his eyes, and everything was destroyed. The buildings crumbled, the people who were smiling brightly turned bloody. The sky turned ck, and hot mes rose above the ground.
Part of the world, destroyed. This would probably be how it would look like after a few decades.
Again...
Su-hyeun shut his eyes tightly. One, two, three. He opened his eyes after counting to three. Thankfully the world was still the same.
¡°Huu¡ª¡± He was sick of it. He asionally had thoughts that everything was an illusion, and the world had been destroyed. Everyone else besides him had died, and the world had been burned down to ashes.
He might still be dreaming, and the moment he woke up, the destroyed world would appear before him. He had seen this illusion countless times and feared it every single time.
He was afraid that he would be left alone. Fearful that all these days were just lies.
However, it had improvedtely, since he had seen these illusions numerous times. He probably would feel better staying in the Tower of Trials.
Has it been a month? He should have epted reality at this rate.
Whatever they are, they are not illusions. The destroyed world ¡ª and the remaining part of this world, too ¡ª were both true. There was no need to take it badly. He just had to make sure the illusions he saw were not turned into reality.
Screech¡ª
The subway soon arrived at Suwon Station. Su-hyeun alighted the subway and walked towards Shin Su-yeong¡¯s store.
¡°Su-hyeun, you¡¯re here? Wait a minute.¡±
Shin Su-yeong was closing the store. Su-hyeun asked while helping her out.
¡°Did you sell a lot today?¡±
¡°Why should I sell so much? My sry would still be the same.¡±
¡°There¡¯s no bonus?¡±
¡°The boss is so stingy. She¡¯s rich but such a miser.¡± She said it half-jokingly.
Su-hyeun now smiled frequently while conversing with Shin Su-yeong. He had changed quite significantly in the past year.
They walked towards a barbeque restaurant nearby. It had been a while since they had grilled meat cooked over charcoal instead of in a pan.
As soon as the meat was cooked, Shin Su-yeong said, ¡°Eat a lot, son. You¡¯ve worked hard studying so much.¡±
Although he felt guilty for lying, Su-hyeun still nodded his head. ¡°Thank you for the food.¡±
¡°Right. How were your results?¡±
It seemed that Shin Su-yeong did not forget that the results would be released today. Su-hyeun shrugged knowingly, took out his results slip from his bag, and handed it to her. He was about to put the wrapped meat into his mouth.
¡°My gosh, son! Are these really your results?¡±
¡°You surprised me. Did you think I would steal someone else¡¯s?¡±
¡°My gosh, my gosh!¡±
Not realizing that the meat was getting burnt, Shin Su-yeong smiled brightly at the results slip. The tired face after work was nowhere to be seen. Su-hyeun had never seen Shin Su-yeong smiling so brightly.
¡°Son. I hope for you to graduate from university, but it¡¯s alright if it¡¯s a normal university...¡±
Most parents would want their children to attend a good university. It was the same for his mother from his past life. Although attending university would not guarantee a good future, but it would be advantageous to have a higher educational background.
University. Although it would be deemed useless in a few years, Su-hyeun wanted to fulfill her wishes. Thus, Su-hyeun took out some of his sleep time to study a month before the exams. It wasn¡¯t difficult. He had done the same in his past life anyway.
There was no need to attend a good university, too.
Su-hyeun attended Dong-ha University in his past life. It was one of the three top universities in Korea. For Su-hyeun, who had studied so intensely, it wasn¡¯t that tough to study again.
¡°The meat is getting burnt. Let¡¯s dig in.¡±
¡°Aigoo, I¡¯m full even if I don¡¯t eat. I¡¯m proud of you, son!¡±
Shin Su-yeong, who was still beaming, seemed to not care about the meat. The string ofpliments got Su-hyeun to turn red. He couldn¡¯t taste the meat properly.
How happy she must have been. She couldn¡¯t hold it any longer and started calling someone to boast about it. Su-hyeun eventually bowed his head and sighed as he watched.
Su-hyeun thought the results weren¡¯t good enough. This was enough, he thought. But if it were the university from his past life? No way. It was just enough to get him into a university in Seoul. As time passed, it seemed even more challenging to get such high grades in his past life.
Should I have worked even harder? If she was delighted with results like this, what if he had gotten even better results?
She would be grinning from ear to ear. He felt good just imagining it. A smile crept up Su-hyeun¡¯s face, too.
Suddenly, he heard a voice in his ears.
¡°I thought you would do even better...¡±
It wasn¡¯t Shin Su-yeong¡¯s voice ¡ª it was a voice from his past life. The words were spoken by Sung-in¡¯s mother. The results had been a lot better back then. But why...?
Why did she have such a disappointed look? Was it because he did not meet expectations? Instead, he had hoped that she would be as happy as if he had done his best.
I don¡¯t know anymore. Su-hyeun shook his head.
I¡¯m not even going to attend university religiously.
He only took the exams to make her happy. Su-hyeun had no intention of attending university earnestly.
Because I¡¯ll soon... Su-hyeun nced at Shin Su-yeong¡¯s smiling face... Have to take action here as well.
Chapter 11
Chapter 11: Chapter 11
Act 6
After they finished their meal, they left to get a few beers at a pub. Coincidentally, Shin Su-yeong did not have to work the next day, so she could let go and stay out for longer.
Su-hyeun hurried to bed after returning home a little after midnight. He woke up again in the wee hours of the morning and left his room after finishing his preparations.
¡°Su-hyeun, you¡¯re leaving?¡±
Shin Su-yeong met Su-hyeun at the front door with a disheveled face. Wanting to leave quietly, Su-hyeun nodded and said, ¡°Yes. I¡¯ll be back.¡±
¡°You said you¡¯re going on a trip? For how long?¡±
¡°I¡¯m not sure yet. I¡¯ll head to wherever my feet take me.¡±
After his exam results were released, Su-hyeun had said that he would be going on a trip. As much as he studied over the past year, Shin Su-yeong did not oppose it.
¡°Don¡¯t stay out toote. And call me when you can.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. My phone will be switched off, so don¡¯t call me.¡±
¡°You¡¯re doing it again. ¡±
¡°It¡¯s not the first time. I¡¯ll be back.¡± Su-hyeun grabbed his backpack and left. As if it were a daily routine, Su-hyeun took a deep breath before heading deep into the mountains.
It took a while. Although it took just a little over a year, he still made it here.
Tenth floor. It was the minimum criteria he had in mind. He had no intention of breaking it himself. But Su-hyeun realized that his initial goal was harder to achieve than expected.
It took longer than I had expected. His goal was to clear all the trials with almost perfect records. He thought it would be possible toplete the tenth floor within a year when he was clearing the first two floors. But it eventually took over a year. The level 10 trial was much more formidable than anyone could have imagined.
Rip¡ª! Once again, Su-hyeun opened the doors to the Tower of Trials.
* * *
The city on the tenth floor was always dark and dull. Unlike the city on the second floor, it was hard to evene across a dweller in this empty and quiet ce.
The world that people avoid the most. The Tower of Trials was a world packed with numerous floors, and each floor had its own world. Although it was a gigantic tower, each had its own environment, climate, and culture.
Amongst them, most would avoid the tenth floor. The sun never rose, and the dwellers always looked depressed. Even those who wanted to forget and live anew in the tower also avoided the tenth floor.
Su-hyeun walked north to the ends of the tenth floor, where the route was blocked by a ck wall. People often called this ce the ¡°end of the world.¡± There was a massive portal in front.
¡°Are you going in?¡±
A gatekeeper was guarding it. A middle-aged man with a long, stiff face sat on the floor and looked up at Su-hyeun. He was the gatekeeper who guarded the portal.
¡°Payment.¡± The gatekeeper reached out his hand towards Su-hyeun. Others may have misunderstood him as a beggar asking for money, but Su-hyeun knew.
He was the so-called informant, the one and only informant who would provide you with legitimate information about the tenth floor. How he knew the details of each awakener¡¯s trials was a mystery. However, the information he gave was credible.
Su-hyeun grabbed his outreached hand. And...
[You have used 5,000 achievement points.]
Quite a bit of achievement points were used in a sh. Even though Su-hyeun had umted quite a considerable amount of achievement points as he ascended the floors, using this many points was still quite a burden.
But Su-hyeun made the payment in a heartbeat. The gatekeeper¡¯s eyes grew. ¡°You¡¯re quite generous.¡±
¡°Because you¡¯re that valuable.¡±
The gatekeeper smiled at his answer. ¡°Thanks for thepliment. Which trial do you wish to attempt?¡±
¡°Level 10. I want the highest difficulty.¡± The gatekeeper¡¯s eyes grew even bigger. His expression had changed drastically aspared to his stiff face.
As his expressionless face returned, he said, ¡°It¡¯s as if I¡¯ve taken a hit. I must provide you with some information after receiving so much.¡±
It seemed that paying the gatekeeper a high amount was the right choice. The gatekeeper felt conflicted for a while, contemting on what information to provide.
Hopefully, it¡¯s a piece of valid information.... For those who climbed the tower, the tenth floor was a form of crisis.
This was because the trials¡¯ difficulty jumped every 10 floors. Some would say that the 11th and 12th floors were more manageable than the 10th. Moreover, Su-hyeun was challenging the trial with the highest level of difficulty.
No one had yet to clear the level 10 trial at the 10th floor as of yet, to Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge. Normally, certain sections on the tenth floor have their level of difficulty reduced by one or two levels.
It was a tip that could be easily obtained through Abyss Online, but Su-hyeun knew how harmful it was. If the difficulty gets lowered once, the following floors would also be a crisis.
Once one started, one would never be able to advance further. Instead, one would continue to find ways to lower the level of difficulty.
Su-hyeun decided that it would be better to pay more to the gatekeeper to continue receiving reliable information and challenge higher difficulty trials than to reduce them. The still contemting gatekeeper finally said, ¡°Beware of the vige chief.¡±
¡°The vige chief?¡±
¡°That¡¯s all I can say. I wish you all the best.¡± The gatekeeper ended the conversation.
The information felt a little off. It was too vague to be worth 5,000 points. The prices of intel seemed to increase as the level of the trials gets higher.
Beware of the vige chief.... Su-hyeun repeatedly reminded himself of those words. There was no reason for the gatekeeper to lie to him.
¡°Thank you.¡±
Su-hyeun walked towards the portal. The view before Su-hyeun turned white as he stood on the portal, and a familiar message popped up.
[Kim Su-hyeun, the 10th-floor trial begins now.]
[Please choose the level of difficulty.]
[Level 1 ~ 10.]
[The level of difficulty and rewards obtained increases as the level gets higher.]
It was the start. A good amount of nervousness filled his chest every time a new trial began. He always gave the same answer.
¡°Level 10.¡±
[Level 10. The 10th-floor trial starts now.]
The white scene before him changed once more. Thendscape of a vige appeared before him. The sky was ck. A dark atmosphere and stale air filled the vige, simr to a simple and quiet countryside.
Su-hyeun looked up to the sky. Thendscape looked strangely familiar.
[The trial begins now.]
[You have entered an unfamiliar vige. The vige is now in a massive crisis.]
[Rescue the vige.]
[And survive.]
[The reward varies ording to your performance.]
The trial¡¯s exnation was straightforward. He wondered if there was a better exnation, since it was frustrating that it did not provide clear instructions. There were loopholes in the exnation.
Rescue the vige. Survive. Survive what?
He recalled the gatekeeper¡¯s words. He said to take extra notice of the vige chief.
He thought that he should find the vige chief first. A warning to be careful of the vige chief could have also meant that the chief would be the key to clearing this trial.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun started walking into the vige. Instead of looking around the vige, Su-hyeun looked up at the sky. Su-hyeun¡¯s face darkened. ¡°It feels... more familiar here.¡±
The awkward ck sky seemed to be inked. The ck sky felt different from a moonlit sky. Su-hyeun had not seen this sky for over a year.
He suddenly felt awkward at the thought of a clear, blue sky. The color of this sky, which he often saw in his illusions, felt more familiar. It was the same for this vige.
Step, step¡ª
He then felt eyes on him. It was one of the strangers looking at him. A skinny mother with a baby in her hand, an old man, and a few other men. They stood at a distance, unable to get close to Su-hyeun. They looked frightened in the dark.
People. It wasn¡¯t the first time he met people in the trials. But it was his first to see such realistic expressions and reactions. It felt that way for their familiar reactions.
I have definitely... He recalled. In the future, he had felt simr eyes from a particr vige.
¡°So that was it.¡± He seemed to have understood what the theme of this tutorial was. This ce must have been part of their destroyed world. No, more urately, it was a world close to destruction.
¡°Excuse me.¡± Su-hyeun smiled and approached the vigers.
The vigers did not hide their defensive response towards Su-hyeun. When the child tried to approach Su-hyeun, the mother pulled him back.
My, I¡¯m hurt. As it was his first time to see people so afraid of him, he did not know how to respond.
Su-hyeun sighed before continuing. ¡°I want to stay here for a few days before leaving. Is there any way I can do that?¡±
The question was directed towards everyone, but not one of them responded. It would have been better to point out someone to talk to...
¡°Where is the vige chief?¡±
...like the vige chief. Amotion stirred amongst the people as he questioned. It seemed the people, too, thought that it would be better to talk to the vige chief.
Su-hyeun observed the vigers silently. He was certain about one thing just by observing them.
They are ufortable with outsiders. It could be from their experience.
Drugs, murders. The societal problems that surfaced in a copsing world. It was the same, even though the civilizations are different. Human nature was not much different anywhere.
It was a pity. It would have been better to cooperate and help each other out at times like this.
It¡¯s a utopia. Anyone could paint a utopia in their minds, but it was literally nothing more than just an ideal world. Such worlds would never exist unless the evil in human nature was removed.
The man who Su-hyeun was waiting for finally appeared.
¡°I¡¯m the vige chief here.¡±
A hunchbacked old man walked out towards Su-hyeun.
Chapter 12
Chapter 12: Chapter 12
With a face filled with aging pigmentations and droopy eyes, he was a gentle-looking old man. He didn¡¯t look like anyone to be cautious of.
¡°I heard that you were looking for me. What is it?¡± The vige chief was wary of Su-hyeun, just like the rest of the vigers.
¡°I was just passing by and saw a vige here. I would like to stay for a few days. Is it possible?¡±
¡°...You don¡¯t have any other motives?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°There¡¯s nothing to take from us. Not even a speck of dust, so leave.¡±
Su-hyeun seemed to be regarded as an uninvited guest who was here to loot the vige. Persuasion was required.
¡°No. I don¡¯t want anything; I just hope for a ce to sleep. I brought rations with me.¡±
¡°...Really?¡±
The vige chief¡¯s eyes brightened at the word rations.
Su-hyeun nodded, answering, ¡°Yes, of course. I¡¯m willing to share my rations, too. Even if the monsters are here...¡±
¡°The monsters don¡¯te to our vige!¡± a child screamed.
Su-hyeun turned his head immediately. The child¡¯s mother hugged him close to her chest. Then, the vige chief spoke. ¡°If so, alright. There are a few empty houses, so you can use one of them. As for the food...¡±
¡°I¡¯ll give it to you.¡±
¡°...Thank you.¡±
He was greeted with thanks. Do they have problems with food, too?
There were a few severe issues in the destroyed world, and one of them was food. In a world where neither rice nor wheat could be grown again, food became scarce to the point when cannibalism began. This vige had yet to arrive at that stage, but it might arrive there soon due to limited food resources.
But... Su-hyeun looked at the child who screamed earlier. The monsters don¡¯te.
As Su-hyeun went deep into his thoughts, the vige chief turned around and spoke, ¡°Follow me. I¡¯ll show you an empty house.¡±
¡°Ah, thank you.¡± Su-hyeun bowed and followed the vige chief. His worries did not end.
* * *
The empty house that the vige chief brought him to was a shabby tent that could not even keep the wind out. Its shabbiness was worse than his semi-basement apartment. One had to wonder: how could this be called a house?
I didn¡¯t know our house could feel so luxurious. Su-hyeun left his bags in the tent. Su-hyeun took out bread, nuts, beef jerky, water, and more rations that filled his small pouch.
¡°Ah.¡±
As Su-hyeun stepped out, the child from earlier was waiting for him. It was a little girl, about six or seven years old. She looked at Su-hyeun with her filthy face.
¡°Were you waiting?¡± Su-hyeun bent down.
She looked at the bundle in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand as she nodded. ¡°You want to eat this?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
Su-hyeun offered a piece of bread from the bundle.
It was when the girl reached out. ¡°What are you doing now?!¡± The vige chief roared.
It was an unbelievably loud and high-pitched voiceing from such a small build. ¡°Didn¡¯t you promise me?! If I provide you with a bed, you¡¯ll hand me your rations!¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t she from your vige?¡± Su-hyeun asked, dumbfounded.
The vige chief¡¯s gentle expression was suddenly reced by an intimidating look.
¡°What does she know?! She only knows to fill her stomach, and that¡¯s it. You might not know this, but food is equivalent to our lives here.¡±
It wasn¡¯t an iprehensible remark. But...
Su-hyeun looked back at the little girl. ¡°Don¡¯t cry.¡±
He patted the little girl¡¯s head as she silently sobbed and held the bundle out towards the vige chief.
¡°Take it. The food that I promised to give you is here.¡±
¡°Hmm. Don¡¯t be too upset over this. It¡¯s all for the vigers.¡±
The vige chief came up to Su-hyeun and took it. His eyes went huge as he verified the contents. Su-hyeun hated the sight of him, and not just because of the gatekeeper¡¯s words. He seemed indifferent, at least to the feelings of others.
¡°Please leave.¡±
¡°Uh-hmm. Hmm.¡± The vige chief left, making a few exaggerated coughs. The little girl soon burst into tears.
That moment, her mother walked up quickly. ¡°Don¡¯t hate the vige chief.¡±
She seemed to have overheard their conversation earlier while looking for her daughter. The mother looked in the direction where the vige chief left and said.
¡°It¡¯s quite tiring on him. He worked hard for this vige his whole life.... And I believe he has something else on his mind.¡±
¡°You mean he is so preupied that he can¡¯t share a piece of bread?¡±
¡°Yes. I ¡ª no, we ¡ª believe so.¡± Her voice wavered at the end. There might have been something else that made her hesitate while she said that.
What could it be? Just what did the vige chief mean to them? That thought did notst long. Su-hyeun took out a piece of bread and handed it to the little girl who wouldn¡¯t seem to stop crying. ¡°Here.¡±
The child¡¯s mother was startled.
¡°Is, is this alright? What if the vige chief finds out...¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I took it out from my own rations, so the vige chief can¡¯t say anything about it.¡±
¡°But still...¡±
¡°If you still feel uneasy, you can take it. The vige chief can¡¯t possibly say anything if an adult epted this, right?¡±
Whether given to the child or the mother, the little girl would still get to eat it. Su-hyeun forced the piece of bread into her hand. Su-hyeun patted the little girl¡¯s head again and stood up.
As he walked around the vige, Su-hyeun looked at the mother who was nagging her daughter. It feels kind of weird.
The vigers had much faith in their chief, but he felt another feeling besides belief from her eyes. It was nothing other than fear. The vige chief felt almost like a fishbone stuck in his throat.
I¡¯ll need to verify it.
Protect the vige and survive. The trial¡¯s subject was still vague about what he was supposed to protect the vige from and what he had to survive.
* * *
There were divided opinions on the vige people by those met from the trials.
Some said that it was like a program made for each floor of the trials, much like a Non-yer Character (NPC). The rationale was that when they attempted the trial again after failing it, the people could not remember them.
Some others said they were probably real people living in another world. Their rationale was that the appearances and mindsets did not look like they were made from a program.
Indeed... Su-hyeun thought while looking around the vige.
I¡¯m not sure yet.
Were the vigers¡¯ expressions, speaking, lifestyle, and civilization all made up? Or could they be real living humans? Nothing could be confirmed, but Su-hyeun was certain of one thing.
They are, at the very least, reacting based on their thoughts and emotions. So, he would have to treat them the same as humans.
Su-hyeun tried finding out about the vige chief ¡ª what kind of person he is, how had he lived his life ¡ª but everyone¡¯s response to those questions was cold.
¡°Why do you ask that?¡±
¡°You have something up your sleeves, right?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you dare harm our vige chief, otherwise I¡¯ll¡ª!¡±
Full-blown reactions. Nevertheless, Su-hyeun was able to hear a rough story when he approached a mild-looking middle-ageddy.
¡°Please understand. We react this way because our vige got looted by outsiders quite often. Although I do not know what the vige chief is thinking, we do feel uneasy epting outsiders.¡±
He had expected that. Weak viges would only get looted in this world. But Su-hyeun was curious about something else.
¡°Why does everyone trust the vige chief so much?¡±
¡°That is because the vige chief is a hero to the vigers.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes wiggled at her answer. It was a word so familiar that it felt annoying.
¡°...Hero?¡± That old man? Su-hyeun asked about the details. He wanted to know what had happened to make everyone here regard him as a hero.
¡°Ah, I don¡¯t know. I can only tell you this much.¡± Even thedy who was less wary about Su-hyeun shook her head and turned away. Su-hyeun¡¯s mind gotplicated.
Hero. There were a couple things he was sure of if the vige chief was called by that title: the vige chief saved the vigers, and it must have been through an extreme method.
...He didn¡¯t seem to be that kind of person. It was something he woulde to know without the gatekeeper¡¯s warning. As he went deeper into his thoughts, Su-hyeun¡¯s mind got moreplicated.
Either the gatekeeper¡¯s warning was wrong, or the vigers are blind. It was one or the other, and Su-hyeun was betting on thetter.
Su-hyeun had observed the vige for a while. It wasn¡¯t long until he started to widen his area of search. There was nothing else he could fish out from the vigers. They were definitely with the vige chief. He could only find out new information by himself.
First, I¡¯ll need to find out... From what did he have to protect the vige from? He required an answer to that.
But as he left the vige¡¯s entrance, a strong smell stimted Su-hyeun... a familiar smell. ¡°It couldn¡¯t be.¡±
As soon as he smelt it, Su-hyeun¡¯s face cringed. Su-hyeun looked around him, and the doubt soon became the truth.
¡°...Damn it.¡±
Su-hyeun had seen the ugly side of men for a long time. As the world was copsing, he learned that even good men would turn evil, and their smell was evidence.
¡°Beware of the vige chief.¡± He needed a little more verification.
Somehow... Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes narrowed at the source of the smell.
I have got to be more assertive than this.
Chapter 13
Chapter 13: Chapter 13
Act 7
The night went by, and the morning sky came. The vige chief came looking for Su-hyeun, calling for him in front of the tent.
¡°Are you in?¡±
There was no answer. After he called out a few more times without hearing any response, the vige chief opened the doors and stepped in.
¡°Until when are you going to... Oh?¡± It was empty inside.
He looked around the tent and came out. There was a vague sense of uneasiness. ¡°Where did he go?¡±
He definitely said he was looking for a ce to rest. The vige chief came out of the tent and looked around in the vige.
¡°Vige chief, where are you heading to?¡± One of the vigers approached him. The vige chief answered him, still looking around.
¡°I¡¯m looking for the outsider who arrived yesterday. Did you see him?¡±
¡°No, I didn¡¯t. What is it about?¡±
¡°He disappeared suddenly. I¡¯m worried that he might be up to something in the vige.¡± The chief¡¯s worry was not just his own. Looting by outsiders happened quite often in the vige. Many came as guests like Su-hyeun but looted the vige through the night.
¡°It couldn¡¯t be...¡±
¡°Shh! Lower your voice. Didn¡¯t I say that we can¡¯t help it?¡±
¡°But even so...¡±
¡°Just sleep and stay quiet. Got it?¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
The vige chief looked disapprovingly at the man who lowered his head. Right, he thought. We can¡¯t help it.
The vige chief looked at the small bottle he held in his hand. It was a powerful medicine that could make one sleep for over 10 days. Indeed, the vige chief was hungry for the food that Su-hyeun had.
And the one asleep is... The vige chief looked around the vige quickly. At that moment, a woman approached the chief.
¡°Vige chief, vige chief!¡± The woman who was running helter-skelter stopped before him. She took a while to catch her breath.
¡°What is it?¡±
¡°At the vige¡¯s shopping district...¡± The vige chief¡¯s eyes grew wide as he listened. He couldn¡¯t wait any longer and made his way towards the shopping district.
It was a central district that merchants used as a marketce before the world copsed. The vigers crowded around the area.
¡°What is this?!¡± The vige chief¡¯s roar drew everyone¡¯s attention.
Fear and uneasiness could be seen on their faces. The vige chief pushed through the huge crowd and found Su-hyeun amongst them. Su-hyeun raised his hand, greeting the vige chief. ¡°Did you just arrive?¡±
¡°I asked what this is!¡±
¡°By that, possibly...¡±
Poke¡ª
Su-hyeun poked at the gigantic snake¡¯s head that was ced beside him. ¡°Did you mean this?¡±
The vige chief did not answer. The vige chief¡¯s mind gotplicated, wondering what it was all about.
Su-hyeun spoke again with a grin. ¡°Why are you so angry? I took care of the monster hidden in the basement.¡±
¡°What, what? That was uncalled for...!¡±
¡°It wasn¡¯t unnecessary?
¡°Yes! That monster was protecting our vige!¡±
Indeed. The smile left Su-hyeun¡¯s face. ¡°Why did you think that it was protecting you?¡±
¡°It wasn¡¯t a thought, but the truth!¡±
¡°And for that...¡± Su-hyeun looked at the vigers and asked.
¡°Do you make human sacrifices one by one?¡± The vige chief¡¯s eyes widened at his question. He was so surprised that he took a few steps back, before gritting his teeth and asked.
¡°How... did you know?¡± It was the vige¡¯s secret. More urately, it was something that Su-hyeun must not know of. From the chief¡¯s point of view, it was iprehensible that he severed the beast¡¯s head.
¡°I know a bit about this monster.¡± The head of the gigantic snake was about a meter wide in diameter. Su-hyeun knew its name.
¡°It¡¯s called the Predatory Snake. Except during meals, it¡¯szy and spends most of its time sleeping.¡± As soon as the monster¡¯s name was spoken, everyone¡¯s, including the vige chief¡¯s, face visibly stiffened. In fact, they did not know the monster¡¯s name.
¡°It doesn¡¯t care about anything else besides satisfying its belly. It searches for a hunting ground and, until it leaves, marks its own territory so that weaker monsters can¡¯t evene near.¡±
¡°Stop, stop it!¡± The vige chief panicked as Su-hyeun spoke as if he knew everything.
His ufortable body walked towards Su-hyeun; however, Su-hyeun continued on. ¡°Eventually, you will have to keep feeding it food. That way, it won¡¯t run away. But you know what¡¯s funny?¡±
¡°I said stop it!¡±
¡°This beast does not see the person who feeds it as its prey.¡± There it was: the truth that he did not wish to be known. His words stirred a considerablemotion.
¡°Is that the truth?¡±
¡°He said so?¡±
¡°So, then... the chief made us...¡±
¡°Wait, the monster did not even try to eat the chief, right? What actually happened?¡±
Here was what happened: One day, the vige chief brought the Predatory Snake and said, ¡°Listen to me. If we let it stay here, it¡¯ll keep us safe.¡±
But there was a condition to it.
¡°This beast will only be full if it eats a human every three days. If we are to live, we have to make a human sacrifice every three days. Let¡¯s draw lots. And... I¡¯ll be the first offering.¡±
The vige chief imed himself to be the first offering, but the Predatory Snake did not eat him. They had no choice but to offer someone else.
¡°You seem to have taken someone else as an offering before bringing it here,¡± Su-hyeun said after he listened to the vigers with contemptuous eyes.
¡°You b*stard.¡±
¡°Lies! It¡¯s all lies!¡± The vige chief shouted in a fit.
Disbelief grew in the vigers¡¯ eyes. The vige chief had never been looked upon like this in his whole life. ¡°Thank you, vige chief. It was thanks to you that our vige could survive,¡± someone said.
¡°It was thanks to you that we can finally sleep in peace. You are our vige¡¯s hero.¡±
¡°Vige chief...¡±
Amongst them were people who made ¡°inevitable¡± sacrifices.
¡°My son, not my son! Vige chief, please!¡±
¡°It¡¯s inevitable. Please understand.¡±
¡°Vige chief, vige chief!¡±
¡°That... bad guy...¡±
¡°He fooled us!¡±
¡°Wait, don¡¯t get duped by the outsider!¡±
¡°No, we¡¯re fooled! I wondered why the monster did not eat the vige chief!¡±
¡°Calm down and...¡±
¡°He made my husband into that monster¡¯s food! Why would he do that? Why?!¡±
The vigers were outraged. Su-hyeun¡¯s words were reasonably trustworthy. Without his knowledge of the Predatory Snake¡¯s habits, they would never have found out. Still, however, some people still believed in the vige chief.
¡°My son, my son...¡±
¡°My gosh...¡±
¡°Oh my! Max, Max!¡±
Su-hyeun watched as they mourned loudly. An inevitable sacrifice. Must be endured. There were those who had pent-up resentment at those words.
Rescue the vige. Survive.
Survive from what? The questions had already been answered by the gatekeeper. The vige chief could not do anything more.
¡°From now on...¡±
Stomp¡ª
Su-hyeun stomped the ground. The magic that umted on his feet spread into the ground. Themotion ceased in a sh.
¡°Everyone, please answer.¡±
Silence.
¡°You can decide the deposition for your vige chief. You can either wait until he bes prey for the monster, or...¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes met the chief¡¯s.
¡°Hick!¡±
The frightful vige chief lost all strength and flopped onto the ground.
¡°Everyone will make the call.¡±
Suddenly a young man stood out. ¡°Isn¡¯t it too much to ask us to make a decision after you¡¯ve killed the monster? We might be dying right now because of you!¡±
The young man was trembling. He was a coward. Even if he himself were a coward, everyone would be the same.
The chief was, so to speak, the much-needed evil. Although he shamelessly sacrificed others to save himself, it was evident that his role contributed to the safety of the vige.
¡°So, are you going to wait until he bes prey to another monster?¡±
¡°That...¡±
¡°Also, there¡¯s one more thing that you¡¯re not aware of.¡±
¡°What else do we not know?¡±
¡°The Predatory Snakeys about six to eight eggs once a quarter.¡±
The vigers were not the only ones surprised at Su-hyeun¡¯s words. The vige chief¡¯s eyes widened once more at this fact.
¡°If you keep offering human sacrifices every three days, the number would increase each time. Here is the problem.¡±
Su-hyeun asked, looking around. ¡°How long will it take for everyone here to end up in the snake¡¯s stomach?¡±
The vigers kept quiet. They had quite a number of people, despite being just a vige, but what if the number of people they sacrificed increased exponentially? It wouldn¡¯t be that way for long.
Silence.
¡°There¡¯s no need to know for certain. You could roughly guess. If you need verification, I could show you the eggs in the basement.¡±
¡°Ahh, ahh...¡±
Despair. The thought of being able to live a bit longer was actually a shortcut to death. A dark shadow cast on all of their faces, losing even the faintest trace of hope.
¡°There¡¯s a method.¡±
¡°...A way?¡±
¡°What is it?¡±
The vigers pricked up their ears. They thought all hope was lost.... But was there really a method? As they needed a more detailed exnation, Su-hyeun had more to say.
¡°There¡¯s a way for everyone to live,¡± Su-hyeun spoke, looking at the vigers surrounding him.
¡°Will you listen to me?¡±
The vigers made a decision concerning the vige chief.
Death. There was no other way of repaying his actions for fooling the vigers. He had already offered the vigers to the Predatory Snake as prey. The vige chief, who could not endure floggings and beatings, shouted furiously.
¡°You lot are being fooled! All of you are being fooled by him!¡± Some were wavered by his screams. It was true that the vige chief had devoted his whole life to the vige, and Su-hyeun was an outsider who arrived just yesterday.
The anger of the vigers whose family had be prey to the Predatory Snake was not easily shaken by his y.
Su-hyeun brought six robust young vigers down into the basement.
¡°What is happening here?¡± One of them soothed his shivering forearm. The Predatory Snake lived in the vige¡¯s basement, which was connected to the chief¡¯s house. Although Su-hyeun killed it, the young men did not wish to enter after knowing the truth.
¡°Didn¡¯t you say that there¡¯s a way for everyone to live?¡±
¡°Is the method right here?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
The basement was dark and humid. As they followed the stairs, they arrived at a huge cave. The sound of something crawling could be heard.
Screech, screech¡ª
Their eyes were glistening in the dark. The young men who followed Su-hyeun down stepped back in astonishment.
¡°M-m-monster...¡±
¡°Ugggh...¡±
The monsters were the babies of the Predatory Snake.
Chapter 14
Chapter 14: Chapter 14
It was a total of six. Su-hyeun nodded his head after counting their numbers.
Thankfully, they have all hatched. The snakelets had the body size of an adult male. Although they were young, they were still twice the size of an anaconda. Their growth period would end within a few months.
Adult Predatory Snakes usually slept soundly for a day after a meal. On the contrary, the snakelets would eat much more than that.
Creak¡ª
The six snakelets showed their teeth as they approached Su-hyeun, who was taking the lead. Although they were smaller than the adults, their build was still a lotrger than humans; hence, the young men are intimidated by them. But...
¡°Close your mouths.¡±
Creak, creeeak¡ª
Su-hyeun spoke again, walking towards the snakelets. ¡°Close your mouths.¡±
Gu, guuu¡ª
The wide cave shook. Not only the young men, but also the snakelets that were facing them were in disarray.
Seuk, eukkk¡ª
A pair of magic-filled eyes looked at the snakelets. The snakelets were frightened and cowered at Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. The young men watching Su-hyeun saw him once again as a monster.
W-what is that?
I knew he wasn¡¯t normal when he killed that monster...
Is he human?
A human overpowering a monster with his eyes alone? It was impossible. Just one of those snakelets could turn the vige into nothing. The Predatory Snake was a monster of that capacity.
¡°W-why did you show them to us?¡±
¡°It couldn¡¯t be...¡±
Disbelief was in their eyes. They thought that Su-hyeun might throw them to feed the snakelets. The fear made them unable to think.
¡°What are you guys thinking of?¡± Su-hyeun shook his head and spoke while looking at the young men.
¡°We will be training them from now on.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°What do you mean, ¡®training them?¡¯¡±
Su-hyeun started exining to them as they looked confused. ¡°I have exined to you that the habits of Predatory Snakes are that they sleep soundly after meals and do not prey on the one who feeds them.¡±
¡°Right.¡±
¡°Those habits are for the normal Predatory Snakes. Though they have simr habits, the snakelets have one more habit. It¡¯s a normal one, not much different from animals.¡±
¡°No way...¡± They must have understood after listening to this exnation. Su-hyeun nodded at the men¡¯s suspicions.
¡°Right. They would regard the person who feeds them like their mother.¡±
So they had to train the Predatory Snakes. That was what Su-hyeun was suggesting. In this era, monsters were evil and predators to humans. It was absurd to think of taming them.
¡°Taming these guys... means the vigers would once again...¡±
¡°Why did you think that its food has to be humans?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t there food for them outside the vige?¡±
¡°Outside the vige?¡± They showed faces that could notprehend. Su-hyeun nodded towards the green-horned beasts.
¡°They eat humans, but there¡¯s no rule that they can¡¯t eat other monsters.¡±
¡°A-are you suggesting to feed them the monsters outside the vige?¡±
¡°It¡¯s impossible! How can we...¡±
¡°Who asked you to catch those monsters?¡±
¡°...What?¡± Su-hyeun was faced with puzzled expressions. Su-hyeun let out a deep sigh. He picked only the most robust men from the vige, but they had more fear than he thought.
¡°I¡¯ll catch the monsters. You guys would just have to feed them to the snakelets.¡± There was a reason why the Predatory Snake gave birth to snakelets at the start of the trial. Su-hyeun took advantage of it to pass the trial.
The trial asionally gave extremely tough missions. This trial could be said to have the theme of endless dedication. Asking to rescue the vige with no strings attached was not a problematic mission for Su-hyeun.
It¡¯s me. Though it might have felt rtively easy, as time went on, it became more ridiculous. What if he had not known about the Predatory Snake? What would have happened if he did not heed the gatekeeper¡¯s advice and trusted the vige chief?
He would have fallen into the trap that the chief made without getting a clue and would have been sent as the Predatory Snake¡¯s prey.
[Aplished: 30%]
[Will youplete the trial?]
These were the messages that appeared in his mind when he killed the Predatory Snake and suggested to kill the vige chief. They were a different style of message. It didn¡¯t say that the trial had ended, but instead gave him the choice to end it himself.
He had encountered these types of trials in his past life. There were times where you could choose when toplete the trials.
Is dealing with the vige chief and the Predatory Snakes the minimum requirement for clearing?
The trial seemed more irresponsible than he had imagined.
I can¡¯t treat what I¡¯ve done so far as rescuing the vige. The vige was nearly at its end when the chief died and they lost the Predatory Snake¡¯s protection. It was evident that they would soon be attacked by monsters.
Although he did not know when it would happen, he knew at the very least that it would not be in the distant future. ¡°30% aplished¡± definitely meant that the vige was still notpletely safe.
From now on, Su-hyeun had to find a way to protect the vige and increase his level of aplishment.
It was a purposeful installment of the snakelets... The key point was how he made use of the installment.
It would have been impossible to clear the mission without knowledge of the Predatory Snakes¡¯ habits. Su-hyeun came to that conclusion. It was apparent every time, but the level 10 trials did not just require one¡¯s strength. As the trials got harder, they required something more.
It was the evening. Nevertheless, dark clouds brought upon total darkness in the sky. Su-hyeun was familiar with this world, which could not even see dusk.
¡°It¡¯s been a while since I¡¯ve done babysitting.¡± Su-hyeun muttered after stepping out of the vige. The Predatory Snakes¡¯ territory had been maintained for a month.
The Predatory Snake marked its territory with bodily fluids secreted from its mouth, and the nasty smell made weaker monsters stay away. As per the vigers, the territory would onlyst for 15 days. He had to train them within that period.
¡°Six snakelets...¡±
One snakelet per day. He had to fill the stomach of six snakelets.
¡°I have to work hard for quite some time.¡±
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun stopped in his tracks and observed the surroundings. ¡°No, there¡¯s no need to.¡±
Grrrr¡ª
As soon as he stepped out of the territory, he detected several signs of monsters.
¡°It¡¯s not as much of a nuisance as expected.¡±
He did not have to search for the monsters. They lurked around the predatory snake¡¯s territory, targeting the peopleing out of the vige.
¡°Here! Your prey is here!¡±
[You used the skill ¡°Leap.¡±]
[Excluding the targeted object, the surrounding enemies perceived you as an enemy.]
Kyaaaa¡ª!
Stomp, stomp¡ª!
The monsters that were salivating as Su-hyeun came rushing towards them.
ng, ng¡ª!
Su-hyeun grabbed his sword and spear in his hands. And at the same time, Su-hyeun leaped forward.
Ssss¡ª!
Rippp¡ª!
A monster¡¯s body with the face of a huge wolf was shed half. After avoiding the forting monsters with Leap, he leaped once more in the air.
He leaped twice in total. As the skill¡¯s ability increased, the number of times he could use the skill increased as well.
¡°Hoop¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun looked down as he leaped high in the air. He fixed on his target.
Paang¡ª!
Swooooosh¡ª!
Su-hyeun bent his body into a bow and threw the spear.
t¡ª!
The massive spider monster¡¯s heart was destroyed. Su-hyeun first finished the trickiest monster, which secreted venom.
Hwooong¡ª!
The next monster that came running was a translucent goblin type monster with no form. It swung Su-hyeun¡¯s body around and emitted dark energy. It was an energy that made human flesh age and rot.
Whoosh¡ª
That moment, the end of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword was engulfed in blue mes.
[The skill ¡°me¡± was used.]
Hwaaa¡ª!
sh¡ª!
Not only did Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut the dark energy, but it also shed the formless goblin.
Su-hyeun, who leaped high in the air, returned to the ground. The monsters hesitated.
They focused on the me, which engulfed the sword. Su-hyeun instinctively sensed that the ze was more dangerous than anything else.
It was at that moment when the monsters were afraid of Su-hyeun. ¡°Where are you heading to?¡±
[The skill ¡°Provocation¡± was used.]
Once again, Su-hyeun made the monsters turn back. ¡°I would be sad.¡±
me. Su-hyeun obtained that reward on the eighth floor. Su-hyeun chose not to learn too many skills. If the skills were not used at the right time and ce, he thought that it would be pointless to obtain them as well. Thus, Su-hyeun chose to focus on learning the most useful skills.
Leap and Provocation were the most-used skills by magical awakeners and were also proven to be effective. And amongst them, me was a skill that the picky Su-hyeun liked.
[me.]
-Magic Level: 4.
-Level: 1.
-Ability: 15.5%.
-A sacred fire that burns magic. It inflicts fatal wounds on dark-type enemies and its power is determined by the magic level.
It was a level-dependent skill. Firstly, he liked this part. Level-dependent skills, like the Transfiguration skill, were more efficient. In particr, many of the dark-type monsters were quite tricky. There were some enemies in soul forms that would not be harmed by physical attacks.
It¡¯s certainly the best skill in terms of power. Su-hyeun¡¯s assessment of me was quite generous. Amongst all the top-notch skills that Su-hyeun had seen, giving the me skill such high evaluation meant that it was quite exceptional.
Besides high magic consumption, it has quite a heavy pressure on health too.
It was too excessive a skill to be used on small monsters. Nevertheless, Su-hyeun used me for just one reason.
When else can I increase my ability other than at this point?
Chapter 15
Chapter 15: Chapter 15
The skills¡¯ powers were ssified into two categories.
Firstly, the most basic requirement of a skill was its magic level. The second was its ability.
Thus, regardless of how high the skill level was, if the ability was meager, one would not be able to use it to its fullest potential. In this regard, it wasn¡¯t a bad idea to make use of this trial to raise Su-hyeun¡¯s skill ability.
<>
As he watched the surrounding monsters¡¯ corpses burn, he let out a breath of exhaustion.
¡°Huu¡ª¡±
The me skill¡¯s ability had increased.
It was the same with the Provocation skill. There was nothing better than real battles to increase a skill¡¯s ability.
<>
Su-hyeun clicked his tongue as he watched the corpses lying on the ground.
¡°It¡¯s not here.¡±
The 10th floor.
Regardless of how difficult it was, the trial would not arrange monsters that were impossible for awakeners to deal with. It would be surprising to see monsters of a higher caliber than the Predatory Snake.
¡°Well, if a tougher monster than the Predatory Snake appears, the mission would not be valid.¡±
The Predatory Snake¡¯s territory created a deterrence to other monsters. If there were stronger monsters, the vige would have been destroyed much earlier.
¡°This should be enough.¡±
He had sufficient corpses to feed the snakelets. The rest were hunted to increase Su-hyeun¡¯s skill¡¯s proficiency. Su-hyeun brought out the six young men who were supposed to feed the snakelets.
¡°A-all of these...¡±
¡°Did you catch all of these?¡±
The six young men looked wearily at Su-hyeun.
There were countless bodies. Most of them were ck as if they had been burnt to death.
¡°Drag those bodies there onto the cart. They should sustain the snakes for a few days.¡±
¡°Yes, yes!¡±
¡°Um... What will our benefactor like to do? Will you be returning with us immediately?¡±
Benefactor? Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes narrowed at the awkward, burdensome title.
¡°I¡¯ll catch up in a while.¡±
¡°Why don¡¯t you leave with us?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. Let¡¯s go together. Mealtime is already over, too...¡±
It seemed that they were worried that Su-hyeun might disappear without a trace.
Even though Su-hyeun was an awkward and unfamiliar person at first, he was now the only person they could rely on.
Su-hyeun was aware of their worries. But before that, he had something he needed to do.
¡°The snakelets take time to mark their territory. No matter how fed and bloated they are, it¡¯s going to take around a month.¡±
¡°S-so... In theing month...¡±
The young men¡¯s faces turned pale at Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
Su-hyeun¡¯s words meant that in the following month, the vige would be unsafe from the monsters outside. They didn¡¯t know it, but it was part of the trial that Su-hyeun was given.
¡°I¡¯ll protect the vige for the next month.¡±
¡°...What?¡± asked one of the men.
¡°Personally, by the benefactor?¡± asked another.
¡°But why...¡±
It should have been a happy matter, but they could not bring themselves to feel that way. The question of why came naturally.
Why was it that Su-hyeun wanted to help them like this? It was an overly one-sided rtionship. And if you were no fool, you would know that one-sided good deeds without reason were not something you could easilye across.
However, such doubts from the young men did not matter to Su-hyeun. No matter how they saw him, Su-hyeun would only take one action.
¡°Anyway, I will catch all the monsters around the vige, so don¡¯t worry. Just return to the vige. I will also return before the sun sets.¡±
The young men had no choice but to nod their heads, leaving Su-hyeun at that spot.
<>
<>
After a moment of rest, Su-hyeun wandered around the vige and began calling for monsters.
Just like that, all day long, Su-hyeun caught the monsters again and again.
Act 8
Time passed quickly.
Luckily, the vige was recognized as a safe zone, so Su-hyeun was able toe and go between the real world and the vige. asionally, Su-hyeun would return to the real world to contact Shin Su-yeong and then return to the vige to repeat his hunts.
The vigers¡¯ attitude towards Su-hyeun had also changed. At first, their gazes towards Su-hyeun were full of suspicion. They thought he might be approaching the vige with an ulterior motive. However, their suspicions cleared up as time passed.
Perhaps, just like what Su-hyeun had said, they could see that the snakelets were bing tamer. The snakelets grew day by day. The young men had begun to train them in various ways ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
Late one night, Su-hyeun finished his hunt and returned to the vige. His skill¡¯s proficiency was progressing steadily.
[Aplishment: 65%]
Su-hyeun was satisfied after checking his aplishments.
<>
As the snakelets grew, his aplishment percentage increased. That steady rise in aplishment was also proof that Su-hyeun was on the right track.
Flop¡ª
Su-hyeun returned to his shabby tent house andid down on the hard floor. He was exhausted.
After fighting monsters all day long, his body felt drained of strength. Recently, it felt as if he had gone back to the past.
<>
This ce was very simr to the world he lived in: a destroyed world, anxious people, the ck, dead sky and earth.
It was swarming with monsters outside the vige. It might have been set up as such to match the stage of the 10th floor, as there were no monsters above a certain level.
<>
Just as Su-hyeun was about to close his eyes, he heard some rustling.
He felt a presence outside the tent house. It was a very small presence.
Dragging his tired body, Su-hyeun stood up from his spot. He walked towards the door and saw a familiar face outside.
¡°Kid.¡±
¡°Hic.¡±
It was the same six or seven-year-old kid that he saw a few days back. The child who came to find Su-hyeun seemed so afraid that she covered herself behind the tree in the distance.
Looking at the child who was half-covered, Su-hyeun said with a small smile, ¡°I can see you. Are you looking for me?¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
The child was cute. Su-hyeun continued talking, holding back hisughter that was threatening to burst because of the child¡¯s reaction.
¡°Since you are looking for me, could youe nearer? If you stand so far away, Uncle would not be able to hear you.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not a kid! I¡¯m Mellie!¡±
Upset by being called a kid, the child cried out.
She was an interesting child. With seemingly no thoughts of going closer, Mellie kept her distance while stealing nces at Su-hyeun. He waited until the girl came closer.
Mellie approached Su-hyeun slowly after making eye contact several times.
¡°Here.¡±
After moments of fidgeting, Mellie came near and held out her hand towards Su-hyeun. In her palm was a small piece of bread slightly smaller than a fist.
¡°What could this be?¡± Su-hyeun asked. ¡°Is this for me?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Why?¡±
¡°I¡¯m just thankful.¡±
¡°Thankful?¡±
¡°I heard that you were protecting our vige. Thank you for protecting our vige.¡±
It seemed like rumors had spread throughout the vige.
¡°Did you know that? Actually, the vige chief was a horrible person. I knew that...but...¡±
¡°How did you know that?¡±
¡°My elder brother was taken away by the vige chief. And he did note back.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s heart sank at Mellie¡¯s answer. This young child was aware of everything. She was aware of the sadness of losing her brother and was holding onto the grief.
That was why while the others called the vige chief a hero, Mellie seemed unable to do so. Mellie looked up at Su-hyeun with shining eyes and continued speaking.
¡°Well, they said that you are our vige¡¯s hero. The other uncles said that.¡±
¡°...Hero?¡±
¡°Yes. So, I will give you this. Take it.¡±
Rumble, rumble¡ª
As she passed over the bread, a sound of hunger could be heard from Mellie¡¯s stomach. Without batting an eye, Mellie held out the bread to Su-hyeun, hurrying him to take it. Something inside of him choked up.
Why was this young child given such a difficult task as starvation? What was it that made this young child unable to express her hunger?
He closed his eyes. Anger red up.
<>
He was not a hero. He had already felt that fact, bone-deep, in his past life. However, in this young child¡¯s eyes, his unremarkable self seemed like a real hero.
Su-hyeun opened his eyes. He looked at Mellie¡¯s eyes again.
¡°No, Uncle is...¡±
<>
Would it be right to say this?
Was it right to destroy this child¡¯s fantasies and hopes that were instilled in these words? There was a moment of hesitation.
¡°Mellie! You can¡¯t do that! I¡¯m sorry, so sorry.¡±
Mellie¡¯s mother appeared and swept her up in her arms. The woman might not have even known what she is sorry for. Knowing this, Su-hyeun hurriedly waved his hands.
¡°No, it¡¯s fine. I was bored and had fun because of Mellie.¡±
¡°That¡¯s right! Mom, you don¡¯t even know.¡±
¡°Mellie!¡±
As if asking her to please be quiet, Mellie¡¯s mother ced a finger to her lips. She bowed her head to Su-hyeun once again.
¡°No. I should have been keeping an eye on her...she has no manners...¡±
¡°It¡¯s fine. Really.¡±
The woman had a look of relief after studying Su-hyeun¡¯s expression. Luckily, Su-hyeun had not shown any displeasure.
¡°Uncle, are you not going to eat this?¡±
Mellie once again held out the piece of crumbly and slightly dusted bread towards Su-hyeun. The girl¡¯s mother started nagging at Mellie again, but Su-hyeunughed lightly and epted the bread.
¡°Since Mellie gave me a present, I¡¯ll have to repay her, right?¡±
The crumbly, small bread returned as a piece of soft and warm bread.
Mellie¡¯s face brightened as she saw a piece ofrge bread emerge from Su-hyeun¡¯s pouch. ¡°Wow!¡±
Mellieughed excitedly. Her mother looked troubled once again. She looked between Mellie and Su-hyeun, unable to do anything.
¡°Mellie, you are really... I¡¯m sorry. You do not have to eat that...¡±
Before the woman ended her words, Su-hyeun put the bread in his mouth and ate it. ¡°It¡¯s delicious.¡±
In fact, it wasn¡¯t even chewable. But...
¡°Really, it was delicious.¡±
Those were sincere words.
It was tough to swallow that dry and tough piece of bread without water. It tasted nothing like food.
He would not forget the bread he ate that day for the rest of his life ¡ª it was, indeed, that gratifying.
Chapter 16
Chapter 16: Chapter 16
Creak, creak¡ª
Slither, slither¡ª
Six snakelets.
More urately, half of them, now grown to be adult Predatory Snakes, darted their tongues.
They had a considerable physical build that spanned two meters in diameter. The triangr headed Predatory Snakes had venom in their teeth and saliva dripping from their mouths.
<>
It had been a month and a half. Although it was hard to discern whether they had developed into adults, they would be no match for the fair number of monsters lurking around the vige.
¡°How was the hunt today?¡± Su-hyeun asked the six young men who were managing the predatory snakes. They seemed to have gotten familiar with training the snakes.
¡°There aren¡¯t many monsters left around the vige. I think we may have to broaden the hunting ground slowly.¡±
¡°What about the food rations?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°We found potatoes and some rotten wheat in a distant vige. We should have no problems with food for the next three months.¡±
¡°Please search for other food that can be self-cultivated, since there will be a limited amount of food sourced from outside.¡±
¡°We got it.¡±
The vige became livelier. Regardless of the situation outside the vige, at least the vige was now safe from monsters.
There were no more humans sacrificed for the predatory snakes. Before that, the vigers feared that they would be sacrificed for the snakes, rather than the monsters outside.
<>
Su-hyeun suddenly felt entirely unfamiliar with this world. Though it was simr to the destroyed world he knew, the system organized it well.
<>
In the past month and a half, Su-hyeun did not spot any other monsters that could invade the Predatory Snakes¡¯ territory, but it was unclear as to how much longer the vige would be safe.
Even if they domesticated the six Predatory Snakes, if there were a monster stronger than them, the peace would vanish in a sh.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun left the basement where they were training the Predatory Snakes and walked through the vige. A lot had changed during this period.
¡°Ah, it¡¯s the hero uncle!¡±
¡°Uncle, where are you heading?¡±
¡°Mr. Su-hyeun, are you heading out of the vige again today?¡±
It was the vigers¡¯ attention and hospitality towards Su-hyeun. Their initial impression of Su-hyeun had long been erased. Now, in their eyes, Su-hyeun was the hero who saved their vige.
Su-hyeun felt burdened with those looks. It was especially true when the children called him a hero openly.
Su-hyeun spoke to Mellie¡¯s mother. ¡°I have to verify again if any more monsters are lurking around the vige.¡±
¡°That¡¯s hard work. Because of us, every day...¡±
¡°It¡¯s nothing. It¡¯s my duty.¡±
He had meant it. His actions now were only part of the process to pass the trial. The mission was now at its final stage.
As the Predatory Snakes were growing into adults, the trial¡¯s aplishment increased quickly, depending on the vige¡¯s safety. The rewards would be great as it was a trial that required an extended period of time; the lingering attachment was higher than anticipation.
<>
Would it return to its original state, as if Su-hyeun had never set foot there? Or would it maintain the status quo with the newly domesticated Predatory Snakes?
If so... would the vige stay safe forever?
¡°Damn it.¡±
Su-hyeun was organizing his train of thoughts when a stream of vulgarity unknowingly came out. The frightened children backed away in the tense atmosphere. The same went for Mellie¡¯s mother.
¡°Why... Did something bad happen?¡±
¡°Ah, no.¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head at the foul words he had just said. He looked at the children and smiled at them once again.
¡°Really, it¡¯s nothing.¡±
Su-hyeun left the vige after those words. Strangely, the weird feeling did not go away. As Su-hyeun felt that he was unnecessarily concerned, he checked the trial¡¯s status.
[Aplishment: 99 percent.]
Why?
There had been no change in the aplishment level for a few days. Obviously, the vige would be safe if nothing else were to happen.
<>
It was because of the remaining 1% that he was unsatisfied and did not choose to clear this trial.
The Tower of Trials¡¯ system never lied. Failure to achieve 100% in aplishment meant that the vige was notpletely safe.
Since Su-hyeun could have already cleared this trial when he had killed the vige chief and the first Predatory Snake, there would not be much of a problem if the trial ended here.
But...
<>
Even if his goal was just to clear the trial with perfection, he had to do something.
<>
With the sudden strange thought creeping into his mind, Su-hyeun shook his head vigorously.
<>
Su-hyeun then left the vige. No other monsters remained outside the vige. They were mostly dealt with in the past month and a half.
<>
He had to find out the reason.
Su-hyeun did not return to the vige, even when the sky had turnedpletely dark at night.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun was now quite a distance from the vige. He felt the eyes of various monsters on him, but he could sense somethingrger amongst them.
He looked down beneath his feet. It was directly beneath him.
¡°...So, it was you.¡±
Its eyes only opened at dawn. As it was quite a distance from the vige and barely active during the day, he could not have sensed it.
The me skill was used on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
The me¡¯s size was a lotrger than the first time. This was thanks to the hunted monsters that increased his skill¡¯s proficiency.
Su-hyeun used his magic to bring out the me as much as he could, and using the sword as a counterweight, stabbed it into the ground.
Stab¡ª!
The mes permeated into the ground. Su-hyeun consistently sent the fire into the ground. Soon, he got a reaction.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Crack¡ª!
The ground beneath him shook and its surface burst open. Soon, something huge appeared above ground.
Su-hyeun avoided it by leaping into the air. He could verify the monster¡¯s form by leaping a few times more into the air.
Kyaaaaa¡ª!
A gigantic earthworm.
It was an earth-colored monster without any eyes, nose, or limbs. The only body part it had on its lengthy build was a hideous mouth that unleashed a loud groan.
Its form was simr to the Predatory Snake¡¯s. But Su-hyeun knew.
<>
It was the only remaining threat to the vige in this trial: the Earthworm.
Its body had even more venomous poison than the Predatory Snake. If both the Earthworm and Predatory Snake met, the Predatory Snake would be paralyzed and die from the Earthworm¡¯s venom in an instant.
<>
The trial could be cleared without even catching the monster. In other words, one could catch it if possible; otherwise, he would have to return to the Tower.
Su-hyeun observed the Earthworm¡¯s movement, and its rted information appeared.
The Earthworm belonged to the boss level monsters. Its lifeline was lengthy and not to be taken lightly. Moreover, the most important point was its venom. Even for Su-hyeun, it was tough to be safe from the Earthworm¡¯s poison without toxic-resistant skills.
<>
Su-hyeun set the me aze once more and charged towards the earthworm.
Drip, drip¡ª
Pant, pant¡ª
Su-hyeun let out a heavy breath and stumbled, exhausted.
The Earthworm¡¯s green blood flowed into the dirt. Su-hyeun¡¯s feet seemed to burn wherever he stepped on the blood-stained ground.
Creak, creak¡ª
The Earthworm was not dead yet. A few fragments of its body were prolonging its life.
¡°Let¡¯s end this.¡±
Su-hyeun finally gathered thest of his magic and severed its head.
sh¡ª!
Kya¡ª
[You have gained 1,000 achievement points.]
[You have attained the highest aplishment.]
[You have passed the 10th-floor¡¯s trial with perfection.]
[You can choose an additional reward. The additional rewards depend on your aplishment level. Themand is ¡°Select.¡±]
[Your achievement will be ranked.]
[You have ranked first.]
[Your Strength has increased by 1 point.]
[Your Agility...]
...
[You have gained 50,000 achievement points.]
[Your magic level has increased by 1 level.]
[Your magic factor has increased by 2 points.]
[Will you ascend to the next floor?]
The allocated achievement points were not as generous as he had expected.
But the other rewards were that his magic level had increased and that he was allowed to choose his additional reward.
<>
¡°Haa¡ª¡±
Whatever the additional reward, Su-hyeun trudged heavily and sat on a dry patch of ground where there was no Earthworm¡¯s blood.
He could not even open the door to reality in his current state.
A considerable amount of concentration was needed to open it. Thus, it was impossible to open the door when Su-hyeun was poisoned.
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun held the ne that was hanging around his neck in his hand. It was the treasure that was obtained on the second floor: the Sharyes¡¯ treasure. Though he did not have many chances to use it, it was useful every time.
<>
Although it would cost quite a considerable amount of achievement points, it was an item that valuable.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
As Su-hyeun activated the ne, a light came out and enveloped Su-hyeun¡¯s body. A bright light green light fully wrapped around Su-hyeun¡¯s body and soon dissipated.
Su-hyeun¡¯s poisoned body felt lighter and more rxed.
<>
It was an item that recovers the users¡¯ health three times.
These types of items were rare. Unfortunately, as its recovery speed was slow, it was difficult to be used inbat, but it couldn¡¯t be matched with natural recovery.
Initially, the poison would have gradually spread in the body, and oveing it naturally would have had taken a long time.
Perhaps parts of the body that could not be recovered would be permanently paralyzed or led to an early death, but the Sharyes¡¯ treasure was slowly neutralizing the poison.
<>
He could only use it two more times. He had expected to use up one chance when he started the fight with the Earthworm and did not regret it.
<>
The Tower of Trials¡¯ system never lied. Su-hyeun believed so.
The lingering feeling had lessened. Thanks to that, Su-hyeun could ascend to the next floor without worries.
<>
There was the additional reward that he could choose after his aplishment level had passed the 30 percent mark.
Chapter 17
Chapter 17: Chapter 17
¡°Select.¡±
[Themand has been entered.]
[Please choose your reward.]
A long list of rewards appeared as soon as Su-hyeun spoke those words. Very much simr to a website, various items were listed from top to bottom.
The ordinary stores used achievement points as their exchange currency, but these were different.
[Stored aplishment points: 70.]
<>
Although he had heard of some selected stores using a different method, he had not encountered any in his past life.
Su-hyeun looked through the list of rewards.
It might have been hard to stumble upon this chance again in the future. He had to be careful with his choice.
<>
There were many items worth purchasing using his aplishment points.
There were skills, equipment, and consumer goods. Unfortunately, the skills that Su-hyeun was unable to learn yet were not avable for purchase.
Skills with a low requirement for magic level required fewer aplishment points. Su-hyeun could have bought a few skills, but he quickly turned them away.
<>
Su-hyeun turned to the equipment and consumer goods. Unfortunately, none of the skills he could learn right now were better than me. On the contrary, there were a lot more useful items under the equipment category, some of which were of simr standards to what he had used in his past life.
¡°It¡¯s better than I thought.¡±
As it was tough gauging the difficulty on the 10th floor, it was the same for the rewards.
Su-hyeun swiped down the rewards list. The items got more expensive as he went down the list, but it also meant that those were much more valuable.
<>
Simrly to skills, he thought the same way about equipment.
Instead of carrying several pieces of equipment on him, owning just one an outstanding weapon or set of armor would be more efficient.
Su-hyeun went to thest item on the equipment and consumer goods category. The most expensive was 65 points.
<>
He felt that something wascking.
It was the armor category. Named the Heavenly God¡¯s Armor, the item had the effect of changing its form ording to the user¡¯s wishes. It also served as an extra lifeline, with resistance to various attributes like fire, electric, poison, and more. It was great.
In truth, it was a piece of equipment that wouldn¡¯t normally be obtained on the 10th floor.
But...
[Others.]
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes turned to thest remaining category. It wasn¡¯t skills, equipment, or consumer goods, but ¡°others.¡±
All other random items were gathered here. Su-hyeun did not pay special attention to it at first, but he had decided to take a look at it; it didn¡¯t matter if it wascking.
¡°Let¡¯s just take a look.¡±
He selected the category, and various items appeared before him. Indeed, there was a wide variety.
From musical instruments to water tanks and fashion items, some would make one wonder why they were on sale. It was quite a spectacle. There were some useful items amongst them, but they would be a waste of the points.
¡°All that for nothing.¡±
However, thest item on the list caught Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes.
[Unidentifiable God¡¯s Egg]
[An unidentifiable egg. Not sure what will be hatched.]
An item worth 70 points.
But why is this even called an item? It was evident that something would be hatched, but there was no way to tell what it would be.
¡°God¡¯s Egg.¡±
It was the item¡¯s name that caught Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes.
¡°This is it.¡±
He was confident that he would somehow be able to get the other items.
No matter how valuable the equipment was, Su-hyeun knew how to obtain the hero level weapons, like Balmung, that he had used in his past life.
But it was different for God¡¯s Egg.
In fact, if an awakener was lucky enough to get this egg, the hatched item could elevate the awakener¡¯s rank. It was one of the few items that Su-hyeun knew of but did not know how to obtain.
¡°Although the unidentifiable exnation is quite worrying....¡±
But it seemed that there was no other better option.
¡°I¡¯ve decided.¡±
[You have used 70 aplishment points.]
[You have purchased the ¡°Unidentifiable God¡¯s Egg.¡±]
As soon as he made the transaction, an egg with the size of a fist appeared before him. It was a white egg without any patterns. Su-hyeun epted it carefully with both hands.
¡°It¡¯s smaller than I thought....¡±
Su-hyeun had thought it would be around the size of his body since it was called God¡¯s Egg. As it was his first time seeing the Unidentifiable God¡¯s Egg, he didn¡¯t know if it was normal.
¡°Anyway, with this, my job on the 10th floor is done....¡±
It was time to head back.
Most of the poison had been neutralized. It wouldn¡¯t be a problem for him to move about. Su-hyeun stood up and reached his hands out.
And with all his strength, he grasped the air and opened the door.
Rip¡ª!
The door back to reality opened. Su-hyeun¡¯s expression calmed down as he stepped out.
¡°With this... Did I meet the minimum standards that I had nned out?¡±
He had cleared the 10th floor. It was the minimum standard that Su-hyeun had in mind initially.
That was what he had been working hard towards. However, the results were beyond his expectations.
¡°Although it took longer than expected...¡±
Step¡ª
He grinned slightly as he passed the door.
¡°I¡¯ve gotten a lot stronger than I had nned.¡±
The standard was no different from when he cleared the eighth floor and obtained the me skill.
¡°I can¡¯t dy any further.¡±
Act 9
Time flowed differently in the Tower of Trials and reality. Although it was dawn on the 10th floor, in reality, it was just 2 PM.
Su-hyeun headed to the nearest bank. He inserted his card and verified his bank bnce. A total of 1,210,000 Korean won was all that Su-hyeun had.
He had saved all the allowance that Shin Su-yeong sent him every month. The fact of the matter was he had no use for the money. His only expenses were the asional gifts for Shin Su-yeong, so he had saved quite a lot.
Whirl¡ª
He withdrew all the money at once.
Su-hyeun took the money and headed to Seoul by bus. He had to rely on his memories to find his way from Seoul Station. Su-hyeun finally found the ce he was looking for, which was located in a reasonablyrge area.
The Awakeners reditation Authority.
It was a state-run institute that evaluated the awakeners¡¯ ranks, but wasn¡¯t just that; the institute also monitored the foreign awakeners¡¯ movements and managed the local awakeners.
¡°It has been a while.¡±
The awakeners who got stronger every singe time they ascended the tower would sometimes increase their skills and request reassessments. Therefore, an average awakener would visit the institution three to four times in his life.
But of course, it was different for Su-hyeun.
There was no reason for him to be elevated in the first ce. Su-hyeun was previously a local awakener, but he wasn¡¯t a normal awakener.
He started heading in. He took his time, reminiscing about old times, as he had been living all the while as Su-hyeun.
¡°What brings you here?¡±
A staff member greeted Su-hyeun brightly as he stepped into the lobby.
¡°I came to be evaluated.¡±
¡°Is this your first time as an awakener?¡± The female staff member, who appeared to be in her mid-20s, smiled and spoke calmly. She must have been one of those people in Korea who had seen many awakeners in her life.
¡°It has been a while.¡±
¡°It might take a while ording to procedures. Please follow me.¡±
Guided by the staff, Su-hyeun went through several procedures to verify his identity and headed to the first floor. Several chairs were ced in the middle of a spacious room, and many people were standing. As soon as Su-hyeun saw the five people sitting on the chairs, he realized that they were awakeners like him.
¡°Oh?¡±
Su-hyeun recognized one of their faces.
¡°Choi Hak-joon?¡±
He was the awakener he had chanced upon at the Tower of Trials not too long ago. It seemed that Choi Hak-joon had alsoe to be evaluated as an awakener.
¡°Please wait for 30 minutes until the ranking evaluation is prepared. You will be called ordingly.¡±
The woman who guided Su-hyeun quickly left after she finished speaking. Soon, everyone in the room looked towards Su-hyeun.
¡°Oh?¡±
Unlike the other awakeners, Hak-joon narrowed his eyes and waved his hands as he seemed to have recognized Su-hyeun, but he soon tilted and scratched his head as if he was afraid that he recalled the wrong person. True, it would not be easy to recognize Su-hyeun right away after only one encounter.
¡°It has been a while.¡±
Since he had time, Su-hyeun approached Hak-joon. Actually, he was also curious as to what kind of person he actually was.
Hak-joon asked, delighted that his memory did not fail him, ¡°Indeed, we have met before, right?¡±
¡°We did have a small encounter once on the second floor.¡±
¡°Ah, I remember it now.¡±
Hak-joon pped his hands andughed while looking at Su-hyeun. It seemed that Su-hyeun¡¯s first impression was too intense to be forgotten.
¡°Are you here to be re-evaluated again?¡±
It seemed that Hak-joon had been evaluated once before.
Su-hyeun shook his head.
¡°No, it¡¯s not a re-evaluation.¡±
¡°So it¡¯s your first time?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Hasn¡¯t a year passed since west met?¡±
Usually, after a person has awakened, they were evaluated within a month because it was the first time that they are magically awakened. After that, one would usually get re-evaluated every time their magic level increased. It was the only reason why awakeners were evaluated. One had to be ranked in order to enter the dungeons, and then one could earn some big bucks there.
In this regard, it was rare to see someone doing their evaluation a year after awakening.
¡°If you¡¯re unsure about the rank evaluation for awakeners...¡±
¡°I¡¯m fully aware.¡±
¡°So, you¡¯re not here for the money?¡±
There had been asional instances, too, when those who awakened but did not care about the money did not receive rank evaluations. They were usually rich enough to decide not to work as an awakener.
¡°My objective...¡±
Truthfully speaking, it wasn¡¯t for the money at all ¡ª it was because that was the minimum requirement to work as an awakener.
But...
¡°It¡¯s not my purpose, but I sort of need it.¡±
He did not intend to let Shin Su-yeong suffer forever.
Chapter 18
Chapter 18: Chapter 18
Hak-joon tilted his head at Su-hyeun¡¯s answer. He did not know how to urately interpret Su-hyeun¡¯s response.
<>
Hak-joon figured that if money were his objective, this would not have been his first evaluation.
Su-hyeun and Hak-joon continued to talk for quite a while. The conversation was mostly Su-hyeun questioning Hak-joon. Su-hyeun was most curious about which floor of the Tower of Trials had Hak-joon reached up until this point.
<<15th floor... He has gone up quite high.>>
They had first met on the second floor, but Hak-joon had now reached the 15th floor.
It was quite a feat considering that as one ascended the floors, the difficulty of the trials increased as well. Moreover, Hak-joon had always chosen Level 8 trials, the same as Su-hyeun had done in his past life.
<
Su-hyeun¡¯s perception of Hak-joon had changed a little. Hak-joon was better than the person he had remembered. Su-hyeun felt a need to continue observing him.
As time went by, everything had been prepared for the evaluation. There wererge palm-shaped boards ¡ª with machines as tall as men ¡ª and the institute¡¯s awakeners, who would be notarizing.
¡°Ares Guild¡¯s awakener Mr. Choi Hak-joon! Your evaluation will start now!¡±
Hak-joon, who had arrived the earliest, headed up upon being called.
<>
Ares Guild had been reaching out to Su-hyeun via Abyss Online, asking him to join them. Although he did not have any intentions to join a guild, he recalled the name as it was rted to Hak-joon.
<>
Joining hands with a crime syndicate, the guild had been supported in the dark to foster power.
Hak-joon and Ares Guild would meet in the future, and the guild would disappear by the high-profile awakener¡¯s hand. Su-hyeun had considerable interest in this matter when he had learned of it. He had also nned to meet with the Ares Guild sometime, but of course, not so soon.
Whirl, whirl¡ª
Hak-joon injected magic into his palm and ced it on arge te.
Soon, a stone that turned blue shined brightly. The examiner checked the machine beside him and announced the results.
¡°Level four, Factor 44. Rank B!¡±
¡°Rank B?¡±
¡°Really?¡±
¡°He looks quite young... Already?¡±
The other awakeners started murmuring upon the examiner¡¯s announcement.
A B-rank awakener.
They werebeled the so-called high-ss awakeners of the top 10 percent. Anyone above a magic level of four, or with a magic factor over 40, was given the qualification. Of course, on top of this, there were other methods to measure an awakener¡¯s rank.
There were cases where one was measured by their skills stats, magic, sense of battle, and other awakener¡¯s abilities through a particr examiner.
¡°B-rank within a year... Is that good?¡±
Though Su-hyeun knew that B-rank wasn¡¯t a low rank, it felt weird that the people around him were reacting quite wildly to it. He thought that it was a given to be ranked B if Hak-Joon had been challenging the level 8 trials up to the 15th floor.
<>
Come to think of it, he did not know anything about awakeners¡¯ standards. Su-hyeun only had his first awakening half a year ago, and he did not have any exchange with other awakeners.
<>
There were quite a lot of eyes here as the ranks were announced in a public area.
Each guild had Scouters. Their sharp eyes were watching out for any useful awakeners to invite to join their guild.
¡°Next, Red Devil n¡¯s...¡±
The next awakener after Hak-joon was called up for evaluation. Hak-joon returned with a cheerful face. It seemed that he was quite satisfied with his own rank.
They announced the ranks of the other four awakeners: C, C, D, D.
¡°Why am I a D-rank? Why?!¡± thest evaluated person shouted furiously. The machine that verified the magic level had shown a magic level of three.
¡°Can¡¯t you see? Damn it! Don¡¯t you know the C-rank¡¯s standards?¡±
The by-products one could get from the dungeons between a C-rank and D-rank were quite different, thus his huge reaction towards the results.
¡°Well... the readings kept changing, and we can¡¯t do anything about that either...¡±
¡°There¡¯s an error, so why lower the rank? Are you guys kidding me?¡±
¡°We can¡¯t do much about it. The manual says so...¡±
¡°Damn it, then do the evaluation again!¡±
Themotion continued. It didn¡¯t seem like it would end anytime soon.
Seemingly disliking themotion, Hak-joon frowned and pointed at the awakener¡¯s wrist. ¡°Did you think you were the only person to have thought of using items to cheat your way through?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°If you¡¯re scared, take off the bracelet and do the evaluation again. I don¡¯t know how you could bring an item like that here in the first ce....¡±
¡°Damn you...¡±
The flushed man muttered something to Hak-joon, then turned and left the room.
Su-hyeun grinned at Hak-joon, who was pouring out foulnguage. He had a more refreshing personality than expected.
¡°You talk really well.¡±
¡°He would be found out either way when taking the evaluation. There wasn¡¯t a need to waste time, was there?¡±
¡°How did you know he used expedients?¡±
¡°I felt the magic flowing out from the bracelet. It could be an artifact that amplifies magic.¡±
An artifact that amplifies magic... An expensive item that could increase the magic factor or level ording to one¡¯s original level. There was no knowing how a C-rank was able to obtain such an item, but Hak-joon saw through it urately.
<>
Hak-joon was clearly a promising awakener.
<>
Even the part where he had passed each floor¡¯s Level 8 trials mirrored Su-hyeun¡¯s past life.
Hak-joon had the talent and took a smooth-sailing path in his guild. If he continued on, he would be able to reach a simr standard as the past Su-hyeun.
<>
Choi Hak-joon had started to take a wrong path at some point in his life. He ignored other¡¯s deaths and formed a twisted mindset. Eventually, he got himself killed.
In the future, Su-hyeun had coincidentally met him for the first time during a massive outbreak from a particr dungeon.
¡°Outbreak? What has that got to do with me? Why should I care who dies or not?¡± he asked indifferently.
Su-hyeun was curious as to whether the Choi Hak-joon he had met in his past life and the one he saw now were the same person.
<>
Had this man standing before him bring upon that disaster? Or had he seen Hak-joon in the wrong light? Su-hyeun¡¯s thoughts grew deeper and deeper.
¡°Next, Mr. Kim Su-hyeun! Pleasee forward!¡±
Themotion died down, and Su-hyeun¡¯s name was called out. Su-hyeun stood up from his seat. As soon as his name was called, all eyes had gathered on him and their looks changed.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°That kid?¡±
¡°Really?¡±
Kim Su-hyeun.
The name that became the most famous over the past year. He had broken all the records from the first through the ninth floors in the Tower of Trials.
However, his ascending speed wasn¡¯t that high. Compared to the other awakeners, he was slow as arva.
<>
Level 10.
It was the highest difficulty level in the Tower of Trials, and it was known that the trials were almost impossible toplete. Just by clearing the trial alone was enough to garner interest on Kim Su-hyeun as an awakener. Moreover, the overwhelming achievement points recorded on each floor added to his appeal.
¡°That guy? Really...?¡±
Su-hyeun was young in Hak-joon¡¯s eyes. He recalled that strangely alienated feeling he had from Su-hyeun when they first met. That feeling was within reach.
Was he the Kim Su-hyeun that he knew?
It was understandable that he rejected his offer of challenging the Level 8 trial. It was not that it was too difficult, but rather, it was too easy.
It was not only Hak-joon.
The others locked their eyes on Su-hyeun¡¯s back, thinking that they could somehow finally uncover that mysterious veil and find out who the famous Kim Su-hyeun really was.
¡°Mr. Kim Su-hyeun, please ce your hand on this board and inject your magic. It will evaluate your rank ording to your magic level and factor.¡±
Su-hyeun nodded.
<>
As expected, the examiner was a B-rank awakener as well. Although he had given up climbing the Tower of Trials, he knew the name Kim Su-hyeun through the grapevine.
It would be the same if one logged into Abyss Online now. There was amotion on Abyss Online every time Kim Su-hyeun¡¯s name appeared on the ranking system. He had been waiting for Kim Su-hyeun to get his evaluation done.
¡°Please, inject your magic.¡±
As soon as the examiner spoke, Su-hyeun ced his palm on the board.
And soon, his magic was injected.
Whirl, whirl¡ª
Sizzle¡ª
The board shook lightly, and a blue light flowed out.
Everyone¡¯s hearts started racing.
Those sensitive to magic focused on it, and those who were not as sensitive had their focus on the number appearing on the machine. After a while, Su-hyeun¡¯s magic level and factor appeared above the machine.
The examiner who verified it announced with a disappointed face.
¡°Level 3, Factor 29. Rank... C.¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
¡°Indeed.¡±
¡°I had half-expected it.¡±
Disappointed voices echoed throughout the ce. There was no way such results would appear if it were the Kim Su-hyeun they had known.
Although a C-rank wasn¡¯t considered low, the Kim Su-hyeun who had broken all those records should have at least received a B-rank.
<>
As he was looking closely at Su-hyeun, the examiner¡¯s face turned weird.
<>
Su-hyeun, who hadn¡¯t revealed his identity to the public, could not have been evaluated at such a public ce ¡ª Su-hyeun could have applied for another way of evaluation just to hide his identity from the public.
<>
The examiner looked at Su-hyeun, who was returning to his seat, in suspicion.
<>
Chapter 19
Chapter 19: Chapter 19
The sudden thought got the examiner shaking his head.
<>
It was possible to fake one¡¯s magic factor. One would just have to reduce the amount of magic that was injected. Still, it wasn¡¯t an easy feat. Aside from just having a high magic level and factor, a high level of control was needed just to change one¡¯s magic properties.
He could count with his fingers the number of people he knew who had that much control over magic. They were world-ss awakeners.
The first man amongst all awakeners who entered the Tower of Trials and had survived until now had that level of magic control.
<>
Moreover, what other reasons could there be for hiding his capabilities? The examiner found his thoughts to be overboard. He started clearing up the ce after putting aside his interest in Su-hyeun.
Hak-joon found a ck vehicle waiting for him after he exited the institution. It was an expensive foreign car, but it wasn¡¯t that expensive for a somewhat established awakener.
Whirl¡ª
The backseat window was drawn down. The Ares Guild leader, Jung Dong-young, who was waiting in the backseat, spoke to Hak-joon.
¡°All done?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
Click¡ª
Hak-joon opened the backseat door and hopped in next to Jung Dong-young. Jung Dong-young signaled the driver to get going.
¡°How did it go?¡±
¡°I got a B rank.¡±
¡°Well done.¡±
It was quite a satisfying oue. Getting a B-rank just after a year of climbing the Tower of Trials was a rare achievement. B-rank awakeners were one of the top ranks now.
¡°What is the A rank¡¯s standard?¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s question contained his earnestness to achieve his next rank as soon as possible. Feeling happy, Jung Dong-youngughed and replied.
¡°Level 6 and above, factor 55 and above.¡±
¡°Do I have to meet both requirements?¡±
¡°Of course. The institution is also paying attention to awakeners of A-rank and above. In fact, those who are above A-rank are the driving forces of this era.¡±
¡°You¡¯re indirectlyplimenting yourself. How great.¡±
Jung Dong-young was one of the few A-rank awakeners in Korea.
Although it was almost the same asplimenting himself, his words weren¡¯t entirely wrong. In fact, the main leaders of each existing guild were all A-ranked awakeners.
¡°Besides that, I heard that there was an awakener called Kim Su-hyeun in the evaluation today?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°I heard his ranking was bad. Was it someone else with the same name?¡± Even if the results were out, he seemed to be quite concerned. In fact, most guilds were eager to recruit the rookie awakener Kim Su-hyeun.
¡°I think so.¡±
¡°Hmm... What are the chances of him faking his magic level?¡±
¡°You know that can¡¯t happen, right?¡±
It was nearly impossible, even for Jung Dong-young, to have that level of magic control. Regardless of if he were a genius, it wasn¡¯t something that Kim Su-hyeun, who was just in his first year, could do.
Still, Jung Dong-young smacked his lips at the thought of it being fishy.
Compared to Hak-joon, Kim Su-hyeun, who had broken each floor¡¯s records, was more talented.
<>
Not receiving his evaluation until now would mean that the possibility of him not receiving his re-evaluation was higher.
Jung Dong-young thought that Kim Su-hyeun might just be a child from a well-off family.
<>
Su-hyeun picked up his bag and checked his new awakener¡¯s registration card. The letter C that was clearly printed on the card was evidence enough. This card was required before entering public dungeons.
<>
Although he felt guilty for faking his magic level, he could not freely reveal his identity either. He hated the fact that so many people were focused on him. Furthermore, the institute¡¯s eyes were on him, too.
<>
It wasn¡¯t time for him to step into the limelight yet. Hence, he chose not to undergo a confidential evaluation either. Regardless of confidentiality, as long as one had to receive an evaluation, the institute would still find out about it.
<>
It wasn¡¯t tough to change his magic attributes. There might have been no other awakeners in the guilds with better magic control than Su-hyeun.
No, it wasn¡¯t only that. Even in the future, there were no other awakeners with better magic control than Su-hyeun. In terms of magic control, Su-hyeun was too remarkable for any awakener to follow.
Deceiving magic attributes? So long as it was not increasing his magic level, it was as natural as breathing to Su-hyeun.
<>
This annoyingly sluggishputer was testing his patience. Suddenly, he felt lucky to have gotten his awakener registration card.
<>
He just had to endure this frustration until then.
After he had logged into Abyss Online, Su-hyeun looked up ¡°Ares Guild.¡± Quite a few articles appeared in the search results. It wasn¡¯t a huge guild, as Su-hyeun had expected, but it was on therger side.
<>
It wasn¡¯t just howrge Ares Guild was that got them famous.
¡°Guild leader Jung Dong-young. Former gang member. Fistfighter that suppressed all of Gyeonggi Province, except for Seoul.¡±
Jung Dong-young had an impressive portfolio. Apparently, he lent his fists to loan sharks and even touched on human trafficking, as well as private loans and ring payments.
It was revealed that the guild was training its own awakeners, and it was gaining higher profits than before. Although they knew he was running a cleaner business than before, those who knew Jung Dong-young said that he still hadn¡¯t cleaned his filthy hands yet.
<>
No matter how great a gangster he was previously, Jung Dong-young could never make a name for himself amongst awakeners as a fistfighter. Besides being known as a fistfighter, he was also a great awakener. There weren¡¯t many A-rank awakeners in this era.
¡°Hmm...¡±
In the end, the Ares Guild that Hak-joon belonged to wasn¡¯t a good guild. Even though all awakeners in the guild weren¡¯t corrupt, there was no way the subordinates would bepetent if the higher-ups weren¡¯t scandal-free.
<>
There was no way of knowing now. Su-hyeun stuck out his chin and started reading the past trending articles on Abyss Online. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t have much knowledge of issues that had happened before 2020.
<>
Most of the articles until now were about specificrge scale guilds, celebrities¡¯ awakenings, and politics andws about the awakeners. He had no interest.
Compared to what would be happening not too long from now, these were just minor issues for pure entertainment. Su-hyeun briefly read through and remembered thements circting on Abyss Online. Amongst them...
[January 1. We¡¯re gathering C-rank and above awakeners for a new dungeon attack that appeared in Gwangju, Gyeonggi Province. It is an orange level dungeon. For more details...]
There it was.
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes lit up slightly at the post.
¡°January 1, 2020.¡±
The part of the future that he had to change.
The beginning was right in front of him.
Act 10
Gwangju, Gyeonggi Province.
It was around a week ago when a dungeon had appeared on Yakshi Mountain, just a short distance away from City Hall. Its difficulty level, orange, was second tost on the easy side of the scale, with the easiest being red.
Lee Ju-ho, who was head of the Dungeon attack and a B-rank awakener, sat down andid across a table in the cafe.
¡°Why aren¡¯t there more people applying...¡±
¡°It¡¯s the year-end. On top of that, the frequency of dungeons appearing recently has increased rapidly.¡±
The man who sat across him, Kim Ba-reum, was Lee Ju-ho¡¯s co-leader of the dungeon attack and also his long-time friend. They needed at least seven awakeners in a team but had only gathered six, including both of them.
¡°Damn it. It¡¯s getting tougher now, too. As dungeons keep appearing, the price of Ether is getting lower and people aren¡¯t gathering as much.¡±
¡°What do you mean by getting tougher? Even if the prices fall, you could still make a few hundred million won out of them.¡±
Kim Ba-reum waved his hand as if telling his friend to not be funny. Lee Ju-ho grinned and picked up his half-emptied Americano, knowing that his own words were silly.
¡°But the things that happened recently have been quite weird. Aside from the increasing number of dungeons appearing, the number of deaths is also increasing during dungeon attacks.¡±
¡°Since when was there no awakener who overestimated themselves and died during dungeon attacks? The death count would increase as much as the numbers of amateurs increase.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡±
¡°Are you sure you didn¡¯t mishear that it¡¯s actually the Tower of Trials¡¯ death count that is increasing? If it¡¯s so, there¡¯s no need to worry.¡±
Lee Ju-ho did not pay much attention to Kim Ba-reum¡¯s words.
In the first ce, his job as an awakener warranted high risks as well as high returns. Of course, there weren¡¯t as many deaths from dungeon attacks up until now. Amongst awakeners¡¯ idental deaths, almost 99 percent had happened in the Tower of Trials.
Because of that, those awakeners who were guaranteed a certain level of safety had given up on climbing the tower.
<>
Lee Ju-ho was a B-rank awakener. When Lee Ju-ho first started climbing the tower, he had aimed precisely for a B-rank status. Even if a B-rank awakener joined a dungeon attack, the allocated rewards were different. In fact, being a B-rank awakener in this industry was quite a sess.
The money he had earned over the past year had led him to live a decent life where he could afford expensive foreign cars andvish apartments.
<>
Lee Ju-ho had thought that his life from now on would be smooth sailing.
Ding¡ª
Just then, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s smartphone rang. Who had contacted him? He checked his phone. He quickly sat up while still checking the message.
Chapter 20
Chapter 20: Chapter 20
¡°He¡¯s here!¡±
¡°Really? Now?¡±
¡°Yeah. He¡¯s a C-rank awakener.¡±
¡°Are you sure he¡¯s not just phishing information? You uploaded that post on Abyss Online.¡±
¡°It couldn¡¯t be. I definitely said those who contacted needlessly would be sued.¡±
¡°Well, if that¡¯s the case...¡±
No one would probably y a prank like this with the risk of getting sued. It meant that they had really found thest member of the team.
¡°What¡¯s his name?¡±
¡°It¡¯s special. You should have heard of it too.¡±
¡°Who is it?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? Really?¡±
Any awakener would have known of the name. Kim Su-hyeun was the rookie who had been breaking records starting from the lower floors. The other reason why he got famous was also that he was a hidden figure without any rank.
¡°No, that can¡¯t be him. He¡¯s still a C-rank. If he¡¯s as good as the rumors say, he should be at least a B-rank.¡±
¡°True. So two of the same name?¡±
¡°Probably?¡±
¡°He doesn¡¯t belong to any guild?¡±
¡°Yeah, he doesn¡¯t belong to any. There¡¯s not much information on his profile either.¡±
While typing on his smartphone to reply to the other party, Lee Ju-ho said, ¡°This guy is just right.¡±
It was the new year. The year 2020.
Su-hyeun¡¯s feeling this morning was very different from yesterday¡¯s. Impossible as it was, he had hoped for this day to not arrive.
¡°I¡¯ll be back.¡±
In the wee hours of the morning, Su-hyeun had his breakfast and finished his preparations. As if Shin Su-yeong wasn¡¯t scheduled to work for the day, she yawned and returned to her room after preparing breakfast for Su-hyeun.
¡°Are youing backte?¡±
¡°Maybe.¡±
¡°Give me a call if you¡¯re staying outte.¡±
There weren¡¯t many times when Su-hyeun returned early in the past year. He came back eventer than Shin Su-yeong, who always returned homete after work.
¡°Okay. I¡¯ll drop a text.¡±
Su-hyeun said those words and left the house. In fact, he, too, had no idea how long it would take this time.
Su-hyeun took the subway and bus. He finally arrived in front of Gwangju¡¯s City Hall in Gyeonggi Province. Su-hyeun fished out his phone and dialed a number. Then, a group of people who gathered on one side of the City Hall waved towards him.
¡°Over here.¡±
There were a total of six people waving at him. They were the team of awakeners who Su-hyeun would be entering the orange dungeon with.
¡°Are you Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°Yes, it¡¯s nice to meet you.¡±
¡°Yes, it¡¯s nice to have met you. I¡¯m Lee Ju-ho. Over here...¡±
Lee Ju-ho introduced the others who were on the team. It seemed that both Lee Ju-ho and Kim Ba-reum knew each other, and the others joined them for the first time at the dungeon.
¡°Are you possibly that Kim Su-hyeun...¡±
A female C-rank awakener, Lee Eun-mi, looked at Su-hyeun with sparkly eyes. Indeed, the name Kim Su-hyeun had always brought about huge interest.
It wasn¡¯t only her. The others ¡ª seemingly with the same thoughts ¡ª pricked up their ears, curious to hear Su-hyeun¡¯s answer.
But that answer was filled in not by Su-hyeun, but Lee Ju-ho.
¡°Aye, he shouldn¡¯t be. Kim Su-hyeun here had recently received his C-rank evaluation not long ago.¡±
¡°Ah, so...¡±
¡°Aha.¡±
Their faces were saying ¡°Of course.¡±
Su-hyeunughed lightly at their reactions. He felt lucky that they understood immediately, and he did not have toe up with excuses every time.
¡°You¡¯ve requested for the dungeon attack party with the institute, right?¡±
¡°Yes. I did it yesterday.¡±
¡°What is your position? Please give an introduction of which skills or weapons you usually use.¡±
¡°I usually use the sword and my auxiliary weapon is the spear. I don¡¯t have any items yet, so the sword I borrowed from the institute is all I have.¡±
A Property of Dimension Order Form was needed to bring items from the Tower of Trials into reality. It was tough for awakeners below rank B to obtain the order form, as a substantial amount of achievement points was required as payment. Thus, Su-hyeun could only use the sword which he had loaned from the institute for now. Although it was a considerable amount to rent, if he joined in on one dungeon attack, he would receive enough to pay for it.
¡°If this is your first time at a dungeon attack, you might be slightly confused. I will exin to you more about dungeons on the way there.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
As they started heading to the dungeon, Lee Ju-ho shared various stories with Su-hyeun. Most were tips rted to dungeon attacks, but amongst them, quite a few portions were mixed with foolish advice ¡ª it seemed as though an elementary student was teaching a college professor. Su-hyeun only felt frustration throughout the exnation.
They hopped on two vehicles that were prepared for them and arrived near the Yashi Mountain, where the dungeon appeared. The dungeon¡¯s entrance was a cave with a ring orange light. A few supervisors were on call at the entrance of the dungeon, where it was marked with an off-limits sign. Lee Ju-ho approached them as the party¡¯s leader and started with the procedures. Several conditions had to be met to enter a public dungeon, and the appropriate procedures wereid out.
Kim Ye-eun, a short-haired female, walked towards Su-hyeun and said, ¡°Surprisingly, you don¡¯t seem to be nervous.¡±
She seemed to be around Su-hyeun¡¯s age and despite not wearing any makeup, it was clear she had a fair-toned and pretty looking face. Although the average age of awakeners wasn¡¯t that high, they were still quite young.
Su-hyeun replied in a low whisper to her as she approached. ¡°I¡¯m actually quite nervous.¡±
¡°Really? It doesn¡¯t seem like it at all.¡±
¡°It doesn¡¯t usually show on my face.¡±
¡°Really? We¡¯re quite simr. I¡¯m quite nervous, too.¡± Ye-eun shuddered quite a bit after those words.
¡°Why are you so nervous?¡± Su-hyeun asked. ¡°Is this also your first dungeon attack or...¡±
¡°No, it¡¯s not like that.¡±
¡°Then what is it?¡±
¡°Actually, those people make me feel a little ufortable,¡± Ye-eun said, pointing to Lee Ju-ho and the other members of the party.
Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes at Ye-eun¡¯s answer.
¡°How so? Did those people turn you into an outcast or something?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not that, but...¡±
Ye-eun shook her head.
¡°Nothing, it¡¯s just a feeling.¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
Su-hyeun nodded his head at Ye-eun¡¯s reply, seemingly to understand her point of view. Delighted, Ye-eun patted his shoulder lightly.
¡°Indeed, we have the same thoughts, right?¡±
¡°Ah, just a little...¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s words trailed off. There was no other reason to continue, but there was one thing that he was sure of.
<>
As he looked at the ring orange dungeon entrance, Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t help but give a suspicious look.
<>
There was a minimum requirement of seven members in a party to enter the dungeon. The reason why the dungeon was the talk of the town was that nearly all members of the party had died.
But still, there was a point of doubt there. Seven members entered the dungeon, but only six were reported dead.
<>
It could have been a nned attack. There was no way of knowing what had happened at this ce. Su-hyeun had no intentions of finding out either. Even so, it wasn¡¯t his role to just leave the dungeon alone either.
<>
The first start to the year 2020.
As everyone got excited about the new year¡¯s arrival, lives were ended, bodies crouched in the dungeon without anyone¡¯s knowledge.
The dungeon¡¯s difficulty level was measured using colors ranging from red to purple. There were a total of seven levels.
The lowest level was the red color, and the highest level was the purple color. As the color got closer to purple, the dungeon¡¯s difficulty got higher.
But at this period in time, dungeons with blue-colored difficulty and higher rarely appeared here. To Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge, the highest difficulty, the purple dungeon, had only appeared once.
Fafnir.
The monster that was brought from the end of human history ¡ª it was the dungeon where Fafnir appeared.
<>
Su-hyeun looked around the dungeon¡¯s surroundings as he stepped in. The dungeon¡¯s entrance actually also acted as a door to another dimension. There was no rule that the cave where the dungeon¡¯s entrance appeared also determined that the dungeon itself was a cave. Perhaps it was coincidental, or for other reasons, that the entrance of the dungeon assumed that of a cave.
Of course, the inside of the dungeon was a lot more spacious than the original cave.
¡°It¡¯s quite chilly and cold in here.¡±
The rest nodded at Kim Ye-eun¡¯sment. Although it was a step apart, inside the dungeon was an entirely different dimension from reality.
Chilly weather was simr to the start of the winter season. Although the awakeners did not feel extremely cold, it was the atmosphere within the dungeon that made their skin more sensitive to their surroundings.
¡°Let¡¯s head inside first. I¡¯ll take the lead from here.¡±
Lee Ju-ho started walking in front. Amongst all seven members of the party, Lee Ju-ho was the only B-rank awakener. As one B-rank awakener had the power that was equivalent to five or six C-rank awakeners, it didn¡¯te off as suspicious that he should lead the party.
<>
Su-hyeun locked his eyes on both of them.
<>
Considering the rtionship amongst all the members here, only the two of them were the closest. If one of the awakeners were murdered, it would be natural to be suspicious of Lee Ju-ho, who was the highest-ranked awakener amongst them.
<>
The possibilities of either suspicion were valid. Since there were no leads in this case, Su-hyeun had to openly consider all the possibilities that he coulde up with.
Su-hyeun carefully observed each and every member from all sides while following the group from behind. Then, Lee Ju-ho suddenly stopped in his tracks.
¡°Please stop for a moment.¡±
Step¡ª
As per Lee Ju-ho¡¯s orders, all members came to a stop behind him. He had sensed something unusual right over the corner just ahead. Lee Ju-ho carefully walked over and stood beside it.
Lee Ju-ho peeked over the corner slightly and looked back at the members with widened eyes.
¡°What is it?¡± Lee Eun-mi, with the most impatient personality, asked. Lee Ju-ho bit his lips lightly and answered.
¡°...I think that something must have gone wrong here.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°Those guys...¡±
Lee Ju-ho pointed to the monsters that were just around the corner and replied.
¡°They aren¡¯t the usual monsters that should appear near the entrance of the dungeon.¡±
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s low voice trembled. Su-hyeun looked at Lee Ju-ho. He was the highest-ranked awakener there. He should have met lots of other monsters of that level and should have known very well about the dungeon¡¯s characteristics.
<>
The dungeon wasn¡¯t normal; it was a dungeon that evolved day by day. Su-hyeun was already aware that it wasn¡¯t an ordinary orange dungeon. The same went for Lee Ju-ho. Besides Su-hyeun, he was the most veteran amongst everyone else.
<>
Lee Ju-ho, too, could vaguely sense this fact. Although he might not have been as confident as Su-hyeun, he stood at a crossroad, finding it difficult to make a quick decision.
If so, then...
<>
Chapter 21
Chapter 21: Chapter 21
It would have been a difficult situation for anyone, but it was even more so for Lee Ju-ho, who had verified their identities with his own eyes.
Lee Ju-ho started his exnation.
¡°Lizardcops. A one-eyed lizard type monster with a size of over two meters. Aside from its muscr build, it is very agile and uses a particr type of magic. It¡¯s quite a tricky monster.¡±
¡°How many of them?¡±
¡°There are five of them.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t that number manageable?¡± Kim Ye-eun asked, wondering what the problem was. She suggested that Lee Ju-ho was such a skilled awakener that the Lizardcops shouldn¡¯t be much of a problem for him to deal with. The others started to agree with Kim Ye-eun¡¯s words. Amongst them, the one with the most confidence was Ahn Min-seok.
¡°If it¡¯s Lizardcops, I have hunted them in a previous dungeon. Handling five shouldn¡¯t be tough.¡± He spoke confidently, hitting his chest to imply that he wouldn¡¯t mind taking the lead. With an experienced awakener standing out, anxiety was lifted from everyone¡¯s faces.
However...
¡°I know that in normal dungeons, the stronger monsters usually appear much deeper, and only as we get nearer to the boss monster,¡± Su-hyeun, who had been staying silent, said. He had everyone¡¯s full attention. ¡°Handling five Lizardcops wouldn¡¯t be a problem now, but the number would continue to increase, or higher-level monsters would appearter on.¡±
The team seemed surprised at Su-hyeun, who had said that it was his first time joining a dungeon attack. Ahn Min-seok, who had the most experience in dungeon attacks, asked, ¡°That is the nature of some dungeons. Aren¡¯t there some dungeons where their difficulty level does not change even if we go deeper in?¡±
¡°If you focus on thinking about the best and not the worst as you progress...¡± Su-hyeun replied, not only just to Ahn Min-seok, but also to the other members, ¡°...you probably would not live for long.¡±
It was a lesson that Su-hyeun learned from living as an awakener all this time. They weren¡¯t just empty words, but something that he realized from his past experiences.
As he said, there were many types of dungeons. Some had only one boss, while some had a slight change in difficulty after exploring deeper into the dungeon. Some dungeons took the style of the Tower of Trials, giving special missions. One could only be called a skilled awakener if he remembered the various dungeons¡¯ characteristics and was able to deal with them in the right situations.
<>
In this regard, most of them, except Lee Ju-ho, seemed to care less about the situation at hand.
<>
He understood ¡ª most awakeners¡¯ deaths that were being reported happened in the Tower of Trials. Most people had probably thought that dungeon attacks weren¡¯t that dangerous. It was the same for Lee Ju-ho. His gaze seemed to indicate that he had no intention to give up on the dungeon attack.
It seemed that he was just surprised at the unexpected situation. Lee Ju-ho soon put on hisposed expression.
<>
Though Su-hyeun knew that they would not turn back, it was a pity. If only they were a tad more cautious and had presumed not the best, but the worst...
<>
¡°...Su-hyeun, didn¡¯t you say that this is your first dungeon attack?¡± Lee Eun-mi asked, feeling slightly offended.
Su-hyeun chuckled at her question and replied, ¡°Well, that¡¯s what I had heard from others. Shouldn¡¯t I gather more of such information since it¡¯s my first?¡±
¡°It¡¯s all just theories! What do you know?¡±
¡°Stop, stop.¡± Lee Ju-ho stopped Lee Eun-mi from raising her voice at Su-hyeun. ¡°Do you think it¡¯s good to get into a fight amongst ourselves before the actual battle? Furthermore, I think this dungeon¡¯s difficulty could increase, so let¡¯s not do this from the start.¡±
After the party¡¯s leader said those words, Lee Eun-mi could not do anything else to Su-hyeun. However, she still felt hurt, and her eyes continued to linger on Su-hyeun.
¡°Let¡¯s see if you¡¯re as capable as you speak,¡± she spat. She seemed to fiercely hold onto grudges. She was also quite fierce tempered, seeing that she didn¡¯t give up even after her previous words.
¡°Yes. Have a good look¡±
¡°Why, you!¡±
It seemed like Su-hyeun had no further intentions to continue the argument. Su-hyeun, who had intentionally provoked her, contemted slightly and looked at the others.
<>
Lee Eun-mi, Ahn Min-seok, and Kim Ye-eun. Lee Ju-ho and Kim Ba-reun... and thest guy who hadn¡¯t spoken a word up until now.
<>
The possibility of Lee Ju-ho being the catalyst had just lowered.
Though there was the possibility of it being purely an ident or an unintentional murder, Su-hyeun was more focused on finding the culprit who nned the killing.
Su-hyeun had always presumed the worst over the best. It would be a mistake if the person who had assumed the worst had only prepared for the best.
<>
¡°I will lead the party then.¡± Lee Ju-ho walked in front as he spoke. The dungeon attack had officially started.
There¡¯s no time for him to be immersed in his thoughts. Su-hyeun nodded his head and followed behind Lee Ju-ho.
<>
He was confused by his identity for a while. A C-rank awakener. A magic level of three, and a magic factor of 29. Su-hyeun was now known as an awakener of that standard.
<>
Schwing¡ª
Su-hyeun thought for a while as he pulled out the sword ¡ª which was mixed with Ether stones ¡ª that he had borrowed from the institute.
<>
Lee Ju-ho felt anxious from the start.
Five Lizardcops. They would be tricky for C-rank awakeners. They had to be on their toes when facing them.
Lee Ju-ho had been startled at the sight of the Lizardcops after they first entered the dungeon, but that was not the end of his problems. The other members who joined the dungeon attack turned out to be a huge liability. Besides the fact that he had not verified their capabilities, their teamwork was rocky from the start.
<>
Lee Ju-ho slightly nced back at Su-hyeun, who was following right behind him.
<>
He could only be anxious since it was his first dungeon attack with this group. Though he had epted Su-hyeun just to fill up the positions, Lee Ju-ho realized the situation had just be tougher.
¡°Once I give the signal, Ahn Min-seok and Kim Su-hyeun will attack together. The remaining four will provide support from behind, and from there, Eun-mi and Ba-reun will move closer when they get the chance.¡±
A perfect order. He seemed to have quite a substantial amount of experience in dungeon attacks. Su-hyeun, too, was fully aware of how to manage attacks at situations like this.
¡°So...¡±
Lee Ju-ho turned around the corner and shouted.
¡°Let¡¯s go!¡±
Creak¡ª!
Lee Ju-ho was first to charge towards the Lizardcop, which was waiting around the corner. He pulled out a long sword and increased his speed by using magic. As a B-rank awakener, he used the skill Swift to distract the Lizardcops.
Pop, pop pop¡ª
Rip¡ª
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s long sword made a cut through the Lizardcop¡¯s stomach.
Step, step¡ª
Soon after, Lee Ju-ho went between the remaining Lizardcops. The Lizardcops released their long, sharp nails and swung, attacking Lee Ju-ho.
Whip¡ª
The Lizardcop¡¯s tail brushed past in front of his eyes. Lee Ju-ho¡¯s eyes widened at the attack that scratched his nose.
<>
They were more agile than he had known.
The flustered Lee Ju-ho hurriedly distanced himself from the Lizardcops, but the five Lizardcops followed Lee Ju-ho closely, as if angered by the human who had suddenly attacked them.
¡°Su-hyeun, Min-seok, you must be careful...¡± Lee Ju-ho turned to warn the other two men who were at the front lines attacking the Lizardcops with him.
But...
<>
He could not see Su-hyeun.
<>
As Lee Ju-ho was looking around for Su-hyeun.
Whack¡ª
A new form fell quickly from the sky and dived on the backs of the Lizardcops. The sh of a sword coincided with the Lizardcops¡¯ screams.
Rip¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form quickly moved between the Lizardcops as he pursued them in a sh. He stepped on the sudden swerve of the Lizardcops tail, leaped twice in the air, and shed the Lizardcop¡¯s eye with his sword.
Keeeek¡ª!
He was fast.
No, not just fast.
He was borate and urate. He made no unnecessary movements and without even using any special skills, Su-hyeun tackled the Lizardcops alone.
<>
A new C-rank awakener.
A rookie at dungeon attacks.
That was the Kim Su-hyeun that Lee Ju-ho knew.
Keeeeek¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword poked the Lizardcop¡¯s eye. The Lizardcop, which lost its only eye, screamed while covering its face with both hands.
Whish¡ª
At the same time, a thick tail flew towards Su-hyeun. He had already known that it would do this, so Su-hyeun leaped into the air and scanned the whole situation.
<>
There was one important thing to remember when dealing with Lizardcops, and that was to target its one and only eye. This was the only weakness of the Lizardcop. Compared to its other abilities, its sight was narrow andcking.
Of course, losing just its sight alone would not totally incapacitate the beast, as it still had its other keen senses. Still, losing its sight had primarily affected its fighting power.
Whip¡ª
Su-hyeun leaped in the air and circled above. He couldn¡¯t use skills like me because it was a skill that required a magic level of four.
Now, Su-hyeun could only make use of properties with a magic level of three. The same went for his magic factor, which could only be used up to a specific limit.
Luckily, it was enough to handle five Lizardcops.
<>
Su-hyeun stepped firmly on the cave¡¯s wall and charged towards the Lizardcops.
<>
A sharp sensation swept through his¡¯s body. The three Lizardcops were already focused on Su-hyeun. The distance between them was narrowed in an instant. The Lizardcop¡¯s tail made a rough swishing sound and pounded on Su-hyeun¡¯s face hard.
Boom¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form used Leap to narrow the distance, and appeared before them after getting past their tails.
Chapter 22
Chapter 22: Chapter 22
Woong¡ª
Magic pooled at the tip of the sword. At the same time, Su-hyeun¡¯s sword stabbed into the Lizardcop¡¯s eyes. Su-hyeun avoided the Lizardcop¡¯s nails while letting go of a scream. He drew his body in, sliding amongst their legs.
Creak¡ª
There was a Lizardcop standing at the back.
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form that had slid along the ground disappeared from that same position.
The Lizardcop lost track of Su-hyeun¡¯s movement, turned its head around, and found him soon after. It was looking in the wrong direction right from the start.
Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t situated left nor right, nor was he under it, but just right above.
Kyaaa¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword prated both the Lizardcop¡¯s eye and head. The once screaming Lizardcop had started to go on a rampage, but Su-hyeun did not let go of his sword.
Crack¡ª
Su-hyeun wrapped his other arm around the Lizardcop¡¯s neck and strangled it. The Lizardcop shook its body harder to resist the force.
[You used the skill Berserk.]
It was a skill that maximized one¡¯s physical abilities depending on one¡¯s fatigue, health, and blood loss which Su-hyeun obtained back when he fought the second floor¡¯s boss, the Shayres¡¯ chief.
For a long time, Su-hyeun had been working hard to increase his proficiency with this skill. As a result, though there might have been a slight loss in proficiency, Su-hyeun could now activate the skill at any time.
[Your Strength has been increased partially.]
[Your Agility has increased partially.]
[Your Health has been lost partially.]
Su-hyeun used all of his avable strength to strangle the Lizardcop. After being stabbed in its eye and head, the strangled Lizardcop¡¯s body stiffened.
The result might have been different if it was unharmed, but since its head was punctured, it didn¡¯t have much strength.
Flop¡ª
After Su-hyeun let go, the Lizardcop¡¯s body fell to the ground.
The others looked nkly at Su-hyeun, who flushed slightly at their stares.
¡°What are you doing?¡±
Su-hyeun looked at the party¡¯s leader, Lee Ju-ho, and spoke.
¡°Not dealing with the others.¡±
One Lizardcop died but the remaining four Lizardcops each lost their only eye and vision.
Moreover, in a situation where his power was predominate, everything had been well set up. The battle against the Lizardcops ended quickly.
As the battle ended, Lee Ju-ho verified if there were any casualties. Indeed, there were none.
¡°You fought better than I had expected,¡± Lee Ju-ho said as he approached Su-hyeun.
Su-hyeun was getting rid of the blood on his sword after the battle.
¡°Is that apliment? Thank you, I guess.¡±
¡°Are you possibly the Kim Su-hyeun everyone is talking about?¡± Even if he knew that the possibility was low, all he could do now was rify. The abilities which he had showcased earlier were unbelievable, much like the acimed Kim Su-hyeun.
¡°Just think of me as an awakener who fights rtively well.¡±
¡°Mm...¡±
What an ambiguous reply.
But it was obviously not positive. Lee Ju-ho had thought that Su-hyeun probably thought it rude to be asked such a question.
<>
Lee Ju-ho was an awakener with a magic level of four. He could at least sense that the magic properties which Su-hyeun had were not of the same standards as he had.
Regardless of how well Su-hyeun was as a fighter, it was impossible for him as a C-rank awakener to change his ranking.
It was an unnecessary suspicion. Lee Ju-ho thought of it that way and shook his head. Anyway, he was d to see that Su-hyeun had fought well up until now.
¡°If you have the chance, do take a special rank evaluation. ording to your standards, there shouldn¡¯t be a problem for you to obtain a B-rank.¡±
A special rank evaluation does not take into ount one¡¯s magic level or factor but instead looks upon one¡¯s stats andbat sense and other attributes to proceed with the assessment. It was the type of evaluation that rarely took ce as it was cumbersome and also rare for an awakener to be that capable, exceeding his magic level.
But Lee Ju-ho thought that Su-hyeun had better capabilitiespared to his magic level and factor.
<>
At the same time, when Lee Ju-ho was flustered at how strong the Lizardcops were, he was also able to verify his team member¡¯s abilities personally. He was relieved that his ally had such extraordinary abilities, though it might not have been the same if he were an enemy.
¡°Thank you for saying that. I will definitely consider it afterpleting this dungeon attack.¡±
Su-hyeun looked around after replying Lee Ju-ho. Ever since he showcased his abilities, Su-hyeun was always observing his team member¡¯s facial expressions. He wanted to find out who else felt hostility for the fact that there was a member who had outstanding skills.
<>
After gathering after himself, Su-hyeun turned and followed the party from behind.
<>
The monsters that appeared subsequently were of simr standards as the Lizardcops. Still, the others knew that Lee Ju-ho was stronger than the monsters, so they weren¡¯t too big a deal.
Above all, Su-hyeun¡¯s performance had exceeded expectations. Su-hyeun continued with a simr performance as the B-rank awakener Lee Ju-ho.
¡°This dungeon attack should be smooth sailing if it continues on like this.¡±
¡°Yeah. Aspared to when we first entered, the difficulty has not increased. Rather, the monsters that appeared subsequently were about the same as the Lizardcops.¡±
They had let their guards down. Lee Ju-ho, too, had no longer felt threatened nor any danger aspared to the start.
Kim Ye-eun was stuck closely to Su-hyeun.
¡°Did you know?¡±
¡°What is there to now?¡± Su-hyeun felt ufortable with Kim Ye-eun sticking around him and trying to engage in a conversation with him. It was annoying, and the topics were mostly about his personal life.
¡°Aren¡¯t you acting a little ufortable?¡±
¡°Because you¡¯re always asking about things that are difficult to answer.¡±
¡°I want to give you a piece of good information. Don¡¯t you want it?¡±
Good information? Su-hyeun shut his mouth, contemting whether or not to listen to it. ording to his experience up until now, she would continue to speak from here.
And sure enough...
¡°You know, those two people there.¡±
Her eyes darted quickly to Lee Ju-ho and Kim Ba-reun, who were both leading the team in the front.
¡°I dug up some information about them before; they have quite a bad reputation.¡±
¡°What do you mean by that?¡±
¡°There were a lot of problems when they were dividing the resources after dungeon attacks. They either divide resources unfairly to their team members or would request for more resources bying up with excuses using the idents which happened in the dungeon.¡±
Su-hyeun seemed to have understood where she wasing from. For someone who had experienced dungeon attacks for quite a while, it would bemon for him to have done this if he is obsessed with money. They would argue on the distribution of the Ether stones. If some disagreed, they would use violence on them. Such awakeners would never have epted others stronger than themselves.
¡°I¡¯ll remember that,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
Kim Ye-eun gave a curious look at Su-hyeun, who did not respond much to such a sensitive story.
In fact, it was not something that Su-hyeun was interested in.
<>
There were tons of people like them with such evil character. The real dangerous ones were those who created idents just to reduce the number of resources that would be divided amongst the group.
ording to Kim Ye-eun¡¯s words, at least Lee Ju-ho wasn¡¯t that bad. But of course, he wasn¡¯t so nice to be entirely cleared of that possibility either.
Although they had entered quite deep into the dungeon, there weren¡¯t any more monsters that appeared. The scale of the dungeon was more extensive than expected. It seemed that there was no end to it even after having walked for hours.
<>
The dungeon got bigger as they explored further in. The dungeon was initially 20 meters wide but had now grown five timesrger.
<>
¡°There ¡ª isn¡¯t that a door over there?¡± Ahn Min-seok narrowed his eyes and squinted into the distance.
A huge door was located at the end of this dungeon. The thick and dark-colored door seemed to be the entrance to another dungeon.
¡°A door? In this kind of ce?¡±
It was the type of door that even the most experienced Lee Ju-ho had never seen before.
Although he had entered dungeons simr to this one various times, he had never even heard of one that had an artificial iron door in it.
¡°What shall we do?¡± The same anxiousness that he had felt when they first entered the dungeon returned.
Ahn Min-seok hit his chest hard at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s question. ¡°What do you mean? We should obviously enter. What difference does a door make?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. This door might be the end of this dungeon, too. It¡¯s ridiculous to turn back now.¡±
Most of the responses were in agreement. Su-hyeun watched them silently.
Lee Ju-ho turned the question to Su-hyeun.
¡°Mr. Su-hyeun, what do you think?¡±
¡°I was hoping to turn back...¡±
Was it an unexpected answer?
The others¡¯ expressions stiffened at Su-hyeun¡¯s words. Su-hyeun then changed his words slightly. ¡°But if everyone is in agreement, I¡¯ll follow as well.¡±
¡°Phew.¡±
¡°Ha.¡±
A thankful sigh of relief.
With this, everyone was in agreement. Although Lee Ju-ho was conflicted, eventually, he had no thoughts to turn back. Lee Ju-ho grabbed the doorknob as he nodded his head.
¡°Then, I¡¯ll open it now.¡±
Creak¡ª
As he pushed forward, the heavy iron door opened. Lee Ju-ho took the lead, and each of the members entered into the dark.
Behind the door was a vast and spacious cave. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes narrowed as he looked around the dimly lit ce.
<>
The others might have thought that this was the end of the dungeon, but Su-hyeun thought otherwise.
<>
The amount of magic felt in the dungeon from earlier was different. The others probably had felt the same, as they started talking with anxiety in their voices.
[Wee into the dungeon.]
[The trial will start from this moment on.]
Suddenly, a message appeared not only in Su-hyeun¡¯s but also in everyone¡¯s minds.
Creak¡ª
Boom¡ª!
The door behind them closed tightly with a massive sound.
Chapter 23
Chapter 23: Chapter 23
Act 1
¡°W-what?¡±
¡°The door...¡±
¡°Damn it, it won¡¯t open!¡±
Bam bam¡ª!
Even Ahn Min-seok, who was at the back of the party, knocked hard on the door. No matter how hard he swung his magic-filled fist, the door did not budge. Everyone¡¯s expressions were flustered at the thought of being locked in.
Su-hyeun, who had no intention of getting out, observed the surroundings quietly. With this vast space, the possibilities of various missions could be endless.
<>
He had gone through these types of missions. They would only appear in dungeons above the yellow level.
Simrly to the Tower of Trials, only when the mission was cleared could the team proceed with their dungeon attack.
What the team had gone through up until now couldn¡¯t be counted as the dungeon at all. It was merely the dungeon¡¯s entrance, also known as a warm-up stage.
¡°A trial out of nowhere... What is this...¡± Even Lee Ju-ho was taken aback.
And unlike before, they were another level of flustered.
A dungeon that gave missions. Lee Ju-ho had heard of dungeons like these, too, but the main problem was that the dungeon was of a higher level, too difficult for them to handle with their own strengths.
<>
Just then, a bell rang in everyone¡¯s mind.
[The trial begins now.]
[All of you have been locked in here. To escape, you will have to choose one of two ways.]
[First, survive this trial. A group of monsters will attack you every 30 minutes. You can escape if you sessfully defend 10 attacks in total.]
[Second, use the key to get through the door opposite this room. A horde of monsters wille out from there. Escape from them first. Your safety will not be guaranteed.]
[The trial will begin in 10 seconds.]
The trial had been exined quite thoroughly. It was a mission that was often given in the Tower of Trials. Although it did not have the same scenarios as the ones Su-hyeun had encountered, the rules were simple enough for this trial.
But of course...
<>
A total of 10 attacks.
Perhaps the attacks would be stronger each wave. The minimum standard would be the ones that they had encountered earlier.
<>
The dungeons weren¡¯t made at random. Except for the lowest red dungeons, most dungeons were made with a fixed frame, simr structure, or even a trap.
Su-hyeun epted that the monsters they met outside were a warning ¡ª if he couldn¡¯t take those on, he would not have the right to take on the dungeon¡¯s trial.
Of course, hunting down the monsters and clearing the trial were two different matters.
<>
Su-hyeun checked the opposite door, which the system had mentioned.
<>
The second choice.
Open the door opposite, and escape from the horde of monsters that woulde from there. Compared to the first choice, it was a choice that could never be considered safe.
¡°Now, now, what should we do?¡± Lee Eun-mi asked with an anxious look.
Their way out was blocked. The tightly closed door did not seem like it would be broken or even open again.
¡°First... I think we¡¯ll have to clear this trial.¡±
Su-hyeun nodded his head at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s reply. Indeed, Lee Ju-ho was the fastest at making decisions in the group.
<>
No, they wouldn¡¯t make it. Zero percent possibility.
He was certain because it was something that had been verified once in the future, a verified truth.
Only one variable had changed from that future and it was that Su-hyeun was here now.
Formerly, everyone had died in this trial. There was no exception.
They had two choices and there was no way of telling which was better.
<>
Su-hyeun had made enough verifications on the dungeon¡¯s difficulty. Although Lee Ju-ho had great strength, the other members did not. With this standard, one could not even make it past the yellow level.
¡°What about the method? Which would be better?¡± Kim Ba-reun asked Lee Ju-ho¡¯s opinion.
Lee Ju-ho opened his mouth while thinking.
¡°What does Mr. Su-hyeun think?¡± He turned the arrow towards Su-hyeun.
It seemed that Lee Ju-ho thought Su-hyeun¡¯s capabilities would be second to himself.
Should they fight the horde in ten divisions or take them on all at once?
However, if one chose to open the door opposite, they would be given the option to run, which also meant that it was possible to escape.
But...
¡°We mustn¡¯t open that door,¡± Su-hyeun replied, without thinking twice.
It was an obvious answer.
¡°Why did you say that?¡± Lee Ju-ho needed a more detailed answer.
The others had the same reactions. Some had thought it would be more convenient and better to open the door and escape from the horde of monsters.
¡°Didn¡¯t you already receive the exnation? When we open that door, our only option is to run.¡±
¡°Ah...¡± Lee Ju-ho nodded at Su-hyeun¡¯s answer, seemingly to have understood.
But there were, of course, some who could not understand. Ahn Min-seok had the words ¡°I don¡¯t get it¡± written tantly across his face.
Su-hyeun continued his exnation after letting out a sigh.
¡°When the door isn¡¯t open, we have the option to defend. But once the door is opened, this option will change to escape. So, which choice would have a higher difficulty?¡±
¡°It would be, of course, to escape.¡± An obvious answer.
But Ahn Min-seok¡¯s opinion was different.
¡°But instead of fighting and winning this, isn¡¯t running an easier way out? There¡¯s no need to fight.¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. Instead of defending the 10 divided attacks, it would be more convenient to just escape from a huge horde of monsters.¡±
¡°Then why...¡±
¡°Our aim isn¡¯t to survive, but rather to continue on the dungeon attack.¡±
¡°Ah...¡± Ahn Min-seok had finally realized the main point which he had been missing out on.
The trial and the mission.
As he was too focused on those, he had forgotten the most crucial part. They weren¡¯t at the Tower of Trials but in reality. And within a vast dungeon at that.
Unlike the Tower of Trials, where one had to only focus on surviving and clear the trials, in the dungeons, one had to put his focus only on the dungeon attack itself.
So, it was only right for them to put their focus on the dungeon attack and not on running.
<>
It was evident as to why they had wanted to run away from this trial. In a situation as dangerous as this, it would be safer and more convenient to make the choice of escaping.
An unfamiliar ce, an unfamiliar situation, an unpredictable number of monsters, and a fight that no one wanted to happen...
[You have five more minutes.]
How friendly.
As the countdown reached five minutes, the door opposite shook slightly. The system seemed to be urging them to make a decision fast, but the members had already made their choices.
¡°As expected... It would be better to wait.¡±
Probably thinking that Su-hyeun¡¯s words were more appropriate, Lee Ju-ho voted for his choice.
There were no oppositions.
<>
Su-hyeun drew his sword, stood at his spot, and closed his eyes.
Five minutes, an extremely long time, had started.
[You have one minute left. Please prepare for the attack.]
Cr¡ª creak¡ª
Kong, kong¡ª!
Grrrr¡ª
The door opposite opened slightly.
The monsters¡¯ cries could be heard from that door, which was left ajar. Although they couldn¡¯t break through the door and rush in, they could guess that there were countless monsters beyond that door.
¡°Um, that door wouldn¡¯t open suddenly without notice, right?¡±
¡°Ayy, it couldn¡¯t be...¡±
¡°But we¡¯re inside the dungeon now. There weren¡¯t any guarantees that the system would keep its promise...¡±
The wavering voices were full of anxiety.
As this was their first real trial, it was quite scary. The members had suspicions that the door might open without any notice, and the horde of monsters would rush out.
<<30 seconds.>>
Su-hyeun had been counting down the seconds since the five-minute mark from earlier.
The trial given by the dungeon would be starting soon.
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun took the lead and walked towards the door.
The door might not open fully at all. As it was only the first stage, only a small group of monsters would be let out through the door and then closed.
<>
Whichever was the case, it wouldn¡¯t change the fact that 10 groups of monsters would rush out from the door wave after wave.
The system never lies. That was an absolute rule and principle that would not change, even in the future.
Step¡ª
Su-hyeun strode across the cave and opened his eyes. He had injected some magic into his sword¡¯s de.
Looking at Su-hyeun, who took the lead without fear, their murmurs stopped altogether; gathering the army¡¯s morale was that easy.
As long as one had shown no fear and stepped up first, that courage was contagious. More urately, the members¡¯ fear had lessened. If one saw another who felt no fear in the same situation, it would make him believe that the situation which they were currently in now was not dangerous at all.
¡°10 seconds.¡±
Su-hyeun pooled magic in his voice and spoke. That voice was heard loud and clear in his team members¡¯ minds.
¡°Please be prepared.¡±
After those words, Lee Ju-ho quickly walked up to Su-hyeun¡¯s side.
The same went for Ahn Min-seok. Instinctively, they got into each of their own roles and went into positions.
10 seconds. It was sufficient for each of them to get into their own positions.
It was a time that no one had the freedom to be concerned over. The moment when everyone was prepared to fight the monsters.
m¡ª!
Kyaaaa¡ª!
As the gigantic iron door opened, monsters came rushing out from behind it. The number of monsters well over 10.
Boom¡ª!
The door that had been wide open closed in a sh. It seemed that this was the number of monsters for the first wave.
There was a wide range of monsters.
Gorger Ravens, Moss Smanders, Lizardcops, and ck Spiders.
They were all familiar monsters.
Rip¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s feet slipped to the front.
St¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form quickly leaped into the air.
<>
Su-hyeun had already decided which monsters to attack first the moment he saw the group of monsters.
The Gorger Ravens were monsters with an extraordinary head. As they could fly in the air, there was a higher possibility that their team members positioned behind would be attacked.
sh¡ª!
The Gorger Ravens¡¯ sharp ws came flying towards Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
Chapter 24
Chapter 24: Chapter 24
At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s new form had disappeared.
Caw¡ª?
The Gorger Ravens, which momentarily lost their target, nced around left and right in search of him.
Stab¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s strong hand grasped the Gorger Raven¡¯s wing tightly to prevent further movement.
¡°Firstly...¡±
Kyaaaa¡ª!
As the Gorger Raven¡¯s wings were broken, it lost its sense of direction.
Caw¡ª!
¡°One wing.¡±
Su-hyeun, who had his fist in the air, mmed straight down onto the raven¡¯s back.
The raven¡¯s wing, which has already been broken, could not ovee the force and fell to the ground.
Swick¡ª
Su-hyeun stepped on the falling Gorger Raven¡¯s back and leapt into the air.
The only monster that could fly in the air was the Gorger Raven.
The other monsters were on the ground.
Taking the lead, Lee Ju-ho pulled out his sword and blocked the iing monsters while Ahn Min-seok shielded the others by swinging the knuckles on his fist. The long distant support members went on an attack spree on the monsters. They were all fighting well in their allocated positions.
<>
True, one would have to struggle from the start and have to paint the remaining picture ordingly.
Now, all that was left was for them to color the picture. Su-hyeun trusted that they would be able to do their part.
<>
There was no way he could support the fight upfront right now. They didn¡¯t seem to be in danger either.
Su-hyeun went to the monsters¡¯ rear. The eleven monsters quickly fell apart, unable to withstand the simultaneous attacks.
Rip¡ª!
The thick spider¡¯s abdomen was shed in half, and green blood spilled out.
As if a habit, Su-hyeun shook off the blood on his sword after he got rid of thest of the monsters. They had defended three rounds of attacks up until now.
After the first round of attack, they were given 10 minutes of rest. Following that, the monsters¡¯ attacks continued. With this pattern, the members were able to defend themselves from the monsters.
<>
The exhausted Lee Ju-ho looked at the rxed Su-hyeun who was wiping his sword, unlike the rest of the group.
<>
The opponents were never easy. The number of monsters entering through the door was increasing. Furthermore, the monsters¡¯ levels weren¡¯t decreasing, taking a toll on everyone physically and mentally.
In fact, the others were sitting in a corner without any words. Their mana had also reached their lowest points.
<>
Throughout the battle, Lee Ju-ho looked at Su-hyeun as if he were bewitched.
<>
Though he had that feeling before the trial started, Lee Ju-ho always felt amazed at Su-hyeun¡¯s fighting. It wasn¡¯t because of his high magic level, outstanding stats, or a wide variety of skills. Such things were irrelevant.
It was purely his fighting ability.
Su-hyeun knew how to utilize his physical abilities and made use of them to fight to his advantage. In fact, it was as if he were showing others how to use the 100 percent potential in their own physical and magical abilities.
¡°Isn¡¯t it embarrassing?¡± Kim Ba-reun spoke, walking up to Lee Ju-ho and plopped down next to him.
Kim Ba-reun was looking at Su-hyeun as well.
¡°Really... wondering if that guy is really a C-rank awakener like me.¡±
¡°That could be the truth since there wasn¡¯t much of a difference between both of your magical skills.¡±
¡°Really? Then what do you think sets us apart?¡±
¡°Do I really have to say it out loud?¡±
It was a question not worth even thinking about.
¡°Just... It¡¯s just a gift.¡±
Not everyone was able to have such fighting skills. Even Lee Ju-ho, who had joined countless dungeon attacks, could not yet imitate such fights.
¡°A gift...¡±
¡°Why? Are you jealous?¡±
¡°What about you? Don¡¯t you feel so?¡±
¡°Well, a little.¡± Lee Ju-ho muttered after letting out a deep sigh. ¡°Instead of jealous... I¡¯m more envious.¡± Jealousy was a feeling that one would experience when the shoe fit. Now, Lee Ju-ho just felt envious of Su-hyeun, who had such gifts.
¡°Hey.¡±
¡°What is it?¡±
¡°After this dungeon attack ends... I¡¯m considering climbing the tower.¡±
Kim Ba-reun was shocked at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words. ¡°Are you for real?¡±
¡°Why are you so surprised?¡±
¡°Wait, isn¡¯t it obvious? You were just thinking that it¡¯s a joke to be climbing the towers a few days back.¡±
¡°Right. I did say that.¡± Lee Ju-ho looked at Su-hyeun with a bright face.
¡°Honestly... I was conceited.¡±
<<¡°You really don¡¯t wish to climb up any further?¡±
A long time ago, when Kim Ba-reun had asked him the same question, Lee Ju-ho replied with a sneer.
¡°It¡¯s enough at this point. What¡¯s there to risk your life for by going further?¡±
¡°Hey, but if we continue going up...¡±
¡°Forget it, it¡¯s enough. This is just nice.¡±>>
He really was conceited.
He understood now. The real thing existed separately, and it wasn¡¯t too far. And now, he wasn¡¯t close to being strong enough.
¡°I must thank that friend when we get out of here. If it weren¡¯t for him, we would have all been dead... I wouldn¡¯t be able to stay sane, too.¡±
He was grateful to Su-hyeun. He felt his mind clearing up a bit. He couldn¡¯t see the need to climb up the tower any further before, but now he was given a new motivation and determination to do so.
¡°Hmm...¡±
Kim Ba-reun ced his chin on top of his knees and asked, ¡°Could it be real?¡±
Lee Ju-ho turned around, ignoring Kim Ba-reun¡¯s question and asked, ¡°Really?¡±
¡°I meant Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°...Ah, are you talking about that again?¡± Lee Ju-ho turned once more and looked at Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun was sitting against the wall and resting up.
¡°I had thought that he wasn¡¯t the one at first.¡±
He was certain.
A mere C-rank awakener. The gap was too wide for the Su-hyeun who stood before them to be the heavily rumored Kim Su-hyeun. But after witnessing his abilities, his thoughts had changed.
Maybe... They could be the same person.
<>
A sudden question shed across his mind.
How could he only be a mere C-rank awakener while having such abilities?
If one had climbed the Tower of Trials for a year with those abilities and had umted an extraordinary amount of achievement points, his level must have been way above that.
<>
But it was hard to imagine that two awakeners of the same name would have the same characteristics. It was unlikely that such coincidence existed.
<>
Lee Ju-ho shook his head clear.
Suchplicated thoughts would only affect his rest time. Survival was of utmost importance now.
¡°Ha, ha¡ª.¡±
¡°Huff. Huff¡ª.¡±
Lee Eun-mi and Ahn Min-seok took deep breaths while looking down at the blood on the floor.
It was crazily exhausting.
¡°Now... how many rounds are we left with?¡±
¡°Ah, it should be thest round now.¡±
Both of them were unable to reply immediately, as they seemed to be quite exhausted. The other members were almost the same.
Su-hyeun was rmed that most of them were too exhausted to speak.
<>
They had sessfully defended nine rounds of attacks.
Monsters¡¯ corpses were piling up on the ground, and the members were both physically and mentally exhausted. More than anything else, the number of monsters pouring out from that door was increasing.
<>
Lee Ju-ho was probably the only one with quite a bit of stamina left. As a powerful awakener, he had better physical abilities and skillspared to the rest of the party.
<>
As if exhausted, Su-hyeun too sat against the wall and looked around at the other members.
<>
When the rest had copsed and were exhausted, Su-hyeun found the only one who was moving.
<>
Stomp, stomp¡ª
There wasn¡¯t much time left until thest attack.
Beyond the door, noise could be heard as the monsters kept banging against the door.
Slide¡ª
She slowly approached the door. As she came closer, the monsters¡¯ cries and anger could be heard much more clearly.
<>
The monsters would rush out from there.
A nervous moment.
She reached her hands out. She grabbed the doorknob and picked up the key was that hanging there.
Until now, no one else had spotted her actions.
<>
Though it was a little disturbing, it wasn¡¯t tough.
It was a skill that was not obtainable through stores, but through the trials: Invisibility.
It was a skill that had yet to be revealed until now.
Although B-rank awakener Lee Ju-ho had a good chance of getting caught with invisibility, she had waited until everyone was exhausted.
Even Lee Ju-ho, too, was too exhausted to recognize her existence.
<>
Creak¡ª
She ced the key into the lock. At that moment, a voice could be heard from behind.
¡°There, over there!¡±
It was toote.
Click¡ª
The key turned, and the door that had been obstructing the monsters¡¯ way started to open slowly.
[A minuteter, the monsters will rush out.]
[The door behind has opened. Escape to survive.]
Great, it¡¯s done.
¡°Well done.¡±
¡°...?¡±
She turned around at the voice that spoke. A familiar face came up close to him.
It was Su-hyeun.
¡°H, how...¡±
No, there wasn¡¯t time for that.
Soon, she left her position and escaped quickly.
Flick¡ª
¡°What do you mean, how.¡±
ck¡ª!
Su-hyeun grabbed Kim Ye-eun¡¯s neck quickly. Before she knew it, she had passed by him.
¡°Cough!¡±
Kim Ye-eun¡¯s eyes widened.
She could not understand what was happening around her.
¡®Just... how...¡¯
A rare skill, invisibility, which she had obtained by luck through passing a trial.
She was now in the state of invisibility, transparent to the naked eyes of others.
It was the effect of the invisibility skill that killed her existence and made her transparent within a specific range.
Unless it was under normal circumstances, now the members were all exhausted, and she had thought she couldpletely kill her existence. The right time was now.
¡®How did he find me?¡¯
No, before that...
¡®Just when, was he behind me?¡¯
¡°Cough, cough!¡±
An iprehensible situation.
Just as she had opened the door with the key, Su-hyeun approached her from behind.
No, he didn¡¯t approach her.
¡®No way... He waited until I opened the door...¡¯
But why?
¡°I wondered when you would make your move.¡±
m¡ª!
Su-hyeun grabbed her neck and plummeted her on the ground.
Kim Ye-eun felt pain rushing throughout her bones as she was forced into the ground.
Her questions still remain unsolved.
¡®Did... he knew everything?¡¯
It was as if he was waiting for her to make her move.
He knew of her existence. Even so, he had been waiting for her.
¡®But why?¡¯
He could have stopped her from opening the door.
¡®Moreover, he told me earlier that I had done well...¡¯
Confusion, fear, and questions were tangled up in her mind. She could not escape from Su-hyeun¡¯s firm grip.
¡°Was this a test from the Dump Guild?¡±
Kim Ye-eun¡¯s eyes widened in shock once more at Su-hyeun¡¯s whispers.
Su-hyeun¡¯s mouth twisted at her reaction. It was a look of displeasure and contempt.
Dump, a guild that was created and meant for the criminals who were abandoned.
It was a group that Su-hyeun had despised and detested the most.
¡°I was just guessing... But it seems that I¡¯m right.¡±
¡°W... wait...¡±
¡°What do you mean wait?¡±
Grind, grind¡ª
As Su-hyeun added strength in his grip, Kim Ye-eun¡¯s neck began to break.
¡°In fact, I had intended to kill you even if it wasn¡¯t the truth.¡±
Chapter 25
Chapter 25: Chapter 25
Act 2
Drip, drip¡ª
Su-hyeun looked at the corpse of Kim Ye-eun, whose neck had been broken.
Su-hyeun first had his suspicions when she first started talking to him at the dungeon¡¯s entrance. Whatever her intention, it was thanks to her that she caught Su-hyeun¡¯s attention.
¡°Honestly, those people felt ufortable.¡±
He had the same opinion.
Su-hyeun had already known what would happen in the future and had his suspicions, but she was different. Just based purely on her intuition, she felt strange suspicions towards them.
But...
<>
There was nothing suspicious about Lee Ju-ho and the others from Su-hyeun¡¯s point of view. At least, Su-hyeun could not understand the reason why they had felt ufortable.
Subsequently, Kim Ye-eun had been trying to strike a conversation with Su-hyeun from the start.
They were suspicious of each other and viewed each other negatively, but he wouldn¡¯t have been sure with just that reason alone.
<>
Su-hyeun had been observing the members¡¯ faces while he was fighting the monsters for the first time.
There were only two whose faces had turned foul: Kim Ye-eun and Lee Eun-mi.
Unlike the others who were relieved that there was someone whose skills were outstanding, both their facial expressions were not good. Amongst them, Su-hyeun was more suspicious of Kim Ye-eun.
Although Lee Eun-mi¡¯s face was openly flushed and angry at Su-hyeun, Kim Ye-eun had tried to hide her expression.
<>
But of course, she shouldn¡¯t bebeled as a real awakener of the Dump Guild. Technically speaking, she was one of the few hopefuls who wished to be part of the criminal syndicate, Dump Guild. Whatever was bound to happen here could be rted to one of the few special requirements or rites of the Dump Guild.
<>
It was several years before Dump Guild was made known to the public. Up until now, only a few people knew of its existence.
¡°This... what should we do?¡±
¡°What do you mean? We¡¯ll have to make our escape!¡± Su-hyeun looked at the flustered party.
Thankfully, the back door was open. The once boastful Ahn Min-seok was now the most cowardly and was already running towards the wide-open door.
Lee Ju-ho shouted towards Su-hyeun.
¡°Come over here quickly! We must run!¡±
How could he still be called the party¡¯s leader?
Judging from his actions, Kim Ye-eun¡¯s information about Lee Ju-ho seemed to be false. Truthfully, it didn¡¯t really matter.
¡°Please return first.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°If we escape just like that, we¡¯ll all die.¡±
[You have 30 seconds left.]
There was no time.
Lee Ju-ho shouted onest time in urgency.
¡°What are you actually nning to do now?¡±
¡°Leave me alone and run. I will follow behind soon after.¡±
¡°What nonsense are you spouting...¡±
[You have 20 seconds left.]
Time seemed to be flowing past at a high speed. The others had already started running.
His friend Kim Ba-reun was shouting at the top of his lungs, asking him toe over. She was frustrated since he was still hesitating when even a second was too precious. Kim Ye-eun¡¯s betrayal was something that could be dealt withter.
¡°Don¡¯t worry and run. I have confidence that I can escape sessfully.¡±
Was there something else that was left? Lee Ju-ho, who had never seen Su-hyeun use his other skills, soon made up his mind.
¡°If so... I do hope to see you alive and well.¡± Lee Ju-ho turned and started running towards the back door.
He used Swift to make his run, and soon his figure ran into the distance.
[You have 10 seconds left.]
10 seconds.
What an urgent situation.
But now that everyone had left, Su-hyeun felt a sense of relief.
¡°I¡¯m finally alone.¡±
He stretched his neck and then his legs.
He felt stiffer after a long period of restricted movement. He had to walk on thin ice with others around, and it was more inconvenient and ufortable than he thought.
<>
Su-hyeun grinned at the thought of his distance with Lee Ju-ho.
<>
As they quickly escaped, the distance between them lengthened. Furthermore, Lee Ju-ho had no time to take care of Su-hyeun in this situation.
¡°Now...¡±
Creak, creak¡ª
The locked door started to open slowly.
Soon, thest message appeared.
[Please survive.]
m¡ª!
The door opened.
Kyaaa¡ª!
Hundreds of monsters rushed out in unison. The massive horde approached Su-hyeun.
Light fire wrapped around Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
Su-hyeun, who used me on his body and sword, grinned.
¡°Now, I¡¯m feeling more refreshed.¡±
Kyaaaa¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form slid through the monsters with the me.
At that moment.
sh¡ª!
St¡ª!
Blood gushed out from the monsters. Charred flesh was scattered, and red hot mes rose. The monsters faltered back.
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form rose and blocked the way of some of the monsters that retreated.
¡°Where are you heading?¡±
Grrrr¡ª
Was it the system¡¯s instinct?
The monsters that were still in front of Su-hyeun were still trying to chase the other members who were running towards the back door ¡ª the monsters did not immediately head for Su-hyeun, as if they were slightly intimidated by him.
Stomp¡ª
Su-hyeun closed the back door with his hand. As therge door closed loudly, Su-hyeun turned around.
¡°If you want to go past me...¡±
[You have used the skill Leap.]
[Excluding the target, all other surrounding enemies have perceived you as their enemy.]
At that moment, the monsters¡¯ eyes that were looking at Su-hyeun had turned red.
¡°Kill me first, you little cowards.¡±
The legs that were running like crazy suddenly stopped.
Soon, Lee Ju-ho had caught up with Kim Ba-reun. He was alreadygging behind the party and suddenly stopped in his tracks.
¡°Hey, what are you doing?¡±
¡°I just don¡¯t think that this is nice of us.¡±
¡°What?¡±
At that moment, Kim Ba-reun could not understand Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words, but it did not actually take him too long to understand.
¡°Go ahead first.¡±
Lee Ju-ho then turned around. Fully aware of what Lee Ju-ho was thinking, Kim Ba-reun blocked him in his way.
¡°Hey, are you crazy? How are you going to help him?¡±
¡°Well, you can¡¯t be so sure. Su-hyeun might survive if I go to his aid.¡±
Why had this thoughte in sote?
At the time, the sudden thought of facing death had instilled fear in him. Thus he made the decision to escape there and then. He did not know that he would regret his decision now. He could have run even faster, but the reason why he could not was also because of his conscience.
¡°He might have survived it, too. No, definitely...¡± Lee Ju-ho might have made up his mind as he walked past Kim Ba-reun, who was standing in front of him.
¡°Hey, if we just make our escape and live well and proper...¡±
Lee Ju-ho tapped on Kim Ba-reun¡¯s shoulder and spoke.
¡°How am I going to live with this shame in the future?¡±
Lee Ju-ho turned around and ran in the opposite direction, running faster than before.
The whole way back, he kept thinking about whether it was right to have made his escape or if he should have returned.
He was unable to make a swift decision as he was faced with death. His legs ran slower.
At that moment, if he could not make a decision, it felt as if he would regret it his whole life.
There were times when he could only make decisions based on his emotions rather than being objective, and that was the exact moment for Lee Ju-ho now. It made him feel better after he made up his decision to return.
Eventually, Lee Ju-ho ran without rest in the direction towards where the monsters pouring out.
That strange feeling had been around for quite some time.
No matter how far they ran, they never met the monsters that were chasing them. Regardless if Su-hyeun could have stopped the monsters, he would not have been able to stop all of them.
They definitely thought that way.
<>
Could it be that the horde of monsters that poured out was weaker than expected?
<>
As the door opened slightly, he could see through the slight opening that the horde of monsters was into the hundreds.
He was blocking that massive number of monsters by himself? Regardless of how outstanding Su-hyeun was, it was too tough to handle alone.
<>
He gripped hard onto his sword.
He had made the right decision to return.
He started running even faster. He squeezed more magic and used it on the skill Swift.
Not long after, the door which he had run away from became visible.
But...
<>
Trudge, trudge¡ª
His feet became slower. As he went closer towards the door, he felt high levels of magic. The level was of a much higher magic rating than what he had now.
Moreover...
<>
Even though he was quite a distance from the door, he could still clearly feel the heat, and it was hard to say that it was from a monster. On top of that, the door was closed.
¡°It couldn¡¯t be?¡±
Lee Ju-ho hastily ran towards the door and stopped in front of it. He could feel the heat right there.
It was tough to even grab the door¡¯s handle without injecting magic in his hands. Lee Ju-ho hurriedly pushed the door inwards.
Creak¡ª
The heavy door opened, and the interior was revealed.
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s eyes narrowed at the sight which unfolded before him.
¡°This... what¡¯s this...¡±
The monsters¡¯ corpses were quickly piling up and hot mes were hovering above them. The dungeon was filled with its heat.
The blood running along the floor dried up, and the monsters¡¯ corpses had turned ck from the burning me.
It seemed like there were hundreds of monsters. It was as much as Lee Ju-ho had expected ¡ª no, even more than he had expected.
<>
The answer to the question was pre-determined since there was only one person left in this room.
Lee Ju-ho turned around and spotted Su-hyeun, who was left all alone.
¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you to run away?¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s voice came from behind.
<>
Maybe he was nervous?
Lee Ju-ho turned around in surprise and distanced himself. Su-hyeun looked at Lee Ju-ho with blood all over his body.
¡°Why did you return?¡±
As soon as they made eye contact, Lee Ju-ho felt that the temperature in the room had risen multiple folds from before.
It was the level of magic concentration and magic factor.
This wasn¡¯t the Su-hyeun he knew. His gaze, his atmosphere, his everything was different.
Gulp¡ª
By some chance, he was it.
¡°You...¡± Lee Ju-ho was confident as he looked at the Su-hyeun, who stood in front of him.
¡°...are Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Chapter 26
Chapter 26: Chapter 26
Instead of answering Lee Ju-ho¡¯s question, Su-hyeun looked at his face for a while.
The heated surrounding and tense atmosphere around Lee Ju-ho was suffocating enough, and it was Lee Ju-ho who was unterally frustrated.
He knew that the atmosphere was somewhat different, but he did not know that Lee Ju-ho would be fearful of it.
It wasn¡¯t just the level of magic concentration; the skills Su-hyeun had were also of a different ss from his.
<>
Su-hyeun spoke as he looked at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face, which was struck with fear.
¡°Yes, that¡¯s right.¡±
There was no need for Su-hyeun toe up with more excuses or to beat about the bush.
As Lee Ju-ho had seen his original self, there would not be any use to try to deny it. On top of that, it wasn¡¯t his name that Su-hyeun had wanted to hide.
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s eyes widened at Su-hyeun¡¯s answer. It seemed that he was still quite surprised even after hearing the truth from him.
Su-hyeun pressed hard between his brows.
<>
He had not expected Lee Ju-ho to return to the dungeon. Su-hyeun let out a deep sigh and spoke while dangling his sword in his hand.
¡°I¡¯ll ask you again. Why did you return?¡±
¡°Well, that...¡± Lee Ju-ho spoke after a moment of contemtion. There was only one thing that he could answer. ¡°Because I was ashamed.¡±
¡°Ashamed?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°About what?¡±
¡°That I abandoned you and ran away myself.¡±
¡°Was it solely because of that?¡±
¡°It wasn¡¯t all because of that...¡±
How should he exin himself? Conscience? Or embarrassment? It seemed better to say that his feet didn¡¯t allow him to go too far.
<> Su-hyeun originally thought that Lee Ju-ho probably sensed that he had hidden his actual skills and came back to check.
Su-hyeun nodded his head while looking at Lee Ju-ho, who was scratching his head dully.
¡°Well, forget it.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°What else can I do now? I¡¯m sorry to have lied to you.¡±
¡°Ah, it¡¯s alright. Either way, the rest of us were able to survive thanks to you...¡±
There were definitely a lot of strange things in the dungeon. It had a weird format different from the normal dungeons, and the difficulty level on the outside was vastly different from the level on the inside.
If it weren¡¯t for Su-hyeun, it would have been impossible for them to clear the trial, and no one would have survived the trap that Kim Ye-eun had set up. In other words, they were able to survive because of Su-hyeun.
¡°Mister Su-hyeun is our benefactor.¡±
Su-hyeun felt slightly relieved after hearing Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words.
It didn¡¯t seem like Lee Ju-ho would rashly spread the news about him either. He didn¡¯t seem to be that kind of person.
<>
Lee Ju-ho was a veteran who had been working as an awakener for an extended period. It would be even easier to get more urate and various news from Lee Ju-ho directly instead of searching through Abyss Online.
As said before, although it was true he had owed him a favor, their rtionship in the future wouldn¡¯t be bad.
¡°Don¡¯t feel burdened by it. I¡¯m not trying to erase the debt; I¡¯m only doing what I should have done before,¡± Su-hyeun said and flopped onto the floor.
He would, of course, be exhausted after clearing out hundreds of monsters single-handedly. On top of that, Su-hyeun¡¯s me skill was one that would use up high amounts of magic concentration at high speeds.
As the supply of magic got cut off from his body, the mes around started to die down.
Lee Ju-ho watched, fascinated, as the fire around him died down and flopped next to Su-hyeun.
¡°It¡¯s quite an interesting skill.¡±
¡°It¡¯s the type that devours magic.¡±
¡°What level of magic is required for this skill?¡±
¡°Although it¡¯s a level 4 magic skill...¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s words trailed off. It¡¯s too obvious and thus unnecessary for him to continue the sentence.
¡°What in the world...¡±
Lee Ju-ho, too, was a B-rank awakener, with level 4 magic. Lee Ju-ho¡¯s primary skill, Swift, was also one of the level 4 magic skills. It was a reasonably useful skill that boosted the overall speed on skills, magic usage, and physical stamina.
Butpared to Su-hyeun¡¯s me, Swift was nowhere near as helpful.
¡°Awesome. Although you must have heard it countless times... It¡¯s for real.¡±
Kim Su-hyeun. He had heard of this name countless times.
A unique awakener who had cleared the level 10 trials of each floor while climbing the Tower of Trials.
A divinity that had been breaking records on each floor.
There were many divided opinions on how strong he had be after a year of awakening.
It was also because he had never shown his face before. There was nothing else made known to the public besides his name.
<>
Su-hyeun had been talking to Lee Ju-ho for a while now.
Amongst the topics was one about Lee Ju-ho, who hadn¡¯t been climbing the Tower of Trials for quite some time. Many didn¡¯t climb the Tower of Trials as they valued their own lives more. No, more urately, it was most of the awakeners.
How many awakeners had failed to pass the trials while aiming for levels higher than their actual capability?
In fact, up until now, the awakeners¡¯ causes of death were mostly from the Tower of Trials. It was a given to value their own lives more, but Lee Ju-ho even valued others¡¯ lives as much as his own.
It wasn¡¯tmon to find such a person like him in this stark and shriveled world. Thoughts like, ¡°As long as it isn¡¯t me,¡± or ¡°It¡¯s just me by myself¡± were more prevalent in this world, but having a person like Lee Ju-ho was not bad at all.
¡°Tsk. Anyway, why did Kim Ye-eun betray us? I didn¡¯t expect that she would pull a suicide stint on us.¡±
¡°She didn¡¯t pull a suicide stint.¡±
¡°Then what?¡±
¡°She pulled a team kill on us.¡±
Lee Ju-ho was horrified by Su-hyeun¡¯s blunt response.
Up until now, Lee Ju-ho had thought that Kim Ye-eun¡¯s action was that they should all have perished together. But to think that she had the intent of killing them?
¡°Do you know about Dump Guild?¡±
¡°Dump Guild?¡±
He seemed to be unaware.
Su-hyeun continued on.
¡°It is a guild made up with homicidal maniacs. Not just homicidal maniacs, but there are also others with conflicting interests gathered there.¡±
¡°There is such a guild?¡±
¡°You would not be aware since they are not widely known.¡± Su-hyeun, who was speaking as he walked, suddenly stopped in his tracks.
¡°In fact, we can say that those who have known about them have all died.¡±
¡°Wait, what?¡± Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face went white as paper.
That was even more horrifying than what he said before. That those who knew about the existence of the Dump Guild had died.
In other words, he wouldn¡¯t know what would happen to him.
¡°S-so why are you telling me this?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked Su-hyeun, who continued walking again. He would have preferred to not have known about this at all.
Su-hyeun replied to Lee Ju-ho, who gave a massive reaction with a huge grin. ¡°Aren¡¯t you an adventurer who isn¡¯t afraid of death?¡±
¡°No, but even so, why is there a need to kill when we¡¯ve survived?¡±
¡°Did I say that I killed them? Perhaps Dump Guild would send someone to do it.¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t I say that earlier!¡± Lee Ju-ho tore his hair out, screaming. He seemed to be quite frightened at Dump Guild¡¯s name.
<>
Technically, Kim Ye-eun wasn¡¯t a member of the Dump Guild.
To join Dump Guild, there was a special mission that potential candidates had to clear. It was a concept simr to the trials.
And Kim Ye-eun was right in the middle of clearing it. In other words, she wasn¡¯t an official member of Dump Guild yet.
Perhaps, Dump Guild might have considered this as a failed mission. They could also be afraid that their guild¡¯s existence would be exposed to the public.
<>
He felt apologetic to Lee Ju-ho.
Because of this, Lee Ju-ho would be more interested in the Dump Guild as well.
But...
<>
Dump Guild. It was the worst criminal syndicate guild, and in the future, a group of murderers who were even more dangerous than monsters.
Punishing them was one of Su-hyeun¡¯s goals. It wasn¡¯t easy digging the Dump Guild out as they were intentionally hiding from the public.
In that case, he needed something that would make them surface.
Su-hyeun wanted this to be the starting point.
¡°Stop it ande quickly,¡± Su-hyeun said, looking back at Lee Ju-ho, who still had his head hung down.
¡°Shouldn¡¯t we see the end of this?¡±
Chapter 27
Chapter 27: Chapter 27
¡°Huff, huff.¡±
¡°Huff. W-we survived...¡±
The members who managed to flee from the dungeon copsed to the floor as they came out.
A sense of relief took over when they realized that they had survived and their stamina had mainly been exhausted.
The only person with remaining strength was Ahn Min-seok, who had rtively high health stats. He held on without copsing onto the floor and looked back anxiously at the dungeon¡¯s entrance.
¡°The dungeon¡¯s color...!¡±
Ahn Min-seok¡¯s eyes widened. At his reaction, Lee Eun-mi looked back too and screamed in surprise.
¡°Y-yellow?¡±
¡°What happened to it?¡±
Ahn Min-seok¡¯s eyes widened even more.
It was definitely still an orange level dungeon when they entered. Unless the party was all caught in a hallucinogenic skill, there was no doubt about it.
But the dungeon¡¯s color changed in that short time? No, more importantly, were the dungeon colors able to change in the first ce?
It was confusing. But at the same time, it made perfect sense.
<>
It was impossible to target a yellow level dungeon with this number of people and standards. To raid a yellow dungeon, they would at least need 10 awakeners of Lee Ju-ho¡¯s level.
¡°Ahhhh¡ª!¡±
Plop¡ª
Kim Ba-reun, who was running out from the dungeon, hurriedly tripped over a stone and fell headfirst. Although it was not tough for an awakener to trip over a stone, it had also meant that he was that exhausted and had no stamina left.
¡°Are you alright?¡±
¡°Where is Ju-ho?¡± Ahn Min-seok and Lee Eun-mi approached and asked Kim Ba-reun, who had ran out hurriedly.
Kim Ba-reun held onto Ahn Min-seok¡¯s arm for support and replied with trembling lips.
¡°H-he¡¯s dead.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°What do you mean he¡¯s dead?!¡± Lee Eun-mi asked in surprise. Ahn Min-seok screamed.
They had definitely seen Lee Ju-ho running behind them. How could he be dead?
Kim Ba-reun seemed to know something. Kim Ba-reun bit his lip as if it was something difficult to answer.
¡°That... that crazy bastard...¡± This was Kim Ba-reun¡¯s reaction.
Crying and cursing. One would know just by looking at Kim Ba-reun exactly how he felt.
¡°That¡¯s not possible...¡±
¡°Damn it!¡±
Lee Ju-ho died.
And on top of that, Kim Su-hyeun died, too.
At the very least, that was how they had perceived in their minds.
Act 3
¡°Ahhhh!¡±
Lee Ju-ho screamed fiercely.
He plopped onto the floor and gazed at the ceiling. The monsters corpses¡¯ were strewn all around him.
¡°I can¡¯t go any further. Please go on ahead.¡±
¡°Really?¡± Su-hyeun asked while wiping the sweat from his forehead.
Though he had been fighting, Su-hyeun looked more at ease than Lee Ju-ho. He still had plenty of mana. For this battle, he did not use any skills and instead prevailed with only his fighting ability.
¡°...Are you really going?¡± Lee Ju-ho, who has stillid on the floor, turned around the nced at him. It seemed that he would get up soon enough. He was just being whiny.
¡°Yes, I¡¯m going.¡±
In fact, Su-hyeun wanted to rest, too. He needed to rest up entirely as it would be a lot better if he could move again in perfect condition.
But...
[Time limit 00:30:28.]
There was another mission for them. It was a time-tagged mission where they had toplete the dungeon attack. The conditions were simple.
[Destroy the summoning stone.]
A mission that specified its own target.
And there was a time limit given for the mission. Both Lee Ju-ho and Su-hyeun had no way of finding out what would happen when the time was up for this mission, but it was certain that there would be significant risks as there was a penalty given from the system.
¡°Ah, honestly...¡± Lee Ju-ho stood up from his position in the end.
¡°Is this really the end?¡±
¡°How would I know?¡±
¡°Ack!¡± Lee Ju-ho tore at his hair again. Was this a habit of his? Amused, Su-hyeun smiled. It seemed that Lee Ju-ho was a more pleasant person than expected.
After Lee Ju-ho realized that Su-hyeun was stronger than him and that he wasn¡¯t actually the party¡¯s leader, his attitude had changed.
<>
But there was no doubt about his skills.
At least he would not be much of an obstacle. It wasn¡¯t easy getting to B-rank either.
¡°There isn¡¯t much time left.¡±
¡°What?¡± Lee Ju-ho, who struggled to get up from his seat, asked.
Su-hyeun tilted his head, referring to the end of the cave in the distance.
¡°I can see it there.¡±
¡°Umm...¡± Lee Ju-ho narrowed his eyes and looked closely into the distance where Su-hyeun was referring to.
At the end of the cave, a gigantic blue stone could be seen.
¡°That¡¯s... the summoning stone?¡±
¡°Most likely.¡±
¡°So, all this will end when we break it into pieces?¡± Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face suddenly brightened.
It seemed that things had been quite tough on him all this time. On the contrary, Su-hyeun¡¯s face darkened.
<>
A growing dungeon.
The color of dungeons was usually determined by the special mana from the monsters that inhabited it, but there were also times when a dungeon changed color as well. It was the same as this instance.
The summoning stone.
A medium that summoned monsters from a different dimension. As long as it existed, monsters will be summoned endlessly. As the number of monsters increased, the dungeon¡¯s color would turn closer to purple, and an outbreak would be inevitable.
There would be a huge number of monsters. With this number of monsters, it would cause the death of over ten thousand people in the Gyeonggi Province as its epicenter.
<>
Su-hyeun started walking towards the summoning stone.
There were still some monsters left around the summoning stone. The types of monsters were of a wide variety, and it seemed that the monsters were summoned without any discrimination.
<>
The monsters were wary of Su-hyeun.
Lee Ju-ho stuck right behind Su-hyeun and muttered. ¡°This... the numbers look quite a lot, though?¡±
He didn¡¯t notice from afar, but only when he went closer did he realize.
There were too many monsters around them, watching them closely. It looked like they were in hundreds.
Gulp¡ª
The nervous Lee Ju-ho grasped his sword even tighter.
Fortunately, the monsters did not jump right at them. They were drooling, watching, and whetting their appetites. No, it wasn¡¯t anything good at all.
¡°How long are you going to watch us?¡± Su-hyeun opened his mouth to speak.
As he looked behind the summoning stone, he saw a shadow slowly appear. Hidden behind that gigantic stone was a shadow that donned a long robe.
¡°You could havee a bit closer. Hahaha.¡± The sudden burst ofughter made the others feel ufortable.
That shrill voice andughter were so horrific that it was hardly recognizable that it was a human. Lee Ju-ho had to retreat immediately at that sound.
No, it wasn¡¯t only his voice that was creepy. His magic¡¯s concentration and properties could also be felt emanating from him. Everything about him was creepy.
¡°A... human?¡±
It was a human in the dungeon.
This was Lee Ju-ho¡¯s first time experiencing this. His hands shook in astonishment. ¡°He¡¯s not a human.¡±
Flick¡ª
Su-hyeun flicked his finger and a me appeared over the hooded man¡¯s head.
The me took off the hooded man¡¯s hood, and he epted it without trying to avoid it.
As soon as the hood fell off, the hooded man¡¯s face was revealed.
¡°A-a-a skeleton?¡±
¡°Excuse me? Who are you calling skeleton?¡± The hooded man spoke with frustration. ¡°I¡¯d hope you would call me Richie instead.¡±
It seemed that he had wanted to reveal his identity to them all along. It could be the same reason why he had not stopped them from taking off his hood.
However, Su-hyeun sneered at the skeleton¡¯s words. ¡°What do you mean Richie, you fraud?¡±
Would his face have looked crumpled if he wasn¡¯t?
The skeleton turned towards Su-hyeun. It¡¯s empty eye socket looked towards Su-hyeun and starting using its frightening magic.
¡°What does a little boy like you know...¡±
¡°Of course I do. More than you do.¡±
He might have presented himself as Richie, but Su-hyeun knew very well that he wasn¡¯t.
The real Richie didn¡¯t look like this. The real Richie had the ability to construct himself to appear more like a human being. Moreover, the magic concentration, factor, and properties he had felt were quite different from the real Richie. In other words, he was a fake Richie.
¡°I don¡¯t know how you¡¯ll think of this,¡± Su-hyeun said as if he was hurt.
¡°You¡¯re a fraud.¡±
¡°Hick.¡± Lee Ju-ho stifled a burst ofughter from behind as if he had found it funny.
The skeleton was speechless. Probably because his feelings had intensified, the monsters¡¯ cries around him had intensified as well.
Kyaaa¡ª!
As the hundred monsters cried out in unison, the sound was deafening. Lee Ju-ho quickly stopped hisughter and got ready to attack.
¡°Ah, seriously? I shouldn¡¯t haveughed.¡± Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face quickly turned tearful.
Regardless, Su-hyeun had his eyes fixed on the skeleton in front of them.
<>
He was the one who was using the summoning stone to summon monsters.
The evil summoner whoter summoned and manipted monsters, andter caused the death of ten thousands of people was just in front of them.
¡°Just endure for three minutes.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°For three minutes only. Three minutes.¡±
¡°Please, Su-hyeun...¡±
Even though Lee Ju-ho was tearing, Su-hyeun was walking towards the summoner.
Slowly, step by step.
As he took each step and narrowed their distance, the summoner¡¯s magic intensified.
¡°Your body and soul will suffer forever.¡±
Step¡ª
¡°Well, that¡¯s only if you win.¡±
Squelch¡ª
The ground was left with Su-hyeun¡¯s footprints as he took each step.
¡°You look exhausted; aren¡¯t you pushing it too much?¡±
The summoner knew.
¡°All these kids in the dungeon are my hands and feet. The one who was fighting them up until a while ago isn¡¯t getting exhausted?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s physical condition was not perfect. He was drained from fighting all the monsters endlessly. Although it was evident that Su-hyeun was strong, there were still more than a hundred monsters left with the summoner.
It was evident who would be the winner.
¡°Although my stamina is nearly depleted...¡±
Burning¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s surroundings suddenly gushed out with zing heat.
As the me heated up, the summoner quickly rose up to his feet. The heat from the mes was fatal to the summoner who had dark magic properties.
He had thought that Su-hyeun¡¯s stamina was nearly depleted.
At the flustered summoner¡¯s reaction, Su-hyeun raised his head and looked at him.
¡°But my magic is still quite plentiful.¡±
On his way here, he had purposefully saved up his magic.
All just for this moment.
And...
[Transfiguration skill: Berserk is used.]
[Your health is low.]
[Your ability has increased in proportion to yourck of strength.]
[Your health has been temporarily restored.]
[Strength has increased significantly.]
[Ability has increased significantly.]
Su-hyeun¡¯s body turned fully red.
His breathing got better, and his body was filled with energy.
Su-hyeun had been pushing himself to the limit, all just for this moment.
Su-hyeun was in his best condition ever.
Chapter 28
Chapter 28: Chapter 28
As the summoner realized Su-hyeun¡¯s breathing had turned normal, he quickly responded. He raised his hand and shouted.
¡°Kill them!¡±
The summoner¡¯s loud voice echoed throughout the cave.
At the summoner¡¯smand, the hundreds of monsters showed their teeth in unison, flexed their ws, and charged towards both Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho. The monsters were of a simr standard as the Lizardcops, perhaps even stronger.
But...
Burning¡ª!
At the same time, the me on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword was set aze. He hit the wall with extremely high heat, and it covered Su-hyeun¡¯s body. To find Su-hyeun in the mes, the summoner had to use his cane and search for him.
¡°Where did he go...¡±
Swish¡ª!
Kyaaa¡ª!
A group of monsters moved in one direction in unison.
It was the summoner, the mastermind, who was controlling the monsters¡¯ minds. However, the summoner¡¯s controls and intentions were nearly useless.
Fwoom¡ª!
The monsters that were charging in one direction exploded and turned into burnt pieces. At the same time, Su-hyeun¡¯s new form escaped and ran towards the summoner.
At that moment, dark ck magic burst out from the summoner¡¯s cane.
m¡ª!
A sword and cane.
The crash of red hot mes and dark magic led to a massive explosion.
The summoner recoiled from the explosion and coughed. Feeling embarrassed by his own reaction, the summoner looked at his numb hands.
<>
It was the magic concentration that Su-hyeun was handling and the energy and mes that were created by his magic.
Although it was just one sh, he was sure about it.
<>
The summoner felt threatened.
Just based on Su-hyeun¡¯s movement alone, it seemed unusual. Not only that, but Su-hyeun¡¯s magic was also ipatible with the summoner¡¯s.
The summoner finally found Su-hyeun ¡ª he couldn¡¯t find Su-hyeun earlier as he did not know where he went.
In a way that suggested he was not too concerned about it, the summoner hurled his cane like a wildcat in the air.
Dark energy started to burst everywhere. The surrounding air had been polluted, and the ground and walls started to rot.
Burning, burning¡ª
Eventually, Su-hyeun revealed himself.
It was an attack that left Su-hyeun with nowhere to hide. Though his control wasn¡¯t right and was not as effective, it was a quick response.
<>
Su-hyeun frowned as he faced head-on with the dark magic.
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes focused on the purple glowing stone that was located on the tip of the cane.
<>
Most of the summoner¡¯s magic hade out from that stone. It was quite easy to see what kind of stone it was.
<>
An ether stone that had contained magic.
It was a stone that could only be harvested in small quantities from the dungeons, and a fistful of this resource could fetch astronomical prices. Most items used by awakeners contained these ether stones. Of course, items with an ether stone of that size were scarce.
<>
It made the situation harder to deal with, but not too much. It had never urred to Su-hyeun that he would lose to a summoner.
Burning, sh¡ª!
As the dark energy and mes shed, they began topete. Su-hyeun grew the fire with all his power and went for a head-on crash with the summoner.
¡°What...!¡± The summoner¡¯s voice exploded in bewilderment. The summoner began to step back as the dark magic from his cane was pushed by Su-hyeun¡¯s me.
At that moment, the me that was bursting out from Su-hyeun¡¯s sword fell to the ground.
Rip¡ª!
A sharp sword attack split both the me and the dark magic. The summoner, who blocked the sudden attack by raising his cane, looked at his cane incredulously.
¡°What¡¯s... this...¡±
A crack formed on the cane. In fact, there were quite a bit of crack lines.
As cracks formed on the cane which he believed to be unbreakable, the summoner¡¯s mind turned nk.
¡°It¡¯s not over yet.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword rose up once again.
At the same time, the summoner held up his cane on reflex once more. He used dark magic, formingyers of ck protection around his body.
<>
He must narrow their distance.
Aftering to a decision, Su-hyeun sprang to his feet. Having leaped into the air a few times, it increased his speed.
Crack¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form prated through the dark magic protection created by the summoner.
His whole body ached. The feeling of flesh rotting could not be erased entirely by the mes that were protecting his body.
But he endured it. Since he risked himself, the damage to the summoner would be fatal.
sh¡ª!
The me which had been scattered momentarily gathered immediately back at Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
Wielding the red sword in his hands, Su-hyeun aimed at the summoner who hid in his protection.
¡°Goodbye.¡±
Stab¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s long sword pierced through the dark shroud.
¡°Whirl¡ª¡±
Lee Ju-ho pointed his sword at the monsters and had his back towards the wall.
Grrr¡ª
There was nowhere else he could retreat.
¡°There¡¯s a shit load of them, seriously.¡±
It was his first time toe face to face with such arge number of monsters. It was thanks to his skill Swift that he could survive up until now; otherwise, he would have be their meal.
<>
However, there were still dozens more of them left.
Not only just physically, but mentally he had problems, too. Moreover, having to deal with arge number of monsters on his own gave him enormous pressure.
Stomp, stomp¡ª!
Grrr¡ª
At that moment, the reactions of the monsters had changed.
The monsters which had been targeting Lee Ju-ho until now changed their line of sight.
¡®What had happened over there?¡¯
The fight between Su-hyeun and the summoner. Their fight made Lee Ju-ho feel sick.
<>
It was to the point where the magic concentration dispersed in the air during their fight would cause his skin to shrivel up. It was obvious what would have happened if he had interfered.
<>
It wasn¡¯t just a fight where they were just shing, stabbing or shooting skills at each other.
There was a massive gap between them; how would one utilize and use it?
Would the A-rank awakeners, who were of a level higher than him, be that way, too?
Even if so, he would never have thought that all A-rank awakeners would be as strong as Su-hyeun.
<>
That was when he realized that there was another piece of sky higher than the current piece of sky.
<>
Blow¡ª
He let out a deep sigh.
After calming himself down, his breathing had also slowed down.
For some reason, the mana that was nearly depleted dropped even more. Lee Ju-ho felt better for nothing.
¡°Great.¡±
Grab¡ª
He straightened the sword in his hand and brought his legs back up.
¡°Shall we start...¡±
sh¡ª!
Boom¡ª
That moment, the cave shook wildly, and two types of magic shed.
¡°Oh, oh my.¡±
Boom¡ª
The mes that shed with the dark magic exploded and shook the whole ce. The magic that could be felt from the end of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword started eating at his body.
Rip¡ª!
As it prated through the dark shroud, Su-hyeun wielded his sword wildly.
As the me spread out, it swept in front of his eyes. At the same time, cracks quickly formed on the dark shroud.
Crack, crack¡ª
Bang¡ª!
The summoner copsed onto the floor amidst the broken dark shroud.
Although his head was pierced and his body was halved, the summoner¡¯s limbs were still moving, creaking away.
¡°I... will... curse... you...¡±
¡°Do that when you¡¯re in hell.¡±
Crack¡ª!
With his feet stretched forward, Su-hyeun crushed the summoner¡¯s head.
A small bead rolled out from the empty skull. Su-hyeun looked at it and said, ¡°Rest in peace.¡±
Grrr¡ª
As the summoner¡¯s control disappeared, the monsters had lost their bearings. The confused monsters did not even have thoughts to attack Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho.
¡°So, now...¡±
Su-hyeun looked at Lee Ju-ho, who was leaning against the wall, with a puzzled look.
Burning¡ª
Su-hyeun used his remaining strength and spread the mes around him, which had gathered on his sword.
¡°Let¡¯s wrap this up quickly and head back.¡±
¡°Pant, pant¡ª¡±
Lee Ju-hoid on the floor and stretched widely. A burnt smell came out from his mouth, and he could hear his heart beating clearly in his ear.
¡°I-I really can¡¯t move anymore.¡±
His back was covered with the monsters¡¯ blood. He swore there was never a time where he had in as many monsters as he had today.
<>
He had prepared to lose his life, but he managed to survive.
Not sure if it was satisfaction or a sense of achievement, he felt proud of himself and happy about it.
On top of that...
<>
Of course, it waspared to his other fights.
As he looked at Su-hyeun, who seemed to have a bit of health left standing without issues, he felt a sense of shame.
A sneer escaped from the corner of his mouth. His skills were not as strong until he personally witnessed how Su-hyeun dealt with a hundred over monsters.
Lee Ju-ho hadn¡¯t personally seen him fought them.
It was the same up till this moment. Su-hyeun saved up as much mana as he could while fighting.
However, as his opponent was quite strong, Su-hyeun was still forced to go all out at the summoner, which could be seen as the boss of the dungeon.
It was beyond Lee Ju-ho¡¯s imagination to be able to witness Su-hyeun¡¯s ability through his own eyes.
He couldn¡¯t believe the Su-hyeun was just an awakener in his first year.
<>
Su-hyeun could be dubbed to be on par with the world¡¯s top rank awakeners, the S-rank awakeners.
¡°Please rest up a bit.¡±
Su-hyeun did not push Lee Ju-ho, who was spread out on the floor.
Since the summoner was in, there was no use staying around in the dungeon anymore. There was nothing else left for Lee Ju-ho to do.
There were only two things for Su-hyeun left to do.
<>
And...
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyesid on the stone and the halved cane that was left behind by the summoner.
<>
First and foremost, he had to crush the summoner¡¯s stone.
[Time limit: 00:01:45]
It was very close.
If they were a tad slower, they might not have even gotten to destroy the summoner¡¯s stone on time.
Trudge¡ª
Su-hyeun walked towards the summoner¡¯s stone and ced his hand on it.
In the aftermath of the fight, the stone gained some scratches and crack lines. As it hadn¡¯t beenpletely crushed, it still had its functions.
As Su-hyeun touched the summoner¡¯s stone, he injected magic into it.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
Waves of disturbance started stirring from within the stone as he injected magic into it.
Su-hyeun started crushing the summoner¡¯s stone from within as he raised the mes.
A whileter.
Boom¡ª
Crash¡ª
The summoner stone that started to split from within showed streaks of red light and started crumbling.
[You have passed the trial.]
Chapter 29
Chapter 29: Chapter 29
¡°Hooo¡ª¡±
As soon as he heard the message, Su-hyeun let out a sigh of relief.
It was now, finally, the end of it all.
As the tension in his body left, all the strength was drained from Su-hyeun¡¯s body. As the effects of Berserk were lost, the temporary boost of health had plummeted to rock bottom.
<>
Su-hyeun looked at the sword he held in his hand.
The sword that looked like gold had now reached its limit. Su-hyeun had to inject magic into it to prevent it from breaking, but it could no longer endure Su-hyeun¡¯s magic.
He made sure the sword would not crumble by injecting his magic. When he had to use me, he used magic, and to maintain the sword, he could only use double the amount of magic.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze went to the stone that fell out from the summoner¡¯s head, as well as the broken cane.
¡°The yield isn¡¯t that bad.¡±
If he looked around the interior of the dungeon, there might have been more ether stones left. Of course, there would not be any of a simr grade as the one in front of him.
In a hurry, Su-hyeun took three ether stones with him. In fact, those were only collectively named as ether stones, but each of their usages differed by a little.
<>
[Lich¡¯s Life Stone.]
*An enhanced high-grade ether stone. It has a lifespan of 200 years.
*Limitation: Not a living person¡¯s.
[The highest grade of ether stones.]
*It contains arge amount of mana. As it had been used for a long time, its glow had faded.
[Dimension Teleportation Stone.]
*A medium that twists dimensions and space. It can be operated with magic.
These three items.
The exnations were quite simple. The Dimension Teleportation Stone was the main ingredient for the summoner to summon monsters and Lich¡¯s Life Stone was the medium that made Lich able to move about.
<>
A substance that could make humans live more than their expected lifespan.
But, there¡¯s a limitation. Only a non-living human could use this item.
¡°This kid, he used a cheap item.¡±
Usually, Liches would want to have a lifespan of at least 500 years and above and thus made the decision to be a Lich. And the Life Stones that they could obtain were of quality better than this.
Of course, the life stone that Su-hyeun had in his hand now wasn¡¯t considered any less valuable either. Even with this alone, it would be quite a useful item after some enhancements. Above all, there was a considerable benefit from this.
<>
The purple stone was in Su-hyeun¡¯s hands. It was an item that would be too invaluable to be exchanged for money. In fact, amongst the existing ether stones, there was nothing else as substantial as this highest-grade ether stone in the world right now. If this ether stone appeared in the market, it might be too difficult to give an estimated selling price.
Of course...
<>
He would use it solely for himself.
Since he couldn¡¯t bring the items used in the tower, he needed a separate set of weapons here especially because a good weapon or two right now would help in boosting up his power immediately.
After collecting all his yield, Su-hyeun flopped down onto the ground.
He had to take a rest before heading outside.
Act 4
Both Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho started to dig around in the dungeon to search and to collect the ether stones.
There were many discussions about how ether stones were mostly found in the dungeons where the boss was found. And in this dungeon, most ether stones were used to maintain the summoner¡¯s stone. Although there were ether stones found on certain parts of the walls in the dungeon, they did not have enough manpower and equipment to harvest all the ether stones.
¡°Really, I¡¯m alright.¡±
Lee Ju-ho refused the ether stones that Su-hyeun had extracted for him. In fact, it was safe to say that Su-hyeun hadpleted his dungeon attack alone.
¡°Are you really not going to ept this?¡±
¡°Yes. How can I ept this when I¡¯ve done nothing?¡±
¡°Well, if you say so...¡±
Su-hyeun quickly put the ether stones in his arms. Honestly, he didn¡¯t need to have these stones, but it was better to have them, just in case.
<>
Either way, it could be said that he had monopolized and harvested all the ether stones here. Su-hyeun talked with Lee Ju-ho about various things as they walked out of the dungeon.
As they exited the dungeon through the entrance where they first came from, their views turned white, and the scene changed.
In reality, a full day had passed, and it was already the early morning. As they stepped out, Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho stood rooted to the ground.
¡°Uh, the people...¡±
¡°Wait, didn¡¯t you say the attack had failed?¡±
¡°Are you the awakeners Mr. Lee Ju-ho and Mr. Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°That-that¡¯s right! Hey, Ju-ho!¡±
¡°Survivors, it¡¯s the survivors!¡±
Dozens of people gathered around, making a scene.
There was a total of over 10 awakeners besides Ahn Min-seok, Lee Eun-mi, and Kim Ba-reun. On top of that, there were a few reporters equipped with cameras.
Countless people were gathered, making a huge mess.
It seemed that the authorities had called other awakeners for assistance upon hearing that the dungeon attack had failed. It wasn¡¯t surprising to see the reporters being that interested in the awakeners.
Su-hyeun let out a deep breath as if exhausted.
Lee Ju-ho, who spotted it from the corner of his eye, spoke. ¡°Throw the ball to me and quickly get out of here.¡±
¡°Will you be alright?¡±
¡°I¡¯ll say that both of uspleted the dungeon attack together. If that happens, maybe the distribution...¡±
¡°There you go.¡±
Su-hyeun took out about half a portion of his ether stones and pushed them towards Lee Ju-ho. He then spoke in a loud voice. ¡°So, that¡¯s all for the distribution.¡±
¡°Thank you. If there¡¯s another opportunity, I hope we can work together again.¡±
As quick-witted as he was, Lee Ju-ho replied on time in a loud voice as well.
It was an amicable scene of equally distributing the ether stones after the end of a dungeon attack. It was such a familiar scene that others could notice that both of them had safelypleted the dungeon attack.
¡°Oh my, did you reallyplete the dungeon attack?¡±
¡°Just the two of you? A yellow level dungeon?¡±
¡°Wait, doesn¡¯t this tell a different story? The dungeon was obviously...¡±
¡°We¡¯re from Ilsung Daily! I¡¯d like to ask a few questions!¡±
Not just Kim Ba-reun, but the other party members shouted loudly in surprise, and the other awakeners began to frown and question.
Taking advantage of the confused situation, Su-hyeun quietly made his escape. Although there were a few who approached him, Lee Ju-ho had blocked them out.
¡°Now, let¡¯s all calm down. I¡¯ll exin the details to everyone here. Let¡¯s not tire the exhausted.¡±
But Lee Ju-ho should have been the most exhausted person instead.
Su-hyeun felt apologetic for throwing the situation on Lee Ju-ho and leaving first, but he thought that it would be even more burdensome if he were to be captured on screen.
Eventually, Su-hyeun left the ce in a hurry. The remaining half of the ether stones could be considered abor cost.
When he had left the crowd and reached midway on the mountain, the mobile phone in Su-hyeun¡¯s pocket started ringing. He then checked that it was a text message from Lee Ju-ho.
<>
It seemed like Lee Ju-ho was quite concerned over the ether stones that he had received earlier.
Imagining the scene where Lee Ju-ho took the time to send a text message amongst the curious crowd brought a smile to Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
In fact, it didn¡¯t matter much whether he received the ether stones or not.
<>
Su-hyeun sent a reply to Lee Ju-ho¡¯s text message and started hurrying on his way.
There was someone worried about him.
As he was on his way home, Su-hyeun hurriedly bought clothes from a nearby clothing store.
It was ufortable wearing clothes that were severely torn and filled with dirt. Moreover, Su-hyeun could not return home in this state.
Shin Su-yeong nagged Su-hyeun for not contacting her, staying out the whole night, and returning in the morning. They met just as Su-hyeun was returning home and when Shin Su-yeong was about to leave the house for work.
¡°I¡¯ll see you when I¡¯m back home, son.¡±
Shin Su-yeong said that with a dull expression in her eyes as she was leaving for work. Su-hyeun let out a deep sigh and muttered.
¡°I have to let her know, too...¡±
In any case, if he were to continue working as an awakener, things like this would happen more often. He could not bring Shin Su-yeong so many worries every single time.
<>
Su-hyeun sat in front of the door and took out the C-rank awakener¡¯s registration card to look at it.
If he showed her this, how would she react? Probably like the mother from his previous life...
<>
His mind would not think of it any further. He had decided to take a good rest before thinking about it. It was too exhausting for him today.
<>
Su-hyeun put the two ether stones and the Dimension Teleportation Stone into his bag, along with the remaining highest-grade ether stones he had left over after distributing half to Lee Ju-ho.
After waking up from his sleep, he had to deal with these.
Three hours.
Su-hyeun only had slept for three hours. For others, it would just be a nap, but for Su-hyeun, it was a long sleep.
When he woke up, the sun was already hanging over the sky. Su-hyeun took a shower, got changed and was prepared to leave the house.
<>
An ether stone trading store near Gangnam Station. It was a store where he could most conveniently dispose of the ether stones.
Su-hyeun took a cab, the transport which he would usually choose. Since he could trade ether stones for cash in the future, he could easily afford the taxi fees.
After a 30-minute drive, the taxi came to a stop at Gangnam Station.
He paid the taxi fees with 20,000 Korean Won and alighted right beside Gangnam Station.
Gangnam Station was busy with working adults from early in the morning. The crowd was filled with people heading out for lunch, as well as students who were out to y.
It had been a long time since Su-hyeun was out in a crowded area like this. Su-hyeun took a while to look at his surroundings and then went on his way through a familiar route.
<>
Amongst the tallest building in the area, there was a huge auction house where they had rented out five entire floors from the building.
Su-hyeun¡¯s feet stopped right there.
Buzz¡ª
When the sizeable automatic door opened, a spacious and vibrant lobby appeared.
It felt simr to the entrance of a luxury hotel¡¯s lobby. The lobby personnel saw Su-hyeun¡¯s arrival and spoke.
¡°Wee. How can I help you?¡± It was a male staff donned in a clean and neat outfit.
Su-hyeun looked at him and replied, ¡°I came to sell my goods.¡±
¡°When you mean goods?¡±
¡°They are ether stones.¡±
As Su-hyeun replied, he took out the ether stones that were kept in his pocket and showed the staff. Although they were the size of small marbles, he had a fistful of them.
These were considered to be shabbypared to the highest-grade ether stones that Su-hyeun kept.
But...
¡°Are these really all ether stones?¡±
The staff¡¯s eyes widened in surprise.
Though they might have been small, they were ether stones harvested from a yellow level dungeon which over 10 B-rank awakeners had to gather in order toplete.
It wasn¡¯t surprising to see him shocked by the ether stones mined from that dungeon.
Chapter 30
Chapter 30: Chapter 30
¡°Please wait a moment.¡±
The man bowed towards Su-hyeun, excusing himself and walking off with a skip in his step toward somewhere else.
No, by the time he turned around the corner, he actually started running. Su-hyeun waited just for a while as per the man¡¯s instructions.
Soon enough, the staff brought out another employee donned in a suit. It seemed that this person was of a higher position.
¡°Hello. I¡¯m Lee Kyeong-jong, in charge of ether stone trades.¡±
He looked to be in his thirties and had a handsome face that could pass off as an actor. Lee Kyeong-jong reached his hand out and shook hands with Su-hyeun before taking out his business card.
He held the position of a department head. He was quite sessful considering his young age. If he was in charge of ether stone trades at an auction house of this size, he would be someone most influential here.
¡°I¡¯m sorry to have kept you waiting. Let¡¯s get you seated and continue.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
Su-hyeun followed Lee Kyeong-jong into a spacious room. On the doors of the entrance, the enormous words ¡°Premium Client Room¡± were printed on it.
<>
All this treatment just for a handful of ether stones. He could not imagine. Of course, that was something that Su-hyeun had not expected.
<<...It¡¯s still 2020 here.>>
In the era where Su-hyeun had lived in, ether stones were not this precious and valuable. Due to the persistent dungeon outbreaks, the supply of ether stones had increased significantly; thus, it was treated to be a more valuable resource than gold. Although the price wasn¡¯t too low, it was at a different level aspared to now. Up until this time, the ether stones were too priceless to be even bought with money.
As Su-hyeun and Lee Kyeong-jong sat side by side, a female employee walked into the room. She served a tray with two cups of coffee and left shortly, and that was when Lee Kyeong-jong spoke.
¡°I heard that you are here to sell the ether stones.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Did you personally join in the dungeon attack yourself?¡±
¡°I¡¯m a C-rank awakener.¡±
Lee Kyeong-jong looked somewhat surprised at Su-hyeun¡¯s answer. Perhaps it was because of Su-hyeun¡¯s rank and the quality as well as the number of ether stones which he had brought along with him.
<>
A D-rank awakener. It was what Su-hyeun had felt of Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s standards.
He was at the level where he could begin to feel magic, but Lee Kyeong-jong chose to earn money through ether stones instead of working as an awakener. In some ways, it was a wise choice. Even without risking his life by climbing the Tower of Trials, he could also earn money just by using ether stones. Perhaps he could get to where he was now at this age with his title as an awakener.
¡°Can I see the ether stones?¡± Lee Kyeong-jong asked point-nk without beating around the bush.
He seemed to have judged that it would be better to deal with it quickly instead of going in circles.
Su-hyeun took out the stones kept in his pouch.
¡°Here they are.¡±
As soon as the ether stones appeared in front of him, Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s eyes sparkled.
As the magic level of the dungeon increased, the value of the ether stones harvested would increase exponentially because the ether stone was filled with the dungeon¡¯s magic.
¡°It¡¯s quite... a huge stone.¡±
As most ether stones were of the same size, Lee Kyeong-jong picked one up from the pile and looked closely at it.
It needed to be assessed for Lee Kyeong-jong to know its exact value. Still, its value was usually proportionate to its size.
Most ether stones found in the red level dungeons were the size of rice grains. Those harvested from the orange level dungeons were slightlyrger. Still, only ether stones the size of a small marble could only be found in dungeons no higher than a yellow level.
¡°Did you just walk into a yellow level dungeon?¡± Lee Kyeong-jong asked half-doubtingly.
There was no reason for Su-hyeun to find excuses or lie about it. He nodded his head.
Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s eyes sparkled once more.
<>
If it was of this standard, the ether stones would be on the lower mid-grade at the very least.
Yellow level dungeons had difficulties with rare cases ofpletion. It would require over 10 B-rank awakeners for the dungeon attack, or they would need help from an A-rank awakener.
Even so, there seldom were high-grade ether stones, so they weren¡¯t worth much. So to match the tastes of the auction house¡¯s clients, Lee Kyeong-jong definitely had to get his hands on these ether stones.
But the problem was, how did a C-rank awakener obtain ether stones of this size? Lee Kyeong-jong had a short conflict before posing his question.
¡°This ether stone... are you sure you obtained it through legal means?¡±
It was a situation where he could only have his suspicions. It was understandable. It would be the same if it were Su-hyeun.
¡°Yes, I¡¯m sure.¡±
But besides this, there was nothing else he could add on.
If he had toe up with an excuse...
<>
Who would even believe in that?
<>
With that reason alone, there was no other way to persuade him that it was obtained legitimately.
Lee Kyeong-jong seemed to be in conflict with Su-hyeun¡¯s reply. As the silence grew, Su-hyeun stood up from his seat.
¡°I¡¯ll look into other ces.¡±
He could have sold the ether stones at any other ce. As if implying this, without any hesitation, Su-hyeun reached out for the ether stones which were in Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s hands.
And then...
¡°Ah, don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll buy them. I¡¯ll buy the stones.¡±
Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s lips which were shut tight spoke. As if the ether stones were already his, he retrieved his hand while keeping it tightly clenched. With this, the negotiation preparation had ended.
¡°How much are you thinking of selling them?¡±
After a short pause, Lee Kyeong-jong started the negotiations personally. As much as the ether stones were not valued urately, it was up to the seller to call the price.
¡°You can name your own price. But...¡±
Su-hyeun showed the ether stone held in his hands to Lee Kyeong-jong.
At the same time, Lee Kyeong-jong had just realized the ether stone in his hand had disappeared.
<>
Cold shivers went down his spine. Su-hyeun took one of the ether stones and ced it in his pouch.
¡°Now open this pouch, and after you have assessed the ether stones...¡±
As if he wouldn¡¯t show Lee Kyeong-jong the ether stones in advance, Su-hyeun blocked the opening of the pouch tightly with his hand.
¡°I¡¯ll only ept your asking price for just once.¡±
He would leave immediately if he did not like the named price. There wasn¡¯t a second chance.
Aplicated calction started going on in Lee Kyeong-jong¡¯s mind.
¡ªDeposit 640,000,000.
¡ªBnce 640,012,200.
A deposit transaction showed up on Su-hyeun¡¯s mobile phone. After waiting for a moment when the negotiation ended, the staff ran towards the nearest bank to make the deposit.
He had made his confirmation. Su-hyeun nodded his head and took out the pouch.
¡°Thank you for the pleasant deal.¡±
¡°It was the same for me.¡±
Lee Kyeong-jong reached his hand out towards Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun shook his hand.
640 million. It was the best amount that Lee Kyeong-jong could offer after making variousplicated calctions in his mind.
<>
If they had bought this huge amount of ether stones at once, they could have left a considerable amount of margin. As the ether stones were auctioned off, they could have also earned a significant amount ofmission.
Above all, obtaining these ether stones would be a massive lure for their clients as well. This alone made it worthwhile to have the ether stones. It was a satisfactory deal for both parties.
But Su-hyeun seemed to be quite calm seeing the amount on his mobile phone.
<<600 million...>>
It had been quite a while since he had an interest in money.
Either way, the value for money would have dropped to that of tissue in a few decades.
Besides, he had earned a lot back then. In his previous life, he had earned so much that this amount didn¡¯t seem significant in his bank ount.
It wasn¡¯t too far from the era when there were over 20 awakeners on the world¡¯s top 100 financial business leaders list.
¡°If you have other products for sale in the future, please do not hesitate to contact me.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll hope for it to be of this amount the next time too.¡±
There was no implication of decline. Instead, he had set the minimum amount to be of a simr level for the next deal.
Lee Kyeong-jongughed awkwardly as cold sweat trickled down his forehead.
<>
The dealing method had been the same, depending on whether the single calling price was satisfactory or not. If it wasn¡¯t satisfactory for once, Su-hyeun would head for another dealer without second thoughts.
<>
He still had to wait and see if Su-hyeun would be a big fish or just a minnow. But, Lee Kyeong-jong felt that Su-hyeun¡¯s presence was strangely huge.
<>
On the outside, Su-hyeun seemed to still be in his early twenties.
But his aura and gaze, as well as his tone, never felt the same. It was as if he was a high-profile awakener who had several decades of experience.
S-rank awakener, Yoo Jin-sung.
The world-renowned top awakener in Korea.
He had felt the same presence from Su-hyeun when he had met Yoo Jin-sung for the first time. It was a mystery as to why he could have felt that way when Su-hyeun was just a C-rank awakener.
<>
Su-hyeun walked towards Gangnam Station to check on his deposit transaction. How would Shin Su-yeong react if she saw how much he had earned this at one go?
But he had achieved his goal as expected. Su-hyeun took out the other ether stone that he had kept in his bag.
[Highest-grade ether stone.]
Quite a ridiculous item.
It was of a different level from the ether stones which he had sold to Lee Kyeong-jong earlier. In fact, the only simrity was its name.
There were two reasons as to why Su-hyeon devoted himself into his level varying dungeon wholeheartedly. Firstly, it was to prevent disasters from happening in Gwangju again. Secondly, it was to obtain this item.
<>
The value of the highest-grade ether stone would continue to rise not only for now but also in the distant future because this alone would also make a great tactical weapon.
There were rumours that a billionaire who coveted its power kept the ether stone by his side just to maintain his youth.
The highest-grade ether stone itself was such an incredible item.
<>
In fact, the summoner that Su-hyeon had fought was no different than an empty skeleton. It had maintained its lifespan with the life stone, but it was ultimately a mere skeleton. The only reason why the summoner was able to have a fight briefly with Su-hyeun was by making use of the magic from the highest-grade ether stone.
<>
It had such powers when it wasn¡¯t enhanced by men, so what would its capabilities be after being enhanced?
Su-hyeun was well aware of its capabilities. In fact, he had even encountered it before.
The Sacred Sword, Balmung.
An item named after the holy and sacred sword that had slew dragons.
It was the same sword that Su-hyeun had used in his previous life, made with the highest-grade ether stone.
Chapter 31
Chapter 31: Chapter 31
<>
Countless items were required to create Balmung. It was impossible to gather all the items needed to make only the shaft now. Balmung was the highest-grade weapon created to capture Fafnir, after sacrificing countless awakeners.
<>
Su-hyeun hailed a taxi and traveled towards Yangpyeong.
It took him an hour¡¯s ride to reach the remote forest. Su-hyeun walked along the forest path, where there were little street lights, and not a single local resident could be seen.
It was 4 PM in the afternoon. Although it was still quite early, it was getting dark in the forest. As he was in the woods and it was winter, it was a given for the sun to start setting early.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s footsteps hastened. Soon after, a standalone house with a small yard came into Su-hyeun¡¯s sight.
nk, nk¡ª
The sound of iron could be heard through the door that was left slightly ajar. He had found the right ce.
As he carefully opened the door to the house, Su-hyeun spoke. ¡°Is there anyone in?¡±
nk, nk¡ª
The sound of iron did not stop, nor was there any reply. Su-hyeun spoke in a louder voice this time. ¡°Is there anyone in?¡±
nk¡ª
The sound of iron stopped momentarily. Su-hyeun stood at the door, waiting. Soon after, a middle-aged man donned in thick cloth walked out from the back of the house.
¡°What is it? You¡¯re making so much noise!¡± He had a shaggy beard, burning red face, and questionably raised eyes. It was a face Su-hyeun hadn¡¯t seen for a long while.
<>
Craftsman Kim Dae Ho.
He was famous for his many talents, including iron smelting, weapon creation, and jewelry crafting. He was now holed up in the mountains, after taking a massive interest in ether stones and the awakeners¡¯ weapons.
<>
The weapon, Balmung, that Su-hyeun had was also crafted by him.
Act 5
The year was 2032.
There were lots of people gathered around him. Amongst them were high-ranking awakeners, and even some amateurs were present as well.
They were all here to just guard one man. It was top secret that thisrge number of people was called to gather by the edge halfway up the Yangpyeong mountain.
Just for one man. No, they were all here just to guard the one and only item.
nk, nk¡ª
The sound of iron could still be hearding from the door. When would that sound stop?
Sung-in pushed the door open and said, ¡°Uncle, it¡¯s me.¡±
The sound of iron had continued for quite some time before, but now it stopped immediately, and the owner even came out to greet his visitor.
¡°You¡¯re here?¡±
Not knowing how long he had been sitting for, Kim Dae-ho walked out, hitting the back of his waist. He scanned Sung-in from top to bottom and asked, ¡°You seemed to have made some achievement?¡±
¡°How did you know about it?¡±
¡°It¡¯s all over the news, kiddo. Are you crazy? You¡¯re still so young, yet going to all those dangerous ces trying to get yourself killed?¡±
¡°Well, it¡¯s my job to do so.¡±
¡°What sane person would be so hardworking and go around looking for all these ces? Don¡¯t care about others, but take care of yourself first.¡±
¡°Things never go as how I wish.¡± Sung-inughed lightly. If things had gone his way, he would have already done it.
It was a topic that he hadn¡¯t hoped to talk about. Every time it was the same result, a problem that had no answers to it. Sung-in changed the subject.
¡°What about the item I asked about thest time?¡±
¡°It¡¯s all done now. Here.¡±
Kim Dae-ho pulled out the sword that was on his back and passed it to Su-hyeun. As he had it on him so carelessly, Su-hyeun had not realized that it was the exact item that he had asked for.
¡°This...¡±
¡°I named it Balmung.¡±
Balmung. It was the name of the sword used by the hero Siegfried.
¡°What do you think? It¡¯s awesome, right?¡± As if satisfied with his own creation, Kim Dae-ho grinned so wide that his yellow teeth showed.
Sung-in looked at the sword closely. At that moment, his expression had stiffened.
¡°What did you add into the sword?¡± Did he think that Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t be able to find out?
Kim Dae-ho, who had a smiling face on, shook his head. ¡°Ah, this kid. Can¡¯t you just shut up and take it?¡±
¡°Uncle, could you have...¡±
It wasn¡¯t only the highest-grade ether stone that was put into the sword. There was also the item which Kim Dae-ho had cherished in his whole life, saying that he would make a masterpiece out of it. It was thanks to that item that Balmung was a masterpiece.
But...
¡°I can¡¯t ept this.¡±
He wasn¡¯t happy at all.
¡°How can I ept this? Uncle, uncle, why did you...¡±
¡°Sung-in,¡± Kim Dae-ho said in an attentive tone that was never heard from his mouth. It made Su-hyeun wonder if such a warm tone could actually be heard from his husky voice.
The flustered Sung-in kept quiet. Strangely enough, Sung-in¡¯s mouth was tightly shut.
¡°Everyone in the world calls you a hero. You know that, too, right?¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t live like that.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Your expression. Did you know that as you progress, it bes darker? Why on earth would you go around carrying the people¡¯s expectations, hopes, and everything else?¡±
¡°That¡¯s because...¡± Sung-in could not answer.
It was a question that he could not find an answer to. Although he had thought about it countless times a day, he could only arrive at one conclusion.
It was because he had no other choice.
If it weren¡¯t him, if he hadn¡¯t done it, if he hadn¡¯t existed...
After a long string of assumptions, his body eventually reacted first. And the result was an exhausted body and mind. But it would happen all over again.
¡°Well, up until now, it was just my grumbles. I know it, too. No matter what I say, you would never step out of your stubbornness,¡± said Kim Dae-ho.
¡°...I¡¯m sorry.¡±
¡°You asked earlier, right? Why.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Because it¡¯s unfair.¡±
Just what about it was unfair?
He needed more details. Sung-in stared nkly at Kim Dae-ho.
Kim Dae-ho took over the sword in Sung-in¡¯s hands once more. He slid the sword back into the sword shaft where the word ¡°Balmung¡± was engraved on it.
¡°Everyone in the world has never done anything for you, and yet hope for your assistance. What else is there in this world that¡¯s this selfish?¡±
¡°Is that being unfair?¡±
¡°Otherwise?¡±
¡°But that¡¯s...¡±
¡°You¡¯re saying it¡¯s your choice?¡±
Kim Dae-ho had already known what answer Sung-in was going to give. It was obvious. It was something that Sung-in and Kim Dae-ho had talked about not long ago. Kim Dae-ho hated it the most when people called Sung-in a hero.
¡°Yes, I know. That it was your choice.¡±
Sung-in didn¡¯t respond.
¡°So that¡¯s why I want to take a stand in this unfair rtionship, too.¡±
The unbnced rtionship that Kim Dae-ho was referring to had meant the vertical, one-sided rtionship of unconditional giving. Kim Dae-ho grinned as he handed over the sword with its shaft engraved with the word ¡°Balmung.¡±
¡°When the whole world is waiting for your assistance, there should at least be someone who could be of help to you. Don¡¯t you agree?¡±
The craftsman, Kim Dae-ho.
When Su-hyeun first got to know of Kim Dae-ho, it was also at this ce. Hearing that Kim Dae-ho had taken an interest in weapons used by awakeners and started making them in 2018, Su-hyeun had thought that he could be found there. A smile naturally crept onto his face. There weren¡¯t many times where he smiled, but when he saw Kim Dae-ho, a smile came to him.
¡°Uncle, I¡¯m here.¡±
It was a ce that he often came to whenever he had tough times. But now, Kim Dae-ho could not recall who he was.
<>
He was already well over his sixties. However, Su-hyeun hadst remembered Kim Dae-ho to be an elderly man with grey hair and a hunchback. He looked much younger nowpared to back then.
Su-hyeun was d to see him. He sped his hand and spoke. ¡°Nice to meet you. I¡¯m Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? But what brought you here?¡±
Kim Dae-ho, who was working on his equipment until a while ago, showed an irritated look on his face. What other reasons would there be for him to be holed up in a mountain like this? It was for him to not get disturbed.
But Su-hyeun, who had already epted his feelings, was undeterred by it.
¡°I heard that you have been creating weapons for awakeners.¡±
¡°Who said that? Which bbermouth...¡±
It looked like he was going to get furious right there and then. He seemed to have thought that someone had exposed his location. Su-hyeun spoke in a calm voice while Kim Dae-ho was jumping around in anger.
¡°I have a favor to ask of you.¡±
¡°Get lost, kid! I don¡¯t do just any weapon!¡±
¡°It¡¯s not just any weapon.¡±
¡°Ah, whatever, I¡¯m not doing it...¡±
Kim Dae-ho¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. The stone that was the size of a fist was held in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand. He spotted the highest-grade ether stone.
¡°Could this be...¡±
¡°It¡¯s an ether stone.¡±
¡°Is this for real?¡± He gave a bbergasted and astonished look also filled with joy and anticipation. It was the exact reaction of the Kim Dae-ho he knew.
When others saw an ether stone, they would have a greedy expression on their faces because they saw it as money, but it was different for Kim Dae-ho.
<>
The greed shown on his face was not materialistic. It was out of curiosity and anticipation. It was the aspiration that had made Ki Dae-ho a craftsman. He was, indeed, a true blue craftsman.
¡°Yes, it¡¯s the real deal.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve never seen such a huge ether stone. Never...¡±
¡°Wouldn¡¯t you recognize it, though?¡±
Kim Dae-ho nodded slightly at Su-hyeun¡¯s question.
Ever since the ether stones were discovered, he was a craftsman who realized that the ether stones could be used to make items and had continuously made them. He sold items when he had insufficient funds and used those funds to purchase ether stones and other materials. Then he would continue to make equipment and items again. He had dealt with ether stones more than anyone else in the world. Thus, there was no excuse for him to not be able to differentiate between an ordinary stone and an ether stone.
¡°Where exactly did you get this from?¡± It finally seemed that he wanted to talk.
¡°Is the source of it important?¡±
¡°Not really.¡± Kim Dae-ho grinned widely. It looked as if he was really enjoying it.
His reaction was as expected. The origin of the ether stone was never important to him. What was most important was that an ether stone of this size had appeared in front of him.
¡°Right. What do you want?¡±
¡°I want a sword.¡±
¡°A sword?¡±
¡°Yes. I hope you could make me a killer sword.¡±
In this era, no one else in this world had better weapon crafting skills than Kim Dae-ho. To Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge, Kim Dae-ho would still be the only renowned craftsman even in the distant future. It was up to the point where the equipment and items created by him were traded at premium price points in the future.
¡°If so, you¡¯vee to the right ce.¡± Kim Dae-ho kept smiling and spoke with confidence.
¡°I don¡¯t need any payment. Since you¡¯ve brought such a precious item, it¡¯ll be free.¡±
¡°You¡¯re quite straightforward.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s set up a contract. As for the guarantor...¡±
¡°I don¡¯t need it.¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head at Kim Dae-ho, who was anxious to get started on the production.
Kim Dae-ho, who was in a hurry to create the contract, stopped and turned his head around.
¡°What?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t need the contact, Uncle.¡±
Chapter 32
Chapter 32: Chapter 32
Kim Dae-ho responded with a nk face at Su-hyeun¡¯s words. It seemed that Kim Dae-ho did not fully understand the meaning behind what Su-hyeun said.
Kim Dae-ho frowned slightly and asked, ¡°Are you sure about that?¡±
¡°Yes, I¡¯m certain.¡±
¡°Look kiddo, tell me the truth. Where did you pick the ether stone up? Are you not aware of how precious this item was?¡±
How could Su-hyeun be oblivious to it? The only person in this world who could have known how valuable this item was was Su-hyeun. Even so, there was only one reason that made Su-hyeun shook his head.
¡°I trust you, Uncle.¡±
¡°...What?¡±
¡°Wasn¡¯t the only thing which you hoped for was a sword made with that stone? The process of using that item.¡±
There was a slight twist in Kim Dae-ho¡¯s expression. After showing a preposterous expression, he opened his mouth.
¡°Ke, kah, kahahaha!¡± It was blinding. His roaringughter came back, echoing from the forest beyond the door.
It had been a while since Su-hyeun saw Kim Dae-houghing so heartily. He, of course, had expected it.
Su-hyeun himself, too, was also aware of how ridiculous his words were.
¡°You¡¯re quite an interestingd. No, are you a weirdo? Anyway...¡± Kim Dae-ho took the ether stone in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand and spoke. ¡°You¡¯re right. What I wanted was the process of creating the sword, not this item itself. Let me ask you onest thing.¡±
Kim Dae-ho held up the ether stone he took from Su-hyeun in front of his eyes and asked, ¡°Do you truly trust me?¡±
¡°Yes, I have my trust in you.¡±
¡°Kek. Kah! You¡¯re a weirdo, youngd.¡± Once again, Kim Dae-ho startedughing heartily.
Soon, hisughter disappeared without a trace, and all that was left was a stern look.
¡°So, alright. As much as you have put your trust in me, I will return that favor as well. I¡¯ll create a sword out of this world.¡±
¡°Yes, please do your best.¡±
Su-hyeun reached out his hand to Kim Dae-ho cheekily. Kim Dae-ho nkly stared at Su-hyeun¡¯s hand for a while before grasping it. Strangely, there was a familiar feeling even though they had just met.
Su-hyeun then returned home immediately. It was alreadyte evening. Su-hyeun arrived back home around a simr time as Shin Su-yeong.
Shin Su-yeong had prepared a simple stew and had been waiting for Su-hyeun¡¯s return. As she looked at Su-hyeun, who arrived back homete, she spoke out immediately.
¡°Son, shall we talk?¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
What had toe eventually came. Su-hyeun took his seat at the dining table. They did not turn on the television for this conversation.
Shin Su-yeong started to speak first.
¡°Tell me, truthfully, son. You are hiding something from me, right?¡±
¡°Yes, I am.¡± Was it because he had been expecting this moment for a long time? He didn¡¯t find much difficulty replying. ¡°You know what kind of person an awakener is, right?
Shin Su-yeong¡¯s eyes wavered at Su-hyeun¡¯s question.
Seeing that she wasn¡¯t too surprised, Shin Su-yeong must have had her suspicions and guesses.
¡°Yes, of course, I know.¡±
¡°Then, you should know how dangerous that job is, too.¡±
¡°Of course. Your mom has eyes and ears, too.¡±
¡°Mom, actually...¡±
Su-hyeun closed his eyes tightly. Su-hyeun held his breath for a moment and started telling his story.
Everything that had happened before. How Su-hyeun started as an awakener, the things that every other awakener had gone through by clearing trials to get even stronger. He even spoke of yesterday and the day before, when he had gone for a dungeon attack.
After Su-hyeun had told all of his stories, he observed Shin Su-yeong closely.
¡°Mom, why... do you have this expression?¡±
The one flustered should have been Shin Su-yeong, as it was Su-hyeun who had been keeping all of this a secret until now. But after all of this had been said, it was Su-hyeun who felt flustered.
¡°What kind of expression should I have?¡±
Su-hyeun stumbled at Shin Su-yeong¡¯s rhetorical question and finally spoke.
¡°Aren¡¯t you angry?¡±
Su-hyeun had expected Shin Su-yeong to re up at him and be worried about him. Shin Su-yeong had always worried over him even when nothing happened, asking if he had been taking his meals; Su-hyeun could never imagine how worried she would be when he revealed that he had been fighting monsters all this while.
But...
¡°It¡¯s not something that I should be angry about.¡±
Not only did Shin Su-yeong not re up at him, but she only put on a sad expression. Su-hyeun had never expected such a reaction from her.
¡°Why?¡±
¡°Son.¡±
Hearing Shin Su-yeong¡¯s voice, it broke Su-hyeun¡¯s heart.
¡°Wasn¡¯t it tough?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes widened at Shin Su-yeong¡¯s question. That short phrase created a considerable stir deep in his heart.
It was tough. It was quite tough at that.
Never had anyone asked him this question before. Not even his mother from his previous life.
¡°Won¡¯t it be even tougher... in the future? Won¡¯t you feel exhausted or even regret your decision?¡±
It would be tough. Even more so aspared to now.
Instead of hearing words of encouragement, it was his first time hearing words of concern like these.
Something rushed up from within Su-hyeun as he was forced to suppress his feelings. Su-hyeun, afraid to show his tears, clenched his fist tightly, bit his lips, and lowered his head.
¡°Yes. I¡¯m... alright.¡±
His heart and mouth could only respond differently. Su-hyeun could never bring up the word ¡°difficult¡± in front of Shin Su-yeong.
Either way, it was something that he was prepared for all along. She probably would have known about it, too.
But even so, Shin Su-yeong did not stop Su-hyeun. She could never be happy nor sad for Su-hyeun.
¡°If you say it like this, there¡¯s nothing I can do.¡±
Shin Su-yeong had already known.
Seeing how Su-hyeun did not tell her the truth and his thoughts, it meant that her persuasion or words would not work on him. She knew that right at this moment, her persuasion and worries would only make it harder on Su-hyeun. Thus, all she could do now was encourage him. Furthermore, Shin Su-yeong did not want to change Su-hyeun¡¯s life.
Shin Su-yeong respected and supported Su-hyeun¡¯s decision. If it meant for Su-hyeun to have a happier life...
¡°I¡¯ll support you, my son.¡±
Shin Su-yeong hugged Su-hyeun.
For some reason, something surged up from within once again.
¡°Thank you.¡±
He could not show his weak side in front of Shin Su-yeong. Not being able to cry, Su-hyeun suppressed his feelings andughed.
¡°Thank you, mother.¡±
After that, Shin Su-yeong began to ask Su-hyeun various questions. She questioned what kind of job awakeners did, whether it was dangerous, and how busy the job was. And of course, she had also insisted for him not to take up too dangerous jobs if possible.
Su-hyeun responded to them all, saying, ¡°I got it.¡± He didn¡¯t want to see Shin Su-yeong getting anxious over him.
¡°Really?¡±
¡°Yes. Look at this.¡±
Shin Su-yeong stared in shock as Su-hyeun showed her his bank deposit bnce.
¡°Lies...¡±
¡°Do you want to confirm this with me at the bank tomorrow?¡±
¡°Oh my, oh my...¡±
She had heard that awakeners had a job that paid well, but never did she expect them to be able to earn this much just overnight.
The amount that Su-hyeun earned overnight was what Shin Su-yeong could only make after working for over 20 years.
¡°Aren¡¯t you being too happy?¡±
¡°Of course. Why would anyone hate money?¡±
¡°But you weren¡¯t pleased earlier?¡±
¡°Well, that¡¯s that, and this is this.¡±
¡°Oh my...¡±
Although he knew Shin Su-yeong liked money, he had never expected her to change her attitude this fast. Su-hyeun let out a sigh and shook his head. Even so, he felt relieved that Shin Su-yeong did not show an even more tormented look.
<>
Either way, he felt good.
Shin Su-yeong, who was always struggling with mary issues, thought that she could finally rx for a bit now.
¡°Let¡¯s go take a look at houses tomorrow.¡±
With this money, they could finally escape from this basement apartment. Shin Su-yeong could also achieve her dream of having her own little store. Moreover, Shin Su-yeong had always wanted to manage a store of her own.
As their conversation ended, they watched the television as they had their dinner.
Right on time, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face appeared on the news.
¡°Last night, a dungeon that appeared in Gwangju, Gyeonggi province¡¯s Anyak mountain had a level change. Fortunately, the leader of the party, Lee Ju-ho, who led the dungeon attack,pleted the dungeon attack; but through this ident...¡±
This type of dungeon had not yet appeared up until now; thus, it was enough to be reported as news.
But it wasn¡¯t creating much stir as Su-hyeun had expected. The news had only served its purpose of warning the public that such dungeons were appearing as well.
Buzz¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s smartphone rang as soon as he stepped into his room after dinner.
It was a call from Lee Ju-ho.
¡°Hello?¡±
<>
It¡¯s the same topic over again.
Although Lee Ju-ho had sent the same text messages previously, Su-hyeun¡¯s replies never changed.
But no matter what, Lee Ju-ho seemed not to have any thoughts on epting the other half of the ether stones that were given to him.
¡°I have lots of money. I¡¯m not that poor to ept them shamelessly, nor do I have any reason to.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t there a reason for you to ept them? You kept my secret and even took care of the annoying issue for me. That¡¯s enough reason.¡±
¡°But it¡¯s too muchpared to what I¡¯ve done. It¡¯s not wrong to say that you¡¯vepleted the dungeon attack yourself, isn¡¯t it?¡±
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s opinion was more tenacious than he had thought. He didn¡¯t seem easy to persuade.
If so...
¡°How about this, can you lend me your name?¡±
¡°My name?¡±
¡°More urately, your B-rank awakener title. Since there are higher possibilities for a B-rank awakener to register for a red level dungeon attack alone, you¡¯ll just have to add me in.¡±
There will be more dungeon attacks happening in the future. Instead of hiding Su-hyeun¡¯s capabilities and strengths, it¡¯s better if both he and Lee Ju-ho worked together as a team. Moreover, if there¡¯s only the both of them, the distributed amount of ether stones will be higher, too.
¡°Of course, if you think that¡¯s troublesome...¡±
¡°No, it¡¯s not. Let¡¯s do it ording to your suggestion.¡±
His reply was quick. Lee Ju-ho seemed to have thought that Su-hyeun¡¯s suggestion was better for himself, too. To be able to enter a dungeon attack with a skilled awakener like Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t a bad proposal for him either.
¡°I¡¯ll take your eptance as agreement, and will contact you in the future. If you want to apply first, that¡¯s fine, too.¡±
¡°Yes, I¡¯ll wait for your call.¡±
That ended their phone conversation. Su-hyeun¡¯s expression rxed as his worries were lifted off his shoulders.
<>
He didn¡¯t need to get the awakener¡¯s registration card that one needed to obtain permission for a dungeon attack thanks to his new friend, Lee Ju-ho. The minimum conditions of being at least a B-rank awakener for joining a dungeon attack was fulfilled thanks to Lee Ju-ho.
The issue with Shin Su-yeong had also been resolved amicably. It felt as though an immense thunderstorm had quickly passed.
<>
All he had to do was to look forward and achieve his goals.
The next day.
Su-hyeun left home as the day broke. Now, Shin Su-hyeun did not even ask Su-hyeun where he was headed. Su-hyeun opened the door to the Tower of Trials.
<>
It was differentpared to the times where he meaninglessly climbed the tower without goals.
Now, he had a clear goal for climbing the Tower of Trials. There was also an apparent reason for doing it. Strangely, his feet felt light. With this feeling, it felt as if he could do achieve anything.
Step¡ª
Su-hyeun stepped into the Tower of Trials.
[Kim Su-hyeun, your 11th-floor trial starts now.]
Chapter 33
Chapter 33: Chapter 33
Lee Ju-ho, who was fidgeting on his smartphone, suddenly had a surprised expression on his face.
Lee Ju-ho, who habitually went on Abyss Online on the go to check for updates, got his eyes caught on a post where an awakener introduced himself as the awakener on the 12th floor.
¡°Already...?¡±
The awakener who had cleared the 11th floor was moving onward to the 12th, which meant the record on the 12th floor was the ranking from the 11th floor¡¯s trial.
Seated beside Lee Ju-ho, Kim Ba-reun asked, ¡°What? What is it?¡±
Lee Ju-ho brought his smartphone screen in front of Kim Ba-reun¡¯s eyes.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? He has already cleared the 11th-floor trial?¡±
¡°Yeah. It looks like Su-hyeun¡¯s record this time was quite insane, too.¡±
¡°They¡¯re really something. Whether it¡¯s this Su-hyeun or the other Su-hyeun, they¡¯re both...¡± Kim Ba-reun, who wasn¡¯t aware that both Su-hyeuns were actually the same man, shook his head.
His admiration was just for the famous Kim Su-hyeun, the one who had been creating the highest record made in history as he climbed each floor. But the surprise that Lee Ju-ho had was of a different level than Kim Ba-reun¡¯s.
He, on the other hand, had received a call from Su-hyeun yesterday morning.
¡°I am going to go to the 11th floor of the Tower of Trials. I might be hard to get in contact with for the time being.¡±
Reality and the world in the Tower of Trials were totally different. And obviously, it would be impossible to contact anyone from inside the Tower of Trials via smartphone.
Thinking that Lee Ju-ho might have contacted him immediately, Su-hyeun gave him a heads up in advance. No one could tell unless they knew in advance how long it would take to clear a trial or the content of the trial.
But...
<>
Su-hyeun had always cleared the level 10 trials of each floor. It was a kind of identity for the awakener named Kim Su-hyeun. And of course, it was almost impossible to clear such a trial just within a day.
<>
Lee Ju-ho grinned widely and locked his smartphone. Heid back down and spoke. ¡°Head back now if you¡¯re done. I can discharge tomorrow, so don¡¯t be too worried.¡± Lee Ju-ho, who was donned in a patient¡¯s outfit and was being admitted to the hospital, waved his hand at Kim Ba-reun, implying that thetter was annoying.
Kim Ba-reun hit his chest at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s reaction, feeling frustrated. ¡°This fool. How did you think of challenging a dungeon when its level was raised?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know either. But it was harder than I had thought, really.¡±
¡°Thankfully, you did not die. Don¡¯t you know? The rule of the Tower of Trials. How big of a difference it is for every floor.¡±
Even if it was just a single level difference, the difficulty got exponentially harder as it ascended. Therefore, the higher ss awakeners would challenge the lower level trials, but never the higher ones. It was a clear rule for the awakeners to survive.
But Lee Ju-ho had broken that very rule.
¡°Right. I know that it was suicide, but it just so happened.¡±
¡°Why did you suddenly have a change of heart? You even said so yourself that climbing the Tower of Trials was a stupid thing to do.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not sure. After escaping from death once, my thoughts seemed to have changed.¡±
¡°...You have changed a lot.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll take that as apliment. And I want to rechallenge it sometimeter.¡±
¡°Are you for real?¡± Kim Ba-reun asked in surprise.
How could he want to rechallenge it after all that? Even if he was lucky enough to have survived that time, he had not actually passed the trial.
He should have returned back to reality by now.
¡°Yeah. I will continue to challenge it as long as I¡¯m alive.¡±
¡°...What about the dungeon attacks?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sorry, but we can¡¯t go together in the future. I think I¡¯ll concentrate on climbing the Tower for the time being.¡±
Kim Ba-reun bit his lips tightly after hearing Lee Ju-ho¡¯s response. As he saw the expression on Kim Ba-reun¡¯s face, Lee Ju-ho felt a bitter pang in his heart.
<>
He was the friend who contacted him suddenly one day, saying that he had be an awakener.
In the years that followed, Lee Ju-ho and Kim Ba-reun had gone to dungeon attacks together. And it had been a year since then. But instead of supporting or worrying about Lee Ju-ho, Kim Ba-reun looked disappointed at the fact that they could no longer go on dungeon attacks anymore.
Lee Ju-ho closed his eyes. Kim Ba-reunstly wished him well and then left the room. Lee Ju-ho felt slightly bitter, but at the same time relieved too.
It was something he had to say either way. In fact, he was also afraid of how his friend would have reacted to it. But now, he would be able to focus on climbing the Tower, like before.
<>
As he recalled the trial which he had challenged the day before, he felt a little frightened. Even so, it was not suitable to be hesitant about challenging the trials.
<>
[Kim Su-hyeun, your 12th-floor trial starts now.]
Three monthster, a yellow level dungeon appeared in Jongro, Seoul. The Ares Guild was being selected as the guild to head the dungeon attack.
¡°Thanks for the hard work!¡±
¡°Thanks for the hard work!¡±
Tens of awakeners bowed towards one man in the group: the Ares Guild¡¯s master, Jeong Dong-yeong. Jeong Dong-yeong went around patting each awakener in the guild and sent them off.
¡°Right, you¡¯ve worked hard. Hak-joon stays back, and everyone else should head back for an early rest.¡±
¡°Yes!¡±
At Jeong Dong-yeong¡¯s orders, the guild members quickly dispersed on the spot. Jeong Dong-yeong and Hak-joon remained and let out exhausted pants while boarding the back seats of a ck sedan.
¡°Is it tiring?¡±
¡°This dungeon attack was quite tough. Why didn¡¯t you take an easier one?¡±
¡°If I did that, the attack would be too easy. Yellow level dungeons are hard toe by, and it could also be a chance for others to increase their skills.¡±
¡°Someone could die in the midst of it. These days, the death rates of awakeners are increasing, too...¡±
¡°If so, that will exin that person¡¯s capabilities.¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s expression became slightly twisted after hearing Jeong Dong-yeong¡¯s cold reply.
Jeong Dong-yeong genuinely did not care for the other awakeners¡¯ lives. Had he paid more attention to the dungeon attack as an A-rank awakener, the dungeon attack would have beenpleted without anyone getting injured.
¡°I heard that you¡¯re in contact with the kid called Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s face stiffened at Jeong Dong-yeong¡¯s question. Hak-joon had never told Jeong Dong-yeong about it.
¡°...Yes.¡±
¡°Was he really that Kim Su-hyeun? That guy apparently has gone up to the 15th floor recently.¡±
The 15th floor.
It was never a high floor. No, instead, it was a rtively low floor.
Hak-joon was now already on the 28th floor, challenging all the level 8 trials on each floor. But even so, if anyone asked whether Hak-joon was stronger than Kim Su-hyeun, it definitely wasn¡¯t so. All the records Kim Su-hyeun had made up until now on the 15th floor had already surpassed Hak-joon¡¯s records on the 28th floor by a lot.
¡°If he was that guy...¡±
¡°It couldn¡¯t be.¡±
¡°Are you certain?¡±
¡°Yes. Haven¡¯t I told you before? Brother...¡±
¡°Brother? You¡¯ve got a lot closer to him now, haven¡¯t you?¡¯
Hak-joon could not continue further. No, he thought that he should not answer any further. Whatever his answer was, the consequences would be adverse.
Jeong Dong-yeong grinned at Hak-joon¡¯s stiffened expression.
¡°Kiddo, what¡¯s with this expression? I was only asking.¡±
¡°It¡¯s nothing. Just...¡±
¡°Anyway, if he is the Kim Su-hyeun I know, try to entice him. Even if it fails, that¡¯s fine, too. If you guys are close, isn¡¯t he considered my younger brother as well?¡±
The Ares Guild was growing bigger as each day passed. Jeong Dong-yeong, too, was quite a capable awakener, and the guild had a lot more awakeners than before. Now, even the guild ced in the higher ranks as well.
¡°...Yes. I got it.¡±
Hak-joon nodded his head while he replied. Hak-joon was quite disturbed by the smartphone in his pocket. As the sedan¡¯s engine started, it started heading somewhere.
It was the next dungeon¡¯s location.
Act 6
[Kim Su-hyeun, the 15th-floor trial starts now.]
Time had passed by quite quickly.
Time did not give anyone even an inch of error. The world continued moving on like a rewound video, slowly showing the next scenes of a story.
But there were definitely differences that had urred.
A small stone that was tossed into a giganticke.
And the waves that it created started rippling out.
The year was 2021, when the world had actually started to change.
Grr¡ª
A 16-foot tall huge monster stood with its mouth open.
The monster¡¯s two horns were broken into halves, and it had bright red-colored skin simr to that of a tiger. The monster appeared in the middle of a medieval European city. It was said that the beast was sealed in the grounds underneath the city since ancient times.
Su-hyeun frowned as he looked at the monster.
¡°It took me a lot of effort in finding you.¡±
¡°Please, please be careful!¡±
There was someone who did not run away. He was a young man who lived in the vige, and Su-hyeun hade across him a few times.
Kyaa¡ª!
The ancient monster faced the skies and cried out loud. It wasughing instead of crying. It wasughing madly.
It seemed that it was quite happy to have been freed from its seal.
¡°You, you must escape...¡±
Even if he was stammering, the young man could not make his run without Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun was not sure whether he was being nosy or had a sense of justice. Either way, Su-hyeun was thankful that he worried about him.
But...
¡°Hey.¡±
Su-hyeun ignored the young man¡¯s words and called out to the ancient beast.
¡°You shouldn¡¯t beughing at a time like this.¡±
Grr¡ª
Only then did the ancient beast look at Su-hyeun directly. It had a puzzled look. It crumpled its face after realizing that Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t the least bit afraid of itself.
¡°What are you looking at?¡±
It turned around at Su-hyeun¡¯s voice which came from behind.
Slide¡ª
Squelch¡ª!
The sword wielded from behind, blew up at the ancient beast¡¯s body. Blood gushed out from the sh made on its back.
Stomp, stomp¡ª
Crack, kyaaa¡ª!
The ancient beast roared at Su-hyeun as it had almost gotten stuck to the ground.
Su-hyeun swung his sword a few times in the air as he felt a heavy feeling at the tip of his sword.
¡°Indeed, I can¡¯t use this any further.¡±
The ancient beast¡¯s skin being thick was a problem in itself, too. But there was also a problem with the sword that he was using as well. A year had passed since Su-hyeun had started wielding the sword. It wouldn¡¯t be much of a problem on the lower floors, but using it at this time was an issue.
<>
It was time to stop talking about the sword. Even if he used a blunt sword, it would still be enough to deal with the monster which stood before Su-hyeun.
¡°So let¡¯s...¡±
Kya, kyaa¡ª!
The me was set aze on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. Two birds created from the me appeared around Su-hyeun at the same time.
They were phoenixes, which were born from the mes.
¡°Bite it.¡±
Kyaa¡ª!
The two phoenixes flew towards the monster at Su-hyeun¡¯s order.
ck mes that came out from the monster¡¯s mouth swept through the phoenixes¡¯ bodies. The phoenixes disappeared without a trace, and the monster shifted its vision on Su-hyeun.
sh¡ª!
Squelch¡ª!
The two phoenixes broke through the ck mes and began to bite on the monster¡¯s body.
Kyaa¡ª!
The monster struggled to shake off the two phoenixes that clung onto its body, but the monster had overlooked something for the moment.
It was Su-hyeun that was now over its head.
Chapter 34
Chapter 34: Chapter 34
The mes turned blue for a while. As the monster felt high heat above its head, it stopped its actions and looked above.
Grr¡ª
What the monster saw above its head was a gigantic blue sword.
And soon.
sh¡ª
A blue line simr to that sword sliced the monster¡¯s body into half.
Sludge, sludge¡ª
The monster¡¯s body fell to the sides, starting from its head. The beast quickly raised its arm to keep his body from falling off, but, of course, it wasn¡¯t possible.
Stomp, stomp¡ª
Its massive body finally split into half and fell onto the floor. Thick blood flowed, and Su-hyeun, who stood in front of the corpse, extinguished the me and caught his breath.
Pant¡ª
A blue me and the me¡¯s bird, the phoenix.
Both of them were newly acquired abilities obtained through leveling me¡¯s skill. It was his first time checking out their effects, and each had its own pros and cons.
<>
Firstly, the required mana to maintain the phoenix was quite substantial.
Moreover, the phoenix was a summoner that never perished if Su-hyeun could have an indefinite supply of mana to maintain the me.
But the mana consumption was too high. And it was the same for the blue me.
<>
The phoenix maintained its original form even though it had suffered attacks from the ancient beast. It was because Su-hyeun had kept supplying mana so that it doesn¡¯t disappear.
But at that moment, Su-hyeun felt his magic factor got shed tremendously. It was a tremendous amount of magic that he hadn¡¯t expected to use.
<>
Stumble¡ª
Then, the monster¡¯s body convulsed vigorously. Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze fell onto the monster¡¯s half in body. It was fascinating that the monster hadn¡¯t died yet. It¡¯s too horrible to think of one being alive while in that state.
Come to think of it, there wasn¡¯t any message of him clearing the trial.
<>
It wasn¡¯t too bad of a trait, but it wasn¡¯t one that would make Su-hyeun envious. What could one do with that enormous amount of strength if he had to also be stuck in that situation?
¡°Even so, you...¡±
Burning¡ª
Su-hyeun brought out the me once again.
¡°I can¡¯t use the transfiguration ingredients either.¡±
But it was also much too useful for an 18th-floor trial. It wasn¡¯t to the level of wanting that ancient monster¡¯s trait to himself.
nk¡ª!
Su-hyeun swung his sword and lit the me. At that moment, a gigantic ze swept over the ancient monster¡¯s body.
[You have gained 50,000 achievement points.]
[You have attained the highest achievement.]
[You have cleared the 19th floor trial with perfection.]
[You will be ranked ording to your performance.]
[You have been ranked first.]
[You have gained 1 health point...]
....
[Will you ascend to the next floor?]
The string of messages appeared simultaneously. It had also meant that the monster had finally died.
The objective of the trial was to end the unstable resurrection of the ancient monster and the creature. Of course, several forces attempted to fully revive the monster in the process.
<>
It was annoying being instructed on what to do.
Although it would be manageable for Su-hyeun to handle the monster at the current level, it would not be a smooth process. However, he had eventually seeded in finishing off the ancient monster that had hibernated under the city. It had taken him two months to clear the trial.
¡°T-t-the monster...¡±
The young man who had warned Su-hyeun to be careful earlier had now flopped on the ground and was muttering to himself. After the monster appeared, everyone had escaped to the outskirts of the city. Only Su-hyeun and the young man were left.
Su-hyeun looked at the young man. The young man looked back at Su-hyeun with fear in his eyes.
<>
There was no other reason for him to stay there. Su-hyeun lifted his head towards the sky and spoke.
¡°Ascend.¡±
[You will ascend on to the 20th floor.]
His sight had turned white in an instant, and a vast city appeared before him once again.
It was a city that had been fully frozen and covered in white. The world on the 20th floor was a frozen city called Raglia.
Its temperature had reached as low as minus 60 degrees. On the 20th floor was a dying city where no living human would be able to live in.
Su-hyeun could hear people¡¯s mutters as he stepped into the square.
A crisis existed every 10 floors at the Tower of Trials. The trials at every 10th floor had exceptionally high difficulty, which brought about high numbers of death. Thus, only special awakeners gathered every 10 floors, including the 20th and 30th floors.
<>
31st December.
Today was thest day of the year.
Su-hyeun had aimed to achieve his goal to reach the 20th floor before the year ended. Though he had cleared the trial with ease at first, thest trial had been a drag.
Even so, he was able to arrive on the 20th floor ording to his goal. Of course, something was missing.
<>
The magic level and factor.
His original aim was to achieve a magic level of seven, and a magic factor of 70, but he was short of achieving those goals. Although he was able to pull up his magic factor to 68, which neared 70, his magic level still stayed at level six.
[Name: Kim Su-hyeun]
[Magic Factor: 68] [Magic Level: 6]
[Strength: 71] [Agility: 78]
[Health: 69] [Reflex: 80]
[Skill: Leap *Details.]
[Skill: Transfiguration *Details.]
[Skill: me...]
...
[Fatigue: 15.]
Compared to two years back when he first entered the Tower of Trials, the status window had lengthed quite a bit.
There was an overall increase in stats and magic level, a magic factor was a given, and an increase in skills.
Two years.
Though it wasn¡¯t a short time, it wasn¡¯t quite long either. If someone were to witness Su-hyeun¡¯s stats with their own eyes, his mouth would be wide-open in awe.
<>
Although he had a high magic factor and level, the overall increase in stats was remarkable, too.
<>
Some partsplemented others, and there were some areas that Su-hyeun was satisfied with.
<>
It was not sufficient, but rather at a rapid speed. His initial aim was set so high that it could be deemed as impossible to meet. Having nearly achieved his initial goal, it also meant that his performance wasn¡¯t that bad.
[Achievement points: 1,981,400.]
Su-hyeun checked on the amount of achievement points he had umted.
Although it was a massive number, it was slightly insufficient.
<<20,000 more points to go.>>
2,000,000 achievement points.
It was the price of the ¡°highest grade potential booster¡± that Su-hyeun wanted to get his hands on. Like all the other awakeners, what Su-hyeun needed most was magic.
Though nothing such as the skill¡¯sposition or items were unimportant, high magic levels and factors had the power to ignore them all.
<>
Considering that it too was an impossible goal, he had umted quite a considerable amount of achievement points.
Although it was a pity, it had not urred to him that he would not clear the 20th floor¡¯s trial.
<>
Thankfully, the date had matched up. Kim Dae-ho said that it would take almost a year toplete the weapon that Su-hyeun had requested.
¡°The ranking has been updated!¡±
Then, the square was filled with a certain awakener¡¯s voice. The ranks were, of course, updated regrly, but it wasn¡¯t hard to understand his words.
¡°Ranking? Could it be the first ce?¡±
¡°Could it be...¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun has arrived on the 20th floor?¡±
The square turned noisy in an instant.
The ranking had been updated. This also meant that Kim Su-hyeun had ascended to the 20th floor.
<>
Su-hyeun left the square and turned into a dimly-lit alley. Su-hyeun moved quietly alone in the crowd, and the public seemed to not have paid any attention. There were already tens of people gathered at the square anyway.
As soon as he entered the alley, Su-hyeun opened the door.
Rip¡ª
Su-hyeun returned to reality and soon turned on the car¡¯s engine.
It was a rtively expensive red sports car. It¡¯s quite a pity to drive it deep into the mountains.
Though Su-hyeun did not have much interest in the car, he had no reason to not ride it since it was a gift.
<>
It was a gift from Lee Ju-ho, who had gifted him the sports car afterpleting a dungeon attack one day. As per Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words, Su-hyeun only added gas in and took it out when he had to travel.
Screech¡ª
Su-hyeun drove his sports car into a hillside at Yangpyeong, the mountain where Kim Dae-ho¡¯s house was located. He drove it as deep as his car could go into the mountains, parked it, and started walking in.
nk, nk¡ª!
The sound of steel could be heard without fail.
Su-hyeun wondered when he took his rests. It was hard to imagine how much he loved hitting on steel.
¡°Uncle, I¡¯m here.¡±
nk¡ª!
The sound stopped.
Soon after, Kim Dae-ho trudged out to meet him.
¡°You¡¯re here?¡±
¡°Yes. It¡¯s today, right? Our promise.¡±
¡°What do you mean promise? I only said that I wouldplete it before the year ends.¡±
¡°Doesn¡¯t that mean the same thing?¡±
¡°I had longpleted it, kiddo. Come in immediately,¡± Kim Dae-ho said and turned around quickly. It wasn¡¯t to get the weapon, but instead, it was to guide him into the house.
Su-hyeun was slightly surprised at Kim Dae-ho¡¯s reaction.
Kim Dae-ho never allowed strangers into his smithy. Being invited into his smithy meant that he had a certain level of acknowledgment and friendship. Su-hyeun had entered Kim Dae-ho¡¯s smithy once in his previous life, but it was only after they had known each other for three years.
At the back of Kim Dae-ho¡¯s house was a smithy with a steel woven spherical ceiling. As he entered the smithy through the door, various equipment wasid out.
<>
The high heat was almost cooking his flesh. If an awakener like him could barely withstand that amount of heat, what about Kim Dae-ho?
He wasn¡¯t called a craftsman for nothing.
¡°Aren¡¯t you surprised?¡± Kim Dae-ho asked in a rtively small voice. It seemed that he had expected a surprised reaction.
It was reasonable to be surprised at this amount of equipment.
¡°Ah, I am surprised.¡±
¡°I know that you¡¯re not. How mean.¡±
It seemed that he wasn¡¯t satisfied with Su-hyeun¡¯s reaction.
Su-hyeunughed awkwardly and looked at the equipment hung on the walls: swords, spears, armor, wrist guards, etc.
Amongst those, the first equipment that came into Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes was the swords.
<>
There was a vast and minor difference in all the equipment; they all had ether stones mixed in them.
Though it was tough to smelt ether stones, making use of that and creating weapons like those were only made possible by certain craftsmen. In the current era, there was no one better than Kim Dae-ho who could make equipment of this quality.
<>
It could shake up the world quite a bit.
¡°What are you doing there? Stop looking at the junk and pick up your weapon now.¡±
Junk.
It was too much to call this equipment junk.
But of course, the equipment ced by the entrance was what Kim Dae-ho had regarded as failed creations. The sessful ones were in the basement.
And...
¡°You might be quite surprised at it.¡±
The weapon that Kim Dae-ho made for Su-hyeun was a masterpiece amongst them.
Chapter 35
Chapter 35: Chapter 35
Su-hyeun followed Kim Dae-ho through the hall of the hot smithy.
At first, he wondered how Dae-ho could endure such heat, but now he was no longer worried. Kim Dae-ho had developed a tolerance to the heat since he was a child.
More importantly, Su-hyeun wanted to see the sword that Kim Dae-ho had forged.
As they descended the staircase leading to the basement of the smithy, he could see equipment hanging on the wall.
It was the true masterpiece that Kim Dae-ho had created.
<>
These weren¡¯t items that could be found in this generation.
This was equipment that could only be found in the future, after a long period of countless research, advancement in crafting techniques, and smelting of the ether stones.
Kim Dae-ho was already creating this kind of equipment at this time. He was indeed both a master and a genius.
¡°Here, this is it.¡±
Kim Dae-ho picked a sword off the wall and handed it to Su-hyeun.
It was a sword of the highest quality made with ether stone, and he had it hanging on the wall.
An ordinary silver long sword. One couldn¡¯t really tell it was anything special by its appearance alone.
Su-Hyeun held the sword handed to him by Kim Dae-ho. It was heavy.
It was definitely more massive than a regr sword, but it didn¡¯t feel that bad to Su-hyeun.
¡°How is it? The weight is perfect, right?¡±
¡°Indeed, it is.¡±
It wasn¡¯t the weight of an ordinary sword. However, it wasn¡¯t a weight that would be considered heavy to the average awakener.
Instead, an appropriate weight was added to the power of the sword. It was a weight that held the proper bnce.
¡°The weight can be adjusted ording to the melted ether stone on the sword. You can make it weigh as heavy as a ton or as light as a feather. It¡¯s not really a good function, but I made it so that you can adjust it to your preference so use it to your liking.¡±
¡°What else?¡±
¡°Per your request, I forged it so that it stays true to a sword¡¯s function and magic conductivity, rather than the sword¡¯s overall use effect. The more powerful the user of the sword, the higher the efficiency of the sword will be.¡±
¡°Well, it¡¯s not that special.¡±
¡°Yes, it¡¯s not special. However, it¡¯s perfect.¡±
Shing¡ª
Su-hyeun pulled the sword out from its sheath. The shining silver long sword showed off its sleek de and reflected Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun took the sword and shed at the tip of his clothes. The de just swished through the fabric as if it were a blunt stick.
This time, he took another sword that he was carrying and threw it up in the air.
Swish¡ª sh¡ª
Thud¡ª Thud¡ª
The sword that Su-hyeun swung lightly cut through the sword that he threw in the air neatly in half.
As the halved sword fell to the ground, Su-hyeunmented, ¡°Interesting.¡±
It was as if the sword was alive.
Even without using magic, it was able to differentiate between what he was trying to cut and what he wasn¡¯t. Furthermore, its sharpness and its degree of strength were unbelievable as well. The level of sharpness could not be simply made from any substance.
¡°A magical device...¡±
¡°Oh, can you tell?¡±
As Su-hyeun realized the true worth of the sword, Dae-ho Kim smiled brightly.
¡°Correct. No technique can form that degree of sharpness. So, as you requested, I used the ether stone, which contains magical properties to form that extremely sharp and firm de.¡±
¡°Did you base it off the principle of an electric saw?¡±
¡°You¡¯ve got good eyes. Indeed. Rather than just being sharp, if you add the friction of rotation, that power will be amplified. Of course, it can¡¯t be seen with the naked eye.¡±
Su-hyeun was quite surprised.
His request was just for the shape and function of the sword to be urate and perfect to its basic form. It was because he thought that suited him better than a sword needlessly stered with skills. However, he never could imagine that the sword¡¯s power and sharpness could be increased like this.
<>
As expected, it was the right choice to ask Kim Dae-ho to create this. It had taken a whole year, but the creation of a weapon of this degree was worth the wait.
¡°What is its name?¡±
Kim Dae-ho engraved a name on all his equipment. Of course, it was only for the equipment that he deemed well made.
This sword was well worthy to receive a name. It definitely should have a name.
¡°It doesn¡¯t have one, twerp.¡±
¡°It doesn¡¯t?¡±
What a surprising answer. Kim Dae-ho roughly scratched his head and spoke.
¡°It¡¯s your sword, so you name it. You¡¯re not a kid, so why are you expecting me to name it, too?¡±
¡°...Is that okay?¡±
¡°What is?¡±
¡°You¡¯re not greedy for it? You made such a wonderful sword like this.¡±
¡°What greed is there to speak of? Forget it. I¡¯m satisfied that I could even have the chance to forge a sword like this.¡±
His chance to name the sword was now passed on to someone else. It might be something troublesome and meaningless, but for Kim Dae-ho, it was a huge concession.
Su-hyeun thought about the sword¡¯s name for a while. Instead ofing up with a name by himself, he wanted to share it with Kim Dae-ho, who had spent one year to painstakingly forge this sword.
Su-hyeun spoke after a while of thought.
¡°I¡¯ll name it Dragon ying Sword, Gram.¡±
¡°Gram? Dragon ying Sword? What kind of rustic name is that?¡±
The name Balmung was also named by Su-hyeun in the past.
Gram was another name of Balmung, used in North Europe¡¯s mythology. They were practically the same name.
But to Su-hyeun, above anything else, he did not want to give up on the title of a dragon-ying sword.
However, he did not want to reuse the name Balmung either. He thought that he might fail again if he used the same name.
¡°Well, I was wondering if I might be able to y a dragon with this sword someday.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s vague answer, Kim Dae-ho looked at him, speechless.
¡°Ha, what a cheesy kid.¡±
No matter Dragon ying Sword or Gram, it was all the same embarrassing name to Kim Dae-ho. Even so, Su-hyeun quite liked the name he hade up with. Su-hyeun was not aware that his wits ofing up with names were decreasing.
¡°I have deposited the fees beforeing here. Please confirm it.¡±
Su-hyeun spoke while putting Gram back into its scabbard. Kim Dae-ho blinked in surprise at the news which he had heard for the first time.
¡°Fees? What fees?¡±
¡°I had also sent a down payment. Didn¡¯t you see it?¡±
¡°What? Did you take me for a beggar, kid!¡± Kim Dae-ho jumped and shouted as if the smithy was going away. To Kim Dae-ho, money was nothing but funds to make materials to forge equipment.
¡°What else can I do when I have nothing else to give you? I don¡¯t want to hear from others that I¡¯m making use of you at this age.¡±
¡°Nonsense! If you wanted to fund me, you should have given me some materials instead of money. Aren¡¯t you an awakener, too?¡±
¡°Even so, wouldn¡¯t I be too shameless if I did that?¡±
¡°Forget it. I need the right materials instead of money. If you really want to thank me, you should have gotten me those.¡±
What he said was right.
A real reward should be what the other party needs most. To Kim Dae-ho, who regards money simr to a stone, it might not be considered a bonus.
But...
<>
Kim Dae-ho only bought the ether stones and used them on forging equipment, but did not sell them anywhere else.
He might have been quite wealthy thanks to his reputation as a craftsman now, but his wealth would run out someday.
In fact, Kim Dae-ho had been struggling with cash since 2021. Knowing the truth, Su-hyeun had deliberately deposited the money to him.
Buzz¡ª
That moment, the smartphone in Su-hyeun¡¯s pocket rang. Kim Dae-ho, who was hurling abusivenguage at Su-hyeun, stopped and waved his hand at him.
¡°Why should I be wasting my energy on you? Forget it. If there¡¯s nothing else, get lost.¡±
¡°Yes, Uncle. I¡¯ll be back again.¡±
¡°If you have nothing else, don¡¯t youe to me!¡±
Kim Dae-ho still came out to send Su-hyeun off despite having said that. Indeed, he was someone who acted differently from his words on a good note.
The vibrations which had continued for some time stopped. Su-hyeun quickly took out the smartphone from his pocket and checked the missed calls list.
It was from Lee Ju-ho. As Su-hyeun returned the call, Lee Ju-ho picked it up immediately.
¡°Hello?¡±
¡°What have you been doing recently?¡±
¡°I just got a weapon made. I¡¯m about to head up to the 20th floor.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve heard about it. There is a hugemotion about it on Abyss Online now.¡±
Did news travel this fast?
Somehow, there was no other faster source than online for people who loved writing. Su-hyeun scratched his head and walked towards his car.
¡°But why are you looking for me? Is there another dungeon this time?¡±
¡°Yes. There¡¯s that, too, and I thought of having a meal with you sometime. I had just cleared the 34th floor a while back.¡±
¡°I could probably meet you for a meal but... I think it might be tough for another dungeon attack.¡±
¡°Is there anything wrong?¡±
¡°I think I¡¯ll enter the 20th-floor trial immediately.¡±
Vroom¡ª
Su-hyeun started the engine as soon as he got in the car.
¡°Let¡¯s meet up for a chat first.¡±
Act 7
Su-hyeun drove his car towards a city near Yeongdeungpo in Seoul.
Su-hyeun and Lee Jun-ho met amidst the crowd. As it was dinner time, they went to a restaurant with a private room and ordered food. The dinner table was soon filled with Korean cuisine. As the door closed and their surroundings became quiet, Lee Ju-ho spoke.
¡°Are you very busy?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t want to push back any of my challenges.¡±
The 20th floor was a special section.
As much as it was the most challenging trial, its rewards were the best. Su-hyeun wanted to clear this section to the best of his potential.
¡°You seem to be in quite the hurry...¡±
Lee Ju-ho seemed to know Su-hyeun well. He felt that Su-hyeun was anxious.
¡°Is there anything wrong?¡±
¡°I have a favor to ask of you.¡±
The reply that Lee Ju-ho got was different from his question, but Lee Ju-ho thought that his reply had nothing to do with his question.
¡°What is it?¡±
¡°You have appeared a lot on the media recently, and even gotten more famous...¡±
¡°Recently, yes.¡±
Since a year back, Lee Ju-ho had been ascending the tower taking on trials that were more difficult than he usually handled. After it was found out by the public, Lee Ju-ho was the center of attention for news rted to awakeners. He was so-called the ¡®level-fluctuating¡¯ awakener.
Lee Ju-ho was already a B-rank awakener before themotion. When taking into consideration his level and the method he used to ascend the tower, it wasn¡¯t something special for the media to pay attention to him.
¡°Can you possibly get in personal contact with the authorities?¡±
¡°If you mean authorities... Do you mean the higher-ups?¡±
Su-hyeun was referring to not purely the awakeners authority, but the higher-ups that managed and operated the organization.
¡°It¡¯s not impossible, but...¡±
¡°Please convey a message to them.¡±
¡°Just what is it about?¡±
¡°In theing month or so...¡±
Su-hyeun started sharing his story.
When the story ended, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s expression was frozen in astonishment.
¡°Is that... true?¡±
¡°In all likelihood.¡±
¡°How did you get to know about this?¡±
¡°From the gatekeeper on the 20th floor. Although I¡¯m not exactly sure if the gatekeeper is also in the know about the issues going around here but... it¡¯s worth doubting.¡±
Gatekeepers.
The residents who only resided on every 10th floor, who were known to have all the information in the world.
They seemed to be all unrecognizable by their appearances, but at the very least, their information had never been wrong.
Not even once.
Of course, even if the results were urate, the process was false. This information was not from the gatekeeper, but rather from Su-hyeun¡¯s personal experience.
¡°So that¡¯s why the number of dungeons appearingtely had been rming...¡±
Chapter 36
Chapter 36: Chapter 36
It was now 2021. The world had changed dramatically after 2020 had passed. The number of awakeners increased, and the corresponding number of dungeons drew a sharp upward curve.
The dungeons weren¡¯t solely a social issue but were turning into a huge problem. Outbreaks were urring more often since dungeon attacks aren¡¯t executed earlier. Fortunately, there was no significant damage due to the swift action of nearby awakeners, but it had be a severe problem.
¡°In the future, there will be an increase in dungeons appearing and dungeon outbreaks. Although the number of awakeners is much higher than the dungeons right now...¡±
¡°You¡¯re saying that the tables would turnter?¡±
¡°At least that¡¯s what I think would happen.¡±
If it was ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s words, the situation had gone beyond a severe level.
Lee Ju-ho was one who had several years of experience as an awakener. He drew up the scene that Su-hyeun shared with him in his mind, where the number of dungeons outnumbered the awakeners.
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face turned blue in an instant. He put the chopsticks he had in his hand down on the table.
¡°...It¡¯s over.¡±
What if dungeons appeared all over the world, and all of those had outbreaks?
There would only be one result. The end of the world.
<>
When Su-hyeun brought up the story, he had wondered if Lee Ju-ho would ignore his words. As the proportion of dungeons to outbreaks increased, it had be a social problem.
That¡¯s probably why Lee Ju-ho could not ignore his words. Furthermore, if assuming what Su-hyeun said was true...
¡°If that¡¯s the case, this isn¡¯t favorable at all. Of course, I¡¯ll help.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
It was a relief.
If Lee Ju-ho¡¯s negotiations with the authorities were sessful, this issue could be solved without much trouble.
However, the problem was that unlike Su-hyeun, who knew how the future went, no one could be certain what decision the authorities would make.
<>
The case was only a gamble of probability to a certain extent. It was up to him to prepare in case the gamble failed. The preparation was something which he had on his mind for quite some time.
¡°But... It¡¯s certainly coincidental.¡±
¡°What are you talking about?¡±
¡°The period which you mentioned. It coincides with the green level dungeon attack that appeared at Ansan.¡±
It was sporadic for a green level dungeon to appear.
Not only did such dungeons require A-rank awakeners, depending on the situation, they might also need help from S-rank awakeners.
If the outbreak urred in such dungeons, the whole city would be in immediate danger, forcing the nation and the Awakeners Authority to focus entirely on the green level dungeons.
In other words, it was also the period where Seoul and Gyeonggi province would have ack of manpower.
¡°In fact, I had thought of going there if I couldn¡¯t get to go on the dungeon attack with you...¡±
It¡¯s not a good thing to say after hearing those words.
¡°Haa¡ª It¡¯splicated.¡±
Even so, he couldn¡¯t leave the green level dungeon alone. If there was an outbreak in the green level dungeon, it would also be a great danger to the city.
¡°Please don¡¯t expect too much. It¡¯s because it¡¯s me ¡ª that¡¯s why I believed it but isn¡¯t it quite a groundless story?¡±
¡°I got it. I¡¯ll make my preparations separately.¡±
Right now, there was a limit to what Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho could do, so they could only do their best within their boundaries.
<>
Su-hyeun once again concentrated on his meal and continued his train of thoughts.
<>
They soon finished their meal.
Lee Ju-ho felt that he could not hold back Su-hyeun for long. He too had to challenge the next floor¡¯s trial and also had to help Su-hyeun with his favor.
Su-hyeun thought over for a moment if he should head back home. It had been a while since he saw Shin Soo-yeong¡¯s face, too.
<>
Instead, it might be better for her to think that Su-hyeun was still focused and working hard on ascending the tower. However, he thought that a call would be alright.
Ring¡ª
Su-hyeun called Shin Soo-yeong.
¡°Hello?¡±
Though he hadn¡¯t heard her voice for some time, she sounded urgent. She must have been busy on the other line.
¡°Oh, mom. What are you doing?¡±
¡°I¡¯ve been busy for a while with the guests. Your call came at a good time. I was just about to take a break from the guests who just left.¡±
Shin Soo-yeong had set up her own store. After selling gold for more than a decade, Su-hyeun presented her with a jewelry shop. After setting up her own shop, she did not stop working for a moment. Her shop was quite prosperous, perhaps because of her volubility and ability.
¡°Are you done with your work? I haven¡¯t heard from you in a while.¡±
Su-hyeun left the house after getting a small studio. He thought that if he continued to stay with Shin Soo-yeong, he would still be concerned about her. Shin Soo-yeong, too, was more than ready to allow Su-hyeun to be independent.
Still, Su-hyeun still asionally took time out to spend with her, but of course, he hadn¡¯t had the time to do it recently.
¡°Yes, it just ended. But I think I¡¯ll have to start on another now.¡±
¡°Right away? Wouldn¡¯t it be tough?¡±
<> It was the mostmon question from her. It was only asked by Shin Soo-yeong. Although he knew she was worried, Su-hyeun liked hearing it.
¡°It¡¯s all right. I¡¯m not hurt anywhere. People say that I¡¯m a genius. Though I¡¯ve said it before, I think I¡¯m well-suited for this job.¡±
It wasn¡¯t a lie. In fact, variousmunities, including Abyss Online, and other countless awakeners, called Su-hyeun a genius and a divinity. Of course, only one of them, Lee Ju-ho, knew Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
¡°Son, don¡¯t you think you¡¯re too proud of yourself? Karma will get at you for being too conceited.¡±
¡°I know. Don¡¯t worry.¡±
¡°How can a mom not be worried about her son? Oh, I have a customer. Son, let¡¯s talk again!¡±
¡°Okay. Take care.¡±
And with that, Su-hyeun ended the call.
Vroom¡ª
Su-hyeun drove back in a hurry. He soon arrived at a rtively tall studio apartment building. Su-hyeun was done for the day. He got a new sword, Gram, and met Lee Ju-ho to convey the story. He also had a brief talk with Shin Soo-yeong.
<
December 31, 2020.
There was only one month left. During that time, Su-hyeun had no intention of staying idle.
All preparations areplete.
The 20th floor.
The ordeal on that floor was bound to be tense.
¡°Let¡¯s go.¡±
As usual, he muttered to himself and stretched his hand forward.
Rip¡ª
The door opened to the other world.
Su-hyeun¡¯s feet stepped forward.
Amid the freezing cold, Su-hyeun moved his feet.
When he breathed out, cold air came out from his mouth. While looking at the cold air from his mouth, Su-hyeun walked towards the portal.
A middle-aged beggar sat crouched in front of a gigantic portal that was filled with magic. A familiar vibe came off from the middle-aged man. He felt somewhat simr to the gatekeeper who resided on the 10th floor.
¡°Are you asleep?¡±
¡°Hmm? Ah, um...¡±
The gatekeeper, who was crouched, raised his head at Su-hyeun¡¯s call. The gatekeeper, who had been yawning, rubbed his eyes with one hand.
¡°Why? What is it, you called me?¡±
¡°If you¡¯re tired, I¡¯ll just go.¡±
¡°No, I¡¯m not tired. More than that...¡± The gatekeeper extended a friendly hand to Su-hyeun.
¡°Money.¡±
Most of the gatekeepers¡¯ habits were simr. There was no difference seeing how they were usually crouched and dozing off all day, or asking for money the moment they wake up.
Just what is it with them that they keep asking for money without fail? The achievement points they have had earned so far would be astronomical.
¡°How much do you want?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s question, the gatekeeper stared at Su-hyeun¡¯s face. The gatekeeper, who had been looking at Su-hyeun¡¯s face for a while, sighed quietly and said.
¡°You, you¡¯re a freak.¡±
¡°If that¡¯s the case, I¡¯m well aware of that.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll need to get a little more from you. 100,000.¡±
It was enough to be a jaw-dropping price if others heard of this.
100,000 achievement points was an amount that would take some awakeners their entire lifetime to collect, and they might even barely gather enough.
Su-hyeun, however, paid the amount without hesitation. The achievement points were transferred when he put his hand into the gatekeepers¡¯.
[100,000 achievement points consumed.]
The gatekeeper looked at Su-hyeun with a distant look, as if he was contemting.
¡°Huh, Euhuhuhuh!¡±
He grinned widely with his expressionless face andughed out loud. The gatekeeper, who had beenughing for quite some time, ced his extended hand into his pocket and said.
¡°The freak is real. So, what do you want?¡±
¡°What do you think is waiting for me?¡±
¡°The question is too vague.¡±
¡°What should I be careful of?¡±
¡°None.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°There¡¯s nothing for you to watch out for. You¡¯re not going to die.¡±
It was a good thing.
There was nothing to watch out for and nothing to die from, which meant there was less danger.
It was good news if he could have his risks reduced while ascending the tower.
But that didn¡¯t mean that Su-hyeun was pleased with what the gatekeeper said.
¡°Is that it?¡±
Lesser risks had also meant fewer rewards. Moreover, he had readily paid 100,000 achievement points, so how could he only have this much advice? He felt that he had gotten the short end of the stick.
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m not frying.¡±
Where did he learn that phrase?
¡°Someone said this a while back. I took his money and ran away. Haha, it was his fault for not understanding the hint.¡±
¡°So there¡¯s another hint?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not you who should be careful, but the others. And if possible... Don¡¯t kill anyone.¡±
¡°What do you mean don¡¯t kill anyone?¡±
¡°That¡¯s all for the hints. Now, get lost.¡±
The gatekeeper waved his hand and started dozing off after getting back in his crouched position. It was an ambiguous hint.
<>
Hints for level 10 trials were always like this. As expected, the hints Su-hyeun got from the 10th floor were vague, too.
<>
At least the hints given by the gatekeepers have never been wrong. Their hints had always been the keywords to the right answers.
Sometimes Su-hyeun wondered what kind of people they were before. Su-hyeun bowed slightly to the gatekeeper and walked towards the portal.
As he stood on the portal, a message appeared.
[Kim Su-hyeun, will you start the trial now?]
Su-hyeun nodded.
¡°Let¡¯s start.¡±
[Kim Su-hyeun, your 20th-floor trial starts now.]
[Please select the difficulty.]
[Level 1~10.]
[The higher the level, the more difficult it bes. The higher the level, the higher the reward of the trial.]
They were different floors, but the question itself was the same every time.
¡°Level 10.¡±
He answered with the same words as usual.
Immediately after making the decision, the trial¡¯s scene appeared in front of Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes.
Chapter 37
Chapter 37: Chapter 37
[The 20th floor¡¯s level 10 trial starts now.]
What appeared in front of Su-hyeun was a massive castle wall and numerous soldiers spread out below it. The soldiers, standing close together like ants, looked down from the top of the wall. Just by looking at them, Su-hyeun knew what he had to do.
<>
But it was strange. No matter how he saw it, there was no one but himself around. Unlike the thousands of soldiers below, he was alone.
[The trial starts now.]
[Recently, thousands of soldiers and mercenaries are guarding the imprable fortress, the kingdom Gran Dalum. It is your responsibility to use all methods to take down the fort.]
[Take down the castle. There is no limit to what methods can be used. You may recruit allies within the arena.]
[But please remember: you are not their enemy.]
[You have a month toplete this.]
[You will fail this trial if you die or exceed the given time limit.]
[Please take down the fort.]
[Dig up the castle¡¯s secrets.]
[The rewards will differ ording to the results of the trial.]
The mission¡¯s contents were quite lengthy. Through the contents, Su-hyeun was able to infer some facts.
<>
Firstly, the aim to ¡°dig up the castle¡¯s secrets¡± was clearly written, which meant solely taking down the castle was not the only objective.
Furthermore, he was told that the soldiers and mercenaries were not Su-hyeun¡¯s enemies. Looking at this, he could understand the gatekeeper¡¯s hint.
<>
But why? Why would the citizens¡¯ lives dictate the rewards?
The Tower¡¯s system did not deem humans¡¯ lives to be that important. There were usually missions to kill, but missions to save were rare. To Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge, there wasn¡¯t any mission that stops one from killing the enemy just to let them realize how precious life was.
<>
Su-hyeun looked up at the castle and scratched his head.
¡°This is difficult.¡±
One could havee up with many assumptions based on their own thoughts. But Su-hyeun could never find out anything by just standing there.
Su-hyeun closed his eyes and amplified the radius of his magic as far as possible. The magic was spread over the soldiers and mercenaries. With that, Su-hyeun was able to clearly feel each and everyone¡¯s feelings.
<>
Most of the mercenaries were around the standards of a C-rank awakener. The other soldiers were quite well-trained as well.
It was by no means easy to take down the steep walls and thick iron gates that were guarded by thousands of soldiers. Furthermore, ording to the gatekeeper¡¯s words, Su-hyeun could not even kill them.
<>
The trial¡¯s difficulty suddenly skyrocketed exponentially.
How should he clear the trial? Others would definitely have this thought on their minds if it was them, as missions of that standard should never have appeared on 20th-floor trials.
Of course, that would be the case for other awakeners. It might be an impossible trial for other awakeners who ascended the Tower in the usual way up to the 20th floor, but it wasn¡¯t the case for Su-hyeun.
<>
The time coincided nicely. Su-hyeun had aimed to clear this floor within a month as well. He thought he knew why he was given a time frame of a month.
Amongst the mission¡¯s contents, the hint said, ¡°You can form allies.¡±
Perhaps during that month in that world, Su-hyeun might have to go through aplicated process such as meeting someone from that castle and having a hostile rtionship with them.
But...
¡°With a time limit of one month...¡±
Trudge¡ª
Su-hyeun started walking towards the castle¡¯s wall.
¡°It¡¯s too long.¡±
That process should be omitted. It was too troublesome, and it didn¡¯t match his personality. Moreover, he didn¡¯t feel the need to go through with it. It was something that he had to face head-on now.
Su-hyeun felt that it would be sufficient for him to do it on his own.
The gigantic castle, which was a few hundred meters tall, could be seen from farther away.
Su-hyeun approached it slowly without hurry, with the thought that he had ample time. Every time the distance between him and the castle narrowed, he could sense something from within the castle.
Another reason why Su-hyeun ambled towards the castle was to observe the reactions of those guarding it.
¡°Stop!¡±
As the distance narrowed to a certain length, mutters could be heard from the top of the castle.
Su-hyeun was unsure if magical effects were used, but the voice was different. A small amount of magic could be felt, as well.
Su-hyeun stopped in his tracks and looked upwards. Soon, he could hear the voice again.
¡°You can¡¯te any nearer. Turn around!¡±
It was a pressurizing voice.
Su-hyeun looked at the owner of the voice distinctly. Although the distance was far, he concentrated magic on his eyes and allowed him to see the other party distinctively.
¡°Sorry, but can¡¯t I stay over for a few days?¡±
¡°No! This ce isn¡¯t for ordinary people....¡±
The man who was responding to Su-hyeun stopped talking when he realized that something was amiss. How could such a small voice be heard that clearly when there was a considerable distance between them? It was impossible unless he had pretty good magic control.
¡°You. What are you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m just a passer-by... I wanted to borrow your castle for a while.¡± Su-hyeun started walking once more. ¡°So, all of you pleasee out of the castle.¡±
¡°This crazy man!¡±
Amotion arose at the top of the castle.
It seemed that they had now recognized Su-hyeun as their enemy.
They shouldn¡¯t have felt threatened when only one person was walking towards their castle, but after they realized how good Su-hyeun¡¯s magic control was, they seemed to be defensive.
Of course, Su-hyeun would not feel scared with just that.
¡°Now, let¡¯s...¡±
As soon as Su-hyeun realized the other party was prepared to fight, he took out the sword, Gram, which was hung by his hip.
¡°It finallymenced.¡±
Clink¡ª
With Su-hyeun¡¯s magic, Gram produced a low sound.
Numerous arrows shot out from within the castle, with the arrowheads aimed towards Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun then stepped forward, giving strength to his step.
Spat¡ª
A big leap brought Su-hyeun¡¯s body up into the air. With another big leap, Su-hyeun flew even further up tens of meters instantaneously.
¡°Shoot!¡±
The man who seemed like amander did not fluster and gave out his order. Someone with skills simr to Su-hyeun¡¯s probably existed amongst them as well.
Slick, slick¡ª
Pheww¡ª
Hundreds and thousands of arrows were shot over Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
The mercenaries¡¯ archery skills were quite excellent. Even with a long distance between them, the arrows were aimed quite urately at Su-hyeun.
Burning¡ª
me shot out from the sword that Su-hyeun was brandishing, making the arrows from over his head pour down. At the same time, Su-hyeun vanished from that position.
Su-hyeun¡¯s clone attracted everyone¡¯s attention in an instant when it arrived near the gate. Only a minority could capture such instantaneous movements without missing.
¡°Over there!¡±
But even that wasn¡¯t good enough because Su-hyeun had already arrived in front of the gates.
¡°I¡¯ll break it in one go.¡±
Woong¡ª
Su-hyeun injected magic into Gram.
With the highest strength and length, as well as an unbelievable sharpness, Gram was a sword optimized for cutting things.
No matter how sturdy or imprable the gate was, Gram could still cut through it.
Grip¡ª
Su-hyeun grasped Gram with all his might.
The gate¡¯s thickness exceeded the sword¡¯s length by multiple folds. But even so, Su-hyeun never thought that he would not be able to cut through the gate.
A tremendous amount of magic enveloped Gram and increased its length.
The sharpness of Gram¡¯s de was due to the rotating friction by the extremely fine magic. Su-hyeun increased the maximum range of that rotation and forced it to increase its speed as well. Gram¡¯s range and power had doubled.
Although quite a substantial amount of magic had been used...
¡°Good.¡±
It should be enough.
Whoosh, whoosh, whoosh¡ª
Su-hyeun brandished his sword as he approached closer to the gate.
The sword didn¡¯t seem like it had cut through anything. The gate made of sturdy iron had been cut like soft tofu.
sh, sh¡ª
The shed gate fell to the ground. It was destroyed to the extent that it was beyond restoration.
¡°T-the gate is broken!¡± Someone called out from the top of the castle.
Su-hyeun muttered as he drew in deep breaths after having used up such a tremendous amount of magic in a short time.
¡°It¡¯s not broken, but...¡±
As if they were instructed to meet Su-hyeun, numerous soldiers appeared from behind the gate.
¡°It¡¯s been cut.¡±
Su-hyeun was now certain after having used it.
Gram was the best sword.
Act 8
At Su-hyeun¡¯s request, Lee Ju-ho went to the nearest Awakener¡¯s Authorities at City Hall. Several of the nation¡¯s awakeners were waiting in the building. Additionally, politicians who were managing the awakeners had their offices in the higher levels.
Lee Ju-ho presented his awakener¡¯s registration card and headed up to the higher level floors of the building. A few awakeners who recognized him greeted him.
¡°Oh, isn¡¯t this Lee Ju-ho? What brings you here?¡±
Along the corridor, Lee Ju-ho bumped into one of the high ranking members of the authorities who also the nation¡¯s A-rank awakener, Kim Do-ui. As they were quite acquainted after having met a couple of times before, Lee Ju-ho greeted him and said, ¡°I have something to attend to. Is Director Lee in?¡±
¡°Yes, he should be in. I don¡¯t think he has any appointments today.¡±
¡°Is that so? That¡¯s great.¡±
¡°You needed to see the Director? Shall we go together?¡±
¡°There¡¯s really no need...¡±
¡°I actually have something to tell him about the green level dungeon attack that happened recently. Let¡¯s go together.¡±
Lee Ju-ho finally nodded and agreed after agonizing for a while how Kim Do-ui joining him would work out. He thought Kim Do-ui might be able to assist in persuading the Director.
¡°If so, let¡¯s go then.¡±
Lee Ju-ho and Kim Do-ui headed towards the Director¡¯s room.
The Director who oversaw the Awakeners reditation Authority and managed the nation¡¯s awakeners was an old man well over his 60s.
He had a face filled with dark pigmentation and droopy eyes, with an unreadable expression. Formerly a presidential candidate, he was the highest-ranking council member managing the authorities and all the nation¡¯s awakeners.
¡°Director, you have guests.¡±
Kim Do-ui, who had been serving the Director for a long time, treated him quitefortably. The Director quickly nced at Lee Ju-ho and returned to reviewing his documents, and asked, ¡°What is it?¡±
Lee Ju-ho didn¡¯t seem to be of any importance to him. Lee Ju-ho, who had known well of the Director¡¯s personality, spoke without getting flustered.
¡°I have a favor to ask.¡±
¡°A favor?¡±
¡°Yes. It is rted to the safety of the citizens.¡±
The citizens¡¯ safety. It was a problem that the Director of the Awakener¡¯s Authority had to deal with in the highest priority. It was a subject important enough to draw the Director¡¯s attention.
¡°The citizens¡¯ safety...¡±
The Director¡¯s attention returned to Lee Ju-ho once again.
¡°Come, let¡¯s hear about it.¡±
Done.
As he met the fastidious Director, he let out some bait that could possibly provide him more time to talk.
Lee Ju-ho felt relieved and started to ry Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
¡°Now that I¡¯ve met the Director, firstly...¡±
Chapter 38
Chapter 38: Chapter 38
Caw, caw¡ª!
Late in the night, a strange-looking bird cried out in the forest. Looking closely, it might cry simr to a crow but looked like a dove¡¯s mixed breed as well.
Whatever it was, Su-hyeun stood up from where he sat. He could see a castle standing tall in the distance.
¡®This is enough for a break...¡¯
He had used up quite a bit of magic after crushing that gate.
Immediately after, Su-hyeun chose to retreat. He decided that it was not wise to barge into the castle without knowing anything.
¡°Now is a perfect time.¡±
The sky grew darker as it went deeper into the night.
Even if he started a fire, the fear emitted from the darkness was unavoidable.
Of course, that fear was an exception for him. Su-hyeun had experienced a dark world with no sun in the far future.
He had no idea where the enemy would be.
The gate was crushed, and it would be unsure when would one be stabbed in the back.
Now was the best time.
¡®Of course...¡¯
Crack!
Su-hyeun picked up a thick tree branch nearby and broke it into half.
¡®I won¡¯t head back.¡¯
As he took each step, he headed towards the castle.
If possible, he wanted to clear the trial within one night.
Grandalum¡¯smander, Maxman, stayed awake and stood guard on the castle top.
It was the same for the other soldiers. Even if they were exhausted, they could not sleep a wink and waited all day for the intruder.
¡®What the hell is that intruder doing?¡¯
Maxman recalled the stranger who crushed the gate.
He had thought the man who first approached the castle was strange.
They were up against the Kingdom of Audram, not individuals.
But that individual had achieved what the Kingdom of Audram could not. That person took down Grandalum¡¯s iron castle gate.
¡®Just what is he, that weirdo.¡¯
That same thought kept echoing in his mind.
He had his doubts about the other party. Maxman might have probably seen hallucinations.
But when he saw the smashed iron gate, that thought had gone away.
Even if there was a castle wall several hundred meters tall, there was no use for the gate that had been taken down.
Repairing the castle gate would¡¯ve taken a long time. If the Kingdom of Audram attacked them at a time like that...
¡®No, that¡¯s not it.¡¯
It wasn¡¯t the Kingdom of Audram; that was their only problem.
What if that kid from earlier today came attacking them again?
¡°Damn it.¡±
Precarious thoughts continued to ensue and tangle.
At that moment...
¡°What kept you so focused on?¡±
A gloomy voice spoke up from behind Maxman.
Maxman turned his head around and looked at the person.
It was a guest from the center of the Kingdom with his face hidden by a ck robe. Apanying him was his superior, the newly appointed chief.
Nobody even knew his name.
But as per orders from the higher-ups, Maxman had no other choice but to treat him as his superior.
¡°I was worried about the gate being crushed.¡±
¡°Was it because of the kid from earlier today?¡±
¡°Yes. I was worried that the kid woulde at us again.¡±
Maxman let out a long and deep sigh as he shared his worries.
¡°Honestly, as soon as the gate was taken down, it became tough to even protect the castle. It would be better to call the soldiers back and protect the next fort...¡±
¡°That won¡¯t do.¡±
The robed man cut off Maxman¡¯s words and spoke firmly.
¡°I¡¯d rather all of us die here than do that.¡±
¡°...What?¡±
Did he mishear the robed man?
For a moment, Maxman had doubted his hearing.
No matter how obstinate a person is, nomander had ever told his soldiers to die so readily, even if it was his thoughts.
However, the man in front of him said without hesitation that he would rather die than run away.
It was a difficult situation for Maxman, who had been on the battlefield for several years.
The robed man continued speaking without acknowledging Maxman¡¯s reaction.
¡°Please hold out by all means, without letting it be a reality. You only need to do so for theing month.¡±
¡°A month... Is there any point in waiting for a month?¡±
¡°Yes, there is.¡±
Just what significance did it have?
It was a period that Maxman, themander of the soldiers, could not understand. Did it mean that they would be receiving a substantial helping hand after a month?
Though he was filled with curiosity, the robed man turned around, seemingly having no intentions to exin further.
¡°Just hold out for a month. That¡¯s all.¡±
Before he left after leaving those words, he did not forget hisst words of cruelty.
¡°Hold out even if it costs all the lives of the soldiers in this castle.¡±
¡°...Yes. I got it.¡±
Maxman bit his lips, almost tearing them.
That was one example of how the battlefield was unreasonable.
As it was his superior¡¯s orders, he was obliged to carry it out no matter how unfair it was.
Thinking objectively, it was right to make their escape to save the lives of their soldiers.
However, he could not disobey the direct orders from his superior, the robed man who held the namete that was given directly from the Kingdom¡¯s court. Doing so would have been considered treason.
¡®It would be better if it was just me defying orders...¡¯
If he ignored what the robed man said, what would happen if he had the soldiers retreat?
He might be used of treason and executed, but wouldn¡¯t he have saved the soldiers?
Or would the soldiers be used ofmitting treason as well?
If that¡¯s not the case...
¡°It¡¯s the enemy!¡±
Just then, a soldier¡¯s cry interrupted his thoughts.
Maxman quickly shifted his gaze to the bottom of the castle.
The guy from earlier that day was walking towards them.
¡°Being weed like this doesn¡¯t feel that bad.¡±
Su-hyeun looked up at the numerous soldiers who were waiting for him at the top of the castle.
It seemed that the numbers had increased aspared to the day. They seemed to be waiting for him, unable to sleep in that panic situation.
Flick, flick!
He lightly swung the tree branch in his hand.
It was a weak tree branch that could break anytime, it did not produce a massive sound.
¡®Rece thecking strength with magic...¡¯
Crack, crack!
He filled the empty insides of the tree branch with magic.
This would¡¯ve been enough.
¡®It would be better to kill; it¡¯s so bothersome to subdue them¡±.
He needed to be careful to avoid killing any of them or losing control of his strength. It was a tricky mission.
Numerous arrows with sharpened arrowheads were aimed at him.
It seemed that they have finished all the preparations.
When the gate was wide open, the arrows would¡¯ve been pointless; they would never be able to hit him.
¡®Let¡¯s go.¡¯
He finished taking a deep breath and started moving.
Spat!
Su-hyeun¡¯s body ran forward towards the wide-open gate.
That action flustered the soldiers who were at the top of the castle aiming their arrows at him.
¡°What?! How is he so fast?!¡±
¡°I can¡¯t aim at him!¡±
¡°Calm down and prevent him from entering the castle!¡±
¡°No, don¡¯t waste the arrows! You can¡¯t hit him!¡±
The soldiers shouted, scared out of their wits.
As themander, Maxman used his magic and shouted.
¡°Forget about the arrows and block out the gate! Prevent that guy from entering!¡±
After going through several hardships for a long time, the soldiers¡¯ trust in Maxman was as strong as a sturdy castle. At Maxman¡¯smand, the soldiers moved entirely in unison.
¡®That¡¯s themander.¡¯
Su-hyeun knew that Maxman was themander, whom he had spotted earlier in the day.
¡®I¡¯ll go after him first.¡¯
However, before that...
sh!
Hundreds of soldiers appeared, blocking out Su-hyeun¡¯s vision.
Holding spears and swords in their hands, they showed intense hostility towards Su-Hyeun.
He had to fight all these soldiers and subdue them without killing any of them.
¡°Kill him!¡±
¡°Prevent him from entering the castle!¡±
The soldiers started to run towards Su-Hyeun.
They should have known that they are no match for him, yet they were courageous enough to hunt him down. They must have seen Su-Hyeun¡¯s ability when he destroyed the gate earlier that day.
Worst of all, it was quite a pain when he couldn¡¯t kill them but instead let them off.
¡®How annoying.¡¯
sh!
Pierce¡ª!
The tree branch, which was held in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand, struck the soldier¡¯s neck, who was running head-on towards Su-hyeun.
The soldier¡¯s body fell onto the ground, with his eyes rolling backward. It seemed that his neck did not break thanks to the sturdy armor.
¡°Even so, they aren¡¯t too much trouble to deal with.¡±
Stab, stab, stab, stab!
The tree branch in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand urately hit every soldier in their necks.
There were only these three points to consider: moderate strength control, uracy, and evasiveness. If there was one more thing, it would¡¯ve been Su-hyeun¡¯s unexhaustive stamina.
¡°If I were to fight with these dwarves, this fight might continue for four days...¡±
Flick!
Pierce, pierce!
Several invisible des came flying towards Su-hyeun.
The wind passed, ticking Su-hyeun¡¯s skin. Thankfully he quickly used magic to protect his body. Otherwise, there would¡¯ve been several cuts made on his body.
¡°Well, was I too ambitious?¡±
Su-hyeun hid behind the soldiers and observed the mercenaries who had their hands stretched out forward.
The mercenaries who dealt with magic became a problem.
There¡¯s no knowing how many skilled mercenaries were in the castle.
¡®Could I subdue all of them? No, if not...¡¯
Just as when Su-hyeun stopped all his movements and stood silently:
¡°Wind Cutter!¡±
¡°Fire Stone!¡±
¡°Ice...¡±
Swish, swish!
nk!
Magic fired at Su-hyeun caused a massive explosion. A faint smoke rose around Su-hyeun as he was hit by multiple magic attacks head-on.
¡°Done!¡±
¡°Well, that was no big deal...¡±
The men who gave out the magic attacks started cheering, but their faces soon hardened.
Su-hyeun trudged out from the thick fog around him. He remained safe from all attacks without sustaining any injuries.
¡°H-how?¡±
¡°He¡¯s not injured at all...¡±
¡°On top of that, shouldn¡¯t there at least be a speck of dust on him?¡±
Although they voiced out their unjust, the result remained unchanged.
Soon, another round of magic attacks was shot at Su-hyeun. A massive explosion, a sharp de, and a spear flew and pierced through his body.
It was pointless.
¡®Force through the front.¡¯
[¡®Indomitable Body¡¯ was activated.]
[It increases magical and physical resistance by continuously consuming mana for a specified period.]
It was a rare skill which Su-hyeun had obtained as a reward when he cleared the 17th floor¡¯s trial.
Su-hyeun thought it could¡¯ve granted him an extra life to be used in emergencies.
Although he didn¡¯t need to use the skill often since there were few life-threatening situations, it was quite useful in his current situation.
He couldn¡¯t kill off the enemies, but it was troublesome to even subdue each of them. The magic that each of them released was bothersome too.
If so, ignoring them would be the end of it.
¡®What I wanted wasn¡¯t their lives, but to take down the castle.¡¯
To take down the castle...
There were a few loopholes and ambiguities in the conditions of passing the trial.
Firstly, the standard for taking down the castle was not clear. All the soldiers present weren¡¯t enemies, but he couldn¡¯t know under what conditions would it consider the castle to be taken down.
Secondly, he did not know the reason why he wasn¡¯t allowed to kill them. The Tower of Trials would not have cared less about respecting lives.
Moreover...
¡®Something smells fishy.¡¯
nk, nk!
sh!
Su-hyeun received the magic attacks with his body and swept away the fog was covering his vision.
¡®The smell of a bad-tempered guy.¡¯
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes searched for someone located from within the castle.
He extended the range of his magic and found a human with a different kind of energy.
A man covered deeply in a ck robe...
No, it had to be Lich.
Chapter 39
Chapter 39: Chapter 39
Flick!
nk, nk!
Pierce, pierce!
A rtively sharp Ice Spear flew over and exploded in front of him.
Su-hyeun brought his hand up and blocked his face from the debris. During that short time, all signs of the Lich had vanished.
It seemed that it had be aware of Su-hyeun and escaped.
Su-hyeun raised his head again.
¡®He didn¡¯t seem to be half as good as the previous one...¡¯
It was a different Lich than the one that appeared as the dungeon¡¯s boss in the level-fluctuating dungeon.
Different from the summoner Lich, who had imperfect vitality and power, the Lich here was the real deal.
¡®A Lich on the 20th floor...¡¯
The level of difficulty increased the further he ascended.
The existence of Lich could¡¯ve brought about many variables.
The Lich was a monster that was very knowledgeable about magic. ording to their level of magical knowledge, a Lich could do a variety of things.
The Lich could not be seen as a boss on the 20th-floor¡¯s trial.
Instead, the 19th-floor¡¯s ancient monster was a more demanding opponent.
If so...
¡®A certain situation that the Lich is trying to make...¡¯
That would be the primary key to the trial.
¡®Good. End of thinking.¡¯
Sweep!
Su-hyeun¡¯s body disappeared from the spot as if he had sunk.
The mercenaries releasing magic attacks at Su-hyeun were caught by surprise and shouted, ¡°He... he disappeared!¡±
¡°Find him!¡±
Though they searched the area, Su-hyeun was nowhere to be found.
[Shadow Assimtion.]
Sweep!
Su-hyeun reappeared under a bronze statue located in the distance.
At the back, the soldiers were still busy searching for Su-hyeun, unaware that he had already entered the castle.
¡®It takes a while to manifest.¡¯
¡®Shadow Assimtion¡¯ was a skill that was obtained in the case of infiltration. It was purchased on the 15th floor with a considerable amount of achievement points.
It wasmonly used by awakeners of the assassin ss, where it gave one the ability to move with a specific shadow in sight.
It was quite a useful transportation skill.
One needed to use a shadowrger than the user himself. Although the shadow needed to be within sight, a penalty like that was not much of a problem for a spatial skill.
The problem was its manifest period.
As it was a spatial skill, the difficulty level increased, leading to an extended manifest period.
¡®Should I have increased my skill proficiency level?¡¯
It would have been a pain to do that.
To a certain extent, the skill was only obtained for infiltrations like this, not a skill that could be used frequently.
It was better to increase the skill proficiency of other skills instead.
¡®Anyway, I should have gone far enough...¡¯
He hid behind the bronze statue and observed the soldiers searching for him.
Thankfully, they were not able to spot him. Before Su-hyeun got caught, it was better for him to go deeper.
[Shadow Assimtion.]
Su-hyeun soon spotted another shadow in sight.
From a distance, he used the shadow he saw to utilize the Shadow Assimtion skill.
With that, Su-hyeun seeded in infiltrating the castle.
The castle was empty.
It seemed that most of the soldiers were sent out to prevent him from entering.
Although Su-hyeun had seeded in infiltrating, the castle was dead silent as if the soldiers didn¡¯t think that he had entered the castle.
¡®There¡¯s nothing special...¡¯
Trudge.
¡®Must I go in further?¡¯
The scale of the castle was rtively massive.
It was hard to even look around the castle in a day. It was nearly impossible to just observe this ce alone.
¡®If so...¡¯
Su-hyeun lowered his head and looked at the ground.
¡°Well, those with something up their sleeves usually liked the underground more.¡¯
Slung!
Su-hyeun hung the tree branch held in his hand on his back and took out Gram.
And...
Burn!
The me lit up, and Su-hyeun held on to Gram in the opposite direction. Holding the sword¡¯s handle with both hands, he directed it towards the ground.
Poke!
Burn!
The fallen sword made the interior of the castle hot with the me. Cracking sounds were heard as the castle walls and floors started to crack apart.
Crack, crack!
Rumble!
The corridor where Su-hyeun stood at started to crumble.
¡®Regardless of whether the castle falls or not, what does it matter to me.¡¯
There was a shortcut downwards; he didn¡¯t need to find his way around.
Crumble!
The floor of the castle crumbled, rumbling loudly. Su-hyeun grabbed onto the walls and fell along slowly.
Looking down, he spotted nearly pitch-ck energy.
No, he had felt it.
¡°Bingo.¡±
Thinking that it was not an ordinary castle, he believed that something was hidden in there.
He had been worried that it would be concealed in aplicated way, but it didn¡¯t seem so after he managed to find it so easily.
¡®Indeed, it was easier to act instead of thinking about it.¡¯
In truth, it was better to have used both brains and body to execute, instead of just relying on either one.
Of course, that didn¡¯t mean Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t a clever thinker.
Slick!
Su-hyeun threw himself down. Since he was now sure there was something beneath, there was no need for hesitation.
Pierce, pierce!
Swoosh!
At that moment, ck stems shot out towards Su-hyeun as he fell.
Su-hyeun leaped upwards reflexively. He then injected me into his sword and sent it downwards.
Bang, bang!
Burn!
As the me hit the stems, both had been wiped out. Su-hyeun climbed along the undamaged corridor and looked in the direction where the energy came from.
¡°I had thought some rat came along, but it was the kid from earlier.¡±
A husky voice rang out.
But it wasn¡¯t like Lich¡¯s, where it was fully split.
It was using voice modtion magic.
¡°What were you doing here?¡±
Su-hyeun wanted to obtain some hints from him.
Su-hyeun had already learned that the castle was intertwined with the Lich. However, there was no knowing what the Lich would¡¯ve done there.
If possible, Su-hyeun was hoping that the Lich would be a tell-tale.
¡°Why would I tell that to someone who would soon be a dead man?¡±
¡°If our aims are the same, wouldn¡¯t it be better if we cooperated?¡±
The Lich started to gather magic in its hands, but Su-hyeun re-directed the topic.
These words used to work quite well.
Either way, they only worked towards their motives. If someone as strong as them were to cooperate with them, they would have considered it.
However...
¡°I don¡¯t trust you.¡±
Lich¡¯s reaction was firm.
¡°Why is that so?¡±
¡°The energy that you¡¯re using.¡±
Lich took off its hood revealing its face and pointed at Su-hyeun.
¡°It was the energy that would be our enemy.¡±
¡°...Ah, is that so?¡±
The me was the problem.
The me¡¯s nature was simr to light and fire, which conflicted with the Lich¡¯s energy. Just as light and dark didn¡¯t go together, the Lich despised Su-hyeun.
¡°Well, what a shame.¡±
Burn!
Su-hyeun raised the me that Lich had despised onto his whole body.
The castle was soon heated up. With that power, Lich backed away with ck magic wrapped around him.
¡°If so, I would have to finish you off first slowly...¡±
As he talked to Lich, Su-hyeun did not approach but instead turned his head away.
At that moment, the Lich who backed down while being pressured by Su-hyeun¡¯s magic stepped forward again.
¡°Did you think that I would be alone?¡±
Slide, slide!
Underneath, three more robed men appeared in the endless underground.
Su-hyeun put up a perplexed expression, as he felt the same kind of magic from them as well.
¡®Things are gettingplicated.¡¯
There wasn¡¯t just one Lich there.
Crumble, crumble!
The castle shook again.
The heat filled up the hall. Maxman stoppedmanding his soldiers and stopped in his tracks.
¡°This... What...¡±
The intruder had entered the castle.
His existence was enough to overwhelm thousands of his soldiers. With a single blow, he could¡¯ve cut down the iron gate to their fortress and resisted the magic attacks from dozens of his mercenaries.
He was a monster.
Although Maxman had been on the battlefields for decades, he had never seen a monster like that intruder.
Thus, Maxman had to stop him. If such an intruder was in the castle, none of them could sleep a wink.
However...
¡®Is the intruder an enemy?¡¯
Maxman was surprised at the quick brief on the damage report by his soldiers.
There were no dead soldiers.
Come to think of it, the intruder did not hold a sword in his hands. Instead of a sword, he held a tree branch he had picked up somewhere.
Of course, the intruder could have killed the soldiers with just a single tree branch.
He had the skills to cut down the iron gate, so did it matter with what weapon he was holding?
However, the intruder did not act that way.
It meant that he didn¡¯t intend to kill anyone.
¡®Then why...?¡±
He could not understand his objective.
Despite being confused, he was sure about one thing.
¡®Something was going on.¡¯
The feeling of danger and anxiety he felt now was not due to the intruder since he had no intention to kill the soldiers.
Even if the kid was an intruder, it was hard to consider him an enemy when he did not harm the soldiers even at the expense of trouble.
¡®If so, just what is this feeling...¡¯
¡°Captain!¡±
Maxman turned his head sharply towards the soldier who called out to him.
¡°There¡¯s a signal from within the castle! I think the intruder had entered the castle.¡±
¡°What¡¯s his exact location?¡±
¡°The basement.¡±
¡°Gather the soldiers and mercenaries immediately... No, wait.¡±
Maxman shook his head.
¡°Pick out those who can move and set off. I¡¯ll go there myself.¡±
nk, nk!
Crack, crack!
Dozens of rectangr windows were fixed on the walls. Su-hyeun fell back as he was hit by the me.
¡°How disgusting.¡±
He furrowed his brows and turned his head around.
One of the skeletons reached out its hand and stood there.
Whoosh!
They seemed to have prepared for a long time since quite a bit of energy was shot out.
It was a familiar type of magic.
¡®Dark Gun, Guide.¡¯
It was a high level of dark spatial magic that took the life of opponents after pressurizing them by crumbling every space avable.
It could not be received by the normal me.
¡°Damn it.¡±
Burn!
The me on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword had be blue.
Wrapping it around the sword, Su-hyeun made a downward stroke.
sh!
Rip!
The Guide¡¯s darkness was split in half. The scattered power dissipated, revealing the Lich.
¡°The Guide...!¡±
Seemingly flustered, the Lich¡¯s voice cracked as it initially would. Three more Lich appeared around Su-hyeun and surrounded him.
¡°Haa...¡±
Su-hyeun let out a long sigh.
Had he known this would happen, he would have taken his time.
¡®All I can do now is regret...¡¯
It seemed that Su-hyeun had to use one more of his cards.
¡®I hadn¡¯t wished to use it hastily if others got involved...¡¯
Creak, creak!
Starting from the back of his hands, Su-hyeun¡¯s skin was gradually covered in scales.
When both arms were covered entirely in scales, Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes had turned simr to those of a beast¡¯s. All his senses were amplified and turned sharper than before.
¡°I have no other choice.¡±
[Transfigure: Imoogi.]
Chapter 40
Chapter 40: Chapter 40
Act 9
The mission on the 18th floor was pretty simple. Su-hyeun had to knock down a single object, a single monster.
The mission itself sounded the easiest and simplest. But as a result, the trial on the 18th floor was the most difficult one.
[Knock down an old Imoogi.]
Although it was described as old, Su-hyeun was dumbfounded about this trial at first.
¡°Imoogi? Did it just say Imoogi?¡± he asked.
It was an unreasonable monster toe out on the 18th floor. Although it was a single monster, it was difficult to defeat. After fighting for more than half a day, Su-hyeun finally knocked down Imoogi. Without a second thought, he used transfiguration skills to defeat it.
As a result, Su-hyeun gained the power of the Imoogi, the mythical snaked that tried to be a dragon with divinity.
¡°Of course, it is not perfect yet,¡± he thought.
So far, he could not control the power of the Imoogi perfectly. Physically, Su-hyeun was not as powerful as the Imoogi. Because of this, Su-hyeun did not try to the traits of the Imoogi. Unless he was trying to improve his proficiency on purpose. However,
¡°If I do this...¡±
Crunch¡ª
As he grasped his hands, he could feel the scales on the back of his hands. Without spreading his magic, he could feel the surroundings and energy vividly. It had been a long time since he felt this.
¡°Well, then...¡± he said.
Whip¡ª!
Riiiip¡ª
He tore the energy down that flew in front of him. His long, sharp nails were better than any other sword.
¡°Watch out! This brat¡ª¡± one Richie shouted.
¡°It is too¡± ¡ªSu-hyeun said and grabbed the head of the Richie¡ªte to watch out.¡±
Bam¡ª!
Crack, crack¡ª!
The hallway floor was shattered. Su-hyeun¡¯s hand broke Richie¡¯s head and the Life Stone came out.
Snatch¡ª
Su-hyeun quickly grabbed the Life Stone. At the same time, he nced at the other three remaining Richies.
¡°I don¡¯t have much time. I have to finish it quickly,¡± he thought.
As his five senses extended, he could feel signs from outside of the castle. Soldiers wereing into the castle. Their signs quickly approached. Soon, they would arrive here. Then, it would be difficult for him to keep this state.
¡°Well...¡± he said.
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form disappeared, leaving afterimages. In an instant, he got closer to the monsters. Three Richies condensed their magic.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
A solid dark sphere wrapped around Richies. Su-hyeun stroked the sphere with Gram.
Crack, crack¡ª!
Whirl¡ª
A curtain created by the three Richies magic didn¡¯t stay long. It started to crack.
Crack¡ª!
The crack had broken, and huge magic came out from it. Dozens of dark ashes began to embrace Su-hyeun.
Whoosh¡ª!
At that moment, Su-hyeun made the me on the other hand. The red me quickly got bigger and started to cover the Richies.
¡°What the...?!¡± one Richie screamed.
The three Richies were surprised and moved away from me. In the middle of that, one Richie pushed another Richie¡¯s back. The me pushed the darkness away and turned that Richie into ash. It was the kind of heat that would turn everything, even a Life Stone to ash.
¡°Now, there are two,¡± Su-hyeun said.
sh¡ª!
He swung the sword once more, sessfully cutting off one Richie¡¯s arm. He meant to cut the body in half, but only one arm flew away.
Crack¡ª!
The curtain that the Richies made was pointless. They finally realized that and chose to avoid rather than to block.
¡°We have to get out of here...¡± one Richie said.
¡°We can¡¯t win like this,¡± the other Richie realized when he was Su-hyeun was using the transfiguration skill. He should have figured that out sooner.
Crunch¡ª!
A bird flew from somewhere bit off one Richie¡¯s neck. That Richie¡¯s movement stopped. Soon, his body began to burn.
Crunch¡ª!
Caw, caw¡ª!
A phoenix came and bit off the neck and separated the body and head of one Richie.
There was only one Richie left.
¡°Damn. No way...¡± he screamed.
¡°Yes way,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s new form flew to Richie¡¯s front. The surprised Richie stretched his arms quickly. Soon, he released his magic with all his strength.
Whoosh¡ª!
Once again, Guide covered Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
It was a hit.
Richie yelled for joy. Since he swept with the Guide, Su-hyeun would not be safe.
¡°Finally!¡± Richie thought.
But his pleasure didn¡¯tst long. When he yelled for joy¡ª
[Indomitable body.]
Whoosh¡ª!
¡ªSu-hyeun stretched his arm and grabbed Richie¡¯s neck. Richie grabbed Su-hyeun¡¯s wrist with his bony hand as if he couldn¡¯t believe what was happening.
¡°How could he...!¡± Richie screamed.
The Guide was the dark magic about space. It was supposed to trample space and the pressure was strong enough to break down quite a bit of steel. In such a space, an ordinary human couldn¡¯t survive.
There were two facts that this Richie overlooked. First, Su-hyeun was not an ordinary human. Second, his body was now assimted into the body of the Imoogi.
¡°If you answer my question, I won¡¯t break your head,¡± Su-hyeun said.
With the threat of Su-hyeun, the magic on Richie¡¯s hand disappeared. He was wanted to live, but he knew he could die if Su-hyeun made the me at that moment.
But as Su-hyeun said, if he could answer the question, he would survive. Because Richie¡¯s power was not in the body; it was the Life Stone in his head.
¡°So, what do you think?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Most of the Richies were born from refusing death too frequently. They could not give up their lives. Su-hyeun thought this Richie in front of him would not be much different. And his guess was correct.
¡°O...K,¡± Richie said.
Richie, who seemed to be worried for a while, soon epted Su-hyeun¡¯s proposal. Su-hyeun decided to use this Richie. He could just blow away the body, and there was no reason to keep the promise. There was nothing to worry about.
¡°First, what¡¯s down here?¡± he asked.
¡°Under here...¡±
The moment Richie tried to open his mouth.
Shiver¡ª
Su-hyeun got chills. He was surprised and released Richie¡¯s neck. He activated the Indomitable body again and quickly fell from the spot.
Squish¡ª
Stab¡ª
Two ck spears came out from under his feet. One of them pierced Richie from the bottom. The other rose where Su-hyeun was standing. He could be pierced if he didn¡¯t move. Richie could not continue to speak and stayed still.
Slide¡ª
Clink, clink¡ª
The spears went back to the floor. Life Stone that was pierced fell from Richie¡¯s head to the floor. Richie lost the Life Stone and his life.
¡°...Well. That is annoying.¡± Su-hyeun mumbled.
Su-hyeun wanted to get the answer and tried to leave quickly.
¡°This way!
¡°He is here!¡±
Soldiers found Su-hyeun.
Among them, the man who was at the forefront was skilled. He had the most intense magic of anyone in the castle. He was Maxman.
¡°Everyone! Don¡¯t approach. Cover me...¡± Maxman yelled.
When Maxman found Su-hyeun, he pulled his sword and watched him. He soon froze after he saw the area where Su-hyeun and the Richies fought. He found remains.
¡°What, what is all this?¡± he asked.
Only bones of the Richies¡¯ remained. And Su-hyeun was standing in the middle. The sight made Maxman very confused.
¡°Well. Should I say it is good timing...?¡± Su-hyeun nced down and said, ¡°you are in charge here, right? Take your men out of the castle, right now.¡±
¡°What are you talking about?¡± Maxman made an expression that showed his mixed feelings
It was their castle. He was themander of this castle, and Su-hyeun was the one who had to get out.
But Su-hyeun looked very dignified as if it was his house. Maxman was a bit embarrassed about it, but first, he had to figure out the situation.
¡°Well, if you look around, you will figure it out. This is what happened,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°You mean...Richie?¡± Maxman asked.
¡°Yes. This is a den of Richies. If you stay here, you will die,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Maybe it is you who brought Richies. Or maybe those skeletons were our soldiers.¡±
Maxman couldn¡¯t just step out of his protection just because they were Richies. He wasn¡¯t even sure they were Richies. He couldn¡¯t afford to blindly believe the words of an invader.
¡°Can you see this?¡± Su-hyeun said.
He lifted the hollow Life Stone on the floor.
¡°This is Richie¡¯s Life Stone. Richies nt these in their heads and save their lives.¡±
¡°...Prove to me that you didn¡¯t bring these Richies,¡± Maxman said.
¡°Well. If I could bring this number of Richies, I wouldn¡¯t make you guyse to the castle. If I was a real enemy, I probably would have just killed everyone already.¡±
It was creepy, but it was true. Richie was a monster like a high-ranking wizard. If Richies teamed up with such a skilled swordsman, they would easily raze the castle to the ground.
In such a situation, Su-hyeun acted like this and killed all Richies? That would be nonsense.
¡°Then, really, Richies were here?¡± Maxman thought, ¡°if that is true, should we escape the castle as this guy said?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you have to save your soldiers?¡± Su-hyeun pointed at his feet and said, ¡°If you guys stay here... you all are going to die.¡±
It sounded a bit extreme. Nothing was certain. But Su-hyeun¡¯s believed it and fortunately, Maxman thought the same.
¡°I...¡± Maxman opened his mouth. When he almost finished his worrying¡ª
-Don¡¯t run away.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
¡ªthey heard the voice ringing the whole castle. It was the voice of Maxman¡¯s immediate superior, who descended from the kingdom.
¡°What...the...?¡± Maxman said.
-Don¡¯t run away. Kill that man. Right now.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
The voice rang the castle. Su-hyeun could tell whose voice it was.
¡°It is him,¡± he thought.
It was the Richie that he met the first time when he entered this ce. He had the highest concentration of magic. It was that man¡¯s voice.
I am ordering you, as your superior, Maxman.
¡°Did he just say superior?¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He looked at Maxman with surprise. Maxman was about to agree with Su-hyeun, but now he was restless.
¡°So... Richie was drawing feudal allowance.¡± he thought.
It was a ridiculous situation. The man in front of Su-hyeun, Maxman, was a soldier. For soldiers, themand of the superior was like themand of a god. It was the absolute rule that had made men like Maxman serve for a lifetime. So, he had no choice but to fight. Even if he thought Su-hyeun was right...
¡°What should I do?¡± Maxman had no choice. He had to fight.
Chapter 41
Chapter 41: Chapter 41
Maxman closed his eyes for a while and thought. In just a second, he thought many things. The scales in his head were tilted to one side and then back to the other constantly. He had never thought so deeply and quickly in such a short amount of time. Maxman finally opened his eyes.
¡°I...¡± Maxman opened his mouth.
He could see Su-hyeun in front of him. The voice from below still made his head dizzy.
It was at that moment.
Well, then. I think all you guys should rather die here.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
Maxman made his decision.
¡± All army...!¡±
He turned his body and looked at the soldiers.
¡°Get out of the castle! Right now!¡± He put magic in his voice and shouted. His voice was full of power. He worriespletely vanished.
And it was a rebellion against the high officials of the kingdom, who made sound from downstairs.
-Are you betraying the kingdom?
The shrilly voice shook the castle. Maxman looked down with contempt and opened his mouth.
¡°A real soldier doesn¡¯t feel diffident superior,¡± he said, ¡°the real soldier reads subordinate¡¯s countenance. Especially, if the price is the life of people, there is nothing to think about.¡±
The reason he stopped worrying was simple. It was an easy question. The bnces shook several times and soon it tilted to one side. The difference in weight was quite clear. Maxman had no intention of keeping the superior¡¯s order, which was a death sentence for the soldiers.
If you do that...
Crack, crack ¡ª
Barroom, crack ¡ª
The castle started to shake, and some sort of dark energy flowed through the walls. Maxman was surprised and pushed the soldiers back.
I will kill you all.
Whooooom¡ª
¡°Runaway! Right now!¡± Maxman had a feeling and shouted.
The soldiers were also anxious. In the meantime, the order fell, so they ran as quickly as they could.
¡°R-run away!¡±
¡°Get out of the castle!¡±
¡°Hurry up! Quickly!¡±
The soldiers began to move in perfect order, the energy from the wall began to shoot.
Pow, pow, pow¡ª!
Swiiiish¡ª!
Hundreds of thousands of spear des struck the soldiers.
Maxman quickly moved his magic, but he could not cover all the soldiers with only his power.
¡°Is it toote...?¡± he thought.
Whoosh¡ª!
At that moment, a huge fire swept through the walls of the castle.
crackle¡ª
The heat had encroached on the castle. The heatwave seemed like it could burn the flesh. Thankfully, the ck spears that had been firing at the soldiers were destroyed by the fire.
¡°W-what the?... Maxman mumbled.
¡°Are you in charge here?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Maxman turned his head to Su-hyeun when he heard his voice. He thought this guy was his enemy, but he saved their lives.
¡°You¡¯ve made a good choice. Go out, quickly,¡± Su-hyeun said calmly.
¡°Why...?¡± Maxman asked.
¡°The reason is not important right now. You have to survive first, right?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s word was right. First of all, surviving was the most important thing. He didn¡¯t want to let thousands of soldiers be killed because of his foolishness. Maxman nodded and opened his mouth.
¡°Donald!¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
¡°Take all the soldiers out of the castle and escape right now. I will leave the rest to your judgment,¡± Maxmanmanded.
¡°What, sir? What do you mean, sir?¡± Donald asked.
¡°You heard me! Move right now! We don¡¯t have much time!¡±
With loud scolding of Maxman, the deputymander, Donald, shook his body and nodded. As Maxman said, there was certainly no time to linger. Su-hyeun was blocking, but the threat had not yet disappeared.
¡°Run! Escape out of the castle! Now!¡± Donald shouted.
He began to lead soldiers. He had been in charge of the soldiers for a long time with Maxman.
Su-hyeun opened his mouth as he watched the soldiers running away.
¡°Why don¡¯t you go?¡±
¡°I want to see with my own eyes if my judgment was correct,¡± Maxman answered.
¡°Do you still think I might be the enemy?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Perhaps... No... Yes,¡± Maxman answered slowly.
Maxman had made a choice, but he was not sure about it yet. Right at the moment, he thought saving the soldiers was the right decision and he didn¡¯t regret it. However, it was necessary to check who Su-hyeun was.
¡°I am grateful to save the soldiers. As a superior, I thought it was better to take your side than that ruffian that told all soldiers to die. But...¡±
Maxman shut his eyes, opened again, and continued to say.
¡°I can¡¯t eliminate any single possibility. I have never seen you before. So, if my decision was wrong...I will take responsibility for myself.¡±
It was understandable. Su-hyeun was the person he never saw before, especially he invaded the castle. It was hard to believe that Su-hyeun was on his side, even if he had saved them. At least Maxman thought he needed to check the situation as the man in charge.
¡°Whatever. Do as you please,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Rumble, Ruuuuumble¡ª
The walls shook more and more loudly. Su-hyeun gave a little more magic to the me. The magic of Richie and Su-hyeun continued to collide.
¡°It could have bothered me,¡± he thought.
Maxman¡¯s choice about the voice that came from below was fortunate for Su-hyeun. If Maxman decided to keep the position and attack Su-hyeun, he had no choice but to escape from the soldiers.
He was not sure what was underneath. But no matter what was there, if the soldiers stayed, he could not be rash in a choice move or fight.
¡°Since he made a difficult decision¡ª¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Whoosh, whoosh¡ª
¡°¡ªI guess, the decision I made was not wrong.¡±
Su-hyeun was blocking all the sides¡¯ walls in the castle with the me. Additionally, he had controlled his power and focused to not burn the soldiers so far. The magic and concentration that was consumed in the process were difficult to cope with even though he was excellent at controlling magic.
And Maxman, who was facing Su-hyeun himself, might know that. Maxman was also a man who could use magic. For a long time, Su-hyeun concentrated and blocked Richie¡¯s magic. When he was convinced that all the soldiers had escaped from the castle, he finally put out his me.
¡°Huu¡ª¡± he sighed.
It had been a long time that he had used so much magic. Although his Magic Factor increased over the past year, there was a limit, of course.
Sweat formed on his tired face. Su-hyeun sat down and checked around.
¡°Is he tired, too?¡± he thought.
Richie, who had been fighting for a while, also stopped releasing his power. Su-hyeun was thankful for that, he had time to take a breath.
¡°You really won¡¯t go out?¡± Su-hyeun asked once more to confirm before he stood up, ¡°I can¡¯t protect you anymore.¡±
¡± I can protect myself,¡± Maxman said.
¡°Well... I don¡¯t think so...¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Don¡¯t¡¯ worry. I won¡¯t beg for my life. Asmander here, I must see what is going on in this castle.¡±
He was an inflexible and stubborn man. Su-hyeun wondered, how this kind of man could decide against the kingdom.
¡°I guess he takes care of the soldiers that much,¡± he thought.
Maxman was a good superior. Thanks to him, this test became much easier.
¡°Now, it is almost time to end,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Tuk, tuk¡ª
He beat the dust off the pants and stood up.
Maxman also stood up and drew his sword.
¡°Then, let¡¯s go,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Are you going underground?¡± Maxman asked.
¡°Yes,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°I¡¯ll take the lead. Follow me.¡±
Maxman, who knew the castle¡¯s structure well, stepped to one side to guide him.
¡°You don¡¯t have to.¡±
Crack¡ª!
Su-hyeun struck the sword toward the floor as he did the first time. Then, he injected his magic and began to break the floor.
Whack, whaaaack ¡ª
Craaaash¡ª
Maxman shouted in surprise as he looked back at Su-hyeun, who was about to break the castle disappear below.
¡°How dare you break the castle...!¡±
¡°We don¡¯t have time to go around,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°But...¡±
¡°If we don¡¯t hurry, all soldiers may die.¡±
In response to Su-hyeun, Maxman shut his mouth up. The soldiers might die. Nothing more effective for Maxman than that and it was not just to make his mouth shut.
Crack, rumble¡ª
The floor began to copse. Su-hyeun jumped down and nced at Maxman. While falling, Maxman calmly slowed down. He didn¡¯t particrly study magic, but he had quite excellent physical skills.
¡°Hmm... He is quite good,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Maxman had a good magic ability, but he was the swordsman who had a much better physical ability. He might beparable to Richies that Su-hyeun just fought. At least, he would not be a burden.
Swish¡ª
Crunch, crunch¡ª
Su-hyeun broke the floor several more times. As they descended, they finally arrived at the dark underground. There was no light. Indeed, it was dark. It was not just because there was no light. There was some energy hovering around. It was very dreary energy, and could even erase the musty smell of the underground.
¡°Where is this ce...?¡± Maxman mumbled.
He never saw this ce before¨Ca surprise since he knew the castle underground so well. It consisted of prisons for sinners or for soldiers who hadmitted wrongdoing. But this ce was not for that. The underground that Maxman knew was above this ce. This ce was the underground of the underground.
Maxman, who wasmander of the castle, never knew this ce existed.
¡°Watch out. Don¡¯t move,¡± Su-hyeun said.
He quickly grabbed Maxman¡¯s shoulder as he was about to take a step forward.
¡°Your ankle will be cut off.¡±
¡°...!¡±
Maxman looked around in surprise. Hundreds and thousands of des wereid on the floor. They wriggled and wandered around the floor as if they were alive. They were not normal weapons. They were des made in some magical way.
¡°That is too bad. You could pay the price for betrayal.¡±
The shadow of a person revealed with a giggle.
¡°Betrayal, my a*s. I don¡¯t think someone fooled others can use such words.¡±
Richie, who was looking at Maxman, turned his face to Su-hyeun as if his words made him feel bad.
¡°Where did a guy like youe from?¡± Richie asked in a quiet voice.
¡°I dropped with a thud from the sky. To kill the bastards like you,¡± Su-hyeun said.
It was not necessarily wrong. He had fallen to pass this ce to pass the test. Until now, it was only a series of steps toplete this trial perfectly.
And perhaps the final test of this trial would be the Richie in front of him.
¡°Are you trying to y some sort of hero?¡± Richie asked.
¡°Did you just say a hero?¡± Su-hyeun knitted his brows at Richie¡¯s question and said, ¡°watch your mouth. That word. I don¡¯t like it much.¡±
Chapter 42
Chapter 42: Chapter 42
Whirl, whirl¡ª
The magic started to overrun around Su-hyeun. The highly concentrated magic blew violently and became hotter. In a sudden change of mood, Richie also pulled our his magic.
¡°Well, that is good. Because I do not like the type of people who pretend to be a hero.¡± Richie chuckled andughed at Su-hyeun. He continued to say, ¡°but isn¡¯t it weird? What you did was a hero thing. Why did you save the soldiers? Go to all that effort? And why did you trust me to not hurt them after they ran away?¡±
¡°...What?¡± Maxman looked back at Su-hyeun in surprise. ¡°Even after the soldiers ran away?¡±
Su-hyeun had helped the soldiers run away and checked the Richie during his break. He focused all his nerves on Richie in the deep underground. He also checked the soldiers¡¯ movement. In the process, he consumed with considerable concentration and even physical strength.
¡°I did not care for them at all. You fool just wasted your power.¡± Richie sneered.
¡°It was not a waste,¡± Su-hyeun denied what Richie said and stepped forward.
Crack¡ª!
He trampled the de under his feet. The magic spread around him with rage. His eyes sparkled. He stared at Richie.
¡°Why was that a waste?¡± he asked.
Thump¡ª
Su-hyeun closed the distance toward Richie.
¡°Since the soldiers ran away because of me, it is my responsibility to keep them alive. This man, right here, evacuated the soldiers because of me.¡±
Su-hyeun remembered what Maxman said, ¡°If my decision was wrong...I will take responsibility for myself.¡±
The sense of responsibility and pressure that Maxman felt, Su-hyeun could understand better than anyone else. His one action and one word could decide so many people¡¯s lives.
¡°If so... I should decide that the decision was not wrong. That is my responsibility,¡± Su-hyeun determined.
¡°What funny sophistry! Are you sacrificing yourself to save others?¡±
¡°It is not a sacrifice. It is a responsibility. Responsibility for my actions. Can you say a fool who doesn¡¯t know that he is a wizard of knowledge?¡±
¡°...I know for sure,¡± Richie said with certainty, ¡°you are the same as every other hero I know.¡±
¡°Really? Is that so?¡±
Stab¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword prated Richie¡¯s head.
¡°Well then, let¡¯s just say you are right,¡± he said.
Whoosh¡ª!
Richie¡¯s body started to burn and lit up the dark underground. Su-hyeun turned his body behind the burning Richie.
¡°Kekeke.¡± Richie¡¯sughter came from the back.
At first, the burned body by me was not Richie¡¯s. It was some sort of hallucination magic.
¡°You are a funny guy. A hero? ... No, you already knew about me, didn¡¯t you?¡± Richie asked.
¡°About half?¡± Su-hyeun answered.
He had a rough idea about the final destination of this trial, the mission that he got at this moment.
¡°The God of Death. Well, that is just a name... I think you are an apostle of the king, the Richie King.¡±
The Richie King. Among the intelligent monsters, he was also known as the God of Death. The Richie in front of him was an apostle of that Richie King. He was an upper-grade Richie, who was master of death-rted magic
Su-hyeun looked at the huge pattern drawn on the floor of the underground. It was a veryplex pattern. He had seen this pattern once before.
¡°Death-Force Absorption.¡±
Death-Force Absorption was the name of this pattern named by awakeners. It was a skill to draw the souls around the pattern and to improve the power of the user. It was a kind of magic circle that was mainly used by the apostle of the Richie King. Su-hyeun had been contemting this skill since hearing the content of the trial and knowing the existence of Richie.
¡°If all people were dead...,¡± he thought, ¡°that Richie probably had much stronger power than now.¡±
That was the reason why the gatekeeper gave him a hint, ¡°Do not kill anyone.¡±
¡°Kekeke. You are just proving your ignorance by disparaging His Majesty by that name,¡± Richie giggled and said.
¡°Bullsh*t. He is just a little stronger skeleton. You are the ignorant one, serving that man as a god.¡±
¡°That is because you have no idea who His...¡±
¡°That fellow. He will be killed by my hands.¡± Su-hyeun cut Richie off.
Richie stoppedughing by Su-hyeun¡¯s word. He was pretty loyal to his king, as soon as Su-hyeun mentioned the king¡¯s death, he did not look rxed anymore. But what he said was not just a lie to provoke him.
¡°What? Can¡¯t you believe me? Then, go otherworld and wait. You will see him soon.¡±
¡°...You brat. Are you serious?¡±
¡°Yes, I am. You would know. If my word is true or not.¡±
What Su-hyeun said was true. The Richie King was a great being praised by Richies as the God of Death, but he was also just a monster.
At the time of the dungeon outbreak, Su-hyeun had dealt with him. That time, he killed the Richie King and destroyed all Richies in the world. The Richie King was the creator of Richie¡¯s life extension system. That was why all Richies served him as a god.
¡°You¡¯re saying something you shouldn¡¯t,¡± Richie said in a low voice.
Kuuuuuu¡ª
Crash, Craaaash¡ª
The magic of Su-hyeun and Richie started to crash. Maxman, who was in the middle, grasped his fist. His feet started to tremble.
¡°This is... This is a different world than I lived in,¡± he thought.
Maxman already knew how strong Su-hyeun was. He saw his skills with own eyes. The mysterious fire and magic he was using, and his magic factor was high. Plus, his sword skills were way higher than average. Maxman could not hesitate to say he was just amazing. But he still thought, there would be something he could help. But...
¡°What the hell am I doing...¡± he mumbled.
He was seeing the kingdom¡¯s secret right at the moment. The Richie was appointed as the lord of a castle. Somebody in the kingdom nned to kill all soldiers and to increase the power of Richie.
And since Maxman confirmed all the facts, he had to help Su-hyeun at least a little bit. But he could not. He had no power for that. He was not sure if his help would help Su-hyeun anyway.
Sizzle¡ª
Two huge bolts of magic hit and bounced in all directions. At that moment, it had be bright in front of Maxman¡¯s eyes. When he opened his eyes again, they were gone.
¡°Where did they go?¡±
Craaack¡ª!
Whack¡ª!
He could feel the hot heat and stinging aura.
Rumble, ruuumble ¡ª
The underground started to shake.
Swish, swish¡ª
Whoosh¡ª!
Maxman barely protected himself from the aftermath of the fight. Su-hyeun swung Gram and struck Richie¡¯s head.
Guuuuu¡ª
Swish¡ª
Gram¡¯s way was warped by the huge pressure that shot from his hand, the Guide magic. But Richie could not turn the way of the sword as he expected. The attack he had made intending to destroy it in the first ce.
¡°As I expected...,¡± Richie thought.
Swish¡ª!
The ominous ck sphere twisted its shape and shot at Su-hyeun. He did not avoid it, he rather cut it off, and approached Richie.
sh, sh¡ª
Boom, boom, boom¡ª
The sphere was cut and lost its direction and burst out. Richie focused on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
¡°That sword is pretty annoying,¡± Richie thought.
He looked at the sword in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand. Su-hyeun¡¯s ability was extraordinary, but his sword was something very special as well.
Su-hyeun did not use much of his power. He was saving his magic. The hardness and sharpness of the sword was all the ability of the sword itself. Richie was surprised at the fact that the sword could cut his magic by its power.
¡°and that power¡ª¡±
Whoosh¡ª
The me surrounded Su-hyeun, who was burning all the dark magic and approaching him. He could not get closer to Su-hyeun because of that. That was a good defending method, also an absolute attacking method. That me was ipatible with Richie, who was using the dark magic.
¡°¡ª is very tricky,¡± Richie thought.
In this way, it would be hard to fight back. Moreover, the skill he was preparing did notplete. The situation was disadvantageous to him.
¡°Then...,¡± Richie thought something and rushed to Su-hyeun.
Richie was a wizard, but he ran into the swordsman. It was not a normal situation. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes shed in an unexpected situation.
¡°What is he doing?¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Swish¡ª
Richie stretched out his hand to Su-hyeun.
In that short moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s head spun fast. ¡°Should I make this face-to-face? Is it some sort of trick? Is this an opportunity or a trap?¡±
Withplicated thinking, the me on his hand changed its color.
Swoosh¡ª
The me that changed to blue inted its size.
¡°I won¡¯t avoid you. Face-to-face.¡±
The worries were brief, and there was no reason to save power since he had made the decision.
[The Transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
[The me.]
[Indomitable body.]
Su-hyeun¡¯s body was surrounded by scales of Imoogi. The blue me covered his body and sword. His body became harder than steel because of the Indomitable body skill. There was no need to save his magic. If only he could cut Richie now.
¡°What the...¡± Richie, who ran straight to Su-hyeun, was surprised by the unexpected strength. ¡°He is more powerful than I expected...!¡±
The moment when their hands and swords cross each other¡ª
Swoosh¡ª
Boooom¡ª!
¡ªThe blue and ck magic hit, and the shock wave shook the whole huge castle.
Act 10
Kuuuuuu¡ª
The castle, which had been shaken by the aftermath of the huge explosion, began to stabilize.
Patter, patter¡ª
The broken walls and ceiling fell. Maxman coughed and lowered his arm that he had raised to protect his head.
¡°Cough! Cough!¡±
Kkkrrraak¡ª
Crash¡ª
A pile of rock that had poured over his head spilled onto the floor. It was a miracle to survive in this mess. Maxman thought if he was a wizard, not a swordsman, he would not have survived.
¡°What is just happened...?¡±
Maxman, who had barely recovered his vision, lifted his head and stiffened like a rock and opened his eyes wide. His mouth opened in surprise.
¡°C-castle...¡±
The empty underground was cluttered with the copsed ceiling, meaning that the aftereffect of the explosion had affected not only the underground but also the ground itself. It was amazing that such an explosion urred due to the collision of power, but it was also amazing that he survived in it.
¡°Wait! What happened to that guy?¡±
In this collision, what happened to the parties, Su-hyeun and Richie?
¡°Could he survive? Even the castle copsed!¡± Maxman quickly stood up and looked around. Su-hyeun had saved many soldiers in the castle and himself.
Crash, crash¡ª
At that time, he sensed somebody¡¯s presence at the piles of stones at one side.
Rumble¡ª
The pile of stones was shaken. Some debris poured down. And from the crack of the pile of stones, one arm came out.
Chapter 43
Chapter 43: Chapter 43
Crack¡ª
-Ugh... Uh...
Maxman heard a voice crack in frustration. There was a hand had no flesh, only bone.
Crumble¡ª
Soon, Richie came out from the pile of stones and looked around.
¡°...Sh*t,¡± Maxman swore despite himself. He hoped that the person who survived there was Su-hyeun. But Richie survived and stood right there.
¡°Can I win?¡± Maxman thought. He already knew the ability of Richie.
¡°If it was a normal fight, I would lose,¡± he thought. He was sure about that. But now, Richie was not in good shape. ¡°Maybe I can win. If I fight now before he recovers. I have to hurry...¡±
Crack¡ª
At that moment, another hand squeezed out of the pile of stones. And...
Snatch¡ª
Crash¡ª!
That hand grabbed Richie¡¯s head and mmed it down on the ground.
¡°Cough, Cough!¡±
Su-hyeun, who appeared with a cough, muttered with Richie¡¯s head on the floor.
¡°Ah, I ate a lot of sand.¡±
¡°You...!¡± Maxman yelled.
¡°Oh, are you alive? I thought you died. Well, I am d you didn¡¯t,¡± Su-hyeun calmly said but he was covered in blood. The blood spilled from the broken head. His arm was almost crushed, and his body was staggering. He certainly did not seem to be okay.
¡°Are you worried about me now?¡±
¡°I won¡¯t die, I know my body,¡± Su-hyeun said and shook his hand. One arm was crushed, but the other one was fine.
¡°But still...¡± Maxman looked aghast when he saw Su-hyeun who pretended to be fine in awful shape.
Crack, crack¡ª
-You... Bastard...
¡°Ah, man?¡±
Crash¡ª
Su-hyeun trampled on Richie¡¯s head. With a crunching sound, his head crushed and the Life Stone popped out.
¡°You are making me sick,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Flop¡ª
He plunked down on the ground. It was a short moment, but he thought he might have died.
¡°I can¡¯t believe he blew up the skill itself,¡± he thought.
Death-Force Absorption was a skill that gathered the souls of the dead and melted it to turn it into the user¡¯s power. The soul had greater power than expected. Even though the person was weak, the soul itself kept considerable power in it.
Su-hyeun thought that Richie had not absorbed any soul with the skill. But there was one thing he had overlooked. The prisoners in the castle. The underground of the castle was a ce to keep prisoners or soldiers who hadmitted crimes. There were dozens of people thrown in jail. Richie absorbed their souls in the skill and exploded it all at once. It was a gamble that risked the Richie¡¯s life.
¡°Really... That was so close,¡± Su-hyeun sighed.
If more souls had been absorbed by Richie, he probably wouldn¡¯t be standing. Protecting the soldiers, making them run out of the castle had been the right choice. With the thought that it was over, his body loosened up. He took a deep breath. The dust spread underground came into his mouth. He frowned.
Maxman walked to him. He checked Su-hyeun and asked, ¡°Are you... really okay?¡±
¡°Yes, I am fine,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°But...¡± Maxman hestitated.
¡°It will be better if I get some rest for a few days. I am really fine.¡±
The physical strength of awakener was not just the ability to run and fight for long. The higher Health stats, the more the body recovery ability increased rapidly. Su-hyeun¡¯s Health stats were not at all low. No matter how severe the injury, it would be best to take a few days to rest.
¡°Thank you.¡± Maxman bowed his head to Su-hyeun. ¡°Thanks to you, not only me but my soldiers were able to survive. I had no idea the lord of a castle was Richie.¡±
¡°It is okay. I didn¡¯t do it to save anyone. There is no reason to be thanked.¡± Su-hyeun was ashamed by the sudden change of Maxman¡¯s attitude.
Strictly speaking, Su-hyeun had helped him because it was a challenge of trial. If the soldiers died, Su-hyeun would be in trouble.
¡°Well, good things are good things,¡± he thought and picked up the Life Stone on the floor.
Richie¡¯s Life Stone, this was the main part of the Richie.
Whoosh¡ª
Crackle, crackle¡ª
The Life Stone in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand burned in the me. The sound of the soul¡¯s screams echoed in his head.
¡°Shut up. Just go.¡±
Sizzle¡ª
The Life Stone melted. At that moment, a message came to his head.
[You have gained 100,000 achievement points.]
[Calcting your aplishment.]
[Remaining Time: 29 days.]
[You did not get help from Osman kingdom.]
[You did not get help from Hero, Prisci.]
[You did not get help from Hero, Gerschmann.]
[You did not...]
...
[Counting the number of surviving soldiers.]
[7,129 soldiers survived.]
[You have attained the highest aplishment.]
[You have passed the 20th-floor¡¯s trial with perfection.]
[Your achievement will be ranked.]
[You have ranked first.]
[Your Strength has increased by 1 point.]
[Your Agility has increased by 2 points.]
[Your Health has increased by 2 points.]
[Your magic factor has increased by 2 points.]
[You will get an additional reward depending on your aplishment level.]
[You have achieved the additional reward ¨C ¡®Hero: immortality.¡¯]
[Will you ascend to the next floor?]
¡°...¡±
It was the first time he had seen such a long message. He had never received a message this long, even in his previous life, which meant that Su-hyeun¡¯s achievements were excellent.
-A help from Osman kingdom.
-A help from Hero, Prisci.
-A help from Hero, Gerschmann.
-A help from Hero...
What it meant was clear.
¡°Well. It was a sh*t hard time.¡± Su-hyeun thought.
The system gave him almost 30 days. It was time to get their help. Perhaps the heroes and Osman kingdom already knew the existence of the Richie here. At first, it was not typed of the trial to solve alone. Even at level 10, the difficulty of this trial was insane for the 20th floor.
¡°Four Richies, and one apostolic Richie...¡± Su-hyeun sighed.
¡°But thanks to that, the achievement was calcted pretty high.¡±
At least, there was something tofort himself. Su-hyeun felt a little better to think about that. Unfortunately, his magic level did not increase by much. He felt sorry for that. He knew that there was a big difference in each level from level 6. But this time he expected a little.
¡°Well. I guess I just have to satisfy with the additional reward,¡± he thought.
He got 100,000 achievement points, including Strength, additional stats, and magic factor. He also got a new skill, which was not a bad reward.
¡°Goodbye, mister¡± Su-hyeun waved at Maxman.
Maxman was surprised for calling him mister and a sudden salutation.
¡°M-mister? Wait. What do you mean goodbye...?¡±
Pooooof¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s appearance began to be transparent. Maxman reached out to Su-hyeun and shouted something loud, but his voice didn¡¯t reach him.
[You will ascend to the 21st floor.]
Thump, thump¡ª
Su-hyeun, who returned to the home could barely walk to the bed. Although he passed the trial, his injury remained. He could use the treasure of Shayre and recover his body, but it was not bad enough to use the healing tool when he only had the opportunity to use it twice. Using it for this would be a waste.
¡°Phew,¡± Su-hyeun sighed. He felt tired. Although he took the pain pills he found at the store, the pain was notpletely gone. If he didn¡¯t rest for a few days, the pain would probably continue.
¡°I can hold it in. I can...¡±
Plump¡ª
Hey on the wide bed with blood on his body. He was ovee by fatigue and closed his eyes. He did not know when he fell asleep. He slept almost all day, every day. As people say, sleep is a good cure. He felt much better when he awoke.
¡°Ugh...¡± Su-hyeun made a moaning sound.
The crushed arm was more of a problem than anything else. The fatigue made Su-hyeun quite rxed, but one arm was still unnatural. Even with the remedy, the healing seemed to take a long time.
¡°I guess I have to go to the hospital and have it at least bandaged,¡± he thought.
He could not walk around outside with a crushed arm like this. It seemed like it would be hard to see Shin Su-yeong for a few days. She would be frightened to see him injured this badly.
Buzz¡ª
The smartphone next to the bed rang. It was a text. He checked his phone and found several missed calls. He was not aware of the vibrations in his sleep.
¡°How deep did I sleep?¡±
It had been a long time since he had been so tired. Su-hyeun sat on the bed and checked the phone. The missed calls were from Lee Ju-ho.
-Did you pass the 20th floor already? In a day?
-Are you not able to pick up the phone? Are you not feeling well?
-It is crazy in Abyss Online. They are talking about how a person can pass the 20th floor in a day. Especially this time...
¡°...Umm. Is it already posted?¡± he thought.
From two years ago, the interest in Su-hyeun had steadily increased on Abyss Online. Recently, there were more and more people who saw him on the same line as S-rank awakeners. Of course, most of that interest was because Su-hyeun was the only awakener to challenge the trials of level 10 and that his face was not known at all.
¡°Well, I guess there is a reason he is worrying.¡±
The 20th floor was already known for its difficulty. People usually lowered the level of trial for this floor, but Su-hyeun kept insisting on level 10. And he passed the trial just in one day. It was far beyond the expected range.
¡°I also have to check what I asked for him,¡± he thought.
Brinngg¡ª
Su-hyeun pressed the button and called Lee Ju-ho.
Su-hyeun made an appointment with Lee Ju-ho and headed straight to a nearby hospital. At the hospital, he scheduled the surgery and set the broken arm right. Of course, after that, the hospital urged Su-hyeun to be hospitalized immediately.
¡°Look. You can¡¯t go around with that body! What will you do with that arm anyway?¡± the doctor said.
¡°I am an awakener.¡±
¡°Still! Your body...¡±
¡°I am fine. Just apply for some medicine on my arm and wrap the bandage. Give me some pain killers as well if you can.¡±
¡°Huh...¡± The doctor sighed and look at him as if he was crazy.
Su-hyeun, who acted casual with his mangled body and arm, did not seem normal. No matter how resilient awakening people are, they would know and feel pain.
¡°If you have any problems, you muste right back. Don¡¯t move too much.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Su-hyeun thought to answer him positively would be better than having a war of words with him. But no matter what happened, he did not have any ns toe back to the hospital.
¡°I¡¯ll be better in one day, except for my arm,¡± he thought.
Of course, he was confident that his arms would be better in a few days. The difficult part was setting the broken bone. After that, it would recover quickly. Su-hyeun alreadyrgely set the broken part, so the doctor¡¯s job was only a detailed operation.
After treatment, he came out of the room. Lee Ju-ho was waiting for him on the 1st floor. Ju-ho was surprised to see Su-hyeun injured.
¡°Are you okay?¡± Ju-ho asked.
¡°You mean this?¡± Su-hyeun turned his bandaged arm around and answered, ¡°It is nothing.¡±
¡°Oh,e on now!¡± That time, the doctor yelled at Su-hyeun behind of him.
He looked at him as if scolding that he was not careful.
Chapter 44
Chapter 44: Chapter 44
¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± Su-hyeun, who told the doctor that he would be careful, flinched from hisck of care. He pushed Lee Ju-ho¡¯s back. He could hear a nagging of the doctor behind them, but he pretended not to hear and moved in a hurry.
The two men headed to a nearby cafe. Since Su-hyeun bandaged his arm and body, it attracted others¡¯ attention. So they found a ce to sit away from prying eyes.
¡°How is your arm?¡± Lee Ju-ho, who ordered a cup of coffee, asked Su-hyeun.
¡°It is okay. I¡¯m fine, really,¡± Su-hyeun nodded and answered.
¡°I saw your face crumpled when you were swinging your arms earlier...¡± Lee Ju-ho said as his voice trailed off.
¡°Well, it is moving. That is good enough. Besides, injuring this much is not a big deal when we pass the trials, right?¡± Su-hyeun answered confidently as if he asked an obvious thing.
Lee Ju-ho didn¡¯t know what to say anymore. Since the injured one himself said he was fine, there was nothing he could do.
¡°Well, moving around a day after a trial like this means his injury must not be too bad,¡± he thought, ¡°This is pretty normal.¡±
After the trial, seven or eight of the ten people usually injured themselves and devoted time to healing and recovering. Lee Ju-ho had been injured many times before as he ascended in the Tower of Trials. But Su-hyeun had not been injured much so far, except for some small wounds. This was the first time he was wounded badly. He was just a special case that he hadn¡¯t been injured much so far. The degree of injury he had now was not something seriouspared to others.
¡°The problem was that it was the first time he was truly hurt, ¡± Lee Ju-ho thought.
But if Su-hyeun thought this wound was not something special, there would be nothing to worry about. So, Lee Ju-ho decided to not worry about Su-hyeun anymore.
¡°It¡¯s nothing, but I called you to answer the question you asked thest time and ask you how you through the 20th floor so quickly.¡±
¡°That... I used some ignorant way...¡± Su-hyeun faltered the end because he was not sure how to exin this.
Then, he thought it would be better if he didn¡¯t talk about it, so he closed his mouth. Lee Ju-ho did not ask again as if it was not a big deal. In the end, there was one reason they met.
¡°By the way, what happened to the thing I asked you? What did the director say?¡±
¡°Umm, that...,¡± Lee Ju-ho sighed and replied, ¡°It is failed.¡±
When Lee Ju-ho finished talking, there was only a devastating silence in the director¡¯s office. The air felt heavy, it was hard to breathe in there. Kim Do-ui, who followed Ju-ho with a light heart, felt cautious even to swallow. The situation continued like that for a while.
¡°...That is bullsh*t.¡± The director opened his mouth in a low voice.
¡°S-sir?¡± Kim Do-ui was surprised and called the director.
The word came out because he was embarrassed. He did not open his mouth to say anything. The director gazed at Kim Do-ui. When he got the attention of the director, he was startled. He lowered his head and stepped back.
¡°Why do you think so?¡± he asked.
¡°There¡¯s no basis, is there?¡± the director asked.
It was obvious. Even Lee Ju-ho thought he had not enough evidence. But that didn¡¯t mean he would step back simply.
¡°But what if my words are true...¡±
¡°Then, bring me that evidence.¡± The director got up from his seat as if he did not want to listen to him anymore.
¡°In a month, a dungeon will appear in the sky of Anyang City, Gyeonggi Province? And what¡¯s inside the dungeon will cause an outbreak immediately? So, we have to dispose of awakeners and evacuate the citizens?¡±
The director listed the things that Lee Ju-ho had asked so far andughed ridiculously.
¡°Are you out of your mind?¡± The director sneered.
¡°Sir.¡±
¡°Do you know how many people live in Anyang City? It¡¯s nearly 600,000 people. Are you saying we have to evacuate all those people? Because of you?¡±
¡°Yes. It is the matter with that 600,000 people.¡±
¡°If we evacuate 600,000 people, 60 million people in this country will be in fear. Because of your poorly-founded word.¡±
¡°...¡±
¡°Where did you get that information anyway? If you tell me the source, I will investigate,¡± the director said.
The source of information, was Su-hyeun, of course. But even Lee Ju-ho did not hear the exact basis of this information from Su-hyeun.
¡°Just... I heard he got this information from the Tower of Trials.¡±
¡°So, it is not you. You just heard from someone.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Then, tell me, who this man is.¡±
At the end of the director¡¯s remarks, Lee Ju-ho thought a while, ¡°Should I tell him this? If I tell him I know who Kim Su-hyeun is, how with the director react? Should I hide it? But, what if it¡¯s true. Then, hundreds of thousands will die.¡±
Lee Ju-ho shut his eyes and said, ¡°I heard it from Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
As if that was an unexpected name, the director¡¯s eyes shook for the first time, and so did Kim Do-ui, who was standing next to him.
¡°Is Kim Su-hyeun... Possibly that...?¡±
¡°Yes. He is that Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Did you have an acquaintance with him?¡±
¡°I identally got in touch and he asked to tell you about this. I don¡¯t know him.¡±
¡°Why are you sure that he is Kim Su-hyeun?¡± the director asked.
¡°I am not sure. But just... he said he is Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
Lee Ju-ho hid Su-hyeun¡¯s identity and found apromise point to persuade the director.
Kim Su-hyeun was a name that no one could ignore among the awakener of recent years. The name had a special meaning as well as a mystery. He was the world¡¯s only 10-level trial challenger. It would be understandable, that he got this information in some special way, during his trial. At least, it would be better than Lee Ju-ho to make up a lie. Whether it worked or not, the director seemed to be thinking for a moment.
And soon, the director opened his mouth. ¡°No.¡±
¡°Sir!¡± Lee Ju-ho¡¯s voice rose for the first time.
Even he mentioned Su-hyeun, the director still denied it. Even after Lee Ju-ho¡¯s response, the director shook his head as he reconfirmed his decision.
¡°It is hard to believe what you just said. Even if the source of information is Kim Su-hyeun, we don¡¯t know if we can trust him. The information may be wrong.¡±
¡°But still! You should not y a gamble with the lives of so many people!¡±
¡°I am the one who listened to you and made decisions. I¡¯m responsible for that decision. So, if your information is wrong, I¡¯m responsible for it too. Can you take responsibility for that?¡±
Lee Ju-ho gritted his teeth at the director¡¯s words. In the end, it meant that he would not act because he was afraid of responsibility. For the director, even if Lee Ju-ho ¡®s words were true, there was no problem. Citizens would die, but it would be an unexpected and difficult situation to cope with, like natural disasters. He wouldn¡¯t have to take responsibility.
But what if he evacuated citizens as Lee Ju Ho¡¯s requested, but then what would happen if the dungeon didn¡¯t appear? The responsibility of putting the people into fear with false facts would follow. And that would be the responsibility of the director, not Lee Ju-ho. Lee Ju-ho was not in a position to take such a responsibility.
¡°So... Are you going to gamble with the lives of the citizens?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°What do you mean gambling?¡±
¡°You left the safety of the people behind to avoid the responsibility now. If... If what I said happens, will you pretend you never heard this?¡±
¡°That is not what I meant. Do you have to think awry like that?¡±
¡°That is what it is!¡±
Thump, thump¡ª
m¡ª!
Lee Ju-ho approached the director and hit the desk with his fist. The desk was cracked and the documents on it fell. The director frowned at his anger.
¡°You are so upset now. I will pretend I didn¡¯t hear that.¡±
The director nced at Kim Do-ui next to him. His nce meant to let Lee Ju-ho go quickly. Kim do-ui sighed and took Lee Ju-ho out of the room. He regretted following the director¡¯s orders.
¡°That is what happened.¡± Lee Ju-ho looked very angry as he was finishing the story.
His red face looked like it would almost explode soon. The director¡¯s decision showed nothing but negligence and disregard for the safety of citizens to avoid responsibility. However, Su-hyeun, who asked him to talk with the director, didn¡¯t seem very upset.
¡°Yeah, he is that kind of man. Whew...¡± Su-hyeun sighed deeply.
He looked resigned rather than upset. Lee Ju-ho looked at Su-hyeun curiously.
¡°Do you know the director?¡± he asked.
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°The way you said that sounds like you know him very well...¡±
Of course, Su-hyeun knew what the director of the Awakeners reditation Authority was like. Perhaps not many people knew him as well as Su-hyeun.
¡°I had lots of bad experiences,¡± he thought.
The director was always just like this. He was full of fear of his responsibility, and he was indifferent to the safety and security of others. As a position to be responsible for the safety of many people, Su-hyeun thought he was the worst person. So, he didn¡¯t expect much. But there would be a chance. That was why he asked Lee Ju-ho to talk with him. But the result was as he expected. Since he expected the result of this, he was not upset.
¡°Are you okay?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°That I mentioned you.¡±
¡°Well, that is¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t think it was a big problem. Lee Ju-ho had tried to persuade the director in his way. Rather than getting angry, it was something to be thankful for.
¡°¡ªokay. Anyway, getting help from the Authority won¡¯t be an option anymore.¡±
¡°What will you do now? It will be hard to get other awakeners¡¯ help that day. Many people will be gathered in Ansan to attack the dungeon in there.¡±
It was unfortunate. If there were more awakeners, even the damage would be great, but hundreds of thousands of people would not die. At that time, so many people had died. It was one of the worst disasters that Su-hyeun remembered. And...
¡°I was there,¡± he thought.
This disaster happened when Su-hyeun just started as an awakener. He was not mobilized in the green dungeon that day. Instead, he mobilized in that disaster. And he had to see with his own eyes that many people dying on the spot. And he had no power to stop that.
¡°It is different...this time.¡±
Unlike the time when he had just started to awaken, he had power now. It would be different. Remembering the future and being empowered made that difference.
¡°If the Authority won¡¯t help,¡± Su-hyeun said in a low voice, as he had nned anyway, ¡°I guess I will do it by myself somehow.¡±
Lee Ju-ho thought Su-hyeun said nonsense. He felt embarrassed, so he asked him, ¡°...What? By yourself?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± Su-hyeun who thought he might not hear well, replied clearly, ¡°By myself.¡±
Chapter 45
Chapter 45: Chapter 45
Act 1
¡°What does he mean? Do it all by himself?¡±
Lee Ju-ho was disconcerted by Su-hyeun¡¯s confident answer. At first, he thought Su-hyeun might have an excellent n. But he said he just take on the dungeon by himself. Lee Ju-ho had no idea how to take it.
¡°Well, don¡¯t worry too much. I have an idea,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°It will be alright, won¡¯t it?¡±
¡°Yes. I will make it alright.¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t n to do anything. Although the situation would not help, he decided to manage it somehow. Lee Ju-ho smoothed down his chest after he listened to Su-hyeun¡¯s definite answer. Since he looked confident, maybe he had an excellent n.
¡°Then, I will count on you, Su-hyeun,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°Well...¡± Su-hyeun hesitated a little bit and said an uneasy word to Lee Ju-ho, who was finally relieved, ¡°Although, it is not a very reliable way.¡±
¡°What?¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t say anything to Lee Ju-ho. Since he had already got treatment in the hospital, he caught a taxi and returned home. When he opened the front door, the first thing he saw was the blood trail from the living room to the door of the bedroom.
¡°I guess it¡¯ll take a while to clean up.¡±
He opened the bedroom door. He had forgotten, but the bedroom was the same as well. Even the bed was covered with blood.
¡°I think... I just have to hire a cleaner.¡±
He tried to clean it up, but this was a mess that he couldn¡¯t clean alone. He had lots of money he didn¡¯t know what to do with. There was no ce he could go, so he called the cleaningpany. He discarded the dirty bedsheets and ordered new ones.
Plump¡ª
Su-hyeun perched himself on the edge of the bed until the cleaners came. Now, there was only one month left until the disaster.
¡°Should I challenge the 21st floor?¡± he thought.
There was more time left than he thought. Trials on the 20th floor ended faster than expected. Originally, it was supposed to take nearly a month, but Su-hyeun ignorantly passed it in a day. Because of that, now he had a month to spare. He started to think about how to use this time.
¡°What if I get injured like this again?¡±
That would be dangerous, depending on the type of trial, he might end up having a serious wound. It was possible he couldn¡¯t pass the trial in the right amount of time. If hepleted the trial in one day, that would be a really big problem.
¡°I should hold trials for a while.¡±
Then there was only one thing to do for the rest of the month.
¡°The highest potential potion,¡± he mumbled.
Thanks to the rewards he gained after the recent trial, his achievement points exceeded two million. This was enough to buy what he wanted, the highest potential potion. He had been dyed until now since he had a serious injury. But he almost recovered to the point that he could move again.
¡°Wait a second,¡± He recalled another reward that he had forgotten, ¡°Was it a new skill?¡±
The name of the skill was Immortality. Would it be as good as the name sounded? He checked the skill.
[Hero ¨C Immortality.]
*Rating: It is direct proportion to the user¡¯s magic.
*Category: Passive
*Lv: 1
This is a body of Adele Kleimer who fought against the devil a long time ago. It is said that the body of a hero was nearly immortal, like a god who does not die or get injured. It will automatically activate when the lifeline goes below a certain level. Regenerative Power and Health will quickly recover, and physical ability will rise rapidly. Duration, cool time, Regenerative Power and Health recovery rate is proportional to proficiency.
It was a tremendous exnation. More than anything else, the description of the hero, Adele Kleimer, who fought against the devil, seemed unnecessary. Unlike the name immortality, the ability of skill itself was not immortal.
¡°Is it because the skill level is still low?¡± he thought.
There was no skill that incredibly effective regardless of skill level. Such cases only happened when the skills didn¡¯t require proficiency or level and they usually had a clear limit. Then, it would be much better to have Level-dependent skills like this. The existence of proficiency or level meant that there was no limit.
¡°I guess it is technically a higher version of Berserk skill.¡±
Berserk was a skill thatpensated for physical strength and strengthened overall physical ability in proportion to negative conditions, such as physical strength and bleeding users. In terms of skill used in crises, Immortality and Berserk were simr.
The difference between them was in the form of active or passive. Unlike the Berserk that could be used at any time, Immortality was a passive skill that was activated when certain conditions were set.
¡°Of course, this is better because there are no side effects.¡±
Strictly speaking, Berserk was not a skill to recover the lost Health. It was only to make the user feel as if he had recovered his physical strength for a certain period. So, in the end, this skill made him feel more tired than he was the first time.
Immortality, on the other hand, was the ability to recover Health and regenerate injuries. Besides, physical abilities would rise rapidly. Although it was a passive skill, it could be called a higher version of Berserk.
Of course, he had no idea how much this skill would help his Health recovery or Regenerative Power. That would be something he had to check from now on.
¡°But how can I raise the proficiency of this skill?¡±
There was only one way toe to his mind right away.
¡°Should I harm myself?¡±
A sigh came out. It looked like he needed to do it once, at least. To use the skill, he had to know when it would activate or how much it would recover his health, and how much it would regenerate. It wasn¡¯t a bad skill. He just was not sure how great this skill was as its name.
¡°Well, then...:
Su-hyeun, who checked the effect of the skill, got up and opened the door.
¡°I guess I have to go shopping first.¡±
¡°What did you say?¡±
¡°I said the highest potential potion! A catalyst!¡±
Su-hyeun said in frustration to the middle-aged man with a shaggy beard. He asked Su-hyeun three times already.
The middle-aged man, who was the owner of the store, blinked his eyes and asked again, thinking this question would be thest one, ¡°You mean...the highest one?
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Why are you looking for that here?¡±
He thought his previous question would be thest one, but he asked again.
The owner thought this situation was very ridiculous. It was only the 21st floor. He could not believe there was someone who was looking for the highest potential potion. He tried to convince himself he misheard a higher grade. But no matter how many times he heard, this customer kept saying highest.
¡°Why? You don¡¯t have it?¡±
¡°No, I have it...¡±
¡°Then why don¡¯t you just give it to me?¡±
The owner thought he might be joking, but it seemed like it wasn¡¯t. People usually purchased a low-grade potential catalyst. Some rich people bought a middle-grade potential catalyst. But this man was asking for the highest one. The middle-aged man reached out to Su-hyeun. He wanted to make sure he had enough Achievement Points.
[Achievement Point: 2,081,400.]
Su-hyeun was not joking. He had 2,081,400 points. He had enough points to buy the highest-grade potential catalyst which was two million.
The owner could not believe it at first. He never thought there would be anyone who would buy this expensive thing. He also never thought there would be anyone who would get that many points either. He thought he would never take this stuff out from the shelf.
¡°Huh, well...¡±
¡°What¡¯s wrong? It is a good thing for you to sell expensive stuff, right?¡±
¡°Yea. I mean. I am a little surprised. Yes, it is a good thing.¡±
There would be no shop owner who would deny selling expensive things. He hurriedly brought the stuff from the downstairs.
¡°Here. This is the highest-grade potential catalyst.¡±
What the middle-aged man brought was a small, thumb-sized bottle of dark purple liquid. The size and shape were not significantly different from other catalysts. The only difference was the darkness of the purple. But Su-hyeun, who already knew this product, recognized it at once.
[You have spent 2,000,000 achievement points.]
¡°Thank you for the stuff. Have a good day.¡±
Su-hyeun took the catalyst and left without hesitation. He left the shop and headed to a small inn in the city. He rented a room and went in. He opened the bottle.
Pop¡ª
¡°Yuck.¡±
As soon as he opened up the bottle, a terrible smell filled the room.
¡°I can¡¯t believe I have to drink this again...¡±
Su-hyeun had already drunk the highest-grade potential catalyst several times in his previous life. It had the worst vor ever. He could not believe this horrible taste could exist in the world. He didn¡¯t want to drink this anymore. After he had drunk a few more times, it didn¡¯t give him greater power anymore. He didn¡¯t drink it anymore after that. But...
¡°If it is used for the first time, the effect is significant.¡± Su-hyeun took a deep breath. ¡°I can do this. I just got to do it.¡± He was trembling more than before he fought Fafnir.
Gulp¡ª
He could feel vividly the feeling of the catalyst passing over to his throat. The taste he could not use to it, no matter how many times he drank, lingered on his tongue. He felt sick. He felt like he would vomit soon. There were many times people drank this catalyst and spit it out again because of this vor and feeling.
¡°Weck...¡±
He closed his mouth with hands and barely endured not vomiting. It was disgusting.
Gulp¡ª
Once again, he swallowed the disgusting taste left in his mouth with saliva. He swallowed the lingering vor on his tongue a little. His stomach felt sick, but it was better to not taste it.
There was no time to hesitate. Su-hyeun sat down quickly and began to concentrate his nerves on his body. Now, the most important part would begin. If he hesitates because of the vor, the catalyst would be digested soon.
¡°I have to hold it.¡±
Whiiip¡ª
The catalyst that reached to the stomach after passing his throat started to react. The key was how much he could melt this catalyst in his body. The catalyst was for inting the magic. It reacted with original magic in the drinker¡¯s body and increased it. How effective it would be was depending on the individual¡¯s ability. Even if it was the highest-grade potential catalyst, to somebody it could be just a horrible vored useless potion. It also could be the best restorative for someone.
Rumble, rumble ¡ª
The catalyst began to loosen little by little at Su-hyeun¡¯s will. The first thing he had to do was spread it throughout his body. However, since the concentration was much thicker than other grades of catalyst, it did not move as he intended. If his Magic Level and Factor were lower, it might not move at all.
¡°Move.¡±
Rumble¡ª
The catalyst started to react. The catalyst that contacted his magic started to spread the power from the stomach all over his body.
Chapter 46
Chapter 46: Chapter 46
¡°Okay. Good,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
It was important from now on that he slowly drew his magic to maximize the effectiveness of the catalyst. If he drew his magic too quickly, the catalyst would evaporate. At the same time, he felt the pain. It was as if his body was burning.
¡°Focus. I need to focus.¡±
It was a pain he had been prepared for in the first ce. Su-hyeun clenched his teeth and raised his magic.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The magic, which reacted to the catalyst, gradually grew¡ªthe size and concentration began changing.
¡°Good.¡±
The magic wasn¡¯t done growing yet, but suddenly it stopped. Su-hyeun was embarrassed and pulled down the moving magic.
¡°Did I try to make it grow too quickly?¡±
He had been thinking of increasing the Magic Level at the same time as the catalyst, but it did not work well.
¡°Then... I have to confine it first,¡± he thought.
The catalyst was worth two million points. He didn¡¯t want to blow this in vain. He decided to keep it in his body before it started to evaporate.
Whoooshh¡ª
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The catalyst that was evenly spread through his body began to move to one side. He led it to the edge of his heart. The blood cirction would help the magic spread faster.
Zip¡ª
Then, he encircled the area to prevent oxidizing the catalyst. With this, he did not have to worry about the catalyst disappearing.
¡°I wanted to finish it quickly...Oh well.¡±
It seemed hard.
¡°Since this is what happened... I guess I will melt it for a long time.¡±
John, who was the owner of the inn, Makdallum, went to room 301. A customer was staying there who paid to stay for a week but had been there for 10 days without paying extra!
The guest had mentioned ahead of time that he would stay longer than a week, so John didn¡¯t worry at first. But he couldn¡¯t stand it anymore. Not just because he was behind on the payment but because also other customers started toin about the strange smell from that room.
¡°What is this smell?¡±
John came up on the third floor and frowned. It smelled like something sour got rotten. He felt like his stomach would be turned inside out.
¡°Oh my god. What is this...?¡±
It smelled much worse than he thought. He had no idea what this customer was doing in the room.
¡°Seriously...!¡±
Bang, bang, bang¡ª
John knocked on room 301 roughly.
¡°Hey, man! What are you doing inside? You haven¡¯t paid for your extra days!¡±
Click¡ª
Creak¡ª
The old door slowly opened. John made a wry face. He was ready to nag. But soon, his frown deepened. He wanted to say something, but he could not open his mouth.
¡°O, oop...¡±
The smell in the room was more putrid than in the hallway.
¡°Y-yuck...!¡±
John shut his mouth with both hands and hurriedly went down the stairs. He had no time to argue at the moment. He had to find a restroom before he threw up.
¡°Umm...¡±
Su-hyeun looked at John¡¯s back. He expected this, but he felt sorry.
¡°How long has it been?¡±
The process of absorbing the catalyst took a long time. He thought it would take a week at most, but he concentrated so much that he could not figure out how much time had passed. The reason why John came to his room was probably the smell.
¡°I guess I should pay him some extra money.¡±
He did not want to run away after he made the inn smell this bad. Su-hyeun scratched his head and headed for the bathroom. First, he had to shower.
Su-hyeun paid the money he owed to John after John vomited until nothing was left in his stomach. Although he had spent two million achievement points before, the remaining points were more than enough to use on the 21st floor. When he paid extra 3,000 achievement points, John¡¯s face lighted up quickly. That amount was equal with what he earned running the inn for a month.
¡°10 days...¡±
Su-hyeun checked the remaining time after he came back to the real world.
¡°Now, only 18 days left,¡± he thought.
There was not much time left. More time passed than he had expected. Since there was a result, the time spent was not meaningless. Now, it was time to find a way.
¡°Should I persuade the director again?¡±
If he would meet him in person, he might be able to make up more usible reasons to persuade him.
¡°No... Probably not.¡±
It didn¡¯t take long to shake his head for that idea. He knew the director. He was not that kind of person. As Lee Ju-ho had experienced, the director concentrated all his thoughts on hisfort. It was a wonder how he could manage to rise that high position. He was not a person who could risk it.
¡°Now, what I only have...¡±
There was only one way he could think of. Although he told Lee Ju-ho confidently, he knew his n was stupid and ignorant. But this was the only way.
¡°I guess my secluded life will be over,¡± he thought and scratched his head. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter, though.¡±
It seemed too early to reveal himself, but he had done so many things. He achieved his goal, so there was no reason to hide anymore. Above all, there was no other way he could think of.
¡°When things areplicated, it is best to face them directly.¡±
Rattle¡ª
Su-hyeun pushed the chair back and turned on theputer. He logged on Abyss Online and left an anonymous post.
Click, ck¡ª
On January 17th, a new post on Abyss Online went viral. At first, everyone ignored it. But the writing posted repeatedly, and it included detailed content. It started to have many rmendations and became a sensation. Hak-Joon was looking at the thread on his smartphone.
[Title: Anyang, January 31st.]
*On January 31st, 6:00 p.m, there will be a terror over Anyang City. Dump Guild will create this terror. What is Dump Guild? This is the guild of terrible awakeners. It is a gathering of the worst killers. They are just hiding in the shadows now... I am writing it here, risking my life. If you live in Anyang, I rmend not being in town on that day. I hope you don¡¯t risk your life. That would be very stupid.
¡°...¡±
It was clear how this article became popr. It was because of the Dump Guild.
¡°What do you think?¡± Jung Dong-Yeong asked Hak-Joon.
He was looking at Hak-Joon¡¯s smartphone next to him. The question was so obvious.
Hak-Joon replied, turning off the smartphone screen. ¡°I think it is fifty-fifty.¡±
¡°You mean the possibility?¡± Jung Dong-Yeong asked again.
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Well. I guess this person is not just a grandstander since he knew about Dump Guild.¡±
Dump Guild was a group that was recently mentioned among the high awakeners. They were arge guild who secretlymitted crimes. Originally, the gang hid in the shadows, but as it grew, it was gradually exposed to the world. But, there were only a few awakeners who knew of its existence.
¡°But... Why would Dump Guild will do such things? Isn¡¯t there a reason?¡±
¡°Yes. I think that evidence is prettycking,¡± Hak-Joon answered.
He turned his phone screen back and started to read thements of the post. Not surprisingly, many people seemed to think the same.
-Dump Guild? What is that? I have never seen or heard of it before.
-Dump? I know them. It is not a fiction of an attention wh*re.
-Right. This is true. I think we should watch out.
-Will this writer be okay to write something like this? If it is true, watch out for ck cars and walking in the night.
-But why would Dump Guild do such thing? If they¡¯re a secret society like this post says, why would they create terror?
©¸Yea. That is true.
¡°What people think is all simr. Right?¡±
¡°I guess so.¡±
¡°At this point, I think some people will try to figure out who the writer is,¡± Jung Dong-Yeong said.
At Jung Dong-Yeong¡¯s words, Hak-Joon turned his head and looked at him. He grinned dreary as if he was up to something.
¡°Are you...¡± Hak-Joon was about to say something.
¡°I just wonder who found these things and wrote the post,¡± Jung Dong-Yeong said.
Hak-Joon was with him for quite a long time. He could tell Jung Dong-Yeong was not smiling because he felt good.
¡°Why...?¡± Hak-Joon thought, ¡°Why does he feel so bad about this writing?¡±
He couldn¡¯t tell why. It was a just post he shouldn¡¯t think twice about. Jung Dong-Yeong would not be interested in other people¡¯s lives. He probably didn¡¯t have a connection with...
¡°Wait... Is he?¡± He had a light bulb moment. ¡°Dump Guild, Ares Guild, and Jung Dong-Yeong...¡± The worst thought crossed his mind. He shook his head. ¡°No, it couldn¡¯t be.¡±
Jung Dong-Yeong sent Hak-Joon to the next dungeon attack site. He also adjusted his physical condition for his trial. Jung Dong-Yeong, who came back to his office, sprawled on the sofa. He did not feel good. It was even worse recently.
¡°I don¡¯t like it.¡±
Jung Dong-Yeong brought Hak-Joon to raise him like a loyal dog. He saw his weaknesses and treated him well enough to forget that he was caught. He treated Hak-Joon better than other henchmen who had been together for a long time. But...
¡°What the hell is this fellow doing?¡±
Jung Dong-Yeong turned on his smartphone. On the screen was the post he saw before. It was the same post that Hak-Joon read. He was surprised to see this article for the first time. He could not believe there was someone so openly speaking about Dump Guild.
He investigated and found who the writer was; it wasn¡¯t difficult. He just needed to track the IP address and figured out the owner of the ID. Although it was illegal, it didn¡¯t matter. Now that he knew who the author was, there was no turning back, illegal or not.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun,¡± he mumbled.
Jung Dong-Yeong received a report from the guild members and came to think of Hak-Joon.
¡°I am sure... I saw them contacting each other often... Is this a coincidence?¡± he thought.
The noise was increasing in his brain. Jung Dong-Yeong thought about asking to Hak-Joon directly, but he could not do that now. He decided to watch what would be going on first.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun,¡± he said again.
It was urgent that he found out what his purpose was.
Chapter 47
Chapter 47: Chapter 47
Act 2
It was on January 30th. The post spread quickly, not only to Abyss Online but also to various SNSs. It could have happened because of one famous awakener. He confirmed that the Dump Guild was an actual organization.
-A few days ago, Rank B awakener, Mr. Lee Ju-ho, who is also known for raising his trial level, mentioned Dump Guild. Dump Guild is called the guild of killers. Does it really exist?
-There is no clearer information about that yet. But in the opinion of many experts, yes, this society may be real.
-Then, do you think Dump Guild will create terror tomorrow?
-Well. At this time, opinions vary. Even though Dump Guild exists...
Beep¡ª
The director of the Awakeners reditation Authority nervously turned off the TV. He raised his red face and asked. ¡°What have you been up to?¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡± at the director¡¯s words, Lee Ju-ho asked back while he was sitting on the couch as if he was bothered.
He sat with his legs crossed and picked his ear. It was like he decided to tease the director. And if that was the intention, it seeded. Because the director was really upset.
¡°What is that interview! What the hell is it?¡±
¡°Well, since you didn¡¯t cooperate, I had to do it.¡± Lee Ju-ho answered.
¡°But how could you sell the name of Dump Guild? What if they go crazy?!¡± the director shouted.
¡°Even if they go crazy, they will not kill as many Anyang City people. And besides, we can¡¯t cover it up forever.¡±
There was nothing wrong with his words. Dump Guild was the organization that had to be mentioned someday. Before they got bigger, it was clear that this guild had to be publicized to root it out. But...
¡°That is all possible when the information you brought was true,¡± the director said.
The premise was wrong. The director still did not believe Lee Ju-ho. He also did not believe the source of the information was Kim Su-hyeun. In the meantime, the news spread. There was no wonder that the director was in trouble.
¡°What? Why? What is wrong now? You don¡¯t have to take responsibility now.¡±
¡°Are you insane? How did you make this so big with that stupid post?¡±
¡°Even if it is false information, there is nothing to lose for you, isn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°Dump Guild... Isn¡¯t it something you made up?¡±
¡°People will die because of either Dump Guild or monsters. It¡¯s the same.¡±
¡°You¡¯ve got to be kidding¡±
When the director started to rant, Lee Ju-ho finally set down properly and opened his mouth.
¡°Well, things already happened. Will you now sell my name and announce that it won¡¯t happen? Then what if the monsters fall into the city?¡±
¡°That...¡±
The director could not say anything about Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words. What if it did happen? In the worst case, he might have to step down from the director position, because of the words and actions he took in a fit of anger. With his word, they would not react to prevent a sudden dungeon outbreak.
¡°But no matter what, other awakeners will not take action. Your words can be a piece of news, but that is not enough to make high awakeners set out.¡±
Lee Ju-ho was a pretty famous man. He was an awakener that showed up on the TV quite a few times. So, it was not wired that his word and interview became news on TV. There would be some citizens who would listen to him and evacuate in advance. But not everyone would. Above all, the majority of awakeners did not know the existence of Dump Guild. The high-ranking awakeners who knew their existence had not listened to Lee Ju-ho.
¡°If you believe your words could move the world, it¡¯s a mistake.¡±
Lee Ju-ho nodded calmly at the director¡¯s twisted words and ridicule.
¡°I know that.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°I am curious. I just did what I was told to do...¡±
Lee Ju-ho didn¡¯t know much.
He just heard from Su-hyeun that the dungeon outbreak of Anyang would happen tomorrow. Only Su-hyeun knew a n to prevent that. Lee Ju-ho just called journalists and released information as Su-hyeun asked him.
¡°What does Su-hyeun think? How will he handle the outbreak and evacuate people?¡± Lee Ju-ho thought.
¡°Let¡¯s just see¡± ¡ªLee Ju-ho, who had visited the director¡¯s office at his call, got up from his seat as if he had nothing to say¡ª ¡°What is going on tomorrow?¡±
It was on January 31st. This day, it snowed all over Gyeonggi Province. The world was paying attention to two things.
The more remarkable thing between them was Green Dungeon that appeared in Ansan City, Gyeonggi Province. Green Dungeon was one of the most difficult dungeons in existence. Numerous high-ranking awakeners participated to conquer the dungeon, including S-ranked awakener Kim Hyun-soo. The sess of the attack was almost certain. The question was how much damage could be reduced in the process.
The second one was about the terror attack in Anyang City, Gyeonggi Province. There was not much interest in this part. Because there were many stories that it would be just a rumor since people could not check whether it was true or not. Furthermore, people underestimated the risk since it would be a terror to people, not a natural disaster like a dungeon. For many reasons, the story about the terror of Dump Guild was noisy only in Abyss Online.
¡°There are not many people who are evacuated, are there?¡±
-Yeah. One in five citizens evacuated after hearing the news.
Lee Ju-ho grunted andined on a phone call with Su-hyeun. He suffered all the troubles and warned people there would be a terror, but only one in five people evacuated.
¡°Well, still more than 100,000 people have been evacuated. It is a pretty big number. Since there was no evidence or anything.¡±
-Yea. I guess you are right.
¡°I was very grateful to you. Mr. Lee Ju-ho, and I think the interview helped.¡±
¡°Haha. You¡¯re wee. Wait. Didn¡¯t you say your mother lives in Anyang, too?¡±
¡°No. She opened her shop in Suwon City. So, she moved out there.¡±
-Ok. That¡¯s good. But still, Anyang and Suwon are quite close.
¡°Yeah. So, I sent her a trip today. You don¡¯t have to worry about her.¡±
¡°What are you going to do with the rest of the people? I will be there since I don¡¯t have any other dungeons to attack...¡±
¡°Do you know what?¡± Su-hyeun grinned while talking to the phone. ¡°The terror was not a lie.¡±
-What?
¡°Now, listen carefully...¡±
Su-hyeun started to say something Lee Ju-ho. And...
¡°Are you out of your mind?¡± That was the most ridiculous thing Lee Ju-ho had ever heard.
¡°I am in my right mind.¡±
¡°The idea is good, but is that possible?¡±
¡°We have to make it possible, don¡¯t we?¡±
¡°It is easy to say but...¡± Lee Ju-ho thought that what Su-hyeun nned would never be possible. It was natural. It was difficult enough to question whether it was possible or not aside from intention or result.
¡°Anyway, see youter.¡±
Su-hyeun hung up the phone after that. Now, it was time to start.
¡°Well, I am ready...¡± he thought.
He put on a mask and got up from his seat. Suddenly, he felt a sense of shame.
¡°I can¡¯t believe I have to wear this at this age. I haven¡¯t worn it since I was young.¡±
Su-hyeun touched the character mask on his face. He sighed out and made his step.
¡°Huu¡ª¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk blew cigarette smoke.
He had no idea how many years he did nothing but kill time in a corner alley. Some of the friends already left him.
¡°Damn. There is no one to take money from...¡±
He was already 24 years old, but he had no intention of changing his nature. After he had been yed once from the man he had bullied, he hesitated to bully other people, but soon he searched for other prey.
¡°Hey man. You sure it will be ok?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°People say there will be a terror here today. Didn¡¯t you hear that?¡±
¡°Bloody hell. F*cking terror my ass.¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk snorted at the advice of a friend. He knew people were noisy about terror. But he was just an ordinary man and thought that would be nonsense.
¡°Hey. What age are we living in? This is Korea. I don¡¯t know why people are making a fuss about it. That was just bullshit of a crazy nut.¡±
¡°But the awakener, Lee Ju-ho testified that Dump Guild is a real thing.¡±
¡°So what? Other awakeners said that Dump Guild will not move by now?¡±
¡°But still...¡±
¡°Sh*t you, coward.¡±
¡°Why are you so hard on me? I am just worried about you, man.¡±
¡°Worried about me? My ass. You are doing this because you are scared.¡±
¡°What? You wanna die?¡±
It was about time to Gwon Jang-hyuk started to fight with his friend.
¡°I was wondering what kinds of men are chattering in this dark alley. Was it you guys?¡±
The four people, including Gwon Jang-hyuk, turned their faces to the voice at the end of the alley. They wondered who he was¨Che had a strange mask of a smiling face.
¡°A mask?¡± Gwon Jang-hyuk thought.
It was not a masquerade; he had no idea what that mask for was. He could not think anyone who wore those things would be sane. He was already in a bad mood. Gwon Jang-hyuk thought it would be safer and more fun to beat up one person with his friends rather than fighting with a friend.
¡°What the hell are you? Hey, you. Come over here.¡±
¡°What will you do if you know who I am?¡± the masked man asked.
¡°You will be beaten to death, of course.¡±
¡°Hahaha.¡±
With Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s talking, the other three started tough. Heughed as well and nced at the man in the mask. But something was off. Usually, people seemed a little frightened by now.
¡°Well. Do you think you can handle if you know?¡±
The man in the mask didn¡¯t look scared at all. The eyes exposed through eye halls of the mask looked cold. And when Gwon Jang-hyuk met the masked man¡¯s eyes, he got goosebumps all over his body.
¡°What...What the?¡± he thought.
The others also thought something was strange about this man. At that moment, the masked man raised his hand.
Whoosh¡ª
Swoosh, whoosh¡ª
A huge fire rose in his hands and spread. Gwon Jang-hyuk and the three other gangsters were bbergasted and started to step back.
¡°W-what the hell is that?¡±
¡°Is he an awakener?¡±
¡°Why would an awakener be here...?¡±
Their anxiety started to elevate. The ominous thinking crossed Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s head.
¡°Wait, is this guy...? No way.¡±
¡°Did you ask what the hell I am?¡±
Swish¡ª
The masked man sted fire over his head and burst it like firecrackers.
Boom, boooom¡ª!
Bang, bang, bang¡ª!
The mes burst from the sky began to fall. Su-hyeun opened his mouth, looking at Gwon Jang-hyuk. His eyes shined red reflecting the fire.
¡°I am a terrorist.¡±
It was the beginning of the show.
Chapter 48
Chapter 48: Chapter 48
Gwon Jang-hyuk and other gangsters started to run away. They even didn¡¯t look back. Theirmanding presences were nowhere to be seen. Like old times, they were still weak to strong, strong to weak.
¡°Those bastards still did not break their bad habit,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He almost forgot of them but felt pathetic because they still lived the same. He would like to break a leg or arm to teach them some lessons. But if he did, they would probably be caught up and die in the uing incident.
¡°I guess I will take care of themter when I have time.¡±
The firecracker, actually the me that Su-hyeun set off, was enough to attract people¡¯s attention. Some might have thought it was a fireworks disy, but as they had already been warned of terrorism, that would be their first thought.
Whoosh, whoosh¡ª
¡°Ok. Let¡¯s go,¡± Su-hyeun said to himself.
Su-hyeun stamped his feet and flew high. He headed to Beomgye, the downtown area, where most people gathered at this time. Of course, he did not forget to shoot firecrackers on his way.
Boom, boom, boom¡ª!
The sound like thunder rang out loudly. A lot of people were confused, and they began to run.
A terror. By that word alone, people left their homes and started to flee. But they could not see where the explosion happened. All the explosions were happening in the sky, not on the ground.
¡°...Did you say there is a terror?¡±
The director, who had heard the news, jumped up. Kim Do-ui, an A-rank awakener, who belonged to the country, nodded his head and delivered the news.
¡°Yes, sir. An explosion urred in Pyeongchon, the most popted area of Anyang City. As we heard, there are signs of terrorism, and people are evacuating.¡±
¡°Holy sh*t... What the hell is going on?¡± the director mumbled.
Today was January 31st. Terrorism was not nned. Even if Lee Ju-ho¡¯s information was true, there should be no terror by the Dump Guild.
¡°But the terror began? How this can be happening?¡± the director thought.
¡°I don¡¯t know exactly... But it looks like the act of one person,¡± Kim Do-ui said.
¡°One person?¡±
The director, who looked puzzled, soon crumpled his face. He soon muttered in a confident voice, ¡°Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Sir?¡±
¡°He is Kim Su-hyeun. It is that guy!¡± the director shouted.
It was a y pretending to be a terror. Kim Su-hyeun was now pretending to be a terrorist to evacuate people.
¡°Do you think Kim Su-hyeun showed up?¡± Kim Do-ui asked.
Kim Su-hyeun was a person who had never revealed himself before. His name was famous but other information, including his face, was not revealed. He had been hiding in the shade thoroughly, but for some reason, he appeared to save people for the first time. And he appeared as a terrorist.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun is not important right now! The important thing is he is in a riot right now!¡± the director said angrily.
¡°But there is no loss of lives...¡±
¡°I don¡¯t care!¡± he cut Kim Do-ui¡¯s word.
Bang¡ª
The director mmed his desk and Kim Do-ui closed his mouth. He knew well if he said something right at the moment, he would just lose favor in the director¡¯s eyes.
¡°A Dungeon Outbreak? The devastation of Anyang City? That¡¯s nonsense. Before it turns out to be true, he is just a freaking terrorist. Do you understand?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. I know,¡± Kim Do-ui answered.
¡°Then what are you doing? Go get him! No, you don¡¯t have to get him. Just kill him!¡± the director shouted again.
That was too much. That was too much treatment.
¡°He lost his block,¡± Kim Do-ui closed his eyes and thought, ¡°Should I have to do that far? If the terrorist who appeared in Anyang City is Kim Su-hyeun and his information is all true... he should be called a hero. Even if it was not true, it would be the same. What he is doing right now is hard to see as a terrorist attack. There was no damage to life or any property. It¡¯s just an evacuation of people in case of a natural disaster. Can that be considered terrorism? It might look like a terror to the people who have no idea...¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡± Kim Do-ui said to the director. At least in his eyes, it seemed not to be terror.
Click¡ª
Kim Do-ui bowed to the director and left the room. The director picked up the phone and called somewhere.
¡°Yes. It¡¯s me. Do we have any men left?¡±
Boom, boooom¡ª!
Whoosh¡ª
The fire burned the building. People screamed and ran away. Su-hyeun, who stood in the middle of the city and watched it, scratched his head.
¡°I can¡¯t feel familiar with this...¡± he mumbled.
He felt weird acting like a viin in a ridiculous mask and afflicting citizens. It felt like he was a member of the Dump Guild.
¡°I guess the Dump Guild will get angry about this.¡±
The Dump Guild was a group of murderers. It was a secret society, hiding underground. It had connections with some of the big guilds, but it still didn¡¯t want to be mentioned. But Su-hyeun took its name and drew it to the surface. He even pretended to be a member of the Dump Guild and caused terrorism.
Whoosh¡ª
The fire in the building disappeared. The fire from the me skill did not even cken the building. As the level and his proficiency increased, Su-hyeun could selectively burn the stuff he wanted. He did not have to waste his magic burning all those buildings. Of course, those who did not know, ran away to avoid the fire that Su-hyeun created.
¡°I suppose there is no one around here anymore,¡± he thought.
Starting from Beomgye, Pyeongchon area was almost empty. News that the terror began had spread to other parts of Anyang, and people started to evacuate from there as well. Although there was only one terrorist, Su-hyeun was a high-ranked awakener. And since he had warned there would be a terror by a group named Dump Guild, his actions looked like the acts of an organization, not one person.
¡°It¡¯s now 8:00 p.m.¡±
It had already been two hours since he started taking action. There was not much time left.
¡°I wish I could move a little more, but...¡±
He stopped where he was standing and turned his face.
¡°... I guess it would be hard.¡±
Whoosh, whoosh¡ª
Crackle, crackle¡ª
A lot of people appeared around Su-hyeun. Except for those who hade close, the number of people who were watching from afar wasrge. All of them were awakeners, not ordinary people.
¡°Huh. There was quite a lot came.¡±
Numerous awakeners were mobilized to attack the green dungeons and other dungeons all over the country. So, he had thought there would not be a lot of awakeners left. But still, in this short time, quite many of them gathered.
¡°Are you Mr. Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Kim Do-ui was the one who stepped forward and asked. He was the closest aide to the director and was an A-rank awakener who was not mobilized in the green dungeon. He was the most talented awakener among the people who gathered now. Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze turned to him. It looked like he knew enough since he mentioned Su-hyeun¡¯s name.
¡°Yes, I am,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
There was no reason to lie now. He had been expecting his identity to be revealed from the time he started writing on Abyss Online.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Wait, wasn¡¯t he a terrorist?¡±
¡°I heard this man is an awakener from the Dump Guild.¡±
¡°Aren¡¯t they just the same?¡±
Except for Kim Do-ui, other awakens were frustrated and talked in whispers.
They had no idea this incident and Su-hyeun were connected. In a sh, the eyes of those who saw Su-hyeun changed. They started to take precautions. The meaning of that was...
¡°Was Kim Su-hyeun a member of the Dump Guild?¡±
¡°If that is the case, it would exin why he has not been revealed to anyone.¡±
¡°Oh, shit. That makes sense.¡±
It was a pretty logical conclusion. Su-hyeun was not revealed on the surface so far and neither was the Dump Guild. Moreover, at this point, when it was known that there would be a terrorist attack by the Dump Guild, Su-hyeun appeared. He was even making the fire. It was obvious to everyone. There was no room for an excuse.
¡°Wait. Everyone be quiet!¡± Kim Do-ui shouted.
Kim Do-ui, however, had information the others didn¡¯t and had a different opinion than the other awakeners. As the leader of the national awakeners¡¯ group, he quieted others and looked around.
¡°As I thought, there is no damage,¡± he thought.
Terrorism usually took on violent forms, such as murder, kidnapping, and looting. Naturally, damages such as vandalism and injury followed. But the path that Su-hyeun took did not have any damage. There was only a quiet street where people had left. There were no signs of broken buildings, not even a single dead person.
¡°Your purpose... Are you doing this to evacuate people?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes sparkled at Kim Do-ui¡¯s question. Kim Do-ui heard of him from Lee Ju-ho several times. He was the only person who knew the rtionship between Lee Ju-ho and Su-hyeun, except for the director.
¡°Maybe this can be solved easily,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
In that case, the situation would be solved much easier. Su-hyeun nodded and answered.
¡°Yes, that is right. I hope more awakenerse here,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°More awakeners?¡± Kim Do-ui mumbled.
He remembered the story he heard from Lee Ju-ho. Su-hyeun was the one who told to Lee Ju-ho that there would be a sudden dungeon outbreak tonight. Perhaps Su-hyeun¡¯s quest was to prevent it.
¡°Didn¡¯t you guyse here to stop me?¡± But strangely, Su-hyeun saidpletely different. Looking around dozens of awakeners, Su-hyeun continued to say, ¡°You guys will need more people for that.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°You little upstart...¡±
¡°You think you are something because peoplepliment you?¡±
A loud voice came from all over the ce. This was what Su-hyeun wanted. This was better in this case. It was an intended provocation. The problem was cooperation from one person.
¡°And to make him cooperate...¡± he thought.
Whoosh¡ª!
With Su-hyeun¡¯s gesture, a huge me started to sweep all over the ce. Dozens of awakeners were quickly caught up in it. But the me stopped in front of them without burning them.
¡°At least, I am the best here,¡± Su-hyeun said in an arrogant voice.
Thanks to the mask, the expression was not revealed. But the voice alone was enough to infer the expression.
¡°I need to bring as many as awakeners as possible,¡± Su-hyeun thought. He looked at Kim Do-ui. ¡°How will he react?¡±
Kim Do-ui, who met Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes, could grasp his intentions. ¡°Does he mean we need more support, either prevent him or the possible monster attack?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s ability was more than Kim Do-ui had expected. As he said, these people might not be enough. Of course, the situation might change if A-Rank himself joined here.
¡°It won¡¯t hurt to listen to him now,¡± Kim Do-ui thought so and opened his mouth, ¡°...Call more support.¡±
¡°Ok, cool!¡± Su-hyeun uttered yells of delight in his mind.
Chapter 49
Chapter 49: Chapter 49
¡°He has quick wits,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
This man noticed they were understaffed to stop Su-hyeun. He found out he had enough power. If Su-hyeun kindly exined his purpose and expressed his opinion that he did not want to fight, there might be no more support. After all, that would be revealing the truth that Su-hyeun was not a real terrorist. But if Su-hyeun kept calling himself a terrorist, the story would change. To prevent him, the Authority must use its force. The reaction to the terrorist would be obvious.
¡°And what I have to do now...¡±
Whoosh¡ª
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun gathered the me he had spread everywhere and pulled the sword. He didn¡¯t need to act anymore. There was only one thing he had to do from here.
¡°I have to withstand an attack.¡±
It was the same with Kim Do-ui. It was not sure whether Kim Do-ui moved ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s will because of his favor or something else. But since this already happened, there was only one thing that Kim Do-ui had to do.
¡°Get him!¡±
Poof, poof¡ª
At themand of Kim Do-ui, dozens of awakeners began to move.
Swish, swish¡ª
Whip¡ª
Su-hyeun avoided the spears and other unknown skills that had flown from all sides. Sometimes he could not avoid, so he warded off or stopped them.
Whoosh¡ª
The me surrounded Su-hyeun¡¯s body. It worked as a shield and blocked other awakeners that wereing.
The concentration and grade of the magic of Su-hyeun was not a region that other awakenings could invade.
¡°Possibly Magic Level 6... Rank A awakener.¡±
Kim Do-ui, who watched other awakeners fight against Su-hyeun, coldly analyzed Su-hyeun¡¯s ability.
¡°The skills he has are the rarest skills of the highest level. He also has basic physical stats to utilize them. He also has quite goodbat sense,¡± he thought.
Skills, magic, stats,bat sense, everything could be called the best. Most of all, hisbat sense was remarkable. In the eyes of Kim Do-ui, the awakener of the same A-rank, Su-hyeun¡¯s sense of battle seemed like an exceptional ability.
¡°It is almost unbelievable. Did he get any professional training somewhere?¡±
Su-hyeun did not attack other awakeners. He either avoided or blocked. It was purely possible because of Su-hyeun¡¯s ability. He was different from other awakeners who could only beat and crush.
¡°If I fight with him... I willpletely be defeated.¡±
He almost felt chilled. They had the same level of magic, but the basic skills were very different. Compared to Su-hyeun, he just got stronger naturally while he was climbing and climbing the Tower of Trial.
¡°Kim Do-ui! What are you doing? Why don¡¯t you help us?¡±
One awakener got angry while he was fighting with Su-hyeun looked at Kim Do-ui and asked. Kim Do-ui, who had no intention of fighting, answered with a small frown.
¡°I am thinking right now.¡±
¡°What? What do you think about?¡±
¡°Whether he is the enemy or not.¡±
¡°What the hell are you talking about...?¡±
¡°You are a fool. You don¡¯t get it?¡±
At the blunt remark of Kim Do-ui, the man, who was asking him to fight, frowned his face. Kim Do-ui clicked his tongue and continued to say.
¡°Is anyone hurt now?¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Or do you think you are fighting even against him right now because you guys have good skills?¡±
The man could not answer at Kim Do-ui¡¯s question. What he said was all correct. He well knew about Su-hyeun¡¯s ability. The big me he showed at the beginning, that was enough to show them that they could not do anything with Su-hyeun. If Su-hyeun had decided, no one would have been alive by now.
¡°So, what the hell you want to say now?¡± the man asked.
¡°He is overlooking you guys. So, don¡¯t go overboard,¡± Kim Do-ui answered.
It was a word that scratching his pride. But it was not wrong. The more they fight, the more they feel that Su-hyeun was just overlooking them.
¡°Are you saying that man is not a terrorist?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you think that is possible?¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
The man looked closely at Su-hyeun again. No matter how many times he thought about it, it was clear that he was letting them off. The damaged objects around them were also due to their attack, not Su-hyeun¡¯s.
¡°Then why did you call for backup? If your word is true, it would be better to cancel the backup now. Wasn¡¯t that a waste of manpower?¡± The man asked as if it was strange.
If Su-hyeun was not a terrorist as Kim Do-ui said, the support he had called here would be meaningless. There would be no way that he did not know about this.
¡°Tut...¡±
At the man¡¯s question, Kim Do-ui raised his head and looked up the sky.
¡°I did not call the backup to stop him.¡±
¡°What?¡±
The man looked puzzled as if he did not know what he was talking about. But it was still too early to answer the question. Kim do-ui shook his head and saved his words.
¡°No. Nothing. We will figure out soon orter.¡±
Kim do-ui said so and turned his head. He sensed the presence of people around him. Kim Do-ui felt about 10 people¡¯s senses and knitted his brows.
¡°...They came.¡±
Additional personnel came for the backup request. Kim Do-ui, who had guessed their identity, muttered to himself, ¡°Was it their first activate?¡±
Not many people knew of their existence. There was a new institution made up of some of the nation¡¯s awakeners. As far as he knew, this was their first mission.
¡°I guess the director is really pissed off.¡±
Act 3
Swish¡ª
A sharp knife pierced the me and passed the tip of Su-hyeun¡¯s nose. He stepped back and increased a delicate distance. He looked around the newly appeared awakeners. He already knew about them.
¡°They came,¡± he thought.
He was wondering when they woulde. He assumed they would start their business by today. It was faster than he expected. Su-hyeun used Leap skill and increased distance quickly.
He looked around. Unlike other awakeners that previously attacked Su-hyeun, the ten people who appeared at this time were different from the atmosphere. Their eyes were sharp-sighted, most of all, their postures were set. It meant, they did not thoughtlessly climb the Tower of Trial, trusting their skill and stats. They had received professional training.
¡°It reminds me of old times...¡±
Su-hyeun was once a member of this group.
¡°I should be careful,¡± he thought.
He drew the sword.
Whoosh¡ª
As the Su-hyeun pulled the sword, the me around him disappeared. Instead, the sword that shined in gray, became red-hot.
¡°A sword...?¡±
¡°He was not a magician?¡±
The awakeners that were there previously started to whisper themselves. It was a sudden change. Seeing Su-hyeun, who had fought with me skill so far, they thought that he was a sort of magician awakener who focused on the fire skills. But suddenly he took his sword.
¡°Is he a swordsman? Then, what about the fire he showed so far...?¡±
Kim do-ui was confused as well. The only people were not confused were the ten awakeners that newly appeared. They did not see how Su-hyeun fought so far.
¡°Heew¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun took a breath and closed his eyes. It was that short moment.
Swish¡ª
ng, ng¡ª
Several strands of chain popped out where Su-hyeun was standing. At the same time, the new awakeners began to move.
Whip¡ª
Boom, boom¡ª
Dozens of swords and chains flew in aplicated path. Each one was quite a high level of skill, and skill proficiency was also high.
¡°Weaving a spider web.¡±
Su-hyeun already knew this technique, which was developed by several awakeners. As so, it was not difficult to destroy.
Swish¡ª
sh¡ª
The sword in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand, Gram, cut a part of the chain that was tangled like a spider web. At the same time, the chain that had been tightly intertwined anding over Su-hyeun loosened. He squeezed through the gap and escaped.
But as soon as he escaped, the big sword came in front of his eyes. Su-hyeun as if he was expected this, stretched Gram to up.
ang¡ª!
Crack, craack¡ª
When the big sword and Gram stroke each other, the big sword was pushed by the force and rose. It could not bear the strength and sharpness of Gram and started to crack. The arms of the awakener who wielded the sword widely opened up.
¡°He is still the same. He is just pouncing, trusting his power too much.¡±
Su-hyeun prated to front smoothly. The man with open arms shrugged with amazement, but it was already toote.
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut the man¡¯s chest. But strangely, there was no blood.
¡°...?¡±
The man looked puzzled. Su-hyeun did not answer the puzzled look. Instead, he rose with the Leap skill. No one followed. The awakeners seemed to hesitate for a moment, realizing that their pincer movement was not working.
Whiz¡ª
Su-hyeun, whonded on the roof of one low building, looked around them. One by one, their faces were familiar.
¡°I was...¡±
To one side among them, he could see the familiar face blurry.
¡°I was there too...¡±
He was Sung-in. It was Sung-in¡¯s face. Of course, it was a past that had gone.
¡°You...¡± The man who wielded the sword opened his mouth, looking at Su-hyeun, ¡°Did you know about us?¡±
Su-hyeun felt bitter at the man¡¯s question. It was obvious why he was asking this question. The pincer movement they used just before was an attack that they had been studied for a long time.
¡°That is a pincer movement to catch a strong individual or boss,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
It was a well-organized attack, consisting of awakeners who practiced simr types of chain skills and one with strong attack power. However, Su-hyeun skillfully disregarded such a pincer movement as if he knew it in advance. Not only cutting the core of the chain but also, easily defeating the big sword. The series of actions was natural. It would be impossible if he didn¡¯t know ahead of time. It was only natural that a man would have such a question. Of course, what he worried about was the possibility of leaking the information.
¡°No, I did not,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
It did not matter that he knew them. In the first ce, Su-hyeun was in the same institution with them. Su-hyeun was the one who knew it better than anyone.
The man stroked a half-cracked sword with one hand and said, ¡°Really? That¡¯s weird. It seemed like you know us well.¡±
¡°Do you mean the pincer movement that you guys showed?¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
¡°Did you just assume I know you well because I destroyed that simple attack?¡±
The ten awakeners frowned at Su-hyeun¡¯s words. They put serious effort to coborate for a long time. But he disparaged their skill as a simple attack.
¡°You... What you said... Are you sure you won¡¯t regret it?¡±
¡°Of course. I won¡¯t,¡± Su-hyeun opened his mouth.
It was obvious. Su-hyeun already knew who they were, what skills they used, and the weaknesses of the skills.
Above all...
He continued to say, ¡°I will be not an easy opponent to try your unfinished skills yet.¡±
Chapter 50
Chapter 50: Chapter 50
The man opened his eyes wide as if Su-hyeun¡¯s remarks caught him off guard. It seemed like Su-hyeun knew their situation well. They were supposed to be veiled, but he looked like he knew that they started to move for this situation.
¡°Maybe...¡±
The man with the big sword narrowed his eyes and stared at Su-hyeun.
¡°He does not want to fight us,¡± he thought.
It was a sense of ipatibility that he felt ever since he came to this ce. Unlike other awakeners, Su-hyeun did not show any fighting spirit or a murderous spirit. It was hard to see those eyes belonged to a fighter, but he could read determination in them. He could not read everything from one¡¯s eyes but at least the mood usually did not lie.
¡°Above all....¡±
The man swept his chest. He could feel his skin through the cut armor. If the wound was a little deeper, he might get a fatal injury. No, Su-hyeun could have even split his body.
¡°He just went easy on me. But why?¡±
The man of the sword, Kang Seung-Cheol recalled the director¡¯s words.
¡°The man named Kim Su-hyeun joined the Dump Guild. Go kill him!¡±
That was what the hot-headed director told to him. It was the first order he got, but Kang Seung-Cheol was curious first of all.
¡°What kind of person is Kim Su-hyeun? Is he a genius as the rumors said? Or is he just one of the lucky men among many awakeners?¡±
He somewhat could tell the answer after he saw him in person.
¡°First, the rumor said he was a genius... Then, what is he hiding behind him?¡±
He was curious and had to satisfy his curiosity. There was only one thing he could do.
¡°I have to push him a little harder,¡± he thought.
Kang Seung-Cheol raised the sword again. He knew the first attack was his bad habit. When he did not know the enemy¡¯s power, he used to rush for the first time. He trusted his power too much.
¡°Let¡¯s take a deep breath...¡±
Sigh¡ª
He closed his eyes and took a deep breath. It helped him to refresh.
Whirl, whirl¡ª
He put his magic into his sword. Since he realized the enemy was not an easy one, it was his turn to work with full force.
¡°Slowly, here I go again.¡±
Whizz¡ª
As soon as Kang Seung-Cheol began to move, once more, dozens of chains stretched out toward Su-hyeun.
¡°They started again,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Whizz¡ª
Along with their motion, Su-hyeun started to move to the end of the chains. The chain stretched and narrowed, pressing Su-hyeun. When he wielded his sword to encumbering chains, they were cut with a smooth cross-section. He aimed the cores of the chains and cut them off. It almost looked like an unsurpassed ability. It was possible not just because Su-hyeun knew the weak spot of the chain but also because he had a sense that he could carry his cutting out very well.
¡°It¡¯s amazing no matter how many times I see.¡±
Kang Seung-Cheol, watching Su-hyeun, wielded his tongue. He and his team got professional training and also experienced actual training going through the Tower of Trial. But he never thought that such a precise movement would be possible.
¡°Is he a real genius? Or did he get professional training like them?¡±
Or many be...
¡°Both?¡±
He stroked his big sword to Su-hyeun thinking about any chance. The short break that Su-hyeun cut the chain, he aimed, and without a moment to hold his position, he wielded the sword.
Boom¡ª!
His power was as if the huge mountain falling. The big sword was filled with highly concentrated magic of Magic Level 6. It helped to bring his Strength to the climax. Strength was Kang Seung-Cheol¡¯s specialty.
Boom, boom¡ª!
Rumble¡ª
A heavy strength and the big sword pressed Su-hyeun down. It was a strong strike. Kang Seung-Cheol did it with the intention of cut in half of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword and body. But...
Crush, crush¡ª
The big sword was blocked by Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. It did not go down anymore.
¡°What the hell...¡±
He had wielded so he wouldn¡¯t give him a chance to hold his position. As his intention, Su-hyeun was holding the sword with no proper position. But he still was not pushed away...
¡°He has more Strength than me...?¡±
He could not believe it. He focused most stats on Strength. And this guy had higher Strength than him. Moreover, the tip of the sword started to crack again. In this way, the sword might shatter and break soon. The difference between the sword was also obvious. Stats, skills,bat sense, as well as even owned items, were superior.
¡°Isn¡¯t it a little scam?¡± Kang Seung-Cheol asked as if it was ridiculous.
Su-hyeun sneered as if he noticed the meaning of the word ¡°scam.¡± It meant his sword, Gram.
¡°Why? Are you jealous?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Honestly, yes.¡±
¡°If you win, I will give it to you.¡±
¡°...No, thanks. It doesn¡¯t seem like it¡¯s going to happen,¡± Kang Seung-Cheol said.
¡°Win him? To this monster in front of me? Absurd!¡± he thought.
It was a short battle, but he knew something for sure.
Kang Seung-Cheol was the only A-ranked awakener in his team. The other nine awakeners were all B-ranked. It was enough military strength to attack a yellow dungeon. They cooperated and pushed Su-hyeun as if they were one body. But Su-hyeun was not killing anybody. He even didn¡¯t fight back properly. Su-hyeun could enter the highest rank among the A-rank awakeners.
¡°If we want to catch him... We would have to bring at least twice as many people as we have now. No, that might be not enough either.¡±
Crack¡ª
Kang Seung-Cheol stepped back from Su-hyeun and looked around. He had heard there would be additional personnel, and it looked like the director worked quickly. Other people already arrived.
¡°...That is a lot.¡±
They were awakeners of the civilian guilds who were not put into the dungeon attack. The manpower requested by the director was them. The awakeners from several upper guilds ranged from C-rank to B-rank to A-rank awakeners. The number of awakeners gathered there was close to a hundred units. There were many people, it was enough to attack even a green dungeon. Su-hyeun also knew their existence. He did not feel much embarrassed because he thought that there would be such arge number of people in the first ce. However, he could see a familiar mark among them.
¡°...Ares Guild?¡± he thought.
He knew some guilds already. But Ares Guild was not supposed to be here. Su-hyeun looked around slowly. His gaze moved to the one side. At that moment, his eyes met with Hak-Joon.
¡°Why is he here?¡±
Their joining was certainly not on a schedule.
It was not particrly awkward, but he could not just ept the fact that the future had changed.
¡°It is 9:30.¡±
Su-hyeun checked the time with a watch on his wrist. The time had passed pretty much. The stamina went away about that much, but fortunately, his magic was still enough. Additional reinforcements were not necessarily bad news. Even if it would be difficult right now, it would make things easierter.
¡°So, what are you going to do now?¡± Kang Seung-Cheol faced Su-hyeun andughed at him. ¡°Now, will you fight?¡±
¡°I think you have been mistaken for a while...¡± Su-hyeun frowned, but his maks hid it, and he looked at Kang Seung-Cheol. ¡°If I do, you are going to die.¡±
Shiver¡ª
Kang Seung-Cheol raised his sword reflexively, as soon as he met Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes through the mask. He felt like his neck would be beheaded.
¡°What, what the hell...¡±
The concentration of magic he felt at the instance was not something of A-Rank. So far, he had thought Su-hyeun was just out of themon among A-Rank awakeners that he just had excellence in the skillposition and proficiency...
¡°No way... Is he possibly... S-Rank?¡±
He thought that would be nonsense. He was only sophomore awakener. Being A-Rank would be far beyondmon sense. He thought there would be no way Su-hyeun was S-Rank. Few people in the world ranked as S. In Korea, right at the moment, there were only five S-Rank. One of them was a mercenary and three were guild masters. One awakener belonged to the country, and he was like a leader in his team. As an individual, S-Rank was known as they had equal power of arge guild. That was the power of the S-rank awakeners. Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze turned to the newly showed up awakeners of Ares Guild. And his eyes met Hak-Joon¡¯s eyes.
¡°Now, 30 minutes left...¡± Su-hyeun thought.
When he looked up, there was full of clouds in the sky. The clouds gradually turned purple. It was close to the phenomenon, but at this moment no one cared about it. There were close to 130 people gathered.
¡°Now, I will have some fun,¡± Su-hyeun grinned as he was thinking.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Swish, boom, boom¡ª
Numerous sword and spear flew to Su-hyeun. He struck them with his sword or grabbed them. He tried to save his me skill. He decided to save his magic rather than his health.
One-too-many fights always gave him a simr feeling. He felt like he fought with a monster of 100 heads and 200 arms. Moreover, he could not even fight back with a fatal attack. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes cooled down quickly. Other awakeners who were dealing with Su-hyeun felt the same way. It had been thirty minutes since they fought one vs. many. Because of the battle, the buildings around them were smashed and shattered.
¡°Don¡¯t you think this is strange?¡± Hak-Joon got closer to Kim do-ui and asked.
¡°What do you mean?¡± Kim do-ui asked back.
¡°I mean this fight. No one actually tries to kill the other side.¡±
¡°That is because that man does not have a murderous spirit.¡±
¡°You mean, they lost their will to fight each other?¡±
¡°You are doing the same, aren¡¯t you? Why do you ask me? I think we never met before,¡± Kim do-ui said.
¡°Because you¡¯re just sitting back and watching from afar. You must have been ordered to catch Kim Su-hyeun from the agency, right?¡± Hak-Joon asked.
¡°Well, yes. If my thinking was wrong, I will just receive disciplinary measures. That¡¯s all.¡±
¡°Thinking?¡±
¡°I was not sure but...¡±
Rumble¡ª
Kim do-ui raised his head and looked up. There were dark clouds over the sky. The cloud continued to change its color, but now it had changed its color to green.
¡°I guess... It will really happen.¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°Look carefully¡ª¡± Kim do-ui opened his mouth.
Even if he did not say that, people started to notice a strange thing. Hak-Joon, who was standing next to Kim do-ui, looked up the sky as well.
¡°¡ªthe thing will happen here from now on.¡±
Chapter 51
Chapter 51: Chapter 51
Roar, roar¡ª
The flurries of snow got stronger. The awakeners, aware of the magic that began to mix between the snowkes, stopped their movement and looked around.
It started.
¡°Heew¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun, who was moving in a hurry, barely took his breath.
He moved his hand to his sweaty mask. Then, he pushed the button and took off the mask that covered his face.
Click¡ª
People mademotions at his sudden action. The ridiculous mask was removed. The face of Su-hyeun was revealed. All eyes were on him. They were curious about not just his face but also the reason why he was taking the mask off now.
¡°From now on...¡± Su-hyeun said.
Hak-Joon who saw Su-hyeun¡¯s face strained his eyes.
¡°Su-hyeun?¡± Hak-Joon thought in surprise.
When everyone¡¯s gaze was gathered to him, Su-hyeun opened his mouth with magic in his voice. ¡°Everyone gathered here must fight together.¡±
¡°What is he talking about?¡±
¡°We are doing that right now.¡±
¡°Does he mean the thing over there?¡±
Themotion did not disappear easily. But obviously, their hostility to Su-hyeun disappeared almost entirely. At the moment, they thought they had to concentrate on the huge mess of the magic that was growing above their heads, rather than the hostility or fighting against Su-hyeun.
¡°Soon, there will a be dungeon outbreak here.¡±
¡°Dungeon outbreak?¡±
¡°I have not heard that a dungeon has urred here?¡±
¡°No way, really?¡±
¡°Seriously...?¡±
¡°Where the hell is that dungeon...?¡±
There was a mix of questions and embarrassment inmotion.
¡°The outbreak speed of the dungeon will continue to change. Among them...,¡± Su-hyeun looked at the green clouds rising above his head and continued to say, ¡°Like the dungeon that appeared above, there will be a dungeon that bursts in a few hours.¡±
The rate of dungeon urrence and the rate of outbreak changed every minute, especially the ce of dungeon urrence was not something to able to predict yet. It was the same with deformed dungeons. Su-hyeun was pointing that out. The world was too peaceful to think and aware of the dangers. He looked around and raised his magic once again.
Whoosh¡ª
¡°Ok. My acting is over.¡±
A huge me encircled him. When the me shined in blue shrouded in all directions, other awakeners was overwhelmed and stepped back.
¡°I need your help. Please help me.¡±
Su-hyeun bowed his head to everyone. He looked like he had no intention of fighting. People felt relieved that the huge and overwhelming power was not something for them. They also felt something hot fermented inside them.
Glug¡ª
The one person who watched held his breath. The man, Kang Seung-Cheol, who just fought with Su-hyeun using the big sword, felt dejected and dropped his sword by his side.
¡°It was real,¡± he thought.
He tried to deny the possibility during the whole time he was fighting. Su-hyeun magic, stamina, and a sense of battle did not dry out throughout the battle with hundreds of people.
¡°The reason why that was possible. It was because he is S-rank.¡±
He could feel vividly with his skin, the concentration and factor of magic around Su-hyeun at the moment. It was certainly above his A-rank magic. It must be the magic of S-rank. Everyone was confused.
But even before the chaos went away, change began.
Kyaaaa¡ª!
A huge cry came out of the sky.
Kyaak, kyaaak¡ª!
Woof, wooof¡ª!
It was not one or two. How many howls? Dozens, hundreds? No, it seemed like more than that. There was only one such phenomenon. And not many of the awakeners present here had seen the phenomenon with their own eyes. Kim Do-ui, who had been working as an awakener for a long time, was convinced.
¡°It is a dungeon outbreak.¡±
The dungeon hadn¡¯t even appeared yet, but there was a dungeon outbreak. A cloud of green light over the sky¨Cthat was the dungeon.
¡°Not from at this time¡ª¡±
Kim Do-ui, who watched the fight between Su-hyeun and other awakeners all the time, walked forward and opened his mouth.
¡°¡ªEveryone covers Kim Su-hyeun!¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°What do you mean...?¡±
Among the awakeners of the country, Kim Do-ui had the highestmand. Some people seemed embarrassed at hismand, but some of them nodded quickly. It was the same with awakeners who belonged to guilds. In the first ce, they started to not think Su-hyeun as the enemy and suddenly there were cries of monsters. Moreover, Su-hyeun had taken off his mask and asked for help. They were not foolish. They could realize the meaning of what Su-hyeun did so far.
¡°Damn it. He could just talk.¡±
¡°Who would have believed in words?¡±
¡°What is the worlde to?¡±
Although theyined, one-by-one the awakeners had a confrontational attitude and prepared to fight. No one recognized Su-hyeun as an enemy anymore. Su-hyeun nced at his watch and checked the time.
¡°It is at 10:00 p.m. Now it starts,¡± he thought.
Kyaooo¡ª!
Shadows cast over the clouds. The thing made the sound gradually got closer and began to show up. There were hundreds of monsters. There were one-eyed pterosaurs, sharks with wings, giant elephants, and giant earthworms. It was a familiar image.
Su-hyeun injected his magic to Gram to sharpen the de more. So far, he swung his sword in the sense of blocking and hitting rather than cutting. But...
¡°Now, I will cut.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
The magic began to move ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s will. As if it had a will, Gram started to resonate with Su-hyeun¡¯s magic.
Kick, kick, kick¡ª
Su-hyeun jumped high with the Leap skill and cut the sky as hard as possible.
Rip¡ª!
Act 4
¡°S-sir!¡±
m¡ª
The worker of the agency suddenly opened the door and came in. The director looked at the face of him and asked as if he was irritated.
¡°What?¡±
The director, who valued case and courtesy, did not like the sudden visit. But the face of the man who came to the director¡¯s office was urgent enough to not care about the director¡¯s look.
¡°D-did you hear the news?¡±
¡°What news?¡±
Ring, ring, ring¡ª
At that moment, the director¡¯s phone rang loudly. The call sounded ominous. The director felt a chill. He thought maybe the man¡¯s visiting would have the same purpose as this phone call.
¡°What is going on?
¡°Sir. The outbreak happened.¡±
¡°Outbreak? Did they fail to conquer the green dungeon?¡± the director asked.
He thought that would not be possible, but he asked just in case. Even an S-rank awakener joined in the mission. There would be no way to fail. Moreover, there were many A-rank awakens, as well.
¡°N-no, sir.¡±
¡°What? No? Are you acting rashly with an outbreak of another small dungeon?¡±
¡°It happened in Anyang,¡± the man who ran in a hurry gasped and answered.
The director¡¯s eyes got wide while he was watching the man who tried to catch the breath and prepared the next words.
¡°An...yang...?¡±
¡°No way.¡± The ominous thought crossed the director¡¯s mind. Ant that feeling was not wrong as always.
¡°Yes, sir. It is a green dungeon. Now the awakeners who went there to stop the terrorist are fighting,¡± the man answered.
¡°There was no dungeon there. An outbreak? What bullshit are you talking about?¡±
Bang¡ª
The director mmed the desk. The man calmly continued to say as if he had expected the director¡¯s response.
¡°Well... We could not figure out the cause either. We just consider it a strange phenomenon just like when the first dungeon had appeared.¡±
¡°Then what about Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°He is fighting against monsters with other people.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°The report from the agent just arrived now. He was not a terrorist,¡± the man continued speaking in a confident voice, ¡°Kim Su-hyeun is the hero of Anyang City.¡±
sh¡ª!
When Su-hyeun wrapped his body with me skill and swung his sword, the body of the giant monster cut in half.
Crack¡ª
The monster, who ran into Su-hyeun to swallow him in one bite, began to fall to the ground, splitting his body from side to side. Su-hyeun used its body as a steppingstone and jumped higher.
Swish¡ª
He could see the next target.
[You have used the skill Provocation.]
[The enemies around you, except for the designated target, recognize you as an enemy.]
Numerous monsters looked at Su-hyeun. Their hostility pierced Su-hyeun¡¯s skin. He raised his magic to endure it. He wrapped his body with multipleyers of me.
[Indomitable body.]
[The transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
Crack, crack¡ª
Whack¡ª
The scales of the Imoogi began to grow on Su-hyeun¡¯s body. He could not fly like a real Imoogi, but he could mimic the ability to keep his body floating. He could use the Leap skill, and there were a lot of monsters he could use as stepstones, so an air battle was not a problem.
¡°Good,¡± he thought.
The physical ability rose to the highest point, and there was the me that was sharply worn all over his body.
Kiyaaa¡ª
A lot of monsters filled Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. Other awakeners were preparing various skills to catch them, but he did not care.
¡°Ok, here I go.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Kukguk, Kukwook¡ª
The preparation for the leap was over. It felt like Gram shouting to use it quickly.
¡°One, two, three.¡± He counted in his head.
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s body prated the crowd of monsters.
Kyiaaa, kyiaaaa¡ª
Krrr, krrrr¡ª
sh, sh, sh¡ª
Drop¡ª
The monster¡¯s body began to fall one by one.
Stab¡ª
One!
Whoosh, boom, boom, boom¡ª!
Two, three, four!
Sssss, Crack, crack¡ª!
Ten... Twenty!
The blue me filled with enormous magic swept. The sword shredded and cut everywhere. He ignored the ws and teeth of the monsters. Instead of avoiding or blocking them, he took them with his body and fought back. The indomitable body and body of Imoogi made it possible.
Drop, plop¡ª
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Dozens of monsters began to fall down the ground.
¡°Hu-ah, Hu¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun quickly cleaned the monsters took a small breath. People felt like the time on the battlefield froze when they saw Su-hyeun stop about half the monsters in what seemed to be an instant.
¡°What... the hell?¡±
¡°What just happened?¡±
¡°Look. The monsters looked frightened.¡±
The monsters that appeared in the green dungeons were about the same as the boss from the orange dungeon. The B-rank awakeners could barely catch one of them. But Su-hyeun killed dozens of them in an instant. When he fought without hesitation with his sharpened sword, when his ability and magic were fully bloomed, people could not believe it. It more than they had imagined.
¡°This is Kim Su-hyeun. A new S-rank awakener.¡±
Kim Do-ui¡¯s heart beat hard.
¡°We might able to do this.¡±
It was the first time that an outbreak in a green dungeon had happened as soon as it appeared. Other S-rank awakeners were vacant for various reasons, such as conquering other dungeons or going abroad. But someone who would fill the vacancy appeared.
¡°It is still too soon to feel relieved.¡±
Su-hyeun came down to the ground in the meantime took a breath and lifted his head. From the green clouds appeared in the sky, monsters were still pouring out. And among them...
¡°...That one. That one is a little annoying.¡±
Krrrrr¡ª
They could hear a low crying as if it rang right next to their ears.
Wooooong¡ª
The wings of a giant monster were tearing the clouds apart.
Chapter 52
Chapter 52: Chapter 52
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Flutter¡ª
The huge ck wings appeared sparsely through the clouds. The whole body did not appear yet, but people could tell, that the monster was on a different level than other monsters. It was only spreading wings above the sky, but a huge wind reached to the ground. The monster¡¯s body looked like more than 100 meters, and it had giant wings. It breathed out the ominous magic that nobody could ever experience.
¡°B-boss?¡±
¡°Is that...?¡±
That monster was the boss of the green dungeon. It was the boss of the highest level among the green dungeons.
¡°The half demonic dragon, Igs,¡± Su-hyeun mumbled.
It looked like a dragon, but it was not technically a dragon. That was why it was called half demonic dragon. The reason why it had ¡°demonic¡± in the name was that it had such ominous energy.
¡°If this monster flies to other ces... not just Anyang City, the close cities like Seoul, Ansan, and Suwon could be in danger as well,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Everywhere this monster would go, more and more people would die. Especially, at this time, the S-rank awakeners had been vacated their seats.
¡°I will take care of it,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°You mean, by yourself?¡± Kim Do-ui was surprised.
He knew Su-hyeun was pretty good, but the energy from Igs was something beyond anything an individual could afford. Kim Do-ui, though, even if Su-hyeun was S-rank, there would be no way he could catch it by himself. But Su-hyeun stepped up and said he would catch the Igs.
¡°Please take care of other random monsters. Can you do that?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Su-hyeun considered Kim Do-ui as the head of the awakeners. When an outbreak urs, the highestmand on the field was held by the owner of the highest rank among the awakeners who belonged in the country. Kim Do-ui was in the highest rank beside Su-hyeun in this ce. He was also the closest assistant to the director. So it was natural that Kim Do-ui had control of the situation. Su-hyeun left other monsters to him, except Igs.
¡°Don¡¯t let any monsters go out of this city. Do you understand?¡± Su-hyeun ordered.
¡°...I will try.¡± Kim Do-ui answered.
¡°Trying is not good enough.¡±
¡°Okay. I got it. I won¡¯t let that happen.¡±
At Kim Do-ui¡¯s definite statemen, Su-hyeun smiled a little and nodded. Then, Su-hyeun noticed somebody came next to him. He turned his head.
¡°When it¡¯s over, we need to talk.¡±
Hak-Joon was ring at Su-hyeun with fierce eyes. He looked like he was feeling sorry rather than angry. Su-hyeun thought Hak-Joon would react like this, but when he saw his face, he had no idea what to say.
¡°Yea. Let¡¯s talkter,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
They were busy with their own businesses, so they did not have many chances to see each other, but still, they contacted often. Somehow, they became brothers and got closer. That was possible, of course, because they were interested in each other. Su-hyeun was interested in Hak-Joon¡¯s talent, and Hak-Joon was...
¡°He was contacting me... For what?¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He had no idea why Hak-Joon did not avoid his contact. What he heard was ever since Hak-Joon had decided to join Ares Guild, he cut off all other people except the guild members. He thought it was something he should check it out, but he was too busy to do it. He decided to find it out after this thing ended.
¡°But at first¡ª¡±
Krrrr¡ª
The clear cry covered the sky. Igs¡¯s body finally appeared under the clouds. The dark scales and skin, and the darker eyes than those scanned the ground. Su-hyeun looked up at Igs and muttered.
¡°¡ªI guess I have to something with that first.¡±
Whirl¡ª
Whoosh¡ª
The Blue me skill wrapped around his body. There was no reason to save his magic anymore.
[The me.]
[The me ¨C Phoenixes]
[The Indomitable body.]
[The Transfiguration Skill: Imoogi.]
His body started to harden like steel and scales started to cover his arms and neck. The blue me surrounded his body and two Phoenixes spread their wings.
¡°Here I go.¡±
Bang¡ª
He used Leap skill and jumped higher. Soon, he used Imoogi¡¯s characteristics and floated his body. He used Leap skill again and floated his body to a higher ce.
Krrrrr¡ª
Even though he did not use Provocation skills, Igs looked at Su-hyeun. Perhaps the power of me and magic from Su-hyeun caught its eyes.
¡°Come on, half-lizard,¡± Su-hyeun yelled.
Kiyaaaa¡ª!
As if it understood what he said, Igs open up his mouth and roared to Su-hyeun. The ck breath started to cover Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
¡°Should I avoid or fend off?¡± He briefly thought and decided to break through.
Whoosh¡ª
The sword in his hand, Gram started to form his me. Soon, he wielded his sword in front of his face.
Rip¡ª!
There was a path through Gram¡¯s cut. Su-hyeun used the Leap skill again and jumped through it. It was thest jump that could be used in the air without steppingstones.
Whoosh¡ª!
Su-hyeun quickly narrowed the distance, and Igs swung its wings toward him.
Whiz¡ª
Crack¡ª!
Su-hyeun quickly wielded Gram and struck the wings. He cut Igs¡¯s skin through its heavy scales, but he could not block the impact all the way. His body flew away. His whole body was soaring. He found a tall building and barelynded on it.
Crack¡ª
The roof of the building, which looked like a department store, was broken. Su-hyeun raised his head again to look at Igs.
Kiiyaaaak¡ª!
Igs let out a horrible shriek. Blood was dripping from the wing where he wielded his sword.
¡°Gram is the best.¡±
The Gram¡¯s sharply wrapped magic pierced even the hard scales of Igs. He did not expect he would cut it at once, but Gram¡¯s performance was better than what he had expected. The angry Igs started to breathe out to Su-hyeun. If that breath reached to the ground, this department store building would melt.
¡°I can¡¯t help the building...,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
The building was empty anyway. Near here, there were no civilians except awakeners. And awakeners would protect their bodies by themselves. Su-hyeun put Gram back into the scabbard and pulled the spear from his back. It was the spear that he had specially prepared for this day.
[Dragon ying Spear ¨C Nir.]
It was an item that is made by mimicking a mythical spear Gungnir. He could buy it from the store. It was quite expensive. It was a weapon that could give overwhelming additional damage to reptilian monsters. To the monster like Igs, this spear would be more harmful than Gram.
¡°Although there is a limit that, I can use this only once.¡±
Su-hyeun grabbed the spear with one hand andrgely bowed his body like a bow.
Swish¡ª!
The breath of Igs came closer. Su-hyeun could faintly see Igs through the breath. He aimed spear to its body.
¡°One, two, three.¡±
He counted number in his head as his habit. And¡ª
Boom¡ª!
The spear flew and torn Igs¡¯s breath. At the same time, the tip of the spear split and scattered into hundreds and thousands of thin pieces.
Whoosh¡ª
At a time, the magic in the spear began to fire. The blue me covered the spear, the pieces became countless spears and beat the body of Igs.
Boom, boom, boom¡ª
Wham¡ª!
Kiyaaaaaa¡ª!
Igs screamed out. Su-hyeun frowned at the loud crying that sounded as if it would tear his eardrums.
But the effect was useful. It was worthwhile to pay a high price.
¡°It is too bad that it is just a one-time use item,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He could use it only once, but if it was this powerful, it would not be bad to buy more just in case. The time for the Leap skill reset. When Igs was in a panic, Su-hyeun flew up again.
Swish¡ª
Soon, Su-hyeun arrived above the clouds and looked down Igs. It was still suffering and could not see Su-hyeun. He gulped air.
Boom¡ª!
Shortly after, he used thest Leap skill and ran into the top of the Igs¡¯s body. Su-hyeun, who got on the body of Igs, grabbed Gram and started to cut his body.
Rip, rip¡ª!
Whack, whaaack¡ª!
The thick scales were cut in small pieces. It was too thick to cut deep in the first try, but he was able to cut the minor wounds quickly.
¡°More, more.¡±
Hack, sh¡ª
Igs struggled from the sword of Su-hyeun. It screamed out in pain, swung its wings, and breathed out to resist. The giant wing and tail of Igs almost grazed the tip of Su-hyeun¡¯s nose. One attack from Igs had enough power to destroy Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
¡°A little more!¡±
Riiiip¡ª
Kiyaaa¡ª!
He put Gram into the deep of Igs¡¯s back and drew it down. The blood spilled out like a fountain. Igs let out a scream louder than before. At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes sparkled.
¡°Now!¡±
Whooosh¡ª!
The blood fountain that spouted out fell towards Su-hyeun. It moved as if it were a living thing, tried to pierce Su-hyeun like a sharp awl.
Whoosh¡ª!
Crackle, crackle¡ª
As Su-hyeun¡¯s gesture, the me burst from the below. That me blocked the awls of the harden blood of Igs and burn those.
¡°I was looking forward to seeing you.¡±
Su-hyeun looked at Igs¡¯s wound he just made with his sword Gram. From the wound, that spilled blood like the fountain before, the blood came out slowly once more.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The dark blood gathered together and started to make a form like a human. The man who had an borately shaped dragon face turned his head from side to side and stared at Su-hyeun.
¡°Who are you...?¡±
Igs asked in wonder. He had been looking down at the ground from behind the clouds for hours. He also had seen Su-hyeun was fighting with other people. But somehow, he teamed up with other people now and fought against him. Su-hyeun acted as if he knew their existence beforehand. He could not help but ask. However, instead of answering, Su-hyeun told apletely different story.
¡°Are you... Happy to live like that?¡±
¡°What?¡±
Igs asked back at Su-hyeun¡¯s question like building castles in the air.
¡°What the hell is talking about,¡± Igs thought.
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Igs¡¯s face contorted. He felt like he could remember something.
¡°Hey, you, half demonic dragon. You who tried to kill this monster now became one with it and run amuck. Remember. You... Are not a demonic dragon.¡±
The being in front of Su-hyeun was Igs but not Igs. He was...
¡°The knight of the half demonic dragon, Falcon.¡±
He was a misfortune knight who decided to assimte with the half demonic dragon Igs to stop it. He had been united with Igs and fought against it for a long, long time. And while that, he lost the initiative of the body, and he became like this.
¡°I... I...¡±
The eyes of Falcon made with dark blood started to have a focus. But the focus that spackled once quickly disappeared. And at that moment, Su-hyeun raised his sword again.
¡°Well, if you don¡¯t remember, it can¡¯t be helped,¡± Su-hyeun said.
He did not expect much in the first ce.
¡°I will make you remember.¡±
Chapter 53
Chapter 53: Chapter 53
Shururuk-
Falcon¡¯s eyes were dyed ck at the same time Su-hyeun raised his sword.
Right at this moment, the existence before his eyes had be Igs once more.
¡°As I thought, he¡¯s still fighting it,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
What amentable thing this was.
To fight against the demonic dragon while having forgotten all about who he was for a length of time so long that it was difficult to even imagine.
Falcon¡¯s ego managed to emerge above the surface this time because Igs¡¯s main body was inflicted with a major wound.
¡°To wake him up again....¡±
Rumble-
The me enveloped Su-Hyeun¡¯s sword.
¡°I¡¯ll chop this body into pieces first,¡± thought Su-Hyeun.
Piiiii-iiit-
Hwa-aaaahk-!
Wounds opened up all over Igs¡¯s body one after the other ording to Su-Hyeun¡¯s sword strikes.
It was the pattern of the me scorching the creature¡¯s hide, and then the Gram slicing into the weakened hide.
The sword attacks used to be effective many times before, however, it was different this time.
Kuruk, kururuk-
Blood sprayed out from Igs¡¯s body enveloped its hide and scales. This blood, which was a lump of massive magical energy, became a sturdy armor and began protecting its body.
¡°It¡¯ll be difficult to break through in a single hit,¡± Su-Hyeun thought to himself.
Chwa-ruruk-
That wasn¡¯t all.
The blood enveloping Igs¡¯s hide suddenly coalesced and floated upwards. Every one of those lumps morphed into sharp des and were fired in Su-Hyeun¡¯s direction.
It was the skill of Falcon, the ancient knight that became one with Igs.
¡°Swords is it,¡± Su-Hyeun said.
Dozens upon dozens of swords.
Su-hyeun swept his eyes across them. A fairly threatening amount of magical energy was permeating in every single one of them.
However, destroying them wouldn¡¯t be difficult.
¡°I¡¯ll shatter them.¡±
Squeeze-
Su-Hyeun trusted in his skills, as well as the weapon held in his hand, the Gram.
He was capable of shattering them one by one.
Su-phat-
Pik, pik, pipik-
Chwa-rururuk-
Su-Hyeun cut down the swords flying in his direction, and then, cut down even more. Countless swords were powerlessly destroyed.
Perhaps it didn¡¯t expect such a development, Igs flinging the swords stared at Su-Hyeun with great shock.
Crack, crack, craaack-!
¡°Fuu-wook, huk-¡±
Swords flew in endlessly.
Even as he swatted those away one by one, Su-hyeun shifted his gaze towards the wound he inflicted on the main body.
¡°As I thought, I should aim over there if I...¡±
Fuu-wuunng-
The sound of a huge gust of wind.
At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze shifted to the side.
Ka-boom-!
¡°Keo-urk!¡±
Su-Hyeon¡¯s body, his focus stolen by the countless swords until then, was struck hard by Igs¡¯s tail. For a moment there, all strength abandoned him and his head shook around.
Stagger-
[¡®Hero ¨C Immortality is activating.]
[Vitality and stamina are recovering rapidly. A fixed portion of abnormal status is recovering.]
[Physical ability is being rapidly enhanced.]
His shaken consciousness and body quickly came back to him.
The passive skill he thought of as insurance for that just-in-case.
He couldn¡¯t confirm its effects until now. It didn¡¯t want to activate regardless of whatever situation Su-hyeun deliberately created for himself.
However, the Immortality skill had be a truly dependable lifeline for Su-hyeun right at this moment.
His body felt light.
Power was overflowing within, and his concentration was shooting through the roof. His body was in the peak physical condition filled with vitality. No, the strength exceeding even that could be felt now.
¡°I can do this.¡±
Squeeze-
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze was directed at Igs¡¯s tail that smacked him earlier.
¡°I¡¯ll cut it down.¡±
Sliiiice-
A single thin line appeared in Su-hyeun¡¯s vision.
He didn¡¯t even exert all that much strength, either. As if drawing a line, he simply swung his sword quite naturally in the direction of Igs¡¯s tail.
Tsu-eu-euht-
Chua-aaaahk-!
Igs¡¯s tail was sliced off.
The cleanly-sliced tail and its smooth cross-section began falling below.
Igs, having lost a part of its body in the blink of an eye, didn¡¯t even scream as if it hadn¡¯t felt the pain.
But, it soon sensed a certain emptiness and turned its head behind to confirm the situation with its tail.
Kii-aahk, kiii-aaahhh-!
Igs started screeching out loudly.
The now tail-less Igs spat out rage-filled breaths in all directions. The figure reappearing on the creature¡¯s back seemed to be enraged as well, as it opened its mouth wide and howled out, too.
¡°Ah, ah, aaaaahk-!¡±
¡°I will make you suffer!¡±
Igs crying out in rage soon had to stop its screaming. It discovered that Su-hyeun had arrived near its position before anyone noticed it, that¡¯s why.
¡°...!¡±
As Igs opened its pupil-less eyes wide enough to tear them apart, its expression was filled with sheer shock.
¡°What are you so surprised about?¡±
Squeeeeze-
Before anyone realized it, Su-hyeun¡¯s hand was holding a spear, not a sword.
¡°When did I... ever say I only had one?¡±
[Dragon killing spear ¨C Nir.]
A single-use item.
The thing was, Su-hyeun had prepared two of them.
One to inflict a fatal wound on Igs¡¯s main body.
And as for the other one...
¡°Let¡¯s finish up with this, shall we?¡±
To wrap everything up.
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze was fixed on the huge wound he cut out on Igs¡¯s back.
He bent both his arm and his body to ready the spear shaft.
Rumblllle-
Kuwa-aaaaht-!
Hundreds, thousands, tens of thousands.
The spear Su-hyeun threw split countless times and rained down on Igs¡¯s body from above.
Crack, crack, craaack-
Kiii-aaaaahhh-!
Igs¡¯s body was mercilessly torn apart.
Su-Hyeun was nning to use this attack as the final blow to kill Igs off. The magical energy contained within the spear now was iparable to before.
Peok, peok, peopeopeopeohk-!
Its wings were torn off, and its hide and scales were scorched ck.
Igs¡¯s whole body went limp as if it no longer had any energy left to even p its wings.
Gu-wuuuu-
Igs¡¯s body began falling to the ground.
Act 5
Kwa-rung, boom-!
Igs¡¯s body crashed into a high-rise building, and the structure couldn¡¯t endure against that weight and began crumbling to the side.
With its figurepletely torn apart and prated through, Igs couldn¡¯t control its body anymore and simply writhed intermittently. Su-hyeunnded on top and intently studied Igs¡¯s condition.
¡°Looks like it¡¯ll die even if left alone.¡±
The biggest weakness of Igs was its low rate of regeneration unfitting for a high-ranking monster. With these many wounds, it was now as good as dead.
Su-hyeun walked on Igs¡¯s back.
It was then, the streaming blood coalesced once more into a certain silhouette. This time, though, it had a person¡¯s head, not a dragon¡¯s.
¡°I shall ask again,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Step-
Su-hyeun got real close to this figure and asked.
¡°Who are you currently?¡±
¡°I am...¡± Countless emotions were mixed in that faintly-trembling voice. ¡°Falcon, the knight of Teserahm.¡±
¡°Can you remember now?¡±
¡°Yes, I remember everything... Everything.¡±
Falcon barely managed to squeeze out his voice.
It wasn¡¯t because he found it ufortable or difficult to talk, however. No, he couldn¡¯t speak because countless memories that he didn¡¯t want to recall came flooding in.
¡°I.... my... with my hands....¡±
After he became one with Igs.
Falcon killed and devoured countless people. He could still vividly remember the texture and the taste from back then.
¡°Euph... Eu-euph....¡±
The sensation of vomit rushed in, making him feel nauseous and dizzy. Unfortunately, Falcon was made out of Igs¡¯s blood and couldn¡¯t shed his tears nor empty his stomach.
¡°Bleurgh-!¡±
He tried to vomit, but nothing came out. The only thing leaking out from his mouth like drool was Igs¡¯s blood.
¡°Even if you do that, people you devoured won¡¯te back,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Wu-wuuk...¡±
¡°Those who died won¡¯te back to life. And also... it was never your intention, wasn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°I....¡± Falcon lowered his head and dejectedly knelt down. ¡°I killed everyone.¡±
He began tearing at his hair. He wanted to endlessly scream and cry his heart out, but not a drop of tear came out.
¡°I.... devoured them all.¡±
Like how a knight should, he wielded his sword for the weak all his life.
He became one with Igs just so that he could save his empire.
However....¡±If only I knew it¡¯d be like this... if only I knew...¡±
¡°If you knew, would you have watched and done nothing as the empire fell?¡±
Falcon raised his lowered head at Su-hyeun¡¯s question.
¡°You wouldn¡¯t have done that, right?¡± asked Su-hyeun.
¡°That is....¡±
¡°Since you¡¯re going to make the same choice anyway if you did manage to go back, please stop with regretting your past. Seriously, what is this? You saved a nation, yet it¡¯s still your fault? There¡¯s a limit to being a kind person, you know.¡±
He wasn¡¯t wrong there.
Even if Falcon went back in time, he¡¯d make the same decision in the end. Rather than watching the empire be destroyed, he¡¯d willingly throw himself and stop Igs, and eventually be one with the creature again.
¡°It¡¯s not your fault,¡± Su-hyeun spoke in a slightly bitter voice. ¡°Many more people survived thanks to you. There¡¯s no reason to beat yourself up over it.¡±
¡°But...¡±
¡°But my foot. You saved the world by sacrificing yourself, so what¡¯s with this wretched disy? What exactly are you guilty of, anyway?¡± Su-hyeun reached out and while patting the man¡¯s shoulder, spoke. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t... punish yourself so viciously like this. You have done a great job already, Falcon.¡±
¡°....¡±
Falcon remained silent at Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
His darkened eyes slowly regained their focus. As Igs¡¯s body gradually died, Falcon¡¯s consciousness was getting clearer, that¡¯s why.
¡°Now that I think about it...¡± Falcon said.
His once-trembling voice became a little calmer.
Falcon observed Su-hyeun and spoke. ¡°I still haven¡¯t expressed my gratitude. Thank you. Thanks to you, we were finally able to stop.¡±
¡°No need to mention it.¡± Su-hyeun formed a meaningful smile. ¡°It wasn¡¯t for free, after all.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°You aren¡¯t going to use that item anyway, right? In that case, please just give it to me.¡±
¡°That item? Could it be...¡± Falcon¡¯s eyes widened before he guffawed. ¡°Ha, hahaha! Ah, did you mean this? You aren¡¯t someone from our side, so I can¡¯t fathom at all how you even knew about it.¡±
¡°There are certain ways of finding it out.¡±
¡°Alright, take it. Just like you said, it¡¯s not like I¡¯ll be using the item again, and... And I should at least give you something in return. No, wait. Even if I don¡¯t give it to you, it¡¯s still yours regardless.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
¡°I should be the one thanking you. Thanks to you, the weight¡¯s been lifted off my shoulders. I¡¯ve been freed from the pain, too... I¡¯m truly grateful.¡±
Igs¡¯s death was the same thing as Falcon¡¯s death.
Falcon was supposed to have died a long time ago during his battle against Igs. However, after he became one with the creature, he was unable to die and continued to live on while killing humans even though he didn¡¯t want to.
For a long time, he fought within Igs¡¯s consciousness and protected his home by ensuring that the creature didn¡¯t attack the empire.
Kururuk, kuruk-
Kek, kekek-!
The maw on Igs¡¯s massive head squirmed for a bit before it spat something out quite vigorously.
Su-hyeun stared at that something the creature spat out. It was a set of thin armor.
¡°Take it with you. You are more than qualified to possess it,¡± said Falcon.
He was now in full control of Igs¡¯s consciousness. That was because the creature¡¯s body was damaged beyond the possibility of repair.
In other words, the armor Igs spat out was meant to be Falcon¡¯s gift. And it was also what Su-hyeun had been aiming for since the beginning, as well.
¡°In that case, I¡¯ll dly use it,¡± replied Su-hyeun.
¡°Alright.¡±
Falcon closed his eyes.
Right afterward, his body made out of Igs¡¯s blood began melting down little by little.
¡°Finally... eternal respite,¡± said Falcon.
He epted his death as eternal respite. Su-hyeun, having only lived a mere few decades, couldn¡¯t grasp at all what that even felt like.
Su-hyeun bowed his head towards Falcon.
This man before his eyes was a true hero, who, for the length of time no one could even begin to imagine, fought for the sake of the world.
And he was the sole witness to thest moments of such a person.
¡°Rest in peace.¡±
I pray that his death wouldn¡¯t be one of agony but an eternal rest.
Su-hyeun earnestly prayed in his heart.
Chapter 54
Chapter 54: Chapter 54
Chwa-rururuk-
Clung, aang-
Dozens upon dozens of thick chains tightly bound the bodies of the monsters. Ten-plus Awakeners coordinated with each other in perfect sync to stop the monsters¡¯ movements.
¡°Nice work!¡±
Chwa-aaaahk-!
Kang Seung-Cheol¡¯s greatsword split the body of a huge raven-like monster in half. The creature, with both of its wings tied down, couldn¡¯t even offer any substantial resistance as it lost its life.
Ka-boom-!
Along with the waves of magical energy, a loud impact noise akin to a sandbag being struck hard resounded out. A monster¡¯s torso bounced upwards, its waist bent in half.
¡°Can¡¯t you hurry up a bit here?¡±
Tap, tap-
Boom-
While shaking off the blood on his hands, Kim Do-ui addressed Kang Seung-Cheol.
When looking at the bigger picture, they were both Awakeners affiliated with the same government, but when looking at the smaller picture, things were slightly different.
And that¡¯s why they were wary of each other.
¡°Who¡¯s the slow one here... Why don¡¯t you keep your people in line first? How many did you hunt, anyway?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not just one or two. Do you think I¡¯ll personally be counting them? Why maybe you didn¡¯t hurt as many as you thought?¡±
¡°Why are you picking a fight all of a sudden?¡±
¡°I wonder, just who was it that asked me first about how many I hunted down?¡±
¡°Before that...¡±
Guuu-wooong-
The ground rumbled as something heavy crashnded. The two men stopped bickering and turned their heads in the direction of the noise.
¡°The boss is...¡±
¡°He killed it?¡±
Kang Seung-Cheol opened his eyes wide.
That man, he stepped forward while saying he¡¯ll fight the boss alone, but to think he¡¯d solo a monster of such caliber.
¡°I thought we might need more reinforcement, but it seems there¡¯s no longer a need for that.¡±
Kim Do-ui was ovee with feelings of emptiness and relief at the same time. The crisis that could¡¯ve be the worst-possible situation had finallye to an end.
¡°He¡¯s remarkable. Truly,¡± Kim Do-ui thought.
Su-hyeun minded his own business up until now without publicly revealing himself, not even once.
It was already mystifying to see a young man like that stay well below the radar for such an extent of time, but the moment he revealed his identity to the world, he even managed to prevent a huge catastrophe, as well.
His abilities couldn¡¯t be faulted at all. Indeed, he was one of only a few S-ranks in South Korea, so why should anyone doubt that?
Most likely, after this event is over...¡± Kim Du-ui began to think.
A storm should rage on with him as the epicenter.
The armor nked.
Su-hyeun picked up the armor Igs¡¯s maw spat out onto the ground.
Now that he got to see it again, rather than joy, bitterness rushed in first.
¡°Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor,¡± Su-hyeun thought in awe.
This set of armor was so light that its weight almost couldn¡¯t be felt. Just from the sensation of it being held in his hand, the armor might seem like it¡¯d break in half if he gripped it a little harder.
However, Su-hyeun knew the true worth of this item better than anyone out there.
[Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor.]
The armor belonging to Falcon, the knight of Teserahm Empire. The Teserahm Empire gifted this armor to Falcon in his quest to hunt down the half-demon dragon, and as such, it possesses strong resistance towards many different magic types.
The item¡¯s exnation itself wasn¡¯t too obtuse. Rather than its effects, over half of the exnation was devoted to the item¡¯s history, instead.
<< Out of all the armors that can be equipped with the others, this is the one possessing the greatest magic resistance of them all. >>
The greatest advantage Falcon¡¯s Armor had was the fact that it could be worn underneath other armors.
Never mind how light it was, it was also morefortable than all the others, and it offered almost no restriction on his movements.
It also had a strong resistance towards many different types of damage, including magic, which was a huge plus, as well.
Honestly, thatst factor alone would¡¯ve qualified the Falcon¡¯s Armor as a bona fide treasure.
¡°I¡¯ll use it well,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Su-hyeun then equipped the Falcon¡¯s Armor.
The moment he put on the armor over his clothing.
Hwa-aaaahk-!
Lengthy video footage began brushing past Su-hyeun¡¯s brain.
¡°Please stop the demon dragon Igs.¡±
¡°Falcon, we ask of you for this favor.¡±
¡°With this method, you will be able to defeat Igs. However, if that happens...¡±
Countless people were surrounding Falcon.
They all mored over each other to shout towards him.
¡°You¡¯re the only one we can believe in now!¡±
Falcon couldn¡¯t forsake that belief. Not if he were to answer their expectations, and if he wanted to protect his beloved empire, too.
It wasn¡¯t hard toe up with a reply.
¡°Please leave it to me.¡±
And so, Falcon set off from the empire to stop Igs.
While equipped with weapons, armor, and countless items crafted by the finest artisans of the empire, he fought against Igs in a battle thatsted the day and night, and eventually, the magic circle they had created was activated.
Hwa-aaaaahk-!
And that¡¯s how Falcon became one with Igs.
Two separate minds came to upy one flesh, and the second battlemenced.
It was truly a lengthy fight thatsted for almost an eternity.
Igs didn¡¯t die.
However, one half of it became Falcon. The light and darkness repeatedly fought each other in fierce battles, and Igs no longer appeared in the empire.
Unfortunately, Falcon would lose to Igs¡¯s ego whenever the starvation became too extreme.
And to appease his hunger, he had to devour the empire¡¯s citizens.
¡°I... Those people, I...¡±
The guilt was shaking his consciousness.
His mouth could vividly recall the memories of chewing on humans. The memories of screams of ¡®please save us¡¯ reverberating within his mouth were something he never wanted to remember again.
It was at this point that the horrifying voice he¡¯d often hear came to him.
¡°But, didn¡¯t you enjoy the taste? Was I mistaken?¡±
¡°Shut up. I didn¡¯t enjoy anything. It¡¯s making me sick!¡±
¡°No way. You savored the taste while devouring those humans. I¡¯m you right now, after all. That¡¯s why I know.¡±
¡°I said, I didn¡¯t!¡±
He felt nauseous. Rather than being disgusted by the cannibalism itself, he was more sickened by the fact that he enjoyed the process.
And so, Falcon gradually assimted into Igs. He endlessly repeated the cycle of devouring humans, then falling into regret and despair.
¡°It¡¯s all because of me. I¡¯m, I¡¯m the...¡±
Memories entered Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
He already knew of these memories, though. The Falcon¡¯s Armor was an item Su-hyeun of past life had used, after all.
¡°I¡¯m watching this for the second time, but still...¡± thought Su-hyeun.
One could tell just what kind of a life Falcon lived through this set of armor.
The first time he put the armor on, he just couldn¡¯t understand at all why that person had to live such a life. He couldn¡¯t figure out the reason why Falcon chose the path of lengthy suffering.
However, in the end, even Su-hyeun got to walk on a simr path as him.
At first, he believed it was because the world had forced it onto him. However, as time passed, he grew to realize that that wasn¡¯t the sole reason.
Now he knew.
That was his own choice.
Even if the world didn¡¯t force him, and instead tried to talk him out of it...
¡°I¡¯d probably have made the same choice,¡± thought Su-hyeun.
That¡¯s why Su-hyeun felt even more bitter inside.
His end wasn¡¯t all that dissimr to Falcon¡¯s, after all. He had to greet the conclusion so torturous that death felt like an eternal respite.
No, that wasn¡¯t true. Falcon managed to protect his empire, but what about him?
This was the second opportunity, his second attempt.
But, if he were to fail again this time...
¡°Even then, I¡¯ll still do it.¡±
As expected, the answer remained the same.
If he was thinking of hesitating, then he wouldn¡¯t even have started in the first ce. He wouldn¡¯t have tried to put this armor on, either.
When he thought that it was finally over, strength in his body flooded out. The activation period of ¡®Indomitable¡¯ hade to an end.
¡°It didn¡¯tst as long as I thought,¡± Su-hyeun said to himself.
He was dismayed at himself for thinking about skills even in a situation like this one.
Su-hyeun smirked and let go of the tension¡¯s taut string.
¡°I¡¯m sure it¡¯ll work out... Somehow...¡±
Plop-
Su-hyeunid down right there as if he was cking out, and closed his eyes.
And then, he fell into a deep slumber.
January 31, 2021.
This date was originally earmarked as the day of conquering the green-colored dungeon that appeared in Ansan, Gyeonggi Province.
All the attention of the media was focused there, and countless Awakeners were deployed, too.
So much so that one would start to think at least one-third of all the Awakeners in South Korea had been deployed here to conquer this green-colored dungeon.
But then, the South Korean media, no, the entire world¡¯s, was no longer focused on Ansan, but Anyang, instead.
The dungeon outbreak is a new term denoting the phenomenon that urs when a newly-generated dungeon has been left alone for a fixed period. However, on January 31st, the City of Anyang in Gyeonggi Province was... A new type of dungeon has emerged. A green-colored dungeon that requires an S-rank Awakener, or perhaps even over a dozen A-rank Awakeners... Last night in Anyang, Gyeonggi Province...
The breaking headlines and inte articles endlessly poured out.
And one man¡¯s name was brought up without exception in every single one of them.
The mysterious Awakener covered in veil until now, Kim Su-hyeun has finally revealed himself. He has been introducing himself as a member of the Dump Guild on an online forum from a short while ago, and he... Kim Su-hyeun willingly disguised himself as a terrorist to evacuate the citizens. Thanks to his actions, all the damage the City of Anyang suffered was some damage to property... The boss of the green dungeon was...
The breaking news continued to pour in one after the other.
Su-hyeun raised the remote and switched the TV off.
Beep-
¡°I can¡¯t stand it, really,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Should he say how fortunate that his face was blurred out in mosaic during the broadcasts?
As if the mass media didn¡¯t want to get on Su-hyeun¡¯s bad books, they didn¡¯t reveal his facial features publicly on air.
¡°Kekek. Isn¡¯t it all truth, though?¡±
Lee Ju-ho chuckled under his breath. He was trying so hard not tough, but even then, the decibel of his chuckles leaking out remained rather high.
¡°Why don¡¯t you just stop holding back andugh? We¡¯re in a private room, anyway. You holding back is making me feel even worse.¡±
¡°Keuk, puhahahahat!¡±
Lee Ju-ho, in the end, exploded in a loud peel ofughter. Su-hyeun swore that this was the first time seeing him guffaw this loudly ever since getting acquainted with the man.
¡°Is it that funny?¡±
¡°No, wait, keuk, keuk... Your expression, Mr. Su-hyeun, it¡¯s...¡±
¡°What about my expression, then?¡±
¡°No, well, it¡¯s like your expression is baring everything in the open. Like... Aaah, this wasn¡¯t what I wanted.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s fist almost flew out at the figure of Lee Ju-ho exining his expression with a deliberately serious, subdued voice. However, he somehow managed to hold himself back and suppressed his anger.
He was already dead-tired and needed a rest, so no good woulde of it if he wasted energy unnecessarily here.
¡°Besides all that, I didn¡¯t expect you to go through with it,¡± said Lee Ju-ho.
¡°I always do what I said I¡¯d do.¡±
¡°I see. So, I¡¯m nning to dissuade you if something like this happens again in the future. I thought you were just kidding around again, you know.¡±
¡°Will you really?¡±
¡°I mean, who would believe it? Disguising yourself as a terrorist to draw in hundreds of Awakeners all alone. And also, to use those hundreds of Awakeners to stop an outbreak, no less.¡±
Lee Ju-ho spat out a sigh and shook his head, perhaps feeling that it still made no sense when looking back at the whole thing for the second time. ¡°I thought that you lost all of your marbles.¡±
¡°It was the most effective method avable.¡±
¡°This wasn¡¯t the problem of effectiveness but rather, whether it¡¯s possible or not.¡±
One versus one hundred.
That was an impossibility for a regr person, but it wasn¡¯t as impossible for an Awakener. As the word implied, being an Awakener signified that you were superhuman, after all.
However, if the ¡®hundred¡¯ in that one versus a hundred situation were also Awakeners, then the matter would again be an impossibility.
Because the ¡®hundred¡¯ opponents ¡®one¡¯ had to contend with would be also superhumans possessing strengths exceeding that of regr people.
¡°Honestly, I thought that it¡¯d be utterly impossible and that it¡¯s apletely absurd notion. Even if all of you went easy for hundreds of rounds and you endured somehow in that manner... I thought that you¡¯d never make it out of there alive, Mr. Su-hyeun.¡±
That was how it¡¯d be like to battle against a hundred Awakeners. No matter how much of a genius Su-hyeun was, Lee Ju-ho felt confident in saying it.
That surely was an impossible task.
¡°However, you managed to do it, Mr. Su-hyeun.¡±
The thing was, though, a handful of Awakeners capable of pulling off such feats did exist.
¡°The S-rank...¡±
Lee Ju-ho asked in a could-it-be frame of mind.
¡°Have you really be an S-rank Awakener?¡±
Chapter 55
Chapter 55: Chapter 55
The S-rank.
The Awakenerbat force was rumored to be quite close to the movers and shakers in the political scene, consisting of only five known individuals in all of South Korea.
Lee Ju-ho knew that Su-hyeun was an A-rank Awakener. Of course, he also knew of thetter growing even stronger in thest year or so.
But he still didn¡¯t expect thetter to be an S-rank after only two years.
The wall existing between the A- and S-ranks was simply too vast and thick to cross.
¡°Well... it somehow worked out that way,¡± replied Su-hyeun, as he nodded his head at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s question.
This was the basis for an S-rank Awakener.
The Magic Level and Magic Factor had to be over seven and 70, respectively.
Su-hyeun had already satisfied those two conditions. After consuming the highest-grade potential catalyst not too long ago and digesting every bit of the liquid, he managed to advance to the next level.
¡°Why didn¡¯t you say something earlier? I wouldn¡¯t have been this anxious if you told me sooner,¡± said Lee Ju-ho.
¡°It wasn¡¯t that long since I became one. If you were worried about this, then I can only apologize.¡±
¡°Ah, well... no need to apologize or anything...¡±
Lee Ju-ho became sheepish and sighed when Su-hyeun apologized instead. It felt like he was in the wrong for sounding like he was using thetter of something.
While sinking deep into the chair once more, Lee Ju-ho tried to change the topic. ¡°In any case, what will you do next? Everyone knows your identity by now and will report on the fact that you¡¯re currently registered as a C-rank pretty soon.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t think that¡¯s going to be a problem. I can always say that I was C-rank one year ago.¡±
¡°That¡¯s what I was mean. Aren¡¯t you going to get re-evaluated?¡±
There was the rank re-evaluation, an evaluation process that Awakeners could request once each year when they wanted to change their ranking.
It proceeded concurrently with the regr rank evaluation, and mainly the Awakeners hoping to receive a higher rank than their current ones requested for it.
Normally, people requested it to raise their rank by one level, but...
¡°From C-rank up to S. Well, now. I think it¡¯s going to produce a pretty epic spectacle, alright.¡±
The appearance of an S-rank Awakener was more than enough to be a hot topic already.
If the truth became known that the very same S rank Awakener was the hero responsible for saving the City of Anyang and jumping three levels during his rank improvement evaluation, then the mass media would riot once more.
¡°Urgh....¡±
¡°Based on your reaction, I take it you¡¯re at least a little interested?¡± Asked Lee Ju-ho.
¡°I do need to get re-evaluated, that¡¯s for sure. Everyone knows that already, anyway. Remaining in C-rank like this won¡¯t benefit me in any shape or form, either.¡±
¡°Is it because of money? Or...¡±
Lee Ju-ho realized that the question was unnecessary and immediately shut his mouth.
He could easily tell that it wasn¡¯t because of money, judging from how Su-hyeun had acted up until now.
Su-hyeun not even once used the money he earned in dungeons to live in luxury.
Excluding his purchase of a house to act more freely, he was someone who thought that having a meal wasted his precious time. He invested almost all of his time primarily on climbing the tower.
Lee Ju-ho was unable to just sit back and watch, so he gave Su-hyeun a sports car as a present. Even then, him turning its ignition remained a rare urrence even now.
¡°What is all this for, anyway?¡±
So, Lee Ju-ho changed his question.
He suddenly became curious as to why Su-hyeun became an Awakener.
Normally, it¡¯d be to chase after things like wealth, prestige, and power. Even Lee Ju-ho himself couldn¡¯t fully escape from that mold.
¡°Well, that¡¯s because....¡±
Su-hyeun avoided the question.
Regardless of whatever reply he came up with, it was likely that the other party wouldn¡¯t understand. He was the only person who knew the future, after all.
<< Could anyone even have imagined it? >>
The world was rapidly changing.
The rate of dungeon generation was rising quickly, and outbreaks were now urring without warning.
Even then, society atrge remained at a standstill. They all thought of it as a problem simr to the issues of pollution from a few years ago.
In reality, the number of casualties from thest event was quite low. There was no need to even mention the civilian deaths as there was almost zero loss of life even among the Awakeners this time.
Knock, knock!
The short bout of silence was shattered by someone knocking on the hospital room¡¯s door.
¡°Come in.¡±
Creak!
The moment Su-hyeun responded, Hak-Joon entered the room carrying a fruit basket.
The former already knew that thetter hade to visit by sensing his presence, and waved his hand to greet the younger man.
¡°Been a while, isn¡¯t it?¡± said Su-Hyeun.
¡°Didn¡¯t we see each other two days ago?¡±
¡°Did we? Thest time we got together was such a long time ago, so...¡±
¡°Both my bro and I had been way too busytely, so it couldn¡¯t be helped. Although, I didn¡¯t know you were the real Kim Su-hyeun back then, bro.¡±
Su-hyeun smiled awkwardly at Hak-Joon¡¯s words.
Lee Ju-ho observed the atmosphere before standing up from his spot. ¡°Well, I¡¯ll be on my way now. Give me a call when you¡¯re about to be discharged, please.¡±
Su-hyeun raised his upper torso from the bed to bade Lee Ju-ho goodbye, but thetter dissuaded him from getting up altogether and exited the room.
Not too long afterward, Hak-Joon settled down on the chair Lee Ju-ho had been sitting in earlier.
He even bought a small fruit knife as if he was nning to peel the fruits he brought along.
¡°How are you feeling?¡± Hak-Joon asked.
¡°It¡¯s already been a couple of days, you know. Feels like I¡¯ll be just fine getting discharged tomorrow.¡±
¡°That¡¯s a relief.¡±
¡°What¡¯s wrong? If something¡¯s on your mind, just tell me. Don¡¯t worry about it too much.¡±
¡°It¡¯s nothing, just...¡±
Hak-Joon¡¯s hands peeling the fruit came to a halt as he closed his mouth after hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
The pregnant pause persisted for a long while. Su-hyeun had been thinking that Hak-Joon would either be angry or disappointed by him, so the current reaction came across as a little strange.
Since he had nothing urgent to do anyway, Su-hyeun decided to patiently wait.
Eventually, he spoke up.
¡°Hyung, do you remember... what you told me earlier?¡±
¡°What did I say?¡±
Su-hyeun asked back, but Hak-Joon began hesitating again. After pondering for a while, he simply shook his head.
¡°Nah, it¡¯s nothing.¡±
¡°Come on, what is it? I¡¯m curious now. Tell me.¡±
¡°It¡¯s nothing important. Besides all that, bro. Why didn¡¯t you say anything? We¡¯ve known each other for over a year already, too. That hurt my feelings, you know.¡±
¡°I¡¯m sorry about that. Actually, I...¡±
Sure enough, the conversation with Hak-Joon went down the expected avenue. However, Su-hyeun was quite certain that this wasn¡¯t what he wanted to say to him.
<< What could it be? >>
His curiosity was rushing in.
He was thinking of uncovering more information about Hak-Joon once the current situation had settled down.
<< Already A-rank, is it... >>
It¡¯s only been two years.
That was not a short time. Out of the current batch of Awakeners, there have been only a few that managed to be A-rank within two years.
That was when considering the entire world.
Just from that alone, one could tell how talented Hak-Joon was. The more Hak-Joon¡¯s brilliance shined brightly, the greater Su-hyeun¡¯s curiosity grew.
Especially more so, when he openly carried a face that shouted out to the world, ¡®I have a secret¡¯.
In the end, Hak-Joon didn¡¯t say anything particrly important and left the hospital after inquiring about Su-hyeun¡¯s wellbeing.
Su-hyeun immediately picked up his mobile phone afterward.
¡°Hello? Hi, can I ask you for a favor?¡±
Act 6
Hak-Joon exited the hospital room and slowly walked along the corridor. He came here after lengthy deliberation, but as expected, he just couldn¡¯t say anything.
<< I¡¯m sure it won¡¯t happen. >>
He thought that he had grown quite close to Su-hyeun.
Despite this, he began feeling that the friendship between them existed only in his mind.
<< I don¡¯t have a choice but to do it alone, then. >>
It was too presumptuous to hope for Su-hyeun¡¯s help. In all honesty, the rtionship between him and Su-hyeun only amounted to being acquaintances that didn¡¯t even meet each other all that often and just shared a few calls every now and then.
¡°Uh, we meet each other again?¡±
About eight months ago, he ran into Su-hyeun by sheer coincidence while heading towards the assigned dungeon to clear it.
He noticed a sparkling sports car and wondered whose it was, only to realize that Su-hyeun was behind the wheel.
¡°You lived around here?¡± Hak-Joon asked.
¡°Yes, I moved into the neighborhood not too long ago. I needed something so I was on my way to Yangpyeong just now.¡±
¡°Aah, so you¡¯re now my new neighbor, then.¡±
¡°Why don¡¯t we meet up again sometime and have a meal? Sounds good?¡±
Hak-Joon was in a dilemma when Su-hyeun approached and asked for the contact details in a friendly manner, but in the end, he gave away his phone number.
If this was any other time, he¡¯d have ignored the request, but perhaps them coincidentally running into each other several times like this must¡¯ve been to me; he gave in and ended up swapping their contact details with Su-hyeun.
¡°Give me a call if you need anything. If it¡¯s something I can help you with, then I will,¡± said Su-Hyuen.
It was unclear why he suddenly said that.
Indeed, that wasn¡¯t something you¡¯d say to a person you¡¯re encountering for only the third time who you initially met through sheer coincidence.
His tone of voice also seemed to imply that he knew something about Hak-Joon, as well.
Although it concerned him somewhat, Hak-Joon decided to overlook it.
He took it as the other guy saying that out of courtesy.
For some reason, he just couldn¡¯t forget those words.
The day before, he felt like the inside of his head had been rocked hard after learning that the Su-hyeun he knew was that Kim Su-hyeun.
¡°Damn it.¡±
<< As expected, I should just forget about it. >>
Hak-Joon spat out a long sigh.
He lowered his head and scratched it in irritation, and the next moment he raised it again, Hak-Joon¡¯s steps came to an abrupt halt.
¡°So, you came?¡±
¡°....Chairman.¡±
Jung Dong-Yeong waiting for Hak-Joon at the end of the corridor, formed an ominous smile, and waved his hand.
Three days passed by since he was hospitalized.
Su-hyeun roundly ignored the doctor¡¯s rmendation of staying in the hospital for a little bit longer and discharged himself right away.
He wasn¡¯t horribly wounded anyway. All he did was to use up every bit of his magical energy until it ranpletely dry, which in turn caused a sudden strain on his body.
¡°Yes, yes.¡±
Su-Hyeun¡¯s eyes were withdrawn.
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s voice wasing out from the mobile phone pressed to his ear.
¡°...That¡¯s the current situation.¡±
¡°How solid is this info?¡±
I think whether it really happened or not needs to be verified first.
¡°I¡¯ll leave it to you, then.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. I¡¯m also a bit pissed off, you see. In any case, I¡¯ll properly dig into it. Oh, and there¡¯s something unrted I want to talk to you about... the director wishes to speak to you.¡±
¡°Why didn¡¯t he directly call me for that....?¡±
¡°Well, he doesn¡¯t know your contact details, you see. He wanted me to give you his contact numbers. Are you willing to meet him, though?¡±
¡°Ah, I see. Well, I¡¯ll give him a call, at least.¡±
It was rather obvious why that man wanted to speak to him.
After chatting some more, Su-hyeun ended the call with Lee Ju-ho. He wasn¡¯t sure why, but it felt as if things were going to get rather hectic from now on, even though he just got discharged from the hospital.
<< But then again, when did I ever enjoy a long rest? >>
It had been a while since thest time he saw that man¡¯s face.
In the past, Su-Hyeun used to meet the director several times in a month to growl at each other¡¯s throats in an uncivilized manner. They never saw eye to eye on their thoughts and values.
But now, that man had no rtions to the current Su-Hyeun.
Tti-ring!
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s text message arrived.
It was the director¡¯s contact number.
A few somewhat random words were written just below it.
[Also, I heard that the Dump Guild has started paying you attention. Maybe I¡¯m overthinking this, but it¡¯s still not a bad idea to stay vignt, right?]
The Dump Guild...
He realized that he had momentarily forgotten about how he used their name and created this situation.
<< They must be pretty pissed off. >>
Those bastards enjoyed killing people so much that they even established a guild of their own. Out of all the incidents currently taking ce behind the shadows, quite a few were likely to be rted to them somehow.
But now, someone used their name and saved the lives of hundreds of thousands? They wouldn¡¯t be feeling good about that.
<< Although it¡¯s sooner than I thought... >>
Su-hyeun sighed loudly.
¡°It¡¯s going to get hectic soon.¡±
He was destined to sh with them in the future, anyway. If he got to drag the ones hiding in the shadows out into the open, then he couldn¡¯t see that as an entirely bad result, either.
Tap.
Su-hyeun dialed the contact number as shown in Lee Ju-ho¡¯s text.
The ring tone continued for a couple of times, and the other side soon answered the call.
¡°Hello, director. It¡¯s Kim Su-Hyeun speaking.¡±
Chapter 56
Chapter 56: Chapter 56
¡°Please, help us! Please!¡±
He was clinging onto someone¡¯s leg and desperately crying out. Hak-Joon was sitting on a higher ce, watching this scene unfold.
The person frantically asking for help was none other than himself.
<< A dream? >>
His face below seemed to be slightly older than his current self. Seeing how that version was crying out the names one by one, he must¡¯ve been close with every one of them.
<< Who are they? >>
However, the real Hak-Joon had no idea who they were since he couldn¡¯t see their faces. Even the names being called out were unfamiliar.
¡°Please, please...¡±
His figure sitting on the floor howling out came across as truly pitiful and sad.
No one looked back at him despite his ardent, desperate cries. They could¡¯ve reached out or nced in his direction at least once.
For some reason, the past and present didn¡¯t seem all that different to him.
<< This dream.... >>
....It was so vivid that it irritated him.
He wanted to wake up as soon as possible. A dream with such an unpleasant feeling was so rare that it could probably be counted in one hand.
It was then, the scene below Hak-Joon changed.
¡°This... Goddammit...¡±
Expletives came out from Hak-Joon¡¯s mouth.
His heart pounded away as his breathing became shallow and heavy. His vision was clouding over, and it felt like the inside of his head was getting hotter.
The ¡®Hak-Joon¡¯ below was currently holding onto a certain woman in the scene; it was the woman with short bob-cut hair was bleeding from both her mouth and eyes.
¡°But, why...?¡±
Step!
A familiar face approached.
It was the face he didn¡¯t want to see, even in his dreams.
It was Jung Dong-Yeong.
¡°That¡¯s why you shouldn¡¯t have done that, Hak-Joon-ah¡±.
As always, he spoke with a kindly voice. With a tone seemingly chiding a younger brother, he was driving a cold hard dagger deep into Hak-Joon¡¯s heart.
¡°Had you listened to everything I said, that girl wouldn¡¯t have died, you know?¡±
¡°Aaaaaahk!¡±
¡°Aaaaaahk!¡±
Hak-Joon woke up from his dream with a scream.
His whole body was soaked in sweat. Hak-Joon had been sleeping inside a darkened storage facility.
<< Where am I? >>
His confusionsted only for a short while.
He remembered the situation before he fell into a slumber.
<< I didn¡¯t fall asleep, but... I got knocked out, instead. >>
His arm, the shoulders, and his back flinched.
His whole body was screaming in pain. He had cked out while getting severely beaten up.
The face he didn¡¯t want to remember popped back up inside his head on its own.
It belonged to Jung Dong-Yeong.
¡°Goddammit.¡±
A younger brother? Family? Friend?
What a nonsensical notion that was.
Jung Dong-Yeong always physically abused his fellow Guild members, the ones he called his ¡®family¡¯, for minor matters that didn¡¯t warrant such a treatment.
¡°If you tell me the truth, I¡¯ll go easy on you, Hak-Joon-ah. You knew, didn¡¯t you?¡±
Jung Dong-Yeong was aware of Hak-Joon¡¯s rtionship with Su-hyeun and believed that the two were plotting something behind his back from the very beginning.
Of course, Hak-Joon didn¡¯t know that and from his perspective, this whole thing came across as massively unfair.
¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you what I hate the most? Lying and betrayal. Those two. I told you to never do those two things, didn¡¯t I?¡±
¡°Heh.¡±
What a bunch of bullcrap that was.
Don¡¯t do those two things?
¡°Just those two?¡±
That wasn¡¯t even true.
Jung Dong-Yeong would start throwing his fists around first if something got on his nerves or pissed him off somehow.
If a dungeon conquest had been scheduled prior, he¡¯d hold himself back but once the schedule was cleared, he¡¯d start beating people up without fail.
This time, he went too far. Hak-Joon ended up fainting, after all.
Jung Dong-Yeong didn¡¯t even bother to confirm the detail of the actual rtionship and simply decided to vent some steam here.
Squeeze!
Bang!
Hak-Joon mmed his fist against the storage wall. His anger welled up so much that he could hardly contain himself.
He felt like abandoning everything and leaving.
Ring!
Just then, his phone with the cracked screen resting on the ground began ringing noisily.
Hak-Joon¡¯s gaze shifted towards the name appearing on the phone¡¯s screen. The moment he saw the name of the sender, ¡®Yun-seon¡¯, he ended up biting hard onto his lip.
He picked up the phone, sucked in a deep breath, and opened his mouth.
¡°...Hello?¡±
Su-hyeun changed his clothes at home, took a shower, and headed to the Awakeners reditation Authority immediately.
As he walked down the familiar hallway, several people recognized his face and began ncing in his direction. They were Awakeners that fought alongside him a few days ago.
<< I guess my quiet days are as good as over. >>
Even if he was left with little choice back then, there was no doubt that this event outed his face publicly. It might be limited to a few Awakeners at the moment, sure, but it was only a matter of time before everyone found out, too.
<< Well, this is annoying. >>
He wasn¡¯t all that interested in the attention. Rather than feeling chuffed, he was instead burdened by it. To high-ranking Awakeners, ¡®attention¡¯ was the same thing as expectations.
Su-hyeun was well aware of how burdensome attention and expectation could be.
¡°Fuu-woo-¡±
Su-hyeun arrived before the director¡¯s office and took a deep breath.
He had to meet the director sooner orter, but that didn¡¯t mean he held a favorable impression of him. It¡¯d be truly difficult to find a pr opposite of the director in this world.
Knock, knock!
Su-hyeun knocked on the office¡¯s door.
When he did, the person on the other side answered.
¡°Come in.¡±
It was a heavy, bassy voice.
Just hearing it alone worsened Su-hyeun¡¯s mood. He inwardly recited the Hanja word for ¡®patience¡¯ and opened the door.
Creak!
He spotted two men inside the office.
One of them was the director, while the other was someone he met a few days ago: Kang Seung-Cheol.
¡°Good to see you.¡±
¡°...Uh, sure.¡±
Su-hyeun formed a somewhat weird expression and waved his hand at Kang Seung-Cheol, greeting him with a warm, inviting face.
He was hoping against hoping, but as expected, they wanted to talk about ¡°that¡±.
He stared at the director. The man¡¯s uptight-looking face, where liver spots had begun showing up, seemed quite old even now. In reality, it was far younger than what Su-hyeun remembered.
Unfortunately, the light in that man¡¯s eyes remained the same as it was in the past.
¡°I heard you were looking for me,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°That¡¯s correct. I wanted to speak to you for quite some time. I¡¯m d to finally make your acquaintance.¡±
Rather unexpectedly, the director was smiling affably.
Thinking back to how he tried to paint Su-hyeun as a con-man not too long ago, one had to wonder whether the director had two switchable faces or not.
¡°I¡¯ve heard a lot about you. It must¡¯ve been two years? I was asking around about you the whole time. As it turned out, you truly are talented.¡±
The director then went on to praise Su-hyeun for a long while. Thetter settled down on the spot on the couch the older man pointed out. Sipping on the prepared refreshment, he closed his eyes and ears off.
¡°Okay, so. What is it that you wish to speak to me about?¡±
Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t endure any longer and eventually chose to speak up.
He couldn¡¯t bear to hear any more of this nonsense; he knew they were just pretenses and lies with an ulterior motive behind them.
The director had to momentarily stop at Su-hyeun¡¯s unexpected question.
His stiff expression onlysted for a brief moment. Soon, he formed a good-natured smiled and spoke again, ¡°You seemed to be impatient. Very well. Let me get straight to the point, then. My friend, are you willing to work for us?¡±
¡°When you say ¡®us¡¯, do you mean the organization?¡±
¡°Simr, but a little different. Here....¡± The director looked at Kang Seung-Cheol standing next to him and continued. ¡°If you decide to join us, then you will be entering the same department as the department head Kang Seung-Cheol here.¡±
¡°I¡¯m guessing it¡¯s a bit different from the normal organization.¡±
¡°Indeed. Unlike other organizations, this organization is about fostering properly-trained Awakeners. As long as you agree... I¡¯d like to leave you with the important position of being in charge of the whole operation.¡±
That wasn¡¯t something you¡¯d ask of a person you met for the first time today.
The organization consisted of the A-rank Awakener Kang Seung-Cheol along with dozens of rank B Awakeners. The director wanted to suddenly entrust an organization featuring such a high level ofbat potential to him?
When considering the abilities alone, Su-hyeun seemed to naturally fit the role.
¡°ording to the department head Kang Seung-Cheol, you¡¯re an S-rank Awakener.¡± The director¡¯s persuasion continued. ¡°Not only are you unaffiliated with any guilds, but you are also exceptionally skilled. On top of that, you have proven your sense of righteousness towards our country during the previous event. There is nobody else better suited for this role than you, my friend.¡±
¡°Righteousness...?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s lips curled into a thin grin.
What absolute nonsense that was.
<< Do you even believe in that, anyway? >>
The director could¡¯ve evacuated people ahead of time during thest event, but he still chose to ignore it.
If it weren¡¯t for Su-hyeun, hundreds of thousands of people would¡¯ve died that day.
This man had turned his gaze away from their deaths and utterly refused to heed his request back then, yet he now dared to speak of righteousness?
If having a thick skin was a skill, then the director would¡¯ve been the best in the entire world.
¡°I¡¯ll have to decline,¡± Hak-Joon replied.
¡°Young man....¡±
¡°Please don¡¯t try to persuade me. Even if you try a hundred times, my answer will remain the same. There¡¯s no reason to waste our energy and get our feelings hurt in the process, now is there?¡±
The director kept quiet at Su-hyeun¡¯s firm reply.
He was a man who had experienced all sorts of trials and tribtions for a while. He, of course. met numerous people before. As such, he was quite confident of being able to read his opponents correctly.
He heard that this Awakener was only in his mid-twenties. A more in-depth investigation revealed that Su-hyeun didn¡¯te from any notable wealth, either.
Money and power, plus enticing, sweet words.
The director thought that, as his opponent was still young, giving him praise and offering generous conditions would be more than enough to entice Su-hyeun.
But now...
<< I heard that he¡¯d been staying under the radar for two years. Just what kind of a man is he? >>
It was already quite bizarre to hide in the shadows when you possessed such a high level of talent. Even after emerging into the light, he wasn¡¯t enticed by power and wealth.
The event that led to him revealing himself was also like that; he did it not for the sake of some benefits, but to save the citizens.
<< Sense of justice? >>
What utter nonsense.
The director was a man who never believed in this so-called sense of justice or righteousness, even though he mouthed off this term almost all the time.
To him, righteousness was simply nothing more than a nice-sounding word.
<< Is this folly of one¡¯s youth? No, it must be.... >>
His expression or the way he carried himself made it hard to believe Su-hyeun was still young. His actions made him sound like no ordinary man, but now that they were sitting face to face like this, he far exceeded the director¡¯s initial expectations.
<< If enticement isn¡¯t going to work.... >>
Should he threaten him instead?
<< Threaten an S-rank Awakener? >>
The director¡¯s expression crumpled unsightly. This was the first time in so long that he failed to control his expressions to this degree.
A standard procedure in enticement would be to say some sweet-sounding words first, followed by scary-sounding threats before throwing a carrot. Rinse and repeat.
However, his opponent was an S-rank Awakener. Although he hadn¡¯t gotten the official re-evaluation yet, his abilities had already been proven.
Not only would threatening him not affect Su-hyeun but dealing with the potential fallout also presented a difficult prospect. In the current situation, it was the director who should be minding Su-hyeun¡¯s moods instead, not the other way around.
¡°Can I talk to you about something I find amusing?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Plop!
Su-hyeun ced a smartphone in front and spoke up.
¡°I think you¡¯ll be very interested in hearing it as well, director.¡±
¡°...Interested?¡±
The smartphone was resting before his eyes.
For some strange reason, Su-hyeun¡¯s voice came across as rather ominous to the director¡¯s ears. His instincts were telling him to ignore it, but he simply had to listen.
¡°Let us hear it, then,¡± the director replied.
¡°A wise decision.¡±
Su-hyeun smirked and pushed the smartphone towards the director. Its screen was already switched on and the older man was able to confirm the name of the file saved on the device.
The director¡¯s eyes widened. The always-affable facade of his was now cracking up.
¡°What is it that you want?¡± The director asked.
Quite different from how he was like when entering the office earlier, Su-hyeun grinned widely as he replied, ¡°Many, many things.¡±
<< So, the table has been set.... >>
Now, it was time to flip this table that the dear director had oh-so-carefully organized.
Chapter 57
Chapter 57: Chapter 57
The negotiation dragged on.
Every time Su-hyeun and the director exchanged words, thetter¡¯s voice grew louder little by little.
The contents were different from what he had initially expected.
In the end, however, the director had to ept Su-hyeun¡¯s demands.
In all honesty, he couldn¡¯t afford not to bow down to Su-hyeun¡¯s demands. In front of a rank S Awakener, not even a person like the director could do whatever he wanted to, after all.
¡°...Are you actually threatening me right now, young man?¡±
The contorted expression on the director¡¯s face was rather gratifying to see.
Su-hyeun smirked and continued on. ¡°Of course not. It¡¯s just that, if it gets leaked to the public that I requested you for the evacuation of Anyang city¡¯s residents well ahead of time, things won¡¯t look too good for you, wouldn¡¯t you agree?¡±
¡°That¡¯s exactly the....¡±
¡°All I¡¯m asking for is just a little bit of concession. For instance....¡±
The longer Su-hyeun¡¯s exnations carried on, the more distorted the director¡¯s expression became.
Just a little?
It was only ¡®just a little¡¯ in theory only. This was a one-sided trade, one where his side didn¡¯t get a single thing in return.
Such a thing would never fly in normal circumstances. The thoroughly-calctive director would never have entertained such an idea in a million years.
Unfortunately, Su-hyeun was in possession of his weakness.
Not just any, but a truly fatal one for the director.
I¡¯d like to ask you for a favor. A favor? Yes. It¡¯s to ensure the safety of the citizens.
The conversation between Lee Ju-ho and the director.
It was the recording of that conversation.
<< There¡¯s nothing better to catch and shake him around than this. >>
If the truth got known to the rest of the world, then even if he was the director, he¡¯d have no choice but to tender his resignation.
Well, it was an event where over 600 thousand lives were at stake, after all. If nothing happened back then, all would¡¯ve been well, but the event did ur so at this rate, it¡¯d be seen as the director was pretending to be unaware of the situation despite the fact that he did have the prior knowledge.
<< Regardless of whether the director is brought down from his position or he¡¯s impacted negatively by it, it¡¯s still not the solution to the fundamental problem. >>
The thing was, the tendencies of politicians were pretty much simr from one to another.
This director wasn¡¯t all that unique among their kind. If he were to be kicked out of the position, it¡¯d be filled by another one simr to him, instead.
<< In that case, I should just... >>
Su-hyeun would ensure that the director stayed put.
Of course, things would be different from now on. With today as the starting point, he was nning to tighten his grip on the director¡¯s neck.
The director¡¯s fate was now in Su-hyeun¡¯s hands.
¡°Well, then. I¡¯ll take it as we are in a mutual agreement, so I shall be on my way now.¡±
The moment their discussion came to an end, Su-hyeun didn¡¯t even look back once and left the office.
The heavily-panting director and his reddened face didn¡¯t get up from his seat in the end. He had no choice but to go along with Su-hyeun¡¯s demands, but that wasn¡¯t what he originally was aiming for.
Not only that, his weakness had been taken advantage of, too.
If that file got leaked to the press or to someone in the political circle, the director¡¯s standing would be left in a shaky, precarious situation in an instant.
They¡¯d be saying things like, how could they ever entrust a position responsible for the safety of the whole nation to a person like him?
¡°Uwaaaaaaahk-!¡±
Su-Hyeun heard a certain scream exploding out from inside the director¡¯s office as soon as he closed the door behind him.
A wry smile floated up on his lips.
<< Who do you think you were trying to fool? >>
The offer the director made at the beginning, the one about him working for them, was pretty much the same thing as Su-hyeun helping them out in a one-sided manner.
Serving an organization after joining it out of righteousness.
That was what the director was demanding from the get-go, and he¡¯d have achieved a massive feat if Su-hyeun epted that demand and decided to join the organization.
The end result was aplete opposite of what he had been scheming, however.
The director now had no choice but to do Su-hyeun¡¯s bidding in this one-sided rtionship.
Step-
Su-hyeun felt refreshed and relieved for some reason after leaving that office.
It was his first time seeing such a crumpled expression on the director¡¯s face, and the fact that he was responsible for that made him feel doubly refreshed.
Su-hyeun exited from the building, climbed aboard his car, and set off to elsewhere right away. He was on his way to the address contained in Lee Ju-ho¡¯s text he received earlier in the morning.
It was a small one-bedroom studio t located in Sillim-dong.
Su-hyeun confirmed the surroundings first and entered the elevator. Then, he pressed the bell on the door right before his eyes.
Ding dong-
A short whileter, a voice came from the inside. ¡°Who is it?¡±
¡°I¡¯m a hyung that Hak-joon knows.¡± (Note to editor: this is what the raw says, but wouldn¡¯t it be better to go with ¡°It¡¯s Hak-joon¡¯s friend¡±?)
¡°....I beg your pardon?¡±
The returned voice was soft and mixed with confusion. It belonged to a young woman.
The door opened up a little whileter.
Creak-
Hair tumbling beyond her shoulders, fox-like facial features and small eyes without eyshes.
It was a woman in her early twenties, around the same age as Hak-joon himself.
Su-hyeun observed her face before asking her. ¡°Are you Miss Gwok Yun-seon?¡±
¡°Pardon? Ah, I am.¡±
¡°I¡¯m Hak-joon¡¯s friend. It¡¯s a bit of a stretch to say we¡¯re really close, but....¡± Su-hyeun nced at Lee Ju-ho¡¯s message on his phone¡¯s screen one more time and spoke. ¡°I¡¯d like to help you, if you don¡¯t mind.¡±
¡°You want to... help?¡±
¡°It¡¯s a bit uncool to just waltz inside your home when you¡¯re staying alone, so.... Should we go to a nearby cafe, instead?¡±
¡°That is....¡±
¡°Fortunately, there aren¡¯t anyone nearby. I¡¯ve made sure of it, so you don¡¯t have to worry.¡±
Yun-seon¡¯s eyes becamepletely round at his words.
Soon, though, she bit down on her lip hard, put on her slippers and stepped outside the front door. ¡°Please lead the way.¡±
¡°You made the right decision.¡±
A small cafe was located on the studio building¡¯s ground floor. She and Su-hyeun settled down on a spot not readily visible to the others.
Two cups of coffee were brought out, and Su-hyeun opened his mouth. ¡°You¡¯re Hak-joon¡¯s girlfriend, am I correct?¡±
¡°Yes, I am. We met when we were still students.¡±
¡°When you say students....¡±
¡°When we were in second year of high school. We¡¯re now twenty two, so we¡¯ve been together for about four years.¡±
¡°That¡¯s a good time period to be in.¡±
After saying that out loud, Su-hyeun inwardly went, oops.
When he thought about it, his own age wasn¡¯t all that different from the young couple¡¯s. Maybe him living for much longer in his previous life was to me, because this romance felt so young and fresh to him.
Thankfully, Yun-seon didn¡¯t try to dig into his slip of tongue. She asked about him, instead. ¡°You said that you¡¯re Hak-joon¡¯s friend, but how do you even know each other?¡±
¡°Should I say we... work in the same field?¡±
¡°You¡¯re an Awakener, yes?¡±
¡°I am. You probably don¡¯t know much about the stuff happening this side, so.....¡±
¡°No, I do know. You¡¯re Mister Kim Su-hyeun, yes?¡±
He was surprised by her knowing his name, and quickly asked back. ¡°How did you know?¡±
¡°Hak-joon talked about you a couple of times before, saying that you¡¯re a good older friend. There has only ever been one older friend Hak-joon talks about, and that¡¯s you, Mister Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Ah....¡±
She knowing about him wasn¡¯t all that strange, actually. That is, if Hak-joon really did talk about him lots of times to her.
<< That makes exining things much easier. >>
Indeed, this wasn¡¯t a bad development. Thanks to it, she was no longer deeply wary or suspicious of him now.
Su hyeun thought that he didn¡¯t need to beat around the bushes anymore and got down to business right away. ¡°Then allow me to get to the point. Will that be fine?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Miss Yun-seon, I¡¯d like to know more about Hak-joon¡¯s, as well as your, current situation.¡±
¡°Our situation....¡±
A shadow was cast upon her face. Her expression remained gloomy until then, but now it had bepletely dark.
She must¡¯ve been thinking about something, because she had her eyes closed for a little while. But soon afterwards, she stared straight into Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes and asked him. ¡°Before I answer.... May I ask first why you wish to know?¡±
¡°Haven¡¯t I said it earlier?¡±
¡°You mean, you wanted to help us?¡±
¡°That¡¯s correct.¡±
¡°But... why?¡±
What did she mean, why?
She immediately replied the offer of help with suspicion. Either she had never experienced a genuine, no-strings-attached goodwill or help, or maybe, had experienced betrayal at some point.
Of course, it wasn¡¯t as if he didn¡¯t have any reasons.
Technically speaking, there were two.
One was indeed genuine goodwill. He was impressed by Hak-joon¡¯s humanity, and also, something like sympathy to his plight had kicked in, too.
As for the second reason...
<< Ten years from now. >>
It was because of talents and abilities possessed by Hak-joon the Awakener.
Something happened and that caused Hak-joon to possess a different temperament than his current self. In order to find out what that could be, Su-hyeun decided to get in touch with Hak-joon.
His talents and abilities were easily the best among all the Awakeners Su-hyeun knew of. As an example, he managed to reach the A rank in only two years.
Su-hyeun failed to even imagine the number of incidents that could¡¯ve been resolved were he received assistance from just one guy like him.
<< Of course, even if it¡¯s not that.... >>
Su-hyeun held her gaze and replied. ¡°Do I really need something like a reason? He¡¯s my younger friend, isn¡¯t he?¡±
¡°Is that really all?¡±
¡°Although I can¡¯t outright say there aren¡¯t any other factors... At the very least, I do have the power to resolve the problem affecting the both of you. I¡¯m sure you¡¯re aware of this by now.¡±
¡°Well, that is....¡±
Su-hyeun was a newly-appeared rank S Awakener.
If she didn¡¯t know what kind of a person he was, then fine, but as she did know, she was unable to deny that part anymore.
The social status the workforce called ¡®Awakeners¡¯ enjoyed ¨C and arguably, there was practically nothing in this world that the greatest among all of the Awakeners, rank S, couldn¡¯t do.
¡°Will you.... really help us?¡±
¡°Yes, I will.¡±
¡°Without wanting anything in return? I don¡¯t know if you were aware of this, but we don¡¯t have much money.¡±
¡°I¡¯m aware.¡±
¡°But then, why....¡±
Yun-seon asking him soon realized that she was simply repeating the same question now.
If she continued on, then Su-hyeun¡¯s reply would be simr to what he said moments ago.
¡°....Thank you.¡±
Drip-
Teardrops fell from Yun-seon¡¯s eyes.
She teared up for a long time but eventually, her lips began parting slowly.
The truth of the rtionship between Jung Dong-yeong and Hak-joon that began a while ago came out from her mouth next.
Act 7
Step-, step-
Su-hyeun¡¯s steps taking him outside the cafe was slow. Whenever he had a lot to think about, he walked slowly while organizing his chain of thoughts.
<< Now I know why... that event happened. >>
Allegedly, Jung Dong-yeong started off as a gangster.
After bing an Awakener, he turned over a new leaf and started a new life. Although many sought to criticize him, his abilities were still acknowledged and he managed to create a fairly decent Guild on his own.
An Awakener with dark past, starts a brand new life and contributes to society! Now that was a pretty image, indeed.
People didn¡¯t really believed him, but at least they thought he had shaken off the mold of a criminal and started making big bucks the legal way, from the look of things.
But this...
¡°Indeed, you still can¡¯t re-use a cleaned trash, it seems.¡±
Step-
Su-hyeun¡¯s steps came to an abrupt halt.
He could sense a particr pair of gazes near the studio t building, that¡¯s why.
They belonged to the fools that had to vacate their spots for a little while. More correctly, it was Su-hyeun who made them vacate their spots.
All thanks to Lee Ju-ho¡¯s help, of course.
Grit-
His annoyance level began rising up quickly.
No, rather than annoyance, it was anger.
He didn¡¯t think the matter would be this difficult. However, it turned out to be messier than he bargained for, and it was also of a really atrocious nature, too. He now began to understand why Hak-joon grew to hate the world and went down the wrong path.
Su-hyeun figured out why the Ares Guild was wiped off the face of this by Hak-joon¡¯s hands.
He pulled his phone out from the pocket and called someone.
Riiiing-
The ringtone went on for a couple of times before the other side answered the phone.
Oh, you called sooner than I thought. Did something happen?
A lively voice greeted him.
It was the Awakener Kim Do-ui, the right-hand man of the director and the man in charge of all the administrative matters of the organization.
He gave this number to Su-hyeun, saying that he should give him a call if he needed something, but even he didn¡¯t expect to get that call so soon like this.
¡°Can I ask you for a favor?¡±
A favor? That¡¯s rather unexpected, you requesting us for a favor and all.
¡°What¡¯s the matter, didn¡¯t you tell me to contact you if I needed something?¡±
Well, I said that half out of courtesy, you see.
¡°If it¡¯s too difficult for you, then it can¡¯t be helped....¡±
-Courtesy shouldn¡¯t be forgotten between people, you know. Alright, then. What is this favor all about?
¡°It¡¯s not being courteous, but more like debt, instead. Well, fine. Let¡¯s just say I¡¯ll owe you one.¡±
A loud, manlyugh came out from the phone after Su-hyeun said those words. It seemed that Kim Do-ui was impressed by him not trying to beat around the bush and get straight to the point.
Right after theughter died down, Su-hyeun continued on. ¡°I¡¯d like you to protect someone for me. I¡¯m about to start something, and things might get a bit noisy around here, you see.¡±
-Something noisy? What are you nning to do this time?
¡°Well, that is....¡±
When Su-hyeun exined it, Kim Do-ui asked back in a startled voice.
Isn¡¯t that illegal? Even if that¡¯s all true, it hasn¡¯t been investigated yet, so...
¡°To me, this whole situation is just too obvious not to make my move. Not certainly after learning more about the matter, anyhow. It already produced a victim, too. I¡¯d like to entrust you with the investigation afterwards, as well.¡±
Even then, it¡¯s not right to make a move so soon.
¡°Even if it¡¯s the wrong timing, I¡¯ll still do it regardless. If my conduct is going to be a problem, then I¡¯ll consider it at ater stage. Because, I¡¯m....¡± Su-hyeun gritted his teeth and finished his words. ¡°...A little bit pissed off at the moment, you see.¡±
Step, step-
Hak-joon kitted out in a set of smart business suit and pointed loafers was walking on a long corridor.
This was the Guild House of the Ares Guild.
The Guild had rented out a high-rise building located in the Gangnam district in its entirety, and as for the amount of revenue they earned, it certainly didn¡¯t lose out to what a regrrge Guild made.
He felt slightly weirded out while walking on this wide, shily decorated corridor.
It was simply too different from the norm.
<< A bodyguard, is it.... >>
Up until a few moments ago, he was wallowing in the sewers, but now, he was told to go to a high-ss party to perform the role of a bodyguard to a scion of an elite family.
His innards were churning from this sense of discord. Especially more so when he thought about the person he was going to meet right now.
<< I mean, there should be a limit to treating you like a ve. >>
Trying to smooth out his crumpled expression turned out to be a lot harder than he thought.
Apparently, it¡¯s a trend to have Awakeners act as bodyguards these days. So, put your best suit on ande to the Guild House. Let¡¯s smile when we meetter.
<< So this was why he spared my face during the beatdown. >>
It seemed that the bastard didn¡¯t hit him in the face because a job requiring it was in the pipeline.
<< In any case, him and his love of money.... >>
Grit-
Hak-joon gritted his teeth and inwardly muttered the same pledge as always.
<< One of these day, I¡¯ll definitely.... >>
He closed his eyes, and controlled his breathing.
From hereon, it was crucial to control his expressions.
Just as the text message ¡®Let¡¯s smile when we meetter¡¯ implied, Jung Dong-yeong probably was nning to greet him with a smiling face.
So, Hak-joon¡¯s own expression greeting that face back must be a smile, too. If he slipped a little and disyed just a hint of gloom, then a p woulde flying in.
He had no problem getting pped a hundred times, but the real problem wasn¡¯t that.
<< I need to endure it. Right. >>
He somehow reined in his boiling anger and opened his eyes again.
And then, he continued down the corridor and turned around the corner.
It was at that point he discovered a familiar face.
¡°So you finally came.¡±
¡°....Brother Su-hyeun?¡±
It was indeed Su-hyeun.
For a moment there, Hak-joon doubted his own eyes and blinked several times. Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t possibly be here, though.
Hak-joon hurriedly walked over to Su-hyeun and asked him. ¡°Why are you here, bro?¡±
Chapter 58
Chapter 58: Chapter 58
¡°Why? Can¡¯t I be here?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°No, that is not what I mean... Wait, can you?¡±
Hak-joon was embarrassed and talked gibberish. Su-hyeun chuckled, looking at Hak-joon. He could be confused since Su-hyeun was not an awakener of Ares Guild.
¡°Well. I did juste in...¡± Su-hyeun blurred the end.
¡°Just?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°The door was open. It was not under heavy surveince. There was a man who asked me to show my ID, so I showed him my awakener registration card. Then, he just let me in.¡±
It looked like the manager of the guild house thought Su-hyeun was a guest of Ares Guild. It was amon thing that an awakener got an invitation and visited to awakeners¡¯ guilds.
¡°But why are you here...? Hak-joon asked.
The Ares Guild, Hak-joon thought, was like a tiger¡¯s den. He was d to see Su-hyeun but that was another story. Jung Dong-yeong had been paying attention to Su-hyeun for a long time.
¡°Why? You don¡¯t d to see me?¡± Su-hyeun grinned.
¡°Of course, I am d. But that is that. Why did youe here? Wait. How did you know I am here?¡±
¡°Ms. Yun-seon told me that you will be here. Why did you not answer my phone?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s answer, Hak-joon¡¯s face became stiff. Su-hyeun had never seen this cold expression of Hak-joon before.
Hak-joon asked in a very low voice, ¡°...How did you meet her?¡±
¡°Well. I had been investigating,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°How? No. Why?
¡°You asked why I came here?¡±
Su-hyeun changed the subject and answered the previous question.
¡°Where is the bastard, Jung Dong-yeong?¡±
¡°...Yes?¡±
It was an unexpected answer. But that was also not something to pass on. At the obvious hostility in Su-hyeun¡¯s voice, Hak-joon was lost for words. His brane froze and could not find a word to say.
¡°I said, where is Jung Dong-yeong? I have a business for him,¡± Su-hyeun pressed for an answer.
Hak-joon collected his mind and answered, ¡°...He probably in the room at the end of the hallway.¡±
¡°Over there?¡±
After hearing the answer, Su-hyeun immediately turned his body and started walking. Hak-joon urgently grabbed his arm and asked.
¡°Su-hyeun, how did you know about Jung Dong-yeong? And what are you going to do with him?¡±
¡°A conversation,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°What conversation?¡±
¡°A body conversation?¡±
¡°...What?¡±
¡°Why are you so surprised? Don¡¯t worry too much. Depending on the situation, I may not fight.¡±
Su-hyeun shrugged his shoulder and asked, ¡°So, what are you going to do?¡±
¡°...Whose information is this?¡±
The director, who was grunting, clenched his teeth at the sudden news.
Kim Do-ui replied to the director who was reading the report, ¡°This is Kim Su-hyeun¡¯s report. What would you do?¡±
At Kim Do-ui¡¯s question, the director nced over the report once again. In the short paper, there was a report from Su-hyeun and the opinion of Kim do-ui about it.
¡°What does he want?¡± the director asked.
¡°I think he is asking your favor to investigate.¡±
¡°Favor? Favor my ass,¡± the director grumbled.
Su-hyeun was not asking a favor. He pretended to be polite, but the report was nothing but an order. He was the guy who had been making a fuss about the director¡¯s weaknesses.
¡°What will you do?¡±
At Kim Do-ui¡¯s question, the director lit a cigarette. He took a puff on his cigarette. It made him clear his brain. He was lost in thought, blowing cigarette smoke. His head was emptied, but soon, thoughts were filled again. When he reorganized things again, there was only one answer.
¡°Well. Do some research. Take Seung-cheol with you,¡± the director ordered.
¡°You mean the department head, Kang Seung-cheol?¡±
¡°Yes. They should start to move soon, too. They can¡¯t be in training forever.¡±
¡°Ok, sir.¡±
¡°Good. Now leave.¡±
At the director¡¯s gesture, Kim Do-ui left the director¡¯s office. The director looked down the report again.
He mumbled, ¡°It looks like the Awakeners reditation Authority came up to that dude¡¯s expectation.¡±
At that moment, a thought crossed his mind. Might be, all this was what Su-hyeun aimed for.
It was a small room full of cigarette smoke. In the room, Jung Dong-yeong was talking on the phone, puffing up his cigarette.
¡°Yes, yes. Negotiation was over... Of course. People these days are quite dirty. It makes money and easy to do. This is a pretty good thing...¡±
Knock, knock¡ª
Jung Dong-young hardened his expression at knocking sound.
¡°I will call you back. Yes,¡±
He finished the phone call and shouted at the door, ¡°Who are you?¡±
¡°I am Hak-joon.¡±
¡°Hak-joon? Come in.¡±
When the person he had waited came, Jung Dong-young lit a cigarette again. The door jarred open. Hak-joon who entered the room saw the cigarette smoke and frowned his face.
¡°Don¡¯t frown. It doesn¡¯t harm your body since you are an awakener as well. Besides, you have plenty of money to buy those.¡±
Jung Dong-young was a heavy smoker. He thought one of the greatest privileges being awakener was he could smoke as much as he wanted. The harm to the body of cigarettes was not much harm to the awakeners.
¡°Are you ready? Our guild was on the charge to guard in this party. You take care of directing young guild members this time.¡±
¡°I will be ready when I get dressed. By the way, there is a guest to want to see you.¡±
¡°Want to see me? Who is that?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun. He is the one you were looking for.¡±
¡°...Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Jung Dong-young¡¯s eyes were crumpled. Kim Su-hyeun, who Hak-jun had known before, was a new S-Rank awakener candidate. He, who had been prominent for two years, was evaluated as having the best talent among the existing awakeners.
¡°Yes. He said he came here to talk with you.¡±
¡°That man needed to talk with me?¡±
¡°Well. More exactly, he came for guild master of Ares Guild that I belong.¡±
¡°Hmm...,¡± Jung Dong-young thought for a moment and opened his mouth. ¡°Hey, Hak-joon.¡±
It was a low, benevolent voice. Hak-joon had rather hated Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s this kind of voice. He could not read what he was thinking.
¡°...Yes,¡± Hak-joon answered.
¡°You are not nning some silly things, aren¡¯t you?
¡°Yes?¡±
Hak-joon was embarrassed and Jung Dong-young grinned. At that grin, Hak-joon shivered his body and lowered his head. Jung Dong-young smiled as if he was satisfied at Hak-joon¡¯s reaction. Then, he shook his hand and said.
¡°Never mind. Just go and get him.¡±
¡°Yes, sir. And...¡±
¡°And what?¡±
¡°You didn¡¯t give me the medicine of this month.¡±
¡°Ah, you mean this?¡±
Jung Dong-young took out a small bottle from his pocket and shook it.
¡°When things go well, I will think about it.¡±
¡°What do you mean ¡®think¡¯?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun. You did hide him, didn¡¯t you?¡±
¡°That is...!¡±
¡°Shut up, you punk. Anyway, if I talk well with Kim Su-hyeun, I will think about it. That time, there is your contribution, too.¡±
Hak-joon gritted his teeth. He had told him many times that he had never known it before, but Jung Dong-yeong did not believe it. He even beat Hak-joon up, ming that, but he still was not over.
¡°But, sir. If you don¡¯t give that to me...¡±
¡°I know. Your girlfriend will suffer for a while. But what can I do, can¡¯t I?¡±
Jung Dong-yeong answered as if he was truly sorry and as if he was soothing his younger brother. Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s words burned deep inside of Hak-joon. He remembered the person who would suffer soon because of that medicine, he rather felt angry.
¡°You brat. What is that face? Huh? Hey, Hak-joon.¡±
On the face of Hak-joon, Jung Dong-young likewise hardened his face and rose from his seat.
¡°Huh? What is that face? You f*cking...¡±
Knock, knock¡ª
That time, somebody knocked on the door and entered the room.
¡°Sorry for interrupting.¡±
Hak-joon and Jung Dong-yeong turned their heads.
Su-hyeun strode in the room and looked at Hak-joon and Jung Dong-yeong.
¡°As I am listening, I keep hearing a lot of annoying words.¡±
¡°Su-hyeun?¡± Hak-joon said in surprise.
¡°Su-hyeun... Mr. Su-hyeun?¡±
Jung Dong-yeong frowned first as he saw Su-hyeun who had entered without permission. But that didn¡¯t go long. Soon, he made an amiable smile and weed him.
¡°Well. Sorry for showing you a bad situation. Don¡¯t stand like that. Pleasee in and take a sit.¡±
Jung Dong-yeong did not think Su-hyeun had heard the conversation from the room. If he thought Su-hyeun had heard everything, he would not talk and make a smile like that to him. If that was not true, it would mean that Jung Dong-yeong was the same type of person with the director. Su-hyeun sat in a chair as Jung Dong-yeong had asked. It was the time when Hak-joon tried to stand up from the chair and stand back of Jung Dong-yeong.
Su-hyeun opened his mouth, ¡°What are you doing? You sit down, too.¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°Sit down. why are you standing like that?¡±
Su-hyeun pointed next to him. Hak-joon saw Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s face. At that moment, Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s eyes frowned insignificantly. It was only a few moments, but it was rare for Jung Dong-young to show this change in front of an important guest.
¡°Sit down, Hak-joon. Yes. Don¡¯t just stand like that. He is my guest but also your bro.¡±
His eyes and speech were not saying the same thing. Su-hyeun recognized those differences. He felt like he knew what kind of person Jung Dong-yeong was.
¡°He is the type of person who extremely sensitive when somebody challenges his authority. He is weak to the power but doesn¡¯t hesitate to press down weaker people than him,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
It was not hard to figure out what kind of person he was. He had experienced this type of person so many times. It was just the difference between who was worse and iller. He had had to go through more details, but as he looked simple, the way to treat him would not be difficult. Hak-joon finally sat next to Su-hyeun. He wanted to rather stand. He felt like the seat made from the needle.
¡°Well. It sounded like you had a trouble with Hak-joon...¡±
As Su-hyeun began to talk, Jung Dong-yeong quickly cut his words.
¡°Oh. That was not a big deal. There was something I gave to Hak-joon every month, but he made a mistake, so I dyed a payday. I am not saying I won¡¯t give it to him...¡±
¡°But isn¡¯t that medicine?¡±
As Su-hyeun¡¯s question continued, Jung Dong-young¡¯s gaze turned to Hak-joon. When sharp gaze flew to him, Hak-joon turned his face. It was obvious what Jung Dong-young¡¯s eyes meant. He was interrogating him about how much he had told. Soon after, Chung changed his expression and replied. Soon after, Jung Dong-young changed his expression and answered.
¡°Ah, yes. That is right. But it is not like medicine for a fatal disease. It also has a side effect if someone takes too much,¡± Jung Dong-young calmly continued to say, ¡°My ability as an awakener is about poison and medicine. Hak-joon¡¯s girlfriend has an unusual illness. So, I made medicine for her. As his boss and bro, it is natural thing that I helped.¡±
Hak-joon clenched his teeth while he was listening to what Jung Dong-yeong said. It was a lie.
¡°An unusual illness?¡± he thought.
It was true that Jung Dong-young made medicine for the disease that Yun-seon had. But in the first ce, the disease was caused by Jung Dong-young¡¯s poison. It was more like an addiction than a disease. That poison ate away at Yun-seon¡¯s body and made it weak. It soon became fine with the medication, but the poison never disappeared.
¡°Hey, Hak-joon. You are a member of our family from today.¡±
In a friendly voice, Jung Dong-young had weed Hak-joon. He didn¡¯t like it, but there was no choice. Hak-joon could not turn Yun-seon away. Hak-joon was not a fool to not know that Yun-seon started to suffer in pain because of him.
¡°Do you want to see your girlfriend die? Huh?¡±
When Hak-joon was tired a little or showed signs of rebellion, Jung Dong-young threatened her life. When he gave her a medicine a littlete, she suffered in pain like a hell every day. And eventually, it would make her die.
¡°If you don¡¯t pass the 20th floor in three months, there will be no medicine. No, no. I¡¯ll give you ten dayster than payday. Tut. I hope she doesn¡¯t bite her tongue to die because of the pain.¡±
Clench¡ª
It was a strange thing. The things that he had tried to not think, all the sudden, popped up his brain. He tried to stop thinking, but he could not help himself. He clenched his teeth. He clenched his fists. His fingers nails started to make the blood from the palms. He was frustrated, resentful, and angry. He bit his lips tightly.
¡°Tut...¡±
Su-hyeun looked at Hak-joon who was trying to hold his tears. Soon, he looked at Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s eyes.
¡°Hey, you.¡±
¡°...Hey, you?¡±
¡°Yes. You.¡±
Jung Dong-yeong was embarrassed by Su-hyeun¡¯s sudden attitude change. Su-hyeun who lost his temper got up from his seat and looked down at Jung Dong-yeong.
¡°Stop doing your bullshit and get up.¡±
Chapter 59
Chapter 59: Chapter 59
Su-hyeun shook his finger. Beating somebody who sat down was not what he wanted. It had been a long time since he was so angry with someone.
¡°Hey! Did you just say bullsh*t...?¡±
Jung Dong-yeong still sat down and tapped the edge of his chair. He frowned his face and contorted his brows. He looked at up Su-hyeun andughed, twisting his mouth.
¡°What are you doing now? You are misbehaving,¡± Jung Dong-yeong continued to say. He was not afraid of Su-hyeun. There was a clear gap between the two, but there was something Jung Dong-yeong had believed.
¡°If you kill me here, what do you think will happen?¡±
¡°You want to say I will be a criminal?¡±
¡°Thew is very convenient. No matter how powerful you are, you can¡¯t turn your back on the world.¡±
Su-hyeun was certainly strong. Just getting attention as a new S-Rank meant that he was way above the A-Rank already. But just because somebody had power, it did not mean he could do anything.
Jung Dong-yeong thought that he lived within the fence of thew. He also cleverly took advantage of the outside of the fence. Jung Dong-yeong thought that was his real power was getting protection from thew and using it as well.
¡°So, what will you do? What if I won¡¯t get up? If you are being ridiculous like this, your dear Hak-joon will...¡±
Whiz¡ª
Boom¡ª
Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s words were cut off in the middle. His head went nk all a sudden. It was an unexpected situation.
¡°What?¡± Jung Dong-yeong thought.
Vroom¡ª
Boom¡ª
Jung Dong-yeong, whose head was stuck in the wall, shook his head. He was beaten hard, and it seemed like he was losing his mind for a short moment.
Rumble¡ª
The wall copsed and the empty room on the other side was revealed. Jung Dong-yeong struggled to get up from his lying posture and looked at Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun slowly walked towards him.
¡°Are you insane?¡± Jung Dong-yeong asked in a harsh voice.
This was the center of the Ares Guild. Other guild members would probablye soon. Storming in the guild building and using violence was not something someone sane would do.
¡°Nope,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°Do you think Awakeners reditation Authority let you go away? No, not just the Authority. The Guild Union won¡¯t let you run away either. You are persecuting an innocent guild right now...¡±
¡°Innocent? You guys are guilty.¡± Su-hyeun nced Hak-joon while he was answering.
Jung Dong-yeong, who realized the meaning, smiled. ¡°No way... Are you really doing this because of him?¡±
¡°Obviously?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes turned to Jung Dong-yeong again. Su-hyeun did not like his smile so his fist almost flew to punch him. But he held it. He wanted to hear what he would say for a moment.
¡°If you really do this for him, you should not do it like this. Right?¡±
¡°Then, how should I do?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°If you touch me now, his girlfriend will die. All right?¡±
Jung Dong-yeong was talking about Yun-seon. It was Jung Dong-young who gave her poison and made her Hak-joon¡¯s weaknesses.
¡°How do you not appreciate your lifesaver? Why are you attacking me like a dog biting the owner? I knew he was going to stick with you and do crazy things like this! I wanted to teach him some lessons first before... F*ck...¡±
¡°A lifesaver? Does he really think himself that way?¡±
He might have said that thinking Su-hyeun was recording all this for securing proof. It was a sickening word. Su-hyeun managed to resist wanting to pick his ears.
¡°Lifesaver my ass. You are the one who nted the poison.¡±
¡°Haha. Okay. So, you already researched everything. Then what? Are you sure you are doing this really for Hak-joon? Huh? If you do this to me, Yun-seon will die.¡± Jung Dong-yeong looked at Hak-joon¡¯s face behind Su-hyeun. Hak-joon, who had been uneasy the whole time, turned pale at the words of Chung Dong-young.
¡°Do you really think this nut job is a good thing for that brat? I don¡¯t think so. Hak-joon, is a dumb man who even can¡¯t breathe without his girlfriend. Why do you this? For what? I will tell you what. You are doing this, killing me and trying to be self-satisfied, aren¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Well. There is that reason, too.¡±
¡°Yes! You are just venting your anger now. You are not doing this for Hak-joon. What happens if I die like this, or if I churn and deny making him the medication?¡±
Su-hyeun did not answer. Instead, he turned his eyes to Hak-joon, who was standing behind him. At that moment, Jung Dong-yeong opened his mouth.
¡°I didn¡¯t want to say this but... Hey, Hak-joon.¡±
¡°...Yes.¡±
¡°What do you want to do? You choose. Do you want to choose Yun-seon or Su-hyeun, who you don¡¯t even know much?¡± Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s asked in the low voice.
Hak-joon¡¯s eyes were shaking.
¡°I... I...¡±
Hak-joon closed his eyes tight. It felt like his sight turned dark and his brain turned white. If possible, he wanted to run away from this situation now.
¡°Hey, Hak-joon,¡± Su-hyeun called him.
Hak-joon opened his eyes again at Su-hyeun¡¯s calling. When he lifted his head, Su-hyeun was looking at him.
¡°Do you want me to help you?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°...I don¡¯t know what to do.¡±
Hak-joon covered his face with his hands. Suddenly, he remembered his dream of the other day. He was crying for help to the world, but everyone turned away. It was when he gave into Jung Dong-young a long time ago.
¡°There is nothing difficult. Just ask me to help you. Then,¡± Su-hyeun looked back at Jung Dong-yeong continued his words. ¡°I will help you.¡±
Rumble¡ª
The building was shaking as if it would copse soon. Huge magic started to surround the space. Su-hyeun¡¯s magic contained his anger in full.
¡°Boss! What is going on...!¡±
¡°O-oh my god!¡±
The awakeners of Ares Guild arrived in the room, but they were pressed down by Su-hyeun¡¯s magic. Su-hyeun did not even turn his eyes as if he was not interested in those people. He was staring at Hak-joon. Hak-joon¡¯s heart began to pound at Su-hyeun¡¯s words. Su-hyeun said he would help. With that word, Hak-joon felt like reliving a burden.
¡°Help...me.¡±
¡°Choi Hak-joon!¡±
¡°Help...us. Help, please...¡±
Hak-joon did not know what he was talking about. Just as his instincts told him, he just wanted to lean on someone. He had no confidence to walk this dirty and painful road in the future alone.
¡°Well done.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
ording to the gesture of Su-hyeun, a huge me rose around Hak-joon, Jung Dong-yeong, and him. It became like a wall and prevented other awakeners from intervening. Jung Dong-young, with a hardened look, received an ominous feeling that he had never felt before. He had never met anyone who didn¡¯t count the front and the back like this.
¡°From now on, I will tell you the wrong part of what you¡¯ve been saying.¡±
¡°What?¡± Jung Dong-yeong asked.
Su-hyeun pulled out a small ne in his arms. ¡°This is the Sharyes¡¯ treasure. I gained this from the Tower of Trials. I cherished and saved this item so far. It is a recovery item to help recover from all injuries and abnormal conditions. Well, it takes a little time to activate so hard to use during the battle. But...¡±
As Su-hyeun exined the item, the expression of Jung Dong-yeong and Hak-joon changed in the opposite way. They both thought that would be nonsense, but even though they thought the same thing, their final thoughts were different. Su-hyeun looked back at Hak-joon and smiled.
¡°Ipletely removed the poison, so don¡¯t worry.¡±
¡°R-rea...,¡± Hak-joon shouted in surprise. ¡°Really?¡±
¡°No! No! He is lying!¡± Jung Dong-young shouted urgently.
He could not believe Su-hyeun had found the detoxification item. Even if it was true, he still wondered if this item could detox his poison skill. Jung Dong-yeong thought that Su-hyeun was lying right at the moment. No, it couldn¡¯t be a lie.
¡°Well. I don¡¯t care if you believe me or not. And secondly, what you mentioned, I am pressing down an innocent guild or something like that...¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s next words trampled down thest remaining Jung Dong-young¡¯s insurance. ¡°I think I am doing a good thing by getting rid of the Dump Guild pawn. It will be a good reason, won¡¯t it?¡±
¡°How... you!¡±
Jung Dong-young¡¯s face changed drastically as if he tried to ask how Su-hyeun knew about that. Jung Dong-young was always calm. Hak-joon, who had spent a quite long time with him, never saw his such face.
¡°Don¡¯t be so surprised. I knew about it from a long time ago. I was thinking about how to kill those cockroaches soon andter. So I am doing this now.¡±
¡°You... What are you...?¡±
Jung Dong-yeong tried to clean up his twisted brain. His eyes were shaking. When he had heard the name of Su-hyeun, he just thought of him as one of the talented awakeners. So, he thought he could find his weakness and use him as he had done for Hak-joon. That was why he had been searching for him. But...
¡°How does this bastard know about Dump Guild?¡±
Dump Guild was the underground guild that sponsored Ares Guild from behind. Jung Dong-young, a long time ago, contacted them to make Ares Guild. With dirty money, Ares Guild could expand their power quickly. Now, he was in charge of handling the Dump Guild¡¯s work at the light side. It was a secret that no one knew. Even within the guild, he was the only one who knew. But, somehow, Su-hyeun knew about this.
¡°You don¡¯t have to know what I am.¡±
Thump¡ª
Su-hyeun, who had finished talking, walked toward Jung Dong-yeong.
¡°If you have sinned, you have to pay the price.¡±
¡°D-don¡¯te to me!¡± Jung Dong-yeong screamed out loud.
At the same time, some green liquid spouted from Jung Dong-young¡¯s hands and spread out everywhere. It was poison, Jung Dong-young¡¯s main skill.
But Su-hyeun¡¯s skill was ipatible with poison skill.
Sizzle¡ª
The green liquid poison was blocked by the me skill, and dripped down. The liquid that lost its toxicity and became nothing but sticky mucus.
Su-hyeun pulled his sword from the waist area.
¡°Damn it! Damn it!¡±
<> Jung Dong-young thought.
He bit his lips and turned his body. He ran towards the opposite wall and jumped down from the window.
ng¡ª!
Jung Dong-young, who jumped from the tenth floor, tried to find a way tond quickly.
Even if he was A-Rank, falling from this height could potentially break his legs.
¡°I have to get out of here now. And then...¡±
Suddenly, he could hear a familiar voice.
¡°Where are you going?¡±
Stab¡ª
Something hot stuck in Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s head. The thought stopped. The instinctive fear of death filled his brain first, rather than pain. When he rolled his eyes, he could see the face of Su-hyeun.
¡°Don¡¯t...kill...me...¡±
¡°No, I don¡¯t want to.¡±
Ssh¡ª!
Su-hyeun ignored Jung Dong-young¡¯s words and cut his body in half. Then he crushed his hand in the building and looked down the falling body of Jung Dong-young.
¡°If you wanted to beg for your life, you shouldn¡¯t have yed with others first.¡±
Chapter 60
Chapter 60: Chapter 60
Act 8
Jump¡ª
Su-hyeun, who cut off Jung Dong-yeong, jumped back to the building of Ares Guild. The Ares Guild¡¯s awakeners who gathered because of the uproar made absent expressions. They did not know what to do with Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s death. Hak-joon was the same. As if he still had no idea what was going on, Hak-joon had a vacant look as well.
Su-hyeun walked toward Hak-joon and said, ¡°You can go.¡±
¡°G-go where?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°You know where. Why do you ask me?¡± Su-hyeun said.
Hak-joon regained his bearings at Su-hyeun¡¯s question. Then, he jumped up, turned his body, and started to run.
¡°You can¡¯t go anywhere!¡±
¡°Wait a minute. You have to tell us before you go or not! What happened here?¡±
The people of Ares Guild blocked Hak-joon. Hak-joon was in the room with Su-hyeun and he overlooked Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s death. They did not consider him as a member of their guild anymore.
¡°Move,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Rumble¡ª
With the words of Su-hyeun, once again the top of the building was shaken.
¡°You guys won¡¯t move?¡± Su-hyeun said again.
¡°But... that...¡±
The guild members of Ares Guild saw Su-hyeun¡¯s face. They cleared the way one by one. Soon, a path was made through the people. Hak-joon made his way through them and ran in a hurry.
Chuff, chuff¡ª
Soon, the sound of a helicopter came closer.
¡°Just in time,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He already made a mess. So, the people from the Awakeners reditation Authority came now to take charge of the settlement. He scratched his head. He had made a fuss as he liked, but the problem was the settlement.
¡°I guess I will be scolded.¡±
It was certainly a problem to ignore Kim Do-ui¡¯s advice and move immediately. Although Ares Guild was a pawn of Dump Guild, there was a procedure he should have had followed.
¡°Useless,¡± he thought and sighed. But he still thought it was good that he had let Hak-joon go first.
***
Hak-joon pressed the elerator pedal of his car. He drove roughly, not like usual, because he wanted to go home as soon as possible. He parked his car in a hurry when he arrived. He used the stairs, feeling that he could not wait for an elevator. He didn¡¯t rest at all and went up about 10 floors. He could see a familiar door.
It was not like this was more movement than usual for him. But strangely, he was breathless. His heart was beating fast because of tension.
Swish¡ª
¡°Wait!¡±
Somebody called Hak-joon. Hak-joon, who was in a hurry, reached his arm to that man. The man, who lowered his head and stood next to the elevator, immediately raised his arms. Hak-joon narrowed his eyes and reached his hand to that man¡¯s neck.
¡°Who are you?¡± Hak-joon asked.
He was not alone. The three more people were around the man who had called him. They were all B-Rank awakeners.
<> Hak-joon thought. Hak-joon revealed his violent temple just in case.
¡°We came here because of Mr. Su-hyeun. My name is Lee Ju-ho...¡±
¡°Lee Ju-ho?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°Yes. You might have heard my name. I didn¡¯te here for bad intentions. Are you Choi Hak-joon?¡±
When Hak-joon nodded, Lee Ju-ho sighed and continued to say, ¡°Su-hyeun had asked us to stay here until you came. Man. Seriously. I know what is going on but why are you so sensitive? Move this already!¡±
Lee Ju-ho with a tearful face slowly moved Hak-joon¡¯s arm from his neck. Hak-joon became puzzled again. Soon after, Lee Ju-ho quickly left. It looked like Lee Ju-ho thought his role was over now. Hak-joon looked at the back of Lee Ju-ho who was descending the stairs. Hak-joon reacted pretty sensitively because he thought he was the suspicious man who walking around in front of Yun-seon¡¯s house, but it turned out that man was just safeguarding her. The other three looked the same.
¡°What is this?¡± Hak-joon thought.
At first, he thought Su-hyeun made a fuss impulsively because he was upset. But he already had detoxified Yun-seon and paid attention to her safety. Su-hyeun moved much more carefully than Hak-joon expected. Hak-joon took his breath again to rx and headed to Yun-seon¡¯s house.
When he pressed the doorbell, the answer came back after a while.
¡°Hak-joon?¡±
The voice came through the bell was what he often heard, but it was a little different than usual. It was bright and high-pitched unlike the usual voice, which was weak and drooping. Soon, the door opened. He could see a familiar face.
¡°Hak-joon!¡±
He didn¡¯t mishear. It was a bright voice. It was the brightest voice he had heard in recent years.
¡°Are... you all healed?¡±
¡°Yes!¡±
It was hard to ask, but the answer came back immediately. Hak-joon was d.
¡°Sigh¡ª¡±
The heart that was beating hard became calm little by little. It felt like all his energy was disappearing from his body. He barely held that feeling and stepped forward. He hugged her.
¡°I am so d.¡± Hak-joon bit his lips tightly while he was holding Yun-seon. ¡°I... am so d...¡±
He thought there would be a lot of things to say when this moment came. But strangely, no words came to his mind. He just repeated he was d over and over, and finally burst into tears.
***
¡°...So, did you finally do it?¡±
¡°Yes, I did.¡±
Su-hyeun and members of Ares Guild were sandwiched between Kim Do-ui and Kang Seung-cheol. Kim Do-ui leered at awakeners of Ares Guild and looked at Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun looked very confident. Unlike other awakeners who hunched their shoulders, Su-hyeun, who was the main culprit of this situation, sat up straight.
¡°This is a case that you may have to be punished severely. Ares Guild is a guild treated as a semirge guild, and you killed the guild master of such guild,¡± Kim Do-ui said.
¡°I know,¡± Su-hyeun calmly said.
¡°If you knew, why did you do this?¡±
¡°I can¡¯t just overlook that they made more victims.¡±
Kim Do-ui realized why he had such a dignified attitude from his answer. He was thinking there was nothing wrong with what he had done. To Su-hyeun, Jung Dong-yeong was an obvious criminal. He thought he would make more crimes if he just waited and did nothing. The most representative cases were Hak-joon and Yun-seon. Su-hyeun did not regret having acted to Jung Dong-yeong at all.
¡°Well, don¡¯t push him too hard. I bet you knew Ares Guild did illegal things here and there,¡± Kang Seung-cheol said to Kim Do-ui.
¡°Well...¡±
¡°It was just not revealed yet because they spent their money everywhere and lobbied a lot. But it was true that Ares Guild was closer to a criminal guild. Well, and if Dump Guild was rted here, it is not something we can just overlook, even though they used billions of dors.¡±
Kim Do-ui groaned. It was as what Kang Seung-cheol said. Ares Guild was a vicious guild that had long beenmittingrge and small crimes. From the beginning, the guild master Jung Dong-yeong was from the notorious gang. So, it was natural that the tendency of the guild had followed him.
The reason why Ares Guild had not been punished so far was because of the bribe of the guild master, Jung Dong-yeong. The money was sent to the top of the audits, so surveince was not done properly. In addition, he did notmit serious crimes that crossed the line. So, the Authority did not touch Jung Dong-yeong and Ares Guild.
¡°If we think about right and wrong... Jung Dong-yeong had a problem in the first ce. There will be no problem if we consider this as an ident caused by a dispute between awakeners,¡± Kang Seung-cheol said.
¡°Well, that is not wrong, but...¡±
¡°And besides, as this man said, if Jung Dong-yeong was rted to Dump Guild, we should give him a prize or something. And...¡± Kang Seung-cheol whispered at Kim Do-ui¡¯s ear, ¡°the director said just put this to bed.¡±
¡°Did he really say that? What happened?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Kang Seung-cheol shrugged.
Kim Do-ui nodded. He was actually a little worried that Su-hyeun might fall out with the Authority. So, he thought this was a fortune. One way or another, Kim Do-ui agreed that Ares Guild was a social evil.
¡°Okay. Then, let¡¯s investigate more at first,¡± Kim Do-ui said.
¡°Good idea,¡± Kang Seung-cheol agreed.
Kang Seung-cheol began to like Kim Do-ui for the first time. They had been conflicted in every case. It was the first time that they agreed on something.
¡°Then, I will leave now,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°How can you be so calm like that? Huh?¡±
Kim Do-ui made a confused face at Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun could be used of a crime by the case progress but he acted like that would never happen. At Kim Do-ui¡¯s question, Su-hyeun shrugged his shoulders and left. Kim Do-ui sighed as he watched Su-hyeun being far away.
<> he thought.
He had met many awakeners for a long time. But from their first meeting, Su-hyeun gave him a strange feeling. He saved the citizens, even revealing his identity that he had hidden so far. He also revealed his ability as a new S-Rank. Not just that, but this time he killed Jung Dong-yeong and punished Ares Guild formiting so many crimes.
<> he thought.
It was like what Kang Seung-cheol had said. The fighting between awakeners was something like extraterritoriality. If it was not a crime like a purposeless murder, under a valid reason, a murder was somewhat epted. Moreover, if it was about a malicious awakener like Jung Dong-yeong, it was quite understandable. The pawn of Dump Guild was without a doubt.
¡°Even if not that... Government can¡¯t touch S-Rank awakener these days.¡±
The S-Rank awakeners were directly rted to the force level of the country. He had a justifiable cause, and he was attracting attention to S-Rank awakeners. He was like a tycoon that was hard to touch.
¡°Well, in the only case, if he is really S-Rank...¡±
Soon, there would be a reexamination. The treatment of Su-hyeun would be decided as the rtionship between Dump Guild and Jung Dong-yeong as well as the new rank he would get.
***
<>
It was the way back home. Su-hyeun was relieved. It was true that he did the things somewhat in a fit of anger. Of course, he was confident that it would not be the worst situation in various circumstances. In the future that he remembered, when Hak-joon killed Jung Dong-yeong, he was pronounced innocent. So, he thought he could manage somehow.
<>
He expected the fact that he had saved the people of Anyang would help him avoid the worst situation. Of course, that would be the matter when people failed to find a rtionship between Jung Dong-yeong and Dump Guild. If they found it, then it would be another achievement for Su-hyeun.
¡°The problem is it won¡¯t be easy to find it.¡±
It was clear that Ares Guild had a rtionship with Dump Guild. But the problem was with only that information, it would be still hard to find the root of Dump Guild. Even if the Authority started to do investigate, they would hide more. In particr, Dump Guild was not active in Korea yet.
¡°To find them...¡± Su-hyeun, who was walking on the street, looked over the top of the far away building. ¡°I guess throwing bait is the best.¡±
And the bait was the ident just had happened in the Ares Guild building. He took away his eyes and walked again.
He headed to a narrow alley. He felt a gaze looking at him from afar. Not long after, the gaze lost direction and purpose because once Su-hyeun entered the alley, he disappeared.
Chapter 61
Chapter 61: Chapter 61
The awakener of Chinese Dump Guild, Chao Feng, hade to Korea to see Jung Dong-yeong.
It was sudden news; Jung Dong-yeong was killed by Kim Su-hyeun.
Not too long ago, Su-hyeun forced Dump Guild into the re of publicity. It had been spreading little by little, but the name Dump Guild had never been mentioned as often as it was these days because everyone hushed up and was cautious. In some countries other than Korea, Dump Guild was already firmly established.
<> Chao Feng thought.
The opponent was not an easy one. Su-hyeun had not been properly reexamined yet, but he was under the spotlight as a new S-Rank candidate. Furthermore, considering the time when he first became an awakener, the potential for future growth would be endless. If he was already considered S-Rank, what would happen if he grew more?
Chao-Feng watched Su-hyeun through a telescope. He was in the middle of the crowd. If he got closer to him, he would notice the tail. If he used his skill to chase, he would sense the magic. However, there were numerous ways to monitor other people. Just like now.
While he was watching Su-hyeun, Chao Feng missed him among the crowd.
¡°Where did he go?¡±
Swish¡ª
He turned his telescope and looked around the ce where Su-hyeun was. But somehow, he could not find him at all. He disappeared in a short moment when he was blocked by another person.
¡°Did I make a mistake? Where the hell...¡± Chao Feng mumbled.
¡°Right? Where did he go?¡±
Swish¡ª
In a surprise, Chao Feng turned his head in the direction where the voice came from. And what he saw was the face of Su-hyeun, who had stood afar just a moment ago.
Thump¡ª!
Chao Feng felt dizzy as if he had been in a long sleep. But when he came to his senses, he realized he wasn¡¯t asleep.
¡°What the...¡±
¡°Did you wake up?¡±
It was fluent Chinese. Chao Feng opened his eyes widely. He tried to get up quickly, but his body was tied up. He could not move as he wanted.
¡°Ugh¡ª¡±
¡°Don¡¯t struggle. It¡¯s a specially ordered item from a craftsman to bind the awakeners, so it won¡¯t be easy to break.¡±
Su-hyeun was sitting in front of Chao Feng and looking down at his face. Su-hyeun was sitting calmly. Chao Feng looked up him. His eyes were shaking.
¡°How...?¡± Chao Feng asked.
¡°You are about B-Rank, aren¡¯t you? You looked at me from afar, but it was not strange for me to notice you. Well. This isn¡¯t the first time I¡¯ve received tailing.¡±
Not just the contents of what he said but also his fluent Chinese was something surprising. Chao Feng still did not understand the situation now.
¡°You are in Dump Guild, right?¡±
Silence.
¡°I guess I am right since you didn¡¯t answer the question.¡±
Chao Feng bit his lips. Su-hyeun spoke in an almost certain voice.
Chao Feng thought.
He had investigated him already. ording to his investigation, he was an ordinary person who didn¡¯t study much. He didn¡¯t finish high school. Chao Feng could not understand how Su-hyeun spoke Chinese so fluently. He also could not understand how he knew so much about Dump Guild. Moreover, noticing the tailings and approaching in a moment was remarkable.
¡°You... What the hell are you?¡± Chao Feng asked.
¡°I don¡¯t need any questions from someone who was tailing me. No, you just don¡¯t talk from now on.¡±
¡°What?¡±
Su-hyeun sat up from his seat.
Crack¡ª
Su-hyeun crushed Chao Feng¡¯s shoulder. His shoulder was shattered but Chao Feng bit his lips and put up with the pain. He even did not scream. Su-hyeun clicked his tongue at that.
¡°Wow. You are really dogged.¡±
There were all sorts of guys in Dump Guild. He was sure that there were pretty used to the pain like this.
¡°Continuing what I said, you should not open your mouth before me. You have to only open your mouth when I ask you something. If you don¡¯t answer me, your bones will be broken one by one.¡±
¡°Just kill me,¡± Chao Feng said.
¡°I¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun crushed Chao Feng¡¯s shoulder again.
¡°¡ªwill decide that.¡±
Chao Feng moaned.
¡°Then, question number one.¡± Su-hyeun bent at the waist toward Chao Feng and asked, ¡°Which Korean guides are rted to Dump Guild?¡±
Nothing.
¡°So, you won¡¯t tell me? Fine.¡±
Crash, crash¡ª
¡°U...g...h...¡±
¡°Let¡¯s see who wins,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Su-hyeun broke Chao Feng¡¯s arm without hesitation. He broke it slowly to give him enough time to feel the pain. Chao Feng¡¯s eyes opened wide with pain. He tried to put up with it, so he bit his lips. His screams turned to moans.
<> Chao Feng thought.
Something went wrong, really wrong. It was not just a matter he had found where he was and tried to get the information. The real problem was in his question.
It was a full-scale war against Dump Guild. There was nothing else.
The interrogationsted for quite some time. Su-hyeun cut off the sound using magic and continued the interrogation without worrying about the screams. Every time Chao Feng didn¡¯t speak, Su-hyeun broke his bones. He had some sort of background with interrogation because, a long while ago, he had encountered with Dump Guild many times.
By the time the interrogation was over, Chao Feng breathed hisst breath. Su-hyeun did not get much information.
¡°Dump Guild is trying toe into Korea, but I don¡¯t know what guilds they have contacted so far. And they used the Chinese guild to do that.¡±
This was all he figured out. The useful information was only the fact that one Chinese guild was rted to Dump Guild.
It woulde out when they were investigating more. And for this kind of work, the Authority would do better than him.
Dump Guild. The worst criminal group on record. It was made in the USA for the first time. It was the awakeners¡¯ guild that hid under the shade. It was gradually expanding its power and slowly entering Korea. They did not expand in Korea yet, so they did not pay much attention to Su-hyeun, but the recent incident and his work today would drag the attention of them to him. Su-hyeun revealed the name of the Dump Guild to the world. He also prevented their channel, Ares Guild, from expanding in Korea.
Since the first time he had seen the name of the Dump Guild and evacuated the citizens, he had been expecting situations like this; drawing the attention of the Dump Guild was the first and having a head-on collision was the second.
Su-hyeun would have to go to the dark to find Dump Guild. Dump Guild woulde up to the bright side to find Su-hyeun. Then soon, they would meet each other. Su-hyeun was contacted and went straight home. At the entrance to his apartment, Lee Ju-ho was waiting him.
¡°Why are you sote?¡± he asked.
After protecting Yun-seon, he hade here to meet Su-hyeun. He left, as promised, but Su-hyeun came wayter than they expected.
¡°Something happened in the middle,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°What happened?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°I met a guild member of Dump Guild.¡±
¡°Dump...? Are you sure?¡±
Su-hyeun told him what had happened so far, about how he met the Chinese awakener of Dump Guild and that man had watched him. When Su-hyeun finished talking, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face became dark.
¡°So, I guess Dump Guild is finally paying attention to you?¡±
¡°Probably not. When I interrogated him, he said he had found me in the middle while he was with the Ares Guild.¡±
¡°With Ares Guild? Interrogating? How did you...?¡±
¡°That is not a big deal. But I got some information from him. Could you investigate it, please?¡±
Su-hyeun told Lee Ju-ho about what he had found. At the request from Su-hyeun, Lee Ju-ho nodded and sighed.
¡°I think I should change my career. I think I should be hired as your manager rather than working as an awakener.¡±
¡°I can pay you well. If you would like that, just tell me.¡±
¡°No, thanks. I am sure you can¡¯t afford it. I am pretty expensive,¡± Lee Ju-ho answered.
Suhyeun smiled a little. Then, he found a text message from his phone and asked Lee Ju-ho again. ¡°Was their meeting okay?¡±
In the text, there was a message: ¡°Thank you.¡± It was from Hak-joon.
¡°You mean Mr. Hak-joon?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°I am sure they did. I waited until he came home. He was so sensitive! I almost lost my neck today.¡±
Lee Ju-ho took his hand to his neck thinking about what had happened previously. Hak-joon¡¯s ability was several times higher than Lee Ju-ho¡¯s. If Hak-joon had decided to do it, it would not have been difficult to break his neck at that time.
¡°Please understand him. He had enough reason to act that way,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°I do understand. But still, he should buy me a mealter. A very expensive one.¡±
¡°He doesn¡¯t have much money. He was exploited so far...¡±
¡°That is that and this is this. You two have a bright future. He should payter at least,¡± Lee Ju-ho said andughed loud.
Hak-Joon was obviously one of the most promising awakeners in terms of age and ability. Especially since Jung Dong-yeong had disappeared, he would grow much faster. Anyway, one problem was solved. Now, there was only one thing they had to finish urgently.
¡°By the way, you know about tomorrow, right?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Yes, I know.¡±
¡°I asked to handle this as quietly as possible, but some guilds already had a scent. It¡¯s inevitable that the news will spread after the examination, though.¡±
He was talking about the ranking reexamination. It was held once in a certain period. It was a screening where they checked awakeners¡¯ rank again. As he was convinced that he could get S-Rank, so there was no reason to keep dying the screening.
¡°Yes. There is no reason to hide anymore.¡±
S-Rank. It was a rank that meant the highest level of awakener that could be examined by the test. If Su-hyeun could get an S-Rank awakener mark, it would be much easier to do things. Lee Ju-ho, who was expecting the appearance of the new S-Rank awakener, shook hands with Su-hyeun.
¡°Then I will see you tomorrow at the Awakeners reditation Authority.¡±
Chapter 62
Chapter 62: Chapter 62
Act 9
It snowed a lot. It was the worst snowfall of the winter; the traffic was even paralyzed. Several cars arrived at the Awakeners reditation Authority. Some people were standing and waiting outside of the car in the midst of this heavy snowfall.
¡°A lot of people gathered in this weather.¡±
A middle-aged man with a long, thick cigar in his mouth stared at the falling snow. There were many groups of two or three people around the building, but he didn¡¯t care about them because he already knew them. They were people he met by chance before.
¡°The information was blocked though... It is strange,¡± the man¡¯s assistant said.
¡°Well, they all have ears. And if they want to figure out, there are always ways. We did the same, didn¡¯t we?¡± he replied.
Ripper Guild. It was one of the tenrgest guilds. In terms of the number of awakeners possessed, it was the best guild in Korea. The middle-aged man was a vice guild master of such Ripper Guild. His name was Kim Seok-jin. Money, power, and honor: the vice guild master position gave him all of that. In fact, he was the one who actually led the guild instead of the guild master, who did not show up most of the time. Of course, the fact that he was just the guild¡¯s second inmand didn¡¯t change.
<>
Kim Seok-jin breathed the cigar smoke through the snow and recalled the guild master of Ripper Guild, Park Ji-yeon. She was an awakener of S-rank, and only five of them existed in Korea. The Ripper Guild was able toe this far, not only because he worked very hard, but also thanks to her name and title as the only S-rank awakener in the guild. She was as beautiful as the celebrities and also had outstanding talent and achievements as an awakener. Half of the awakeners who joined the Ripper Guild joined because of her.
¡°Damn it. This is so unfair,¡± Kim Seok-jin said quietly to himself.
¡°What are you talking about?¡±
¡°...Nothing.¡±
Kim Seok-jin dropped the cigar he had been keeping in his mouth and stepped on it like a habit. He knew why he was in such a bad mood.
<>
He didn¡¯t like the fact that he had toe by himself to scout a person. He had thought he could just send one attendant, but he could not do that because Park Ji-yeon meddled.
¡°Vice guild master. You go.¡±
Park Ji-yeon made him do it because she was too busy climbing the tower. In the end, it was his job to recruit the new S-Rank.
¡°Let¡¯s see... In other guilds...¡±
He nced around. He could see several outstanding guilds.
¡°From Blue Dragon... the guild master himself came. Silence Guild... How many are there? Are they going to push with this number of people?¡±
Thepetition was pretty stiff. He had no idea how all they got the information, but not only the guilds but also the press came. Of course, this crowd was nothing. At the time of Park Ji-yeon¡¯s rank reexamination, there was no ce to put their feet.
Kim Seok-jin lit up one more cigar and asked his assistant, ¡°This S-rank candidate is in his twenties?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. He will be the second S-Rank awakener in their twenties after our guild master. As looking at what happened in Anyang a while ago, I think it won¡¯t be hard for him to get S-Rank.¡±
¡°Then the problem will be ranking, I suppose.¡±
¡°Yes. We have to figure out Kim Su-hyeun¡¯s Magic Factor and physical ability... But since he is just in his second year as an awakener, I think it will be hard topare him with other S-Rank awakeners.¡±
¡°Well. The proficiency of skill will be different.¡±
¡°But still, he has great talent.¡±
The evaluation of Kim Su-hyeun had been made many times here and there. But he never showed himself for an official appearance. His only aplishment was he caught the boss of the green-colored dungeon when the outbreak had happened in Anyang City. And now, it was time to take an objective assessment.
Then, all of a sudden, the journalists on one side were disturbed. They whispered to each other to keep the information, but awakeners who had good ears could hear what they were saying.
<> Kim Seok-jin thought and started to walk quickly.
***
¡°...Why are there so many people?¡±
¡°There is no perfect secret in the world. Actually, there are not that many. When the reexamination of Park Ji-yeon of Ripper Guild happened, there were at least thousands of people gathered.¡±
¡°You mean the reporters?¡±
¡°Hundreds of guilds, too.¡±
Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho talked about the many people gathered in front of the Authority building. It looked like there were about one hundred people. Su-hyeun, who had initially intended to take examine quietly, felt embarrassed.
¡°Su-hyeun! Over here!¡±
Then, a familiar voice came from one side. When he turned his head, he could see Hak-joon and Yun-seon. Their faces looked much happier than before. Su-hyeun did not know anyone here except them, so he started to walk to them, waving his hand.
Rather, he tried to go.
¡°Are you the awakener Kim Su-hyeun? I am from Daewoong News. Could you give me a moment...?¡±
People started to gather in a sh. Su-hyeun stopped his walking because of the crowd and said, ¡°Let me through.¡±
It was a calm voice, but everybody could hear it. Some slippy people stepped back but some did not.
¡°It will only take a second! As a new S-Rank awakener candidate¡ª¡±
¡°You stopped the catastrophe that almost happened in Anyang City, how did you know about¡ª¡±
They were the reporters. Unlike the others who came out to scout for their awakeners¡¯ guild, the reporters¡¯ goal was quickly to send out articles about Su-hyeun. For journalists whose monopoly and preemption were important, they were even more enthusiastic to cover Su-hyeun.
¡°I hold grudges,¡± Su-hyeun looked around and met eyes with each one of them and said, ¡°I will remember you guys faces and where you belonged. I have a pretty good memory.¡±
The reporters became silent, watching a smiling face of Su-hyeun. What he had said was if they didn¡¯t step back, he would not respond to the coverage next time. If they said something wrong to Su-hyeun in here, they would take all the me for their mistakes. So, soon after, the reporters started to step back as well. Su-hyeun passed through and headed to Hak-joon.
¡°Wow. That was strong.¡± Hak-joon gave him a thumbs up.
Su-hyeun smiled at him and looked at both Hak-joon and Yun-seon. ¡°How are you?¡± he asked.
¡°It¡¯s all good. Except for those from the Authority that bother us,¡± Hak-joon answered.
¡°There will be no issues. I am the one who killed Jung Dong-yeong. You were just there.¡±
¡°Then won¡¯t you be in trouble?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°If I have trouble, I can just go to the moon. Even if I don¡¯t have a flight there, it would be no problem to go abroad.¡±
Hak-joonughed at Su-hyeun¡¯s joke. Surely, his face and smiling looked way better than before.
¡°We came here to say thank you.¡±
Yun-seon carefully opened her mouth to the conversation between the two. Su-hyeun shook his hand in embarrassment when he saw her bowing. ¡°Oh, you don¡¯t have to do this. I had been thinking about doing something to Ares Guild for a long time now....¡±
¡°But if you did not help us, this fool would have suffered more. I also still suffered from poison,¡± she said.
¡°Well, I did suffer a lot,¡± Hak-joon said.
At Hak-joon¡¯s joke, Yun-seon pinched his arm with her long fingernail. She red at him as if telling him to be quiet. ¡°You are slow-witted,¡± she said.
¡°Ah, he looked burdened,¡± Hak-joon replied.
¡°But still we have to say what we have to.¡±
¡°Do we have to do that now?¡±
¡°Then, when will you do?¡±
Hak-joon and Yun-seon red at each other and argued. It was pretty childish.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
The face of Hak-joon he had watched so far was always a little bit gloomy. He looked mature, not like his age. The dark mood that he had was not his original personality. He became like that under certain circumstances. But now, his shadow cleared up and his original personality appeared. His character was a little different from what Su-hyeun had thought.
<>
Su-hyeun looked at the two who fought like cats and dogs as if it was funny. He turned his eyes to Lee Ju-ho. ¡°Isn¡¯t it about time?¡±
¡°We still have three minutes.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s go inside now. Let them keep fighting.¡±
¡°Shall we?¡±
When Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho turned their bodies to the building, Hak-joon and Yun-seon thought they might make a mistake. They started to worry if their actions might make them upset.
¡°Su-hyeun. It¡¯s not that...¡±
¡°I am sorry. We didn¡¯t pick up the mood...¡±
Su-hyeun looked back at the two restless people and shook his head.
¡°You don¡¯t have to be sorry. You guys look good. You don¡¯t have to thank me, and you really don¡¯t have to feel sorry. And Hak-joon¡ª¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°¡ªYou owe me one.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Hak-joon blinked his eyes and soon smiled big.
¡°Yes, of course! If you need me next time, just let me know.¡±
Hak-joon feltfortable that Su-hyeun told him so. It was much easier just to run for him instead of only feeling sorry or thanking vaguely.
¡°Good. Don¡¯t forget that,¡± Su-hyeun said and started to walk to the entrance of the building.
The S-Rank examination was something that the Authority was paying attention to as well. So, many of the examiners gathered and waited for Su-hyeun. When Su-hyeun showed his awakener registration card, the examiners looked at the people behind him.
One of the examiners asked him, ¡°Will you allow people to watch your reexamination?¡±
Since it was Su-hyeun¡¯s personal exam, he could decide whether to proceed privately or publicly. And hundreds of people here came to see the screening in person, to see the birth of a new S-Rank awakener. They wanted to report the scenes to the press or scout him for their guilds, or just watch it. But...
¡°Except for the three people here...¡± Su-hyeun pointed Lee Ju-ho, Hak-joon, and Yun-seon. ¡°...please, tell the other people to go back.¡±
¡°You mean...all of them?¡±
The examiner looked embarrassed and looked around the people gathered in front of the entrance. There were people from major guilds such as Blue Dragon, Silence, Ripper, and etc. In addition, there were journalists such as major stations and inte newspapers that could guarantee his fame. But Su-hyeun refused to allow all of them to watch the exam.
¡°Are you going to be a mercenary soldier?¡± Hak-joon, who was following Su-hyeun, also made a surprised face like the examiner.
A mercenary was a contract awakener who only fought when they were paid. They were also an awakener who did not join either governmental institutions or any guilds.
¡°I don¡¯t n to work as mercenary either...¡± Su-hyeun walked further into the building and he swallowed thest of the sentence. <>
Guild, press, agency, all of those, seemed like child¡¯s y to Su-hyeun. In the future, all of those things that share power,pete, and quarrel would all be a luxury because mankind would be destroyed. Su-hyeun had no intention of entertaining them at all.
<>
Su-hyeun shook his head inside and looked back Hak-joon.
¡°No. I guess there¡¯s two of us.¡±
Chapter 63
Chapter 63: Chapter 63
When Su-hyeun entered the building and began to move separately for reexamination, everyone who waiting for Su-hyeun lost their purpose. Kim Seok-jin just smoked a cigar since there was nothing he could do.
¡°Working as an independent...¡±
¡°It¡¯s surprising,¡± his attendant said.
In response to the attendant, Kim Seok-jin shook his head. ¡°No. This makes more sense for him.¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°He is the guy who hasn¡¯t shown his face in two years. It would be a funny thing if he wanted to join the guild now. Many S-Rank awakeners are actually working as mercenaries or focusing on climbing the tower.¡±
It was the same for their guild master, Park Ji-yeon. She only had a title but devoted most of her time to climbing the tower, except whenpleting dungeon attacks. Not only her but also other S-rank awakeners were simr. People could not reach S-Rank without climbing the tower with such hard work.
¡°I am sure he is the same.¡±
¡°Then why is he taking the rank reexamination?¡± the attendant asked.
¡°Well. There are many benefits... Money can be one of the reasons...¡±
¡°So, it means you don¡¯t know exactly?¡±
¡°In fact, yes.¡± Kim Seok-jin nodded and took the phone out of his pocket. But it was that time.
The phone started to ring, and a familiar name popped on the screen. Kim Seok-jin thought the situation was funny. He smirked a little. Soon, he picked up the phone.
¡°Yes, Guild Master.¡±
***
Su-hyeun came to the basement of the Authority building for the reexamination. The basement was made of special materials that prevented magic from leaking outward. More exactly, it would prevent the impact of the underground from spreading upward.
There were a total of five examiners who followed Su-hyeun and his party. As they set up various devices throughout the void of the basement, the examiner who looked the highest among them opened his mouth.
¡°First of all, let me exin the agreement you will make after you pass the S-Rank examination. First, S-rank awakeners receive a certain amount of money on the 1st of every month. Additionally, they regrly take turns with other S-rank awakeners and engage in a special dungeon attack...¡±
Su-hyeun was familiar with that agreement. He did not pay attention to the exnation and just watched the devices.
<>
There was more than one test. S-Rank awakeners were tested for not only the factor and level of the magic but also overall stats as well as other qualities rted to other battles. Only the ones who passed all of that could be S-Rank awakeners.
¡°...about the rights are in this document, so please read itter.¡±
The examiner said so and handed a document to Suhyun. The cover of the document was colorfully embroidered in gold. There were several rights that S-rank awakeners received. Su-hyeun nced over the contents and signed below.
¡°Well. Let¡¯s take the test quickly,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°We are preparing now. Please wait for a moment.¡±
After a moment, all the devices were ready. There were some small tforms, a magic tester, and some devices to verify physical performances.
¡°First, we will check your magic level and factor. Second, we will check your magic control ability. Third, we will check your overall physical ability. What do you usually use for a weapon?¡±
¡°I use a sword and spear.¡± Su-hyeun showed his sword at his waist area and the spear on his back.
¡°The sword and spear...All right. Closebat tactics and long-distance throwing statics. What about your unique skill?¡±
¡°For the skill...¡±
Several questions followed, and when all questions were answered, the examiner nodded. In fact, just listening to those questions could not give them anything special. Most skills were to be evaluated during the exam.
¡°Please walk in front of the tform. The first test will be taken under an illusion.¡±
¡°What are the detailed rules?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°You have to figure it out yourself. Just keep in your mind that the time limit is key.¡±
They didn¡¯t exin the rules but expected him to realize the rules on his own.
<>
In the case of advanced rank screening, most countries had a system like the Tower of Trials. This method was quite discriminatory, so the people who were more than A-Rank got their grade after such an examination.
¡°Please step on the tform.¡±
Su-hyeun stepped on the round-shaped tform as the examiner said. The devices were made of several intermediate Ether stones and one higher Ether stone. The stones also had a role.
<>
There was a man named Johnny Brad. He was one of the highest-ranked awakeners and he was known for his hallucination skills. His work was high-quality and used in world-wide awakeners¡¯ agencies. This device was also one of his works. Of course, it was not as powerful as what he could use in person. It might have worked better for regr people, but it was impossible to show hallucinations that were threatening enough to S-Rank awakeners.
¡°Don¡¯t reject the magic from the device. If you ept the magic, the test will start soon.¡±
Su-hyeun nodded at the examiner¡¯s advice. If he wanted to resist, he was able to do that. To him, it was possible not to hallucinate in the first ce.
Whirl, whirl¡ª
Soon, the device was activated, and a lot of magic power was released from the Ether stone. That magic was sucked into Su-hyeun¡¯s head in a moment. He did not resist it and closed his eyes. Then, he could feel a cool breeze with his skin. When he opened his eyes, there was apletely differentndscape.
Caw, caw, caw¡ª!
He could hear something sounding like loud crows. There were ck spears on the ground, hundreds of and thousands of them. Above, he could see a ck sky. No, it merely looked like a ck sky. Birds that looked like crows filled the sky.
¡°They don¡¯t look like crows... Are they ckbirds?¡±
A ckbird was a monster that looked like a giant crow. There was nothing, in particr, that said it was a monster. ckbirds had a strong desire for survival rather than fighting. So, it usually was not threatening. Those were the ckbirds that Su-hyeun knew.
<>
It was not difficult to figure out what the subject of the test was.
<>
He recalled the hint that the examiner said. He said the time limit was key. So, that meant they were testing how fast he could handle the birds above the sky. There were many spears on the ground and many birds in the sky.
As he looked roughly, it looked like space was blocked within a certain distance to prevent ckbirds from running away. The space wasrge, but it was not infinite.
¡°It¡¯s perfect for hunting.¡±
He grabbed the spear. He could easily finish if he used the Leap and me skills, but he didn¡¯t use those because this test was not for checking his magic ability. The weapons he used were swords and spears. And this test was a gateway to examine his spear-throwing ability. It was a pretty difficult test.
<>
The ckbirds were fast, and they would not let him drop them down easily, of course.
¡°30 minutes.¡±
He grabbed the spear he picked up from the ground tightly. He threw it as hard as he could.
Swish¡ª
Bam¡ª
The spear that Su-hyeun had thrown prated three ckbirds. At the same time, he grabbed two spears in each hand immediately after that.
¡°One, two¡ª¡±
Swish¡ª
¡°Three.¡±
The four spears flew towards the ckbirds that roaming the sky.
¡°I guess it will take 30 minutes at most.¡±
***
¡°How much time has passed?¡± Kim Hyun-soo, the general examiner asked.
The deputy examiner checked the time and answered, ¡°It¡¯s been about 15 minutes.¡±
¡°About 45 minutes left.¡±
¡°I will tell you every five minutes.¡±
¡°Tell me every ten minutes. When an hour is over, it means he failed. Then clean all the things here.¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
¡°Oh, and tell thest of the examiners to set up the next devices when 20 minutes have passed. If he passes the exam, we can proceed immediately that way.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
Kim Hyun-soo crossed his arms and watched Su-hyeun on the device. He was the one who was responsible for the examination of five S-rank awakeners of Korea. He also conducted the S-rank examination more than ten times. About one in four people who applied reexamination passed and became S-Rank. Three of the four had been eliminated were eliminated from this first test.
<> he thought but he could not remember exactly.
He took so long, and he was not capable of escaping from the hallucinations by himself. In the end, he had to pass the test to escape from hallucinations.
¡°And the fastest one was... Park Ji-yeon. She only took 40 minutes.¡±
Park Ji-yeon was the youngest S-Rank awakener in Korea. She had passed the reexamination faster than anyone else since she had shown an outstanding talent for a long time.
Since this hallucination test gave each examinee a different mission, it was difficult to say that somebody would be better than the other exactly. However, the content of the test itself was recorded. Kim Hyun-soo flipped the papers and looked through the records of the S-Rank awakeners.
¡°After Park Ji-yeon, Gwon Jae-hoon took 43 minutes. Next was Jung Yoon-ho. He took 48 minutes. And next...¡±
Zap¡ª
While he was checking the records, the device suddenly started responding. Kim Hyun-soo, who was startled, covered the file and raised his head.
¡°What is going on?¡±
¡°I think... the built-in skill of the device is being unraveled.¡±
¡°A built-in skill. You mean hallucinations?¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
In response to the deputy examiner, Kim Hyun-soo opened his eyes wide. Was time passing by while he was thinking about something else?
¡°What about time? How much time passed?¡±
¡°19 minutes, sir.¡±
¡°19 minutes?¡±
It was less than 20 minutes. He had a lot on his mind. Kim Hyun-soo had been seeing the same phenomenon several times. And immediately after the device¡¯s built-in skills began to break, the test would end.
<> he thought.
Other S-rank awakeners did not differ so much in the Clear Time. It was only about five minutes apart. But suddenly, this man passed it in 20 minutes. It was a really overwhelming record.
The ether stone in the device shed for a moment. That phenomenon meant that the device stopped working.
¡°Phew¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun, who was staring at one spot vacantly, all of a sudden took a big breath. Su-hyeun turned his body and looked at the examiners, including Kim Hyun-soo.
¡°How long has it been?¡±
¡°Uh...Well...¡± The deputy examiner checked the time again. ¡°You took 19 minutes 58 seconds...¡±
¡°So about 20 minutes,¡± Su-hyeun said as if it was insignificant.
Su-hyeun did not know about the shock of examiner Kim Hyun-soo.
¡°Let¡¯s do the next one quickly. You guys are ready, right?¡±
He had finished so quickly that the preparations for the next test were not even done yet.
Chapter 64
Chapter 64: Chapter 64
Act 10
After the first test, Su-hyeun took a break until the next test. Actually, he was not particrly tired, physically or mentally, so it wasn¡¯t exactly taking a break. The next test was the same. Kim Hyun-soo, who dubiously doubted the malfunction of the device, had no choice but to admit it.
¡°...He is a monster.¡±
The word ¡°monster¡± came from the mouth of Kim Hyun-soo, who oversaw the evaluation of the S-Rank awakeners. After all, the other S-Rank awakeners he had met so far were monsters as well. Among them, some of them had be stronger years after the S-Rank reexamination.
But by far, Kim Hyun-soo had never seen anyone who gave him as much shock as Su-hyeun.
<>
The device for measuring magic and physical ability was made to be able to check the stats of the awakener urately. Su-hyeun¡¯s stats were not much different from other S-Rank awakeners. The difference was his ability to handle his own skills.
¡°He finished his first test in 20 minutes....And his ability to control magic...¡±
When people had the same Magic Grade, Factor, and physical ability, the most important ability for determining their ranking was magic control. It was about how that person could efficiently and urately use the same amount of magic. Even with the same amount of magic, the efficiency was very different depending on who used it. The factor that determined that ability was experience and talent.
Soon, thest test began. There were hundreds of thousands of floating bs of stones all over the huge void. They were tes that were very difficult to break. In fact, they had strength simr to that of bulletproof ss. So, it was impossible to break them without any effort, even considering how good of an awakener he was. The final test was about how fast Su-hyeun was and how many the bs he could crush. He had to crush them without skill or physical abilities ¡ª he could only use magic.
Swish¡ª
Crack¡ª
The magic shot from Su-hyeun¡¯s hand prated the bs. The b with a hole in the center was split in all directions and soon shattered and fell to the floor.
<> the general examiner thought.
It was amazing that he noticed it in such a short time, but there was something more surprising.
<>
He broke the stones too quickly. The examiners could not even count the number of broken bs. The deputy examiner, who set a timer, shouted, ¡°10 minutes have passed! Stop!¡±
Crack¡ª
Crash¡ª
Thest b broke. Su-hyeun turned his body away from where he was standing. He blinked his eyes a couple of times and loosened his concentration, which had been raised to its limit.
¡°How did it go?¡± he asked.
¡°Well...¡±
It was not a matter of whether he was passed or not. The number of bs on the floor was far beyond the minimum number for eptance even if they estimated it roughly. The problem was the record.
Because the stones were broken so quickly, they could not count how many bs were broken.
¡°What are you doing? Count them quickly! ¡±
¡°Yes, yes!¡±
At Kim Hyun-soo¡¯s nagging, the other examiners began counting the remaining bs. After about five minutes, the record came out.
¡°The remaining bs are 1,450! The destroyed bs are 1,550!¡±
¡°What? One thousand and five hundred...?¡±
Kim Hyun-soo quickly looked at the previously held records. Of course, the person who destroyed thergest number of bs was Park Ji-yeon, who had been tested rtively recently. All of the bs she had destroyed were just over five hundred.
<> Kim Hyun-soo thought.
Su-hyeun¡¯s Magic Level and Factor did not differ much from when the other S-Rank awakeners took the test for their first time. His physical ability was much less than them. In terms of condition, he was not better than other S-Rank awakeners. The difference was his ability to use those things. Above all, Kim Hyun-soo, who checked Su-hyeun¡¯s magic control with his own eyes, got shocked. He could not believe his eyes.
¡°Are the examinations done?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Oh? Yes. Y-yes. They are all done.¡±
Kim Hyun-soo urgently finished the test record for Su-hyeun. He added the records one by one. He finally saw all the records at once. The result was something incredible.
<> he thought.
In any case, further tests would be meaningless. Kim Hyun-soo closed the recording paper and said, ¡°Congrattions on passing.¡±
***
It took about an hour for the S-Rank awakener registration card to be issued. Su-hyeun waited for the registration card along with the other party.
¡°I knew it was going to happen....But I feel a little weird that you are bing an S-Rank.¡±
¡°Why?¡±
¡°Because you are the sixth. It symbolizes the best awakener, and it also means you are a world-wide revel awakener.¡±
Hak-joon felt strange and unfamiliar that he was sitting next to the new S-Rank awakener. He felt that way especially more because he had thought Su-hyeun was a C-Rank awakener just until recently.
¡°You won¡¯t take long, either,¡± Su-hyeun said to Hak-joon.
¡°Me? No way.¡±
¡°You could get an A-Rank awakener card if you made up your mind right now, couldn¡¯t you?¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s eyes widened at Su-hyeun¡¯s question. Hak-joon had shown only his ability as much as a B-Rank awakener could do. He did the same for the outbreakst time in Anyang. He had prepared himself his own way. When he could surely defeat Jung Dong-yeong, he thought he could trade his life and the cure for Yun-seon. But...
¡°How do you know?¡±
¡°I can just tell.¡±
¡°Wow. That sounds a little rude...¡±
Yun-seon pinched Hak-joon¡¯s thigh.¡±Mind your manners.¡±
¡°O-okay.¡± Hak-joon thought he should be careful and opened his mouth slowly to say, ¡°That...How did you know?¡±
¡°As I said, I can just tell.¡±
¡°Only with the concentration of magic?¡±
¡°More than that...I am sure you can tell as well when you meet weaker awakeners than yourself. You know about that person¡¯s level or how much magic concentration that person has, something like that. It is something cannot be hidden even if you try.¡±
¡°That makes sense.¡±
¡°It¡¯s the basic of the basics. If your n was trying to hide your growth and hit Jung Dong-yeong¡¯s back, it was pretty dangerous.¡±
Su-hyeun read his point. Hak-joon¡¯s eyes were shaking. If Su-hyeun¡¯s words were true, Jung Dong-yeong, who became an A-Rank awakener a long time ago, may have been aware of Hak-joon¡¯s level.
¡°If Jung Dong-yeong knew that I was waiting for revenge...¡±
Perhaps not long afterward, something big possibly could happen.
Hak-joon got chills and his face turned pale. Yun-seon held his hand tight.
¡°It is over. It is okay,¡± Yun-seon said.
¡°...Yes, you are right.¡±
Even though he answered like that, his deathly pale face did not return to normal. The thought that Yun-seon might have died by his own mistake was more terrible than anything else for him.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
He had thought he should talk about it soon, but it didn¡¯t seem like the right time. Like the saying out of the frying pan into the fire, if he figured out there was a bigger problem called Dump Guild behind Jung Dong-yeong, Hak-joon might have felt scared. The conversation was cut off for a while. Soon, Kim Hyun-soo brought the new registration card.
¡°Here is your new awakener registration card,¡± he said.
It was a gold-colored, shiny card.
On the card, Su-hyeun¡¯s name was carved. It seemed quite sophisticated for the short time they had worked on it.
¡°Don¡¯t think we worked half-heartedly because we made it too quick. A registration card is for showing off anyway, isn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t care.¡±
Su-hyeun took out the wallet he had put in his pocket and put his registration card inside. He should have looked at the front and back with surprise, but he didn¡¯t. Kim Hyun-soo clicked his tongue at Su-hyeun¡¯sck of enthusiasm.
<>Kim Hyun-soo thought.
¡°What can he do with it?¡± Hak-joon asked.
Rather, the more curious one was Hak-joon. As if he was waiting for the question, Kim Hyun-soo responded with a proud expression.
¡°Anything.¡±
¡°Anything, like what?¡± Hak-joon asked again.
¡°If you have any dungeons you want to go to, you have the highest priority in the dungeons registered with the Authority. Not only can you borrow money from the bank, but you can also...¡±
Kim Hyun-soo, who exined the benefits and rights of the S-rank awakeners, became louder as he spoke. Of course, there was no information that Su-hyeun was curious about.
¡°Let me ask you something.¡±Su-hyeun cut Kim Hyun-soo¡¯s words in the middle and asked, ¡°Have there ever been any cases where you guys gave overseas support?¡±
Kim Hyun-soo thought for a moment and nodded. ¡°Overseas...Yes, we do that often.¡±
¡°What about America?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°No, we have never done that. There are so many strong awakeners and their incidence of the dungeons is not that high. Actually, the US is sending awakeners to other countries.¡±
In the United States, a system of training awakeners professionally had been quickly implementedpared to Korea. As a matter of fact, Korea¡¯s awakener training system itself was taken from the United States, so it was natural that the level of awakeners was higher in the United States.
¡°Why? Do you have any American awakeners you want to meet?¡± Kim Hyun-soo asked.
¡°Not a person...¡±
But he did have one dungeon had in his mind.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
He didn¡¯t want to talk about the details. Su-hyeun only wanted to know one thing.
¡°What if I want to attack a particr dungeon that appeared in America?¡±
If it would be difficult, he nned to even use a dark route. But if he could use the privilege of S-Rank, he would like to do so.
¡°I think it would be possible,¡± Kim Hyun-soo said.
¡°Really?¡±
¡°The criteria for S-Rank awakeners is the same in every country in the world, so you are S-Rank in any country you go to. There¡¯s no reason for the Americans to turn down your help, but I am not sure if you will get a satisfying dividend rate after the attack.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t care.¡±
He didn¡¯t do it because of money anyway. The dungeon attack itself was his purpose, and he could make plenty of money from now on anyway.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
As it turned out, the time that he had spent for the reexamination was not a waste. It was about time Su-hyeun sighed of relief.
¡°Mr. Su-hyeun! Where are you? Please, pick up your phone!¡±
The voice of Lee Ju-ho came from the hallway outside the room. Lee Ju-ho had gone out to see the situation outside. His voice sounded pretty urgent.
<>
The problem was that he had turned his phone on silence mode because he didn¡¯t want it to interfere with the exam. Su-hyeun left the room scratching his head with a sorry heart.
Chapter 65
Chapter 65: Chapter 65
¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Oh, were you there?¡± Lee Ju-ho answered.
He walked as fast as he could down the corridor. Hak-joon and Yun-seon also heard themotion and left the room after Su-hyeun.
¡°There is a guest for you, Su-hyeun,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°Who is that?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Her name is Park Ji-yeon. She is the guild master of Ripper Guild and an S-Rank awakener.¡±
Park Ji-yeon. The name sounded familiar to Su-hyeun.
<>
He remembered her name and face. He had never met her in person though.
¡°Why is she looking for me?¡±
¡°I suppose she wants to suggest you join her guild.¡±
¡°She came here herself?¡±
There were not many cases of S-Ranks working directly for guilds. Unless it was nned long ago, they spent most of their time climbing the Tower of Trials.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought.
It had been decided a few days ago when Su-hyeun got reexamined. As she led the green dungeon in Ansan not long ago, she might have been interested in Su-hyeun.
¡°Well, I suppose I can meet her,¡± Su-hyeun said. He took out his phone and added, ¡°Of course, not in the building right now.¡±
***
The lobby of the Authority was noisy with the voices of many journalists and awakeners. They had been waiting for Su-hyeun all this time, but they got louder because of the appearance of a celebrity.
¡°How long should I wait?¡±
¡°W-wait a second, please. I¡¯ve forwarded your business and contact. So, I am sure you can meet him soon.¡±
The lobby staff, who was dealing with guests in the lobby, began to sweat. He could not rejoice, even as a beautiful woman standing in front of his eyes. She was a beautifuldy with a milky-white face and dark hair in a bun. She was Park Ji-yeon.
¡°Is that so?¡± She thought for a moment, then nodded. ¡°Ok. I will wait. Thank you.¡±
¡°Oh. O-okay...¡±
The staff, who was worried about her pestering, sighed with relief. Soon after, Park Ji-yeon sat down on one seat and pulled the phone from her pocket. She nced at the screen and got up.
In a small voice, she said, ¡°I will be back in a minute.¡±
¡°Where are you going?¡± Kim Seok-jin asked.
¡°It won¡¯t take long.¡±
¡°Watch out for the paparazzi,¡± Kim Seok-jin said.
¡°Sure. Don¡¯t worry.¡±
Swish¡ª
As soon as she finished her words, Park Ji-yeon disappeared from her seat. It happened the moment he noticed that she was moving. It would be impossible for ordinary reporters or other awakeners to follow her.
¡°...I guess she got him.¡±
Kim Seok-jin noticed where she went and smiled.
***
Whiz, bam¡ª
Park Ji-yeon flew to the roof of the Authority. She lightly stepped on the wall of the building and went up about 20 floors. When she arrived, she could hear the voice.
¡°You areing loudly, Ms. Ji-yeon.¡±
She looked at the owner of the voice. It was an unfamiliar face, but she could tell who he was.
¡°Su-hyeun?¡±
Su-hyeun, who was sitting on the roof railing, put on a sour face. ¡°...Are you talking down to me?¡±
¡°I heard you are younger than me,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
She was only one year older than Su-hyeun. She must have heard about his age already. Su-hyeun realized that she had already researched enough about him.
¡°But we¡¯re meeting for the first time... Never mind. I will talk casually, too. You are not much older than me anyway.¡±
¡°Okay.¡± Park Ji-yeon slowly walked toward Su-hyeun and asked, ¡°I heard there were more people. Where are they?¡±
¡°I sent them back. I will see themter. Hak-joon and Mr. Ju-ho might be in the trouble by now though.¡±
¡°I guess you don¡¯t like being noticed, do you?¡±
¡°More exactly, I don¡¯t like bothersome things. Time is precious, isn¡¯t it? There is nothing much to gain and I don¡¯t like being bothered like that,¡± Su-hyeun said and looked at Park Ji-yeon¡¯s eyes. ¡°So, unless you have a special case, keep your business short and simple.¡±
¡°I like that,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
As the ce to talk was made, Su-hyeun rose from the railing where he was sitting. There was no chair or table to sit on, so Su-hyeun and Park Ji-yeon stood and faced each other.
¡°Do you want to join the Ripper Guild?¡± she asked.
¡°You started the conversation by talking down to me and now you are trying to recruit me?¡±
¡°But you won¡¯t join anyway, won¡¯t you?¡±
She was very straightforward. It almost sounded like teasing. If other S-Rank awakeners heard her proposals, they might have gotten mad.
<>
In his previous life, he had not encountered her many times, so he had not seen her act like this. He had heard that she was an entric person, but he never personally experienced her personality.
¡°So, what are you saying now?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°I just said so. Well, I really meant it, of course,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
¡°So, since you know I won¡¯t join anyway, you¡¯re just poking around?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Then, what is your point?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°When you join Ripper Guild, that means you literally will work under me. But I am sure that is not what you want...¡±
¡°If you don¡¯t want that kind of rtionship, what you want is cooperation?¡±
Park Ji-yeon smiled a little. ¡°That is what I am talking about.¡±
Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes. Perhaps things could easily be solved. As a matter of fact, he had been thinking about contacting Ripper Guild.
¡°What do you mean by cooperation?¡±
¡°I heard you had friction with the Dump Guild,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
Su-hyeun nodded. Of course, the friction that she said did not mean Su-hyeun had killed the awakener of Dump Guild. She meant that Su-hyeun had spread the information about Dump Guild everywhere.
¡°At first, I just asked our vice guild master to recruit you... But I changed my mind after I heard you were involved with Dump Guild. I wanted to see you in person,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
¡°Is that why you want to work with me?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± Park Ji-yeon erased the smile on her mouth and replied in a suppressed voice. ¡°The destruction of Dump Guild. That is my goal.¡±
<>
If it was not about this in the first ce, Su-hyeun would not have met her. If he met the guild master, the only thing they would ask about recruiting him. But...
¡°Is it a personal grudge?¡± he continued his thought.
In his previous life, Ripper Guild had disappeared due to an all-out war with Dump Guild. That alone was enough to suggest that Ripper Guild was an enemy of Dump Guild. But he didn¡¯t know whether it was a guild-level struggle or a personal grudge by Park Ji-yeon. Instead, the possibility itself opened.
<>
When he saw her eyes, he could tell ¡ª this kind of hostility was more likely a personal grudge.
¡°I think it will be a long talk.¡± Su-hyeun looked down at the people gathered in front of the building and said, ¡°Would you like to talk in some other ce?¡±
***
Lee Ju-ho broke out in a cold sweat. When he looked around, there were a lot of people. More than a hundred people were asking questions at him.
¡°Is it really confirmed that Mr. Kim Su-hyeun became an S-rank awakener?¡±
¡°How did you get to know Kim Su-hyeun? I heard you were acquainted with him before the Anyang outbreak...¡±
¡°Wait. Jeez, please move! Hey, Lee Ju-ho! You know me, right? We metst time...¡±
Everybody was talking about different things. It was so chaotic. Among them, some awakeners fromrge guilds, who he could not remember the faces of, approached him pretending to know him well and asked about Su-hyeun.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought.
This was not the first time he had dealt with people to cover up Su-hyeun¡¯s back. Of course, that time, there were not many people like this. Moreover, he had volunteered to do that. Su-hyeun told him to ignore them, but he could not just ignore all these people, considering the reputation of Su-hyeun. Anyway, they were journalists of the big press in this country, and they were the main figures of the big guilds. However, Su-hyeun¡¯s stubbornness was not something that Lee Ju-ho could defeat.
¡°I think I should meet Park Ji-yeon in person,¡± Su-hyeun had said in an earnest voice, putting his hands on Lee Ju-ho¡¯s shoulder. ¡°I begging you, brother.¡±
<>
But what could Lee Ju-ho do? He just med himself because he became soft over that one word. In the end, he had to answer all the questions one by one.
***
The conversation with Park Ji-yeon took ce in a room cafe on a secluded street. Unlike Su-hyeun, Park Ji-yeon was known for her face. She was beautiful and high-ranking, so she was quite a famous celebrity.
Even though they took time and came here, their conversation didn¡¯t take long. They talked for about 30 minutes. Park Ji-yeon flicked her finger at the ss on the table.
Chink¡ª
¡°I guess it is more like a concept of the enemy of an enemy is a friend, instead of cooperation.¡±
¡°Well, that is cooperation.¡±
Su-hyeun emptied the remaining beverages in an instant. He was thirsty because he had been talking a lot. At any rate, the goal had been achieved. He did not have to join the guild, but he could get their help when he needed it.
<> he thought.
The power of arge guild was not just from the number of people. It was the world that one awakener could do more than a hundred people. But he could not hear everything by himself. The power of therge guild was the information it could gather. They could talk and listen to many people. The information was also something that Su-hyeun needed. Of course, the fact that it was a cooperative rtionship that benefited each party was a constant fact.
¡°It is only about the Dump Guild. Remember that,¡± Park Ji-yeon said.
She drew the line. That way, their promise could only work with Dump Guild. Su-hyeun, who had emptied the ss, nodded his head and got up.
¡°Besides that, I won¡¯t need help from Ripper Guild for anything else. Don¡¯t worry.¡±
¡°What are you going to do from now on?¡±
¡°Why do you ask such an obvious question?¡± Su-hyeun asked. He finished what he had put off, so there was only one thing he had to do. ¡°I have to keep challenging the Tower of Trials.¡±
To Su-hyeun, S-Rank was just a passing phase. He had experienced many things above this. He was once the best awakener of the world. For him, this was the beginning.
¡°We¡¯ve got a long way to go, haven¡¯t we?¡±
Chapter 66
Chapter 66: Chapter 66
For the first time in a long while, Su-hyeun treated Shin Su-yeong to a meal. His busy schedule meant they couldn¡¯t meet often, but he still tried to keep the promises of eating together with her.
¡°Are you going to keep working?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s question prompted Shin Su-yeong, who was roasting the meat, to stop wielding her tongs and ask him, ¡°If not, should I just do nothing?¡±
¡°It¡¯s fine to stop working, you know. I¡¯ve made enough money and more will keeping in the future, too. I thought you wanted to enjoy the fruit of your son¡¯sbor?¡±
¡°No, thank you. You can onlyze around doing nothing for a day or two, and besides, how can a person not work for a living?¡±
¡°Aren¡¯t you being too much of a workaholic?¡±
¡°It¡¯s more like I don¡¯t want toze around, that¡¯s all. Having my own business and working for myself can be really rewarding, you know.¡±
Even though Shin Su-yeong¡¯s business hadn¡¯t opened its doors for long, it was already doing rather well thanks to her over 20 years of experience in the field. They chatted about this and that, then Su-hyeun took Shin Su-yeong back home. When he came back to his own ce, it was already well past ten o¡¯clock in the evening.
The room and the bed previously soaked in blood were all spotless now. It seemed that the cleaners hade by while he was out.
<>
Two years. He had basically climbed ten floors every year.
The reason for him taking longer than expected was fairly simple, actually. Each and every floor¡¯s trial had been difficult, yes, but Su-hyeun¡¯s own desire to pass them all perfectly yed arge factor, as well.
<>
Click¡ª
Su-hyeun equipped the newly-acquired item, the Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor, underneath his clothing. Then, he firmly secured Gram on his waist before extending his hand to the front.
He concentrated for a moment or two, gripped the space tightly, and tore it open.
The doorway leading to the Tower was opened.
Su-hyeun slowly walked inside.
* * *
The world of 21st floor.
Su-hyeun spent all of his remaining achievement points to buy food and medicine.
What little of his achievement points remaining after purchasing the highest-grade potential catalyst potion and the Property of Dimension order form was nowpletely gone.
He did have a few points stashed away for rainy days, but even that was used up to take the ne of the Shayres to the other side.
<>
He felt slightly bitter about spending almost every bit of his hard-earned achievement points. What was left was only enough to buy consumables such as foodstuffs.
<>
He was preparing just in case the trial turned out to be lengthier than expected, but still, he was sure that the event of him running out of food wouldn¡¯t happen any time soon. Indeed, all of this preparation was simply for that one in a million chance.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s current level of growth meant that the 21st floor didn¡¯t hold much meaning despite the fact that it was the tenth level of trial. His current self needed to focus on climbing up to the higher floors rather than getting too caught up in achieving the perfect aplishments in the trials themselves.
Su-hyeun immediately headed to the gate located in the 21st floor¡¯s za. The moment he passed through the portal, the view before his eyes transformed and messages floated up.
[Applicable individual Kim Su-hyeun is starting the 20th floor¡¯s trial.]
[Please select your difficulty.]
His answer was the same as always. ¡°The tenth level.¡±
As soon as he announced his decision, the previously-nk view slowly regained its natural color.
[The 21st floor¡¯s trial, tenth level, will nowmence.]
Thendscape greeting him was a forest. It was a forest so quiet that not even themon noises of winds blowing or birds chirping could be heard. It was difficult to guess the exact theme of this trial just from the surroundings, so Su-hyeun waited for the next set of messages.
[The trial will nowmence.]
[Mercenaries from Balkan Kingdom capable of wielding special powers wish to conquer a dungeon that has appeared in the forest. Although attacking dungeons is their main job, they haven¡¯t realized the true dangers of this dungeon yet.]
[Your name is Warrick. You must work together with yourrades and conquer the dungeon.]
[Your reward will change depending on the level of sess of the trial.]
Su-hyeun read the floating messages and quickly confirmed his appearance.
Although he was now given an alias of Warrick, his actual appearance hadn¡¯t changed a bit. Not just his clothing, but even the sword equipped on his waist as well as the pauldrons of the Falcon¡¯s Holy Armour over his shoulders were still there.
<>
In any case, the contents of this trial didn¡¯t seem all that difficult in nature. It sounded pretty much the same as every dungeon attack he participated in.
As for the achievement level, it was probably dependent on how quickly the dungeon attack waspleted, as well as the percentage of monsters defeated, etc.
<>
¡°Mister Warrick¡ª!¡±
With great timing, he heard a voice calling out to Su-hyeuning from the side.
Technically speaking, it was calling out to Warrick, but judging from the system¡¯s exnations, Su-hyeun must¡¯ve looked like this Warrick guy to the eyes of everyone else.
He quickly made his way in the direction of the voice.
¡°Warrick! Hey, dude!¡±
A total of three people were waiting for him.
Among them, arge man over one hand-span taller than Su-hyeun hurriedly approached him and asked, ¡°What kind of a bathroom break takes that long? We were worried that you might have gotten lost.¡±
¡°Ah, I took a wrong turn by mistake, that¡¯s why... I¡¯m sorry.¡±
For some reason, Su-hyeun thought he could recognize the names and faces of all three people before him.
<>
Two men and one woman. No, rather, this group now consisted of three men including Su-hyeun himself, as well as the lone woman.
Therge man approaching Su-hyeun was an awakener named Keshunirn. He was the leader of the group, and also the liveliest of the bunch, as well. The other man with the constrasting, gloomy atmosphere was Howal. He was slightly shorter than Su-hyeun, and his shoulders were slumped forward noticeably.
As for the woman with the blonde locks extending all the way down to her shoulders, she came across as just too pretty to be called a mercenary. It seemed that she was originally a daughter of a noble house, but had no choice but to start working as a mercenary after her family fell into ruin.
<>
To think that the information would be entering his head oh-so thoughtfully like this. Not only that, despite their era or dimensions not being the same, the environment they were in wasn¡¯t all that different from the one Su-hyeun was used to living in, too.
<>
What a relief that there didn¡¯t seem to be any particr issues to worry about, at least on the surface.
The skill levels of each and everyone here weren¡¯t too shabby, either. All three were awakeners ranked B, while the magical energy concentration almost reaching the A rank could be felt from Aile herself. This group had been attacking dungeons without any problems until now, so it should be the same story this time as well.
Even then, why the trial was about attacking the dungeon?
<>
The trials didn¡¯t hand out missions that anyone could clear. Even if the mission seemed ordinary and not all that difficult on the surface, there was one thing he must remember at all times.
He was in a tenth-level trial.
* * *
Su-hyeun traveled to the dungeon with the three members of the group. As they walked while chatting about this and that, they soon spotted the dungeon¡¯s entrance at the bottom of the distant valley.
¡°Over there!¡± Keshunirn shouted out with a bright face.
That prompted Hawal to grumble in a small voice. ¡°What¡¯s so great about discovering a dungeon anyway....¡±
It was a mystery how the bright and outgoing Keshunirn decided to team up with the negative and gloomy Howal.
¡°It¡¯s great that we found our source of ie, that¡¯s what. Don¡¯t you agree?¡±
Su-hyeun had no choice but to nod when Keshunirn asked him. ¡°Yes, I agree.¡±
As he said that, Su-hyeun sneaked a nce at Aile. She hadn¡¯t said a word while on their way here. He didn¡¯t even know what her voice sounded like.
¡°What¡¯s the matter? Did you fall for her?¡± Keshunirn spotted the nce and stuck close to Su-hyeun to whisper that question.
Thetter frowned ever so slightly and stared at the former. Keshunirn chuckled softly under his breath and waved his hand about. ¡°I¡¯m just kidding. No need for the re, you know. Besides, it¡¯s true that she¡¯s a beauty, right? We haven¡¯t been working together for long, but there¡¯s no doubt that her abilities are the real deal, too.¡±
Aile had joined the groupparativelyter than everyone else. They only attacked one dungeon together with her. During that conquest, she disyed the greatest set of abilities among the group.
¡°And besides, isn¡¯t it better to have a quiet but pretty older sister type around you than a gloomy bastard?¡±
¡°Well, you¡¯re right about that...¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s unenthusiastic response brought out a puzzled expression on Keshunirn¡¯s face.
Su-hyeun looked back at Keshunirn and asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±
¡°No, well, something feels a bit strange, you see.¡±
¡°About?¡±
¡°I mean, I was convinced that you had the hots for Aile until now, but... No, even if it¡¯s not that, you used to go absolutely mental over any girls you spotted, so....¡±
¡°Be careful with what you say. Who¡¯s supposed to go mental over women here?¡±
Although something did pop up and lightly prodded him in his mind, Su-hyeun decided not to sweat over it.
<>
He had experienced this type of trial plenty of times before, the one where he had to inhabit the body of someone else and pretend to be that person. Every time he did that, though, Su-hyeun grew more and more aware of the burden of acting like that person, and eventually, he came to realize one thing: even if he didn¡¯t y the part, as long as that didn¡¯t pose any issues regarding the clearing of the trial, then there was no problem in how others perceived him.
The only issue with that was the resulting ufortable stares, but that also didn¡¯t matter depending on his mindset.
¡°Hmm....¡±
Sure enough, Keshunirn pondered Su-hyeun¡¯s reply for a moment or two before nodding his head. ¡°Well, sure. A person¡¯s mind does change on a whim, so....¡±
He was jumping to conclusions all on his own.
Su-hyeun could only sigh inwardly but endured it. All he wanted to do right now was to get through this trial as soon as possible.
¡°By the way, this is supposed to be a yellow-color dungeon, so will it be alright?¡±
It was then that Aile spoke for the very first time.
Indeed, the yellow-colored dungeon did pose a tough challenge for a group of four awakeners around the rank B level. If another rank A Awakener was added to the group, then it¡¯d been a different story. So, it wasn¡¯t all roses and smiles even if they did discover the dungeon.
¡°We have Miss Aile with us, so what could be the problem? If it¡¯s proving to be too difficult, then we can just walk away content after checking out the entrance.¡± That opinion was from the ever-positive Keshunirn.
¡°Don¡¯t be stupid. Did you forget how many idiots without enough abilities die because their greed got the better of them? Seriously, man. Why do I even call someone like you our leader....¡±
¡°Mister Howal.¡±
Aile shot him a re, prompting Howal to shut his mouth. He then averted his head away and began grumbling something to himself.
It seemed that Aile was carefully weighing her options, while Keshunirn was in favor of challenging the dungeon. As for Howal¡¯s opinion, he didn¡¯t want to.
But then again, his personality dictated that he¡¯d always lean towards a no anyway, not just in this matter. He was the type to first oppose whatever other people were suggesting and then see what happened next.
¡°What do you think, Mister Warrick?¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t hesitate to reply to Aile¡¯s question. ¡°Let¡¯s challenge it.¡±
¡°Yes!¡± Keshunirn cried out.
Two voted for, one neutral, and one against.
The result had been decided.
The group stepped inside the dungeon. The most motivated of the group was, as expected, the duo of Su-hyeun and Keshunirn.
Once they stepped into the dungeon¡¯s interior, a lengthy, arrow-straight cavern appeared before their eyes. The cavern was sorge and long that they couldn¡¯t even see the end.
The chilly air cutting into their skin felt rather ominous. Perhaps Keshunirn himself had felt it, too, because he began muttering in a worried voice next. ¡°What kind of atmosphere is....¡±
ck¡ª
He then tripped over something and wobbled unsteadily for a bit.
Su-hyeun reached out and grabbed the tottering Keshunirn¡¯s arm. Thetter¡¯splexion paled instantly. ¡°This, this....¡±
The rest of the group entering behind them also carried simr expressions.
¡°Bones.¡± Su-hyeun looked at the countless number of bones strewn about everywhere on the floor and continued on. ¡°They are all human remains.¡±
COMMENT
Keshunirn, still pale-faced, sneaked a nce in Su-hyeun¡¯s direction.
Unlike the others, his expression hadn¡¯t changed a bit.
Chapter 67
Chapter 67: Chapter 67
Act 1
¡°All of these are.... really?¡±
Aile¡¯s previously cold-as-ice expression finally disyed signs of agitation. There was no need to even mention Keshunirn after he tripped on the bones.
Howal, entering the dungeon thest, grew utterly pale and hurriedly spoke. ¡°I-I bloody knew this would happen.¡± Perhaps he had sensed the off-kilter atmosphere because he turned around and tried to leave right away.
But then...
¡°Uh, uh? W-what is going on here?¡±
Howal¡¯s voice as he tried to leave the dungeon through the entrance was trembling violently. He tried to wave his hands and insert his feet into the yellow gate behind them, but there was no reaction whatsoever.
¡°You can¡¯t go through?¡±
¡°No, I can¡¯t! What the hell is going on here?¡±
Even theparatively calm Aile got flustered, and Howal was shouting at the top of his lungs. As for Keshunirn, he stood there wordlessly, his nk expression perhaps the result of him getting greatly shocked.
<>
The so-called leader Keshunirn was far too frozen to analyze this newly developing situation, and Howal was noticeably getting scared. Only Aile seemed to have maintained her cool out of the three. She was certainly doing her best to calmly analyze the situation.
Her abilities were the best among the group, and she also seemed to be more experienced in attacking dungeons as well. Even if such qualities were discounted, her disposition naturally inclined towards being level-headed. Su-hyeun thought that was a type of talent as well.
<>
And here he was, wondering why the difficulty seemed so low. As it turned out, that wasn¡¯t the case at all. Thepanions he was supposed to attack the dungeon with were basically extra luggage, while the dungeon itself was also slightly different from the regr ones.
<>
ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge, this type of dungeon only appeared muchter in his own world. Since the dungeons¡¯ entrances and exits weren¡¯t the same, events of awakeners who didn¡¯t adequately prepare beforehand dyingmonly urred.
It seemed that the stage for the current trial was one such dungeon.
Su-hyeun spat out a long sigh and kicked away the skulls near his foot. ¡°Since we can¡¯t go back, let¡¯s go in deeper for the time being. I mean, we aren¡¯t nning to starve ourselves to death now are we?¡±
There was nothing to gain by staying in this spot. All Su-hyeun wanted was to hurry up and pass this trial, that was all.
¡°Isn¡¯t it better to be more cautious when making our next move? The difficulty of this dungeon is¡ª¡± Keshunirm began.
¡°Never mind the difficulty; there is practically nothing we can do by staying here.¡±
Su-hyeun cut off the words of deeply-scared Keshunirm. His reasoning wasn¡¯t functioning properly after being affected by fear.
¡°What do you mean?¡± That question came from Aile, who managed to be the most level-headed out of them all.
¡°There are no monsters in the immediate vicinity. You can tell by there not being any reaction even after we made such a ruckus.¡± The rest of the group nodded their heads after hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
For sure, if there were monsters nearby, then they wouldn¡¯t have stayed away after hearing all the panic-stricken noises made by the group.
¡°But, if that¡¯s the case, it doesn¡¯t exin all these skulls strewn about this ce. I think we¡¯re currently in a garbage dump that the monsters use,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Garbage dump?¡±
¡°Yes. They could be monsters that enjoy preying on humans, but their jaws aren¡¯t developed enough to chew through human bones, like Man-eating Starving Ghosts or Silk Mermen.¡±
The two creature types Su-Hyeun mentioned were monsters often found dwelling in cave-type dungeons that preyed on human beings. There was a good possibility that the monsters didn¡¯t like having bones cluttering their territory so they dumped them in a single location like this.
¡°Also....¡± Su-hyeun stared at the skulls on the ground and continued on. ¡°These people weren¡¯t Awakeners.¡±
¡°They weren¡¯t, you say?¡± Aile asked.
¡°Even before the clothing near them began rotting away, their bones started dposing first. I¡¯m sure the monsters¡¯ toxicity had a hand in that, but there¡¯s a much higher chance of these remains not belonging to awakeners.¡±
Thepanions began studying the skulls around them once more at Su-hyeun¡¯s exnation. And sure enough, it was as he said.
Awakeners possessed a noticeably different bodypared to a regr person, and their dposition happened differently from regr people as well. As their bodies were far tougher, they also dposed at a far slower rate.
¡°You... are right?¡± Keshunirm noted.
¡°How did you even notice that?¡± Aile asked.
¡°H-h-how is that even relevant? We¡¯re all about to get killed, anyway!¡± Howal screamed.
The individual reactions of the three were quite different. As expected, the one stuck in the worst state of panic was Howal.
<>
Thankfully, Keshunirn had regained himself quickly enough. As for Aile, she was consistently the most collected figure out of the lot.
<>
In this type of trial, the achievement percentage would vary ording to the number of survivors and the time spent conquering the dungeon itself.
¡°If you have calmed down sufficiently enough, let¡¯s hurry. Whatever the case may be, we still need to find the exit, don¡¯t we?¡±
When Su-hyeun said that, Ailepletely regained her cool and nodded her head.
¡°Let us. I¡¯ll lead from the front,¡± said Aile.
Su-hyeun stood side by side with her and began walking forward. Whether it was Su-hyeun remaining fearless in such a situation or Aile moving along with him, they both seemed to possess great tenacity and determination.
<>
The ¡°Su-hyeun¡± Keshunirn remembered ¡ª or more correctly Warrick ¡ª was never a brave and smart guy. It felt as if his personality had changed a little from a while ago, but now, he came across as someonepletely different.
Even Aile didn¡¯t hold much of a favorable impression of Warrick. From the get-go, this group came together simply because their goals aligned and not because they enjoyed each other¡¯spany or anything like that ¡ª one could say they were a motley crew.
However, it seemed that Aile started trusting Su-hyeun somewhat after what happened just now. That haughty and talented woman was doing something rather unexpected.
¡°What are you doing, man? We better hurry up and go after them.¡±
Keshunirn¡¯s expression crumpled greatly at the voiceing from behind him. That gloomy, wispy voice always managed to ruin his mood every time he heard it. To make matters worse, Howal was still trying to hide behind him.
<>
It was his fault for epting a guy like this as a part of the group, saying that he had a bit of skill. Eventually, Keshunirn began following after the quietly-walking pair of Su-hyeun and Aile up ahead.
* * *
The dungeon¡¯s interior was damp.
Drops of water fell from the ceiling to create streams here and there, while the chilly air tickled their skin.
The dungeon was so quiet that even the water drops could be heard so clearly. Not only that, but the interior was so dark that they couldn¡¯t even see an inch in front of their noses.
¡°Uh, uh-uh?¡±
Howal tripped and began tottering. As he couldn¡¯t see his front, he lost the sense of bnce and his steps had be unstable.
¡°Are you alright?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°I-I¡¯m sorry.¡±
Howal¡¯s voice was shaky. It was pretty umon to see a rank B Awakener tripping over something regardless of how dark it was. In other words, that was how tense they were currently.
¡°Don¡¯t be so tense and take it easy,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Hiiieek!¡±
The moment Su-hyeun finished saying his piece, the howling of a monster traveled out from the deeper parts of the cave. It was an eerie, high-pitched screech like that of a ghost.
The deathly-frightened Howal was startled silly and hurriedly backed away, while Keshunirn swallowed his saliva out of sheer nervousness.
¡°I¡¯m telling you, you don¡¯t have to be so tense.¡± Su-hyeun stared at Howal with unimpressed eyes and continued on. ¡°I¡¯ll be hunting them down all by myself, anyway.¡±
¡°....Wha?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t even think about trying to help out, and stay put so that you won¡¯t get in my way.¡±
¡°Hey, you crazy son of...¡±
Rumble¡ª
Howal was triggered by Su-hyeun¡¯s words, but had to mp his mouth shut after spotting dozens of mes that suddenly appeared all around them.
He wasn¡¯t the only surprised one, however. The rest of the group was also the same.
Kiii-hihihihihi¡ª
The screeches were drawing closer.
Su-hyeun started walking slowly towards the screeches. The other three stood there and simply stared at him.
They had instinctively realized that the dozens of mes appearing around Su-hyeun were created out of the concentration of magical energy one level higher than theirs.
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t even care whether the other three were moving or not.
This trial was supposed to be about attacking the dungeon together with those people, but the thing was, it didn¡¯t really apply to him.
<>
Su-hyeun observed the monsters gradually entering his visual range. They were bizarre-looking bipedal fish creatures covered in scales. Thend-bound monsters with the name of Silk Merman mainly called damp caverns like this one their home. They also appeared rather frequently in the entrances of yellow and green colored dungeons.
<>
Compared to the yellow-colored dungeon Su-hyeun conquered for the first time a year ago, this one¡¯s difficulty seemed to be higher. After all, only Lizardcops showed up back then.
¡°Thankfully, it doesn¡¯t seem like I need to use my head.¡±
Su-hyeun smirked deeply. The fact that the dungeon¡¯s difficulty was high was actually a wee piece of news for Su-hyeun.
If the difficulty were lower, he¡¯d have been worried. A lower difficulty would potentially mean that besides attacking the dungeon, there was something else he needed to consider.
However, what the trial asked of him was clearer if the dungeon¡¯s difficulty was quite high to begin with. It could very much mean that without any unexpected variables, he¡¯d not really need to get crafty here. He rather weed such a straightforward trial like this.
<>
The scales of the Silk Mermen were unexpectedly hard, but their magic resistance was also quite considerable as well.
<>
Shu-kaaahk¡ª
The moment he sprinted towards the Silk Mermen, Su-hyeun also unsheathed the sword from his waist.
The Silk Mermen¡¯s bizarre-looking maws split wide open as they pounced on him. They seemed slow and lumbering initially but when they attacked, they did so with an explosive turn of speed.
Craa-aack¡ª
Sliiiiiice¡ª!
However, it was still too much of an ask to reach Su-hyeun. The moment he drew his sword, the Silk Mermen¡¯s maws were sliced clean off.
He didn¡¯t need to spend a lot of magical energy either. He only needed just enough to activate the magical de already present within Gram.
The cleanly-bisected corpses of the Silk Mermen were soon discarded on the ground. However, these monsterscked the fear of death and continued to pounce on Su-hyeun, not caring at all about the demise of their own kin.
Stomp¡ª!
Su-heyun stepped on the head of a Silk Mermen that dashed in front of him and leaped upwards. Once he reached the ceiling of the cave, he quickly scanned the locations of still-surviving Silk Mermen.
<>
He inwardly counted their numbers as per his habit and finished his preparation.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s figure rapidly dug in and struck them with his sword before leaping back up in the air. And so, after he rapidly scythed past the space and wielded his sword several times like this, the Silk Mermen ceased all of their movements.
Saaash¡ª!
Fountains of blood exploded from the necks of the Silk Mermen.
The monsters with half-severed necks stopped moving and copsed to the ground.
It was then that light leaked out from the dead Silk Mermen and entered into Su-hyeun¡¯s chest.
[Warmth has been added to the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg.]
[The Divine Beast¡¯s Egg has....]
¡°....Uh?¡±
That was an unexpected reaction.
Su-hyeun then recalled the egg he had half-forgotten about stored inside his inventory.
Chapter 68
Chapter 68: Chapter 68
Here was an item that he treated like a headache ever since he failed to find a way to hatch the damn thing until now.
One would only find out whether an egg was useful or not once it hatched, but it didn¡¯t want to show any signs of doing that. But now, for the first time ever, the egg began showing some reaction and that reaction came about because of the light leaking out from the Silk Mermen¡¯s remains.
<>
No, it¡¯d be difficult to link the two.
This was the egg of a ¡°Divine Beast.¡± He had no idea whether the Silk Mermen were hatched from eggs or not, but these monsters definitely didn¡¯t fall into the noble-sounding category of Divine Beast.
Which could only mean...
<>
The condition for this egg¡¯s hatching could be rted to the floor number.
The egg began showing a reaction right after he climbed past the 20th floor and entered the 21st. It seemed that the egg¡¯s hatching was set to advance little by little whenever monsters appearing in the trials of the 21st floor and higher were killed off.
<>
Whatever the case might be, Su-hyeun had been anticipating the hatching of the Divine Beast for quite a while now. If the 21st floor¡¯s stage could hasten the egg¡¯s hatching, then he no longer had a reason to quickly exit this ce.
<>
At first, he was nning to pass this ce as soon as possible, but now, he had changed his mind.
<>
After finishing off the Silk Mermen, Su-hyeun thought about the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg and smirked meaningfully. But, quite unlike him smiling in happiness, the other three members of the group were swimming in the pit of confusion.
<>
Keshunirn had been apanying Su-hyeun longer than anyone here. They had attacked a total of five dungeons together, and as they seemed to get along on pretty well, they decided to work together. More correctly, it was not Su-hyeun but Warrick he was working with ¡ª however, Keshunirn wasn¡¯t aware of that.
<>
Keshunirn¡¯s own skills weren¡¯t good enough to urately analyze Su-hyeun¡¯s actual level. It was the same story for both Aile and Howal.
After sensing the high-density magical energy from Su-hyeun, Aile adopted a wait-and-see attitude, but now that she got to confirm his abilities for real, she grew a little more rxed.
¡°That was amazing. Were you hiding your true abilities?¡±
Su-hyeun turned around to face her and replied to her question. ¡°It¡¯s just that we didn¡¯t encounter a situation requiring me to use my power.¡±
What a textbook-like answer that was. The reply ended up sounding as if he was boasting a little, but there was no helping it, really. They wouldn¡¯t have believed him if he told them the truth, and more importantly, Su-hyeun being excellent was an undeniable fact, anyway.
¡°Rather than that, let¡¯s hurry. We don¡¯t know howrge this dungeon is. Let me take the lead,¡± said Su-hyeun. He sounded a lot more excited than earlier.
Was she mistaken? Aile was flustered by how he could still speak in such a bright voice even after they found themselves in the current situation, but she somehow managed to reply to him.
¡°O-of course. Let us.¡±
Whatever the case might have been, they still felt relieved by the fact that they got to confirm Su-hyeun¡¯s abilities as the real deal.
Although the uneasy atmosphere still lingered, they definitely needed Su-hyeun¡¯s strength if they were to conquer a yellow-colored dungeon.
* * *
Bang, boooom¡ª
[Warmth has been added to the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg.]
[The Divine Beast¡¯s Egg has....]
Every time Su-hyeun¡¯s hands moved, monsters¡¯ bodies were set alight and disintegrated. Aile took care of the stray monsters that broke through the waves of mes every now and then.
Piik, pipipipik¡ª
Kiiieeeehk¡ª!
A lizard-type monster with long chin screamed out. The creature, pierced by an invisible spear, soon breathed itsst breath.
¡°Nice work.¡±
¡°I only killed a handful, though.¡± Aile waved her hand at Su-hyeun¡¯s praise.
During thest few hours they leisurely attacked the dungeon, only Aile proved to be any sort of assistance to him.
<>
The three present in this ce were all rank B Awakeners.
Aile, however, was an awakener with grade 5 magical energy, and as such, the other two men couldn¡¯t evene close to her abilities.
<>
In more ways than one, this trial made it a bit cumbersome to return home for a short while. Of course, he didn¡¯t feel that the difficulty was too high or anything like that.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze was directed at Keshunirn and Howal following him from behind. He was certain of Aile¡¯s role here. She was essentially the real leader of the group, and also, she was supposed to y the supporting role in conquering this dungeon, too.
In that case, what about the other two?
* * *
As expected, the unfortunate part was the achievement points situation.
Besides thepletion rate bonus received at the end of the trial, earning these achievement points was not easy because they were handed out in rtion to the awakener¡¯s current skill level, meaning when a high-leveled awakener participated in a trial with aparatively low difficulty for his skill set, hunting down monsters wouldn¡¯t earn him that many achievement points.
And even if some points were awarded, it¡¯d be only a tiny amount. That¡¯s why Su-hyeun only managed to scrape together a small number of achievement points through the trials up until now.
And...
<>
As he went in deeper, monsters that were slightly stronger than the ones before began showing up, but unsurprisingly, not a single achievement point was awarded to him.
The only silver lining about this whole thing was the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg showing some reactions. If hunting monsters down acted as a catalyst in hastening the hatching of the egg, then there should be no better-suited stage than this one.
Ten days.
During these past ten days, Su-hyeun led the rest of the group and roamed every nook and cranny of the dungeon. The paths branched like a maze several times, but he deliberately went in the wrong directions every time.
<>
But now, there was no other path to go around. The result of moving around without a break for ten days was the death of every single monster hiding in every corner of the dungeon.
Although it took a while, he almost could taste the definite result matching his hard work, which was the incubation rate of the Divine Beast Egg.
[Incubation rate: 67%.]
The number of monsters hunted down during the past ten days was easily over a few thousand. Only after he killed that many monsters did the rate reach that high.
It sure was hardbor, but as long as he could hatch the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg, he couldn¡¯tbel it as a waste of his time at all.
<>
Only one path remained unexplored. It happened to be the path where he sensed a faintly higher concentration of magical energy sometime ago. Most likely, this path would take them to the boss room.
¡°Why don¡¯t we search for the exit in earnest now?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
The first one to react to Su-hyeun¡¯s words was Keshunirn. ¡°So soon? If we take that path, I think we should enter a new area....¡±
¡°H-he¡¯s right. Let¡¯s check a bit more.¡± Howal quickly chimed in to agree with Keshunirn¡¯s opinion.
The huge bundle carried on his back was filled with Ether stones found here and there inside a dungeon. These stones were diligently picked up while they roamed around in this dungeon for the past ten days.
Aile¡¯s goal was Ether stones as well, so she didn¡¯t find the matters of the past ten days displeasing, either. If one wanted to amass that many Ether stones, one would have to attack dozens of regr dungeons.
They were, in a way, riding a bus.
Su-hyeun was hunting down monsters at such an astonishing rate and as a result, there was almost zero chance of them getting hurt, so they focused on sweeping up every Ether stone they could find. That was precisely why the group neverined once about leaving the dungeon as soon as possible and followed after Su-hyeun all this time.
¡°No, this really is the end,¡± said Aile.
What a relief it was that words could still get through to at least one person here.
Su-hyeun nodded his head at her assertion and continued on. ¡°The path Keshunirn has spoken of is the same one we checked out three days ago. The paths here areid out like a maze, actually.¡±
¡°A maze, you say?¡±
Keshunirn and Howal had beenpletely oblivious to that fact. Now thoroughly surprised, they hurriedly asked to confirm.
It seemed that only Aile managed to notice theyout of the dungeon. Even though it had already been ten days since they started traveling together, Su-hyeun could only groan under his breath once more.
<>
He searched through his memories, and it seemed unlikely that theirck of skills was to me here. They were supposed to be rank Bs, so that simply couldn¡¯t be it.
So, the reason why Keshurnirn and Howal failed to notice the dungeon¡¯s structure until now despite their ranks could very well be the numerous Ether stones right before their eyes ¡ª in other words, ¡°greed.¡±
¡°It¡¯s likely that the boss room is in that direction. The only ce we haven¡¯t checked within this dungeon is that area, so the exit must be there, as well,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Mm... it is unfortunate, but it can¡¯t be helped, I guess.¡± Keshunirn was disying his unwillingness to leave the dungeon, his former nervousness and fear at the beginning now a distant, forgotten memory. It was the same story for Howal, too.
Su-hyeun quietly studied both men for a bit before raising his voice. ¡°If you still have some stamina left, then let us hurry and leave. There is nothing left here, anyway.¡±
The rest of the group naturally thought of Ether stones when Su-hyeun spoke of nothing being left here.
The boss room would, quite obviously, contain a far greater number of Ether stones, and as the exit was also located there, they really couldn¡¯t think of a reason to linger around here anymore.
Inside the dungeon where all monsters had vanished, only their footsteps echoed vividly and loudly.
Once they made their way through the path, a massive open space revealed itself. There was a lone round tower standing tall in the middle of this space, and five more paths stretched out with it as their center.
<>
Creaaaak¡ª
m¡ª!
The path they took to get here suddenly disappeared. A massive te fell to the ground behind them and blocked the path.
¡°W-what¡¯s going on?¡±
¡°The path, it¡¯s....¡±
¡°What about the boss? Where is the boss?¡±
All three became flustered at this sudden development.
In the meantime, Su-hyeun was quietly studying the round tower in the middle.
<>
A short whileter, new messages popped up in the heads of the group, including Su-hyeun.
[There are five branching paths. For the next two hours, monsters will flood out from those paths dozens of times.]
[An exit will be generated at the foot of the round tower. However, only one individual can transfer out through the exit every 30 minutes.]
[Protect the round tower from the monsters. If the tower is destroyed, the exit will not appear again.]
[The trial will begin in five minutes.]
¡°....What was that?¡±
¡°A m-mission?¡±
The sudden appearance of the mission caused both Keshunirn and Howal to fall into panic.
Theparatively-calm Aile looked at the five branching paths and spoke up. ¡°A dungeon structured simrly to a trial.... As expected, the difficulty is considerable.¡±
It seemed that this wasn¡¯t her first time in a dungeon of this type. Su-hyeun stared at the round tower located in the middle of the space.
<>
Now that he took a closer look, there indeed was aplicated magic circle inscribed on the ground at the foot of the tower. A small stone was stuck in the middle of the magic circle, and that must¡¯ve been the medium that acted as the exit.
<>
Su-hyeun quickly analyzed the potential variables.
¡°A-all of these, they are Ether stones!¡± Keshunirn, checking out the exit, cried out in a loud voice. That prompted Howal and Aile to gather around the exit as well.
¡°All of these? Really?¡±
¡°It can¡¯t be... One dungeon can¡¯t possibly contain so many Ether stones of such high quality,¡± said Aile.
Her suspicion wasn¡¯t misguided.
The haul of Ether stones they got from this dungeon was considerably more, excessively so, than from other dungeons. Not only that, the round tower before their eyes easily exceeded a dozen meters in height.
Aile studied the tower. And sure enough, Ether stones could be found wedged here and there on the magic circles engraved on the surface of the tower.
¡°At a bare minimum, they are all above mid-grade quality. And also....¡±
The medium embedded in the middle of the magic circle. Aile¡¯s eyes nearly popped out of their sockets.
¡°A h-high grade Ether stone?¡±
Not just several mid-grade stones, but even one high-grade Ether stone as well. This amount was more than enough to blind anyone.
Of course, as Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t a person from this world, so he wasn¡¯t all that interested in those items.
<>
However, he thought he could now figure out the variable of the trial given to him this time. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes clearly reflected the naked greed on the faces of the other three people, including Aile herself.
Chapter 69
Chapter 69: Chapter 69
Five minutes flew by very quickly.
Two hours ¡ª that was the length of time they needed to endure.
<>
The thudding footsteps and screeches of the creatures could be hearding from all five paths.
The bizarre, sorrowful-sounding wail of the Silk Mermen was mixed among them, too. It seemed that every type of monster they had encountered so far while reaching this ce was going to flood out from those paths.
Hiiii-eeeek¡ª
Bark, baaaark¡ª!
Their initial number didn¡¯t seem high, at one creature per path.
Su-hyeun looked back at the other three in the group and addressed them. ¡°Let¡¯s take care of one each.¡±
¡°One each?¡±
¡°A monster will emerge from each of the paths.¡±
¡°But, that means one of them won¡¯t be dealt with?¡±
¡°It¡¯ll be fine since I¡¯ll be hunting down both of them.¡±
Aile groaned deeply as if she already guessed Su-hyeun would answer like that. ¡°Alright. We¡¯ll go with your n, then.¡±
¡°H-hold up. You defeated dozens of monsters all by yourself whileing here, yet you want to fight only two this time?¡± Howal asked in sheer dumbfoundedness.
With the skills Su-hyeun had disyed until now, he should have no problems dealing with all five monsters, never mind just the two. But now, he wanted them to fight the monsters here?
¡°Well, were you thinking ofzing around forever, then?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Howal found it impossible to argue back after being smacked by that loaded question.
The reality was, both he and Keshunirn could only hide behind Su-hyeun and pick up the stray Ether stones until now. That was all they could do. The description of themzing around doing nothing was pretty urate.
<>
Howal nced at the bulging bundle still on his back.
At this rate, he¡¯d end up getting only a couple of Ether stones and nothing else, since he hadn¡¯t done anything of note so far.
<>
Five minutes flew by while he was thinking of this and that.
Keshunirn and Howal grew deeply tense. They had been hiding in Su-hyeun¡¯s shadow ever since entering this dungeon, but for the first time ever, they needed to do their jobs and fight against the monsters for real.
<<30 minutes.>>
Howal¡¯s eyes gleamed as he stared at the path about to spit out a monster.
<>
Act 2
Countless monsters poured out.
The first five monsters were merely the start. Soon, the number gradually grew to ten, then fifteen, and eventually, a whole horde poured out next.
¡°Pant, pant, ha-ah¡ª¡±
Once the fighting was underway, it quickly revealed who among the group possessed the weakest constitution.
The first one to get injured was Keshunirn. He was currently resting on the sideline after experiencing a near-death encounter.
¡°Are you alright?¡±
Su-hyuen¡¯s question was met by Keshunirn¡¯s rough, heavy breathing as he held the wound on his waist.
¡°Ah, yes, I¡¯m fine. I¡¯ll be back on my feet if I rest for a bit longer.¡±
The wound itself was minor, but the real issue was his stamina. Hisplexion was deathly pale after having to rapidly exhaust his magical energy, and his movements had be unnatural from all the bleeding.
¡°Please rest for a little while. Or, would you like to wait for a bit and leave first since the exit should open up soon?¡±
¡°N-no, not at all!¡±
Keshunirn was stunned by Su-hyeun¡¯s question and shouted out loudly. He even hurriedly got up and waved his hands in denial, too.
¡°I¡¯m really fine. Ten minutes. I¡¯ll be alright if I can just rest for ten minutes.¡±
¡°....Is that so?¡±
The group had already made a pledge to one another. Even if the exit opened up, no one would try to escape from the dungeon first. If that happened, the remaining people would have to shoulder the additional burden.
Keshunirn swore that he¡¯d uphold that pledge no matter what.
¡°In that case, please go ahead,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Thank you.¡±
Keshunirn bowed his head towards Su-hyeun.
Soon, another five minutes went by. The remaining time was about an hour and a half.
Kiiiaaaahk¡ª!
¡°....They are rushing in like a pack of wild dogs again,¡± Aile muttered out as if she had grown sick and tired of this situation.
That was understandable, however. Dozens of them appeared thest time and that was enough to cause the group a lot of headaches, but the next iing wave of monsters would be higher in numbers than before.
If Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t here, never mind two hours, they wouldn¡¯t havested even one.
¡°Here theye.¡±
Su-hyeunpleted his preparations to fill the void left behind by Keshunirn¡¯s absence. Just as the monsters poured out and the battlemenced again.
¡°Ahh-aahk!¡±
Howal¡¯s scream exploded out from the side.
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze immediately spun in that direction. He spotted Howal sprayed out on the floor, while Keshunirn was hurriedly dashing towards the round tower, the location of the exit.
He instantly figured out what happened.
Keshunirn¡¯s shoulders were currently carrying Howal¡¯s bundle filled to the brim with the Ether stones.
Rumble¡ª
Kkaah-aahk¡ª!
The bird created out of the me, Phoenix, appeared on Su-hyeun¡¯s hand. It quickly flew past the gaps of the monsters and headed straight to the fleeing Keshunirn.
¡°W-what¡¯s this?¡±
He panicked at the sudden entrance of the Phoenix and cried out. He mistakenly thought that a monster supposed to be fighting against the other three people had slipped past and was somehow blocking his path.
¡°Eeeek!¡±
Keshunirn hurriedly swung his hand in the Phoenix¡¯s direction. Unfortunately, his swatting attempt only managed to scatter the small figure of the bird for a moment but failed to stop it from reforming again to torment him endlessly.
¡°Dammit, just... get out of my way!¡±
It was then.
Ka-booooom¡ª!
Rumble, ruuuumble¡ª!
Gigantic walls of mes suddenly raged on in every direction, and the high-density magical energy started oppressing the atmosphere.
The deeply-stunned Keshunirn fell into even deeper panic and tried to look behind him.
¡°Where do you think you¡¯re going?¡± a voice abruptly said.
¡°Heo-urk!¡±
However, he was shocked by the voiceing from right behind him and ungainly fell to his side. After his behind crashed on the floor, he raised his head only to discover Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
But, didn¡¯t he witness him fighting against the monsters on the other side just now...?
<>
Keshunirn¡¯s eyes shifted in the direction where Su-hyeun was fighting earlier. In the next second, those very eyes were jerked violently open.
¡°A-already?¡±
All those numerous monsters were instantly incinerated to death.
That explosion earlier was caused by Su-hyeun killing all the monsters away in one fell swoop.
<>
Keshunirn finally realized that he had been underestimating Su-hyeun¡¯s abilities until now. He never thought that Su-hyeun would be able to deal with the monsters so quickly.
The Phoenixnded on Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder and looked down on Keshunirn.
¡°What were you nning to do after escaping with all of those stones?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°T-that is... T-there must be some kind of a mistake....¡±
¡°So, if there¡¯s some kind of a mistake, you should stab yourrade, steal the loot, and run away?¡±
As expected, Keshunirn couldn¡¯t reply.
When that happened, Su-hyeun¡¯s previously-friendly expression asking questions hardened like solid ice. ¡°Misunderstanding, my ass.¡±
It was right then, Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze suddenly shifted to the other side.
Kka-aaahk¡ª!
¡°Ouch, ouch! Ahk!¡±
Howal, who was attacked by Keshunirn earlier, was trying to rush towards the exit only for his movements toe to a crashing halt. Two Phoenixes were surrounding him, while yet another bundle of stones was being carried on his back.
¡°B-but, how?¡±
Keshunirn¡¯s eyes nearly popped out of his sockets.
Then, his gaze quickly locked onto the bundle he dropped as he fell.
Shu-wuuu¡ª
The bundle began melting down like a lit candle. Keshunirn alternated his gaze between his melting, disappearing bundle and Howal with a confused, lost expression.
¡°You couldn¡¯t even recognize the duplication skill at work, and risked your life to steal some random rubbish?¡± Su-hyeun stared at Keshunirn and softly tutted.
Both men had simr goals, but Howal was slightly smarter of the two.
He used the Duplication skill, which allowed its user to disguise one item to make it look like something else, to swap out the real Ether stones and fooled Keshunirn into stealing the fakes. It seemed that Howal had noticed Keshunirn being a simr type of b*stard as he was a while ago. Su-hyeun had already figured out that Howal was also the same sort of person, too.
¡°Fooling us with your injury, duplicating the Ether stones and stashing them away.... Besides the question of who¡¯s dumber than the other, you two are exactly the same. Howughable. I guess you don¡¯t give a rat¡¯s ass about the safety of your ownrades?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°It-it¡¯s a m-misunderstanding....¡±
Howal was already wounded, and he could only swing his hands about in a fluster at the sudden attacks of the two Phoenixes.
Su-hyeun¡¯s expression crumpled as he stared at Howal.
¡°That stupid ¡®misunderstanding¡¯ again. Aren¡¯t you sick of repeating the same thing over and over again?¡±
¡°It-it¡¯s the truth! It-it¡¯s just that I realized that bastard was trying to steal the Ether stones, so....¡±
¡°In that case, how do you exin that?¡± Su-hyeun spoke as he pointed at the high-grade Ether stone embedded in the middle of the round tower¡¯s magic circle. ¡°That¡¯s also a fake, isn¡¯t it? Are you telling me that you didn¡¯t know about the second exit not being generated if that stone was removed from there? Why? You didn¡¯t want anyone else besides yourself to escape? Was that it?¡±
¡°B-but...how did you...¡±
Howal¡¯s brows shot up incredibly high.
At the same time, the high-grade Ether stone in the middle of the magic circle began melting down. The Duplication skill hade undone.
¡°I wasn¡¯t sure, but it turned out to be true,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°W-what??¡±
¡°The duplication skill loses its effectiveness the moment its user thinks someone else has seen through their ruse. I only spotted you sneakily touching the stone earlier, but I couldn¡¯t be sure because I was still fighting the monsters, you see.¡±
Only a handful of Awakeners knew about the Duplication skill. Not only was it a rare skill to begin with, but its usage was also rather limited as well, so not much was known about the skill itself.
<>
His n was seemingly perfect. He knew Keshunirn would betray them, so he decided to use that window of opportunity to escape with the Ether stones.
This many Ether stones would¡¯ve afforded him a life free from all worries for the rest of his time on this, after all.
But now...
¡°I¡¯d much prefer it if you don¡¯t start ruing your missed chances here. Because, even if you used that exit, you still wouldn¡¯t have reached the outside, anyway,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°What was that....?¡±
The expressions on both Keshunirn¡¯s and Howal¡¯s faces were dyed in confusion as Su-hyeun continued on. ¡°I tinkered with the magic circle at the beginning, you see. I changed the coordinates a little. If you used that exit and transferred elsewhere, you¡¯d probably end up among the pile of the monster corpses over there.¡±
¡°In.... such a short time?¡±
¡°What are you so surprised about? All I did was tinker with the coordinates a little. I mean, we¡¯ll all be able to leave in two hours¡¯ time, so it wasn¡¯t going to be a problem anyway, right?¡±
Despair dyed the faces of the two men after hearing Su-hyeun out.
From the beginning, they shouldn¡¯t have schemed about escaping. ording to what Su-hyeun had said, no such thing as an escape route existed to begin with.
¡°As for the damaged Ether stone, it¡¯ll be fine after putting it back in its original position.... Well, then. Anyst words?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Lst words?¡±
¡°P-please, spare me!¡±
Howal¡¯splexion paled in an instant, while Keshunirn hurriedly got down on his knees. In the midst of desperately rubbing his hands and pleading for his life, Keshunirn inwardly thought to himself.
<>
The ¡°Su-hyeun¡± Keshunirn observed for the past ten days was a really kind-hearted person.
A good example was earlier when he asked if the injured Keshunirn wanted to escape outside first. Even if he had changed the coordinates as a safeguard, Su-hyeun seemed genuine when he said that back then.
He was a hero-like person who could never forsake the injured, helpless people. A person as kind as that might really spare his life ¡ª that¡¯s what Keshunirn thought.
<>
His mouth was pleading for his life, while he was thinking of something else in his head.
As he pleaded tearfully and desperately, Su-hyeun¡¯s voice stabbed him from above. ¡°The thing is, there¡¯s a reason why I¡¯ve been wasting my energy exining to b*stards like you why you¡¯re going to die....¡±
¡°Eh?¡±
Just as Keshunirn raised his head at that unexpected reply...
Stab¡ª
Su-hyuen¡¯s de pierced into his throat.
¡°...So that you may know what your sins are and repent on your way to the afterlife.¡±
Step¡ª
Su-hyeun turned around unhesitatingly and strode towards Howal next.
Thetter and his deathly-pale face stared at the former walking in closer, his teeth ttering incessantly.
Su-hyeun watched Howal whisper the words ¡°spare me¡± under his breath and could only sigh softly to himself.
¡°You know, I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve ever met anyone of your kind that genuinely repented for their sins and tried to ask for forgiveness.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze was directed to the dead Keshunirn. ¡°Nine times out of ten, you lot always say ¡®spare me¡¯ first, instead of ¡®forgive me.¡¯¡±
¡°U-uwaaaah¡ª!¡±¡±
Perhaps realizing that Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t going to spare his life, Howal suddenly shot up from his spot and pounced on the former.
Crack¡ª
Bang¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s hand grabbed Howall¡¯s neck and mmed him to the ground below.
¡°Keo-hurk!¡±
¡°I have no idea how you two thought of me until now, but...¡±
Break¡ª
¡°You see, I¡¯m not always such a nice guy.¡±
Chapter 70
Chapter 70: Chapter 70
Environments found throughout every trial were equipped with such devices.
That was the very first rule Su-hyeun would remember while experiencing the trials. Especially when the level of difficulty was high, that rule would apply even more strictly than ever before.
It was the same story this time around as well.
Aile, Keshunirn, Howal. Out of these three, the two men¡¯s roles were mostly unclear.
Su-hyeun was able to read the pure greed over the Ether stones reflected in their eyes.
<>
He previously thought that this simple dungeon attack wouldn¡¯t have any matters capable of making him feel mentally exhausted. However, having given the matter a bit more thought, the roles of thepanions seemed to be different. Not only that, he also felt that the difficulty this time was somehow lower than the floor before it, too.
So, a variable must¡¯ve existed somewhere. He managed to find that variable within Keshunirn and Howal.
<>
The trial¡¯s system would initiallye across as rather friendly. It did inform you in detail of what you needed to do, and what your aim was, after all.
However, in trials with higher difficulty, holes would inevitably exist in those exnations. Sometimes, the goal would be twisted in the exnations, or the exnation itself would be omitted entirely.
This was one such a case.
Although it offered the clear-cut aim of attacking the dungeon, it didn¡¯t exin anything about the issues Su-hyeun had to tackle during the process. Taking Su-hyeun¡¯s skills out of the equation for a moment here, he would¡¯ve failed to prevent the two men¡¯s betrayal if he didn¡¯t make preparations for it well ahead of time.
Gulp¡ª
Inside this deathly-quiet open space, the sound of saliva being swallowed echoed rather thunderously.
Only then did Su-hyeun recall his still-remaining party member.
¡°Uh, euh, euh.....¡±
Aile, thoroughly terrified now, began stepping away from Su-hyeun. He finally became aware of the fact that he hadn¡¯t withdrawn his magical energy yet.
¡°Ah, I¡¯m sorry about that.¡±
Shu-wuuuu¡ª
The gigantic magical energy filling up the whole space disappeared instantly. It was very, very faint, but the signs of relief showed up in Aile¡¯s expression just then, but unfortunately, her gaze ended up meeting Su-hyeun¡¯s, and fear took hold of her anew.
<<...Will she be okay?>>
It seemed that she mistakenly thought he¡¯d murder her next.
¡°I¡¯m not nning to harm you in any shape or form. Please don¡¯t be scared like that, and prepare for the next wave of the monster attacks.¡±
¡°Eh? Ah, of course!¡±
Her reply certainly sounded energetic, but she didn¡¯t seem to havepletely escaped from her nervousness yet. He inwardly clicked his tongue and muttered to himself.
<>
It¡¯d be hard to defend against the iing waves of monsters with her current state.
Aile might possess much greater abilities than the other two men, but it didn¡¯t mean she was as overwhelmingly powerful as Su-hyeun.
And sure enough, she ended up making a small error during the next wave of attacks.
Whoooosh¡ª
Split¡ª!
The jaw of a crocodile pouncing on her was split wide open in half. Aile was about to get sucked into this monster¡¯s mouth, so quite understandably, she fell on her rear in pure shock.
¡°Are you alright?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Ah... T-thank you.¡±
¡°If it¡¯s getting too difficult to carry on, please take a seat and rest. I¡¯ll be fine by myself during the time remaining.¡±
Aile was stunned by Su-hyeun¡¯s suggestion and raised her head. He didn¡¯t need her to verbally exin herself to figure out what her expression was currently conveying.
Feeling just a wee bit wronged here, Su-hyeun frowned deeply and asked her back. ¡°You think I¡¯m some insane bloodthirsty murderer that goes around killing people for no reason?¡±
¡°That isn¡¯t it, but...¡±
¡°What do you mean, it isn¡¯t? Your expression says otherwise.¡±
She lowered her head in embarrassment from his rebuke. It was true that she saw Su-hyeun as an indiscriminate killer after bearing witness to people getting killed right before her eyes.
She also wrongly believed that she could very well be his next victim, too.
¡°I¡¯m sorry,¡± Aile apologized.
Even though her face became flushed as she apologized, thankfully, her nervousness seemed to have disappeared.
Su-hyeun took a quick nce at the remaining time.
<>
Most likely, this one hour would prove to be far more arduous than the one preceding it. Not for him but for Aile, of course.
He let out a long sigh and sat down in front of her. ¡°Miss Aile, why are you in this line of work?¡±
¡°Excuse me?¡±
¡°If you get scared so easily like this, then you won¡¯tst long in this profession. If you get too stiff from nervousness and make one error somewhere, that¡¯s going to lead you to an event simr to the one that happened just now.¡±
Aile could only bit on her lip at Su-hyeun¡¯s words questioning herpetence as an awakener.
Unfortunately for her, though, Su-hyeun was thinking that Aile wasn¡¯t quite cut out for this line of work. ¡°You are born with your talent, yes, but that talent doesn¡¯t always trante into real-world abilities. Miss Aile, I just don¡¯t see the resolve in you to take another person¡¯s life.¡±
¡°...You¡¯re right.¡±
¡°You know it, don¡¯t you? This line of work... No, even if it¡¯s not necessarily this profession, it¡¯ll still be the same either way. If you are not resolved, then you need to quit as soon as possible.¡±
His words were sharp enough to stab into her neck. Indeed, what Su-hyeun said became a cold dagger piercing deep into her chest.
However, she didn¡¯t have anything to refute him with. Everything he said was correct. For sure, it could be for the best if she gave up on this line of work as soon as possible.
She didn¡¯t have the resolve to kill another person. But...
¡°I can¡¯t quit,¡± replied Aile.
¡°Despite not having the resolve?¡±
¡°I¡¯ll try my best.¡±
¡°But, why? Do you have a special reason?¡±
¡°I do,¡± she replied without a shred of hesitation. Aile raised her head and stared at the ceiling. She just didn¡¯t have the confidence to look in Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes and continue on with her tale.
¡°Were you aware that I¡¯m from a fallen noble family?¡±
¡°...Yes, I was.¡±
He knew the rough details of it. Memories rted to her and otherpanions were inserted into his brain by the trial¡¯s system, even if they were only the generalized outline. However, that¡¯s as far as they went. All the info Su-hyeun had on Aile didn¡¯t amount to much.
She continued on. ¡°As for how our family fell.... you wouldn¡¯t know since I never mentioned it.¡±
¡°Was it because of money?¡±
¡°You¡¯re surprisingly quick on the uptake.¡±
¡°Surprisingly?¡±
¡°Ah, did I cross the line? I¡¯m sorry.¡± Aile grinned and went back to the topic at hand. ¡°You¡¯re right. It was all because of money. A sum so preposterous that a normal person would find it hard to even imagine.¡±
¡°You¡¯re in this line of work to pay that off?¡±
¡°You aren¡¯t going to ask me how much it is? People would always ask first how much the debt is after they hear this tale.¡±
¡°It¡¯s not like I¡¯ll pay it for you even if you tell me, and I¡¯m not particrly curious about it, either. That¡¯s why.¡±
¡°You¡¯re rather realistic, aren¡¯t you?¡± She must¡¯ve preferred that because her tense expression eased up considerably.
Su-hyeun saw the change and began thinking that perhaps she had been waiting for an opportunity to spill her heart out to someone else for a long while.
¡°Well, it¡¯s a predictable tale after that. A fallen noble family, a mountain of debt, an inordinate amount of wealth needed to make the triumphant return. An older brother who has no talents but still overflowing with drive and a bed-ridden father.¡±
¡°It sounds like you¡¯re basically the head of the family, Miss Aile.¡±
¡°The head of the family? Well... I guess so.¡±
A bitter smile floated on her lips at his remark.
Su-hyeun sneaked a nce at her face, and while shifting his gaze away, cautiously asked her. ¡°Didn¡¯t you have anyone willing to help you out? Such as rtives, or....¡±
¡°We did ask for assistance. Whether that be friends, rtives, or the other aristocrats on friendly terms with my father....¡±
¡°But then?¡±
¡°If they did lend a helping hand, would I even be here?¡±
What an obvious question that was. Su-hyeun thought that he asked something he shouldn¡¯t have, and turned his embarrassed face away.
Aile carried on. ¡°That¡¯s how things were like, as it turned out. Maybe I¡¯m biased towards him because he¡¯s my father, but you see, he has always been a generous person throughout his life.¡± She spoke up to here and bit down hard on her lip. ¡°If only someone lent us just a little bit of a help back then....¡±
She stopped there and shook her head.
She swore not to use the excuse of ¡°no one helped her out and that¡¯s why she ended up like this.¡± She felt her face getting red after realizing that she shouldn¡¯t have brought this topic up.
¡°S-still, I was fortunate enough to receive these abilities, and because I have the talent for it, I managed to earn some money in this profession. I guess the heavens don¡¯t want me to drown to death in debt just yet.¡± After she said that, Aile brought her knees closer to her chest and buried her face there. ¡°Well, I have no idea how long it will take me before I can pay off everything in full, though.¡±
Just how much was the debt, anyway?
Su-hyeun was able to experience many different worlds through the trials. He got to encounter nobles like Aile in several of them, too.
It wasn¡¯t all that hard to figure out how wealthy they were even from a casual nce. Nobles were simr to wealthy dynastiesmonly found in Su-hyeun¡¯s own world.
So, a fallen noble family was somewhat like the business owner taking on the debt of a bankrupt corporation. Most likely, such a debt would be well out of the scope of normal people¡¯s imagination.
She was still so young, yet she had to live on while being saddled with such a hefty burden.
¡°I think that, for sure...¡± Su-hyeun shifted his gaze away and muttered out, seemingly to no one in particr. ¡°...Someone will definitely extend a helping hand in the future.¡±
[Next wave willmence.]
The next wave of attacks was underway while he was listening to her tale.
He spoke while standing up from his spot. ¡°Please rest here. Your emotions must be in a mess, anyway.¡±
¡°No, I feel much better than before. Besides, I need to pull my weight here, too.¡±
Was she enthusiastic because of her conscience or to get a better share of the Ether stones, even by just a little?
Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t figure out what her intentions were, but he thought it wasn¡¯t something he needed to worry about right now.
Regardless of what her reasons were, he would wee her with open arms if she wanted to stay loyal to her role.
¡°In that case, I¡¯ll be in your care.¡±
* * *
Gu-uh, uh-urk, uhhh-urk-
A giant¡¯s voice cut out, and it began roaring instead.
The giant monster, its entire body scarred by numerous minor sword wounds and scorched pitch-ck by mes, tottered precariously as if it¡¯d fall down at any second.
The Worm Gigant.
It was a repulsive-looking giant monster with countless insects living in its torso. It so happened to be the boss of this very dungeon, as well.
¡°Urgh, so disgusting....¡± Aile said as she extended her hand towards the Worm Gigant.
Not too long afterward, crimson mes erupted out from her hand and shot out towards the huge monster.
Ruuuuumble¡ª!
Gu-uhhhhh¡ª!
The Worm Gigant was already suffering from heavy burns caused by Su-hyeun¡¯s own Divine me, and so it began roaring out in even greater pain.
¡°Please wait for a moment,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Pardon?¡±
¡°I¡¯d like to finish it off.¡±
Aile blinked her eyes as Su-hyeun stepped in front of her.
He seemed to have room to spare until now, but for some reason, he looked rather pressed at this moment. Rather than being worried, however, it was far closer to anticipation, instead.
<>
Could it be that he was expecting something from the boss monster?
Aile stepped back as per Su-hyeun¡¯s wishes. He smirked and strode towards the Worn Gigant.
¡°Your life sure is resilient, I¡¯ll give you that. Even if your movements are really dull,¡± said Su-hyeun.
The Worm Gigant was a fairly high-ranking monster among the bosses that appeared in yellow-colored dungeons. It was famous for the power its huge physique could generate, as well as its resilient lifeforce, above all else.
Of course, this boss and its lumbering movements couldn¡¯t pose any notable danger to Su-hyeun.
¡°So... it¡¯s fine to expect a lot from you, right?¡±
Growl¡ª
The Worm Gigant¡¯s hand cast a huge shadow over the head of Su-hyeun.
Piii-eeek¡ª
Saaash¡ª!
The monster¡¯s hand was sliced and blood sprayed out. Its hide, weakened to the extreme by the burn wounds, was easily cut by Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
<>
One of the defining features of the Worm Gigant was its rtively malleable bones inparison to its tougher-than-steel skin. Some kind of a magical enhancement cast on the skin was probably the reason for this phenomenon.
Boom¡ª
Su-hyeun leaped up to the top of the Worm Gigant¡¯s head in an instant. The boss nned to swallow him in one go and opened its mouth wide open, its head moving in his direction.
m¡ª!
Ku-rung¡ª
Realizing that its fangs weren¡¯t chewing on anything but air, the Worm Gigant formed a confused expression and turned its head this way and that. It was then that a voice came from behind the boss.
¡°I¡¯m kind of feeling impatient, actually.¡±
[Transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
Wuduk, wududuk¡ª
Scales of Imoogi began jutting out from Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
At the same time, strength several times greater than before flowed into his hand holding Gram.
¡°Let¡¯s wrap this up quickly.¡±
Chapter 71
Chapter 71: Chapter 71
Saaash¡ª
Slice, slice, sliiiice¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword started cutting up the huge body of the Work Gigant into several pieces. The creature¡¯s sturdy hide was prated through, its bones were sliced up, and its body was chopped into chunks.
Kiiiiieeehk¡ª!
Parasitic insects living within the Worm Gigant¡¯s body all crawled outside. These hundreds of creatures spewed out toxins and pounced on Su-hyeun next.
It was then.
Ruuuumble¡ª!
Boom, ka-boooom¡ª!
With Su-hyeun as the center, a chain of explosions went off all around him. The blue-colored divine me burned the toxins away and killed off the insects.
Soon afterward, the Worm Gigant stopped breathing, and just as every single insect was burned to crisp...
[1000 achievement points have been acquired.]
[Warmth has been added to the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg.]
[The Divine Beast within the egg is satisfied.]
[The Divine Beast¡¯s Egg is beginning to hatch.]
<>
Su-hyeun inwardly cried out in tion.
The past ten days of dungeon crawling was all for the sake of hatching this egg. The percentage of hatching rate went up a little every time he killed a monster and snatched away their ¡°warmth.¡±
The current trial also ended up ying a crucial role in hastening the hatching of the egg.
Monsters flooded out nonstop for almost two hours straight, so from Su-hyeun¡¯s perspective, he should raise both of his hands and praise the sun.
And just as he suspected, the boss appearing at the end, the Worm Gigant, yed a key role in hatching of this egg.
<>
He could sense the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg currently stored in his Inventory shake around a little bit.
It seemed that the egg would hatch little by little, indicating that perhaps it wasn¡¯t supposed to break out of the shell immediately. However, it didn¡¯t feel like the process would take a long time. On top of that, celebrating the sessful conclusion to this trial came first.
¡°Is it all over?¡± Aile asked.
¡°Most likely. Although it hasn¡¯t been two hours yet....¡±
Since it was brought up, Su-hyeun decided to check the remaining time.
[psed time: 01:57:54.]
About two minutes still remained.
But, the boss was defeated already, so in reality, the trial was as good as over.
Su-hyeun looked back at Aile. ¡°You worked hard.¡±
¡°Thank you. You too. I managed to survive thanks to you.¡±
Aile believed that, if Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t around, she¡¯d not have lived through this dungeon, so she was thanking him earnestly.
After hearing her words of gratitude, he shifted his gaze over to the bundle of Ether stones put away to the side, plus the mid- and high-grade Ether stones still stuck in the round tower. ¡°All of those should fetch a pretty good price, yes?¡±
¡°Pardon? Ah, of course. For both the mid- and high-grade Ether stones, you can supposedly demand any price you desire, so...¡±
As expected, the Ether stones seemed to be a rare resource in this world, as well. But then again, that¡¯d be pretty obvious considering that the awakeners, already invaluable assets in themselves, had to risk their lives to acquire those stones.
¡°That¡¯s a relief.¡±
¡°Relief? What do you mean?¡± Aile formed a puzzled expression after hearing his unexpected words. But she soon thought of something and nodded her head. ¡°Ah, I see. Warrick, I presume you haven¡¯t had a chance to personally sell the Ether stones yet? Please be rest assured. If we take all of them out of here and sell them off, we¡¯ll have more than enough to pay off my family debt and still have considerable sum remaining.¡±
It was not just a bundle filled with low-ranked Ether stones, but also several mid- and high-grade ones, too. This amount was easily more than enough topletely wipe off the debt rued by the fallen noble family.
It was unknown how much would be left after the debt had been settled, but still, it should be enough to open up a small shop somewhere.
Su-hyeun smiled after hearing Aile¡¯s reply. Fortunately for him, he got the answer he wanted to hear. ¡°Sounds good.¡±
[The trial has been cleared.]
[The exit is opening.]
The time psed and Su-hyeun confirmed the exit opening at the foot of the round tower. He then continued on. ¡°That¡¯s why I¡¯m relieved.¡±
¡°....Pardon?¡±
That¡¯s why he was relieved?
What did he mean?
Aile formed a truly confused expression this time. But then, it quickly morphed into one of pure shock as she turned around.
¡°W-Warrick??¡±
Su-hyeun, standing right before her eyes only a second ago, was now gone without a trace.
Aile hurriedly searched the underground cavity filled with monster corpses. In the end, though, she failed to find the man who disappeared without saying goodbye, and stood there in a sheer daze.
But then, the bundle of Ether stones resting on the floor caught her eyes.
¡°It can¡¯t be....¡±
<>
Aile¡¯s eyes grewrger andrger.
Only then did she finally realize what Su-hyeun meant earlier.
<>
Plop¡ª
She plopped down right on the spot.
<>
Someone else.
Su-hyeun meant himself when he said those words.
¡°Ah, ah....¡±
Drip, drip¡ª
Her tears that didn¡¯t flow when her family was ruined, all of her emotions piling up endlessly ever since then, began flooding out all at once.
¡°Thank... you....¡±
Not one person offered her a helping hand, but when someone did, it was not her friend nor family, but a near-stranger.
She wanted to say something, anything, to express her gratitude but Su-hyeun was long gone by then.
¡°Thank you, thank you....¡±
Aile remained sitting on the ground, staring at the exit and muttering to herself for a long, long time.
Act 3
As expected, the reward for the 21st floor¡¯s trial was a fair amount of achievement points but not much else.
Bringing out the Ether stones with him was too difficult. In order to bring those found within the trials, one would need the ¡°Property of Dimension¡± order form.
Of course, if he really wanted to, he could have brought them out. He could¡¯ve used the order form to bring out that one particr Ether stone. Indeed, he wouldn¡¯t have felt shortchanged if he decided to use the form inside his pocket to bring out the high-grade Ether stone.
<>
However, he didn¡¯t really need one, and Aile¡¯s situation also weighed on his mind, too.
<>
Su-hyeun roughly scratched his head.
His thoughts wereplicated, but he never regretted his actions after making up his mind. Not only was he not the type to be hung up over money, but he figured that it¡¯d also be a good idea to horde some achievement points for a rainy day. Also, there was something else even more important than that to worry about.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s heart fluttered, wondering what mighte out from this egg seemingly only a moment away from hatching.
<>
When he reached the 22nd floor¡¯s world, Su-hyeun opened the doorway and returned home immediately. Of course, he didn¡¯t forget to use the ¡°Property of Dimension¡± order form to bring out the egg with him.
There it was, a in egg the size of a man¡¯s head. Unlike before, though, a certain warmth could be felt on its surface.
<>
Su-hyeun had never witnessed the birth of a Divine Beast before, and as a result, a certain worry began settling in his head.
<>
While thinking about this and that, he waited for the egg to hatch.
If he took it outside and an ident happened, now that would be a huge tragedy. He heard that a Divine Beast recognized the first person it saw after the hatching as its parent, and would follow it right till its dying day.
Which meant that the birth of the Divine Beast had to be done in a ce with no one but him. He waited while asionally touching the surface of the egg, and before he knew it, half a day flew by.
This was rather strange. The egg that showed signs of hatching at any moment still didn¡¯t want to crack.
¡°...What¡¯s going on here?¡±
Su-hyeun frowned as thoughts of ¡°it can¡¯t be¡± invaded his mind.
He pondered this quandary for a little while before cing his hand on the egg and injecting his magical energy a little bit at a time.
When he did...
Crack, craaaack¡ª
Cracks began running on the egg¡¯s surface. Soon afterward, a small arm broke through the shell and emerged outside.
Crack! Craaack¡ª!
What revealed itself was a tiny but long red dragon,zily yawning away.
¡°A dragon?¡±
The creature curled its 50 centimeter-long body and quivered ever so slightly.
One might mistake it for a snake, but the pair of arms and small wings on its back undoubtedly proved that this little guy was a dragon. Plus, a snake wouldn¡¯t pop out from the so-called ¡°Divine Beast¡¯s Egg¡± anyway.
Rather than a dragon¡¯s face, though, its roundish head somewhat vaguely resembled a turtle, instead. Su-hyeun thought that that could be attributed to it being still a young hatchling.
But...
Snore, snore¡ª
The dragon was fast asleep.
It had been jolted a little by the injection of magical energy and quivered around a bit, but returned to sleeping once more.
The reason why the egg didn¡¯t shatter even though the hatching hadmenced a long time ago was...
¡°...As I thought, you were asleep.¡±
As he suspected, the creature was innd.
Su-hyeun groaned. He was wondering why there was no response for half a day, but this little guy was sleeping inside the egg.
When he looked back to how he almost died from anticipation in the past several hours, he felt somewhat bitter inside. Not only that, he managed to wake it up but the dragon simply went right back to sleep, too.
Of course, a wonderful thing would remain as wonderful regardless of what happened.
<>
ording to what Su-hyeun knew about the Divine Beasts, dragons were considered to be the top-tier species among them.
This newly-hatched dragon was far closer to the eastern dragon in looks than the western one. He couldn¡¯t tell its exact abilities yet, but there was no doubt he got himself a massive jackpot here.
¡°I¡¯ll be in your care from now on...¡±
Su-hyeun pondered what he should call this baby dragon sleeping before his eyes and eventually spoke its name.
¡°Miru.¡±
Miru. The pure Korean word for ¡°dragon.¡±
Su-hyeun always founding up with names a bit of a pain in the neck.
***
Miru only became active after sleeping through the entire day.
Su-hyeun patiently waited until Miru woke up. The baby dragon eventually did, and when its sparkling eyes discovered him, quickly approached its new parent.
Gurung, gurung¡ª
Miru, making happy humming sounds floated towards Su-hyeun,nded on his shoulder, and began rubbing its head on his cheek.
Well, it certainly was acting cute.
¡°Hey, Miru? What¡¯s your specialty?¡±
¡°Gurung?¡±
Miru tilted its head at Su-hyeun¡¯s question before resuming rubbing itself against his cheek.
He could only sigh.
<>
He didn¡¯t go through all that toil on the 21st floor just to raise a pet. In addition, it was a dragon, a top-ranked creature, so there simply had to be some uses for this guy.
Gururung¡ª
Gurung¡ª
Miru wrapped around Su-hyeun¡¯s neck. Since it didn¡¯t have any fur or scales, he could feel its slick hide against his skin in its full glory.
It sure was cute, indeed.
So cute, but....
¡°Miru....¡±
....To think, trying tomunicate with a Divine Beast that didn¡¯t understand you would prove to be this difficult.
<>
Unfortunately, ording to Su-hyeun¡¯s knowledge base, no such skill existed, which meant he¡¯d have to gradually discover what Miru¡¯s abilities were.
<>
Abusing the creature, busy demanding to know what it was capable of when it just hatched? Now that was not something a father should do.
Su-hyeun looked at Miru wrapped around his neck and about to fall asleep again and began thinking to himself.
<>
He also thought about something else as well.
<>
He was one of the handfuls of S-rank awakeners in South Korea.
It wasn¡¯t as if they were acquaintances, and since that man also acted on his own while not being affiliated with any group, Su-hyeun had pretty much given up interacting with him, thinking that running into him would be very difficult.
But now, Su-hyeun changed his mind.
<>
He used to worry about how to meet that man, but now, there was no need for that.
Su-hyeun, with Miru still wrapped around his neck, settled in front of hisputer and logged into Abyss Online.
[A dragon came out from a Divine Beast¡¯s Egg. Mister Song Hyeong-gi, I¡¯ll be waiting for your reply.]
The man who was an S-rank Awakener, who also dealt with Divine Beasts ¨C Song Hyeong-gi.
He was a renowned Divine Beast enthusiast.
Chapter 72
Chapter 72: Chapter 72
A day flew by after that.
Su-hyeun¡¯s post became the hottest trending topic in an instant ¡ª not only were the title and content simply too stimting, but the poster¡¯s ID was a pretty familiar one as well.
¨C A Divine Beast? A dragon? What on earth is up with that?
¨C You know, S-Rank Song Hyeong-gi is supposed to be in possession of a Divine Beast, so maybe rted to that.
¨C Some dude wants to meet Song Hyeung-gi, so he¡¯s going with an aggro-ing tactic?
¨C Doesn¡¯t seem that way. Check out the ID. That¡¯s Kim Su-hyeun, dude.
¨C Really?
¨C Uh, it¡¯s for real.
¨C Son of a... In that case, Kim Su-hyeun and Song Hyeung-gi will meet up? If true, that¡¯s freaking huge. Can¡¯t a TV station broadcast what those two will do or something?
Most of them were uselessments.
Those raising a ruckus were either unrted civilians, no-name awakeners or a handful of interested guilds.
Su-hyeun remained sitting in front of theputer while muttering to himself. ¡°Hey, Miru? Looks like we might need more time to find that uncle.¡±
Gurung, gurung¡ª
Miru didn¡¯t seem to care either way, as it continued to doze off while wrapped around Su-hyeun¡¯s neck.
He didn¡¯t even know what to feed this little guy. And Miru only drank water throughout the day. He tried to feed it various different foods, but it didn¡¯t eat any.
Ding dong¡ª
It was then that someone rang the doorbell and a voice came in from the outside.
¡°Bro! Bro, it¡¯s me!¡± The voice belonged to Hak-joon, as it turned out.
When Su-hyeun opened the door, he was suddenly greeted by arge stic bag filled with stuff pushed towards his face.
¡°We got takeout,¡± said Hak-joon.
¡°Hello there.¡±
Yun-seon, standing behind Hak-joon, bowed and greeted Su-hyeun. Meanwhile, Hak-joon craned his neck and scanned the interior. ¡°Ohh, your ce is pretty nice. How many square meters is it?¡±
¡°That¡¯s not important, is it? Come in first.¡±
Su-hyeun took Hak-joon¡¯s stic bag and guided the duo into his home.
He was originally nning to stay home at least for one whole day searching for Song Hyeong-gi, but with a great timing, Hak-joon gave him a call and decided to show up here.
As soon as he got inside, Hak-joon asked for Su-hyeun¡¯s permission and started opening up the stic bag on the dining table. Soon, all sorts of takeout, including spicy rice cakes, Korean sausages, as well as various deep-fried junk foods found themselves sprawled on the table.
¡°By the way, bro? Where is Miru? We came to see Miru, actually,¡± asked Hak-joon.
¡°Right here.¡±
¡°Where?¡±
Su-hyeun pointed to his neck, prompting Hak-joon and Yun-seon to tilt their heads this way and that before they gasped in sheer surprise.
¡°T-that wasn¡¯t a scarf?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°It¡¯s not even cold outside, and why would I wear a scarf inside the house? This guy¡¯s like this because it¡¯s asleep.¡±
Gurung, gururung¡ª
Miru was still slumbering away, utterly oblivious to the presence of the visitors. Well, it slept for at least 15 hours a day, so there was that.
Yun-seon¡¯s eyes sparkled at the dragon with a body a lot smaller than she expected. She went behind Su-hyeun and discovered Miru¡¯s head resting atop his shoulder.
¡°It¡¯s-it¡¯s really cute.¡±
Her eyes sparkled even more than before as she cautiously reached out. It seemed that she was wondering whether to touch Miru or not.
Kurung¡ª?
It was then that Miru woke up, perhaps after sensing the unfamiliar presence.
The baby dragon abruptly raised its head and blinked several times, alternating its gaze between Yun-seon and Hak-joon, before flying up over Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
p, p¡ª
Kurung, keung¡ª
Miru pped its small wings and flew above its father¡¯s head, then studied the takeout ced on the dining table for a little while.
But then, it soon lost interest and settled down in afortable-looking sitting position, with its chin resting on Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
¡°This little guy doesn¡¯t want to eat that either,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°What does it eat, anyway?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know. It hasn¡¯t eaten anything. I¡¯m worried that at this rate, I might end up being a dad who starves his kid.¡±
¡°A dad?¡± Yun-seon asked.
Hak-joon followed up. ¡°Where¡¯s the mom then?¡±
p¡ª!
Hak-joon¡¯s question was rewarded with Yun-seon¡¯s p to his back. He greatly exaggerated how much that hurt, then reached out to the food and began eating it. For a while, these three people including Su-hyeun enjoyed the food and talked about this and that.
¡°What is Ju-ho doing these days?¡± Hak-joon asked.
It seemed that Hak-joon was already in a ¡°big bro, little bro¡± type of rtionship with Lee Ju-ho. Without a doubt, he had changed a lotpared to the past. Su-hyeun had no idea that he was this sociable.
¡°I think he¡¯s going through his next trial,¡± replied Su-hyeun.
¡°That guy, he¡¯s also doing his best. I guess.¡±
¡°What about you?¡±
¡°I finished mine yesterday, actually. I was nning to take a few days off.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡± Su-hyeun was about to pick up thest piece of deep-fried meat, but then...
Gu-wuwuwuwu¡ª
For a moment there, his body grew heavy, as if the whole studio apartment building was shaking around.
Yun-seon was taken by surprise and dropped the toothpick in her hand. She hurriedly looked around her vicinity. ¡°W-what was that?¡±
¡°...What a noisy arrival, that.¡± Su-hyeun said as he pushed his chair back to stand up.
That prompted Hak-joon to stand up as well. ¡°Can I go with you?¡±
¡°For what?¡±
¡°You know, just curious. Well, he¡¯s famous, right? Why? I can¡¯t?¡±
Yun-seon grabbed Hak-joon¡¯s clothes and pulled him closer. ¡°Won¡¯t it be something dangerous?¡±
Hak-joon nodded his head and pointed at Su-hyeun. ¡°I¡¯m not going to be alone, you know?¡±
Despite his assurance, Yun-seon couldn¡¯t stop worrying. Even though she wasn¡¯t showing it, in all honesty, she found it really difficult to even breathe at the moment. How could she not worry when her boyfriend wanted to go meet the man behind this phenomenon?
¡°Why don¡¯t you just stay behind?¡± Su-hyeun spoke.
¡°Ehk? But, why?¡±
¡°You can tell that your girlfriend is really concerned, right?¡±
¡°But, won¡¯t it be dangerous for you?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not going to get any safer if you tagged along.¡±
¡°Urgh....¡±
Hak-joon heard that straightforward answer, lowered his head, and groaned. Indeed, that wasn¡¯t the wrong assessment.
Su-hyeun opened the window, not the front door. Yun-seon watched him and wondered what he was doing, only to jump up in fright and cry out. ¡°W-why are you getting out through there?¡±
Swoooosh¡ª
Su-hyeun disappeared outside the window. Yun-seon hurriedly ran towards the window sill to see where he went. She then pushed her head outside, but by then, his figure had long vanished.
¡°...Am I still dreaming or did that really happen?¡± Yun-seon muttered out.
¡°Let it be.¡± Hak-joon spoke while shrugging his shoulders. ¡°People from that side, they are more like superhumans from movies, you know.¡±
* * *
Ta-dak, ta-da-dak¡ª
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t jump down to the ground, but up towards the top of his studio apartment building. The location of the massive magical energy he could sense was none other than the building¡¯s roof.
The roof was locked tight and no one was allowed to ess it, but a man was waiting for Su-hyeun there. A thirty-something man with a parted perm hairstyle was sitting on a chair found on the roof, busy tapping away on his phone.
¡°That was quite a racket of an arrival,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°This is the simplest way, after all.¡±
The man, Song Hyeong-gi, shoved the phone in his pocket and stood up. Su-hyeun first confirmed that there was no one around and only then did he ask, ¡°How did you find out about this address?¡±
He expected Song Hyeong-gi to contact him in some manner, but didn¡¯t think the man himself would show up so soon like this.
¡°Isn¡¯t there anything that money can¡¯t solve these days?¡±
Song Hyeong-gi was thest born child of the Song-il Group¡¯s owner, the third generation of one of the most powerful business tycoons in South Korea. It¡¯d be difficult to find the word ¡°impossible¡± in this man¡¯s vocabry.
¡°...Ah, is that so?¡± Su-hyeun replied.
It seemed that he found the address through some illegal method. However, that wasn¡¯t something you¡¯d mention right in front of the party affected. This was their first encounter, and the first impression certainly wasn¡¯t a good one so far.
Song Hyeong-gi wasn¡¯t affiliated with any guilds out there, and since he wasn¡¯t short on money, he didn¡¯t work as a mercenary, either. Therefore, he was the freest of all the S-rank Awakeners.
<>
That was how amazing the power of money could be. Unlike with the Awakeners, who¡¯d always been lone individuals no matter strong they were, a massive pile of cash was capable of mobilizing countless hands and feet.
The only thing capable of making Song Hyeong-gi interested were matters rted to Divine Beasts, though.
¡°I¡¯m sure tomorrow¡¯s headlines will be pretty bombastic. A fight to the death between awakeners in the middle of a studio apartment building, something like that. Well, even civilians can sense your magical energy, after all.¡±
Su-hyeun was well aware of the magical energy emitted by Song Hyeung-gi making it difficult for Yun-seon to breathe downstairs. She wasn¡¯t hurt, but it was still true that this man¡¯s entrance had caused her some difort.
However, Song Hyeong-gi didn¡¯t seem all that interested in hearing about such things. ¡°Who cares. The dragon?¡±
Su-hyeun heard Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s question and pointed at Miru wrapped around his neck.
That prompted Miru to raise its head and stare at Song Hyeong-gi.
Gya-ong¡ª!
For the first time ever, Miru let out a displeased cry and disyed signs of wariness towards the other person.
Right then, Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s eyes sparkled brightly. ¡°I-it really is a dragon?¡±
¡°You think I¡¯d lie about something like that?¡±
¡°Where did you find this baby? Ah, you said it¡¯s from the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg.¡±
Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s attitude, curt and arrogant only until a second ago, went through aplete transformation. He cautiously walked in closer and met Miru¡¯s gaze. ¡°What¡¯s the baby¡¯s name?¡±
¡°It¡¯s Miru.¡±
¡°Hi, Miru. My name is Song Hyeong-gi, and....¡±
Chomp¡ª
When Song Hyeong-gi extended his hand out and slowly waved it, Miru abruptly pushed its head forward and bit down on the hand.
Despite the fact that its fangs hadn¡¯t even properly grown yet, Miru was still a Divine Beast, and blood began dripping down from Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s hand.
¡°He doesn¡¯t want to,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°It¡¯s okay, that can happen....¡±
Even though he said that, Song Hyeong-gi immediately became visibly sullen. It seemed that being hated by Miru hurt his feelings.
Before their discussion could get going, Su-hyeun made his stance crystal clear. ¡°I¡¯ll say this before we start. I won¡¯t give Miru to you, even though I know that you rear Divine Beasts and fight together with them.¡±
¡°You can rx. Even if you give it up, I won¡¯t take it.¡±
¡°Excuse me?¡±
That unexpected reply surprised Su-hyeun and caused him to ask that.
Song Hyeong-gi stared back at him as if he was an utter disappointment. ¡°The majority of Divine Beasts recognize the first thing they see as their parents and follow him or her around. For this baby, you¡¯re its mom and dad. So, what will happen if it has to stay with me? Can you imagine how hard it will be for the baby?¡±
He was right.
Su-hyeun heard how Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s love for Divine Beasts bordered on being maniacal, so he was slightly concerned about what to do in case thetter began lusting after Miru, but thankfully, it didn¡¯t seem like his worries would be reality.
¡°Is that really your reason?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Of course. Sure, I¡¯d like to take the baby with me with I could. Hey, you. You really don¡¯t know anything about Divine Beasts, do you?¡±
¡°That¡¯s why I wanted to meet you. It¡¯s as you said, I know nothing about Divine Beasts, Song Hyeong-gi.¡±
¡°So, you want to learn more and raise it properly, is that it?¡±
¡°That¡¯s correct.¡±
¡°Unlike how you look, you¡¯re not so bad.¡±
¡°What about how I look then?¡±
¡°What do you mean, what? Like a gigolo....¡±
Gya-ong, gya-oh-ong¡ª!
Miru pped its wings and got angry in Su-hyeun¡¯s stead.
¡°...You look really handsome,¡± replied Song Hyeong-gi, but that didn¡¯t seem to be what he wanted to say initially.
Miru looked at Su-hyeun, then rubbed its face against his cheek as if to say, ¡°Did I do well?¡±
He patted the baby dragon¡¯s head and asked Song Hyeong-gi. ¡°Before all that, is it possible for you to find out what Miru¡¯s abilities are? And also, what it needs to eat and how I should raise it.¡±
¡°Hold on. I¡¯m going to summon another kid simr to your Miru.¡±
Song Hyeong-gi drew arge circle in the air with his hand as he replied.
Almost at the same time, the magical energy greatly wavered, and the space was torn apart. A lengthy dragon emerged from the space, its wings pping grandly.
¡°Oho.¡±
It was a blue dragon several dozen meters long and almost a meter thick in diameter.
Its splendor was truly magnificent. Su-hyeun was genuinely impressed by this dragon.
<>
A giant dragon appearing in the middle of a city was a prime candidate to be mistaken for a monster. So, Song Hyeong-gi hurriedly cast an invisibility skill on the dragon¡¯s body and then asked it. ¡°Hey, Yong? Do you know what kind of a baby that dr....¡±
He couldn¡¯t finish his sentence, however, because of the unbelievable event taking ce right before his eyes.
Gurururu¡ª
The Divine Beast abruptly summoned here by Song Hyeong-gi, the blue dragon, approached Miru and lowered its head.
It wasn¡¯t just Song Hyeong-gi who was taken greatly aback. Su-hyeun also failed to understand what just happened.
¡°Just where...¡± Song Hyeong-gi alternated his gaze between the blue dragon and Miru, before asking Su-hyeun, ¡°...Did you find this baby?¡±
Chapter 73
Chapter 73: Chapter 73
Su-hyeun was flustered as well. Only Miru remained unaffected by the event.
Gya-ong¡ª?
Miru tilted its head with an expression that said, ¡°I don¡¯t get it.¡± Meanwhile, the blue dragon continued to bow its head towards the little Miru.
¡°...I got him after passing the tenth floor¡¯s trial. More specifically, I passed the tenth floor¡¯s trial and as my reward, I received the Divine Beast¡¯s Egg,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°And you got this baby from that egg?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°So, a really high-tier Divine Beast came out of a Divine Beast¡¯s Egg from a mere tenth floor¡¯s trial....¡±
¡°The trial itself was set at the tenth level, after all. Also, I forcibly upped the achievement rate to full 100 percent, as well.¡±
¡°If it¡¯s like that, then I can sort of understand, but still. If my Yong is lowering its head to the recently-hatched Miru, then that could only mean your kid is of higher tier than mine....¡±
Even if the difficulty was set high, the tenth floor¡¯s trial was something Song Hyeong-gi passed by pretty soon after bing an awakener. Never mind a Divine freaking Beast, he hadn¡¯t even seen hair nor hide of a regr mythical beast in that ce.
With the blue dragon continuing to bow its head, Miru began standing tall with a conceited, triumphant look on its face. It was kind of funny to see a hatchling only a day old acting like a top dog.
Su-hyeun looked at the blue dragon before his eyes and asked, ¡°How old is this guy?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not ¡°guy,¡± but Yong.¡±
¡°...Okay, how old is Yong?¡±
¡°He¡¯s five this year. Dragons only need to eat morning dew but they¡¯ll still grow like crazy and be an adult in three years. Then they¡¯ll live on for another thousand years after that.¡±
A thousand years.
That life expectancy was a lot longer than what Su-hyeun thought. A dragon bing an adult in three years also greatly surprised him as well.
Song Hyeong-gi patted the head of the blue dragon and continued on. ¡°It¡¯s a sad thing, really. I¡¯ll probably not live past a hundred years, but this child will have to live for another 900 without me. It¡¯d be nice if my boy forgets about me and lives its life freely during those years.¡±
¡°You...really seem to love Divine Beasts.¡±
¡°Of course. These guys, they won¡¯t ever betray you, unlike with humans. Unconditional trust and devotion, love ¡ª these things are impossible in human rtionships, you see.¡± While saying that, Song Hyeong-gi continued to pat Yong¡¯s head.
His boundless affection reserved for Divine Beasts was on full disy. Su-hyeun heard this guy was a Divine Beast otaku, but never did he suspect the level of devotion to be this high.
Kurung, kururung¡ª
The blue dragon seemed to be enjoying the sensation of Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s hand because it slowly raised its head and snorted happily.
¡°By the way, why did you summon Yong in the first ce?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Ah, I forgot. Hey, Yong?¡± Song Hyeong-gi had forgotten about why he summoned Yong thanks to the suddenly-developing situation. He hurriedly opened his mouth. ¡°Can you ask Miru a couple of things? First of all...¡±
Song Hyeong-gi asked Yong several basic questions. The blue dragon nodded its head a few times and began chatting to Miru in some kind of dragon-speak.
Kurung, kurung¡ª
Gya-ong, gya-ong¡ª
Yong and Miru conversed for a while.
Of course, all Su-hyeun could hear was a bunch of grunts, growls and gya-ong noises.
¡°Do you understand what they are talking about?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Nope, no clue.¡±
¡°...In that case, there¡¯s really no point even if Yong hears something from Miru, is there?¡±
¡°Keep your pants on, will you. I¡¯ll let you know all in good time.¡±
Seeing how confident he was, he must¡¯ve had something up his sleeve. So, Su-hyeun waited patiently until the conversation between one big dragon and one small one came to an end.
Soon afterward, Song Hyeong-gi ced his hand on Yong¡¯s head began muttering something to the dragon. Judging by how he nodded his head in the middle of doing that, it seemed that holding a conversation with a Divine Beast seemed like an actual possibility.
¡°Thanks, Yong. You did great. See youter, okay?¡±
Gurung, gurururu¡ª
At Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s wave of hand, the blue dragon vanished into thin air. It seemed that the creature had returned to where it was residing originally.
Now only Miru remained.
¡°I see, so you can actually understand your creature,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°It¡¯s kind of like being an interpreter. It ain¡¯t a skill, though. But, once your familiarity with your Divine Beast gets high enough, you can start sharing your thoughts with it to some degree.¡±
¡°It¡¯s not a skill, you say?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. Surprised? There¡¯s no separate interpreter skill because there¡¯s no need for one. If you don¡¯t put in the necessary work, your Divine Beast won¡¯t ever open up to you.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll definitely take your advice to heart.¡±
Next up, Song Hyeong-gi shared the information rted to Miru with Su-hyeun, such as what to feed the little guy, what the fundamental traits of dragons were, how to raise a Divine Beast, and things of such nature.
Even though such information could be seen as a type of secret know-how to some, Song Hyeong-gi didn¡¯t hold back on anything. It seemed that he really wanted to see Miru grow up well.
¡°Also, regarding Miru¡¯s identity... Apparently, even Yong doesn¡¯t seem to know,¡± said Song Hyeong-gi.
¡°It doesn¡¯t?¡±
¡°Yeah. Kind of like, its head just lowered by itself. ¡®I thought I simply had to do it¡¯ is what Yong said. Miru must be from a superior species than my Yong.¡±
¡°Is there a hierarchy within the dragon species?¡±
¡°Sure, there are some within thisrge framework called the dragons. Don¡¯t forget that among dragons, there¡¯s also the matter of bloodlines, too. Of course, my Yong wouldn¡¯t have instantly lowered its head like that if it was merely the difference in one¡¯s bloodlines.¡±
Su-hyeun still failed to fullyprehend the true value of Miru and formed a dumbfounded expression, prompting Song Hyeong-gi to tut unhappily.
¡°You better take a good care of him. You¡¯re pretty much Miru¡¯s dad from now on. You really got blessed by the heavens this time.¡±
¡°You think so?¡±
In all honesty, it still didn¡¯t hit home with Su-hyeun yet. If Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s blue dragon hadn¡¯t bowed to Miru, then he¡¯d be having a hard time believing that such a little dragon was from a seriously impressive bloodline.
That line of thinking had to change after he heard what Miru¡¯s abilities were, of course.
¡°Okay, then. I¡¯m leaving now. I¡¯m going to stop by every now and then, so you better open the door when I do,¡± said Song Hyeong-gi.
¡°Thank you for all your help.¡±
¡°If I think for a second that you¡¯re failing as a parent, I¡¯m gonna take him away so better keep that in mind, okay?¡±
Su-hyeun nodded his head at Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s intimidating deration. ¡°I will. If I think I won¡¯t be able to handle it, I¡¯ll leave it in your hands.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª!
Unlike Su-hyeun, however, Miru cried out in an angry tone of voice as if it didn¡¯t want Song Hyeong-gi to show up again.
It seemed that the little guy really didn¡¯t want to go anywhere near Song Hyeong-gi.
Shu-ah-ahk¡ª
Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s figure disappeared from sight. Su-hyeun quietly watched him be a small dot on the horizon and eventually disappear before shifting his gaze back to Miru, who was wrapping himself around his neck.
¡°Miru?¡±
Gurung¡ª?
Looking at how Miru raised its head, its clear, innocent eyes looking back at him, Su-hyeun could only think about how cute this little guy was. On the other hand, though, his questions didn¡¯t want to go away whenever he thought back to how the giant blue dragon bowed to Miru.
¡°Just what is your identity, exactly?¡±
Gurung¡ª
Act 4
Su-hyeun¡¯s meeting with Song Hyeong-gi proved to be a pretty hot topic.
Just the fact of Su-hyeun acquiring a Divine Beast alone was enough to make the mass media froth at their collective mouths, but the event of two S-rank awakeners holding a meeting was massive enough to cause many awakener guilds to pay attention.
The significant fact to remember here was that these two people were almost mercenary-like awakeners that could move around freely without any restrictions.
Thest-born son of the Song-il Group¡¯s owner, who never partnered up with other awakeners until now, and the newly promoted S-Rank, Kim Su-hyeun....if these two joined hands, then the potential wind about to blow through South Korea would be more like a gale storm.
A sudden phone call came from Ji-yeon.
¡°What exactly did you talk to Song Hyeong-gi about?¡±
¡°You called me out of the blue and that¡¯s the first thing you¡¯re asking me?¡±
It seemed that, after the mass media got hold of the news of Su-hyeun¡¯s contact with Song Hyeong-gi, she heard the reports and decided to ring him up right away.
¡°Will you just answer the question? Are you perhaps two-timing me?¡±
¡°Your choice of words is rather off-putting, and besides, I promised to work with you when it came to the matters of the Dump Guild, so you can stop worrying.¡±
She actually used him of ¡°two-timing¡± her.
On one side was a beautiful young woman, but the other side was a 30-something man. Su-hyeun definitely didn¡¯t want to be used of two-timing.
¡°I heard that you got yourself a Divine Beast? What kind of creature is it?¡±
¡°It¡¯s name is Miru, and it¡¯s a really cute dragon.¡±
¡°Wait, it¡¯s cute?¡±
¡°Yeah, really cute. And despite how young Miru is, its abilities are pretty great, too. I wanted to raise it properly, so I asked Song Hyeong-gi for a favor, hoping to learn some information or two.¡±
Why was heing up with these excuses, anyway? Most likely, he became conscious of the fact that he had joined hands with Song Hyeong-gi on the side. Although their interaction was limited to the matters involving the Dump Guild, her Reaper Guild was the only guild Su-hyeun had joined hands with so far.
Rather obviously, she couldn¡¯t help but mind it when Su-hyeun was getting in contact with other people.
¡°Okay, so. Did you get the necessary information, then? I¡¯ve run into that guy once before, and he was one seriously unpleasant dude.¡±
That made sense, seeing how badly the whole world perceived Song Hyeong-gi. There were plenty of stories on how terribly rubbish his personality was, too.
<>
Separate from how much he treasured and loved Divine Beasts, plenty of rumors involving Song Hyeong-gi were doing the rounds out there. The only reason why he treated Su-hyeunparatively well was simply because thetter had Miru with him. If it weren¡¯t for Miru¡¯s presence, Su-hyeun would¡¯ve never gotten to meet Song Hyeong-gi.
¡°Thankfully, I did get some info. As it turns out, that guy is a far, far worse Divine Beast nerd than people think.¡±
¡°He¡¯s a huge nerd? That guy?¡±
¡°Is it really that surprising?¡±
¡°Ha, it really is. He looks like one of those types who¡¯d flush their fortune away through drinking and partying, you know?¡±
¡°...Drinking and partying is one thing, but what¡¯s up with this flushing away his fortune and what not?¡±
¡°Just one of my small wishes.¡±
It seemed that these two didn¡¯t exactly have a cordial rtionship. But then again, the Ji-yeon Su-hyeun knew definitely wasn¡¯t the type to tter other people, either. He imagined a situation of the two of them having a meeting, and unsurprisingly, they would bebeled utterly ipatible.
<>
Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t able to witness the event personally, but these two were destined to run into each other againter.
A groan automatically leaked out of his lips just from thinking about that future event. Unlike his previous life, though, he simply had to be in the middle of these two during this time.
¡°Okay, so what are you calling me for? You can¡¯t be calling just to ask me about that, now are you?¡±
¡°I¡¯m a really busy person. I wouldn¡¯t call you just to ask about something so minor.¡±
¡°In that case, hurry up and get to the main topic. I need to start my next trial as soon as possible.¡±
¡°A green-colored dungeon will soon open up in Busan.¡±
¡°...A green-colored dungeon is going to show up so soon?¡±
Su-hyeun recalled there not being many instances of green-colored dungeons opening up one after the other like this. Muchter down the line, sure, but at least not right now.
<>
Someone in the position of the Reaper Guild¡¯s master wouldn¡¯t lose to anyone when it came to her informationwork, so he had no choice but to believe that she was a credible source. Most likely, her info was a real deal.
¡°That¡¯s right. Even the Awakeners reditation Authority seems to be taken aback since this would be the first time that a green-colored dungeon showed up so quickly. Fortunately, they estimate that the overall difficulty will be lower than the previous green dungeon.¡±
¡°Who will be taking the lead in the attack this time?¡±
¡°It¡¯ll be none other than Song Hyeong-gi. He¡¯ll probably throw another stupid tantrum this time, too, you know?¡±
Whenever a green-colored dungeon showed up, S-rank Awakeners would take turns leading the assault party. However, Song Hyeong-gi was infamous for ignoring that part of his duties and dodging his responsibilities.
¡°That means a substitute will get chosen.¡±
¡°That¡¯s why I was asking you in case you¡¯re interested. In contrast to your rank, you don¡¯t have a lot of experience in clearing dungeons, after all. So, why not take this opportunity and get some?¡±
Although he appreciated her concern, it was ultimately unnecessary; out of all the currently-active Awakeners, no one possessed the richer experience in attacking dungeons than Su-heyun.
<>
A dungeon appearing at an unexpected time frame was indeed making him somewhat worried.
Not only that, but it would be a rather suitable stage to confirm Miru¡¯s abilities. This green-colored dungeon¡¯s difficulty should be much higher than the 22nd floor¡¯s trial.
¡°Who will supervise the attack? Will it be a guild or the Authority?¡±
¡°A total of three guilds are tied to this. They are....¡±
Su-hyeun and Ji-yeon chatted about the dungeon attack for a while. Even though this chatty, noisy phone call continued on, Miru was dozing off without an issue.
After ending the call, Su-hyeun lightly patted Miru¡¯s head and spoke. ¡°Hey, Miru?¡±
Gurung¡ª
The happily-slumbering Miru reacted when he called out its name.
¡°Why don¡¯t you and I go y to our hearts¡¯ content?¡±
Gurung¡ª
This was the first stage where Miru¡¯s abilities would be confirmed.
Chapter 74
Chapter 74: Chapter 74
Lee Ji-hu finished the next floor¡¯s trial and came outside, only to be bombarded by several news reporters.
First, there was the alliance between Su-hyeun and the Reaper Guild. Then, the encounter with Song Hyeong-gi.
Just these two alone were more than enough to cause an uproar in the world, especially with thetter. The hottest trending topic of recent times was that Su-hyeun met up with the sole S-rank awakener not affiliated with anyone, Song Hyeong-gi.
This event held the potential to throw a wrench in the precarious bnce maintained by the Awakener Guilds.
¡°This guy, he¡¯s not answering his phone again.¡±
Lee Ju-ho was using his phone while walking towards the Awakener Authority. He had called over ten times already, but Su-hyeun was not picking up. Even so, he was able toe here all thanks to calling Hak-joon beforehand and getting some answers from the young man.
¡°He should be taking a well-deserved break instead, so why...¡±
Su-hyeun had finally be an S rank. In other people¡¯s eyes, he had definitely made it in his life. He could take it easy, spend the money he earned, maybe go on a trip overseas and have fun, etc.
But then, Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t endure the short period of downtime until the d-day of the dungeon assault and wanted to train by borrowing the Authority¡¯s underground facility.
<>
Depending on who looked at it, it was a waste, an unnecessary luxury.
The S-Rank. Lee Ju-ho, doing his best to get to that realm, couldn¡¯t really understand Su-hyeun. But at the same time, he also felt rather awestruck by thetter.
Pik, pik, pipipipik¡ª
Drop, thud, crumble¡ª
A continuous stream of small noises could be heard.
Countless stone tes were strewn about within the underground facility. They were a type of illusion used during Su-hyeun¡¯s re-evaluation not too long ago.
Crumble¡ª
A stone te brushed past Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face, and almost at the same time, a very thin strand of magical energy flew past just above his head.
¡°Bro? When did you arrive?¡± Su-hyeun, standing in the middle of the cavern, asked.
Lee Ju-ho replied while patting his chest in relief. ¡°That surprised me, man. Were you trying to kill me or something?¡±
These two grew close enough to call each other brothers ever since that day Su-hyeun started referring to Lee Ju-ho as ¡°big bro.¡±
It had been around one year since they got acquainted. They knew enough about each other, and their friendship ran pretty deep now. Most importantly, though, Su-hyeun felt grateful for Lee Ju-ho being the person who stepped up without being asked to take care of things in his stead.
¡°No way. Besides, you won¡¯t die from that. It might sting a little, though.¡±
Lee Ju-ho heard Su-hyeun¡¯s good-natured reply and looked at all the fragments of stone tes strewn about on the floor. Would he have really not died from that?
Lee Ju-ho sighed in relief again and spoke up. ¡°Be more mindful of your surroundings, dude. Or lock the doors or something.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll be more careful next time.¡±
¡°By the way, what¡¯s all this?¡±
¡°Taking a few days off dulls one¡¯s senses. Entering a low difficulty dungeon and ughtering everything in there will only have an adverse effect.¡±
¡°You¡¯re going crazy like this just to maintain your edge?¡±
¡°It helps a lot more than you think. Magical energy isn¡¯t just a simple medium that lets you use skills, you know.¡±
This method was initially envisioned as a way to measure and assign numerical values to the Awakener¡¯s ability to control magical energy.
Meaning, if the current you managed to destroy a higher number of stone tes than in the past, then it served as proof that your control over the magical energy had improved.
<>
Actually, this training was reserved for the small number of awakeners the Authority was fostering back then. At first, it was seen as just a testing method, but gradually, the Authority further refined the concept and employed it as a systematic training tool.
Su-hyeun carried on. ¡°Besides this one, using illusions to strengthening your mental strength, dumbbells infused with a gravity-type skill using Ether stones, strengthening your resistance....¡±
¡°Okay, okay, I got it. Just hearing about them makes my skin crawl.¡± Lee Ju-ho hurriedly waved his hands about as if it all sounded too disgusting to him. Of course, he was inwardly stunned despite what his mouth said.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought.
He thought that Su-hyeun was just blessed with excellent talent, but as it turned out, the dude also happened to be a hard worker, too.
To think that he couldn¡¯t wait those brief couple of days of respite and voluntarily chose to walk this path of hardship. He was fundamentally a different species from those conceited fools who couldn¡¯t wait to splurge away their new wealth acquired after bing Awakeners.
Kya-ong, kyaaa-ooong¡ª.
Miru raised its head from around Su-hyeun¡¯s neck.
Lee Ju-ho thought it was a scarf until then, so he hurriedly stepped back from fright. ¡°Argh, that surprised me. Is it that dragon?¡±
¡°Yes. Its name is Miru.¡±
¡°Miru? You didn¡¯t give the naming of it too much of your consideration, did you?¡±
¡°What¡¯s wrong with it? Isn¡¯t it cute?¡±
Gya-ruuung¡ª
Miru nodded as if to say, ¡°I agree.¡± Thoroughly mystified now, Lee Ju-ho got closer and studied the hatchling dragon¡¯s head from this way and that.
Su-hyeun took out a towel he prepared earlier from the gym bag and while wiping away his sweat, asked Lee Ju-ho a question. ¡°By the way, how did you know I was here?¡±
¡°I called Hak-joon and asked him where you were. I heard about you forming an alliance with the Reaper Guild, but what¡¯s up with this Song Hyeong-gi business?¡±
Lee Ju-Ho cautiously reached out with his hand, trying to touch Miru at least once no matter what it took, but the growling Miru was vehemently refused his outstretched hand.
Su-hyeun stared at the two of them and opened his mouth. ¡°What happened was...¡± He told Lee Ju-ho the simplified version of the events that happened so far. Of course, thetter already heard most of that story from Hak-joon.
¡°Okay, so when will the dungeon attack be?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°We have to assemble in the morning two days from now.¡±
¡°I want to tag along.¡±
¡°You too?¡±
It seemed that the reason for his visit today was rted to that.
¡°Don¡¯t misunderstand me. I don¡¯t expect you guys to share even a tiny bit of the loot with me, you know?¡± Lee Ju-ho rified.
¡°Is that so?¡±
¡°Just the experience alone will be enough. Especially when it involves a higher teau.¡±
A higher teau, he said.
He, of course, meant the green-colored dungeon.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
Ever since its first appearance, the frequency of the green-colored dungeon¡¯s appearance was locked at around one per year ¡ª up until now.
One appearing after another like this time was an anomaly. And as its frequency of urrence was so low, the number of awakeners that attacked a green dungeon before was also equally on the low side.
It was only the awakeners from the top-tierrge guilds or the famous awakeners from the Authority who challenged them. Unless you were one of them, it was practically impossible to take a part in attacking a green-colored dungeon.
¡°I guess you¡¯ve improved by another step.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s words prompted a guilty look to float upon Lee Ju-ho¡¯s face. And then, looking somewhat sheepish, he avoided meeting the former¡¯s gaze. ¡°I was nning to show offter on, though. Dammit.¡±
¡°It¡¯s fine to be proud, actually. Getting to where you¡¯re in only two years is considered pretty fast, you know.¡±
The magical energy rated at 6th rank ¡ª although the concentration of the magical energying from Lee Ju-ho was quite faint, Su-hyeun still got to read it nheless.
Lee Ju-ho wanted to participate in the conquering of the green-colored dungeon because he was confident of not hindering them, at the very least.
¡°Even then, I¡¯m far slowerpared to you or Hak-joon. What a pair of monstrous b*stards you are,¡± said Lee Ju-ho.
Lee Ju-ho was a veteran who awakened not too long after the dungeons and awakeners appeared in the world. Even though you could say his rate of growth was fast, it still wasn¡¯t enough to aim for the very top. Of course, being able to acquire the rank of ¡°A¡± meant you couldn¡¯t be used ofcking in talent.
<>
Su-hyeun was worried about Lee Ju-ho¡¯s confidence level dropping lower afterparing his progress to Hak-joon, or for that matter, Su-hyeun himself. Strictly speaking, both Hak-joon or him shouldn¡¯t even be included in theparison.
Su-hyeun was already the greatest awakener even back in the previous life, while Hak-joon, too, made a name for himself as one of the most powerful.
Of course, these were tales that would happen in the distant future. Regardless, these two were still some of the most talented in the entire world. Using these two as aparison would only end up exhausting Lee Ji-ho, instead.
<>
In any case, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s mindset of always looking up higher and trying to forge his way to that realm wasn¡¯t a bad thing at all. Although he got his hands on the 6th-ranking magical energy only recently, as an awakener ranked A, he shouldn¡¯t be holding anyone back during the assault.
¡°Very well. Let¡¯s work together,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Oh, hell yeah!¡± He must¡¯ve been quite nervous, because as soon as Su-hyeun agreed, Lee Ju-ho loudly cheered and leaped up in joy.
Su-hyeun smiled slightly while looking at his reaction. Originally, this man was supposed to die a year ago inside a dungeon, but now he was a rank A. Not only that, he wasn¡¯t satisfied by his current self and was working even harder to reach the same realm of Awakeners as Su-hyeun.
That was making him feel somewhat strange.
<>
Su-hyeun returned to the past, and to change many things, he had to work his butt off.
In the smaller scheme of things, he tried his best to change his own life and looking at the bigger picture, he pushed himself hard so that he could change epoch-shifting events.
However, what really changed was only himself. He already knew that a lone man changing the world was never going to be an easy endeavor. But now, he could feel the gradual change taking ce against his skin after looking at the people surrounding him, such as Lee Ju-ho here.
<>
Su-hyeun inwardly prayed that the apocalypse would never arrive to this changed world.
From a certain point on, he stopped seeing a destroyed world.
* * *
The Gambler, the Papillon, and the Red Devil.
Although these three were considered locally asrge guilds boasting huge sizes, they were also unfortunate enough not to be blessed with presences of S-Rank Awakeners. Also, they happened to be the guilds scheduled to participate in the assault of the green-colored dungeon this time.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? That guy is the leader?¡±
The guild master of Papillon, the A-Rank Lee Kang-hui, heard the news and raised his voice at the awakener from the Authority. ¡°Are you messing with me? That bastard got his rank S badge only recently, didn¡¯t he?¡±
¡°ording to the regtion, there are no problems,¡± replied the messenger from the Authority.
¡°You and your stupid regtion! Our lives are on the line here!¡±
m¡ª!
He mmed down hard on the office desk, and the wooden furniture crafted out of luxurious material copsed from the impact.
That was the proof of how incensed Lee Kang-hui was.
Unfortunately for him, his anger had no effect. Such a disy should¡¯ve been enough to cower his opponent at least just a little, but the awakener from the Authority didn¡¯t even flinch once.
The man dispatched by the Awakeners reditation Authority, Kang Seung-cheol, scowled heavily and replied. ¡°The other S-Rank Awakener, Miss Park Ji-yeon, has already participated in the Ansan dungeon assault recently. And as you may well know, Song Hyeong-gi was never interested in matters like this one to begin with. Even if we call him, he¡¯s not going to show up, anyway.¡±
¡°In that case, someone else...!¡±
¡°It¡¯ll be the same story even with the others. It¡¯s not their turn yet. Besides, they are currently going through their next trials, so they can¡¯t be reached at the moment.¡±
¡°Goddammit....¡±
¡°If you¡¯re so averse to the idea, then I¡¯ll give him a call, saying that he doesn¡¯t have toe tomorrow.¡±
Kang Seung-cheol¡¯s words caused Lee Kang-hui¡¯s expression to crumple even further.
If that happened, the current green dungeon assault would end up as aplete failure. Without the presence of an S-rank, it¡¯d be as good as impossible to conquer such a dungeon.
<>
He felt like punching the living daylight out of this Kang Seung-cheol person.
However, not only could he not do that to an awakener dispatched by the Authority, but also, he got this weird feeling that he shouldn¡¯t treat this man so carelessly.
¡°In any case, I¡¯ve conveyed the message in full, so I shall be on my way,¡± Kang Seung-cheol said that and hurriedly left the meeting.
With this, he had delivered the message to all three guilds ¡ª the Gambler, the Red Devil, and finally, the Papillon.
<>
Not like he couldn¡¯t understand it, though.
To think, they had to attack a green-colored dungeon along with a newbie S-Rank while forgetting about the other, more prominent S-Rank Awakeners out there. It was almost like deliberately giving yourself a hard time while walking on a simple road.
<>
Kang Seung-cheol was one of only a handful of people who personally confirmed Su-hyeun¡¯s real abilities. And that¡¯s why he knew the truth.
Sure, it wasn¡¯t as if he had seen other S-Ranks in action, but still, he didn¡¯t believe Su-hyeun would be found wanting whenpared to his current peers.
¡°Now I¡¯m curious.¡± Kang Seung-cheol looked back at the Papillon¡¯s guild house he just stepped out from and muttered to no one in particr. ¡°I wonder how that idiot¡¯s expression will look liketer.¡±
Chapter 75
Chapter 75: Chapter 75
Vrroom¡ª
A red sports car exited the highway. The smell of the sea tickled Su-hyeun¡¯s nose.
¡°I think we will arrive soon,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Oh, good,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
As Su-hyeun pointed to Gwangalli beach, Lee Ju-ho looked at the odometer and checked the distance.
¡°Hey. Drive your car more often. Don¡¯t waste it,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°If we came here by a bullet train, we would have arrived an hour ago,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Well. We still have plenty of time. And it¡¯s more fun to drive straight, isn¡¯t it? You didn¡¯t have time to drive your car because you were too busy climbing the Towel of Trials almost every day.¡±
¡°Well, yeah...¡±
This car was a gift from Lee Ju-ho. Su-hyeun felt sorry to not use it often, but he didn¡¯t want to drive a car that much. People said the car was the best toy that a man could have, but to Su-hyeun, it was nothing more than a vehicle.
¡°You don¡¯t like driving?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°It is best when somebody else drives for me.¡±
At his decisive answer, Lee Ju-ho eximed as if he heard an absurd thing.
¡°But it¡¯s a Ferrari 488 Spider!¡±
¡°I don¡¯t like this car that much,¡± Su-hyeun said.
<>
People who didn¡¯t like cars usually knew expensive cars, at least. The excitement of driving such cars was different from the fun of regr driving, but Su-hyeun did not seem to be so interested in it. He was in the middle of his twenties. He was not the child of a rich family from the beginning.
¡°People usually want to show off when they suddenly make a lot of money or get the ability to. You¡¯re a little odd,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°Is that so?¡±
¡°Well, I am one of those people. And there are worse ones than me. It amazes me the more I think about it. You don¡¯t enjoy alcohol, cigarettes, cars, or women. You do nothing. What do you like, seriously?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked in a very curious tone.
What he exemplified was what awakeners usually did when they started to earn money. They searched for good drinks, cigarettes, nice houses, cars, and pretty or handsome lovers. Those were the things that could show the symbol of sess. But Su-hyeun seemed to stay away from all that.
¡°I like a lot of things,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°A lot? Like what?¡±
It was an unexpected answer. Lee Ju-ho perked up his ears and waited for Su-hyeun¡¯s answer.
¡°Well, not things like you said. But, I like to empty my head while looking at a prettyke or to go to an amusement park with people I like or to sit in a cafe and read a book...¡± Su-hyeun thought for a moment and continued. ¡°I like to just binge-watch shows or movies all day in my home. I also like to go on trips and take pictures.¡±
¡°Sounds pretty simple.¡±
¡°They are luxury things,¡± Su-hyeun said in a quiet voice.
¡°What? Luxury?¡±
Su-hyeun did not think Lee Ju-ho could understand his words. But he meant it.
<>
Clear skies, prettykes, amusement parks, cafes, small daily lives... All those things would be luxury things in the future. Expensive sports cars would remain, but people wouldn¡¯t see the clear skies of the world. That was why Su-hyeun considered such trivial things to be luxuries.
¡°I will change the future.¡± Su-hyeun stopped the car and looked up to the sky. ¡°So these simple things will not be luxuries.¡±
Su-hyeun took his car key and got out of the car with Lee Ju-ho. People paid attention to the appearance of a luxury sports car. The area around Gwangalli Beach was blocked by policemen everywhere.
¡°Thank you for your work,¡± Su-hyeun said as he passed by the cops.
¡°Wait. You can¡¯t...¡±
¡°I am Kim Su-hyeun. I am the leader of the dungeon raid team today. Here.¡±
At the restraint of a policeman, Su-hyeun took out and showed his awakener registration card. It was a golden colored card with S-Rank signed on it. The policeman stiffened quickly.
¡°Please excuse me, sir! Enter this way, sir.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
The crowd of policemen opened the way for Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho. Gwangalli Beach was shining in green light. Many people were waiting in front of the beach. Half of the one hundred were awakeners and the other half were ordinary people. Perhaps they were involved with various media tforms.
¡°Wow. There are many people. We still have some time left, though,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°It¡¯s nice to see everyone working early,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°People over there will be critical of you. I am sure they won¡¯t say anything in front of your face but...¡±
¡°I know.¡±
Lee Ju-ho did not expect that answer. ¡°Do you know?¡±
¡°I just got the S-Rank title. I don¡¯t have much official dungeon attack experience. I am sure they won¡¯t wee me,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°...Yes, you know well. You should have done many dungeon attacks before.¡±
¡°It¡¯s a waste of time just going around simr dungeons,¡± Su-hyeun said.
It was the same story as before. For Su-hyeun, attacking low-level dungeons was just a time-consuming task. Usually, C-Rank awakeners or people who wanted to get Ether stones attacked small dungeons.
¡°Oh, well.¡±
Lee Ju-ho shook his head as if he knew it. But unlike what he said, he trusted Su-hyeun a lot.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought.
As far as Lee Ju-ho knew, Su-hyeun joined dungeon attacks no more than 10 times, and most of those attacks were with him. Although they didn¡¯t do them together that many times, Lee Ju-ho could tell Su-hyeun was not a beginner.
<> he thought.
The leader of the raid group was obliged to reveal the rank and raid history to other participants. Perhaps the other guild awakeners would question Su-hyeun¡¯s experience. No matter how strong he was, it was inevitable to doubt him, who did not have much experience.
As Su-hyeun appeared, three people from each guild walked towards him. They were the guild master from three guilds that joined in on attacking this green colored dungeon. They were Gambler, Papillon, and Red Devil Guilds. Su-hyeun shook hands with them one by one, with an indulgent smile.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought.
He had known Su-hyeun for about a year. He was sure he knew a lot about him. Su-hyeun was kind to the point that it made Lee Ju-ho wonder how such a good person could exist. He was strong but did not show off or brag to anyone. He was a nice man and had no patience for injustice. He realized more about Su-hyeun while they hade here together.
However, this did not mean that Su-hyeun was kind to everyone. The Dump Guild was a good example. Also, he became sharp as a razor when people bared their teeth at him or when things were illogical or unjust.
<> Lee Ju-ho continued his thought.
He knew about the many dark things happening in the dungeons. The most dangerous thing in the dungeon was not monsters ¡ª it was your fellow human beings. Of course, he could not imagine that Su-hyeun was in any danger.
¡°What are you doing? Come over here, please!¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s calling, Lee Ju-ho went to close to the crowds. Soon, he exchanged words with many people that he did not want to.
Act 5
Nothing special happened after that. It was already known to the press that the Authority found attacking members for the green-colored dungeon, so the reporters were busy covering the new S-rank Su-hyeun and took photos with the guild masters and Su-hyeun side by side.
Lee Ju-ho also suffered from reporters. He had appeared several times in the broadcast, but it was the first time that he had been covering for a long time with so many people. It was the same for Su-hyeun. He felt that he should haveeter. He felt appreciative of Lee Ju-ho¡¯s suggestion to take a car in order to kill time.
¡°You look tired.¡±
The guild master of the Papillon Guild approached Su-hyeun. His name was Lee Kang-hee. It was time to prepare personally for a while before entering the dungeon. Su-hyeun was wearing Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor and tidying his sword tightly.
¡°I¡¯d rather fight the monsters,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°What can you do? You are already a celebrity. I am sure you will have a lot of these moments,¡± Lee Kang-hee said.
He wore a smile on his face andughed in a high tone. His lips were smiling but eyes were not. Su-hyeun looked at his eyes for a moment and replied, ¡°If it is something I can¡¯t help, I guess I have to get used to it.¡±
¡°That is a good attitude. I am sorry for beingte to greet you. It was because of all the damn many journalists. I look forward to your cooperation.¡±
¡°Same here.¡±
Su-hyeun shook hands with Lee Kang-hee. It was the first official greeting, not a greeting to show to the media.
¡°But you are so young, and you don¡¯t have much experience...,¡± Lee Kang-hee spoke in a subtle voice.
Su-hyeun, who knew why he hade to him, nodded his head.
¡°Yes, you are right.¡±
¡°If you need my help, feel free to tell me. Of course, I can¡¯t bepared to you, but I am quite a veteranpared to anyone else about dungeons. Haha.¡±
Lee Kang-hee¡¯s words meant to give him the role of leader of this attack. That way, Papillon Guild could take more Ether stone after theypleted it. Su-hyeun had known that someone would say this to him.
¡°Thank you for your suggestion,¡± Su-hyeun said while he got up. ¡°I don¡¯t know if that is going to happen.¡±
¡°...What?¡±
¡°I want you to take care of the people under you more than anything else. I will not take any responsibility for the idents caused by personal actions.¡±
It was an unexpected intimidation. Lee Kang-hee could not close his mouth with embarrassment.
Su-hyeun raised his voice and said, ¡°It¡¯s time! Let¡¯s go!¡±
<>
At that time, the only person who survived from that dungeon was the guild master, Lee Kang-hee.
<>
Su-hyeun turned his head and looked at the green light in front of Gwangalli Beach. It was the entrance to the green-colored dungeon. Just a month ago, two green dungeons urred at the same time. And again, a monthter, another green dungeon appeared. He came here to check in person. It was not in his memory.
¡°Did I just not remember this? Or...¡±
But he knew that was not going to happen. It was the first time that three green dungeons appeared in a row. There was no way he could not remember such a big event.
Chapter 76
Chapter 76: Chapter 76
There were three guilds and 20 people from each guild, plus Su-hyeun and Lee Ju-ho. The number of people for this raid for the green-colored dungeon was 62. Su-hyeun felt awkward and ufortable to work with so many people like this.
<>
This position was also called the raid leader. He never was a raid leader even in the game. So, this situation was really ufortable for him.
1¡°Well, I guess what I did in Anyang was something like a raid leader.¡±
When the outbreak of green dungeon urred in Anyang City, Su-hyeun was the one who led the people. But at that time, he just had thought he had to gather people. He didn¡¯t think of himself as a raid leader.
¡°What do you think?¡±
Lee Ju-ho came close to Su-hyeun, who was standing at the entrance of the dungeon. He poked Su-hyeun¡¯s side and asked, ¡°Well, I was just thinking there were too many people,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°Too many?¡±
¡°Yes. I don¡¯t feelfortable working with this many people...¡±
¡°I see. Since you always worked alone.¡±
Lee Ju-ho nodded as if he understood. Normally, people who climbed the Tower of Trials didn¡¯t do that by themselves. They usually made a team of at least two and as many as ten. And when that happened, of course, the Tower of Trials adjusted the difficulty to the number of awakeners.
But even if the level of difficulty increased, the party that made up for the weakness of each other was far superior to the individual. However, in the case of Su-hyeun, it was impossible to look for a party. It was the same for Hak-joon. Unless the one wished to attempt suicide, people didn¡¯t try anything higher than level 8.
¡°If you are capable, it isfortable to do it alone. As always, the problem is most people are not capable of that,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°I guess so.¡±
By the end of their conversation, all team members were ready.
Su-hyeun was the one who was at the head. Since he was the only S-Rank of the raid group, he had to prepare for any risks that could happen.
Ssh¡ª
Su-hyeun immersed his feet in the green colored sea. At that moment, he felt like he was being sucked deeply under the sea. Soon, in front of his eyes, the huge dome-shaped space appeared under the sea.
<>
It looked like a dungeon in the sea, like an underwater city. It was a world that would appear in a movie. Numerous huge ships sank and fell on the ground. Countless buildings were scattered around. Above was the sea, but underneath wasnd. It was a wonderful experience.
¡°Wow...¡±
Lee Ju-ho and other awakeners who followed Su-hyeun also admired. It was an amazing dungeon that even surprised a person like Su-hyeun, who had experienced many dungeons. It was natural that other people were amazed.
¡°Is it like Antis? What kind of dungeon is so gorgeous like this?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not a normal dungeon,¡± Su-hyeun said as he looked around.
The other guild masters including Lee Kang-hee responded, ¡°Isn¡¯t that obvious? The level of the dungeon is...¡±
¡°Light,¡± Su-hyeun said as he pointed the above, ¡°the lightes all the way down here.¡±
¡°...Yes?¡±
¡°We are at the bottom of the ocean. No matter how shallow the depth, the light doesn¡¯te through all the way to the bottom. Especially not this clear.¡±
What Su-hyeun said was true. In the case of a typical cave-shaped dungeon, there was no way to get the sunlight. In this case, they just thought that it was bright because the top was not blocked. But Su-hyeun¡¯s realistic sense did not miss even a small thing. First of all, he doubted about the background of the dungeon.
Kyao, kyao¡ª
Miru, who wasying around Su-hyeun¡¯s neck, suddenly began to cry. It raised its head to the top.
Su-hyeun muttered, stroking Miru¡¯s head, ¡°I guess it won¡¯t be easy.¡±
Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes. Lee Ju-ho looked at Su-hyeun and swallowed with tension.
¡°What are you doing? Let¡¯s move!¡±
Somebody urged from behind. He was Lee Kang-hee. Then, the other two guild masters raised their voices toward him.
¡°Hey, why are you in such a hurry? We have to figure out the structure of the dungeon first.¡±
¡°Yes. Let¡¯s trust Su-hyeun and wait for now.¡±
One of them was the Gambler¡¯s guild master, Park Mo-young. The other was Red Devil¡¯s guild master Kim Taek-hyun. Lee Kang-hee crumbled his face as if he didn¡¯t like the other two whoined to him.
¡°It¡¯s okay. As Mr. Kang-hee said, there is nothing to figure out here now. Let¡¯s slowly move and see,¡± Su-hyeun said and began to walk.
Lee Kang-hee nced at the two men once and led members of Papillon Guild. The other two guilds were followed as well. The city was quiet. Even though more than 60 people moved together, they felt unnatural that the sounds from their footsteps were filling the whole space.
¡°It is so quiet.¡±
Lee Ju-ho, who muttered in a very quiet voice, was surprised and closed his mouth. He didn¡¯t expect his voice to sound so loud. It was that quiet.
¡°What are you so nervous? Rx,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Well, I can¡¯t help it. It is so quiet.¡±
¡°It¡¯s better to deal with the monster¡¯s raids. This quiet dungeon is better than a noisy forest with birds chirping and beast crying.¡±
¡°Well. That makes sense but...¡±
It was amazing that Lee Ju-ho was able to think so reasonably even in this eerie situation. He shook his head and changed the topic.
¡°This ce. Is this a ce like Antis?¡±
¡°Probably not.¡±
¡°Why not? Here is the underwater city, too.¡±
¡°But still.¡±
Su-hyeun was sure that this ce was not Antis. There was nothing to say to exin why. Even if he told him the truth ¡ª that he had visited Antis ¡ª he would not believe him.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
This ce was not more prosperous than Antis, and it was much more severely destroyed, just like a ghost city.
<>
He could not feel any signs or gazes, even though he was paying attention to all his five senses.
Krrr¡ª
That time, Miru started crying low. Su-hyeun turned his head.
¡°Watch out, left and right!¡±
¡°What?¡±
Swish¡ª
Hundreds of arrows came from all sides. They were not ordinary arrows. Each one of them was powerful enough to prate an iron te. Because it was not a living monster, there was no sign. It was a trap.
Swoosh¡ª!
Woosh, whoosh¡ª!
mes soared from all sides. They weakened the arrows. More than 60 awakeners either struck or blocked such arrows one by one.
Swish, swiiish¡ª
But the arrows were not stopped. The arrows with magic came from all in different directions. Su-hyeun wrapped the area with his me skill and looked around.
<>
Looking at the trajectory, he could tell where the arrows came from. The problem was the distance.
¡°To destroy all the traps from here...¡±
Purr¡ª
That time, Miru cried while watching Su-hyeun.
<>
He nodded and asked, ¡°You know how to do it, right?¡±
Purr¡ª!
Miru answered with spirit. Su-hyeun was a little nervous. Miru was only five days old.
<>
Who would believe in their child if not their own father?
Schwing¡ª
Su-hyeun drew his sword out of the scabbard. He injected his magic to the sword. Then, he closed his eyes and felt the trajectory of the arrow. The situation was simr to the training done in the basement of Authority building.
The distance was far, but the difficulty was easier. Unlike the bs, the traps didn¡¯t move.
¡°Hey, Miru,¡± Su-hyeun called.
Purr¡ª
Miru cried low.
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª
The magic that was injected into the sword was amplified and quickly grew out of power. Before the power disappeared, Su-hyeun quickly swung the sword.
Swish¡ª
The magic shot through the sword was shattered into numerous branches. They flew towards the traps working from side to side.
Wham, wham¡ª
Crack, crack¡ª
The number of arrows that came flying was significantly reduced. Su-hyeun gathered his magic to the sword again. Miru did the same. To be precise, Miru was amplifying the power of Su-hyeun.
¡°Good. Like that...¡±
ng¡ª
Wham, wham¡ª
Su-hyeun who smashed all the remaining traps looked at Miru with a grin.
¡°Good job.¡±
Meow¡ª!
1Miru answered with excitement at Su-hyeun¡¯s praise. In the meantime, other awakeners who were in the panic looked at Su-hyeun with confused faces.
¡°W-what was that? What?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know...¡±
¡°Did he just intercept all the traps from here?¡±
They saw it, but they could not believe it. Lee Ju-ho would have been the same as them if he had not seen Su-hyeun before. What Su-hyeun just did was something like a superhuman skill.
<> Lee Ju-ho thought, <>
He wondered if Su-hyeun could focus more in an actual fight. This was not just a matter of strong and weak. Su-hyeun quickly figured out where the traps were. He focused his magic and controlled to distribute it. The uracy was amazing, too. It was not possible if any of them werecking. Originally, it was a task for dozens of people, not just one. But Su-hyeun did it all by himself.
¡°You make me speechless,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°You can skip the praise. Everybody all right?¡±
The other awakeners nodded.
¡°Yes, yes.¡±
¡°Everybody is fine.¡±
¡°We are the same.¡±
Fortunately, there was no injury because of the quick response.
Su-hyeun nodded as if he was relieved and said, ¡°Then let¡¯s keep going.¡±
Su-hyeun began to walk again. The team which had been stopped for a while moved again. Lee Ju-ho walked close to Su-hyeun. He looked at Miru who was making purr sounds. It was smiling, lost the plot.
COMMENT
¡°Was that Miru¡¯s ability? Amplifying your magic?¡±
¡°Yes. It is still young, so it couldn¡¯t do anything but a simple supporting role.¡±
¡°That was a way better than just a simple supporting role. Do you know how hard to get magic boosting items?¡±
¡°It doesn¡¯t only boost the magic. It also can help to increase Strength, Agility, and other physical abilities,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Lee Ju-ho was speechless at that response.
<> he thought.
This was quiteparable to some fraudulent items. It was not even one year old. Lee Ju-ho was amazed by Miru.
¡°Hey, Miru?¡±
Purr¡ª?
At Lee Ju-ho¡¯s friendly calling, Miru tilted its head sideways.
¡°Let¡¯s be close friends.¡±
Grrrrrr¡ª
Miru exposed its teeth as if it only cared for its father. Lee Ju-ho, who felt like he was dumped by a woman who had a secret crush, shook his head and sighed out.
¡°Umm...¡±
At that time, Su-hyeun stopped walking and looked around as if he was embarrassed.
Lee Ju-ho asked in a weak voice, ¡°What is wrong?¡±
¡°This ce...¡±
Clink¡ª Clink¡ª
¡°...might be a little troublesome dungeon,¡± Su-hyeun said.
They could hear a shrill sound from everywhere.
Chapter 77
Chapter 77: Chapter 77
Other awakeners who had not felt anything until then began to be wary of the unpleasant, shrill sound. But still, the sound was only heard ¡ª nothing happened.
¡°What-what is this sound?¡±
¡°Monsters?¡±
¡°But it doesn¡¯t...¡±
Any experienced awakener would know what this sound was. And the awakeners in this ce were at least B-Rank. Even if one did not have enough experience in dungeon attacks, everyone in here had experienced the Tower of Trials many times.
¡°Is it...the sound of armor?¡± Lee Ju-ho also noticed what sound it was.
Su-hyeun nodded and answered, ¡°Yes. It¡¯s probably the sound of unfixed armors shaking and bumping each other.¡±
¡°Why can we hear the armor sound in here...? No, why that is only sound can we hear?¡±
¡°It is more than just a sound,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Then?¡±
¡°They areing.¡±
¡°What?¡±
In response to an irrelevant answer from Su-hyeun, Lee Ju-ho lifted his head following Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze.
At that moment, Lee Ju-ho shouted reflexively, ¡°It¡¯sing from above!¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Above?¡±
Everybody looked up. Soon, they could see a giant shadow and small falling objects.
¡°Iing!¡±
Bam, bam, bam¡ª
Clink, nk¡ª
Numerous armor fell from above. The awakeners quickly scattered in all directions. They had gathered together so far, but there was no choice but to avoid falling armor. In the meantime, some people from the same guild gathered together. It seemed like the colleagues who had been working together for a long time had a simr sense to avoid the enemy.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
He looked around the fallen armor. The only one who did not avoid them was Su-hyeun.
¡°Hey, Su-hyeun!¡±
¡°L-look...!¡±
Lee Ju-ho shouted to Su-hyeun. Other people were surprised to find the truth about the fallen armor. They had thought it would be monsters wearing armor, but the armor itself was moving when they checked again.
¡°Ghosts?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t be deceived! It might be a trick!¡±
¡°Don¡¯t panic! We always have strange things before!¡±
The guild masters were encouraging other guild members. It looked like there was a reason why they became the guild masters. Su-hyeun, on the other hand, was more focused on understanding the situation than taking care of the awakeners under him.
¡°It looks like they came...¡±
Crack¡ª
Su-hyeun punched the armor that rushed to him and looked up.
<<...from the ship over there,>> he thought.
He got an idea about the background and the theme of this dungeon. He looked around the empty armor that surrounded him.
¡°It is different from the headless knight, Duhan. Probably...¡±
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun cut the nearest armor from top to bottom.
ng, ng¡ª
The armor broke in the two pieces and fell to the ground. The inside of the armor was empty, as Su-hyeun had expected. At that moment, he quickly checked the small patterns on the inside of the armor.
¡°It looks like the soul has tied to the armor with some sort of magical device.¡±
Each armor had a soul in it. And if the soul could be considered as a life, this armor could be called a monster.
<>
The people who had scattered in all directions now looked at Su-hyeun. And then, they saw Su-hyeun¡¯s action and realized what was the moving armor was. It would be easy to handle now. The armor might have looked scary, but it wasn¡¯t all that threatening.
¡°Do you mind if I leave it to you?¡± Su-hyeun asked Lee Ju-ho, who was standing far away.
¡°I don¡¯t mind.¡±
Lee Ju-ho, who grasped the situation, nodded his head. Su-hyeun grinned and raised his sword. The armor wasing closer to Su-hyeun, narrowing the siege little by little.
<> Su-hyeun counted in his mind.
Purr¡ª!
Whirl, whirl¡ª
Again, the magic was amplified from his sword. The magic that wrapped around Gram shined for a moment. There was a sh everywhere. People could hear a cracking sound around Su-hyeun.
Cling, ng¡ª
nk, nk¡ª
Much of the armor fell to the ground. About 20 meters around Su-hyeun, hundreds of pieces of armor fell at once. Even though they were empty and weak armor, there were too many of them. Thankfully, Su-hyeun¡¯s sword killed a lot of them at once.
¡°That is my present before I go,¡± Su-hyeun said, looking at each of the three guild maters. Then, he jumped from where he stood.
The ce where Su-hyeun jumped to was a huge ship that appeared directly above. Kim Taek-hyun, the guild master of the Red Devil, asked, ¡°Are all S-rank awakeners like that?¡±
Park Mo-young, the guild master of the Gambler Guild answered that question.
¡°I have no idea.¡±
They had never seen S-Rank awakeners¡¯ fight. All three of them were also called talented in the A-Rank group. But when they saw Su-hyeun¡¯s ability with their own eyes, it was something hard to believe.
¡°What are you doing?
Lee Kang-hee distorted his face and yelled to the guild members.
¡°Sweep them all away!¡±
***
Swish, bang¡ª
The ship was higher than he thought. In the end, Su-hyeun had to use the Imoogi skill to raise his leap and barely arrived at the ship.
¡°Wow. It is huge.¡±
The ship that floated above and blocked the light like a cloud was as big as a small ind.
<>
The empty armor fell from the ship, but where did this shipe from? The theme of the dungeon was still covered in a veil.
<>
Su-hyeun climbed up on the bottom of the ship, which he had barely caught. He had made a hole under the boat with his sword and went inside. The bottom of the ship was empty. It looked like the armor was hidden here.
<>
He wondered if he made a trip in vain. But still, he looked around carefully. Soon, he found a staircase leading up.
Thump, thump¡ª
The sound of the steps came to his ears clearly because it was so quiet. This wooden ship made a rustling sound, as old as it was. When he reached the top of the stairs, he smiled.
¡°Yup. There are still some here.¡±
Rattle¡ª
When he opened the upper door to go to the deck of the ship, the light that was hidden by the door so far was finally revealed.
ng, nk¡ª
Rattle¡ª
There was a ton of empty armor. The number looked simr to the armor shown below. Half of them still remained here.
¡°No. Not just a half.¡±
Su-hyeun looked carefully among the armor filled on the deck. He found a giant armor sitting on the top of the bow. It held a helmet in its hand.
<>
It was simr to Duhan, but a little different. Duhan usually held his head, not a hollow helmet. It could be one of two options. This one was something that either evolved from Duhan or degraded from it.
[Are you our enemy?]
The voice rang.
The ringing voice made it unclear where it came from.
ng¡ª
At that moment, Duhan got up from where he sat. It was his voice.
¡°I am probably your enemy,¡± Su-hyeun said.
[Probably?]
¡°Let me ask you one question. Depending on your answer, I could be your guest. Of course, if you think of me as a guest.¡±
[Ask.]
¡°If you could get out of this ce, would you attack people outside?¡±
[Yes.]
Duhan clenched his fist. It looked like he firmly determined something.
[I will kill all living things. That is our mission. We will kill all the living things and defy our deaths since there is no way we will survive again.]
It was a selfish notion indeed. Since there was no way for the dead to survive, they would kill all living things to make everything equal. Su-hyeun crumpled his face. He wanted to hear what he would say, but what he said was just nonsense.
¡°Then if you nned to kill anyway, why did you ask me if I were your enemy? Su-hyeun asked.
[Becasue I do not want to fight against you.]
¡°Why?¡±
[You are dangerous. You have the power to kill us, the dead ones, again. So, I don¡¯t want to fight.]
¡°...Is that so?¡±
The power he mentioned probably meant the me skill.
Even without that, they would die if he destroyed the magic circle engraved inside of the armor. But it looked like they were afraid of his me the most.
¡°So, does that mean you guys distinguish the weak ones and strong ones when you fight?¡±
[Of course. We do not want to experience death again.]
¡°Are you afraid to die?¡±
[Of course.]
¡°Then how do you kill living people? You know it is scary.¡±
[That is why we are going to kill them. We will kill all living things and make them share our emotions. Then, the dead ones will no longer be treated as dead.]
¡°So since you guys can¡¯t be happy, other people should not be happy either. Is that what you are saying?¡±
Su-hyeun bit his lips. It was because he remembered bad memories. There was a guy who had said the same thing: Lich King.
¡°You are irritating me, really....¡± Su-hyeun said.
He had met intelligent monsters many times, but each time he could not help his feelings of disgust. Ignorant monsters who were not intelligent did not pick who to kill. But intelligent monsters liked to pick and kill their opponents.
¡°I don¡¯t like it.¡± Su-hyeun said again.
Grrr¡ª
Miru cried low as if it felt Su-hyeun¡¯s feeling.
Thump¡ª
Su-hyeun started to walk toward Duhan.
ng¡ª
nk¡ª
Hundreds of pieces of armor split from side to side, making a road. The magic that spewed from Su-hyeun split the floor.
¡°I know a b*stard like you.¡±
Thump¡ª
¡°There is a very, very bad son of a b*tch,¡± Su-hyeun said.
It was one of the worst monsters Su-hyeun could remember.
Lich King. He was the god of the dead and the king of Liches. He was different from other monsters that were simply strong.
He took even the rest of the dead ones and drowned them in their eternal torment.
<>
They looked simr too. It was just a difference between the skull and armor. But it was the same that they both died. Su-hyeun was furious. He had to blow off steam.
¡°Thank you for bringing back the dirty memories. In return¡ª¡±
Crack¡ª
Crunch¡ª
Su-hyeun grabbed one armor that came close to him and twisted it with his hand. He lifted his eyes.
¡°¡ªI will definitely kill you. I promise.¡±
Chapter 78
Chapter 78: Chapter 78
Crack, crack¡ª!
sh¡ª!
Hundreds of armors were cut off and fell on the deck, one by one. Each armor had misceneous weapons such as a sword, spear, or ax. They moved like well-trained elite troops. They were especially more agile when Su-hyeun got closer to Duhan. Among them were armored soldiers that could use magic.
¡°So they are not all the same,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Every one of them looked like they had been well-trained in life. Some looked like they had possibly been knights before. It was not an ordinary army.
¡°Or they were given power after they died.¡±
Individually, none was very special, with less power than a monster in a green dungeon. The problem was their number, organization, and locations of the magic circles.
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun cut the armor in half, but it did not fall. One of the two half-split bodies swung the sword at Su-hyeun. He dodged the sword and checked the location of the magic circle engraved inside the armor.
¡°Is it on the arm-side this time?¡± he thought.
Crack¡ª!
He reached out and twisted the inside of the magical armor. When the magic circle broke, the soul escaped as the armor stopped moving. Su-hyeun looked around the remaining half of the armor.
¡°Somebody used the brain,¡± he mumbled.
He assumed this would be difficult enough for the people underneath. The armor itself was very hard. It looked like it was enchanted. So it was too hard to destroy the whole thing. And the locations of the magic circles were all different. That made it difficult to find and destroy each one. It was either wasting power or epting inconvenience to fight with these armors.
¡°Then...¡±
Su-hyeun thrust his sword at an oing armor.
Swish¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
He put his sword to the joint of the armor and caused an explosion. He continued to move around the field, targeting the different armors. Each time, he found the joint, stabbed his sword, and unleashed his me skill inside the empty armors. He did not need to cut through the solid armor¡ªthe important thing was that destroying the magic circle inside. As long as they kept the magic circle, they would not die. So all he had to do was burn them.
[This is amazing. Very amazing.]
ng, ng, ng¡ª!
Duhan, who sat alone on his bow far away, started to p. Then, a hollow, metallic sound echoed on the bow.
[You are different from the strong idiots down here. You are a real knight with strength and skill.]
The apuse praised Su-hyeun¡¯s ability. Su-hyeun stopped for a moment and looked at Duhan.
He thought thepliment was ridiculous. But suddenly, he felt a little difort from what Duhan said.
¡°Were you watching the fights down here, too?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
He didn¡¯t answer. But Su-hyeun could figure it out.
¡°I guess you¡¯re sharing the vision with these guys,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Duhan remained quiet. Su-hyeun thought if Duhan had a face and expression, it would be crumpled by now.
¡°Is it because your head is empty? You can¡¯t even think like a monster. At least they keep their mouths shut, so they do not show their stupidity,¡± Su-hyeun sarcastically remarked.
[How do you mock your opponent as a knight? Shame on you.]
¡°What about you guys? The so-called knights gang up on one person. Shame on you.¡±
Crack¡ª!
Su-hyeun stared at Duhan while he approached him.
¡°You wait right there. I will clean these all, crush your armor, and sell it to a junk shop.¡±
[You used a skill Provocation. You will be recognized as an enemy, except for the target you specify.]
As the skill activated, armored soldiers on deck rushed toward Su-hyeun. Duhan, who had nned to exhaust Su-hyeun¡¯s physical strength slowly, shouted in surprise. [Stop! Keep the formation!]
The soldiers did not listen to hismand because they were more influenced by Su-hyeun¡¯s skill than Duhan¡¯s order.
Crack, crack¡ª!
Boom, boom¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s movement emitted light among the hundreds of armored soldiers. He thrust his sword at the joint of each armor, unleashed his me skill, and destroyed the magic circle. The immortal army that could move without limbs dropped easily.
[I can¡¯t believe it!] Duhan was more surprised than before. As Su-hyeun had said, Duhan was able to share his sight and mind with the armored soldiers. It was the power given to him, the chief of the dead soldiers. It allowed him to see other awakeners who were fighting underneath, and he could check their level. Even though Su-hyeun was strong, Duhan thought he would not be much different from other people.
On the other hand, no matter how strong Su-hyeun was, he would have had to work hard to take down an army this size. But something unexpected happened¡ªSu-hyeun was knocking down armor soldiers with minimal strength and stamina.
Purr¡ª!
Whizz, whizz¡ª
As Miru¡¯s support continued, Su-hyeun moved so fast it was like he had wings. Although Miru was young, he was sharp-sighted. As far as his strength allowed, Miru continued to give Su-hyeun appropriate support.
¡°Thank you, my son,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Purr¡ª! Miru shook his head with excitement at Su-hyeun¡¯s praise.
Now there were about a hundred of them left. That was an amount that Su-hyeun could knock down within minutes.
¡°I need to speed up,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Swish¡ª!
At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s sword turned upward.
ng¡ª!
Rumble¡ª!
A heavy armor fell from above. It swung a huge sword over Su-hyeun¡¯s head. It was a surprise blow but did not affect Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun lifted his sword and blocked instead of dodging. But the shabby deck had an issue.
Crunch, crunch¡ª!
Crack¡ª!
The deck copsed and Su-hyeun fell. A dark,rge space appeared. Light came through the copsed deck above. Soon, the remaining armored soldier followed. As soon as hended, Su-hyeun got ready. He looked at the armor that had just attacked him.
¡°Are you moving, too? Finally?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
It was Duhan, a huge armor about three meters tall with a helmet in his hand. He started to move.
Rumble¡ª!
Filled with ck magic was enough for Duhan to be called as the leader of the armored soldiers.
ng¡ª!
The armored soldiers came down under the deck and made arge circle around Su-hyeun and Duhan.
Su-hyeun looked around at those armored soldiers and said, ¡°I guess your head¡¯s not totally empty.¡±
Duhan¡¯s ability was that he could share vision with his soldiers. In other words, he could see Su-hyeun¡¯s movement from all directions. It was a pretty big advantage in a one-on-one fight. That was why Duhan moved before all the soldiers were killed by Su-hyeun. He wanted to take Su-hyeun¡¯s energy as much as possible, but that n had failed.
[Do not trample the honor of the knight!]
Duhan rushed toward Su-hyeun as if he felt offended by his words. Due to Duhan¡¯s size, the movement was almost impossible to believe Even though the inside of the armor was empty, the armor itself was several times heavier than the weight of a normal adult man. But his speed was incredible despite that weight.
Whizz¡ª!
ng¡ª!
Of course, the destructive power was not something negligible. Su-hyeun stepped back as he saw the floor cut off by Duhan¡¯s sword. Duhan quickly checked where Su-hyeun moved and immediately followed.
Whizz¡ª!
nk¡ª!
Duhan¡¯s sword backed off and hit Su-hyeun, who jumped. He was certainly strong. Moreover, the ck magic that spouted from the armor doubled his power. His swordsmanship and posture were also wless. He had said that he was a knight when he was alive. It seemed like he was a pretty good one. But...
¡°Is there anything else you¡¯re good at?¡±
Crack, crack¡ª!
[The Transfiguration Skill: Imoogi.]
The scales of Imoogi started to grow on Su-hyeun¡¯s body. As skill proficiency increased, so did the range of the scales. Now they covered his entire arm, below his neck.
¡°I¡¯m good at that, too,¡± Su-hyeun said.
[What?]
Whizz¡ª!
Su-hyeun stretched out his arm. Duhan, who had hesitated a little, rushed to Su-hyeun. The iron armor was huge and had massive force. As Su-hyeun had said, Duhan was confident in his power. Not only in physical size but also the magic that amplified his power. So to him, there was no reason to avoid Su-hyeun¡¯ sword.
nk¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s small, shabby sword and Duhan¡¯s big sword hit each other. And at that moment...
Boom¡ª!
Duhan¡¯s heavy armor bounced back, then fell on the empty armored soldiers, crushing them.
[What...the...]
He could not understand what had just happened. He could not believe that he was pushed out by the power. The armored soldiers hurriedly pulled him up.
Thump, thump¡ª!
Su-hyeun walked toward Duhan. Duhan raised his sword again, thinking that what had just happened was impossible.
¡°That sword is pretty hard,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Swish¡ª!
Again, Su-hyeun swung his sword at Duhan.
ng¡ª!
Whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª!
Unlike before, Duhan did not bounce off. He stiffened his legs and endured. He thought that if he lost strength, there would be no way he could win. But that judgment was rather a factor to elerate defeat.
Crack, crack¡ª!
ng¡ª!
Duhan¡¯s sword broke into pieces. And those pieces flew everywhere. Duhan stepped back reflexively. Su-hyeun did not miss.
sh¡ª
nk¡ª
Duhan¡¯s vision slowly tilted and fell to the side. He was sure he did not move. He was in wonder and checked himself through the shared vision of another armored soldier. Then he looked down at his legs.
[Uh...?]
Bam¡ª!
His legs were cut. Since he could not feel the pain, he even did not realize it. He had not seen it through the vision of his soldiers. Hundreds of eyes could not follow the sword of Su-hyeun.
¡°Not even a million eyes can allow you to see the invisible,¡± Su-hyeun said.
He pointed to the head in Duhan¡¯s hand with the tip of his sword.
[N-no...]
¡°If you took it for granted to kill someone.¡±
Stab¡ª!
¡°You, too, take death for granted.¡±
Whoosh, whoosh¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
The fire of me skill burst in Duhan¡¯s helmet and destroyed the magic circle that held his soul.
Rattle¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
Duhan¡¯s body finally fell. Su-hyeun looked around at the remaining armored soldiers. The subordinates who lost their head looked like they also lost their fighting spirit.
¡°It was too easy,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
It was much more difficult than the yellow-colored dungeon. But still, it was too easypared to the difort he had felt when he entered the dungeon.
¡°Something still remains. Something I missed. Maybe...¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He raised his head and looked up. Through the broken deck, he could see the sea. Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes. He saw something far off. And it was getting closer.
Chapter 79
Chapter 79: Chapter 79
¡°Of course. It was not over yet,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Duhan was not weak but if it ended like this, it would have been too easy to be a green-colored dungeon ¡ª Duhan was the level of a boss of a yellow-colored dungeon, not a green-colored dungeon. Perhaps the real boss would be the one that came closer right at the moment. It had to be a big creature that Su-hyeun could see with his naked eyes despite the distance.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The ship began to move gradually. It moved upward. In the beginning, the ship appeared from the sea, and it looked like it was going back to where it was originally.
¡°It is not a usual ship,¡± he mumbled.
This ship was too big for only Duhan and his armor soldiers. It was at least a few kilometers long. It was almost like a small ind. Furthermore, as the ship was floating, it was obvious that there was a power source moving the ship.
Rumble¡ª
The ship was headed upward little by little. Su-hyeun went inside of the ship. When he went deeper into the ship, he could see the structure of it.
¡°This ship... is alive.¡±
He knew it was not an ordinary ship, but he did not expect that this ship would be like a living thing.
¡°Then...¡± Su-hyeun turned his body and said, ¡°Hey, Miru?¡±
Purr¡ª?
¡°Can I ask you a favor?¡±
***
¡°Damn. There are too many.¡±
Lee Ju-ho, who cut off the armor soldiers one by one, stopped a moment and took a breath. Although heined, the situation was not bad. Many of the armor soldiers were destroyed so there were not many left now. He did not even need to help anymore. Other people from the three guilds were pushing the armor soldiers morepetitively to get more contributions.
¡°At first, it was tricky because we did not know their weaknesses. But it is not difficult anymore since we know them.¡±
Kim Taek-hyun, who held his cane in his hand, approached Lee Ju-ho and said it looked like he did not much care about the contributions. ¡°I heard you were a B-Rank awakener. Did you be an A-Rank? I didn¡¯t hear any news,¡± Kim Taek-hyun said.
He had been watching Lee Ju-ho¡¯s battle against the armor soldiers quite carefully. And even in this mess, he noticed that Lee Ju-ho was using about Grade 6 magic.
¡°It has been a while. I will take a reexamination soon.¡± Lee Ju-ho replied without any hesitation because he did not intend to hide it in the first ce. This dungeon was just a stage to expand his experience and experiment with his new skills.
¡°Is that so?¡± Kim Taek-hyun looked at Lee Ju-ho carefully and said, ¡°If you are interested, please join our Red Devil Guild. You won¡¯t be disappointed by the remuneration we give you.¡±
¡°Join your guild?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Yes. As long as you are interested. Ha-ha!¡±
It was an unexpected recruitment. But to Lee Ju-ho, it was a proposal not even worth thinking about.
¡°Sorry, but I am fine. If I wanted to join any guild, I probably would have done so a long time ago,¡± Lee Ju-ho refused.
At the instant refusal, Kim Taek-hyun smacked his lips as if he felt shame. He wanted to recruit Lee Ju-ho, who became an A-Rank. But he also thought it would be a great opportunity if he could make some sort of rtionship with Su-hyeun through Lee Ju-ho.
¡°How many people are hurt?¡± Lee Ju-ho, who didn¡¯t want to talk about the ufortable conversation, changed the subject. Kim Taek-hyun knew the reason why Lee Ju-ho did that, but he answered, pretending not to know.
¡°There are about two people in my guild. They¡¯re not big injuries either.¡±
¡°That¡¯s fortunate.¡±
If two people were injured in the Red Devil Guild, the other guilds would have a simr situation. About one in ten was injured and the injuries were not serious. This was not much damage. If the green-colored dungeon attack stopped at this much damage, it would be a great sess.
¡°But it¡¯s a little strange. It can¡¯t be this easy,¡± Kim Taek-hyun said.
Lee Ju-ho totally agreed with Kim Taek-hyun¡¯s opinion. It was his first time to attack a green-colored dungeon, but since he received the reports, he knew the approximate data.
¡°Maybe this isn¡¯t over yet.¡±
¡°I suppose you are right.¡±
They had not searched the whole city yet. Perhaps there were more traps and monsters left. If that were true, it could have been the reason why the fight was over with so little damage.
¡°Let¡¯s check the injured people as soon as we¡¯re done here,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
Kim Taek-hyun nodded and asked, ¡°But where did Mr. Kim Su-hyeun go?¡±
¡°I think he is investigating the ship over there.¡±
¡°Why is he taking so long...?¡±
Purr¡ª
At that moment, they could hear a familiar sound. It was Miru. Miru flew toward Lee Ju-ho, circling the sky.
Lee Ju-ho asked in surprise, ¡°Miru! Why are you here alone...?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t this Mr. Su-hyeun¡¯s divine beast?¡± Kim Taek-hyun asked.
He was surprised since the divine beast that Su-hyeun had wrapped around his neck flew to them alone. Both of them thought something might have gone wrong with Su-hyeun. If that happened, attacking this dungeon would be impossible.
Purr, purr¡ª!
Miru flew in front of Lee Ju-ho¡¯s eyes and fluttered its tail. At that moment, Lee Ju-ho found a small piece of paper tied to Miru¡¯s tail.
¡°Paper?¡±
Purr¡ª
Miru stuck out the tail to him. Lee Ju-ho carefully unwrapped the paper so that it would not be torn up. When he opened the paper, something was written on it.
[I will break this floating ship. I will give you ten minutes. Everybody evacuates.]
¡°W-w-what?¡±
¡°What the hell...¡±
The two men who read the paper became panicked. They lifted their heads and looked up at the floating ship.
¡°Is he going to break that ship?¡±
¡°If that happens...¡±
¡°Everybody! Run away!¡± Kim Taek-hyun shouted as loud as he could.
Lee Kang-hee, who was finishing up the armor soldiers, asked, ¡°Run away? What are you talking about?¡±
¡°What is happening...?¡±
¡°The ship will fall! Hurry up!¡±
¡°What? What?¡±
Everyone got busy. They all thought one thing: they had to run away.
***
¡°Everybody is running away well.¡±
Su-hyeun sat on the bow of the ship and looked down at the ground. He could see the people who started to run away after they got the note that he had sent with Miru. They were small like dots, but he could tell they were in a panic. He felt a little sorry, but he couldn¡¯t just leave this ship alone. He felt ufortable.
<>
He got up from where he sat.
Purr¡ª!
Miru flew back just in time. Actually, he came faster than Su-hyeun expected.
<>
Su-hyeun stroked Miru¡¯s head and said, ¡°Good job, son.¡±
Purr, purr¡ª!
He wanted to y more with Miru, who was rubbing his face on him. But he had no time to do that. The people below were finishing the evacuation. In fact, even if the ship fell down, people could run away by themselves since they were skilled enough to attack the green-colored dungeon.
The preparations were now over. Even though it was an old ship, to break this huge thing, he needed to spend quite a bit of energy. So, there was something he had prepared.
¡°I didn¡¯t know I would use these this way.¡±
Su-hyeun threw a nail-sized red stone that he had held.
Chink, chink¡ª
That red stone was thest one. He had evenly sprayed the stones. The red stones were the work of Kim Dae-ho.
***
¡°I made these from the Ether stone you had brought. They were difficult to make. So, don¡¯t waste them.¡±
¡°Where can I use these?¡±
¡°They are magic amplifiers.¡±
¡°Magic amplifiers?¡±
¡°The connection between stones will make a path that magic can go through. And then, it amplifies the magic power instantly. It is like the better version of a magic circle that awakeners use.¡±
Although the description was poor, Su-hyeun quickly grasped the usage of the items. In other words, they were a medium for creating a magic circle. The form of the circle was pretty simple.
¡°I said it was a magic circle, but the form does not really matter. You can make like a circle or you can put them in a row. As long as you can make a line, they will be a great amplifier.¡±
¡°I guess they will be useful to make a trap or something.¡±
¡°Not just for a trap,¡± Kim Dae-houghed proudly and said, ¡°It¡¯s best when you destroy things.¡±
***
In fact, these red stones were difficult to use although Kim Da-ho put a lot of effort into making them. To use this item, Su-hyeun had to install the stones in many ces. So, when he had to deal with a moving monster, it was a useless item. This item was just good to set traps. But in this situation, it was a different story.
<>
Rumble¡ª
Rumble¡ª
The red stones that he had spread on the floor began to glow. At that moment, Su-hyeun turned his body. The reason he chose the bow as the ce for thest stone was that way he could run away quickly.
¡°Let¡¯s run away!¡±
Purr¡ª
About the moment that Su-hyeun jumped¡ª
Bam¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
¡ªdozens of explosions urred within the huge ship.
***
Rumble¡ª
Boom, boom¡ª
The remains of the huge ship fell down. Seeing that, Lee Ju-ho opened his mouth.
¡°What the hell did he do up there?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Can¡¯t you tell?¡±
Thump¡ª
At the voice from behind, Lee Ju-ho turned his body. At the back, Su-hyeun was about tond on the ground.
¡°I feel ufortable to leave that ship like that,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°What was the ship for?¡±
¡°That ship was alive. If I didn¡¯t break it, it would bring more armor soldiers.¡±
¡°What? The ship...was alive?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Yes. Let¡¯s talk about itter. It is not over yet.¡±
Su-hyeun pointed up as he spoke. Although the smoke from the explosion covered above, Lee Ju-ho could see something where Su-hyeun was pointing with his finger.
¡°Wh-What is that?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Can you see?¡±
¡°What the hell is so big like that?¡±
At the surprised Lee Ju-ho¡¯s voice, people ran to them from all the sides.
¡°Mr. Su-hyeun! What the hell is that?¡±
¡°Is that...?¡±
The giant octopus was now close enough for everyone to see.
¡°Have you guys ever watched <>¡±
Su-hyeun now seemed to be able to figure out the theme and background of this dungeon. He could tell the identity of the ship and the identity of armor soldiers, including Duhan, and the giant octopus that wasing to the big city under the sea from over there.
¡°That is Kraken,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Kraken...¡±
¡°The name is not important now. Can¡¯t you see how big that monster is?¡±
Lee Kang-hee made a great fuss. Kraken looked as big as a World Cup stadium. The overwhelming pressure that came from the size was not something thatpared to any other monsters. Kraken was bigger than Igs.
¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±
Su-hyeun answered as if it was nothing. ¡°Won¡¯t you catch it because it is so big?¡±
Chapter 80
Chapter 80: Chapter 80
¡°Yes...?¡±
Su-hyeun spoke as if it was an insignificant thing. Lee Kang-hee also felt like it was not a big deal. At the embarrassing expression of Lee Kang-hee, Su-hyeun clicked his tongue.
¡°How can he be so scared by the size of the monster, even before he actually fights?¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Suddenly, the awakeners from the three guilds who had been hiding returned. They gathered around Su-hyeun, who looked around at them and opened his mouth.
¡°Everybody takes a position.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s voice was very low. The enchanting voice spread loud and clear. At the same time, it calmed the more nervous among the group because they could not feel any tension from Su-hyeun¡¯s voice.
¡°It will take a while for that slow octopus toe here. We have enough time to get ready,¡± Su-hyeun said.
What he said was correct. They could only see Kraken because it was so big, but it looked like it would take a while before it would actually arrive. Until then, they could finish their preparations. The panicked party nned to reim their peace, even if it took time. If a fearless leader was present, people would feel less scared. And that was the first and the most important virtue for the leader of the raid.
¡°Kraken...¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Although he met it in an unexpected ce, that wasn¡¯t a scary creature.
¡°Although it might be a little annoying.¡±
That was what Su-hyeun thought about Kraken. It would be annoying, but it was not impossible to kill. If the others could cooperate, it would be possible to catch it without too much damage.
However, that was only if people did not freak out because of its size. Or...
¡°From now on, everybody will do as I say.¡± Su-hyeun used his influence as a raid leader for the first time. ¡°Does anyone here have a fire or electric shock skill?¡±
With those words, some raised their hands.
***
Act 7
Rumble¡ª!
Kraken almost arrived. It looked far bigger as it grew closer. Those who felt some relief at Su-hyeun¡¯s words started to feel nervous again.
¡°It...it¡¯sing!¡±
¡°Keep the formation and focus!¡± each guild¡¯s master shouted, but it was a vain attempt.
Whirl¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
Kraken arrived and quickly disrupted the formation. To be specific, those who were frightened moved out of line to get as far from Kraken as possible.
Grrowr¡ª!
Kraken slowly opened its mouth and cried. As Su-hyeun had expected, Kraken was slow onnd. But each leg was about a hundred meters long, so no matter how slow it was, it could not be ignored.
¡°What are you doing, idiots! Didn¡¯t you hear themand to keep formation?¡± Lee Kang-hee shouted to his guild¡¯s awakeners as they left their spots. In the middle of the mess, people stared at one person. Lee Kang-hee also saw the man walking towards Kraken alone.
Lee Kang-hee mumbled while looking back, ¡°Kim Su-hyeun...?¡±
Su-hyeun approached Kraken. Lee Kang-hee knew what Su-hyeun would do. When they had discussed the role and position before, Su-hyeun had said something. But he could not believe that Su-hyeun moved alone.
¡°You¡¯re smaller than the other one,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Grrrr¡ª!
Su-hyeun looked up at Kraken from below. ¡°Are you that Kraken¡¯s baby?¡±
Kraken looked down at Su-hyeun, who was not sure whether it understood his words or perceived him as a threat. His Provocation skill would not work well on a monster of this size. So instead of relying on Provocation skill, he had to get its attention through other means.
Whoosh¡ª!
Su-hyeun spread his me skill around Kraken. It reacted to the heat with anger and pain.
Gwuuuuooo¡ª!
It was not a smart monster. It was not hard to catch its eye.
[Indomitable Body.]
[The Transfiguration Skill: Imoogi.]
[The me.]
Those were a few of the highest proficiency skills Su-hyeun possessed. The color of his me changed to blue. It was hotter and it required more concentrated magic.
Whiz¡ª!
Su-hyeun jumped upward. He used his Leap skill and flew several more meters up. He still needed to kick the air a few more times to reach Kraken¡¯s head.
Swish¡ª!
As Su-hyeun quickly narrowed the distance, Kraken reacted immediately. While it could recognize the threat quickly, its movement was not fast enough.
Whirl¡ª!
Gram vibrated as if it hurried Su-hyeun to use it. Su-hyeun had saved his energy. The goal was set.
¡°Frist of all...¡± Su-hyeun mumbled.
Stab¡ª!
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut Kraken¡¯s eyes.
¡°Take its sight.¡±
Grrrrr¡ª!
***
Kraken raised its two legs and covered its eyes. The huge body swung its legs everywhere, causing chaos. The huge legs broke down the old houses around it, and Kraken opened its mouth and cried in pain.
Looking at it, Lee Kang-hee thought, ¡°Really... He really did it.¡±
¡°I will take away its sight first.¡±
When Lee Kang-hee had asked how he would do that, Su-hyeun did not answer. He just said he could. That was his answer¡ªif it could even be considered an answer. Lee Kang-hee had thought Su-hyeun was bluffing. He thought what Su-hyeun had said was nonsense. But he really made it. As the title of S-Rank, Su-hyeun embodied his role perfectly.
¡°It lost its sight,¡± Lee Kang-hee thought.
Kraken was struggling after it lost its sight. It looked like it did not have a good sense of smell, so this was a golden opportunity.
¡°What are you doing? Attack quickly!¡± Lee Kang-hee ordered awakeners of the Papillon Guild who were in their ces. Each of them was a B-Rank awakener and a hand-picked soldier. Their attack skills would be enough. With their power, Kraken¡¯s size would not matter.
¡°Let¡¯s go!¡± Lee Kang-hee raised his sword and shouted.
The awakeners capable of closebat were followed by Lee Kang-hee.
Su-hyeun looked at them and shouted, ¡°Don¡¯t get close! Use fire skill from a distance!¡±
That was what had been decided in the beginning. People were supposed to attack from afar after Su-hyeun took Kraken¡¯s sight. That was Su-hyeun¡¯s instruction.
¡°From a distance?¡±
¡°Did he say don¡¯t get close?¡±
¡°Yes, that was what he said...¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s order, the awakeners of the Papillon Guild were flustered because the guild master and raid leader gave differentmands. In such a case, they were supposed to follow Su-hyeun¡¯s order since he was the raid leader. Yet they had no choice but to read the face of Lee Kang-hee. They would not see Su-hyeun again when this dungeon attack ended, but Lee Kang-hee was different.
Lee Kang-hee also paused for a moment at Su-hyeun¡¯s order. But the reason was different.
¡°What the hell do you know?¡± Lee Kang-hee thought.
Lee Kang-hee was dissatisfied with Su-hyeun, who intercepted hismand inward.
¡°The strategy can change depending on the circumstances.¡±
Lee Kang-hee felt rather patheticpared to Su-hyeun, something that Su-hyeun didn¡¯t know. Of course, there was another reason.
¡°The one who gets that Kraken will take the biggest contribution.¡±
In the case of a dungeon attack through an alliance, everyone from each guild was supposed to record the contents. And the contributions were divided based on those videos and overall evaluation of the raid members. The reward of Ether stone was distributed ording to those results.
¡°Don¡¯t listen to him! Just run!¡± Lee Kang-hee shouted.
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
¡°It¡¯s big but slow! Each bash is strong, so don¡¯t attack it head-on, attack the sides! It¡¯s lost its sight now!¡±
At Lee Kang-hee¡¯s order, the members of the Papillon Guild moved quickly. He had attacked many dungeons and felt he had the experience that Su-hyeuncked. So, he followed his own instincts.
¡°Idiots! Jeez!¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Whiz¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
It swung its leg randomly. Even though it lost its sight, the legs were still a threat. Su-hyeun hurriedly jumped to the side with Leap skill to escape its leg.
¡°It¡¯s definitely slow.¡±
The matter was the size, and its survival power and endurance. Its speed was not very difficult for the B-Rank awakeners. Moreover, this Kraken had lost its sight, so the uracy of the attack was pretty low. If so, it would be possible to unterally damage it. Lee Kang-hee¡¯s judgment was clearly justified to some extent. But that judgment was only based on partial information.
¡°Get the dame away¡ª!¡± Su-hyeun shouted, but they did not listen to him. They seemed to have chosen to listen to Lee Kang-hee¡¯s instructions.
¡°Oh my god! Really...?¡±
Su-hyeun scratched his head in frustration. He knew there would be people not listening to him, but this was bad timing. It was much more effective to attack all at once from a distance than to approach dangerously close. And because they came so close, the other guilds could not attack freely.
¡°Let a fool hold his tongue and he will pass for a sage,¡± Su-hyeun sighed.
To bring back Kraken¡¯s attention, it looked like he had to rush.
¡°I will see youter,¡± Su-hyeun thought as he saw Lee Kang-hee rushing to Kraken with crazy eyes. ¡°You will die.¡±
***
Swish¡ª!
Boom, boom boom¡ª!
The legs of Kraken hit the ground. The one old building copsed, and the pieces flew everywhere. But no one was there. Kraken had a hard time finding the targets with his blinded eyes.
¡°One, two!¡±
The awakeners of the Papillon Guild were busy fleeing Kraken¡¯s leg. Fortunately, it was not difficult to avoid. The size of the legs made them easy to see, and they were also slow and sluggish.
¡°We have to be careful with each shot.¡±
¡°It really is easier than I thought it would be.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t get too cocky. It takes blows well.¡±
The two awakeners talked continuously while dodging Kraken¡¯s legs. They were nervous at first, but now that they understood Kraken¡¯s movements, they were not difficult to dodge. If it were a game, it was like they learned a boss monster¡¯s pattern. Moreover, Kraken was distracted by the other attacks from other awakeners from all over.
Kiyaaaaa¡ª!
Whirl, whirl, whirl, whirl¡ª!
An unexpected sound stabbed their ears. It was more than just a noise. As soon as they heard it, their heads were shaking and they felt nauseous. It was Kraken¡¯s cry.
¡°Ugh... What, what is that?¡±
¡°Sound...?¡±
¡°Oop...¡±
The effect was greater on those near Kraken. They raised their magic, blocked their ears, and tried to hold their minds, but nothing worked. The nauseous stomach made them vomit. Their eyes were shaking dizzily.
¡°Damn... What the hell...¡±
Lee Kang-hee could not believe what had just happened. He held his head with one hand, raised it and looked up. And that moment...
¡°Damn... The eyes!¡±
His eyes met Kraken as it regained its sight.
Chapter 82
Chapter 82: Chapter 82
It was quiet. No one spoke a word. No one even took a step. Everyone looked at one person.
¡°Ten, nine, eight, seven, six, five...¡±
Tramp¡ª
The footstep sounded exceptionally loud. Lee Kang-hee had observed the ten seconds that Su-hyeun had requested. He finally walked out when they were almost over.
¡°Are you talking about me?¡± Lee Kang-hee asked.
¡°Isn¡¯t that why you came out?¡± Su-hyeun said.
His voice was very cold. Lee Kang-hee tried to rx the frown on his face. He forced his smile and reached his hand out to Su-hyeun.
¡°I am sorry about what I did before. I did not mean anything by it, but...¡± Lee Kang-hee said.
¡°But...¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°...Yes?¡± Lee Kang-hee looked at Su-hyeun with puzzled eyes. ¡°But what?¡± he thought.
¡°I was wondering whether you would say that or not. But of course, you did.¡±
Crash¡ª!
¡°Argh, ugh¡ª!¡±
Su-hyeun grabbed Lee Kang-hee¡¯s hand reached out and used the other hand to break his arm. At the sudden pain, Lee Kang-hee widely opened his eyes and keeled over. The pain from the arm spread all over his body.
¡°When you apologize, you should not use words like ¡®but¡¯ or ¡®still¡¯ or ¡®actually.¡¯ The moment you do, it bes an excuse, not an apology. And...¡±
Crash¡ª
¡°Argh, ugh¡ª!¡± Lee Kang-hee screamed.
¡°Your intention is not important. An apology for the people your actions have harmed is. To everyone, including me,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°I...I am sorry...¡±
¡°It¡¯s toote. And actually, I did not n to forgive you even if you apologized.¡±
¡°Damn...you...!¡±
sh¡ª!
Lee Kang-hee drew the sword with his left arm. The sharp de passed over Su-hyeun¡¯s head in a sh.
Bang¡ª!
Lee Kang-hee had another n. With his skill, his sword multiplied into dozens, all flying to strike Su-hyeun. It seemed to observers that Su-hyeun¡¯s body would be cut into pieces.
¡°Yes!¡± Lee Kang-hee yelled for joy.
At that moment...
Crack¡ª!
Lee Kang-hee felt the same horrible pain in his left arm. He screamed in pain.
¡°You have a good skill. If you drew the sword with your right arm instead of your left, you might have been able to cut me a little.¡±
Lee Kang-hee was not able to use both arms anymore. Although he was the A-Rank awakener, it would take a while for his broken and crushed arms to recover. At that moment, it was impossible for him to fight.
¡°Do...do you think you can gloss over this?¡± Lee Kang-hee ground his teeth while he knelt. He was trying to not stammer. ¡°What you are doing now... Many people are watching you right now. And we¡¯re recording all this. Remember? If we leave this dungeon...¡±
¡°Do you just want to die?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Lee Kang-hee got chills. He shut his mouth up. He thought if he said something wrong, he might really die. Once more, Su-hyeun twisted the shoulder of Lee Kang-hee who apparently still had some excuse.
Crack¡ª!
¡°Ah-argh...¡±
¡°There¡¯s something you¡¯re wrong about.¡±
Lee Kang-hee moaned.
¡°In arge team like this, a raid leader is responsible for nning the attack and having the power to lead the team. Of course, that¡¯s when the team is in agreement.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Lee Kang-hee¡¯s eyes shook. He knew very well. But...
¡°If somebody,¡± Su-hyeun continued to say, ¡°was blinded by the reward or Ether stone or contribution and harmed the team, the raid leader has the right to punish that person immediately. It is also possible to kill that person in some cases.¡± Su-hyeun paused and asked again, ¡°Do you want to die?¡±
¡°No, no...¡±
¡°If you get it, shut your mouth. And...¡±
Su-hyeun released his hold on Lee Kang-hee¡¯s shoulder. Instead, he grabbed his throat and lifted him.
¡°I am still annoyed... So, let me beat you up a little more.¡±
Act8
It was the first time for Lee Ju-ho to see Su-hyeun hit someone that much. He had never seen Su-hyeun fight with someone before. He could not even imagine Su-hyeun was capable of that.
¡°When I heard that he killed Jung Dong-yeong, I thought that he¡¯s quite spiteful...¡± Lee Ju-ho thought.
But when he actually saw it with his eyes, he could tell that was not true. Nobody could restrain Su-hyeun. The way he beat Lee Kang-hee seemed as if he derived satisfaction from the act. Not even the Papillon Guild members stopped him.
¡°What kind of idiot would die for the guild master who abandoned them and ran away?¡± Lee Ju-ho thought and sighed.
At least Su-hyeun did not kill Lee Kang-hee. However, he left him covered with wounds. If Lee Kang-hee were injured, he would not be able to fight anymore.
¡°Are you done yet?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
Su-hyeun nodded with a relieved face and answered, ¡°Roughly.¡±
¡°If that was rough, you would probably kill if you were precise.¡±
¡°There are people who kill their teammates to keep the rewards for themselves. Compared to that, this guy is a gentleman. But he won¡¯t able to work in this field anymore. Because of what he did today, he¡¯ll probably lose his reputation. Word gets around quickly, you know.¡±
¡°To me, he looks like someone who would kill others like if it were nothing, so long as he gets his power,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°It¡¯s hard to kill someone because of the possibility. Also, people are watching...¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Lee Ju-ho asked in surprise, ¡°What if people didn¡¯t watch?¡±
¡°Well...¡±
¡°Wow. You are a scary man.¡±
¡°This is nothing...to be called scary.¡± Su-hyeun shrugged.
Su-hyeun¡¯s answer sounded like a joke, but he was serious. To Lee Ju-ho, it looked like Su-hyeun was just a pure and kind person.
¡°Well. His perception will gradually change,¡± Su-hyeun thought. He turned and started to walk to one side.
¡°Where are you going?¡± Kim Taek-hyun asked.
¡°Rest for a while, please. Nothing will happen if you stay around here,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°I was asking about you, Mr. Su-hyeun. Not us.¡±
¡°I have to check on something. I¡¯ll be back soon.¡±
From the beginning, it seemed like Su-hyeun did not have any intention to ask for permission. Even before Kim Taek-hyun or other people opened their mouths, Su-hyeun moved quickly. When Su-hyeun left, Kim Taek-hyun sighed and turned his head.
¡°Argh...gg...¡±
Lee Kang-hee wiggled intermittently as if he was losing his breath. Even if Su-hyeun did not say that, it looked like they could not move at the moment.
***
Swish, swish¡ª
Su-hyeun jumped lightly and looked around the dungeon. With the light from above and itsndscape, this city did not look like a dungeon. He felt like he was walking around an old vige.
¡°This was a real vige. People lived here.¡±
It was clear that people had lived here, and it was also obvious who they were.
The soldiers, who lost their bodies and only had souls and armors, were probably the residents in this ce.
Su-hyeun stopped. He found a slightly bigger house than others and went in.
Creak¡ª
The old door opened with a loud noise. The dusty room was dim, lit only by the lighting through the window.
Achoo¡ª!
Miru, who was hanging on Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder, breathed dust and sneezed.
Su-hyeun looked at Miru and asked, ¡°Do you want to wait outside?¡±
Miru briskly shook his head as if this was not a big deal. Su-hyeun stroked Miru¡¯s head a few times and looked around the living room.
¡°It is pretty old,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
With all the old dust about, he could tell just how long the people of this town had suffered.
Stomp¡ª!
Su-hyeun entered one room. In the room, there was a bed, a small desk, and a chair. On the desk was a small notebook. Under the desk, there was a pen that had fallen. He picked up a notebook¡ªit was a diary. The diary was written in anguage that wasn¡¯t exactly English, but it was familiar enough. He could decipher them, although it was not perfect. Su-hyeun slowly read the diary.
¡°January 13th, I decided to write in this diary for the first time, because I didn¡¯t want to forget the happy moments. I...¡±
The beginning was ordinary. No, more than that, this person looked pretty happy. Was this person a man or a woman? There was no clue about gender. There was a name for someone who appeared to be a spouse, but it was difficult to determine whether that name was male or female. For the first few pages, a happy routine was recorded in the diary. And...
¡°A man came to our vige. His face was half-human and half-skull. He had a huge octopus. He suppressed our vige. He said if anyone left, they would die. He had the power to do it.
¡°Those who had sailed out of town had returned. No, they should not havee back. I couldn¡¯t do anything.¡±
Su-hyeun clenched his teeth. While reading the diary, he could imagine what had happened in this vige. The man written about in the diary was the Lich King.
¡°The vige was cursed. We slowly died. Why? Why did he do this to our vige? It seemed like he did not want anything. That made it even more frightening.¡±
Crunch¡ª
Unwittingly, Su-hyeun grabbed the diary tight. The dried diary was crushed into powder. He couldn¡¯t read anymore. There was no reason to continue¡ªhe already knew. He had seen a lot of cities in such a background.
¡°The problem is not the background, but the dungeon itself,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Su-hyeun came out and looked around the inside of the dungeon. The city had sunk into the sea. It became the green-colored dungeon.
¡°I have to investigate further.¡±
Su-hyeun continued his search, hoping some additional clues might emerge.
***
He could not find anything special in the town. Like the diary, most of the findings were records about how the vige used to be.
After the raid, everybody emerged from the dungeon. The raid ended after one day. All that was left was the collection and distribution of Ether stones.
When Hak-joon came to Su-hyeun¡¯s house, he found Su-hyeun lying on the bed, reading a book.
¡°What are you doing, Su-hyeun?¡±
¡± I have to check something,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°What is that?¡± Hak-joon was curious and tried to look closer at the book Su-hyeun was reading. It wasn¡¯t actually a book, but a small booklet about the dungeons.
¡°The dungeon appeared in 2020. Sorted by the difficulty... Why are you reading this?¡±
¡°I¡¯m curious.¡±
¡°Are you going for the raid in earnest?¡±
¡°No. I¡¯d rather climb the tower at that time.¡±
¡°Of course you will. So why are you reading this?¡±
¡°I¡¯m just curious.¡±
Hak-joon did not really believe Su-hyeun¡¯s words because his face looked more serious than curious.
¡°Fortunately, the future hasn¡¯t changedpletely,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Su-hyeun skimmed through the booklet. He read about the locations of the dungeons in countries and regions, their difficulty levels, and other detailed information. In fact, all the dungeons that appeared so far were recorded. And of those, Su-hyeun mainly skimmed over the dungeons than were above yellow-level.
¡°I will never forget about more than yellow-colored dungeons...¡± he thought.
In his previous life, Su-hyeun had worked for the government institution. Because of his job, he was fully aware of the major dungeons above yellow. In particr, if green-colored dungeons appeared in session, there was no way that Su-hyeun could remember. Except for one that appeared to be special. Other than that, there were no other dungeons he could remember.
Chapter 83
Chapter 83: Chapter 83
¡°The cause of this is probably...¡± Su-hyeun began to think.
The other dungeons were still the same. As far as Su-hyeun¡¯s memory was concerned, there were no dungeons that had disappeared or suddenly appeared. He could only think of one possible cause.
¡°Lich King. It¡¯s probably because of him.¡±
It looked like Su-hyeun had to pay more attention to the frequency of dungeon appearances. It would be a huge problem if the biggest and most-important dungeons he knew of suddenly appeared.
¡°I feel like this just got moreplicated.¡±
His busy schedule was about to get busier. Su-hyeun sighed and closed the booklet.
¡°Are you done? Thene and eat some fruit,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°Are you not working today?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°After you disbanded Ares Guild, I have nothing much to do here. All my friends are gone,¡± Hak-joon answered.
¡°What about your next trial?¡±
¡°I just passed the forty-ninth floor yesterday.¡±
¡°Already?¡±
Su-hyeun was about to nag Hak-joon about beingzy, but he had worked harder than Su-hyeun expected. The forty-ninth floor might not be high inparison to the other A-rank awakeners, but considering that Hak-joon had begun at level eight, it was a phenomenal speed.
¡°The fiftieth floor will be a crisis. Every tenth floor bes insanely difficult,¡± Hak-joonined.
¡°Don¡¯t worry too much. You can get a hint if you give enough points to the gatekeepers.¡±
¡°I will. And because of that, I¡¯ve worked hard on points, just as you advised.¡±
Working on points meant a way ofpleting trials with sufficient achievement points, not just getting to the end. In his previous life, this method was pretty popr on the ninth floors of each tier. The reason was that people had to pay an information fee to the gatekeepers on the tenth floors. Sooner orter, this method would be popr again.
¡°What about you, Su-hyeun? Why don¡¯t you attempt the next trial?¡±
¡°Since I don¡¯t have much time, I will. Soon.¡±
After he finished the green-colored dungeon, he adjusted his condition for about a day. The basis of his strategy was to prepare the perfect condition needed to attempt the next trial. For the distribution, Su-hyeun left it all to Lee Ju-ho. The amount would be high, but since he was a veteran, he would not make a mistake.
¡°What do you mean you don¡¯t have much time?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°There¡¯s something I have to take care of,¡± Su-hyeun said as he stood. ¡°I will tell you when the timees. Be ready then.¡±
¡°What?¡±
Hak-joon tilted his head sideways. He felt an ominous foreboding. Hak-joon shuddered with a spooky feeling. And Su-hyeun looked at Hak-joon and smiled. Then, he checked the electronic clock on the wall and calcted the date.
¡°There should be enough time,¡± he thought.
Miru had hatched after the trial of the twenty-first floor. And Su-hyeun immediately joined the attack on the green-colored dungeon. So, he still had some time left for the day.
¡°I guess I have to push myself.¡±
Su-hyeun started to climb the Tower of Trials again.
***
[Subject: Kim Su-hyeun. Beginning the trial of the twenty-second floor.]
That trial took three days.
[You have passed the trial.]
There was nothing difficult in that trial. Trials were still pretty easy for Su-hyeun.
¡°The goal is the thirtieth floor.¡±
[Subject: Kim Su-hyeun. Beginning the trial of the twenty-third floor.]
This time, it took five days.
[You have passed the trial.]
Afterpleting a floor, Su-hyeun took a day off. Then without hesitation, he attempted the next challenge. March had passed and April came. Flowers started to bloom. But Su-hyeun did not see the flowers and time marched on.
[Subject: Kim Su-hyeun. Beginning the trial of the twenty-seventh floor.]
The trials were getting a little more difficult. From that time, he paid more attention to maintain his condition. After passing the twenty-seventh floor, Su-hyeun rested for three days. His state of mind changed as well. He started to study and practice the ways he could be stronger. He did not just pass the trials without thinking. And then Like that, May passed as well. The weather was warming.
[Subject: Kim Su-hyeun. Beginning the trial of the twenty-ninth floor.]
The trial of the twenty-ninth floor was particrly difficult. There was no risk high enough to threaten his life, but for the first time, he had almost failed. The goal was to escort a specific person. But the situation had suddenly changed, and the target was in danger. Fortunately, of course, he came through and saved the target.
¡°Stay well, kid.¡±
¡°I am not a kid. I am Quan Zarhan...¡±
¡°You¡¯re loud, kid.¡±
Su-hyeun mussed up the little boy¡¯s hair when they arrived at the kingdom¡¯s castle. Quan fixed his hair with annoyed and looked up.
¡°What do you mean ¡®stay well¡¯? Mister,e inside with me. My father is the king and he¡¯ll give you a big prize.¡±
¡°You really still call me mister at the end...?¡±
¡°You call me kid, too. Nyah¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun sighed at Quan¡¯s behavior. Still, Quan had softened inparison to the first time they met. Back then, because of his royal stature, he looked down on Su-hyeun. But now he treated Su-hyeun like a close brother.
¡°I am sorry to say goodbye,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
This trial had taken a month. Of all the recent trials, that was the longest. There was a reason for that. Su-hyeun had to find ways to get to the kingdom and there were many obstacles at every moment. In that time, he had be fond of Quan as well. But there was nothing he could do.
¡°I really have to go,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Where are you going?¡±
Su-hyeun suddenly vanished right before Quan¡¯s eyes. Quan¡¯s eyes widened in surprise and he looked around to try and find some trace of him.
¡°Mister? Where did you go? Mister?¡±
He spent a good while searching the front of the castle for Su-hyeun. But no matter how many times he called, Su-hyeun did not appear again.
¡°If you are in danger, call me. Then this awesome brother will save you. Okay?¡±
Su-hyeun had appeared in the middle of nowhere and saved Quan when he was kidnapped. He also showed up every time Quan had called him for help. But he would note anymore. After some time, the pce soldiers emerged to find Quan.
Quan stood in vain and murmured, ¡°I never got a chance to call him brother...¡±
¡°Don¡¯t cry. You are not a kid, are you?¡±
Quan felt like he could hear Su-hyeun¡¯s voice. He bit his lips and held back his tears.
¡°Thank you. Brother.¡±
***
It was mid-June. The ambiguous month when it was not spring anymore, but not quite summer yet. Su-hyeunid on the bed. The temperature and humidity made his head hot.
¡°Let¡¯s see, today is June 12th.¡±
Fortunately, that was about what he had expected. He was in-line with what he had set as a goal. He was thinking about challenging the thirtieth floor, but he put it off for a while.
¡°I don¡¯t know how long it will take. Besides, it won¡¯t be easy,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
After the twenty-seventh floor, the level of difficulty was no longer easy. Little by little, he had reached the maximum amount of achievement points. The thirtieth floor, that third tier, would probably take a long time to finish. It could also ruin his condition. Unless there was a save zone, but the higher the floor, the less likely those existed.
¡°I can rest for a while.¡±
He pushed himself for almost half a year without rest. Now he needed to take a break for not only his physical health but also his mental state. Soon, things would be busy again.
¡°I guess I have to tell in advance,¡± he thought.
Su-hyeun turned on his smartphone, which he hadn¡¯t used in a long time.
Ring, ring, ring¡ª
¡°Hey, it¡¯s me.¡±
¡°You¡¯ve been off the grid for months and now you give a simple ¡®Hey, it¡¯s me?¡¯ That¡¯s it? Is that all?¡± There was an edge to Ji-yeon¡¯s voice because Su-hyeun hadn¡¯t answered her calls in months.
¡°I was in the middle of the trials. I just passed the twenty-ninth floor,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Level 10?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°You¡¯re gross. You really didn¡¯t rest at all? Not even a day?¡±
¡°No, no. I rested a couple of days between trials. All I did was sleep.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s answer, Ji-yeon became silent. She thought of herself as a pretty dogged person. She thought she was trying hard enough. But Su-hyeun¡¯s hard work made her a little ashamed of herself. Many S-Rank awakeners tried hard to climb the tower, but Su-hyeun was the most serious of them.
¡°Anyway, why did you call? You didn¡¯t answer when I needed you.¡±
¡°I told you. I won¡¯t join raids. Didn¡¯t we agree not to involve each other unless it¡¯s rted to the Dump Guild?¡±
¡°Good things are good things. We¡¯ll give you a lot of distribution...¡± Ji-yeon suddenly stopped in surprise. ¡°Is this about...?¡±
¡°Yes, it¡¯s about that.¡±
¡°Where is it?¡±
¡°June 21st. Los Angeles, the USA.¡±
¡°America? Those crazy bastards expanded that far?¡±
¡°They didn¡¯t expand. They were originally from there.¡±
¡°What? How do you know that?¡±
¡°Last time, I caught one assassin from the Dump Guild and asked.¡± This was a bit different from the facts, so Su-hyeun spoke vaguely. ¡°Anyway, that¡¯s not the point. The important thing is I need your help.¡±
¡°Okay, I¡¯ll prepare some people from my guild...¡±
¡°No. Ripper Guild won¡¯t go. I¡¯ll go to America alone.¡±
At those unexpected words, Ji-yeon¡¯s voice lowered. ¡°That¡¯s not what we agreed, is it?
Ji-yeon had a personal grudge against the Dump Guild. Su-hyeun did not know what kind of grudge that was, but he was certain that she really hated them. As soon as he brought up the Dump Guild, her voice changed. He could feel her coldness over the phone. If she ever met them in person, it would get very bloody. Despite knowing all that, Su-hyeun still said he would go alone.
¡°I¡¯ll give you another piece of information,¡± he said.
¡°Go on.¡± Her tone indicated that she would not tolerate useless words.
¡°On that same day, something will happen here as well.¡±
¡°Something like what?¡±
¡°You know about the uing green dungeon raid, right?¡±
¡°Yes. People said that it¡¯s the biggest green-colored dungeon that¡¯s ever appeared. So two S-Rank awakeners will be deployed this time.¡±
¡°You go, too. But keep it secret.¡±
¡°Me? Why?¡±
¡°I won¡¯t say twice, so listen carefully. That day, the Dump Guild will...¡±
Su-hyeun started to exin. When he finished, Ji-yeon opened her mouth. And then, in a serious voice, she said, ¡°Those bastards... Would they do that?¡±
¡°Nine times out of ten.¡±
It was actually more like ten out of ten, but Su-hyeun said differently, just in case. He was not sure how the future would go since he had changed it, but he was pretty certain that the Dump Guild would take action that day.
¡°If that happens...okay. But what about you? Why will you go to America?¡±
¡°I¡¯ll go and y with the big boy, ¡°Su-hyeun said with a little grin.
¡°Are you saying I¡¯ll be ying with a small boy, then?¡± Ji-yeon answered a bit sarcastically.
¡°I¡¯m the one who got this information. You can give a concession.¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
He was right. Also, although the ces were different, what would happen here was huge as well. Of course, she had to check whether if it would be true or not. But to her, it was not a bad thing to believe Su-hyeun. Even if the Dump Guild would not show up that day, she still could help the raid team finish their attack.
¡°But do you know any guilds in America? I don¡¯t have any contacts.¡±
¡°Why don¡¯t you ask the Authority?¡±
¡°Well, I can do that. But I thought the Ripper Guild would know more about the US guilds. The power of the Authority is only working in Korea.¡±
¡°That is true...¡±
¡°Oh, and I heard you guys have a private ne. Let me use it. I don¡¯t want to go to a crowded ce like the airport.¡±
She grew silent.
Chapter 84
Chapter 84: Chapter 84
Su-hyeun¡¯s departure process went through the Authority. He only had to present his passport to the Authority and they handled everything for him.
Hak-joon followed Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun had told Hak-joon to clear his schedule for June. So he¡¯d been resting recently.
¡°How are you?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Long time, no see,¡± Hak-joon said as he got in Su-hyeun¡¯s car.
They hadn¡¯t met in months, but thanks to Hak-joon¡¯s affable personality, there was no awkwardness.
¡°I heard you rested this month?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°I rested about half the month. And then I got bored, so I joined two raids with Ju-ho and made a bit of money,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°I told you to take care of your body.¡±
¡°They were only orange-colored dungeons. Nothing difficult at all. Besides, I had to earn money.¡±
¡°Well, that is true.¡±
When Hak-joon was in the Ares Guild, he had to give most of the money to the guild. Because he had to pay for the cure for Yun-seon. For about two years, the only money that Hak-joon could save was enough to cover basic living expenses for a few months. But he was a free man now. His rank was high, and he had the talent, too. If he wanted to, he could finally make a lot of money.
¡°By the way, this car is really awesome,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°Do you want it?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°No, not really. I don¡¯t even have a driver¡¯s license so a supercar is unnecessary.¡±
¡°Well, if you do a good job this time, I¡¯ll give you even a better car.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s word, Hak-joon¡¯s eyes sparkled.
¡°Su-hyeun, do you have a lot of money?¡±
¡°What¡¯s with those greedy-looking eyes?¡±
¡°Nothing, I just...never saw you working.¡±
¡°After I finished the green dungeon, I got sixty percent of the distribution. Can you guess how much it was?¡±
¡°Sixty percent? Is that possible?¡±
Usually, dozens joined in attacks on green dungeons. It was normal that S-Rank awakeners got more, but he¡¯d never heard of anyone getting sixty percent of the distribution. It wasn¡¯t surprising as Su-hyeun had done almost everything for that raid. The Authority also might have given him a little favor, too.
¡°Yes. That¡¯s possible,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Hak-joon went silent as he tried to quickly calcte in his brain. But no matter how hard he tried, he couldn¡¯t imagine the amount. The highest level he had tried was the yellow-colored dungeon.
¡°There was what we made on the sale of the yellow dungeon¡¯s Ether stones... So...¡± Hak-joon thought.
The money from that Ether stone sale was at least billions. Normally, ten to twenty people attacked the yellow dungeon together. So in the end, each got about a hundred million. If somebody took sixty percent of that, that would be more than enough to buy many expensive cars like this. Plus, Su-hyeun was talking about a green-colored dungeon, worth far more.
Hak-joon made a sour face as he tapped on the calctor. ¡°Su-hyeun... Brother... You are a very rich man.¡±
¡°So be good to me.¡±
¡°I will follow you forever like a leech.¡±
¡°Somebody is snobby.¡±
¡°He-he.¡± Hak-joon giggled.
But Su-hyeun did not feel any ill will towards him for it. He looked much brighter than when Su-hyeun had first seen him.
¡°I hope he keeps working hard like this,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
But he did not intend to force him to do so. He did not expect Hak-joon to move under his pressure. Hak-joon would at least pretend to do stuff if he was asked since he owed Su-hyeun. But Su-hyeun did not want to use that fact.
¡°He will do well,¡± he thought.
Fortunately, he had been doing better than Su-hyeun had expected.
¡°Fifty-fifth floor?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Yes. I left for now using the save zone. But I have no idea how to escape the next trap.¡±
The trial of the fifty-fifth floor was to pass through the traps. It had a pretty simple theme, but depending on a person¡¯s inclination, it could be a very tricky one. The traps were in unexpected areas. To pass through, just being strong was not enough. One needed the ability to quickly adapt to circumstances.
¡°What kind of trap is it?¡±
¡°It¡¯s...¡± Hak-joon started to talk about the trial. A save zone had the distinct advantage that people could ask the opinions of other awakeners¡¯ to solve a problem. Of course, it only could happen when they knew somebody better than themselves. And Su-hyeun was more suitable than anyone to y that role.
¡°Take care of that monster first. Then the next trap will be easier. You can just bump into it,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Oh. That could work.¡±
¡°It¡¯s not aplicated trap. Rather than looking for a solution, you have to treat it sort of like rock-paper-scissors.¡±
¡°A-ha!¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s exnation, Hak-joon nodded with a brighter face. Before he had been lost on how to pass this trial, but now he had an idea. He felt like an aching tooth had fallen out. Now that he knew the answer, he couldn¡¯t understand why the answer escaped him before. Hak-joon stared at Su-hyeun.
¡°What?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°It¡¯s because I¡¯m respectful.¡±
¡°Why?¡±
¡°For everything. I think you¡¯re perfect.¡±
¡®Perfect¡¯ was a burdensome word. Su-hyeun squeezed the steering wheel with one hand and waved the other hand.
¡°Don¡¯t say anything silly. Just write down what I just said. Even if you forget, I won¡¯t tell you a second time.¡±
¡°Okay, I will.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯smand, Hak-joon took out his smartphone and typed in a memo. Su-hyeun shot a look at Hak-joon and smiled.
¡°He¡¯s already trying the fifty-fifth floor,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Hak-joon was chasing level eight. The higher he went, the more difficult it would get. And he would take more time to pass. But so far, he had gone pretty fast. Even though Su-hyeun gave him some advice, every time Hak-joon got stuck, he ended up at a simr pace with Su-hyeun in his previous life.
¡°I wonder if he may stop one day as well...¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Nothing was certain. But Su-hyeun hoped Hak-joon could go as high as possible until ¡®that day.¡¯ It was the same for himself. Su-hyeun¡¯s car ran through the open road. They raced on until finally reaching their destination.
Act 9
¡°Wow... Oh...¡±
Hak-joon wondered with his mouth wide open. Su-hyeun nodded his head as if it was better than he expected. And Ji-yeon looked at them, crossing her arms.
¡°What are you doing?¡± Ji-yeon asked.
¡°Looking. It¡¯s bigger than I thought,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°You mean my private ne?¡±
Su-hyeun and Hak-joon came to an airfield in Gangwon Province to rent a private ne owned by the Ripper Guild. Su-hyeun had expected the ne might not be that big since it was owned by one guild. But as he stood in the hangar and looked at the private ne there was no denying it was pretty big.
Su-hyeun nodded and answered, ¡°Yes. You crazily spent money...¡±
¡°Our guild goes abroad sometimes. We prepared this ne for that. It pays for itself.¡±
The Ripper Guild was one of the leading guilds in Korea. The S-Rank Park Ji-yeon was the guild master and there were many members. Each guild awakener had pretty good skills. So the guild offering support for the raid would bring a lot of money to them. There was no wonder why the big guilds had a whole lot of money.
¡°I am sorry but let me use this for about ten days,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°That¡¯s fine. We won¡¯t need it for a while. And if what you say is true, we¡¯ll be busy here.¡±
It was nice of her to say that. Su-hyeun thanked her one more time. He then hit an idle Hak-joon on the back.
¡°What are you doing? Let¡¯s go.¡±
¡°Yes? Yes.¡± Hak-joon was surprised and followed Su-hyeun.
They boarded the private ne. The crew, who was hired by the Ripper Guild began the take-off procedure. They provided guidance Su-hyeun and Hak-joon.
¡°This is a bit of a different world,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°Yeah?¡±
¡°You seemed familiar with this. I heard from Ju-ho that you don¡¯t like these things.¡±
¡°Did he really say that?¡±
¡°Yes. He told me like fifty times that you must have been an ascetic monk in your previous life. And I totally agree with that.¡±
Su-hyeun groaned. He could not believe they had talked about him like that. But it could not be helped.
¡°It¡¯s not that surprising,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
In his past life, he went abroad in a farrger ne than this, and many more times than he could count. With honor and power, wealth naturally followed. Since he did not want that from the beginning, there was no reason to be greedy. He did not admire those things. He needed just enough money so he wouldn¡¯t be miserable.
¡°Are we going to go to Los Angeles now?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°Yes. We will meet a guild from there,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°That is why I came along.¡±
A middle-aged man who looked somewhat familiar boarded the ne. He came up beside Su-hyeun, who turned to face him.
¡°Uh, uh, uh, uh...¡± Hak-joon struggled to match the face with a name from his memory.
¡°I am Kim Seok-jin, the vice guild master of the Ripper Guild.¡±
¡°Oh, yeah! That¡¯s right!¡±
Su-hyeun did not know they would be apanied, but it wasn¡¯t surprising. His initial request to the Ripper Guild was for help in making contact with the American guild. Perhaps Kim Seok-jin came along to help with that.
¡°Let¡¯s talk about the details once when we depart.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Kim Seok-jin sent a signal to the crew and the engines started up. The hangar doors opened, the ne began to elerate down the airstrip. Su-hyeun looked outside as they began their ascent. Not long after came an announcement that the ne had reached cruising altitude and that they could unbuckle their belts. Kim Seok-jin approached Su-hyeun.
¡°I will introduce you to the American guild and then immediately return to Korea. I have something to do there. As for the interpreter...¡±
¡°I don¡¯t need an interpreter.¡±
¡°Are you sure?¡±
When Su-hyeun nodded confidently, Kim Suk-jin asked him a few questions in simple English. Su-hyeun frowned and answered quickly andpetently.
¡°Sorry about that,¡± said Kim Suk-jin. ¡°Just wanted to be sure you won¡¯t have any difficulty inmunicating. But since your English seems pretty good, I guess I don¡¯t have to prepare an interpreter.¡±
¡°That¡¯s okay.¡±
¡°Wow, Su-hyeun. You speak English very well,¡± Hak-joon said with a surprised look.
Hak-joon thought himself that he was not bad at English, but he got a slight headache listening to the conversation between Su-hyeun and Kim Seok-jin.
¡°I learned a long time ago. I don¡¯t use it often, though.¡± This was not unusual.
¡°There are a lot of academies that teach English,¡± Su-hyeun thought, ¡°and there are tons of people who speak English very well.¡±
Of course, there were not many people who could speak as well as Su-hyeun.
¡°I studied hard when I was a student. I had many chances to use it, too,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
In his previous life, Su-hyeun was a model student. His mother taught him both college-preparatory level English and conversational English. Thenguage skills he learned became more useful when he became the awakener. The world was in danger and people needed to cooperate with awakeners in other countries.
¡°Good. One less thing to do,¡± Kim Seok-jin said.
¡°Is there anything else I need to know?¡±
¡°No, that¡¯s it. But I have one question,¡± Kim Seok-jin said with an odd look.
It looked like he had more than simple curiosity. Su-hyeun spared his breath. He just drank water and nodded as if telling him to continue. Kim Seok-jin continued.
¡°Last night, I heard that the first blue dungeon appeared in Los Angeles.¡±
At that, Hak-joon coughed. But Su-hyeun was unfazed. Kim Seok-jin looked at Su-hyeun as if he had expected such a reaction.
¡°Did you already know?¡±
Chapter 86
Chapter 86: Chapter 86
Standing in the middle of downtown LA, a high-rise building around 20 floors tall with the word ¡°Medical¡± engraved inrge letters was home to nearly one thousand awakeners affiliated with the Medical Guild.
Josh hurriedly headed towards the guild house and ran to the highest floor of the building to meet the guild master Robert William.
¡°Guild master, it¡¯s me.¡±
¡°Come in.¡±
Josh cautiously opened the door and entered the office after hearing the replying from the inside.
Within this huge office upying at least half of the entire floor, the guild master, Robert, was taking a golfer¡¯s stance while holding onto a golf club. ¡°Hold on for a sec. Let me get this first.¡±
Tap¡ª
The golf ball rolled for around ten meters and entered the hole, prompting Robert to form a satisfied expression as he turned around to face Josh. ¡°Okay. So, did you guide our guest properly?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. And the guy from the Reaper Guild went back home.¡±
¡°The name¡¯s Kim Su-Hyeun, right? The newly-promoted S-Rank. I¡¯ve heard plenty about him already, and man, that guy is the real deal, alright.¡±
It hadn¡¯t even been half a year since he became an S-Rank, yet Su-hyeun¡¯s name was already widely known throughout the rest of the world.
Not only were the S-Ranks a rarity to begin with, but the title of the youngest ever to reach the rank shone far brighter than anything else.
¡°As a matter of fact, we¡¯ve prepared a private residence and offered it to him,¡± said Josh.
¡°Nice work. By the way, what did hee here for? Is he a tourist?¡±
¡°Well, sir. That is....¡±
Josh hesitated for a little bit before addressing Robert busy putting away his golf club in the bag. ¡°Sir, I think he¡¯s interested in the uing assault on the blue-colored dungeon.¡±
¡°The blue colored dungeon, is it?¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
¡°Did he bring it up first?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. It seems likely to me that he¡¯s interested in the Ether stones and items potentially excavated from there.¡±
Now this was an unexpected development.
Normally, this side should¡¯ve been the one to bring up the topic first. They were in a situation where they needed to find more S-Ranked awakenerbatants no matter what.
To make matters worse, over half of the American S-Rank awakeners hadn¡¯t returned from the Tower of Trials yet. That¡¯s why they needed at least two more S-Rank awakeners just in case.
However, this was America.
It was the global awakener powerhouse. It upied the position of ¡°number one¡± who had never asked anyone for their help until now. As that was the case, they couldn¡¯t readily step forward first to request other countries to lend their S-Rank awakeners.
<>
But now, Su-hyeun, visiting the States at the perfect time, was expressing his interest in the blue-colored dungeon first?
<> thought Robert.
America, or at least the American awakener guilds, definitely hadn¡¯t reached out first. No, it was that man who asked first.
<>
Robert pondered something for a little while and ended up uttering out the tail end of his thoughts inadvertently. ¡°It¡¯s the contribution.¡±
¡°Sir?¡±
¡°You said he expressed his interest in the dungeon first, right?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. That¡¯s correct.¡±
¡°In that case, let¡¯s do it this way.¡±
¡°What do you mean, sir?¡±
Robert heard Josh¡¯s question and started sharing his thoughts.
Soon, though, Josh¡¯splexion paled. ¡°Will that be really okay, sir? But, don¡¯t we need his helping hand?¡±
¡°I¡¯m telling you, it¡¯ll be alright. This is not Korea, but America. And besides, he¡¯s supposed to be the youngest ever, right? That means he¡¯s still wet behind the ears, so what would he know about how the real world operates?¡±
¡°Even then....¡±
¡°Enough. Let¡¯s go.¡± Robert wrapped his arm around Josh¡¯s shoulder and continued on. ¡°Let¡¯s catch ourselves a dumbass using this opportunity.¡±
* * *
¡°Apologies for thete introduction. Pleasure to make your acquaintance. I¡¯m Robert, the guild master of the Medical Guild.¡±
With a living room table between them, Su-hyeun and Hak-joon sat on the opposite side to Robert.
Next to his guild master, the somewhat ufortable-looking Josh sat. Anyone with a functioning brain could guess the kind of conversation that might have taken ce between these two.
With a smiling face, Su-hyeun extended his hand towards Robert. ¡°I¡¯m Kim Su-hyeun. This is Choi Hak-joon. Our English aren¡¯t so good, so we ask for your understanding.¡±
¡°H-hi.¡±
Robert first shook hands with Su-hyeun, then greeted Hak-joon afterward.
Only when the pleasantries were over did Robert finally drop the friendly smile and speak in a serious tone of voice. ¡°Looks like we¡¯ll have to postpone this friendly exchange of greetings for the time being, unfortunately. From what I heard from Josh, you seem to be interested in the blue-colored dungeon....?¡±
¡°Yes, I am. I¡¯ve got a bit of spirit of challenge in me, you see. As it¡¯s the world¡¯s first-ever blue-colored dungeon, I couldn¡¯t help but get interested in it,¡± Su-hyeun replied.
¡°From our perspective, your offer of help sounds quite wonderful, but there are certain circumstances to consider here. As you may well know, we as Americans don¡¯t have a precedent of reaching out to the awakeners from other countries.¡±
Robert spoke in a roundabout way to imply that it¡¯d be hard to ept Su-hyeun¡¯s request.
Of course, he didn¡¯t forget to blend in some favorable-sounding words in the mix, too. ¡°....Still, we¡¯ll weigh the pros and cons of your request with utmost sincerity, Mister Su-hyeun. However, If you¡¯re willing to consent to a couple of things, then we might be inclined to view your potential inclusion to the assault party in a more positive light.¡±
¡°When you say ¡°consent,¡± what do you mean, exactly?¡±
¡°It¡¯s simple, actually. Mister Su-hyeun, if you¡¯re willing to concede a portion of your contribution to us, then we might be inclined to consider your request in a positive light. As for the standard of judging the level of contribution, we at the Medical Guild swears to process it fairly and impartially, so you don¡¯t have to worry in that regard.¡±
¡°Aha.¡±
Su-hyeun lightly nodded his head, and Robert cried out in delight inwardly.
<>
With this, they had seeded in poaching an S-Rank, and on top of it all, they would be able to bring in more contribution, as well.
It was then that Su-hyeun¡¯s expression changed in an instant. ¡°It seems that...¡± With a cold, hardened face, he continued on. ¡°The American S-Ranks are azy bunch, I guess.¡±
¡°...Excuse me?¡±
¡°I mean, isn¡¯t that true when looking at how everyone has stopped participating in the trials and chose to stay at home? Let¡¯s see, then. I wonder, are all five S-Ranks staying at home now?¡±
¡°I-it¡¯s not that, but....¡±
This wasn¡¯t supposed to happen.
That was an unexpected question. To reply to this query he wasn¡¯t ready for, Robert urgently kicked his brain into gear while blurring the ends of his sentence, his eyes darting from side to side.
It was then that Su-hyeun carried on with his words. ¡°Two people.¡±
Knock, knock¡ª
He tapped on the table and continued on. ¡°From what I heard, there are only two S-Rank awakeners currently avable in America.¡±
¡°But, how did you....¡±
Robert couldn¡¯t continue with ¡°find out?¡± If he did, then it¡¯d be no different than tacitly admitting to what Su-hyeun had said.
However, thetter seemed to know everything already. ¡°I investigated the current situation as soon as I heard about the news of the blue-colored dungeon. Well, they are all famous celebrities to begin with, so it wasn¡¯t all that hard to find out, anyway.¡±
Su-hyeun stared straight at Robert, now resembling a speechless fool caught in the act. ¡°Two A-Rank awakeners, or one A-Rank plus several B-Ranks, are required for a yellow-colored dungeon.¡±
¡°Why have you suddenly¡ª¡±
Su-hyeun cut off Robert in the middle to carry on with what he wanted to say. ¡°And then, one S-Rank awakener, or at least many A- and B-Ranks, are required to attack a single green-colored dungeon. By following this logic, what do you think will be the required size of thebat force to attack a blue-colored dungeon?¡±
Gulp¡ª
Robert avoided Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze.
His thoughts were getting messy.
<>
This was apletely different development from what he initially expected.
Not only did he make a mistake of taking his opponent too lightly due to thetter¡¯s age, but he also didn¡¯t take into ount Su-hyeun knowing the current situation in America.
¡°Well, I guess we¡¯ll be on our way now. Looks like we¡¯ve selected a wrong guild to speak to,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°It-it seems like there¡¯s been some sort of a misunderstanding.¡± Robert, now startled wide awake, quickly held onto Su-hyeun¡¯s hand as thetter tried to get up.
Su-hyeun looked as if he¡¯d burst out of this ce at any second now, and his icy-cold eyes were currently locked squarely on Robert. ¡°A misunderstanding, you say?¡±
Robert was pretty quick on the uptake. So, he swiftly revised what he said. ¡°N-no. I made a mistake....¡±
¡°Is it really a mistake?¡±
¡°Allow me to apologize. But, I beg of you to understand where we¡¯reing from.¡±
¡°But this and but that....¡±
That was one thing Su-hyeun hated the most.
He scowled deeply as if displeased, but then, a wide grin suddenly formed on his face. Just as that grin began to feel ominous to everyone else, he settled back down on the seat. ¡°Alright, fine. For now, let¡¯s continue with this discussion.¡±
¡°Thank you. So, then...¡±
¡°Except that, I¡¯ll be the one to make a suggestion this time.¡±
¡°...Pardon?¡±
Su-hyeun wanted to make a counteroffer? Robert could only hold his breath cautiously. ¡°Please go ahead.¡±
¡°First of all...¡±
Robert¡¯s expression changed again and again as Su-hyeun continued on with what he wanted to say.
At first, hisplexion was bright, but it grew progressively darker and gloomier towards the end. A far greater dilemmapared to when he first got here was raging within his head.
Once the one-sided discussion came to an end, Robert spoke with a troubled expression. ¡°But, there¡¯ll be far too much risk for our side.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t this the case of ¡®high risk, high return?¡¯ Probability-wise, it¡¯ll be far more disadvantageous for me, wouldn¡¯t you say?¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Well, that¡¯s true, but....¡±
¡°Are you scared?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s provocation caused Robert¡¯s brows to shoot up high.
However, the former continued to stare at thetter and carried on. ¡°This is literally a gamble. If any one of the American S-Ranks currently in the Tower decides to return, then I shall offer my services free of charge to the Medical Guild during this dungeon attack. However, if no one returns...¡±
¡°I understand. When that happens, we at the Medical Guild will concede all of our potential contribution and our rights over this dungeon to you.¡±
Robert seemingly stuck in an endless dilemma finally made up his mind. The probability was very high. Only one S-Rank Awakener had to return, that was all. It was supposed to be ¡°high risk, high return,¡± but honestly speaking, this suggestion overwhelmingly favored the Medical Guild.
<>
If just one dide back from the trials, then it¡¯d be the same as the Medical Guild bing the national hero. Regardless of what, it¡¯d basically be them recruiting an S-Rank awakener for free, after all.
<>
Everything was dependent on the bet, sure, but Robert decided to be optimistic about his prospects. While busy telling himself that the heavens could be helping him out right now, unfortunately for him...
<>
Su-hyeun was working very hard to drag down the corners of his lips constantly wanting to arch upwards. At a casual nce, this might have looked like a gamble, one where he was on the losing end. One where the Medical Guild was in a favorable position.
Of course, unlike how it looked from the outside, the result of this bet was as good as already set in stone. Su-hyeun had already peeked into the future result, so he was able to throw his lot with a far surer bet.
This gamble was his victory.
¡°In that case, let¡¯s draw up a contract, shall we? As for the middleman...¡±
The attack on the blue-colored dungeon.
Su-hyeun thought that joining the assault party wouldn¡¯t be easy at all, but rather unexpectedly, things worked out quite painlessly all thanks to the Medical Guild.
<>
While drawing up the contract and signing it, the two men continued to mock each other inwardly.
Of course, only one was scheduled to be the idiot here.
***
Another ten days went by.
And, excluding the two already-present S-Rank American awakeners, none returned from the Tower.
Chapter 87
Chapter 87: Chapter 87
Act 10
Gurung, gurung¡ª
Su-hyeun petted Miru, currently slumbering away in the middle of the living room.
Compared to the beginning, the dragon had grown so much and now was about the size of a Korean Jindo dog. Miru continued to happily snore away.
It seemed that Su-hyeun¡¯s touch felt really enjoyable to the young dragon.
¡°When will this kid grow up, I wonder?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Still, don¡¯t you think that at this size, it¡¯s grown a lot now?¡± Hak-joon replied.
¡°Regr dragons are supposed to reach their adulthood in about one year, you know. Can you honestly say that Miru will reach adulthood in one year at this rate?¡±
¡°Well, no, not really. I mean, it¡¯s only this big, so...¡± Hak-joon said that before grinning slyly in Su-Hyeun¡¯s direction. ¡°Of course, it¡¯s still a lot bigger than when it was wrapped around your neck.¡±
¡°He¡¯s been trying to cling onto me up until about a month ago. Do you have any idea how hard I had to work in pacifying him when he started sulking after I forbid him from wrapping around my neck? And even now, he¡¯s all annoyed and stuff for me not summoning him for a few days....¡±
¡°Yeah, I saw that. Miru, this kid, when he gets ticked off, it¡¯s no freaking joke, that¡¯s for sure.¡±
As Miru¡¯s size had grown prettyrge, Su-hyeun could no longer keep the dragon on the outside. Unlike before, his dragon might get mistaken for a monster that escaped from a dungeon if things went wrong somewhere.
¡°By the way, isn¡¯t it time to wake Miru up? We should get going real soon, right?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°You¡¯re right, we should.¡±
With a really expectant face, Su-hyeun stood up from his spot. Hak-joon only needed to see that face to figure out what the older man was thinking and immediately formed a simr sort of expression himself.
¡°I¡¯m looking forward to it.¡± He had already heard from Su-hyeun the details of the wager with Robert. ¡°To see just what kind of a face that guy is making right now.¡±
¡°Yeah, me too,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Hak-joon ended up saying what Su-hyeun wanted to say in the first ce, so thetter just nodded his head and began shaking Miru. ¡°Hey, time to wake up, sleepyhead. I brought you out after you wanted toe out and y, but you¡¯ve been sleeping the whole day.¡±
Gurung, gururung¡ª
¡°If you don¡¯t wake up now, I¡¯m going to put you back in there. One, two....¡±
Gyaoh-oh-ong, gyaong¡ª
Miru began to wiggle a bit in its curled-up position and began crying out so pitifully.
Hak-joon stared at the dragon with amazed eyes before turning towards Su-hyeun. ¡°Looking at this guy really makes you realize how time flies by, doesn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°Right. It¡¯s true that he¡¯s changed a lot since half a year ago.¡±
Hak-joon must¡¯ve recalled something abruptly from Su-hyeun¡¯s reply because he asked thetter out of sheer curiosity. ¡°What about you, bro?¡±
¡°What about me?¡±
¡°No, well. Miru¡¯s one thing, but I was just wondering how much you¡¯ve changed during the same time period, that¡¯s all.¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t changed at all, you know.¡±
¡°Well...To begin with, you were like a scary monster half a year ago. And it¡¯s not like you¡¯d go andze around like other regr people either.¡±
There was this thought that popped up in his head every now and then.
Just how strong was Su-hyeun now, really?
What about now?
Or now?
Hak-joon would grow curious about the truth of the matter with every passing month or two.
For one thing, Su-hyeun disyed the rate of growth that let him reach the S rank in two years. If he maintained the same growth rate and continued to get stronger, then it¡¯d be quite hard to imagine just how much more powerful he had be now.
¡°Bro, you reached the 30th floor recently, right?¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t passed the trial there, but yeah.¡±
¡°...You probably didn¡¯t take it easy in the meantime and lowered the difficulty, so.¡±
Hak-joon recalled the figure of Su-hyeun stopping the dungeon outbreak in Anyang, then killing off the master of Ares Guild, Jeong Dong-yeong. It had been about half a year since then.
¡°Maybe, it¡¯s possible that....¡± Although his words maye across as unsure, Hak-joon was quietly confident about this. ¡°It¡¯s you who has changed far more than Miru.¡±
* * *
Something was wrong here.
Robert couldn¡¯t get up from his seat, cold sweat still dripping down his face, even though he¡¯d bete if he didn¡¯t get up this instant.
<>
For the past ten days, it felt as if his blood was slowly drying up with each passing day. That feeling grew worse and worse as the promised time came and went. At this point in time, he was this close to denying reality, even.
<>
As per the agreement with Su-hyeun, all contributions made by the Medical Guild would be handed over to him. As for the consequences of that action, it¡¯d fall on the shoulders of Robert himself who signed the contract in the first ce.
Knock, knock¡ª
¡°Guild Master, you need to get going, sir. If you don¡¯t start now, you might...¡±
¡°Aaaaaaahk¡ª!¡±
Robert covered his ears from the urginging from outside his office and screamed loudly.
This was basically the same thing as arge American guild beingpletely suckered by Su-hyeun¡¯s scheme.
* * *
The middle of downtown LA.
The attention of the entire world was focused on this location where countless police officers were restricting ess.
If you took a look at the faces of the awakeners showing up in this ce, you¡¯d be able to find numerous individuals not just famous in America, but throughout the rest of the world, too.
And the most famous of them all was the vice master of the Maximum Guild, the S-Rank awakener Jordan Rogers, who was rather obviously the main lead in this raid.
¡°They¡¯rete.¡±
Jordan confirmed the time with his wristwatch and his brows quivered.
Jordan was well known for being very strict with his promises, and he was never the type of man to wait for anyone in aid-back manner. Even when there were dozens of minutes left on the clock, he¡¯d peer at his watch several times.
¡°Sir, the Medical Guild¡¯s master sent the word that he¡¯ll be absent this time.¡±
¡°...Absent?¡±
A guild member approached his side and made a report, causing Jordan¡¯s expression to crumple unsightly.
¡°Does he think this is a damn joke....?¡±
¡°And also, sir. Kim Su-hyeun seems to have arrived on location.¡±
¡°The one that the Medical Guild recruited?¡±
¡°Sir, actually, he¡¯s a mercenary. He was visiting as a guest, but this event happened and the Medical Guild apparently requested his aid.¡±
¡°Those morons at least did something productive for once.¡±
¡°Would you like to meet him, sir?¡±
¡°Later. I will say hello when everyone¡¯s gathered around. I¡¯m kind of curious about him since he¡¯s supposed to be a genius.¡±
If this was a green-colored dungeon, it would be fine, but the difficulty of the one they were about to attack was a blue color. Not only that, it was in a precarious state where an outbreak could ur not too long from now.
They definitely needed to seed in this raid. So, the Medical Guild securing the services of an S-Rank awakener was a pretty sizeable contribution.
¡°Aren¡¯t you expecting a little too much from a kid who became an S-Rank less than half a year ago?¡±
It was then that a familiar voice entered Jordan¡¯s ears.
This woman¡¯s rather razor-thin voice was capable of souring his moods no matter when he heard it. A middle-aged woman with blue hair and a pale face resulting from an excessive application of cosmetics just so happened to be the other S-Rank participating in this raid.
The master of the Star Guild: Chloe Rafferty.
The voices of the surroundings pretty much disappeared along with her entrance.
¡°He¡¯s a guest here to help us, the Americans. I suggest that you watch your mouth,¡± replied Jordan.
¡°Will he even really be of much help, I wonder?¡±
¡°Have you not heard of the name Kim Su-hyeun before? He¡¯s a genius who became an S-Rank in only two years.¡±
¡°He¡¯s more like a little hatchling who¡¯s been an awakener for only two years. To be honest, who knows whether he went through the normal process to reach the rank S or not?¡±
Chloe¡¯s suspicion wasn¡¯t just hers alone. That was the question every nation in the world thought about after hearing the name ¡°Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
Did Kim Su-hyeun truly possess the qualification of an S-Rank awakener? Could it be possible that the South Koreans tempered with the evaluation process in order to create a new rising star?
¡°That guy, he¡¯s only managed to reach the 30th floor, right? That¡¯s like, right at the bottom....¡± muttered Chloe.
¡°He¡¯s the only Awakener to pass the tenth level trials.¡±
¡°Even then, he¡¯s an Awakener of the bottom floors.¡±
¡°Have you not heard it yet? For this dungeon raid, we need at least a minimum of three S-Ranks. If we can¡¯t make up the numbers, then the Guilds will have to bear the brunt of the consequences ordingly.¡±
Jordan didn¡¯t believe that the dungeon couldn¡¯t be dealt with when there were only two S-Ranks present. No, the real problem to him was the extent of losses incurred before the dungeon was sessfully raided.
The statistic of ¡°minimum three, maximum five¡± only came about to minimize the potential losses to other awakeners, and that was all. Jordan¡¯s Maximum Guild and Chloe¡¯s Star Guild would have to shoulder the potential losses in full.
¡°Don¡¯t you worry. My Star Guild also got ourselves a mercenary, too,¡± Chloe replied.
¡°...You did?¡±
Now that was unexpected.
The pride of Star Guild, especially of Chloe herself, was famously higher than anyone else¡¯s. She was definitely not someone who¡¯d ask for other¡¯s help.
If the truth of an American guild lowering its head to an awakener from another country became known, theints from the American public would be directed solely to the Star Guild.
¡°I simply can¡¯t turn my back when someone pleads so desperately with me to lend a helping hand. Maybe, that person charmed me....¡±
¡°Who is it?¡±
¡°I can¡¯t say, since that person wanted to remain anonymous, but as far as skills are concerned, they¡¯re the real deal. I confirmed it myself.¡±
¡°Skills, is it....¡±
Prioritizing one¡¯s skills ¡ª that was a rathermon story in this profession.
Though wanting to stay anonymous left behind this uneasy feeling, as Chloe vouched for this unknown mercenary, there should be no problem here.
<>
The situation became a lot better than expected.
<>
Just like how it was the case with every S-Rank Awakener, Jordan too was overflowing with confidence towards his own skillset.
There was the pride of being the part of the world¡¯s strongest awakener powerhouse nation, as well as being that very nation¡¯s top dog. As was the case with countless S-Rank Awakeners out there, both Jordan and Chloe confidently believed that they were the best of the best.
¡°As long as that person¡¯s skills are the real deal, then it doesn¡¯t matter to me. Not bad, auntie. You did something big this time.¡±
¡°...I told you this before, didn¡¯t I?¡±
Killing intent began mushrooming all around Chloe. This killing intent permeated with magical energy caused the surrounding air to instantly freeze up.
¡°If you call me auntie one more time, I¡¯ll definitely kill you.¡±
Other Awakeners in the vicinity could only hold their breaths at the battle of auras of the two S-Ranks. Jordan snorted derisively, as his rtionship with Chloe had been poor for a long time already.
¡°I¡¯ll fight you properly the next time after I clear up my schedule. You¡¯re supposed to be a guild master, so act ordingly, Chloe.¡±
¡°Are you running away now?¡±
¡°Not that I¡¯m running away, but....¡±
As the two began growling at each other, the noises from the surroundingspletely died down. This was a situation where the slightest mistake might cause the two S-Rank Awakeners to tear out each other¡¯s throats.
And in the midst of it all, Su-hyeun was observing Jordan and Chloe¡¯s figures.
* * *
¡°...I can¡¯t bear to hear those two talk anymore,¡± Su-hyeun muttered, prompting Hak-joon to ask, ¡°What are they talking about, anyway? Other than your name and something about the 30th floor, I couldn¡¯t understand anything they said.¡±
¡°Well, it¡¯s about....¡±
Su-hyeun simplified the conversation Jordan and Chloe had and told it to Hak-joon.
¡°That¡¯s what they talked about.¡±
¡°Wait, they can¡¯t possibly fight each other in this ce, right?¡±
¡°Who knows.¡±
¡°What will they do if someone gets injured....?¡±
¡°Well, they might be thinking that it doesn¡¯t matter to them whether something happens to the raid or not. Or, they could be thinking that there won¡¯t be any problems even if they behave like that.¡±
¡°Whichever it is, it¡¯s a bit too much.¡±
¡°That¡¯s the result ofck of experience as well as living in peace for too long as the top dog. Probably the half of all S-Ranks think the same as them.¡±
Su-hyeun then observed the humongous blue aura swallowing up a corner of the city in the distance.
¡°...Maybe they think that thing over there is a joke,¡± murmured Su-hyeun.
Nowhere in the conversation between Jordan and Chloe continuing with their killing intent could the worries regarding the blue-colored dungeon be found. The idea of the raid failing didn¡¯t even cross their minds. This was themon trait of all the S-Rank American awakeners.
¡°But, that¡¯s obvious, right? Jordan over there is a great man who sessfully raided the world¡¯srgest green-colored dungeon. Now that Chloe¡¯s with him, what could possibly scare him?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°Is that what you think, too?¡±
¡°About?¡±
¡°That thing over there. You think that¡¯s a joke, too?¡±
Both the look on Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes, as well as the tone of his voice, gave off some strange vibes. Hak-joon didn¡¯t know what Su-hyeun wanted to say, so he closed his mouth shut.
Thetter quietly stared at the blue-colored dungeon, before continuing on. ¡°Have you ever thought about the possibility of those things swallowing up this world sooner orter?¡±
¡°Dungeons...swallowing the world?¡±
It wasn¡¯t as if Hak-joon had never thought about it before.
When dungeons first appeared in the world, such fears did circte in the public, although they went away pretty soon afterward.
The dungeon¡¯s first appearance did bring wariness and fear to the rest of the world. However, with the entrance of the awakeners, dungeons were soon seen as repositories of new types of resources.
The sense of danger Su-hyeun was implying disappeared not too long after.
No, it was more like it was forgotten.
¡°Bro, could it be that....¡±
¡°No, it¡¯s nothing.¡±
Su-hyeun thought that it was still too early and shook his head.
Hak-joon, thinking that the atmosphere had gotten weird quickly tried to change the topic. ¡°Besides that, what will you do now? I¡¯m not sure if you can go there and say hi under the current situation.¡±
¡°Why not?¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t that auntie talk crap about you, bro? So, like, wouldn¡¯t stepping forward now only make matters worse and get people red in their faces?¡±
¡°You think so?¡±
Su-hyeun pondered for a bit, before softly nodding his head.
¡°You know, that...doesn¡¯t sound so bad.¡±
Chapter 90
Chapter 90: Chapter 90
Step, step, step¡ª
Splosh, ssh¡ª
Almost 100 strongbatants walked on the ground as sticky and thick as mud. Hak-joon felt like he was treading on a bed of nails and not mud, though.
<>
The way Jordan looked at him ever since they stepped into the dungeon had changed; it probably had something to do with Su-hyeun¡¯s disappearance.
<>
The other S-Rank who also disappeared together with him didn¡¯t want to return, either. The raid party waited in the same spot for over one hour, but when the disappeared duo showed no signs of reappearing, Jordan seemed to have finally decided to abandon the missing people and move on.
Since Hak-joon couldn¡¯t really stay and man the position all by himself, he had no choice but to tag along with Jordan, and by extension, the rest of the raid party. As he was an A-Rank, he was at least considered to possess skills around the higher tier within this group.
<>
Before entering the dungeon, Su-hyeun often told Hak-joon about several important points thetter needed to be aware of. At first, he figured this was simply because of the worries regarding the blue-colored dungeon, but now, he was beginning to think that maybe all that talk was to get him prepared for situations like this one.
<>
Only sighs escaped from his lips.
¡°Halt.¡±
Jordan walking in the front-most position raised his hand and brought everyone to a stop.
He spoke in simple-enough English so it wasn¡¯t hard to understand him, and since the rest of the raid party also came to a stop, Hak-joon didn¡¯t find it difficult to follow the leader¡¯s order.
Jordan then proceeded to issue aplicated-sounding set of orders for a while, before turning towards Hak-joon who couldn¡¯t understand him and said one word.
¡°Fight.¡±
Swiiish, swiiiiiiish¡ª
Right at that moment, Hak-joon felt numerous presences prickling his skin.
Monsters were appearing for the first time since their entrance into the dungeon. Jordan had detected their presence early and got the raid party ready forbat.
Hak-joon had been feeling rather ufortable here, so the emergence of monsters actually helped with alleviating some of pressure. With his sword gripped tightly, he began rousing up his magical energy. ¡°Right. Let¡¯s just get the hell out of this freaking dungeon first.¡±
Kki-riiik, kkik¡ª!
The type of monsters that leaped out of everywhere was huge monkeys.
These creatures¡¯ unique points were that not only were they powerful, but they were also quite agile despite theirrge bodies. Plus, the four fangs jutting out of their mouths were at least as long as a person¡¯s hand.
This type of monster had never been witnessed before. However, their overall appearance did present general clues on how these creatures would fight their battles.
Siii-iiit¡ª
Bang, boom, ka-boom¡ª!
Hak-joon quickly turned his head as the mes powerfully spread out. Jordan¡¯s body had turned into a walking me, and he was sweeping past the monkeys leaping out from everywhere.
Crack, craaack¡ª
On the other side, sheets of ice approaching absolute zero suddenly appeared with Chloe as their center.
Not only their personalities, but even their abilities were on the opposing ends of the scale, too. However, one thing was for certain: both of them were truly amazing.
<>
Hak-joon nced at the two, gripped the sword in his hand tightly and muttered to himself. ¡°I won¡¯t lose to them.¡±
Shwuu¡ª
He took arge stride forward while directing his magical energy all the way to the very tip of his sword.
Kii-riik, kii-ririk¡ª
The concentrated magical energy spread throughout Hak-joon¡¯s body and enveloped his sword. His eyes glowed brightly in blue, and everything within the surroundings could be sensed vividly as if he could easily grab them.
Su-pahk¡ª!
His figure jumped up high.
Utilizing the Leap skill, his sword descended on top of a monkey monster¡¯s head.
Sliiiice¡ª!
* * *
Boom, ka-boom¡ª!
Monkey monsters trying to pounce on Jordan were scorched pitch-ck.
There were plenty of awakeners capable of manipting fire, but Jordan was a special case among them ¡ª from possessing a rare skill from the fire-type skill tree, to several passive skills that aided in that rare skill itself, plus his sky-high magical energy reserve, too.
It didn¡¯t matter what anyone said; Jordan was still a world-renowned awakener.
<>
His eyes observing Hak-joon gleamed brightly.
The man who tagged along with Su-hyeun was an A-Rank awakener. The kid was still young, and his experience as an awakener wasn¡¯t all that extensive, either. Even then, he possessed a considerably high rank as well as magical power.
In a way, he resembled Su-hyeun. The only difference would be who was taller than the other one.
Jordan had already confirmed both Su-hyeun¡¯s skill level and his guts before entering the dungeon. But thetter simply vanished, leaving behind Hak-joon all by himself. Jordan was inwardly curious about the kid¡¯s abilities, anyway.
He was keeping his eyes on the kid, but as it turned out, this Hak-joon guy also possessed skills far exceeding his expectations, just like how it was with Su-hyeun.
<>
This textbook battle style should be shown to the D-Rank or lower awakeners that had awakened only recently.
However, it was only the overall framework that seemed simr to a textbook example. Hak-joon¡¯s skills were on another realm altogether. While being faithful to the basics, he only used the minimum required physical strength to load his sword with maximum destructive power.
Also, he had no opening whatsoever.
<>
Hak-joon¡¯s current skills should easily put him in the upper tier of A-Rank. And with such a level of talent and skill, Hak-joon should be stepping into the same rank as Jordan not too long from now.
<>
America and Korea.
They might have been the same awakener powerhouse, but the differences in the awakener manpower that followed the superiority in the poption numbers were quite clear.
However, one more S-Rank appearing in South Korea would greatly change the story. From that point onwards, the Americans wouldn¡¯t be able to say that they were in a superior position than Korea.
That was how great the prestige each S-Rank carried.
The attacks of the monkeys were taken care of soon after.
Awakeners with healing-type skills looked after the injured while Jordan and Chloe checked out the party¡¯s overall losses.
¡°Not as difficult as expected,¡± observed Jordan.
A total of five were injured in the end. And the wounds on only one of them could be called anything serious.
¡°That¡¯s because the raid party itself is incredible. Where would you ever find a party of this sizeposed of this many high rankers?¡±
Jordan nodded his head at Chloe¡¯s words.
Although he didn¡¯t want to agree with her, she was correct in this case. For sure, no raid party of this scale had ever been created before. He might not like it, but Chloe was an awakener with a simr level of abilities as him.
¡°I was worried, so what a relief this is. We¡¯ll take a short break before departing again. Everyone, focus on recovering your depleted stamina and magical energy.¡±
With those words, Jordan turned around to leave.
Shudder¡ª
It happened right then.
Ka-boom¡ª!!
Crack, craaack¡ª
A massive explosion went off between Jordan and Chloe. Just as the entire surroundings were nketed by heat and coldness, awakeners began screaming out loud.
¡°Aaaaah¡ª! My arm!¡±
¡°Mick! Sherry!!¡±
¡°W-what the hell is going on here??¡±
¡°Mister Jordan and Miss Chloe, they....¡±
Just as the surroundings became rather noisy....
Stab! Stab, slice¡ª!
Booooom¡ª!
¡°Aaaaahck!¡±
From the gaps of the steam spreading all around, screams began resounding out one after the other.
<>
Hak-joon stood there utterly frozen and panicking.
It wasn¡¯t just Jordan and Chloe. Countless awakeners were pointing their weapons at each other and wildly firing off their skills. No, more correctly, one faction was attacking the rest in a one-sided fashion without a warning.
The event happenedpletely out of the blue.
There was no such thing as a timely response, either. No, there were only the one-sided attacks, which were met with tepid resistance.
Jordan quickly retreated to a distance and red at Chloe beyond the rising curtain of steam. Their surroundings had already turned into a pandemonium.
¡°Chloe, you...¡±
¡°One arm and a leg, is it? You got away pretty unscathed, then.¡± Chloe smirked and gradually roused up her magical energy once more. ¡°I told you this before, haven¡¯t I? You¡¯ll die by my hands sooner orter.¡±
¡°Must you do this now?¡±
They were currently trying to attack a blue-colored dungeon. Not only that, but they couldn¡¯t even escape easily from this dungeon either. Even if their bad blood had be really untenable, this was no time to squabble among themselves.
¡°Yup. I really have to do this now,¡± Chloe replied.
¡°Even then, you should mind the situation and....¡±
¡°It¡¯s exactly because of the situation.¡±
¡°What was that?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t this perfect? You have no ce to run away, and the raid will end in failure, too.¡±
Chloe scanned Jordan¡¯s frozen arm and leg, then grinned brightly. ¡°Plus, you let your guard down since the monsters¡¯ attacks had juste to an end, too.¡±
¡°So, you were nning to do this from the very beginning?¡±
¡°Yup.¡±
¡°Your aim was to fail in the raid? And also to kill me?¡±
¡°Now you get the general idea?¡±
Jordan deeply furrowed his brows.
This was apletely unexpected turn of events.
He figured that, with Chloe¡¯s personality, she might really cross the line and start something like this, but still, he expected her to be able to separate the public and private matters.
<>
The moment she made her move, even the awakeners from the guild that came with her made theirs as well. Not to mention, their situation didn¡¯t call for an internal battle of such a scale, either. This had to be a pre-nned assault.
¡°It can¡¯t be...¡± Jordan shifted his gaze over to Chloe as well as to other awakeners and asked. ¡°You were with the Dump?¡±
¡°Bingo.¡±
Chloe grinned brightly while making a circle with her hand.
This was the worst.
With things like this, he couldn¡¯t even attempt to make peace with her. Jordan checked the current status of his body.
<< I can¡¯t move one arm and leg. >>
The injuries inflicted during the initial sneak attack were proving to be fatal.
Chloe¡¯s ability was to freeze her targets. Because of her ability, Jordan¡¯s arm and leg were currently frozen stiff. He could use his own ability to somehow melt the ice down, but if he did, he¡¯d have to risk inflicting serious burn wounds on himself; he wouldn¡¯t be able to use his limb either way.
¡°I can hear your brain kicking some gears. No need to sweat over it, though. Just die quietly, alright?¡± Chloe mocked him loudly.
¡°But won¡¯t us dying will make the raid that much harder?¡±
¡°We only need tost ten days. And also....¡± Chloe looked around her surroundings leisurely before making her reply. ¡°How can you be so dense? That¡¯s precisely our aim, you know.¡±
¡°...This is your aim?¡±
Theplete failure of the raid.
The Dump Guild.
The moment those two concepts were linked in his head, Jordan¡¯s eyes quaked powerfully. ¡°It can¡¯t be...¡±
¡°The dungeon appearing in LA, the failed raid, the outbreak, the absence of S-Rank awakeners, as well as deaths of numerous high ranked awakeners.¡± Chloe continued to grin brightly as the mere thought alone excited her. ¡°So, what do you think? Can you picture the whole thing in your head now?¡±
¡°So, your aim wasn¡¯t this side from the get-go?¡±
¡°LA will fall. And when a dungeon of this scale goes off, the surrounding cities will meet the same fate, too. Just how many will die, I wonder?¡±
¡°You all are f*cking insane.¡±
¡°This will be the Dump Guild¡¯s first official operation. A city like LA should serve as a perfect sacrifice, don¡¯t you think?¡±
The Dump Guild was finally revealing itself in the light. It seemed that this event would be the starting point of that.
Jordan knew the Dump Guild as a garbage organization full of crazed criminals, but never did he imagine that they would start a crisis of this caliber.
<>
Jordan never felt so thankful for Chloe¡¯s chatty nature like today. He was slowly freeing his frozen arm and the leg while she continued to yap away.
¡°Just what could you possible gain by doing something like this? You all are....¡±
¡°I told you to stop getting smart with me, didn¡¯t I?¡±
Craaack¡ª!
¡°M-mm...¡±
Chloe extended her hand, and Jordan¡¯s arm and leg were frozen hard once more. He could only scowl deeply at his failure to even react as his body became imprisoned in ice.
¡°Not much of a hotshot now, are you? You know, I never really liked you from the start,¡± said Chloe.
¡°...You don¡¯t even have the guts to fight me fairly.¡±
¡°Say whatever you want. One of my charms is to y dirty, you know.¡±
Jordan furrowed his brows deeply and scanned the unfolding situation around him.
The situation was dire.
The difference in thebatants dwindled through the sneak attack. Although his side still had the advantage in numbers, the moment Chloe finished him off, the story would drastically change.
As an S-Rank Awakener with the ability to attack a wide area, Chloe possessed the necessary power to overturn the advantageous number on the head in an instant.
<>
They¡¯d all die.
<>
He needed to melt down his frozen arm and the leg at the risk of severe burns. He simply had no leeway to slowly melt this ice off of him.
Rumble¡ª!
When mes lit up on Jordan¡¯s frozen arm and leg, Chloe¡¯s brows shot up high. ¡°Your petty tricks won¡¯t...¡±
¡°Hey, auntie.¡±
It was right then that a voice both Jordan and Chloe had forgotten filled the space between the two people.
¡°What do you think you¡¯re doing?¡±
¡°You..!!¡±
Chloe¡¯s head hurriedly shot up.
There was a tree between the two people.
Su-hyeun was standing on top of it.
Chapter 94
Chapter 94: Chapter 94
The creation of this replica of the Dragon ying Spear was Kim Dae-ho¡¯s doing. The spear was the most powerful and highly utilized assistant weapon that Su-hyeun could use. Throwing it increased the power, which helped topensate for the short-range of the sword.
The ordinary spears were not powerful enough. Additionally, it was difficult to collect them back after throwing them. It was usually for a one-shot weapon. Therefore, Su-hyeun preferred to use the Dragon ying Spear the most. It was powerful and could cover a wide-range. It was also a one-time use weapon anyway, so he did not have to worry about getting it back.
However, it was a pain to purchase one-shot items every time only with achievement points. Thus, Su-hyeun had brought the Dragon ying Spear to Kim Dae-ho and asked him to make a simr item.
¡°He used to make exactly the same...,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Tightly gripping the spear, he looked down the monsters from the sky and bent his body like a bow.
¡°I wonder how he did this time.¡±
Whirl!
The Dragon ying Spear began to absorb Su-hyeun¡¯s magic and reacted to it as if it were alive, gaining more power. It was perfect so far. Now, all that was left was to confirm it. He did not have to count to three as usual. There were too many targets. He could just throw his spear anywhere among the monsters.
Bam!
He threw the spear like a bow. The spear flew out and made an explosion sound. The spear could not handle the speed and started to split into thousands and tens of thousands of shards.
Boom!
The spear spat out the magic it had consumed. The split Dragon ying Spear bombed a bunch of monsters.
Kiyaaa¡ª!
Screams were everywhere. It was chaos. Su-hyeun came back down to the ground. He realized once again about the power of the Dragon ying Spear. Consuming too much magic was a disadvantage, but the power itself was astonishing.
Grrr, Grrrk!
Narr, narr!
The monsters that had been swept away by the spear stood up back, limping on one or two legs. Half of them were still alive. It looked like it did not have enough power.
¡°He is not as good as his heyday,¡± Su-hyeun thought and looked down at his hand, ¡°...well, I¡¯m the same way.¡±
Both Kim Dae-ho¡¯s crafting skill and Su-hyeun¡¯s skill were far short of his heyday. His Magic Power and Factor were much lower than in his previous life. It was natural that the power would vary depending on who used the same weapon.
¡°Miru.¡±
Purr?
Su-hyeun called Miru. The monsters suddenly flinched as they rose.
Su-hyeun looked at such monsters and said to Miru, ¡°Can you do it one more time?¡±
Purr!
It answered with spirit as if telling to leave it to him. Su-hyeun felt a little sorry to ask because Miru was able to use the Breath skill only once or twice. When he used his breath twice, he sank into exhaustion. It was very powerful, but Miru had to use up all of his remaining power.
¡°Well, then...¡±
Tramp, tramp!
Su-hyeun stared at Druid, who began to walk out among the monsters.
¡°Let¡¯s fight between boss to boss,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°You...go...back...¡±
¡°You said earlier that I am just a quarry.¡±
Whiz!
Su-hyeun rushed to the front. His physical abilities were strengthened by the characteristics of the Imoogi and the buff effects of Miru. Now, he could jump at least ten meters in one step.
Boom!
The giant Druid pushed back. It lifted its arms and guarded, but there was a deep scar left on its arms.
¡°Now you want me to go back?¡±
Su-hyuen¡¯s voice came from the right side. Druid strained its eyes in surprise. When it turned its head to the right, the sword emerged from the opposite direction.
sh!
The sword deeply cut through the leather. Su-hyeun could not cut all the way because Druid was too big. Regardless, he made numerous scars on its side.
¡°You...¡±
Whirl!
The bright red magic rose around Druid.
¡°Die...¡±
Ka-boom!!
Druid¡¯s red magic exploded and turned the grass into ash. Su-hyeun quickly jumped back and recalled Druid¡¯s ability.
¡°It usually uses magic to fight. Its defensive ability ising from the leather that it is wearing. Its physical ability is better than other green dungeon bosses, but it doesn¡¯t use it. And...¡±
Boom, boom, boom!
The dead monster behind Su-hyeun exploded. Su-hyeun warily looked at the bodies around him.
¡°If I can¡¯t dodge all this, then I should instead...,¡± he thought.
The n was drawn in his head. It was not difficult to practice.
Wham!
Su-hyeun began to rush back to Druid. As the distance between them decreases, Druid stretched its arm again. For Druid, this battlefield was the best stage.
Boom, boom, boom!
Bam!
The bodies of monsters everywhere exploded one by one. Flesh and blood sttered all over the scene as heat filled the air. The debris flew, but it was not regr debris. Each one of them was filled with magic. It attacked Su-hyeun, but Su-hyeun did not avoid it. Druid saw Su-hyeun with its own eyes.
¡°Why...didn¡¯t...you...dodge...?¡± Druid said.
¡°Because there is no reason to do it.¡±
Whiz!
Su-hyeun¡¯s body emerged from the fog emitted from the monsters¡¯ corpses.
[Indomitable body.]
[The transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
All Su-hyeun could do was endure it. He didn¡¯t have much time, so he could not afford to avoid all the dead bodies. Also, he was sure that he could endure it enough. It was a judgment that could be made because he knew both his ability objectively and the monster, Druid.
sh, sh!
Su-hyeun closed the distance and started to cut into Druid¡¯s body. Although it was specialized in long-range magic, Druid was still the boss of a blue-colored dungeon. The physical ability was pretty high as well, so Druid could avoid Su-hyeun¡¯s sword without causing fatal wounds by a whisker.
¡°Stop...him...¡±
At Druid¡¯smand, monsters flew again from all sides. It looked like Druid chose to gather more monsters rather than to directly fight Su-hyeun.
¡°Miru.¡±
Swoosh!
At that moment, Druid lifted its head. The small dragon, who had been silent for a while, was preparing for a second breath.
¡°Sweep them all.¡±
Whoosh!
At that moment, a white fire shed and swept everywhere.
Whiz!
Crack!
Druid hurriedly pulled its head back. At the same time, Su-hyeun swung his sword to the mask of Druid. The mask cracked and Druid¡¯s face was revealed; it was a handsome man¡¯s face with golden eyes.
¡°Whose face is this now?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t...kill...me...,¡± Druid said.
¡°You are too loud.¡±
sh!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword pierced Druid¡¯s head.
¡°I can¡¯t talk long. People are waiting for me.¡±
***
¡°Huh... Ha...¡±
¡°Phew...¡±
¡°Damn it... How many are there?¡±
There were numerous bodies of monsters around the raid team. They had been killing many monsters, but there were still many of them left. It was their first time fighting with this many monsters for all of them. Jordan looked back at the team. Everyone looked tired.
¡°We won¡¯tst long...,¡± Jordan thought.
They had been fighting for a while. Both stamina and magic wore out. Jordan and other above A-Rank awakeners could still fight more, but the others could not. Most of them were exhausted.
¡°Should we run away?¡± he thought.
This would be thest chance to make that decision. If he would order to retreat, half of the team might survive.
¡°Damn it.¡±
That meant half of them might die. It was a dilemma, a moment when Jordan could not decide with a conflicted mind.
¡°L-look...¡±
Hak-Joon, who had been leading the team with Jordan, raised his hand and pointed to the front. Jordan could not understand what Hak-Joon said, but he looked where he pointed.
¡°The monsters...¡±
Grrr!
Screech! Screech!
The monsters that had been attacking them systematically suddenly looked distracted. They looked around and soon scattered away.
¡°Did he...?¡±
Jordan¡¯s eyes widened, and Hak-Joon¡¯s face brightened.
¡°It must have been Su-hyeun...¡±
They thought that Su-hyeun finally caught Druid, the boss controlling all the monsters.
¡°Thank God.¡±
Jordan sighed with relief. Then, he red in his eyes and shouted, ¡°It¡¯s not over yet! Get a grip!¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
Now was their chance. Druid¡¯s spell was broken, and the monsters fell into disorder.
¡°Let¡¯s go!¡±
They started a counterattack.
***
Su-hyeun looked at the face of Druid who fell on the ground. Druid¡¯s face, which had been pierced through his head, was no different from an ordinary man. But this face was not Druid¡¯s.
¡°It is a different face fromst time I saw it,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Originally, this blue dungeon had failed to attack during his previous life. Druid had brought out several monsters and massacred several people. Druid could absorb some of the others¡¯ power while taking their faces. When Druid had got out of the dungeonst time, it had killed numerous people and taken their faces. Therefore, it wasn¡¯t the same face Su-hyeun saw on TV.
¡°But it doesn¡¯t look like this is Druid¡¯s first face. Is it from another victim?¡±
It was possible that somebody might have entered the dungeon before the raid team, but Su-hyeun doubted it. When this blue-colored dungeon had opened, the surroundings were thoroughly isted. Moreover, he could not imagine anyone would¡¯ve been crazy enough toe into the blue dungeon unless they were suicidal.
Grr, Grrr!
As Druid fell, Miru who had been flying around above sky came down on Su-hyeun¡¯s head. Tired, he breathed out.
¡°You did a good job, Miru.¡±
Purr...
Miru had used his breath twice, which made him exhausted. Su-hyeun stroked Miru¡¯s back a couple of times before picking up Druid¡¯s club.
Purr?
Miru tilted his head to one side as if he was wondering what that was. Although he was tired, he did not fall asleep right away. Miru¡¯s strength was getting better as it grew bigger.
¡°Are you asking what this is?¡±
Purr!
Miru nodded vigorously. Su-hyeun smiled at that and smash the club on the floor.
Crack!
The wooden club broke. As debris flew everywhere, a shining blue stone rolled down and stopped at Su-hyeun¡¯s feet.
¡°This is the main thing,¡± Su-hyeun said.
He picked up the blue stone and showed it to Miru. Other people would not even imagine that this club was the most important thing in this dungeon.
¡°With this, I can...,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Purr!
At that moment, Miru opened his mouth to reveal the stone in it.
¡°...Huh?¡±
Gulp!
Then Miru swallowed it. Su-hyuen didn¡¯t expect that to happen.
Chapter 95
Chapter 95: Chapter 95
Su-hyeun held Miru¡¯s belly and pulled him down. Miruughed contently and burped loudly.
¡°Mi... Miru?¡±
Purr?
¡°It¡¯s not food. Be good and spit it out.¡±
Purr...
¡°What? No? Spit it out!¡±
Su-hyeun tickled Miru¡¯s belly for a while and asked him to spit out the stone. Miru, who was usually amenable, closed his mouth tight and kept shaking his head.
¡°Phew...¡±
Su-hyeun could not force him to spit it out. His threats did not work. He started to have a headache. He just sighed out and sat down on the ground.
Purr, purr...
Miru flew to Su-hyeun¡¯s head and patted it with his forepaw. It looked like Miru did not realize Su-hyeun sighed because of him. Su-hyeun felt like his headache getting worse.
¡°Geez. What should I say to Mr. Dae-ho?¡± Su-hyeun mumbled.
He got up and sighed deeply. He never sighed this deep in his life. Suddenly, he recalled Miru¡¯s species and the feature of the blue stone.
¡°Hmm... The stone with natural properties and the dragon...,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
They were a strangely well-suitedbination. Miru was likely greedy for stone not only out of curiosity.
¡°I guess I have to keep watching him.¡±
Su-hyeun put Miru back on his head. He turned his body and started to walk. He decided to think of the blue stone as the gift for Miru for working hard for him.
***
Soon after, Su-hyeun joined the party again. They cleaned up all remaining monsters in the vicinity and found a way out of the dungeon. The cleanup party would¡¯ve started collecting the Ether stone that scattered throughout the dungeonter.
¡°Looking by the size, I think it will take about a month to finish digging all the stones,¡± Jordan said.
He stood in front of the exit under the cliff and looked back the way they came from. It was a huge dungeon. He thought about the numbers of the monsters and the size of the dungeon. He could not even imagine how much Ether stone was hidden here. Perhaps the highest-grade Ether stone woulde out.
¡°You can put the Medical Guild¡¯s share on me.¡±
As if he had forgotten, Su-hyeun told Jordan about the contract of distribution of Ether stone. Jordan looked aghast when he heard that and started tough.
¡°Ha-ha-ha! You are an outstanding person.¡±
¡°I did not want it first, but I don¡¯t like the fact that they tried to f*ck me around.¡±
¡°Yeah, Robert¡¯s very greedy.¡±
Jordanughed. It looked like he knew Robert, the guild master of the Medical Guild, well. Jordan made people go out from the lower rank awakeners by following the manual. It was for just in case any possible dangerous situations urred.
¡°You are probably the one who made the biggest achievement in this attack,¡± Jordan said.
¡°Of course,¡± Su-hyeun replied.
Su-hyeun was the one who had killed the boss of the dungeon, killed the most monsters, and protected the team from Chloe¡¯s betrayal. Su-hyeun nodded without even thinking of humility. Jordan smiled at Su-hyeun¡¯s dignified appearance.
¡°I will yield my contribution to you, too.¡±
¡°...You will?¡±
¡°You don¡¯t have to make such a face. If not for you, I would¡¯ve been dead already. If it¡¯s like my mind, I just want to give you all the contributions of Maximum Guild. However, that is beyond my control,¡± Jordan shrugged and continued to say, ¡°In fact, I have more than enough money already.¡±
Su-hyeun who already had the biggest reward from Druid felt a little sorry for him. But what Jordan said was true. If Su-hyeun was not there, everybody probably all died already. So, it was cheap for the price of one S-Rank awakener¡¯s life.
¡°I don¡¯t need more money, either,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Don¡¯t say that...¡±
¡°Would you rather do another favor for me, then?¡±
¡°Favor?¡±
Jordan made a puzzled look at Su-hyeun¡¯s word. What could be a better favor than yielding the Ether stone from the blue-colored dungeon? Soon, Su-hyeun¡¯s mouth opened, and Jordan started to smile.
¡°That shouldn¡¯t be a request,¡± Jordan nodded dly. ¡°I was going to do it anyway.¡±
Act 4
The raid of the blue-colored dungeon was over. After the raid, people started to collect Ether stone as scheduled. They graded the contribution ording to the video recording, and various media requested for interviews. The world was surprised by the sensational news. The famous S-Rank awakener Chloe and Star Guild were actually pawns of the Dump Guild.
¡°Now, the Dump Guild got exposed on the surface,¡± Hak-Joon said while watching the news on the TV.
After the raid of the blue dungeon, Hak-Joon had been sleeping all day long. Upon waking up, the world was abuzz. Hak-Joon was watching one of the Korean news channels that dealt with the terrorist attacks of the Dump Guild in various countries, including Korea and the United States.
¡°The news about the Dump Guild always existed, secretly,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°The loudest uproar was because of you, wasn¡¯t it? You told me the Dump Guild was the gnashing of teeth at you.¡±
¡°Well. I did note out of the Tower. There was nothing they could do. Besides, Korea was not their jurisdiction from the beginning.¡±
¡°But it looks like crazy things went on in Korea as well. Although, the Ripper Guild worked fast and stopped it.¡±
The Dump Guild did not just only attack Korean and the United States. China, the United Kingdom, and France were attacked by them as well. They were all famous countries for their awakeners. It looked like the Dump Guild had nned to show their name by this chance.
¡°It was you, wasn¡¯t it?¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head at Hak-Joon¡¯s question.
¡°I gave the information, but it was the Ripper Guild that moved.¡±
¡°Same, same. How did you know anyway?¡±
¡°I¡¯ve been keeping an eye on the Dump Guild. Plus, the Ripper Guild helped me.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s indecisively answer, Hak-Joon lounged on the sofa and fixed his gaze on the TV screen. Soon, the news about the Dump Guild was over. Hak-Joon turned his eyes to Su-hyeun again.
¡°Hey, Su-hyeun. Where are you going?¡±
Su-hyeun was putting on his shoes at the door without a word.
¡°I¡¯ll be outside for a minute,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°...What?¡±
¡°I will be back soon.¡±
Creak!
Su-hyeun opened the door and went out.
¡°I guess I will only get in the way,¡± Hak-Joon thought.
Hak-Joon just scratched his head in embarrassment. If Su-hyeun needed him, he probably would¡¯ve taken him, but he didn¡¯t. It meant that Su-hyeun did not need him or he would just get in his way. Thus, Hak-Joon could not ask Su-hyeun to take him along.
¡°I feel small,¡± Hak-Joon thought.
During the raid of the blue-colored dungeon, Hak-Joon realized he wasn¡¯t as capable as he thought. He had seen Jordan, Chloe, and Su-hyeun and felt so smallpared to those S-Rank awakeners. Of course, there weren¡¯t many chances to meet so many S-Rank awakeners like that. Even so, he could not help but feel even smaller.
¡°One day, I will take rank with them...¡±
Hak-Joon clenched his fist tights.
***
¡°I wonder if he might¡¯ve learned something.¡±
Su-hyeun came out from the amodations that Medical Guild had prepared and kept looking back. At heart, Su-hyeun felt a little sorry for Hak-Joon for leaving him alone. Hak-Joon must have been depressed by now.
¡°Well, that was what I hoped though.¡±
They had gone to the world¡¯s first blue dungeon. It was surely a bigger scale than anywhere else. There were not many known cases of many S-Rank awakeners gathering like this time. Jordan, Chloe, MacRebur, and Su-hyeun were all S-Rank awakeners.
That wasn¡¯t all. The A-Rank awakeners from the Medical, Maximum, and Star Guilds were very talented. They were simr levels with Hak-Joon. It was important for someone to experience the bigger world to test their own limits. Su-hyeun wanted Hak-Joon to experience it. Sometimes, helplessness became a good motivation.
¡°I will be d if he learned something from this experience,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Tramp, tramp!
Su-hyeun took a taxi on the road.
Ring, ring, ring!
At that time, the phone started to ring. It was an unknown number. He picked up the phone. The caller was an unexpected person.
¡°Mr. Hyeong-gi. What¡¯s up?¡±
The caller was Song Hyeong-gi. He was a Korean S-Rank awakener who taught how to raise Miru to Su-hyeun.
¡°Hi. How is Miru? Is he still cute?¡±
¡°...Did you call me to ask that?¡±
¡°No, no. I am in the US too. I am with Park Ji-Yeon and I am so annoyed now. We really don¡¯t fit together¡±.
Su-hyeun could guess why they were together. He remembered Song Hyeong-gi was the original raid member for the green dungeon in Korea.
¡°It¡¯s an unexpected help,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Two unexpected people joined now. They were Jordan and Song Hyeong-gi. Su-hyeun felt safer with them around.
¡°So, what should we do now? Park Ji-Yeon asked me to ask you.¡±
¡°You know what to do,¡± Su-hyeun said. Their job was simple. ¡°Break everything up.¡±
¡°That...¡±
Song Hyeong-gi opened his mouth with a grin.
¡°...I can do that.¡±
Song Hyeong-gi hung up. It looked like he called to hear this. He must have been very pleased by the simplicity of his job.
Screech!
The taxi ran fast and arrived at the destination. Su-hyeun paid the fare and got off the taxi. He arrived at the tallest building in the neighborhood near the beach in California, about 3 stories high. Jordan told him that this building was used by apany that worked with bottled water.
¡°He said this is thepany building...,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Tramp, tramp!
Su-hyeun passed the building entrance and walked through the lobby. Su-hyeun was wearing shabby casual clothes and did not bring a bag or anything. Some security guards looked at him strangely before one of them approached Su-hyeun.
¡°Have you scheduled an appointment in advance?¡±
Su-hyeun looked back at the security guard. He stared at him for a while and opened his mouth.
¡°If you are not rted... Step back.¡±
Whoosh, whoosh!
The me skill floated around Su-hyeun, allowing the heat to spread. The security guard was frightened and stepped back.
¡°A-awakener?¡±
¡°He is an awakener!¡±
When Su-hyeun suddenly activated his skill, the guards freaked out. The whole lobby suddenly became fussy. Su-hyeun quickly looked around when their eyes were focused on him. He felt that somebody was secretly watching him.
¡°I havee to the right ce,¡± he thought.
He slightly doubted the information he got from Chloe and MacRebur, but it looked like it was true.
¡°If you are rted at least a little bit, don¡¯t even think about running away. I¡¯ll just run after you.¡±
¡°What the hell do you want? Are you a terrorist?¡± one guard screamed out loud.
It was at that moment that they heard an explosive sound
One me exploded in the air and gave off sparks.
¡°The extermination of the Dump Guild.¡±
That was why Su-hyeun came to America.
¡°That is my purpose...¡±
Boom, boom, boom!
¡°And this is the start of that.¡±
An eye for an eye, a terror for a terror. The war between the Dump Guild and Su-hyeun began.
Chapter 96
Chapter 96: Chapter 96
***
Tap, tap, tap¡ª
The sound of one man routinely tapping his hand on the desk rang throughout the room. He pressed his forehead with his other hand. The man¡¯s name was Johnny Depp. He was the vice guild master of the Star Guild.
¡°MacRebur and Chloe are dead,¡± he thought. He had just heard confirmation from the news on who was responsible. ¡°Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
It was because of him. Their original n was impossible to fail. But it failed because of Kim Su-hyeun¡¯s interference.
¡°We should have removed him already,¡± Johnny Depp thought.
They could not get rid of Su-hyeun earlier because Korea was far from the United States and he did not show up in the real world very often. Korea was a country where the influence of the Dump Guild was rtively low. So they had nned to increase their influence using the Ares Guild. But that also failed because of Su-hyeun. At that point, Su-hyeun had just been a small pain in the neck.
¡°I did not expect he would do this much.¡±
Because of the Ripper Guild and Kim Su-hyeun, the Dump Guild was faltering. It was not only in Korea and the United States, but their ns had also failed in every country except China. Even then, the work in China had not been as sessful as they hoped in their original n. All their ns to expand the Dump Guild had been ruined.
¡°The damage is too big.¡±
The major awakeners in the Dump Guild had died. Also, many guilds decided to leave the Dump Guild. Now, the Dump guild lost its power and influence. It was fatal. Until recently, they had been the world¡¯s biggest guild, but now they were nothing other than a criminal guild. There was no path forward. The only thing they could do was hide in the shadows again.
¡°We have to regain our power. This time, we will get the power to turn the world upside down without any interruption.¡±
Bam¡ª!
¡°Sir, sir!¡±
A guild member who had been waiting outside came in. Johnny Depp, who was not feeling so good already, gave him a hard look.
¡°What? Don¡¯t you know we¡¯re hiding now? Why did you make such a loud¡ª¡±
¡°That¡ªthat is not a problem now, sir.¡±
¡°Then what?¡±
¡°The branches of the Dump Guild are under attack!¡±
¡°What?¡±
Johnny Depp blinked his eyes in panic. Theirs was a secret guild. The name was known, but not many people knew more than that. Moreover, the information about which guilds they worked with was top-secret. But those ces were under attack now. That meant all the information had leaked out.
¡°How much damage? Which ones were attacked?¡± Johnny Depp asked.
¡°We¡¯ve already lost three ces, starting with the Nn Guild in California. I think we will be under attack soon!¡±
¡°What the...¡±
The more he heard, the more embarrassed he became.
¡°What kind of fearless freak is attacking the Dump Guild...?¡± Johnny Depp thought. ¡°Is it...Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Johnny Depp jumped up from his seat once that name popped into his head. And after he spoke it out loud, the guild member nodded fiercely.
¡°Yes, sir. And...¡±
¡°And what?¡±
¡°He is not alone.¡± The guild member spoke with a pale face. ¡°Park Ji-yeon from the Korean Ripper Guild and another dude that controls the divine beast are with him. Jordan Rogers and his Maximum Guild as well...¡±
Johnny Depp¡¯s face became just as pale.
¡°Sir. This is war.¡±
¡°Damn it...¡± Johnny Depp clenched his teeth. The scale of the attack was far greater than he thought.
Rumble¡ª!
At that moment, they could feel a tremendous tremor that was followed by an explosion. It came from downstairs.
¡°No way...¡± Johnny Depp stared at the magical wave that came from the below. ¡°Is he already here?¡±
***
Rumble¡ª!
Whoosh, whoosh¡ª
The mes rose around Su-hyeun. Dozens of awakeners surrounded him. Dozens more¡ªabout half of the Dump Guild¡¯s forces in the building¡ªhad already fallen.
¡°If you don¡¯t resist, I won¡¯t kill you,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Crack¡ª!
¡°Argh¡ª!¡±
Su-hyeun forced an awakener to his knees by pushing down on his shoulder. The shoulder broke.
¡°But if you resist, even I don¡¯t know what I¡¯ll do.¡±
¡°Do¡ªdo you think you will be safe after this? How will you face the consequences?¡± One of the guild members tried to threaten Su-hyeun, but Su-hyeun did not even blink.
¡°Me? Safe?¡±
¡°You came to an innocent guild and used violence! The Authority won¡¯t overlook such an offense!¡± he screamed.
Su-hyeun¡¯s expression became colder. ¡°You¡¯re not the first to tell me that...¡± Jung Dong-yeong, the guild master of the Ares Guild, had said something simr to that. ¡°He died by my hand... But me? I¡¯m still here, aren¡¯t¡± I?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s cold answer, the awakener flinched.
¡°I¡¯ll give you 10 seconds.¡±
Rumble¡ª
¡°All of you. Kneel and put your heads down!¡±
Enormous magic pressed the air. People got chills. Not one among the dozens could attack Su-hyeun.
¡°Ten, nine, eight, seven, six...¡±
Time passed. Su-hyeun opened his hand and counted each second by folding his fingers. And...
Wham¡ª!
Wham, wham¡ª!
One by one, people started to kneel and put their heads on the floor. But there were still some who stood until the end out of either personal pride or loyalty to the Dump Guild.
¡°Two... One.¡±
Thump¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s body disappeared. Soon, he grabbed the neck of one who stood still.
Crack¡ª!
The man¡¯s neck was twisted in a bizarre direction. Su-hyeun released him.
Flop¡ª
The dead body fell on the floor. Su-hyeun looked around. All of the awakeners started to kneel on the floor.
Su-hyeun said, ¡°Stay there. If you move, you will end up like this.¡±
¡°Yes¡ªyes, sir!¡±
¡°Yes!¡±
They answered out of fear. Su-hyeun lifted his head and looked up at the high ceiling. And...
Whiz¡ª!
He drew out his sword. He started to break the ceiling and headed up. He broke through each floor until he finally reached the rooftop.
¡°Eek!¡±
Johnny Depp saw Su-hyeun. His face turned deadly pale. Next to Johnny Depp was another guild member.
¡°I thought there would be a guy like you,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°What¡ªwhat the hell are you doing this?¡±
Johnny Depp was an A-Rank awakener. He had good skills and guts. But he could not rush Su-hyeun because he knew he would die.
¡°I¡¯ve been advertising here and there, haven¡¯t you heard yet? The end of the Dump Guild is my purpose. I don¡¯t want anything else.¡±
¡°Do you think you¡¯re some kind of hero? Do you think you¡¯ve be something great by doing this? It will be your end!¡±
¡°Since when did you guys worry about other people?¡±
¡°What?¡±
Swish¡ª
nk¡ª!
Su-hyeun swung his sword. Johnny Depp urgently extended his hand and blocked. He created dozens of magical veilyers. It looked like he had quite good skills in defense.
The other awakener, who had been standing next to him, was decapitated and died. Johnny Depp saw him and swallowed. Su-hyeun swung his sword without hesitation. It looked like he did not n to let him live.
¡°I should run away,¡± Johnny Depp thought.
He took a step back. And soon, he was surprised. Because he missed Su-hyeun in the short moment he was thinking. He looked around like a crazy person.
¡°Damn it! Where...where are you?¡±
Johnny Depp gathered his magic power and created several protectionyers. Cold sweat flowed with the fear of death. But he felt a little relief because he was hiding in the magic veil. But...
¡°Do you think you will be safe inside there?¡±
A voice came from above. Johnny Depp raised his head.
[The transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
Crack¡ª!
The scale of Imoogi started to grow on Su-hyeun¡¯s body. Johnny Depp could see that on the uncovered parts of his body. His eyes widened.
¡°Dragon...?¡±
Rumble¡ª!
Crack¡ª!
Su-hyeun descended with his sword. It cut Johnny Depp in half and his veil magic.
Crack¡ª!
¡°Uhr...¡±
Johnny Depp¡¯s split body fell. Su-hyeun shook the blood off his sword and sheathed it in the scabbard.
¡°Okay. Now I¡¯m finished here, too...¡± Su-hyeun thought.
This was the fourth site. He had cleaned up almost all the guilds andpanies that rted to the Dump Guild in the United States. Since this guild was based in the United States, the Dump Guild could now be considered to be finished. Su-hyeun took out his smartphone and made a phone call. After several rings, Jordan answered.
¡°Are you done already?¡±
¡°Yes. How about you?¡±
¡°We¡¯re almost done, too. Fortunately, there were no civilians, so it ended pretty quickly. It looked like they moved secretly. They had been thoroughly blocking all information so it wouldn¡¯t leak.¡±
¡°You¡¯re sure there was no damage to civilians, right?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sure. Don¡¯t worry. It looked like they knew about themselves. Most of them just surrendered easily. Didn¡¯t they do that on your end?¡±
¡°Well...they listened pretty well after I threatened them.¡±
Su-hyeun nodded, thinking of the awakeners of the Dump Guild who probably still had their heads down.
¡°Anyway, these guys, are bigger and more organized than I thought. And I think there are more outside of America...¡±
¡°No damage to the Maximum Guild?¡±
¡°A little bit. The agency helped us. We think the Dump Guild is finished in the United States now.¡±
Everything had gone smoothly. Su-hyeun had thought to dig up the root of the Dump Guild before it got too bigger. But he didn¡¯t expect it would be this easy.
¡°Their forces are much smaller than I expected.¡±
The Dump Guild that Su-hyeun remembered was muchrger than now. Even in Korea, where their influence was not that big, there were still many guilds involved with the Dump Guild. But that would happen more than five years from now. They had not expanded in earnest yet. Moreover, the information that Su-hyeun got from Chloe and MacRebur had been very helpful. They told him about the main bases and involved guilds.
¡°I¡¯ll leave this to you. And can you prepare a ne for me?¡±
¡°Where are you going?¡±
¡°China.¡±
¡°China? Why? That¡¯s the most uproarious ce right now.¡±
China was the only country that had been damaged by the Dump Guild in this time. During the raid of a dungeon in Beijing, a Chinese S-Rank awakener had died.
¡°Lin Zhuming. She was the most popr star in China. She was famous not only in China but also in Hollywood. The Chinese were pretty shocked by her murder.¡±
¡°Was there any other damage?¡±
¡°Fortunately, that raid was somehow sessful. This time, two S-Rank awakeners had joined. That unusual event brought victory.
China had a total of four S-Rank awakeners. Compared to the poption, it was a small number. Also, as there was a lot ofnd, there were many dungeons. In such a situation, China had lost one S-Rank awakener.
¡°But why suddenly China? Are you a fan of Lin Zhuming? Do you want revenge?¡±
¡°Close.¡±
Jordan asked as if it were a joke. But in the end, what Su-hyeun would do was the same thing.
¡°I have to catch a head, right?¡±
¡°...Head?¡±
¡°Yes. Head. If I leave it alone, the Dump Guild will show up again with a different name.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s word, Jordan was silent for a moment. Soon, he spoke in a worried voice.
¡°Are you sure? We don¡¯t know who the head, but they must be very strong. Lin Zhuming died and two others were affected.¡±
Two S-Rank awakeners had been attacked. One died and one had barely survived. No matter how strong Su-hyeun was, it was reasonable for Jordan to worry.
¡°Don¡¯t worry,¡± Su-hyeun sparked his eyes and said, ¡°I will surely kill that bastard.¡±
Su-hyeun hung up after saying that. His work in the United States was over. He had finished attacking the blue-colored dungeon and cleaned up all branches of the Dump Guild in the United States. Now, there was one thing left. He had to kill the awakener who made the Dump Guild.
¡°Lin Zhuming is dead.¡±
It was not an unexpected thing. He had asked for preparation, but it was possible that both of them might die. It was fortunate that one person survived at least and finished the dungeon attack. Beijing could have beenpletely devastated if that person did not finish the dungeon.
¡°So, he ran away, huh?¡±
Su-hyeun clenched his teeth. His eyes sparkled. The guild master of the Dump Guild was the worst human being that Su-hyeun knew.
Chapter 97
Chapter 97: Chapter 97
Act 5
Thousands of people flocked to downtown Guangzhou, China.
¡°Oh my god!¡±
¡°He¡¯s here! He¡¯s here!¡±
¡°Where? Where? Oh! It¡¯s him!¡±
When the middle-aged actor got out of the long ck sedan, people started to yell and cheer. They had all immediatelye to Guangzhou to see him in person, despite the tragedy in Beijing. He waved at the people. The ce filled with loud cheers.
His name was Hwang Jun-peong. He was a Chinese actor and a popr Hollywood star. One magazine even mentioned him among the hundred most influential figures in the world. He was almost forty, but he was unbelievably handsome. His body was like a sculpture with perfect body proportions. And his acting was superb. It was impossible topare with other actors. Those facts made everyone enthusiastic about him.
¡°Mr. Hwang! I am your fan!¡±
¡°Please give me your autograph!¡±
¡°Can I take a picture with you...?¡±
Hwang Jun-peong shook each hand that reached out to him.
¡°Thank you. I can¡¯t give you an autograph because of the schedule. But you can take as many pictures as you want.¡±
¡°Thank you!¡±
¡°How should I pose... Oh, I look more handsome from this angle...¡±
Hwang Jun-peong took photos with about ten people around him. While doing so, one man who looked like a reporter stuck a microphone in Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s direction.
¡°Mr. Hwang! You said you would donate all of your proceeds from the movie Desperado to the families of the Beijing disaster. Is that true?¡±
Hwang Jun-peong looked a little embarrassed at the question, then replied, ¡°Yes. That is true.¡±
¡°Wow!¡±
¡°Nice!¡±
People cheered out at Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s response. He smiled with embarrassment and opened his mouth again.
¡°The Beijing disaster was really heartbreaking. I personally knew Lin Zhuming, so I felt great regret.¡±
¡°Then, Mr. Hwang. How about¡ª¡±
¡°That¡¯s all for now. I¡¯m sorry.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong refused continuous questions from the reporter and turned. He made a gesture to his manager, a young woman in her mid-twenties who quickly came over to him.
¡°I¡¯m tired, let¡¯s get inside.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong waved several more times to the fans, then whispered to his manager. The manager nodded and began to restrain the crowds that blocked the road with the help of thepany staff. With much difficulty, Hwang Jun-peong finally managed to enter the building lobby. He went straight to his penthouse at the top of the building.
Flop¡ª
He loosened his tie andid it on the couch. The manager approached him and said, ¡°If you need anything, please call me. I¡¯m sure you are tired so please get some rest.¡±
¡°Just bring some girls.¡±
The manager was surprised by Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s raw request. She has only recently be his manager and she could not adjust to Hwang Jun-peong. Before, he seemed like a gentleman who could not ignore the plight of the poor. But now he looked like apletely different person. It was as if two people shared one body. When the manager hesitated, Hwang Jun-peong opened his eyes wide and smiled.
¡°Do you want to do it?¡±
¡°No. No, sir.¡±
The manager hurriedly bowed and left the room. Hwang Jun-peong watched the manager leave and clicked his tongue.
¡°Tut. She is too slow.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong got up and walked to the window. There were a lot of people just below the tall building. Thousands of them were all gathered to see him.
¡°Seeing from this high, they look like ants,¡± Hwang Jun-peong muttered. He remembered the conversation with the reporter andughed. ¡°Idiots.¡±
¡°You look like you¡¯re having fun.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong quickly turned his head to view the new speaker. A stranger now sat on the couch.
¡°...Who are you?¡± Hwang Jun-peong asked in a low voice.
He narrowed his eyes. He could tell this stranger was not a stalker or something who liked to dig him up. If he was a stalker, there was no way he could not notice him.
¡°I¡¯m a fan,¡± the stranger said.
¡°Are you kidding?¡±
¡°An anti-fan is still a fan, isn¡¯t it?¡±
He was not Chinese. Hwang Jun-peong assumed he might be Japanese or Korean. He looked young. Hwang Jun-peong thought for a moment and then asked with a light smile, ¡°Are you Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°Am I that famous? Everybody notices me.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve heard your name a lot. I am your fan, too.¡±
¡°You mean anti-fan?¡±
¡°Ha-ha. Yes.¡± Hwang Jun-peong coollyughed.
He walked to the refrigerator and opened the door. The refrigerator was filled with a variety of drinks including bottled water, soda, and bottled beer. Hwang Jun-peong took a beer and threw it at Su-hyeun. Su-hyeun caught the bottle.
¡°Let¡¯s have a drink,¡± Hwang Jun-peong suggested.
¡°I didn¡¯te here for a drink.¡±
¡°Well. I think you came here because you found out everything, right? It will be ourst time, so this will be fine.¡±
Su-hyeun looked at Hwang Jun-peong for a while, then removed the bottlecap.
Gulp¡ª
Because of the tense situation, he could not enjoy the taste of the beer.
¡°I heard a lot about you. It was splendid. And I wanted to meet you once,¡± Hwang Jun-peong said.
¡°But you couldn¡¯t, because your face was too well known. Not like me.¡±
¡°So, how much do you know?¡±
¡°Everything about you.¡± Su-hyeun shook the half-empty beer bottle. ¡°It was funny. Donating money for the people you murdered? Did you say you felt sorry and heartbroken?¡±
Shatter¡ª!
Su-hyeun strengthened his grip. The bottle broke and beer spilled over the table.
¡°Is that deception?¡±
Su-hyeun stared at Hwang Jun-peong with a ghastly gaze. Hwang Jun-peong twisted his lips.
He opened his bottle and answered, ¡°Because it¡¯s funny.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°It¡¯s the best y, isn¡¯t it? I mean the acting.¡±
Gulp¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong quaffed the beer, then continued to speak. ¡°Fooling someone,ughing behind their back, acting like somebody else, and watching people who love to watch it. It was all very funny to me. That was why I dreamed of bing an actor.¡±
¡°You could have just focused on acting then.¡±
¡°As time goes on, the stimtion dulls. I stopped having fun once I got used to this job. But...¡±
Thump, thump¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong walked to the big window.
¡°Look at those idiots. They don¡¯t know who I actually am, but they cheer for this fake Hwang Jun-peong they see. Soon, the bereaved family wille and tell me,¡± Hwang Jun-peong turned his head and said in a low voice, ¡°¡®Thank you very much for helping us afford our son¡¯s funeral. Sob, sob, sob.¡¯¡±
Su-hyeun remained silent.
¡°They don¡¯t know anything about me. What fools. I lose track of time when I look down on those ants.¡±
¡°Is that funny?¡±
¡°Yes, very much. It¡¯s thrilling.¡±
The answer came without any hesitation.
¡°Is that why you created the Dump Guild? To hide the fact that you are an awakener?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Hwang Jun-peong grinned. He was known as a normal actor, not an awakener. But he was the worst awakener that Su-hyeun had ever heard of. He was the founder of the Dump Guild. And he was a terrible criminal who had managed to hide his identity. That was the real Hwang Jun-peong.
¡°Yes. I thought I was hiding it well. But you... I don¡¯t know how you figured it out.¡±
Sizzling¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong lit up a cigarette and asked, ¡°You leaked information to the Chinese Agency, didn¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Because I knew you targeted Beijing. You¡¯re a cautious guy and I thought you wouldn¡¯t risk revealing yourself.¡±
Su-hyeun thought he knew a lot about Hwang Jun-peong, but there was one mistake he made.
¡°I never thought you would murder Lin Zhuming.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong was a cautious person. He had been hiding his identity for a lifetime. He was always very careful to hide his true intentions. Su-hyeun thought if the Chinese Agency was involved, Hwang Jun-peong would not take any action. Even if he did, Su-hyeun never expected Hwang Jun-peong to gamble when two S-rank awakeners were involved.
¡°Lin Zhuming! I really wanted to kill that bitch with my own hands. I met her once at a party, she was annoying. Ha-ha!¡±
¡°Did he have a personal grudge?¡± Su-hyeun thought. ¡°No. This couldn¡¯t be called a grudge.¡±
He had killed her simply because he thought she was annoying. It would be impossible to consider him normal.
¡°He¡¯s a real psychopath,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
The Dump Guild had all kinds of human beings. The mostmon one among them was the one who wanted to show off their strength. Twisted exhibitionists usually rted to the crime directly.
However, Hwang Jun-peong was not like those people. He was crazier than anyone else. He was a famous actor before he became an awakener. But ording to his own words, he had this twisted personality from the beginning. He enjoyed cheating and deceiving others.
¡°You must think you¡¯re above them.¡± Su-hyeun pointed to the fans visible through the window. ¡°Maybe you¡¯re right. You¡¯re surely a great actor, Hwang Jun-peong. You deserve to think of yourself that way.¡±
¡°Are youplimenting me? You¡¯ll make me blush.¡±
¡°That was not apliment.¡± Su-hyeun stood. ¡°I meant I will drag you down.¡±
¡°...What will you do? How will you get me here?¡±
¡°I put your manager to sleep. Your people won¡¯t be back for at least an hour. I also soundproofed the room.¡±
¡°You¡¯ve prepared a lot, haven¡¯t you?¡±
At Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s words, Su-hyeun nodded.
¡°The penthouse is nice. The living room is so spacious. I could even y ser here, right?¡±
¡°Ha-ha-ha.¡±
Hwang Jun-peongughed strangely. He threw his beer bottle and warmed up his hand.
¡°It¡¯s perfect. I would be in trouble if I revealed my identity during the fight. Who else knows about me?¡±
¡°No one. If you kill me, nobody would know. I can guarantee that.¡±
¡°You¡¯re pretty determined, huh.¡±
¡°Because I¡¯ll be in trouble if you run away.¡±
¡°Run away? Me?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t pretend like you have the guts. I know you, and you are that kind of person.¡±
For the first time, there was a crack in Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s smile.
¡°Why do you pretend to know me? What the hell are you?¡±
¡°I know you well.¡±
What Su-hyeun said was not an empty phrase. This was not the first time that Su-hyeun had faced off against Hwang Jun-peong.
¡°It was because of me,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
He wascent. He had reflected on it a lot. In his previous life, Su-hyeun had missed Hwang Jun-peong because of a small mistake. He had run away and made another guild. It had taken almost half a year to clean up the resurrected Dump Guild. Su-hyeun still felt sick thinking about all the people who were victimized by the Dump Guild during that time.
¡°I won¡¯t miss you this time,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°...You¡¯re annoying.¡±
¡°Then bring it on.¡±
Schwing¡ª
Su-hyeun drew his sword.
¡°Don¡¯t run away.¡±
¡°Okay.¡±
Rumble¡ª
Enormous magic suddenly filled up therge living room. It was the most ominous magic Su-hyeun had ever encountered.
¡°I will kill you quickly.¡±
It was highly concentrated magic that gave Su-hyeun chills. Su-hyeun had caught him in his previous life. But Su-hyeun was different from that time, he was much stronger now.
¡°It¡¯s been ten years since he became an awakener,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
Hwang Jun-peong became an awakener in the first year that dungeons and awakeners started to appear. Since then, Hwang Jun-peong spent most of his time in the Tower of Trials except for a few months out of the year.
When other people attacked the dungeons, he worked as an actor and expanded his power in the Tower of Trials. He was a talented awakener. Just by virtue of sheer talent, he wasparable to other S-Rank awakeners.
There were two reasons that Su-hyeun left him alone so far, even though he knew his identity. First, Hwang Jun-peong could conceal his identity and vanish if he figured out somebody had discovered the truth. If Hwang Jun-peong decided to go to ground, it would be more difficult to find him again.
Second, Su-hyeun did not want to make any mistakes. He wanted to make sure he could catch him. He needed time to get strong enough. He waited until he was confident to not miss Hwang Jun-peong.
Chapter 98
Chapter 98: Chapter 98
¡°What is this?¡±
The Great Wall Guild was one of thergest Chinese guilds based in Guangzhou. The guild master, Zhu In, saw the note that came to the guild and frowned.
¡°It¡¯s a terror report from the Dump Guild.¡±
¡°Dump Guild? Aren¡¯t they the ones who caused the trouble in Beijing? Those bastards killed Lin Zhuming.¡±
¡°Yes. Their new goal is Guangzhou. It says...¡± The guild member who brought the note pointed out the map on the tablet screen. ¡°They¡¯re aiming here.¡±
¡°Damn it...¡±
Zhu In put his face in his hands. He was not interested in the entertainment business, but since it wasn¡¯t far away, he knew something was going on.
¡°Of all the times... There are a lot of people because of Hwang Jun-peong now.¡±
¡°Perhaps that is their goal.¡±
¡°Are they attacking civilians?¡±
¡°If the raid had failed in Beijing, the civilian casualties would have been enormous. They don¡¯t distinguish between awakeners or civilians,¡± the guild member said.
Zhu In sighed. ¡°Why the hell did they send us a note?¡± he thought.
Zhu In had no idea what to do and put his head in his hands again. If the Dump Guild really was trying to terrorize them, he couldn¡¯t imagine how much damage it would be. The case of Beijing was a problem, but that was not all. The Dump Guild was rioting in the United States, Korea, and other countries.
¡°We should move, shouldn¡¯t we?¡±
He didn¡¯t waste a lot of time worrying. Now that he¡¯d seen the note, he could not just let it go.
¡°How many people should we bring?¡±
¡°Lin Zhuming died. We should get as many as possible.¡±
¡°Will we be okay?¡±
¡°Contact all the other guilds. Especially those that were close to Lin Zhuming. If we suggest first, they will probably ept.¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t drag your feet. Do it now.¡±
At Zhu In¡¯s word, the guild member immediately started to make the call. Zhu In also called another guild he was acquainted with.
¡°Yes, yes... Yes?¡±
The guild member was surprised and dropped the phone. When he looked at Zhu In, he had the same look, too.
¡°Sir. This guild... said they got the same note.¡±
¡°...Same here.¡±
Both of them hung up. They made a few more phone calls, but it was the same. The same note had been sent to all the guilds in Guangzhou.
¡°What the hell is going on?¡±
Bam¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s hand and Su-hyeun¡¯s sword hit. Hwang Jun-peong grabbed the sword surrounded by blue me. He shined his eyes.
Whoosh¡ª!
The other hand reached out. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s hand tried to pierce Su-hyeun¡¯s chest.
Swish¡ª
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun turned his sword and struck the hand. That hand was sharper than any sword. Su-hyeun had already fought him once, so he knew about his ignorant fighting style.
Swish, swish¡ª
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut into Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s skin. Torn pieces of clothing fell. Blood dripped, though it wasn¡¯t a deep cut.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The cut skin healed quickly. Hwang Jun-peong ignored Su-hyeun¡¯s sword and quickly swung his hand again.
Crack¡ª
Again, the sword and arm struck.
Whoosh¡ª
Crack¡ª!
The magic that scattered from the sword and arm swept across the living room. The furniture was thrown, and windows broke. Hwang Jun-peong realized he could not catch Su-hyeun easily. Both their eyes sparkled.
¡°I guess I can¡¯t defeat him easily,¡± Su-hyeun thought.
It would have been nice if he could. Not only in the future but also now, Hwang Jun-peong was a top S-Rank awakener. It looked like Hwang Jun-peong was thinking of a simr thing. He closed and opened his hand that had been hitting Su-hyeun¡¯s sword several times.
He said, ¡°Shouldn¡¯t we stop now?¡±
¡°Why? Are you scared?¡±
¡°Nothing good wille of this for either of us.¡±
¡°Not really.¡±
¡°I am Hwang Jun-peong. You will be in trouble if the world learns that you attacked me.¡±
¡°That will only happen if people don¡¯t know that you are an awakener.¡±
¡°I just wanted to remain an actor. I didn¡¯t mean to deceive people... I have a lot to say. I mean, I will be criticized a little, though.¡±
It seemed like he had spent a long time practicing those lines. Hwang Jun-peong shrugged as if it was not a big deal.
¡°My status will only increase if it¡¯s revealed that I¡¯m an awakener. Not being able to act anymore will be sad and not fun, but what can I do?¡±
Hwang Jun-peong grinned and looked at Su-hyeun again.
¡°So, what do you say? Do you still want to do it?¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Boom, boom, boom¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong covered his face with his arms as mes burst out around him.
Su-hyeun walked through the mes covering all sides and replied, ¡°The answer is too obvious.¡±
¡°...If you continue like this, civilians will be harmed.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ve got a back-up.¡±
¡°You really... want to see this through to the end?¡±
¡°Do you think I came here just to y with you?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes turned blue. His magic started to amplify. Hwang Jun-peong gave Su-hyeun a pale look.
¡°You damn bastard...¡±
Crunch¡ª
As Su-hyeun took a step, the solid marble floor of the penthouse cracked apart.
¡°Your y will be over today.¡±
All the awakeners¡¯ guilds in Guangzhou gathered in one ce. Including the biggest one, the Great Wall Guild, there were a total of 12 guilds. This was the first time since the New Year¡¯s party of the Chinese Awakeners Guild Association.
¡°I don¡¯t think anything happened.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s wait. I¡¯m sure it didn¡¯t start yet.¡±
¡°What if nothing happens...¡±
¡°Then that is good. I hope we were just deceived...¡±
Each guild¡¯s masters gathered in one ce and talked.
There were countless people around them. All of them were fans who came to see the actor, Hwang Jun-peong.
¡°It¡¯s been a while since Hwang Jun-peong wasst seen, yet people are still standing here? They must be huge fans.¡±
¡°He¡¯s such a big star. My kid really loves Hwang Jun-peong, too.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t he old? Do they really like that old man?¡±
¡°He is in his forties. But he¡¯s not the same as other men the same age. He has a mature charm.¡±
The female guild master of the Meta Guild sparked her eyes as if she was a fan of Hwang Jun-peong.
Purr¡ª!
From somewhere, an unfamiliar cry was heard. Many people looked in that direction.
¡°Look, look!¡±
¡°Mo... monster?¡±
¡°It¡¯s a monster!¡±
A small dragon was flying in the sky and crying. The area was in an uproar. People started to run away.
¡°It is a monster... But...¡±
¡°Why is that so small?¡±
The awakeners, including the guild masters, looked at the small dragon and made confused faces. It was a monster, but it was too small to be a threat.
¡°But still... I guess we have to get rid of it.¡±
¡°Yes, we should.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Crack¡ª!
As he finished his word, Zhu In reached out his hand and threw a lightning bolt at the dragon. The sky shed. Zhu In turned his gaze from the sky.
¡°This should be enough,¡± he thought.
¡°Lo¡ªlook!¡±
Purr¡ª! Purr¡ª!
The dragon was not dead. Zhu In turned his head in astonishment. The dragon quickly flew. Soon, it came closer to them.
¡°Is it still fine?¡±
There wasn¡¯t even a mark. When he looked closely, he could see the dragon had a thin magicyer around it.
p, t¡ª
The dragon was Miru. Miru flew to Zhu In, who threw a bolt of lightning at him. Zhu In reached out his hand again, wary of Miru. Another guild master stopped Zhu In.
¡°Hang on. Wait a minute. It has something around its foot.¡±
¡°...What?¡±
Purr¡ª
Miru shook its paw as if understanding what he said. Zhu In opened the paper wrapped around Miru¡¯s paw. There were squiggles. It seemed like the writer wrote it in a hurry.
¡°Please, take care of civilians. Please, evacuate people in the C&D Tower,¡± Zhu In read out loud each word on the paper. Then, he mumbled, ¡°What the hell is this about?¡±
C&D Tower was the building in front of them. But the note said to evacuate those in here.
¡°Wait. Is this rted to terrorism?¡± he thought.
It was at that moment.
Rumble¡ª
He heard a small explosione from the top of the building. Then, he could feel a giant magic wave. Zhu In shouted in surprise.
¡°Terror!¡±
People screamed.
¡°Run, run away!¡±
The note was not a joke. The terror from the Dump Guild began. The terrorist attack in Beijing was not that long ago, and now theymitted a terrorist act in Guangzhou.
¡°Evacuate civilians first! Quickly!¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
The twelve guilds, including the Great Wall of Zhu In, began to move quickly.
ng¡ª nk¡ª
Rumble¡ª
The top floor of the C&D Tower waspletely devastated. Because of the aftereffect of the fight, the furniture had been obliterated, and everything was burning.
Whoosh¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong grabbed Su-hyeun¡¯s neck. When he tried to strengthen his grip, Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut off Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s wrist.
sh¡ª
Puff¡ª
The severed had blurred and disappeared. It was a trick with hallucination skills. At that moment, a sharp hand stretched out from behind.
[Doppelganger.]
nk¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s hand could not reach Su-hyeun¡¯s back. It was blocked by the sword. It was a doppelganger who had the same shape as Su-hyeun, but it did not have a face. The doppelganger¡¯s sword blocked Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s hand. Hwang Jun-peong braced his arm and pushed down on Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. At that moment, the doppelganger skill disappeared, and Su-hyeun turned his body.
Whoosh¡ª
Boom, boom¡ª!
The power of the me skill gathered at the sword¡¯s tip before bursting out. The attack increased the distance between the two men.
¡°Phew¡ª¡±
¡°What the hell are you doing?¡±
Hwang Jun-peong gave Su-hyeun an incredulous look. Su-hyeun had relentlessly attacked him as if he would not back down. But he only fought defensively. Hwang Jun-peong did not expect that.
¡°You don¡¯t have enough energy anymore? I¡¯m disappointed...¡±
¡°Disappointed my ass. I know you¡¯re happy now.¡±
¡°I do enjoy bullying.¡±
¡°You¡¯re an asshole.¡±
Tap, tap¡ª
Su-hyeun tapped the floor with his foot a couple of times. Then he looked around. He could see Miru through the broken window.
Purr, purr¡ª!
¡°...Is that so?¡±
At Miru¡¯s crying, Hwang Jun-peong turned his gaze. He wondered what was going on as he strained his eyes.
¡°No way... Did you?¡±
Hwang Jun-peong rushed to the window. Many awakeners gathered outside. People were evacuating because of the fight. And the awakeners were helping the remaining people.
¡°You and I are the only ones left in this building.¡±
Earlier, Su-hyeun had spread his magic throughout the building and checked how many people were left inside. It looked like the awakeners had evacuated all everyone. They would arrive soon.
¡°Well, then...¡±
[The transfiguration skill: Imoogi.]
[Indomitable body.]
[The me.]
Crack, crack¡ª
Scales began to grow on Su-hyeun¡¯s body. The hard body turned dark, and blue me surrounded his body. For a sh, his magic wave changed. Hwang Jun-peong finally realized Su-hyeun had been buying time for people to escape.
Su-hyeun said, ¡°Now let¡¯s end this.¡±
Chapter 99
Chapter 99: Chapter 99
¡°Anyone left?¡±
¡°No, sir.¡±
¡°Are you sure?¡±
¡°Yes, sir. There¡¯s not even a single dog. A mother and her son were thest. Everyone in C&D Tower has been evacuated.¡±
¡°We need to evacuate people around the building, too. You know the safety of the civilians is the top priority, right?¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
Zhu In busily gave orders to the members of the guild. Fortunately, the evacuation of civilians went smoothly. Thanks to thebined effort of all twelve guilds that had gathered, there was more than enough manpower.
¡°Something is strange,¡± Zhu In thought.
There was something strange about this terrorist act. If it really was terrorism, it wasn¡¯t very convincing. When he had felt the magic from the top of the building for the first time, he thought the terror had begun. But soon, he realized that was not right.
¡°This is a fight.¡±
It was not one person¡¯s magic. There were two different magic signatures. People might wonder how only two people could be the cause. But those two signatures were at a different level. Zhu In assumed they were S-Rank awakeners, possibly even stronger. He could feel the magic¡¯s enormous Factors reverberating through the very air.
¡°If not terrorism, then what could it be? Why did that notebel it an act of terrorism? Who sent the message from the small dragon?¡±
His mind was soplicated. But there was no time to think. The evacuation of civilians was the most important thing now.
¡°Sir, what should we do now? The situation over there looks¡ª¡±
¡°Wait. It¡¯s not the time to get involved yet.¡±
¡°Are you saying we should just sit on our hands?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you see? That¡¯s not a terrorist act, that¡¯s a fight between two people. Perhaps one of them...must be a member of the Dump Guild.¡±
It was obvious that one of them had sent the note using the dragon. It seemed obvious that the sender wasn¡¯t a member of the Dump Guild. It wouldn¡¯t make sense if the Dump Guild worried about civilians. In addition...
¡°We can¡¯t interrupt this fight.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t you read the note? It is said we should only evacuate civilians, nothing more. The sender was certain...¡± Zhu In bit his lips and continued to say, ¡°that we would just get in the way of the fight.¡±
¡°We have a lot of awakeners. We can help.¡±
¡°Even if we stop that fight, what good will it do if we all die?¡±
¡°That¡ª¡±
¡°Just wait. That is the right thing for now. No B- or C-Rank awakener could make a difference in this fight.¡±
The Great Wall Guild was thergest, but the other eleven guilds had few high-rank awakeners amongst their ranks.
¡°Zhu In. People said there was no trace of Hwang Jun-peong among the evacuated.¡±
¡°...What?¡± Zhu In opened his eyes wide at the guild master¡¯s statement. His brain began to spin quickly, quicklying to a conclusion. ¡°Wait... That fight is urring in...¡±
He had heard that Hwang Jun-peong bought a penthouse in the C&D building. And the top floor seemed to be the site of the battle. Zhu In frowned.
¡°Damn it...¡±
¡°Wh-what should we do with Mr. Hwang...¡±
There were only two possibilities. Either Hwang Jun-peong had been a casualty of the fight or he was involved in it. Zhu In¡¯s head quickly spun. He thought he saved all the civilians but there was one still left.
¡°What should I do...¡± he thought.
Then, as he anxiously watched the top floor where the fight raged...
Rumble¡ª
¡°Huh? What is that?¡±
¡°The building...¡±
C&D Building had been the tallest building in Guangzhou. But suddenly, some force sliced off the top and began to copse.
¡°Run away!¡±
Act 6
Ruuumble¡ª
Along the oblique cut line, the upper part of the building slid down. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s wide-open eyes shook. He swept his chest with one hand in awareness.
¡°I almost got cut.¡±
It was one swing. At that moment, he felt like his waist was cut. If he hadn¡¯t responded instinctively, he might have been cut.
Rumble¡ª
Boom¡ª!
The tilted upper part finally fell to the ground below. Vibrations echoed throughout the area. Su-hyeun and Hwang Jun-peong stared at each other, both standing in the open-air corridor.
¡°That is disappointing,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Tramp, tramp¡ª
¡°Well, I still have time.¡±
¡°What the hell are you...?¡± Hwang Jun-peong asked.
Hwang Jun-peong couldn¡¯t believe the man who stood in front of him. This didn¡¯t make any sense. It had only been two years since Su-hyeun became an awakener. But Hwang Jun-peong became an awakener eight years ago. There was no way Su-hyeun should have been capable of matching his skill.
¡°Is it a gap in talent?¡± he wondered.
But he did not want to admit it to himself.
¡°I¡¯ll ask again¡ªwhat the hell are you!¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s magic started to twist out of a mix of blind jealousy and anger. His hands stiffened with ferocious magic. At the same time, scales began to grow all over his body.
Crunch, crunch¡ª
Two horns sprouted out from Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s head. Wings sprouted from his back. His eyes turned reptilian. He had be some sort of an unholy cross between man and beast.
¡°Dragonize skill.¡±
It was one of the ten most powerful skills in the history of awakeners. Su-hyeun had gained the strength of Imoogi with the transfiguration skill, but it was not in any wayparable to Dragonize. His transfiguration skill simply mimicked the Imoogi, but Dragonize actually transformed a human into a dragon.
¡°Huuu¡ª¡±
A hazy breath flowed out from Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s mouth. His face looked like a mixture of human and dragon. His size had increased as well to be twice asrge as he was before.
¡°Yes,¡± Hwang Jun-peong said.
p¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong spread his wings to their full span. ¡°As you said, let¡¯s end this now.¡±
He narrowed his eyes at Su-hyeun. Then suddenly, Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body quickly disappeared.
Whiz¡ª
Boom¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body appeared in front of Su-hyeun. He struck Su-hyeun with his open palm. Su-hyeun raised his sword and blocked it in the nick of time. The floor beneath him gave out and he began to fall. Hwang Jun-peong spread his wings and flew after Su-hyeun. But that was a mistake.
Whoosh¡ª!
sh, sh¡ª!
Minor wounds were carved on the body of Hwang Jun-peong.
sh¡ª!
One of them was quite deep. Hwang Jun-peong recoiled from the strike and quickly flew back up.
¡°Where are you going?¡±
Crack¡ª
Su-hyeun grabbed Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s wing from behind. Hwang Jun-peong urgently tried to shake off Su-hyeun¡¯s hand, but he couldn¡¯t.
¡°What the... He is too strong...¡±
He saw the scales on Su-hyeun¡¯s body. It looked simr to his skill, but he thought it was just an imitation. The Dragonize enabled him to truly unite with a dragon. He thought there was no awakener in existence who could match his power.
¡°Out you go!¡±
p, p¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong desperately flew up to shake off Su-hyeun. But Su-hyeun¡¯s hand maintained the firm grip on the wing.
Crack¡ª
¡°...!¡±
Finally, Su-hyeun pulled one of Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s wings from his back.
¡°Argh!¡±
Hwang Jun-peong screamed at the loss of the wing. He turned his body and swung his arm.
Rip¡ª
His ws tore through the air. Su-hyeun easily avoided all the attacks and fell down.
¡°Damn...¡±
The pain from the amputated wing still remained and caused Hwang Jun-peong to moan. He stared at Su-hyeun as he fell. Despite the pain, Hwang Jun-peong didn¡¯t care much about the loss of his wing.
¡°I can recover in a few days,¡± he thought.
The dragons didn¡¯t actually use their wings for flight, but magic. So he could still move freely in the air. Now, it was time to focus on killing Su-hyeun.
Whoosh¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong rushed toward Su-hyeun as he was in freefall. His ten ws were sharp as des. Su-hyeun did not dodge them. Instead, he channeled his magic into his sword and swung at Hwang Jun-peong.
Craaack¡ª!
Boooom¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong used his massive weight to crash into Su-hyeun, mming his body on what remained of the building.
Ruuumble¡ª
A huge hole formed in the center of the building. Hwang Jun-peong continued to m Su-hyeun through the building, all the way to the bottom. Once they reached the bottom, Hwang Jun-peong breathed heavily and then flew back up.
Gasp, gasp¡ª
The eyes of the dragon shed through the cloudy dust. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s gaze was fixed hard on Su-hyeun.
ck, ck¡ª
Su-hyeuny on the ground, then rose up again as if it was nothing.
Drip, drip, drip¡ª
But blood freely flowed down Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s chest. It was a very deep cut. Su-hyeun¡¯s sword had sliced through the dragon¡¯s scales and skin and actually managed to cut into the flesh. The amount of bleeding was significant. The wounds from earlier still hadn¡¯t healed yet, and these onlypounded the problem.
¡°What the hell is this guy...?¡± he thought.
Hwang Jun-peong thought Su-hyeun would be dead by now. But he barely had a scratch on him. Hwang Jun-peong had nned to overwhelm Su-hyeun with his Dragonize skill, but it didn¡¯t work. The battle wasn¡¯t over yet, but...
¡°I should admit. I can¡¯t win against that bastard,¡± he thought.
Hwang Jun-peong had a vague understanding of this oue ever since Su-hyeun revealed his power. But he had wanted to deny those thoughts. He had tried to fight. And this was the result.
¡°I should run away,¡± he thought.
For the first time in his life, he actually had some fear that death was imminent.
Flop¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong started to move using one wing. And at that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s body quickly moved.
Whiz¡ª
After a few leaps, the distance quickly narrowed down. Hwang Jun-peong could not run away.
¡°If that¡¯s the case...¡± he thought. His gaze turned to the awakeners who crowded around the building and civilians who were evacuating from afar. ¡°I will buy myself at least a little time.¡±
Flop¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong moved without hesitation. He flew down toward the nearest awakeners.
¡°Help me!¡± Hwang Jun-peong shouted in an urgent voice.
Many awakeners had been taking precautions against him. Doubts were raised when they heard his human voice. At first, they thought he was a monster, but now they began whispering amongst themselves.
¡°H-human?¡±
¡°Is that not a monster?¡±
¡°So is he the terrorist then?¡±
¡°I have no idea what they¡¯re talking about, but I¡¯d bettere up with a good exnation...¡± Hwang Jun-peong thought.
¡°I¡¯m Hwang Jun-peong.¡±
¡°Hwang Jun-peong?¡±
¡°Oh, it¡¯s true! Look carefully!¡±
¡°Re-really?¡±
¡°Is Hwang Jun-peong an awakener?¡±
Fortunately for him, many people recognized his face. His figure was a little changed, but people could still notice him.
Hwang Jun-peong started to speak again with relief. ¡°Yes. I¡¯ll exin the detailster, but can you help me¡ª¡±
Swish¡ª
nk¡ª!
Hwang Jun-peong turned quickly and opened his hands. Su-hyeun had caught up to him and stabbed him in his back. The magic spread widely in all directions. The awakeners around them quickly retreated as far back as possible.
¡°What...what the?¡±
¡°Is he the real terrorist?¡±
It was a different level of battle. Hwang Jun-peong could not bear the power of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword and stepped back. When he was this close to Su-hyeun, the first emotion he felt was fear.
¡°Damn it...¡± he thought.
It would be difficult to run away in this situation.
Hwang Jun-peong shouted out loud, ¡°Help me! He¡¯s the terrorist!¡±
There were about hundreds of awakeners from the twelve guilds. Individually, each of their ability might not be good enough. But if theybined all their power together, they might have a chance.
¡°This is what I call reversing the situation,¡± Hwang Jun-peong thought.
He believed in the power of his name. In China¡ªall over the world, in fact¡ªthe name Hwang Jun-peong was well-known. And though Su-hyeun¡¯s name was also well-known, not many people actually knew his face.
¡°What do I have to do...¡± Zhu In thought.
At the appearance of these two, Zhu In felt embarrassed. Looking at the situation, he felt like he should help Hwang Jun-peong, but it was not easy to make a decision. He had doubts Although Hwang Jun-peong had been known as a civilian before, now it turned out he was an awakener. The whole situation was iprehensible. And then, in that moment...
Grrr¡ª!
Miru revealed his teeth and roared at Hwang Jun-peong. Immediately after, Miru sprang out at Hwang Jun-peong.
¡°Miru!¡± Su-hyuen called.
Miru halted pping his wings and came to a stop.
¡°It¡¯s dangerous, so stay away.¡±
The dragon¡¯s reaction was all the evidence Zhu In needed to be convinced. He could at longst tell who had sent the note asking to evacuate the civilians.
Chapter 100
Chapter 100: Chapter 100
¡°That man is the one who sent the note. And the man he¡¯s attacking is Hwang Jun-peong.¡± Zhu In shook his head at the idea popped up in his head. ¡°No. Hwang Jun-peong is not under attack. He¡¯s fighting. Then...what was the reason for the note about the Dump Guild? Why are they fighting now?¡±
The situation wasplicated. He was certain of only one thing¡ªit was difficult to take sides.
¡°What are you doing now? We have to help!¡±
The guild master of the Meta Guild, who was a fan of Hwang Jun-peong, hurriedly stepped forward. Zhu In shook his head, blocking her.
¡°Wait a minute.¡±
¡°What are you talking about? Hwang Jun-peong is being attacked by the Dump Guild ¡ª¡±
¡°Use your head! Do you think it makes sense for the Dump Guild to ask for civilian evacuation?¡±
¡°What the hell do you mean...No, wait. Are you saying Hwang Jun-peong is part of the Dump¡ª¡±
¡°There¡¯s nothing certain yet. But Hwang Jun-peong has been hiding his identity. So there is room for doubt...¡±
¡°Man. Do you want us to just stand here and watch? If we have any doubts, we have to stop the fight first.¡±
¡°We are not powerful enough to interrupt them.¡±
There was a great diversity of opinion. No one was strong enough to mediate the fight between Su-hyeun and Hwang Jun-peong. And there was room for doubt. Plus, Su-hyeun had requested for the evacuation of civilians in advance. So no one had falsely used him as being part of the Dump Guild.
Swish¡ª
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s attack grew harsher. Hwang Jun-peong raised both arms over his head to block Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. But Su-hyeun¡¯s powerful magic was starting to wear out his arms.
Crunch¡ª
¡°Those idiots¡ª¡±
Hwang Jun-peong had expected the other awakeners to buy some time for him. But it looked like he might die before they could provide even a little help.
Swish, swish¡ª
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun struck low with his sword, aiming below Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s arms. He deeply cut Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s waist. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body quaked with pain. He turned his eyes up and down in agony.
Whiz¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong hastily turned his body and started running.
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t let him flee. He drew his sword across Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s back. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body shook again, but he clenched his teeth and ran. He ran towards the crowd of hundreds of awakeners. There was only one way to escape now.
¡°I have to take hostages!¡± Hwang Jun-peong thought.
Su-hyeun had arranged for the awakeners to evacuate civilians. Hwang Jun-peong could guess what kind of personality a man like that possessed.
¡°If I can grab hold of a hostage, I might be able to run away.¡±
Hwang Jun-peong reached his hand out to the closest people¡ªZhu In and the guild master of the Meta Guild. A violent temper flowed out from Hwang Jun-peong. Zhu In realized something was wrong.
¡°Run away!¡±
Rumble¡ª
Whoosh¡ª!
A translucent curtain formed around Zhu In. It pushed the other awakeners away from him.
People screamed.
¡°S-sir!¡±
As the others were pushed back, Zhu In strode forward.
¡°Please, I hope this works,¡± Zhu In thought.
He opened his hand towards Hwang Jun-peong. Wind gathered and spewed from Zhu In¡¯s hand. It was the same wind that had just pushed the others in the opposite direction.
Rip¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s nails were torn off by the air. Zhu In pushed his magic to the maximum level and shut his eyes.
¡°Please. Please.¡±
Nothing happened, and it seemed as if his wish hade true. Zhu In opened his eyes once more. He could see Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s back.
¡°I got you.¡±
Drip, drip¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s hand had pierced Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder. Su-hyeun grabbed Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s other arm. With a crunch, Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s arm was twisted.
¡°Argh...¡± Hwang Jun-peong moaned.
Hwang Jun-peong retracted his hand from Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder. Blood flowed from Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder, but he still moved as if he was fine.
¡°It¡¯s the same asst time.¡±
Thump¡ª
Su-hyeun kicked Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s leg while holding his arm. Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s knees started to shake and he fell to his knees. Due to the Dragonize skill, his body remained huge. So when he kneeled, his eyes were now level with Su-hyeun¡¯s.
¡°I know you¡¯re a coward, so I knew you would try to escape among the bystanders and take hostages.¡±
¡°God damn¡ª!¡±
As if it was a humiliation to kneel, Hwang Jun-peong tried to rise again. He stiffened his legs. Even if he was injured, he was still confident in his strength, because he had the power of a dragon. But...
¡°Don¡¯t get up.¡±
Thump¡ª
Gasp¡ª!
Su-hyeun pulled Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s arm down. Hwang Jun-peong tried to get up, but his upper body was pushed down. His body staggered.
Bam¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong knelt again. His upper body drooped, but he looked up Su-hyeun. Now, Su-hyeun was looking down on Hwang Jun-peong.
¡°I told you¡ª¡± Su-hyeun raised his sword, ¡°¡ªI will drag you down.¡±
¡°W-wait a minute!¡±
At that time, an urgent voice came from behind. It was from the guild master of the Meta Guild. There were other guild masters, too. The guild master of the Meta Guild strode towards Su-hyeun.
¡°I don¡¯t know what is going on, but you know who he is, right? If you have a personal grudge, solve it through conversation¡ª¡±
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun did not listen to her and swung his sword. Everybody became quiet once they witnessed the moment a thin red line was drawn across Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body.
¡°H-help...me...¡±
Hwang Jun-peong reached out to the many awakeners behind Su-hyeun. No. He tried to reach out.
Crack¡ª
Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body was cut in half and the two sides split apart. Su-hyeun turned around and looked at the awakeners who had tried to stop him.
¡°Sorry, I interrupted you before,¡± he said, ¡°What were you saying?¡±
There was nothing she could say anymore. Hwang Jun-peong was already dead. People could not believe that they had just witnessed the death of China¡¯s finest actor.
¡°I have a lot of questions,¡± Zhu In said to his rescuer.
He looked down at the dead body of Hwang Jun-peong. The Dragonize skill faded with his life, and his body began to revert to his original form.
¡°Don¡¯t you think you have a lot to exin?¡±
¡°Well...¡±
Su-hyeun scratched his head. Zhu In and the rest of the awakeners watched him with curiosity and wariness.
¡°I guess so,¡± Su-hyeun answered.
¡°I did it. Now how am I going to exin it?¡± he asked himself.
***
Purr, purr¡ª
Miru made a pleasant sound above Su-hyeun¡¯s head. Su-hyeun sat on a rock next to the remnants of the building. Zhu In had brought him a bandage, which Su-hyeun now applied to his shoulder. Su-hyeun had many minor injuries, but the biggest one was the prating wound in his shoulder.
¡°So, that dragon was your divine beast,¡± Zhu In said as Su-hyeun fixed the bandage.
Thump¡ª
Zhu In had wanted to talk with Su-hyeun alone, so he had convinced other guild masters to give them some time to themselves. Though some of the guild masters thought Su-hyeun was a terrorist responsible for the death of one of the world¡¯s finest actors.
¡°Ah, yes. His name is Miru.¡±
Su-hyeun nced at Zhu In¡¯s face, then focused on checking the bandage.
¡°Miru? What does it mean?¡±
¡°It means dragon in my country¡¯snguage.¡±
¡°Dragon? The dragon¡¯s name is Dragon? Ha-ha!¡± Zhu Inughed quite loudly as if Su-hyeun¡¯s answer was funny. Although it wasn¡¯t that funny. ¡°It¡¯s so weird.¡±
¡°What is?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°You were very scary just a few minutes ago. But now you look very gentle. You seem like apletely different person.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡±
Su-hyeun had heard that he looked different when he fought. So it was not an unusualment anymore.
¡°But what do you mean by ¡®my country¡¯? Are you from Korea? Japan? You look Korean...¡±
¡°Yes, I am Korean.¡±
¡°Wait. Are you...Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Su-hyeun asked back in surprise, ¡°How did you know?¡±
¡°Who else could be that strong yet that young? Though you were far stronger than I expected.¡±
He was right. In Korea, there were no young S-Rank awakeners like Su-hyeun. In fact, he was the youngest S-Rank awakener of all.
¡°I heard you were at war with the Dump Guild.¡±
That was a well-known fact.
¡°Was Hwang Jun-peong connected to the Dump Guild?¡±
¡°Yes.¡± Su-hyeun nced at Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s body, which hadn¡¯t been moved yet. ¡°He was the Dump Guild itself.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°He was the guild master. He created the Dump Guild.¡±
¡°...What?¡± Zhu In looked at Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s corpse with a startled face.
¡°He was an actor loved by people for his perfect performances. But he was also the guild master of Dump Guild?¡± thought Zhu In.
¡°Hwang Jun-peong had been working in Hollywood a lottely. He¡¯d turned many American guilds to his side, starting with Chloe of the Star Guild. And he created the Dump.¡±
¡°Then, the reason why the Dump Guild did not work in China¡ª¡±
¡°Because there were a lot of eyes on him. For Hwang Jun-peong, it was easier to operate in Hollywood.¡±
¡°Oh, wow.¡±
Zhu In didn¡¯t know whether to believe this or not. But Su-hyeun¡¯s story was quite convincing. Hwang Jun-peong had been hiding the fact that he was an awakener.
As one of the world¡¯s top actors, also being an awakener would have been seen as a premium. Yet the rage and madness that Hwang Jun-peong had shown were clearly different from what people knew of him.
¡°By the way, I forgot to tell you something,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Yes? Is there anything else left?¡±
¡°No, not really but¡ª¡± Su-hyeun tightened the bandage, then bowed his head toward Zhu In, ¡°¡ªThank you very much. Thanks to you guys, civilians were kept safe. Also, I¡¯m sorry I had lied to you.¡±
¡°Y-you have no reason to apologize. And we are the ones who should be thanking you.¡± Zhu In jumped out from his seat and shook Su-hyeun¡¯s hand. Then he sighed and sat down again. ¡°Well. I guess everything was solved even before I actually had the opportunity to talk with you.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°It¡¯s obvious that he was a viin, right?¡± Zhu In gestured at Hwang Jun-peong with his chin.
Su-hyeun smiled. ¡°He does look like that.¡±
¡°So what will you do now?¡± Zhu In asked. All the suspicions he had about Su-hyeun before now had beenpletely erased.
¡°I have to settle an affair first.¡±
The tallest building in Guangzhou had copsed, and Hwang Jun-peong was dead. Yet the war with the Dump Guild was not over yet. Even though Hwang Jun-peong was gone, the Dump still remained.
¡°Do you have a personal grudge against the Dump Guild?¡± Zhu In asked, looking up Su-hyeun as he rose.
¡°No, I don¡¯t.¡±
¡°Then why did you do this much? I know your intentions are good, but I honestly don¡¯t understand.¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t it something that someone should do anyway?¡±
¡°That doesn¡¯t exin why it has to be you.¡±
¡°Why should I wait for someone else to do it?¡±
Zhu In had no answer to Su-hyeun¡¯s retort.
¡°If I do nothing, the world won¡¯t change. It¡¯d be selfish to just wait for someone else to change the world for the better.¡±
Zhu In could not say anything in response to Su-hyeun¡¯s words. He was absolutely right, but there were not many people who would actually live up to that sentiment. Not even those who knew what was right.
¡°Thank you again. Then...¡± Su-hyeun bowed his head toward Zhu In and left.
¡°He is a hero. A real hero...¡± Zhu In murmured as he watched Su-hyeun depart.
Unlike others who could not live up to their ideals, Su-hyeun actually did the necessary work. Also, he had the power and cause to do it. At first nce, it might seem like an easy decision, but it was actually more difficult than anything else. There were many people with strong power, but few used it correctly. Zhu In bowed his head in shame. He thought that one day, Su-hyeun would be known to everyone as a hero.
Chapter 101
Chapter 101: Chapter 101
Hwang Jun-peong was dead.
The tallest skyscraper in Guangzhou, the C&D building, copsed from the battle between two people, no less.
One of them was none other than Hwang Jun-peong. The world was stunned to learn the truth of him being an awakener possessing abilities exceeding regr S-Ranks. They were also shocked at the fact that there was no other casualty beside him during this incident.
¡°It was all thanks to the steps Kim Su-hyeun had taken beforehand. We merely took action after he asked us for our help, that¡¯s all.¡±
This was from an interview with Zhu In, the master of the Great Wall Guild.
¡°At the very least, he never made us suspect him as a criminal, someone belonging to the Dump Guild. No, it was Hwang Jun-peong who attacked me, instead.¡±
¡°Are you saying that the actor Hwang Jun-peong was a Dump Guild member?¡± the reporter asked.
¡°No, not exactly, but if you ask me to choose between the two, then yes, I think Hwang Jun-peong was indeed more likely someone from the Dump Guild. Even Kim Su-hyeun said something simr to that effect, as well.¡±
¡°Are you saying that you believe the words of Kim Su-hyeun over the actor Hwang Jun-peong?¡±
¡°Rather than believing who over who, I¡¯m simply looking at the avable information objectively to make my decision. Kim Su-hyeun had been on a warpath against the Dump Guild already, and most importantly, those directly involved in the Beijing disaster all pointed Hwang Jun-peong as the culprit, as well. The series of events so far...¡±
Beep¡ª
Now back on Korean soil, Su-hyeun turned the TV off. Hak-joon, who was sitting in front of him, stopped eating and asked, ¡°How did you take care of the aftermath?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t. I just ran away. Thankfully, no one tried to stop me.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s reply was met with another question from Hak-joon, this time sounding worried. ¡°Won¡¯t be it a problemter down the line?¡±
¡°They have nothing to suspect me with. If they had no clue, fine, but just digging through Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s past alone would reveal his ties to the Dump Guild sooner rather thanter. Also, there were eyewitnesses.¡±
¡°Eyewitnesses?¡±
¡°You heard what that guy said on TV just now, right? I¡¯m talking about the awakeners who survived the Beijing disaster. Sure, that guy might have used a skill to change his appearance, but they have testified that Hwang Jun-peong was the disaster¡¯s main culprit.¡±
He was trying to say that he made his move because he had a n.
Hak-joon initially thought that Su-hyeun stepped up without one, seeminglypletely out of whim, but thetter had given this a lot of thought beforehand from the looks of things.
¡°In that case, why did you run away?¡±
¡°Staying behind and getting involved in the investigation would have been super annoying, that¡¯s why. I mean, we have other people willing to testify for me over there anyway, so do I really need to stay back and waste my time?¡±
If there was one thing that might prove to be a problem, it¡¯d be the owner of the building, the XX Group, demandingpensation for their losses, but as far as that part was concerned, all sorts of stories were doing the rounds at the moment.
¡°As for thepensation for the damaged building, I¡¯m sure they will seize Hwang Jun-peong¡¯s private assets and deal with that. If it¡¯s not enough, the Chinese authorities will probably pay for the rest.¡±
¡°....Bro, you¡¯re surprisingly a lot smarter than you look.¡±
¡°What, you thought I was a moron?¡±
¡°Haha, no way.¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s chopsticks began moving again. As they returned to their meal, Su-hyeun suddenly pulled his phone out and confirmed the date once more.
July. In the middle of a hot, stuffy summer.
<>
...A huge event took ce. He couldn¡¯t participate in the past, but now, he had more than enough qualifications.
Riiiing¡ª
While he was confirming the date, the phone started ringing. Since he was already holding the device anyway, Su-hyeun didn¡¯t hesitate and brought it close to his ear.
¡°What do you want?¡±
¡°What kind of a greeting is that?¡±
It was Ji-yeon.
¡°Stick to the business at hand. International calls can be very expensive.¡±
¡°You¡¯ve got a ton of money, so what¡¯s with your Scrooge attitude? And besides, I¡¯m the one paying for the call here. The caller¡¯s responsible for the payment, don¡¯t you know that?¡±
¡°In any case, aren¡¯t youing back soon?¡±
¡°Plenty of Dump Guild remnants are still hiding on this side.¡±
¡°Those bastards. I¡¯m sure it¡¯s not going to be easy to smoke them out after they all went underground.¡±
¡°Well, this is the only thing remaining that I can do, after you went and offed Hwang Jun-peong all by yourself.¡±
Just what had happened between her and them? Her grudge against the Dump Guild didn¡¯t seem to be over yet.
From the way she spoke, it looked as if she was nning topletely erase all traces of the Dump Guild ¡ª not just what was revealed to the surface, but the roots and even the vestiges, too.
<>
The ¡°root¡± called Hwang Jun-peong had already been exposed.
Just by digging through his past movements alone, you¡¯d be able to reveal which guilds were connected to the Dump in no time at all. When that time came, they should be able topletely erase any and all remaining hidden vestiges of the Dump Guild once and for all.
<>
Whatever the case might have been, she was basically doing what Su-hyeun was supposed to be doing, anyway. So, he didn¡¯t n on stopping her, nor was there a reason to do so.
¡°Okay, so. What do you want?¡±
¡°I wanted to share a really interesting piece of news, that¡¯s what.¡±
¡°What is it?¡±
¡°You know who Gordon Rohan is, right?¡±
What an obvious question that was.
He was a man often considered America¡¯s ¡ª no, the world¡¯s ¡ª best awakener. Surely no living awakener didn¡¯t know that man¡¯s name by now.
¡°He proposed for an event to be held. He¡¯s calling it the Ranking Wars, and it¡¯s causing a huge stir on this side.¡±
¡°Already?¡±
¡°...What do you mean, already?¡±
His unexpected reaction prompted Ji-yeon to ask him for a rification.
Su-hyeun got flustered by what he said reflexively and hurriedly tried to change the topic. ¡°N-no, well. I mean, the current state of affairs is really chaotic, so I was wondering, why an event now? I was just puzzled, is all.¡±
¡°It seems like the argument is an event like this is even more necessary precisely because of what¡¯s been happeningtely. Need something to change the moods or some such, apparently. I¡¯ve heard that he can be a bit entric, so I guess the rumors were true.¡±
For sure, there was a rumor like that in the past, too. However, Su-hyeun¡¯s current thoughts were slightly different.
<>
That didn¡¯t seem likely.
The Ranking Wars. That event also took ce in the previous life Su-hyeun remembered. However, it happened much further into the future.
¡°He wants to gather all the rank S Awakeners of the world in one spot and let them fight to establish a pecking order. Although, participation is voluntary... I¡¯m pretty sure the people will call the one who wins this thing the best of the best. Wouldn¡¯t you agree?¡±
Back then, thepetition was held so that Gordon Rohan could prove himself to be the strongest in the world.
¡°When is it supposed to take ce?¡±
¡°At the end of this year. December.¡±
As he suspected, the timing had been brought a little closer than he remembered.
Su-hyeun replied with a satisfied smile on his face. ¡°Okay.¡±
This was for the better, actually. He now got a chance to take care of an annoying event as soon as possible.
¡°I¡¯ll remember it.¡±
What a relief it was, knowing that he wouldn¡¯t get the dates all mixed up now. Su-hyeun then ended the phone call with Ji-yeon.
¡°What was that about?¡± Hak-joon asked. And after hearing about the new of the Ranking Wars, he began forming a really excited expression. ¡°D-does that mean even I can participate?¡±
¡°I think you¡¯ll have to be an S-Rank first to qualify, though. Don¡¯t you think it¡¯ll be difficult?¡±
¡°There¡¯s still half a year left, right?¡±
Tap!
Hak-joon put down the chopsticks and spoke up. ¡°That¡¯ll be enough for me.¡±
Despite his meal not being finished yet, he shot up from his chair. Now that was quite an enthusiastic response; Su-hyeun stared Hak-joon¡¯s back as thetter left through the front door.
<>
As a matter of fact, Su-hyeun had been thinking that the events in America had affected Hak-joon in some ways. But now that he was presented with a defined time table to work with, thetter seemed to have found a goal for himself to achieve.
<>
Things had been brought a lot closer than he was initially expecting. Su-hyeun stood up from his spot and quickly cleaned the dining table. He also felt rather impatient for some reason.
<>
The third hurdle was waiting right before his eyes.
Act 7
Step¡ª
Su-hyeun stepped into the world of the 30th floor.
It had been a while since hest stepped inside the Tower of Trials, and the streets here felt rather empty for some reason. Boiling heat could be felting from both the ground as well as from above at the same time.
¡°Fuu-woo¡ª¡±
The city glowed red-hot everywhere.
The city that all awakeners chose as their number one spot never to stay behind was the 30th floor¡¯s world.
Not only did the buildings forming the part of the cityscape all crafted out of rocks give off this stuffy feeling, but it was also unbearably hot here as well. On top of this, the personalities of the indigenous poption were also known to be quite temperamental, too.
<>
He was doing nothing but standing around, yet his back was already soaked in sweat. He was using magical energy to block out the heat, but that didn¡¯t mean he could drape his body in magic indefinitely.
Leaving this city as soon as possible was the smart thing to do.
Step, step¡ª
Right in the center of the city.
A person wearing torn rags was sitting in front of the statue of a goddess. Su-hyeun walked towards this person.
The gatekeeper raised his head. He quietly stared at Su-hyeun before extending his hand. ¡°Money.¡±
They always wanted the exact same thing.
Su-hyeun grabbed the offered hand.
[100,000 Achievement points have been spent.]
The gatekeeper¡¯s expression shifted.
Signs of surprise spread all over that dirty, sooty face. It seemed that Su-hyeun was the first one to unhesitantly spend that much achievement points in one go.
¡°Is it tenth level?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
The gatekeeper would offer better hints ording to the amount of achievement points received. One hundred thousand points were pretty sizeable price to pay. However, as the difficulty was so high, Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t expect to hear a detailed hint at all.
The gatekeeper pondering for a little while finally opened his mouth. ¡°Which one do you want?¡±
¡°Excuse me?¡±
¡°The hint that will let you pass the trial, and a hint that will let you earn even bigger rewards. Which of the two do you want?¡±
To think that a gatekeeper would offer up different types of hints. Now this would be a first.
Su-hyeun pondered it for a bit, but his dilemma didn¡¯tst long. ¡°The bigger rewards.¡±
¡°I knew you¡¯d say that.¡±
The gatekeeper toothily smiled, his yellowing teeth fully on disy, at Su-hyeun¡¯re reply. It seemed that he liked the answer.
He then gave Su-hyeun the hint. Thetter was quite surprised by how detailed the method was.
¡°Now, hurry up and go. I¡¯ll be watching you with great expectation, so don¡¯t you dare disappoint me.¡±
Tap¡ª
The gatekeeper lightly tapped Su-hyeun¡¯s leg once and lowered his head again.
A gatekeeper that lowered his head like this would not raise it again. You could only talk to him when getting the hints by paying the points. That was it.
That was why people didn¡¯t know anything about these gatekeepers.
¡°Thank you very much.¡±
Su-hyeun bowed his head at the gatekeeper and walked in front of the goddess statue.
Wuu-ooong¡ª
[Applicable individual, Kim Su-hyeun. Will you start the trial now?]
What an obvious question to ask.
¡°I will.¡±
Along with his answer, Su-hyeun¡¯s figure became blurry.
* * *
Swhoosh, tumble, roar¡ª
As his vision returned to him bit by bit, the first thing he got to hear was the sounds of the ocean waves.
Waves crashed into the bedrock and created rather refreshing-sounding noises. It felt so good to face cool breezes from the ocean after standing in a really hot ce a few moments ago.
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes caught the sight of a vast, expansive ocean.
[30th floor¡¯s trial will nowmence.]
[An ind nation, Moros has been rocked by a cmity.]
[For the past few years, dark magicians began showing up before this small nation of Moros. With a poption of several tens of thousands, Moros is also known as the World of Magicians.]
[Because the cmity of the oceans, Ouroboros, has been summoned by the dark magicians, Moros has no choice but to offer a sacrifice of ten people every month.]
What he needed to do, or what the goal of the trial was, was not mentioned.
This was not his assignment, but merely the backdrop of the trial itself. He was simply being informed of what kind of stage he was currently standing on.
<>
The harder the trial was, the moremon it was to see no detailed exnations being offered on the trial¡¯s objectives. And this trial was precisely that. It seemed that there were plenty of things for him to discover first.
Whoooosh¡ª
The cooling breeze blew past him once more.
¡°At least it feels nice.¡±
The wide-open sea, the clear blue sky above. It didn¡¯t seem like a bad idea to stand here for a while and enjoy the vista of the ocean like this.
Ruuumble¡ª
It was right then that he sensed the suspicious movement of somethinging from beneath the ocean waves.
Something was hiding in the distance.
Su-hyeun quickly took a step back. This was no time to leisurely enjoy the sights and sounds of the ocean, unfortunately.
<>
Ruuumble¡ª
Ku-gugugugu¡ª
The ocean bucked and writhed wildly as something enormous broke the surface and rose high up above.
Ki-aaaaaaah¡ª!
Its screech was so massive that the entire skies were shaking.
It was a gigantic snake with a body extending for several kilometers.
<>
The bastard had leaped up above the ocean.
Chapter 102
Chapter 102: Chapter 102
Just the monster¡¯s width alone must¡¯ve been dozens of meters thick. It was so big, in fact, he had to question whether one could even legitimately call that thing a snake or not.
Something that big was more than enough topare to a dragon of a certain maturity.
Ka-booom¡ª!
Ouroboros raised its head above the ocean¡¯s surface before diving back under the water. When it briefly revealed itself, the monster was definitely staring at Su-hyeun.
<>
The tenth level trial. Not only that, but it was the third hurdle, too.
Su-hyeun wondered if that was to show him the difficulty level of this trial being this harsh or something to that effect.
For sure, it would not be strange to get scared by that. Some might even start thinking, ¡°What is anyone expected to do against a snake that huge¡±?
However...
<>
Su-hyeun put the ocean behind him and began walking away.
<>
Fafnir was neither a dragon nor a human. The strongest, worst monster that Su-hyeun had ever faced.
That b*stard was far, far smaller than Ouroboros in physical size. However, if one asked him which of the two was ¡°bigger,¡± then Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t even hesitate and choose Fafnir.
Compared to that creature, this gigantic Ouroboros was nothing more than amon pet snake.
¡°Well, then.¡±
Step¡ª
¡°Should I take a look at what kind of ind this is?¡±
* * *
Once he made his way out of the ind¡¯s outskirts and into the deeper parts, huge ramparts soon caught his eye.
The walls, crafted out of solid steel, seemed to easily exceed 50 meters in height.
Not a single gap was visible anywhere, and the rampart came across as a literal steel fortress.
<>
Su-hyeun recalled the first part of the trial¡¯s description and made his way to the bottom of the wall. It was then he heard a voiceing from the top of the rampart. The voice contained magical energy, so despite the distance, he could hear it quite clearly.
¡°Halt! Identify yourself!¡±
Su-hyeun stopped walking and looked up.
Two soldiers on the rampart¡¯s railings were looking down at where he was.
¡°I¡¯m lost! The ocean swept me up and brought me to this ce! May I ask for your assistance?¡±
The soldiers seemed a bit unconvinced by Su-hyeun¡¯s reply.
The two soldiers chatted with each other for a little while before one of them jumped down to the ground.
Whoooosh¡ª
The soldier rode on the winds and made a gentlending. This person was kitted out in full armor, but rather than a sword-brandishing warrior, he looked far closer to being a magician.
When Su-hyeun took a closer look, this soldier didn¡¯t even carry any weapons, let alone a single sword.
¡°You were swept in by the ocean?¡±
His eyes were filled with suspicion. But then again, with the state of the ocean surrounding the ind being what it was, trusting a stranger would be understandably difficult at the moment.
¡°When I came to, I was standing before your fortress,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Are you telling us the truth?¡±
¡°I also saw the monster living in the sea. But yes, I¡¯m being honest.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s reply didn¡¯t manage to ease the soldier¡¯s suspicious gaze.
It was then that the other soldier came down to the ground and started talking as well. ¡°Well, yesterday was the day of sacrifice, so Ouroboros¡¯s appetite could¡¯ve been weakened enough.¡±
¡°Is that so? Well..it¡¯s not important how he got here, after all.¡±
¡°Still, not anyone can waltz into this city. If you wish to enter, you need to prove this one thing.¡±
¡°What could that be?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°This here is the city of magicians. If you want to enter it, then you....¡±
Rumble¡ª
The mouths of the two soldiers were mped shut.
There was a small me appearing above Su-hyeun¡¯s palm. They could sense magical energy from it.
¡°I see that you at least know the basics.¡±
One of the soldiers shrugged his shoulders and walked over to the rampart.
Gigigigigik¡ª
When the soldier ced his hand on a palm-shaped engraving at the foot of the rampart, the fortress gate began noisily opening up.
¡°Do remember one thing. This is Moros. The city of magicians, the dream of magicians.¡± Magical energy wiggled and spread out everywhere from the body of the soldier ring at Su-hyeun. ¡°I don¡¯t care what kind of a man you were beforeing here, but I pray that by some chance, you don¡¯t happen to harbor any impure intentions and decide to act upon it during your stay. But, if you do...¡±
¡°You can rest easy. Nothing much will happen.¡±
¡°...Sure. I shall hope for that, too.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s rxed reply, the soldier waved his hand around.
Su-hyeun strode into the wide-open fortress gate. The two soldiers were still keeping their eyes locked on his back.
<>
Even though they were worried about such things, they still allowed him inside the city. That was probably due to this city¡¯s regtion.
The regtion said anyone with the qualifications of a magician would be admitted inside the city; that was why this ce was called the city of magicians.
<>
What an interesting ce it was.
Magicians. He had run into this bunch of people plenty of times before during the countless trials he had experienced. He was well aware of how fastidious and odd they could be.
Su-hyeun made his way inside the gates and his eyes caught many people going about their daily business on the streets. Every single one of them was supposed to be a magician.
It was quite hard to believe.
Gya-ohk, gya-oh-ohk¡ª!
Kkak, kka-gahk¡ª!
Divine beasts sporting strange outer appearances were flying above the heads of a few people here and there ¡ª a bird with its body lit up in mes or a blue-colored horse trotting in the air.
As they were magicians, it seemed that quite a few even managed to tame divine beasts, as well.
¡°Hey, Miru.¡±
Gi-iiing¡ª
Gya-ohng¡ª!
Miru tore the air and emerged from the subspace, and as soon as he was free, began rubbing his head on Su-hyeun¡¯s cheek. He must¡¯ve been overjoyed to step outside.
¡°Sorry about that. I think it¡¯ll be fine for you to stay outside while we¡¯re in this ce.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª!
Su-hyeun was worried about the off-chance that someone would mistake Miru for a monster and attack, so he couldn¡¯t afford to bring him out too often, but at the very least, he believed no such thing would happen inside this city.
Gurung, gururung¡ª
Su-hyeun ced Miru on top of his head and continued to walk down the street.
He sensed the people¡¯s passing nces. When he took a casual look, it turned out that his own attire differed a lot from everyone else¡¯s.
<>
It was still hard to grasp the overall mood of the people living in this ce. One thing was for certain, though ¡ª this city was quite different from a regr one.
Rather than meat or vegetables, the market ce sold strange-looking potions and corpses of monsters instead. Potential shoppers looked at them with interest or dipped their fingers in the potions to have a taste.
Without a doubt, this was a very strange ce.
<>
ording to the trial¡¯s description, sacrifices had to be served up to Ouroboros once every month.
A city that used people as sacrifices. Certain aspects of it were simr to the tenth floor¡¯s trial. So, he thought that the city¡¯s overall vibe would obviously be gloomy.
But for some reason, people here seemed to be filled with vitality. He couldn¡¯t tell whether that was down to the special trait of them all being magicians, or because of some other hidden factor.
<>
That was a fairly long period of time.
ording to what the soldiers guarding the gate were saying, it was only yesterday that sacrifices were served up to Ouroboros.
Tap, tap¡ª
It was then that someone lightly tapped Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder from behind.
He turned his head. An old man with a white beard and hunchback was looking up at him.
¡°Is this your first time in the city?¡± the old man asked.
¡°How did you know?¡±
No matter how long you lived in a city, it¡¯d still be impossible to memorize the faces of tens of thousands of people.
The old man chuckled at Su-hyeun¡¯s stunned expression, and offered his exnation. ¡°It¡¯s easy to guess since you were looking around with such mystified eyes. And also, I¡¯m a native of these parts, you see. A man I¡¯ve never seen before that behaves like you will make me think that you¡¯re a neer who arrived only today.¡±
The old man then shifted his gaze over to Miru resting on top of Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
¡°Actually, what I was curious about is this young dragon hatchling.¡±
¡°You mean, Miru?¡±
¡°Is that the dragon¡¯s name? What does it mean?¡±
¡°It means ¡®dragon¡¯ in the country I¡¯m from.¡±
¡°Well, that¡¯s one hell of an insincere naming sense, that.¡±
Su-hyeun felt his guilty conscience flinch a little. Since he no longer wanted to discuss Miru¡¯s name at length, he quickly changed the topic. ¡°You said you were curious about something. May I ask regarding what exactly?¡±
¡°This child doesn¡¯t seem like a regr dragon, that¡¯s why. Well, it¡¯s true that the divine beasts called dragons are considerably rare species toe across to begin with...¡±
¡°Do you know anything about Miru?¡±
¡°Would you like to apany me to my home? The thing is, my memories aren¡¯t as good as they used to be. Besides, you don¡¯t look like you have a particr location you have to go to, anyway. I live alone, which can get quite lonesome.¡±
This was an unexpected boon.
Su-hyeun needed to find lodging anyway, but he had no money on him. Not only that, but he began thinking that maybe, he might get to learn more about Miru at the same time.
There didn¡¯t seem to be anything to lose with the offer. So, Su-hyeun nodded his head. ¡°In that case, I¡¯ll be in your care.¡±
¡°Follow me.¡±
Su-hyeun walked after the old man.
The man, in his advanced age with his bent back, turned out to be quite a slow walker. However, he seemed to be a natural-born chatterbox and started exining this and that regarding the city of magicians, which meant the trip proved to be rather educational.
They reached the old man¡¯s residence after 20 minutes of walking and it turned out to be the biggest house in the vicinity.
The house even had a pretty sizeable front garden, too. The old man opened the gate leading to the garden and spoke up. ¡°Now that I think about it, I haven¡¯t told you my name yet. I¡¯m Malcolm.¡±
¡°I¡¯m Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim...what? Your name is more strange than Miru.¡±
Malcolm mouthed Su-hyeun¡¯s name several times while walking into the house.
The first thing to greet Su-hyeun when he entered the house was the wide foyer plus the tall ceiling. The living room beyond the foyer was lined up with bookcases filled with literally thousands of books.
¡°If you aren¡¯t feeling too tired, why don¡¯t you put your luggage downter and head on to the basement with me? That¡¯s where my study is.¡±
¡°Then, what¡¯s all this?¡±
¡°These books? They are the ones I check out whenever I feel bored, actually. All the books for research are stored in the basement.¡±
To think that these many books were just there to ease his boredom. The majority of magicians were supposedly bookworms, and Malcolm seemed to be cut from the same cloth.
They entered a door to the side of the living room that revealed the staircase leading to the basement. Malcolm then created a small lick of me in his hand.
¡°It¡¯s dark downstairs, so watch your step.¡±
Creak, creaaak¡ª
The basement study was located pretty deep underground. Once they reached the bottom of the staircase, Malcolm lightly snapped his fingers.
Snap¡ª!
Rumble¡ª
At the same time, mes illuminated the basement study.
It was so wide and expansive that its end couldn¡¯t even be seen. Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t normally get surprised by any old thing but still, he couldn¡¯t help but look on with his eyes almost bulging out of their sockets.
<>
Instead of a private study, this ce was more like a public library in its sheer scale alone.
The old man surely couldn¡¯t have read every single book found in here, right? At the very least, there seemed to be well over tens of thousands of books.
Gya-ong, gya-oh-ong¡ª
It was then that Miru cried while looking in a certain direction.
Su-hyeun watched Malcolm walk towards the center of the study before turning towards the direction of Miru¡¯s cry.
¡°Now let¡¯s see, it must¡¯ve been here somewhere....¡±
Malcolm pulled out a book and blew the dust on top of it before nodding his head. ¡°So, that¡¯s where you were.¡±
He smiled in satisfaction and turned around. However, Su-hyeun, who should¡¯ve been following him, wasn¡¯t there.
¡°...Mm? Did he get lost?¡±
¡°No, I¡¯m over here.¡±
The direction where the young man¡¯s voice came from rmed Malcolm. He hurriedly moved his bent back and walked over there.
Su-hyeun could be seen reading a book he had pulled out from the bookcase. No, more specifically, he was looking at a drawing.
How did he even locate that book?
Malcolm, eyes searching, urgently raised his voice. ¡°N-now look, that book is...¡±
¡°Sir, I was already aware that you were a dark magician,¡± said Su-hyeun, his eyes staying locked on the book¡¯s pages. ¡°Still, I didn¡¯t expect you to be the one who had summoned Ouroboros.¡±
Chapter 103
Chapter 103: Chapter 103
Su-hyeun flipped through the pages.
Just what could he be thinking of?
Malcolm kept his mouth shut and observed Su-hyeun. However, there wasn¡¯t even a hint of change in thetter¡¯s eyes as he continued to peruse the contents of the book.
¡°How did you...find that tome?¡± Malcolm asked.
¡°Miru brought it to my attention.¡±
¡°Your Miru did?¡± Malcolm released a long sigh at Su-hyeun¡¯s reply. ¡°A red dragon is a formidable creature, indeed. Just what kind of godly powers does it possess....¡±
¡°A red dragon? What do you mean?¡± Su-hyeun closed the book and shifted his gaze over to Malcolm who was busy shaking his head in resignation.
¡°That¡¯s not really the important point at this moment, is it?¡±
¡°If that¡¯s not it, then what is?¡±
¡°Ouroboros. I¡¯m the...¡±
¡°Oh, that. Well, we can talk about thatter.¡±
Honestly speaking, it didn¡¯t really matter to Su-hyeun who had summoned Ouroboros.
This trial wasn¡¯t about discovering the culprit behind the summoning of that gigantic monster snake. Of course, he didn¡¯t believe for one second that him running into Malcolm like this was purely a coincidence.
<>
Even the so-called divine beast expert Song Hyeong-gi had no idea what kind of creature Miru was. Su-hyeun might not get another chance to acquire solid info on Miru if he missed this one. So, information rted to his dragon was top priority that lorded over everything else.
¡°What a strange man you are. No, wait. Could it be because you don¡¯t know what kind of an existence Ouroboros is?¡±
Malcolm could only smile bitterly while looking at Su-hyeun.
Thetter smiled awkwardly and ced the book back in its original spot. ¡°Whatever the case may be, I¡¯d like to apologize for stealing a nce at the book without your permission. I¡¯ll make sure to never do it again in the future.¡±
¡°No, it¡¯s fine. There are so many books here, so if none of them had caught your eye, that would have been even more strange. In any case, let¡¯s discuss thatter and follow me for the time being.¡±
Malcolm led Su-hyeun out of the basement. After leaving the book-and-dust filled study, they stepped back into the spotless living room.
Malcolm brought out a boiling pot of tea. Su-hyeun lifted up the teacup and took a small sip. The tea tasted pretty good.
¡°...You¡¯re a strange fellow, indeed,¡± Malcolm murmured.
¡°Regarding what, exactly?¡±
¡°Maybe you don¡¯t know anything about dark magicians? Or, maybe you¡¯re slightly challenged in the head? No, wait. You don¡¯t look like such a person, so...¡±
¡°Are you trying to say something like ¡®I might have mixed in some poison in your tea?¡¯¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. Exactly that.¡±
¡°You don¡¯t seem to be that sort of a person, sir. Besides, I¡¯m certain that you wouldn¡¯t resort to such a petty trick, either.¡±
¡°A trick?¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t believe that one of the problems he¡¯d face during the 30th floor¡¯s trial would be a mere poisonced teacup. Of course, he was confident of detoxifying himself if there really was poison involved, and besides, he was immune to most poisons, anyway.
¡°Well, there are some things like that. I think I need to say this out loud before we start....¡± Su-hyeun put the teacup down for a bit and spoke up. ¡°I¡¯m not a prejudiced person that thinks of every dark magician I see as a viin, so you don¡¯t have to be so wary of me. Sir, you¡¯re the master of this house, after all.¡±
He didn¡¯t seem to be on his guard.
Malcolm had been somewhat mindful of the overall mood until then, but what Su-hyeun said must¡¯ve settled his nerves a little, because he picked up his own teacup and sat down on the couch opposite to his guest.
¡°I¡¯m grateful for you saying that.¡±
The old man took a sip of the tea he had brewed. He felt his mind mellowing a little as the slightly bitter taste circted within his mouth. Malcolm then put the teacup down and pushed forward the book he brought out from the basement study. ¡°This here is the book rted to your Miru.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª?
Miru stared at the giant dragon on the book¡¯s cover and tilted its head as if to ask, ¡°Is that guy me?¡±
¡°What book is this, exactly?¡±
Besides it being a book about dragons, nothing else could be gleaned from its cover.
Malcolm heard Su-hyeun¡¯s question and began flipping the book¡¯s pages one by one. ¡°It¡¯s a tome about different colors of dragons.¡±
¡°Colors?¡±
¡°Dragons aremonly known as the creatures at the very top of all divine beasts. But the truth is, they are also divided into different sses. This tome exins that difference via their coloring.¡±
The different sses of dragons. For sure, Su-hyeun was quite curious about this subject. Back then, the blue dragon Song Hyeong-gi summoned bowed its head to the newly-hatched Miru, didn¡¯t it?
¡°If you use the coloring to denote different sses, what would the ss of a blue dragon be?¡± Su-hyeun asked while thinking about Song Hyeong-gi¡¯s blue dragon.
Malcolm opened the front half of the book after hearing that question. ¡°A blue dragon. It¡¯s a ss just above the bottom-most color, purple. And it¡¯s also the color with the highest number of individuals among dragons, too. ording to the tome, that is.¡±
¡°The purple color is at the bottom?¡±
It was theplete opposite to the dungeon¡¯s ssification. Unlike how the highest-difficulty dungeon was purple in color, the purple dragons belonged to the lowest ss.
In that case...
¡°Could it be that the red dragon belongs to the highest ss?¡±
¡°Indeed.¡±
Malcolm went to thest pages of the book. Unlike how it was with other dragon colors, the recorded descriptions for red dragons only amounted to a handful of pages.
¡°The red dragon. Estimated to be the highest ss of dragons.¡±
¡°Estimated?¡±
¡°It says even this author, who dedicated his entire life to researching dragons, had not heard about the discovery of a red dragon nor a record of its sightings. However, by looking at the coloring of the dragons discovered so far, ¡®red¡¯ is estimated to be the highest ss. Or so it says.¡±
It was fairly easy to see why the written records were so scant. It couldn¡¯t be helped as red dragons hadn¡¯t even been discovered until now.
¡°Well, that¡¯s as far as I can tell you regarding this subject. If you wish, you can take this tome with you.¡±
Malcolm pushed the book towards Su-hyeun. He must¡¯ve figured that Su-hyeun needed this book of dragons far more than himself.
Su-hyeun hurriedly waved his hands and replied. ¡°No. Thank you for the offer, but I¡¯m fine.¡±
¡°Really? Aren¡¯t you interested?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not that, but....¡±
If he wanted to take the book away, he needed the Property of Dimension order form. He might have already stashed a handful away just in case, but he didn¡¯t think there was a pressing need to bring the book out of here.
¡°It¡¯ll be fine for me to read it during what I believe will be a brief stay here, sir. I should be conscious of how much I¡¯m inconveniencing you, after all.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡±
Malcolm chuckled and stood back up while straightening his bent back.
¡°You can use any one of the unused rooms found on the second floor. Oh, and the rooms should be quite clean, too. I¡¯ll have the bed installed by this evening.¡±
¡°Sir.¡±
¡°Mm?¡± Malcolm turned around at Su-hyeun¡¯s call.
Still sitting on the couch while lifting up his teacup, Su-hyeun asked, ¡°May I ask why you¡¯re being so nice to me?¡±
Malcolm remained silent for a long while after hearing the question. But then, he bit down on his parched lip couple of times and turned around to leave while finally breaking the silence. ¡°...You should rest up. I¡¯m also feeling exhausted.¡±
Malcolm¡¯s footsteps rang hollowly within therge living room.
Su-hyeun sipped on the rest of his tea while observing the back of the old man climbing up the staircase.
Growl, gururung¡ª
He then addressed the oblivious-to-everything Miru sitting on top of his head growling away in happiness.
¡°Pretty suspicious. Right?¡±
Gurung¡ª
Unsurprisingly, there was no answer.
Su-hyeun quickly took away the teacups, and picked up the book Malcolm left behind on the table.
The time period was one month. He had quite a lot of time left to kill. He thought that more than likely, his stay here wouldn¡¯t be boring at all.
The house Malcolm lived in all by himself was quiterge in size.
Su-hyeun chose one of the unupied rooms to stay in. For the next two days, he didn¡¯t go outside the residence and simply focused himself on reading books.
Although he had never seen thenguage before,prehending it didn¡¯t prove to be a challenge. It seemed that Su-hyeun had been perceived as a resident of this world, and all the issues rted tonguage, such asmunication, were taken care of in that manner.
Knock, knock¡ª
¡°It¡¯s time to eat.¡±
Malcolm¡¯s voice came from outside the door.
Su-hyeun closed the book. He had been reading non-stop for the past two days. It was the first time in this life not moving his body to such an extent.
Creaaak¡ª
He opened the door and exited to find Malcolm waiting for him.
The two men wordlessly headed to the dining room. Miru pped its wings and followed after Su-hyeun. Bowls of soups and freshly-baked bread were waiting for them in the dining room.
¡°Have you finished reading?¡± When Su-hyeun didn¡¯t bring a book with him, Malcolm asked out of curiosity.
In thest two days, Su-hyeun even read the book during the mealtimes. But seeing how he didn¡¯t bring it with him, Malcolm assumed that the former had finished the book.
¡°Yes. I¡¯ll put the book back in the study.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. I¡¯ll take care of that.¡±
Malcolm lightly waved his hand and dipped the bread in the soup. Su-hyeun stared at the old man before digging into his own meal.
For the past two days, Malcolm treated him so well that it came across as a bit excessive.
¡°...I¡¯m nning to go outside today and meet with other dark magicians.¡±
Clink¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s words caused Malcolm¡¯s spoon to make a sharp noise as it collided with the bowl.
The old man raised his head and looked at Su-hyeun. Thetter continued to speak while getting through his share of the soup. ¡°I¡¯ve grown rather curious about the people of this city, you see.¡±
¡°But why does it have to be the dark magicians?¡±
¡°For the past two days, I....¡± Su-hyeun hesitated slightly, before continuing on. ¡°I¡¯ve also read the book rted to Ouroboros in the study as well.¡±
With that, he put the spoon down on the bowl.
Malcolm¡¯s lips were trembling greatly. In the end, he dropped the spoon and stood up from the chair. He then covered his mouth as if to hold back the urge to vomit, and turned around. ¡°That was my fault.¡±
¡°Your fault, is it?¡± Su-hyeun closed his eyes.
With this, he was sure of it now. It felt like the question stuck in the corner of his mind was beginning to get untangled just a little.
¡°Once I¡¯m finished with my meal, I¡¯ll directly head over there.¡±
¡°Do you have to meet with them?¡±
¡°Yes. It¡¯s a must.¡±
It didn¡¯t feel good to reject a favor from Malcolm, a man who had been very hospitable to him until now.
¡°My apologies.¡±
¡°Regarding what?¡±
¡°Actually, I was suspicious of your hospitality, sir. That¡¯s why I had to read the book in secret.¡± Su-hyeun deeply bowed his head towards Malcolm. ¡°I¡¯m truly sorry.¡±
¡°You won¡¯t listen to me even if I try to stop you, yes?¡±
¡°Correct, sir.¡±
Malcolm quietly stared at Su-hyeun for a little while, then replied as he left the dining room. ¡°No. It is I who should apologize.¡±
ck¡ª
He was now left alone in therge dining room to finish his meal. But the rage in his heart continued to boil over.
Squeeze¡ª
The spoon gripped in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand was then bent out of shape.
Act 8
Su-hyeun had finally left the residence after two days of stay and hurriedly walked on the streets.
His sense of direction was considered to be pretty good, but he still struggled to locate the dark magicians. From the get-go, the number of dark magicians residing in Moros was far lower than regr magicians.
After wandering around the city for two solid hours, Su-hyeun finally located the small ¡°vige¡± where the dark magicians were residing. This was the result of wandering around blindly, trying totch onto the traces left behind the dark magicians¡¯ magical energy.
¡°Hey, Miru.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª?
Miru tilted its head seemingly out of puzzlement when Su-hyeun¡¯s walking speed grew faster and faster. His voice calling out to the dragon sounded ominous as well.
¡°What did daddy say about dealing with bad people?¡±
Gya-ong, gya-oh-ong¡ª!
¡°That¡¯s right. I said that for bad people...¡±
Smack¡ª!
When his fist smacked into the open palm of his other hand, a crisp sound resounded out.
¡°...A medicine called a beatdown is the best cure.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª!
Miru energetically replied and nodded its head several times before shutting its mouth tightly to look as heroically solemn as possible.
Su-hyeun continued to walk ording to the directions a passing-by magician taught him and finally reached a vige emitting a gloomy atmosphere. Even at a casual nce, it looked exactly like the type of ce that dark magicians would call home.
¡°Let¡¯s go, MIru.¡±
Su-hyeun strode towards the vige of dark magicians with even faster steps.
¡°Time to discipline some bad guys.¡±
Chapter 104
Chapter 104: Chapter 104
Creaak, creeaaak¡ª
Thud¡ª
A group of people had gathered inside a shady wooden house: a slumped person snoring away softly, a foolishly grinning person nodding their head in sleepiness, a person utterly sagging on a rocking chair.
Among them, the man sitting on the rocking chair raised his smoking pipe and muttered, ¡°Even this is getting too weak.¡±
The man puffed and sucked in a lungful of smoke.
Another man next to him heard that and extended his hand. ¡°We don¡¯t have much more of the stronger stuff left, you know. Just be patient and smoke it.¡±
¡°In that case, you can just bring out whatever is remaining, no?¡±
¡°If you keep thirsting for more stimting stuff, even this will be like water to you soon. Now is too early.¡±
Two men shared the pipe and took turns to smoke it. The ground below was peppered with simr-looking pipes and herbs.
Every single one of these people was a dark magician.
¡°Even this is getting way too boring.¡±
They wanted something just a bit more stimting.
Even thebination of drugs, booze, and women now felt like something was missing, somewhere. And they thought they knew what that missing thing was.
¡°People dying is still the most entertaining thing.¡±
¡°Ha.¡±
¡°Hahaha.¡±
The muttering from the man in the rocking chair, Calvin, caused cacklingughter to break out from the men slumped and sagging like corpses around this ce. They all thought the same as him.
Calvin heard others chuckling out at what he said, and chuckled softly himself as well. ¡°It was so cool yesterday, wasn¡¯t it? Those fools chosen as sacrifices.... They were sobbing and pleading for their lives so much that I thought I¡¯d die of pity for them.¡±
¡°You remember the wife of that b*stard? Busy saying she¡¯ll die in his stead, pleading with us to let her die.... Man, I thought I might shed a single tear for her.¡±
¡°Why didn¡¯t you die for her, then?¡±
¡°What, you think I¡¯m mad? What about you, then?¡±
¡°I was thoroughly enjoying the view.¡±
¡°Insane son of a b*tch, hahaha.¡±
¡°You talking about yourself?¡±
¡°Morons, pu-hahaha!¡±
A loud sea ofughter instantly flooded the house filled with a group ofnguid men.
Creaaak¡ª
It was then that the firmly-shut door was pushed open and the sunlight from the outside poured in. Theughter gradually died at the unexpected arrival of a guest, and everyone¡¯s gaze was focused on him.
The ¡°guest¡± opening the door to step inside strode brazenly to the middle of the room.
A man lying near the entrance frowned deeply as if the sunlight entering through the wide-open doorway irritated his eyes.
¡°Hey, who the hell are you?¡±
They had never seen their guest before. He was even wearing armor as if he wasn¡¯t a native of this city. There was a red dragon perched upon his head, too.
Grrrr, grrrrr¡ª
The dragon bared its fangs and growled at them.
The dark magicians lounging around began raising their upper torsos up one by one. They had to, as a dragon was baring its fangs at them in a clear disy of hostility.
¡°Who the hell is this son of a....¡±
¡°Hey. This is the vige of the dark magicians, right?¡± the guest asked.
Plop¡ª
Su-hyeun strode into the room and sat on an empty rocking chair.
Creak, creaak¡ª
The rocking chair creaked noisily as if it¡¯d break at any second. The dark magicians red daggers at Su-hyeun barging into their housepletely unannounced.
It was Calvin in the opposing rocking chair who decided speak up for the rest. ¡°Looks like this is the guest who entered our city a couple of days ago.¡±
¡°Ah, now that I think about it...¡±
¡°Right. There was supposed to be a lucky sod who haddy fortune smile on him and made his way alive to this ce.¡±
¡°You f*ck, you think that¡¯s being lucky?¡±
¡°You¡¯re right. He¡¯s about to die soon, anyway.¡±
Su-hyeun scanned the dark magicians cackling away, their object of ridicule being him. In the middle of that, he spotted a tobo pipe rolling around on the floor and picked it up. A familiar stench stabbed him in the nose. ¡°Hallucinogens...tobosced with narcotics, I see.¡±
¡°Uh? You know what that is, too?¡± Calvin shook around the pipe in his hand. ¡°This crap, it really makes you fly, man. You should try it. You gonna love this stuff.¡±
¡°Hey, man. You want to give him that?¡±
¡°Leave him be. He¡¯s going to die in a month anyway, so we should at least let him enjoy little pleasures of life like this.¡±
¡°You said we don¡¯t even have enough for us to smoke, though?¡±
¡°Hahaha. Let him have a puff. We let him enjoy it a few times and prevent him from smoking it again. Don¡¯t you think the resulting reaction will be fun to watch?¡±
They busily mocked andughed at Su-hyeun.
They didn¡¯t seem to hold a single lick of suspicion or wariness at the unannounced arrival of the guest. No, they simply thought of him as a source of entertainment, nothing more.
Su-hyeun looked around and took a whiff of this ce. The house was filled with stench of drugs and booze. It didn¡¯t take a genius to figure out what type of men these losers were.
¡°I¡¯ve something to ask you lot,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Hey, that asswipe is still talking, man.¡±
¡°No, wait for it. Don¡¯t make the punk scared, man.¡±
Su-hyeun ignored all the useless mutteringsing from here and there, and shifted his gaze over to Calvin. Even at a casual nce, one could tell that this guy was the top dog here.
¡°Do you know Sir Malcolm?¡±
¡°...What did you say?¡±
¡°Malcolm?¡±
¡°Did he just say Malcolm?¡±
The surroundings grew noisy once more.
However, this mor was different in nature than the previous one. The voices previously mocking andughing at Su-hyeun now took on the distinctive mixture of shock and wariness.
¡°How the hell do you know that geezer?¡± Calvin, buried in the rocking chair until then, finally stood up and asked.
However, that question caused Su-hyeun¡¯s brows to furrow deeply. ¡°He is not a geezer, but...¡±
Gu-wuwuwu¡ª
¡°...A ¡®sir¡¯ to you.¡±
¡°W-what the hell??¡±
¡°This son of a....¡±
The magical energy flooding out from Su-hyeun¡¯s body began oppressing the surroundings. The house might have been small, but it was a house nevertheless. Once it started shaking viciously, other dark magicians luxuriating in theirnguidness all hurriedly woke up.
Creaaak¡ª!
Bang¡ª!
At the same time, the half-opened door was mmed shut tightly.
Su-hyeun continued on while ring at Calvin. ¡°Judging from your reactions, I don¡¯t need to hear your replies anymore. Why don¡¯t you tell me this, instead? For what reason did Sir Malcolm perform research on Ouroboros?¡±
Cold sweat began trickling down on Calvin¡¯s forehead as his eyes remained caught in Su-hyeun¡¯s re. For some reason, holding thetter¡¯s gaze made the former¡¯s legs lose their strength. He initially med the drugs in his system, but that didn¡¯t seem to be the problem.
¡°What the hell is he yapping on about?¡±
¡°I was getting bored anyway, so this is actually for the best. Calvin, let¡¯s just kill this b*stard right here. Why wait a month, eh?¡±
¡°Oh, that sounds like a great idea.¡±
The reactions from the surroundingrades caused Calvin to scream in his head.
<>
His voice didn¡¯t want toe out.
Calvin could only bob his lips up and down, and urgently shift his eyes this way and that. Unfortunately, hisrades had all stood up by then.
¡°How predictable. Then again, behaving this way naturallyes to your lot, doesn¡¯t it?¡± Su-hyeun got up from the rocking chair and unsheathed the sword tied to his waist. ¡°I¡¯m leaving only one alive. Got that?¡±
¡°This arrogant son of a....¡±
¡°Kill him!¡±
Pah-ahhk¡ª
Chwa-rururuk¡ª
A dozen plus dark magicians holed up inside the house began moving at the same time.
¡°Miru.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª
[Acquired the divine dragon¡¯s blessing.]
[Movement speed has increased.]
[Strength has increased slightly.]
[Resistance against magic has increased.]
[Magical energy is....]
Su-hyeun¡¯s body grew a level lighter.
While standing straight in his spot, he shifted his gaze and quickly scanned his entire vicinity. ck chains and balls of mes were raining down, while curses meant to slow Su-hyeun down followed right after them.
Swiiiish¡ª
Su-hyeun spun around and swung his sword in a wide arc.
Ssh¡ª!
The thick chains were sliced apart, while the magic spells fired by the dark magicians scattered in the air. Magical attacksunched by a dozen-plus dark magicians had been instantly rendered useless.
¡°A sword...?¡±
¡°This b*stard! He was a swordsman?¡±
They felt only half convinced when Su-hyeun first unsheathed his sword, but after he took a swing with it, the dark magicians couldn¡¯t help but be utterly shocked by the truth.
This was the city of magicians, Moros. If you were not a magician, you couldn¡¯t enter here. Even then, a swordsman had managed to enter the city.
¡°A swordsman, you say?¡±
Boom!
¡°Aaaaahk¡ª!¡±
Su-hyeun snapped his fingers, causing the face of the nearest dark magician to burst into mes. He stared at the burning dark magician rolling around on the floor before shifting his re back to his surroundings and formed a smirk. ¡°Technically, you aren¡¯t wrong.¡±
¡°M-magic?¡±
¡°A magic swordsman?¡±
¡°I-is that even possible?¡±
A magic swordsman. It was originally a term to denote a person proficient at both magic and swords, someone who had familiarized themselves with the ways of both disciplines. However, the word lost its true meaning and turned into a derogatory term mocking the so-called jack of all trades who didn¡¯t possess talents for either discipline and decided to try both.
¡°G*ddammit, what the hell is this magic swordsman crap, anyway?¡±
¡°Kill the b*stard!¡±
Wudududuk¡ª
Kwa-aaaht¡ª
The magic from the dark magicians set upon Su-hyeun once more. He turned around nonchntly and addressed Miru still perched upon his head. ¡°I¡¯ll leave the rear to you.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª
Miru replied in a dependable tone of voice. The dragon had be rather reliable these days. Su-hyeun stopped paying attention to his rear and took a step forward.
Kwa-aaaah¡ª!
His figure was soon sucked into the tsunami wave of dark magical powers. The dark magicians began crying out in excitement.
¡°That¡¯s what I¡¯m talking about!¡±
¡°Busy acting tough and all. That¡¯s a good way to...¡±
Pah-jeeeck, pah-sususu¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s silhouette was revealed once more after the dark magical energy dissipated.
[Indomitable body.]
[Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor.]
¡°You see, ever since the beginning...¡±
Step, step¡ª
Su-hyeun walked towards the dark magicians in a rxed gait. ¡°...I¡¯ve always been a bad match-up for you, the magicians.¡±
He didn¡¯t really have a need to evade their attacks. Their spells couldn¡¯t really break through the magic resistance Su-hyeun possessed, after all.
The magical attacks by the dark magicians felt like little insect bites after his innate magical resistance was reinforced by the powers of his skill as well as the Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor.
¡°That¡¯s why punks like you just don¡¯t scare me.¡± Su-hyeun took a nce behind him and continued on. ¡°And there¡¯s no need to even mention that guy, too.¡±
[Breath.]
Kwaaaah¡ª!
Miru¡¯s Breathpletely swept away the dark magicians on the other side. Although not that big in scale, the power behind it was more than enough.
In the blink of an eye, half of the dark magicians were taken care of. The remaining magicians, including Calvin, couldn¡¯t easily make a move and simply stayed in their spots.
¡°S-soon, others will hear themotion and show up here! Even if you¡¯re strong, what can only one guy do?¡± Calvin looked as if he was having a seizure while threatening Su-hyeun. He knew that they couldn¡¯t do anything to their aggressor with the abilities they currently possessed.
However, these weren¡¯t all of the dark magicians.
For instance, the moment Su-hyeun left this house, he¡¯d be greeted by the group of dark magicians with a number several times higher than what was in here.
¡°Tell them toe, then.¡±
Pik, pipik¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword cut off the heads of the dark magicians in sequence, with the sole exception of Calvin¡¯s.
¡°Because I¡¯ll cut every single one of them down.¡±
¡°You son of a...¡±
Warning bells were going off inside Calvin¡¯s head.
He couldn¡¯t even see how Su-hyeun¡¯s sword moved just now. It was true that more dark magicians were outside the house, but now he began thinking that their numbers wouldn¡¯t be enough after all.
¡°What¡¯s going on?¡±
¡°Looks like a fight has broken out?¡±
Calvin could sense the other dark magicians getting closer one by one after they detected something off about the house. Too bad he couldn¡¯t celebrate this development at all.
<>
Calvin nervously gulped down his saliva. He needed to prevent them froming inside.
While cold sweat trickled down his face, he asked a question. ¡°W-what is it that you want?¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t you hear my question earlier?¡±
¡°You wish to know more about Malcolm?¡±
¡°It¡¯s Sir. Don¡¯t forget to add that. If you insist on being rude one more time, I¡¯ll just go and ask someone else.¡±
That implied Su-hyeun would simply kill Calvin off and find someone else.
In the end, thetter had to resign himself. He took a look at the still-alive dark magicians in the near vicinity and opened his mouth. ¡°For now...why don¡¯t we ask the guys outside to go away first?¡±
¡°Calvin!¡±
¡°Hey man, what are you...!¡±
¡°Shut up!¡± Calvin shot a murderous re at the nearby dark magicians and continued on. ¡°If you want to die, fine, be my guest. I¡¯ve no desire to die like a dog here.¡±
Calvin¡¯s words caused the surroundings to be silent.
Thinking that perhaps his words might get through, he nced at Su-hyeun before turning around. ¡°For now, allow me to...¡±
Bang¨C!
¡°Calvin! What happened here??¡±
The closed door was kicked open, and the ck robe-wearing dark magicians began pouring into the house from the outside. They discovered all the corpses strewn about the ce and formed stunned expressions.
¡°What kind of amotion is this?¡±
¡°They are all dead?¡±
Dozens of dark magicians alternated their gazes between Su-hyeun and Calvin. The former observed thetter¡¯s cowardly expression and simply shrugged his shoulders.
¡°Toote.¡±
Chapter 105 - Chapter 105
Chapter 105: Chapter 105
Drip, drip, drip¡ª
With a small wooden house as the epicenter, corpses were strewn about in every direction.
Calvin¡¯s expression as he stared at the chopped-up and burnt bodies was one of pure stupefaction. Without even realizing it, he had sunk down to his knees.
He couldn¡¯t tell how long it had been, either.
<>
Su-hyeun did say this ¡ª that he was the natural enemy of the magicians.
When Calvin first heard that, he couldn¡¯t quite grasp the concept. He simply figured that the attacker was confident of his defense against magic, and that was about it.
But that man, he was telling the truth.
Magic didn¡¯t work on Su-hyeun. He ignored the spells that didn¡¯t possess any physical form and continued to cut down the dark magicians.
Unsurprisingly, the gathered dark magicians all ran away from there in an instant. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t chase after them, however. And that¡¯s why Calvin thought about escaping as well, but couldn¡¯t actually do it.
If he did, then he might really get killed off.
¡°Shall we start our conversation again?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Creaaak¡ª
He sat down on the sole remaining rocking chair found inside thepletely destroyed house. It was also the same chair that he sat on when he first came here, too.
Calvin found it quite remarkable that a lone chair managed to escape unharmed from what had transpired just now, and at the same time, it gave him the creeps. He wondered whether Su-hyeun had deliberately left it alone or not.
¡°First, tell me everything you know about him,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°W-when you say him, you mean Malcolm...¡±
¡°It¡¯s ¡®Sir¡¯ Malcolm.¡±
¡°Y-yes, yes.¡±
Half-out of his mind now, Calvin turned towards Su-hyeun while still on his knees. He racked his brain, trying to figure just where he should start and eventually opened his mouth. ¡°Malcolm... Sir Malcolm, he¡¯s more like a schr rather than a true dark magician.¡±
¡°A schr?¡±
¡°Y-yes. Rather than learning and mastering magic spells, he researches them. In reality, although he is a magician, you can¡¯t really call him one.¡±
¡°Well, yeah. He did look that way.¡±
The amount of magical energy that could be senseding from Malcolm was indeed quite insignificant. So, that assertion wasn¡¯t entirely wrong.
¡°However, Sir Malcolm as a schr is someone more than worthy enough to be recorded in the history books. That¡¯s why he was admitted to this city in the first ce, too.¡±
¡°Okay, so?¡±
¡°As far as I know, the reason why Sir Malcolm came to this city was to perform research on the divine beasts.¡±
¡°Divine beasts?¡±
¡°Yes, divine beasts. Demonic beasts as well. To perform research rted to them.¡±
Su-hyeun had been wondering why there were so many divine beast-rted books in the basement study, but that seemed to be the reason.
¡°Was it really Sir Malcolm who summoned Ouroboros?¡± Su-hyeun asked another question.
¡°N-no, it¡¯s not. He doesn¡¯t have the ability to do so.¡±
¡°Then who did it?¡±
¡°Sir Malcolm only told us of the method. It was the dark magicians of this city that summoned the demonic beast, Ouroboros.¡±
¡°That was my mistake.¡±
***
Su-hyeun thought he could hear Malcolm¡¯s voice ¡ª the voice filled with powerful self-torturing regret and guilt. The reason for that was precisely this.
¡°What¡¯s the reason for sacrificing people to Ouroboros?¡±
¡°E-excuse me?¡± Calvin sounded flustered by Su-hyeun¡¯s question. It seemed that he had no idea thetter knew about that fact. ¡°C-could it be that... You have heard about it already?¡±
¡°Of course. How could I not when you lot have been yapping on so loudly about it?¡±
Earlier on, he heard what Calvin and the other dark magicians were noisily going on about through the slightly ajar door of the house: people being served up as sacrifices to Ouroboros, and the dark magicians using that as their source of entertainment and cackling away.
Su-hyeun barely managed to suppress the sick feeling welling up inside of him back then.
¡°Hurry up and speak. What¡¯s the reason for sacrificing people to Ouroboros? If you take your time with your answers, from now on I will...¡±
¡°It-it¡¯s to appease Ouroboros!¡±
¡°Appease? Appease what exactly?¡±
¡°Its appetite....¡±
Su-hyeun deeply furrowed his brows at Calvin¡¯s reply. Something didn¡¯t feel quite right with that answer. ¡°Are you telling me that the appetite of such a humongous creature can be satisfied by feeding it just a few people?¡±
¡°Specifically, not its appetite but its sense of satisfaction. Satisfaction that it...had eaten humans.¡±
¡°You should¡¯ve said that from the start. Trying to confuse me and all.¡±
¡°M-my apologies.¡±
¡°Okay, so? Why did Sir Malcolm teach your group the method to summon Ouroboros? And why did you go ahead and summon that bastard?¡±
¡°That is....¡±
Calvin ended up hesitating with his reply.
Wu-du-duk¡ª!
¡°Kkeuh-aaaaaaahk!¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s foot stomped on Calvin¡¯s knee. Now subjected to the pain of his kneecap being crushed to bits, thetter struggled in vain to remove the former¡¯s foot while screaming out loudly.
¡°I-I¡¯ll-I¡¯ll answer you! Please!¡±
Su-hyeun took his foot away at Calvin¡¯s seizure-like screaming. The smart thing to do when handing out a troublesome question was to not give the opponent time to formte an answer.
¡°Kkeuh-euh....¡±
¡°You have three seconds. Three, two....¡±
¡°It-it was to protect the city!¡±
Su-hyeun stared straight at Calvin after hearing that reply. He needed a bit more exnation than that.
¡°Be more specific.¡±
¡°An empire across the sea was aiming for Moros. It was the worst crisis to fall upon Moros in its entire history.¡±
¡°Oh, so the reason for Ouroboros¡¯s summoning was to protect Moros from the invasion of this empire?¡±
In order to reach Moros, an ind nation, you had no choice but to cross the vast ocean. The empire failed to get past the giant snake of the oceans, Ouroboros, and eventually gave up on the invasion of Moros.
That was the end of Calvin¡¯s exnation.
¡°Is that really everything?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°T-that is...¡±
Calvin disyed yet another hint of hesitation at Su-hyeun¡¯s pointed question.
Right then, Su-hyeun¡¯s foot was raised up, prompting Calvin to urgently open his mouth. ¡°That-that was the reason for Sir Malcolm¡¯s decision to summon Ouroboros.¡±
¡°You said it ¡®was¡¯, which means....?¡±
¡°It-it was all a lie.¡±
Calvin replied and squeezed his eyes shut.
Su-hyeun would¡¯ve learned about it eventually if Malcolm decided to open up, anyway. So, Calvin decided toe clean about everything. ¡°What you heard just now...was a lie to coax the method to summon Ouroboros out from Sir Malcolm.¡±
¡°So, the real purpose of summoning Ouroboros is?¡±
¡°It was in order for us to survive in this city.¡±
¡°Did someone try to kill you all?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s question, Calvin¡¯s head dropped and he began clenching his teeth. ¡°We, the dark magicians, had been discriminated against for the past several centuries.¡±
¡°Discriminated?¡±
¡°Yes! Discrimination! People pointed their fingers at us, saying we¡¯re dirty, that we¡¯re the followers of an evil discipline, and they always despised us. People who exalted you with sparkling eyes if you were a magician were now hating you for being a dark magician!¡±
¡°...So what?¡±
¡°Excuse me?¡±
¡°Okay, so. Who makes up the sacrifices served up to Ouroboros? The dark magicians or the regr magicians who discriminated and despised you lot?¡±
Calvin shut his mouth immediately.
The answer was too obvious. Su-hyeun simply tutted at Calvin¡¯s silence. ¡°I can understand why you lot were discriminated against and despised now. All of you are like a stinking pile of mold.¡±
Su-hyeun lowered himself and extended his hand towards Calvin¡¯s chest.
¡°W-what are you trying to...!¡±
Pow¡ª!
¡°Keo-eok!¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s palm urately mmed into Calvin¡¯s chest. Thetter¡¯s jaw dropped and his waist bent in half from the impact force reverberating throughout his entire body.
Wuduk, wududuk¡ª
Calvin¡¯s body then began to contort in an abnormal manner. He writhed in sheer, unbridled pain and eventually, screamed out. ¡°Keuh, keuh-aaaaaah!¡±
¡°The magical circuits of you dark magicians can easily go out of whack even from the smallest impact,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Ah-ahck, aaaahk!¡±
¡°You probably won¡¯t be able to use magical energy for the rest of your life. Obviously, you should kiss goodbye to this shell of a magician, too. Since you answered my questions, I won¡¯t kill you. However...¡± Su-hyeun disapprovingly stared at Calvin before turning around. ¡°You don¡¯t have the qualifications to wield that power.¡±
He then walked over to the corner of the copsed house. Miru, sitting there waiting for him, unfurled its wings and flew up to perchfortably on Su-hyeun¡¯s head once more.
Calvin stared at the distancing back of Su-hyeun, his head shooting up high. This pain tearing through his entire body just didn¡¯t want to let him go.
¡°Euh, euh.... Euh, euh, euh....¡±
Within this intense pain, Calvin tried to rouse his magical energy.
However, he couldn¡¯t sense a single lick of magical energy that used to fill up his body. The crippling sense of loss as if he had lost a portion of his limb, no, as if he had lost his identity itself, took over.
He had been living his entire life as a dark magician.
¡°Heuh-euh....¡±
Calvin nted his head on the ground.
A magician who lost his ability to wield magic couldn¡¯t live in this city anymore.
* * *
Su-hyeun headed back to Malcolm¡¯s residence.
Before he reached the house, though, he took a look at the state of his body. Thankfully, blood didn¡¯t stter onto his clothes.
Knock, knock¡ª
¡°Sir, I¡¯ve returned.¡±
He knocked on the gate leading to the residence¡¯s front garden, and a short whileter, it opened.
Malcolm was tending to the garden, his bent back lowered even further.
¡°You¡¯re back?¡± Malcolm discovered Su-hyeun and with quick steps, walked closer and scanned thetter from top to bottom. ¡°Are you injured anywhere? Those people didn¡¯t try to harm you?¡±
¡°No, I¡¯m fine, sir.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª!
Miru energetically replied as if to say ¡°No need to worry!¡±
Malcolm breathed a sigh of relief. It seemed that their subjects of worry were not in sync, but Su-hyeun didn¡¯t try to correct the older man.
¡°What a relief it is. Truly.¡±
¡°Sir.¡±
Su-hyeun held Malcolm¡¯s aged, wrinkled hand and asked. ¡°Sir, why do you treat me so well?¡±
¡°What are you talking about out of the blue? That¡¯s obviously...¡±
¡°Is it because you feel sorry?¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s next question, Malcolm chose to swallow back his words and turned his head away. He didn¡¯t seem to be panicking. He probably was thinking that Su-hyeun must¡¯ve heard many stories from the dark magicians by now.
¡°Why don¡¯t we go for a short walk?¡± Malcolm suggested.
¡°Alright.¡±
Su-hyeun matched Malcolm¡¯s walking speed and strode alongside him.
Thetter, walking on in silence for a while, finally spoke up in a small voice. ¡°Once every month, Moros sacrifices ten people to Ouroboros.¡±
¡°Yes, I¡¯m aware of that.¡±
¡°And when an outsider enters the city, that person will be prioritized as the sacrifice. It¡¯s to protect one more magician of the city.¡± Malcolm lowered his head. ¡°To outsiders, this city is like an antlion pit. And...it is I who turned this city into what it is now.¡±
¡°Is that why you¡¯re being so nice to me?¡±
¡°I¡¯m truly sorry. I really am. I¡¯d have urged you to escape from here if you can, but...¡± Malcolm shifted his gaze over to the tall distant ramparts. ¡°But, if you do that, you¡¯d lose the freedom of this one month, instead.¡±
¡°Those walls, they...¡±
¡°They weren¡¯t built to keep people out.¡± Malcolm shook his head. ¡°No, they are meant to keep you in.¡±
And here was the reason why Su-hyeun was allowed in so easily without his identity being confirmed.
Malcolm must¡¯ve felt guilty about it because he couldn¡¯t face Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes anymore. He seemed to be feeling guilty about not being truthful from the beginning, and also for causing the current state of Moros, as well.
<>
It felt like he was now seeing the true nature of this city called Moros.
It was like quicksand in a desert, where you could never escape once you stepped inside and continuously got sucked in even deeper till you died.
What an amusing ce this was. He needed quite a while to figure out the theme and the background of the trial this time.
It was a trial where the clear goal or the specific objective wasn¡¯t even set in stone. Most likely, the achievement rate and whether he passed or failed the trial would be judged on what he did in the city and what resulted from his actions.
In that case, uncovering the background of the trial was not only the basic thing to do, but it was also the most important objective.
But this...
<>
Su-hyeun smirked after confirming the outline of the trial slowly revealing itself.
<>
Chapter 106
Chapter 106: Chapter 106
Act 9
The huge mansion was lit up by luxurious lights. There was arge living room with a high ceiling where some men with crumpled faces were talking.
¡°What happened?¡±
¡°Sir, the dark magicians of the lower vige have died. Well, except for Calvin. The whole vige is covered in their blood.¡±
Upon hearing his subordinate¡¯s report, Roman crumpled his face with anger.
¡°Which bastard killed them?¡±
¡°We are not sure about that.¡±
¡°What do you mean you are not sure?¡±
¡°There were signs that magic was used, but some of the bodies had stab wounds made from a sword. Therefore, I think there was more than one person responsible for their deaths.¡±
¡°Some sort of group then?¡±
¡°It didn¡¯t look like a big group killed them. I think two or three people might be responsible.¡±
¡°Two or three...¡±
Roman took a sip of the strong liquor he had ced on the table. He felt a burning sensation in his throat and started to calm down a little.
¡°Did you say there were injuries made from a sword?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Huh. A swordsman, not a wizard...¡±
Calvin and the dark magicians in the lower vige were the least skilled of their kind. However, about 100 of them were living there. Unlike the old saying, ¡°There is strength in numbers,¡± the number of magicians in the vige didn¡¯t matter. They all died anyway.
¡°Wait. Didn¡¯t you say there was a new visitor in town a few days ago?¡±
¡°Yes, I did.¡±
¡°Is he possibly the one who wielded the sword? As you know, we don¡¯t have any swordsman residing in our town.¡±
¡°But a swordsman can¡¯t just enter the town either.¡±
¡°But all visitors are intended to be sacrificed. So, it doesn¡¯t matter if he or she is a wizard or a swordsman, because they would be allowed entry either way.¡±
¡°Do you...think that¡¯s true?¡±
Roman¡¯s subordinate had some doubts and scratched his head. In all of their history, they never allowed a non-magician entrance into Moros. The magicians of Moros City took pride in this strict policy.
¡°Just find the perpetrators first. You can go and look for witnesses or track the magic that remains there.¡±
¡°What will you do when you find them?¡±
¡°After we find them, we must kill them. Even if the residents in the vige were killed, nobody can touch us because we are the strongest dark magicians.¡±
Others had despised the dark magicians for a long time. Therefore, they had developed strong ties amongst one another. Compared to the general magicians, who usually valued individualism, they were just a little better because no one cared for each other like the dark magicians.
¡°More than anything, if people start to look down on us, we are done. For now, people are quiet because we have Ouroboros to intimidate them...¡± Roman clenched his teeth and jumped out of his seat. ¡°We can¡¯t go back to how it was like in the old days.¡±
Thump, thump¡ª
Roman walked along the hallway of the mansion. The disaster in the small vige gave him an ominous feeling. He could not sit still anymore.
***
Su-hyeun looked at the wall that was in the distance. It was the high wall surrounding the great town.
Malcolm came up to Su-hyeun and said, ¡°If you want to run away, I will help you.¡±
Su-hyeun looked back at him. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say nobody can run away?¡±
¡°I did, because even if you go over the wall, you will be surrounded by the sea. This ce is an ind.¡±
¡°And Ouroboros is in the sea.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Knowing that, will you still help me?¡±
Malcolm nodded heavily. ¡°If that is what you want. Helping you will be my duty.¡±
Su-hyeun seemed to be aware that he would be a sacrifice. Therefore, Malcolm thought that Su-hyeun was looking at the wall because he was trying to escape.
¡°Sitting down and waiting for death is not my thing,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Then¡ª¡±
¡°I don¡¯t need your help.¡± Su-hyeun stopped leaning against the wall and started to walk off. ¡°I will be back.¡±
Malcolm did not stop him, but he watched him walk away with a sorry look. Su-hyeun walked out of Malcolm¡¯s house and looked around at the magicians on the street.
¡®I have 27 days left.¡¯
It was the time he had left until he would be a sacrifice for Ouroboros.
¡®I have enough time.¡¯
It was not long ago that the dark magicians appeared in Moros. They had been hiding in the shadows of the city. However, after they gained control of Ouroboros, they gained control over the town as well.
In reality, the dark magicians weren¡¯t very powerful. Nevertheless, other magicians had no choice but to leave them alone because of the existence of Ouroboros.
¡®Here they are.¡¯
Su-hyeun stared at dozens of dark magicians who wore ck robes in the middle of the street. They were walking around and asking magicians questions as if they were looking for someone.
It seemed that they were questioning everyone because of the mess that Su-hyeun had made in the lower vige of the dark magicians. He jammed on the hat that he took from Malcolm¡¯s house and hid in the crowd. He began to follow the dark magicians while in disguise.
***
¡°Damn it!¡±
Roman, who was very annoyed, kicked a small stone on the street. The dark magicians gathered around Roman in a secluded area in the alley.
¡°How has no one seen anything?¡± Roman shouted.
¡°Should we search through Malcolm¡¯s house?¡±
Roman turned his head and red in his subordinate¡¯s eyes.
¡°Are you insane? I told you! Do not mess with him! What are you going to do if he became crazy and decided to kill everyone?¡±
¡°Y-you are right...¡±
¡°No one knows about Ouroboros better than he does. For the sake of keeping control over Ouroboros, we must not get on Malcolm¡¯s nerves. Do you understand?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sorry, sir. I did not think straight.¡±
¡°You idiot.¡±
Even though Roman rebuked him, he understood why he asked that question. It was hard to find any clues anywhere. The magicians were usually by themselves, and they did not look around thoroughly.
¡®Calvin, that bastard, is disabled.¡¯
Calvin, the only survivor, was not in a state of being able to answer questions.
¡°Is something not going well?¡±
Thump, thump¡ª
A quiet, young man¡¯s voice was heard down the alley. The dark magicians turned their heads to the direction that the voice came from.
¡°Who is he?¡±
¡°I¡¯ve never seen him before.¡±
¡°Is he on our side? Does anybody know him?¡±
The man was wearing a robe and pulled his hat over his eyes. They could not tell if he was a dark magician or just an ordinary magician. However, one thing was certain. Nobody knew who he was.
¡°I am sure all of you know me.¡± Su-hyeun took off the round hat on his head and dropped the robe to the ground. ¡°I am the one you are all looking for.¡±
¡°Swordsman?¡±
¡°Is he...?¡±
When Su-hyeun took off his robe, they could all see the sheath on his waist area. The dark magicians stared in surprise. The man who they were looking for brought himself to them.
¡°Get that bastard!¡± He shook his finger at Su-hyeun and yelled as he grasped the situation.
¡°Wait.¡± Su-hyeun raised his hands and said, ¡°I¡¯m not here to fight. Calm down and let¡¯s talk.¡±
¡°Bullshit.¡±
Roman had no intention of talking to Su-hyeun. He was an enemy who had killed many of the dark magicians.
Swish¡ª
nk¡ª
Whoosh¡ª
The dark magicians released their dark magic upon Su-hyeun. The ck magic came from them like a tsunami as they released a curse on him that attempted to tie up his body. ck mes and lightning strikes were dealt to Su-hyeun as well. Roman licked his lips in dissatisfaction.
¡°Did we kill him too easily?¡±
¡®Even if we did kill him, we could mutte his body. That way, we could show an example to other people to not disturb us.¡¯
Just then, they heard a sound.
¡°That one hurts a little.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Roman was surprised when he heard Su-hyeun¡¯s voice emerge from the ck mes. He supposed to burn to death or should have turned to ash, but he was standing before them without a mark on his body.
¡°How...?¡±
¡°I guess you are all not ready to talk yet...¡± Su-hyeun thought for a moment. He nodded and said, ¡°Hey, Miru.¡±
Gya-ong¡ª!
A cry came from above. At that moment, the dark magicians lifted their heads.
¡°Silence.¡±
Miru, who was flying over the sky, cried out. Then the sound from the dragon disappeared. When no sound was heard, the dark magicians raised their heads in surprise. They were never aware that a small dragon had been flying above their heads.
¡®Silence magic?¡¯
Roman looked around in surprise. Silence magic was a form of space magic that muted sounds. It was not unusual for a divine beast to deal with magic. A top-ranking ss divine beast, like a dragon, could easily use Silence magic. However, Roman was confused as to why Su-hyeun had used this form of magic. It would have been better for him to attack the dark magicians before they noticed the dragon.
The dark magicians opened their mouths to shout something, but no sound left from them. The Silence magic was muting them from talking to one another. There was also no sound made from the unsheathing of the sword. At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s body quickly disappeared without a sound.
¡®Where did he go?¡¯
He was directly in front of them but still managed to disappear. Since they could not hear any sound, they could not anticipate his location. Since they were unsure of his whereabouts, they began to fear that Su-hyeun¡¯s sword could attack them at any moment. Roman hurriedly raised his hand to reverse the silence spells around him.
sh¡ª
He felt a burning sensation around his neck. Roman hurriedly touched his neck in surprise. The blood came out when he moved his hand away.
¡®When...?¡¯
When Roman looked around, other dark magicians also were bleeding from their necks just as he was.
Woosh¡ª
Thump¡ª
Just then, the sound of the wind came loudly, and Roman could feel Su-hyeun right behind him.
¡°If I was going to kill you, you would be dead already.¡±
At the words of Su-hyeun, Roman looked around at the bloody, red lines on the necks of the dark magicians. This man, during this short time, cut all their necks with a sword. The wound was not deep, but even a fool would know that if Se-hyeun wanted to, their heads would have been cut off by now. That would have been easy for him. It is actually harder to make such a shallow cut as he has just done to them.
¡°I could still kill you if I wanted to right now.¡±
Roman looked at Su-hyeun and held his breath. No one spoke easily. The Silence magic was gone, but it was very quiet as if the magic was still keeping them all, except for Su-hyeun, mute.
¡°I think we¡¯re ready to talk then.¡± Su-hyeun grinned with satisfaction and nodded.
¡®Talk?¡¯
Roman¡¯s face was pale as he shook his head. A conversation with a sword to his neck could not be called a conversation. This was an act of intimidation.
Chapter 107
Chapter 107: Chapter 107
Dozens of dark magicians were standing in the lobby of a luxurious mansion. Su-hyeun and Roman sat facing each other. Roman was the head of the dark magicians in this mansion. He had led many of them before. Therefore, he was considered a powerful man amongst them.
¡°I can¡¯t believe a person like you is a leader here. The future of the dark magicians seems pretty bleak.¡±
Of course, Su-hyeun did not see him as a great leader.
¡°B-but he is pretty famous amongst us. We, his subordinates, can walk around the town confidently.¡±
¡°If you were to travel to where I am from, you wouldn¡¯t get anywhere with that level of skill in your powers,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Where are you from, brother?¡± Roman asked Su-hyeun.
Bam! Su-hyeun hit Roman.
¡°Brother? Are you kidding me? Are you my brother?¡±
¡°Umm...¡±
Roman rolled his eyes. He had to answer with caution if he did not want to get hit. Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes and red at Roman and the other dark magicians.
¡®Their power level is quite low. Therefore, it is weird that this ce is called the city of the magicians.¡¯
The people that Su-hyeun had met in the vige earlier were considered to be less powerful than the dark magicians in this mansion. Although Roman and the other dark magicians here are supposed to be different than them, their power level is practically just as low. If the dark magicians of the lower vige were D-Ranks, the people in this mansion would be C-Ranks or a little less than that.
¡®Perhaps this guy here is about a B-Rank,¡¯ Su-hyeun thought as he looked at Roman. ¡®These are not thest of the magicians, though. There are more dangerous guys probably still left.¡¯
¡°Let me ask you something first,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Y-yes. Ask me, please.¡±
Roman responded nervously as he worried about his survival. It seemed pathetic, but it was natural for him to be nervous after knowing Su-hyeun is the one who got rid of all of the dark magicians in the lower vige.
¡°In about a month, I will be sacrificed to Ouroboros, right?¡±
¡°T-that is...¡±
¡°Stop beating around the bush and tell me. I found out everything before I came here, so don¡¯t try to fool me.¡±
¡°Yes, you will be.¡±
People in this city had decided to sacrifice foreigners rather than citizens. Roman shut his eyes tight.
¡®If he gets upset and swings his sword, I will die.¡¯
However, he received an unexpected response.
¡°Good, good.¡± Su-hyeun nodded as if he was satisfied. ¡°Then, onto the next question. How does Ouroboros identify the sacrifice?¡±
¡°W-why do you ask that?¡± Roman slowly opened his eyes and expected he could survive this interrogation.
Su-hyeun had a stern look on his face and said, ¡°I ask questions, and you just answer them.¡±
¡°Y-yes!¡±
¡°Answer the question.¡±
¡°The dark magicians in the center of the city have control over Ouroboros. Ouroboros eats the person they designate, satisfies its appetite, and then goes back to the sea.¡±
¡°Is it the only way to get Ouroboros out of the sea?¡±
¡°Yes... it is,¡± Roman answered with hesitation and observed Su-hyeun¡¯s mood.
He was wondering what Su-hyeun was curious about since the only questions he asked were about Ouroboros.
¡°Well, that is good,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°That is?¡±
¡°Where are the exact people that have control over Ouroboros?¡±
Roman¡¯s face turned pale after hearing this question.
Su-hyeun grinned at Roman and said, ¡°Guide me to them.¡±
***
Tramp, tramp¡ª
¡°That man over there, is he Roman?¡±
¡°Yes. Why is he here?¡±
¡°Who is the person beside him? He doesn¡¯t look like a dark magician...¡±
¡°I¡¯ve never seen him before.¡±
Roman lowered his head as many people watched him walk past. If word spreadter about what he was doing, he would be filled with shame.
¡®Damn it. What the hell am I doing? I was supposed to catch him, but now I am guiding him to where he wants.¡¯
However, the direction that he was guiding him towards was funny. Even though Su-hyeun was considered to be a fugitive, he had asked to be led to the den of the powerful dark magicians.
¡®When we arrive there, this bastard will die.¡¯
This was something that Roman believed firmly. There were many skilled dark magicians at the ce that they were heading towards. He was confident that they could stomp Su-hyeun to death.
¡®Yes. I will make him immortal so that I may torture him forever. I will use him as a ve for life,¡¯ Roman thought to himself, and a wicked grin formed on his face.
Wham¡ª!
¡°Argh!¡±
Roman turned as he felt pain in the back of his head. Su-hyeun had hit him there.
¡°Wh-what is wrong, sir?¡±
¡°You thought of some n to screw me over, didn¡¯t you?¡±
¡°What? No way!¡±
¡°Just show me the way. Don¡¯t even think about fooling me.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s word, Roman shut his mouth tight and quickened his pace. Soon, they arrived at the tall tower in the middle of the city.
¡°This is it.¡±
Su-hyeun looked up at the tower. The tower had a pointed roof and was the tallest structure in this city. It looked to be at least a few hundred meters high. It was the only building that was higher than the walls surrounding the city.
¡®It was probably not the dark magicians¡¯ building at first,¡¯ Su-hyeun thought. ¡®Perhaps they only began to control the city when they gained control over Ouroboros. They probably got this tower too with that power.¡¯
Creak¡ª
When Roman reached his hand out, the door opened. It appeared to have some sort of mechanism that required magic to open it.
¡°Let¡¯s enter,¡± Roman said.
Su-hyeun looked around in the building and noticed how quiet it was. The first floor was empty.
Roman said, ¡°Less than a hundred dark magicians are living here. Only me and about a hundred other dark magicians are granted ess into this tower.¡±
¡°A hundred people in this ce¡ª¡±
¡°All of them are powerful magicians. Powerful magicians like to reside in higher ces, so they are located in the upper floors of the tower.¡±
¡°If they are simr to you, I will be disappointed.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Roman made a dirty look but immediately forced a smile afterward.
¡°Y-you won¡¯t. I am a low-level dark magicianpared to the other magicians who are in this tower.¡±
¡°Really?¡±
¡°You will find out when you meet them.¡±
His words were full of hidden meaning, but Su-hyeun did not care. Roman¡¯s role was to guide Su-hyeun here, and he did. Therefore, it was time to face the other high-level dark magicians.
Creak, creak¡ª
They stepped onto a tform in the middle of the tower. The stone in the middle of the tform shined, and the tform began to rise. It seemed to function just like an elevator. Unlike other buildings in the city, Su-hyeun could tell this tower was made with a lot of effort
Creak¡ª
The tform moved up quickly and soon came to a stop. Roman and Su-hyeun arrived at the top floor of the tower. There was arge door on the opposite side of the tform.
Creak¡ª
They approached the huge door that seemed to be over 5 meters high. It opened by itself as if the door was asking for them to enter. Su-hyeun entered without hesitation. Unlike the other floors, this floor was just one huge room. There was arge round table in there.
¡°He actually came.¡±
¡°He is quite bold, isn¡¯t¡¯ he?¡±
¡°Is he the one who killed everyone in the lower vige?¡±
¡°He looks younger than I thought.¡±
Dozens of dark magicians were sitting around the huge, round table. Each one of them was simr in strength or stronger than Roman. Some of them could even be considered as A-Ranks. As Roman had said, allpetent dark magicians were gathered here.
¡°I don¡¯t care much for the dregs of society.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes turned to an old dark magician who was resting his chin on his hand. ¡°Shall we talk?¡±
Rattle¡ª
Su-hyeun pulled one empty chair towards him and sat down. The dark magicians red at Su-hyeun with hard eyes after being called dregs. However, when the old dark magician raised his hand, they stopped ring.
¡°So, you finally found me.¡±
¡°You are on a different level.¡±
¡°Hahaha. I had doubts when I heard about you, but you are better than I thought.¡±
It had been only one day since Su-hyeun ughtered the dark magicians of the lower vige. However, the news already reached the magicians in this tower. It seemed that many dark magicians had gathered here since then because of Su-hyeun.
¡°So, what do you want? What made youe here?¡± the old magician asked.
¡°I wonder if it because you are older, but unlike other people, you actually try to talk before taking action.¡±
¡°Of course. Conversation is a process that delivers knowledge. Men are animals that can not develop without talking.¡±
¡°Well, what a great animal you are.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s sarcasm, the other dark magicians stood up, unable to bear hisments anymore.
¡°Sir, how can you let him talk to you like this?¡±
¡°We must tear his limbs apart right here!¡±
¡°Sit down.¡± The old magician looked at other dark magicians who jumped up. ¡°Or I will tear you all apart first.¡±
¡°S-sorry, sir!¡±
The dark magicians sat back down in their seats one by one as they gained control over their temper. The old magician looked around at the dark magicians and then looked at Su-hyeun again with a smile.
¡°Sorry about that. Hahaha.¡±
¡°Your men need to show me some respect. You should control them more.¡±
¡°I will give them a lessonter,¡± the old magician said and nodded slowly. ¡°So, what do you want? Just say it. If it is something I can help with, I will cooperate and offer my assistance.¡±
¡°Ouroboros, bring it out from the sea.¡± Upon hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s request, the old magician¡¯s eyes narrowed.
¡°You seem to be very interested in Ouroboros.¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°What are you going to do? I assume you aren¡¯t asking me out of mere curiosity. If you are asking these questions just to catch Ouroboros¡ª¡±
¡°That is exactly what I am going to do,¡± Su-hyeun said.
The old dark magician stared into Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. Although his response was absurd, Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes did not seem to lie.
¡°Catching Ouroboros...,¡± the old magician murmured.
In Moros, Ouroboros was like a patron saint that protected the dark magicians. There were not many dark magicians in the city. Therefore, they gained most of their power only after they gained control over Ouroboros. Now, Su-hyeun was saying he intended to catch this creature. If he seeded in doing so, the power of the dark magicians in Moros would decline.
¡°What if I refuse to help?¡± the old magician asked with his eyes closed.
Su-hyeun rose from his seat and answered, ¡°Then, everyone will die.¡±
Rumble¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s magic began to fill the room.
Chapter 108
Chapter 108: Chapter 108
¡°What a bastard...¡±
¡°Sir! Do we still have to put up with him?¡±
When Su-hyeun began to release his magic upon them, the dark magicians started to get up from their seats. However, the old dark magician remained sitting down with his eyes closed. He appeared to be undecided and worried. The other magicians were preparing to attack Su-hyeun. They stared at him with a feeling of agitation.
¡°Okay.¡± The old magician opened his eyes and said, ¡°I will help you.¡±
¡°Sir!¡±
¡°Shut up!¡±
The old man shouted back at the magician that raised his voice at him. In response, the magician turned pale and sat back down on his chair again. When it became quiet once more, the old magician nodded.
He said, ¡°So, you say that you want to catch Ouroboros. Okay, I will help you. However, I only can bring the beast to you. It is up to you to catch it.¡±
¡°That¡¯ll be enough help.¡±
¡°I will give you a room on the second floor of this tower. Just wait one day. We will leave tomorrow.¡±
The old magician looked at the magician that was sitting next to Su-hyeun.
¡°Hey, Syujeu,¡± he called.
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
¡°Can you guide him to his room? My back hurts these days, so it is hard to move around.¡±
¡°Y-yes, sir!¡±
At the request of the old magician, the man named Syujeu rose from his seat. Su-hyeun followed him and left the room through therge door.
Creak¡ª
Thump¡ª
The heavy door closed after the two men left the room. As soon as they were gone, the other magicians in the room vented their grievances to the old magician.
¡°Sir!¡±
¡°Why did you just watch him leave?¡±
¡°Yes, it is not like you.¡±
At theints of the dark magicians, the old one rested his chin and sat silently. Their resentments continued, and he continued to listen. Then suddenly, the dark magicians felt strange. This was usually the time when the old magician would scold them.
However, he remained silent.
Theirints naturally died away without the old magician having to say anything to them. Their fear of the old magician was rooted deeply within them, so they didn¡¯t want to get on his bad side. Therefore, theirints of disappointment gradually ended. The dark magicians realized that they had dared to talk back to him and fell silent.
¡°Are you all done chattering?¡±
When the old magician opened his mouth to speak, the other dark magicians lowered their heads. The old magician¡¯s gaze turned cold as if he had never smiled kindly before in his life.
¡°After hearing you all lose your temper just now, I would love to feed some of you to the dogs. However, because I understand how you all feel, I will let it go today.¡±
¡°I am sorry, sir!¡±
¡°Forgive us!¡±
Thump¡ª
The dark magicians mmed their heads to the table in shame. The old magician looked at them and clicked his tongue. He found them pathetic.
¡°Why did I put up with him?¡± he asked. ¡°Did it look like I was putting up with him?¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
The old magician shook his head and looked at the others who did not understand him.
¡®How pathetic.¡¯
¡°I did not put up with him. He put up with me,¡± he said.
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°Only a strong person puts up with a weak person. It is a form of generosity.¡±
The dark magicians were surprised by his response. The old magician seemed to have just called himself the weak one. That couldn¡¯t be possible. The old magician looked at the door where Su-hyeun had exited through.
¡°He gave us two options to pick between.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s proposal gave the old magician two choices to think about.
¡°Either all the dark magicians risk their lives and join forces to fight him, or we can hope he dies in his fight against Ouroboros.¡±
This was the reason why he told Su-hyeun that he would take him to Ouroboros. They had no choice but to wait for the mighty beast to swallow Su-hyeun just as it had done to thousands of other sacrificed dark magicians.
***
¡°This is it.¡±
The dark magician named Syujeu led Su-hyeun to a room on the second floor. It was quite a spacious room for one person. There was a restroom and shower inside as well. Syujeu seemed displeased with Su-hyeun, who was looking around the room.
Syujeu said, ¡°I brought you here because the boss told me to, but watch out. This room¡ª¡±
¡°Hey.¡± Su-hyeun waved off Syujeu without looking at him. ¡°Leave, little cheese.¡±
¡°You f*cking bastard.¡±
m¡ª!
Syujeu went out, mming the door.
¡°Look who¡¯s talking,¡± Su-hyeun mumbled while looking at the books in the room.
He picked up one of the books off the bookshelf. On the cover, there was a picture of a dissected human body. It was a book about human sacrifices that wereter reanimated into undead people.
¡°Wankers.¡±
He closed the book. It was not worth reading.
Bam¡ª!
Su-hyeun threw the book on the ground and trampled on it angrily. He conjured up a me with his powers and directed it towards the book until it turned to ashes. He considering reading the other books, but they appeared to be disgusting based on the titles. Su-hyeun instead walked to the sofa andid down.
Grr¡ª
Miru, who had been reading Su-hyeun¡¯s face this whole time, moved towards him andid down on his tummy. Su-hyeun habitually stroked Miru¡¯s back. When he closed his eyes, he could feel gazes around him.
¡®They are keeping an eye on me.¡¯
Since he had caused so much chaos, they could not help but be interested in what he was doing. Like them, Su-hyeun was nervous. He did not care about other dark magicians, but the old one was not an easy opponent.
¡®His power level appears to be simr to Hwang Jun-peong.¡¯
He had been wondering why the dark magicians¡¯ power levels were so low. However, there was a powerful one amongst them. Even afterbining all the other magicians¡¯ power in that room, they could notpare in strength to the old magician.
¡°The level of difficulty for this trial is insane,¡± Su-hyeun muttered out loud.
This entire situation was ridiculous. This was only the 30th floor of the trials. Chloe, an Awakener of the Dump Guild, said the 30th floor was a lower level of difficulty. However, this floor contained a powerful magician and Ouroboros as enemies.
¡®Well, catching Ouroboros is not actually part of the trial.¡¯
The gatekeeper had given Su-hyeun advice after he had paid him 100,000 achievement points. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t know why the gatekeeper gave him any advice. After all, the risk of helping him was quite high. However, it was information that was hard to ignore.
¡®It is very risky, but it is worth a try.¡¯ Su-hyeun opened his hand and lifted it.
Su-hyeun wanted advice on how to pass the trial sessfully, and the gatekeeper offered two ways. The first one was for just passing the trial as it was. The second one was for how to receive better rewards afterpleting the trial. Su-hyeun chose the way that would grant him better rewards. The Tower of Trials always gave bigger rewards to a greater challenger.
¡®I can do it.¡¯
Su-hyeun clenched his fist.
¡®I can do it.¡¯
Act 10
It was the next day. Su-hyeun left the city with some of the dark magicians. When they arrived at the city wall, some people blocked them from leaving. However, when the old magician showed his face, they were granted ess to leave. Su-hyeun recognized the position of power that the dark magicians had in Moros, and the old magician held even more power than them.
Stomp, stomp¡ª
Ten of the dark magicians and Su-hyeun walked without talking. They headed to the seafront that was quite a distance from Moros.
¡°We will reach the sea soon,¡± the old magician said as he sped his hands together behind his back.
The other dark magicians held their breath as if they were nervous. Even though they had control over Ouroboros, they were still nervous every time they came near the beast.
¡°Are you sure about this?¡± the old magician asked Su-hyeun for thest time.
Su-hyeun looked at him for a while and then turned away. ¡°You are loud.¡±
¡°Hahaha. You are very confident.¡±
Grr¡ª
At the old magician¡¯s words, Miru roared, showing his teeth. It appeared that Miru didn¡¯t like the old magician¡¯s unpleasantugh. The old man looked away from Miru and saw that they had finally arrived at the shore.
¡°Well, we arrived.¡±
Roar¡ª
The sky was clear, and the sea was blue. There was a reflection of the sunlight on the sea. It was an incrediblendscape. Somebody who did not know what this ce was would think this was a vacation spot. It was the ce where Su-hyeun had first started his trial.
¡°How are you going to call Ouroboros?¡± Su-hyeun asked the old magician.
The old magician replied with a smile, ¡°The beast is alreadying.¡±
Ten dark magicians had been muttering something since earlier. It seemed to be a spell to call Ouroboros. Su-hyeun turned his gaze toward the sea again, and at that moment, he could feel a vibration through the sand.
Grr¡ª
Miru started to cry angrily. No, more urately, it seemed like Miru was frightened. The divine beast, Miru, and demonic beast, Ouroboros, were naturally hostile to each other since birth.
Rumble¡ª
After a while, a huge shadow appeared in front of the shore. The shadow gradually grew and then lifted its head over the surface.
Roar¡ª
A huge ck snake appeared over the sea. The giant snake covered the sun and shook its long body. Its red eyes looked down upon Su-hyeun and the other dark magicians. Ouroboros had arrived.
Ouroboros¡¯s body covered the sky. Its body frame was very thick and several kilometers long. This was the great demonic beast that could destroy the whole country.
¡®It is massive.¡¯
Su-hyeun had never seen any monsters this size. Ouroboros had a presence far greater than other high-level divine beasts. It was closer in appearance to a massive dragon rather than a snake.
Gulp¡ª
It had been a while since he felt this nervous. As soon as Ouroboros appeared, Miru hid behind Su-hyeun. To young Miru, Ouroboros was too big of an enemy.
¡°Hahaha. So, what do you think after seeing Ouroboros this close?¡±
The old magician passed Su-hyeun and nced at his face. He had expected Su-hyeun would be scared by now, but his expectation was wrong.
¡°Well, let¡¯s leave,¡± the old man said to the other dark magicians.
They would be caught up in the fight if they stayed here. They called on Ouroboros to appear here, but they didn¡¯t want to be involved in this battle. The old magician quickly walked away. He nned to release his control over Ouroboros after he left from this ce.
¡°I am anxious,¡± the old magician muttered as he walked away from the shore and toward the city.
¡°What do you mean, sir?¡±
¡°The look on that man¡¯s face.¡±
The old magician looked back at Su-hyeun, who was quite a distance behind them now. He could not see Su-hyeun¡¯s face anymore, but the look he had made before bothered the old magician.
¡°What about his face? How was it?¡±
¡°I thought he would be scared, of course, but it looked like he was expecting something.¡± The old magician shook his head and still could not believe what he saw.
¡°What? Expecting something?¡±
The other dark magicians looked puzzled and did not understand.
¡®He should be scared by Ouroboros and run away, but he was expecting something? What could he possibly be expecting?¡¯
¡°I¡¯m anxious. I¡¯m anxious.¡±
The old magician murmured over and over. He was unable to relieve his anxiety.
¡®What would be the consequences of my choice? It is all up to Ouroboros now.¡¯
The old magician opened his mouth to speak when they moved far enough away from the battle. ¡°Ouroboros, eat him up.¡±
Rumble¡ª
The words he muttered traveled toward the shore with the power of dark magic. At that moment, he heard a loud noise.
Kiyaa¡ª!
The howl of Ouroboros roared over the sky.
Chapter 109
Chapter 109: Chapter 109
Kiyaa¡ª!
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Ouroboros let out an extremely loud roar that hurt Se-hyeun¡¯s eardrums. He covered his ear with one hand and spoke to Miru, who was on his head.
¡°Miru, go inside the subspace for a moment.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Miru spread his wings as if he was waiting for thatmand and went inside the subspace. It seemed like Miru was frightened by Ouroboros quite a bit.
¡®Well, Miru is still a baby, even if he is quite big,¡¯ Su-hyeun thought.
Miru was not even half a year old yet. The demonic beasts were opponents of the divine beasts. Since Ouroboros was a top-level demonic beast, it was understandable that Miru got scared by him. Su-hyeun was proud that Miru even tried to be brave by not crying out.
Se-hyeun used his powers to utilize various skills like the Indomitable body, Doppelganger, me: Phoenix, and transfiguration skill.
Caw, caw¡ª!
Dozens of small birds appeared around Su-hyeun. They were birds made of blue mes. His eyes changed to blue as well, and he stood in the middle of the birds with his eyes shining.
¡®I should not take this fight lightly.¡¯
Swish¡ª
¡®Here I go.¡¯
Caw, caw¡ª!
Dozens of birds flew toward Ouroboros. In the center of them, Su-hyeun leaped in the air a couple of times and swung his sword at Ouroboros¡¯ scales.
sh¡ª
Kiyaa¡ª
The scales were very thick and hard. Even though the sword was covered with Su-hyeun¡¯s magic, no cut was made on the beast¡¯s body. After he stabbed the sword deep into the beast, he quickly jumped away from the creature.
Swoosh¡ª
Ouroboros¡¯ tail smashed down and missed where Su-hyeunnded by a hair¡¯s breadth.
Ka-boom¡ª!
One side of the shore copsed, and seawater flowed over it. A strong gust of wind formed when the beast lifted its tail. Su-hyeun staggered widely but jumped up through the air once more.
Swish, swish¡ª
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun swung his sword, with the me skill applied to it, a few more times. However, the beast¡¯s scales were ridiculously hard, so he could not deal much damage to the creature. Since Ouroboros was very big, Se-hyeun could only inflict small stab wounds, no matter how many times he cut the creature. Even then, it was challenging to inflict those types of injuries.
¡®I have to cut this beast more deeply,¡¯ Su-hyeun thought.
Stab, stab¡ª
Su-hyeun continued to wield his sword.
¡®I will cut this beast at once!¡¯
Rumble¡ª
Su-hyeun concentrated his magic on the sword. He rushed his sword toward the wounds that he had been making on the scales of Ouroboros.
Rip¡ª!
He made quite a deep wound this time. Blood sttered out of Ouroboros, but the creature didn¡¯t even scream in pain. This wound seemed to be nothing more than just a small scratch to the beast.
Soon after he had made the wound to the beast, a huge shadow fell over Su-hyeun¡¯s head. He quickly moved his body before his brain could even process what was happening.
Swoosh¡ª
Ka-boom¡ª!
The thick tail hit the surface of the sea. Seawater sshed up.
Gulp¡ª
Su-hyeun nervously swallowed as he observed the power of the tail that passed right in front of his eyes.
¡®One hit from that tail could kill me at once,¡¯ he thought.
He thought Ouroboros would be slow since he was massive, but he was actually quite agile. The creature didn¡¯t seem to have magical powers, but its strength came from itsrge size. Not to mention, the rigidity of the scales on its body made it difficult to wound the creature. Su-hyeun could count all the monsters he had seen in his life on the fingers of one of his hands. However, none of them were like this beast.
¡®A small wound.¡¯
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes focused on one ce.
¡®Let¡¯s try again.¡¯
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun quickly jumped towards Ouroboros again.
Whoosh¡ª!
Boom¡ª!
Su-hyeun could hear the tail ripping into the air. Again, Ouroboros¡¯ tail missed Su-hyeun as he quickly disappeared from where he was.
Hiss, hiss¡ª
Ouroboros looked around and flicked its tongue out. Su-hyeun could move quicker than the beast since he was smaller in size. He climbed on the back of Ouroboros and ran up the creature before it could notice what he was doing. Su-hyeun was holding a long spear instead of the sword this time. It was the Dragon ying Spear.
Su-hyeun grabbed the spear tightly and aimed the weapon at the wound in front of him. It was the wound that he had been deepening with stabs previously.
¡®One, two.¡¯
Whoosh¡ª
The blue me skill wrapped around the spear.
¡®Three!¡¯
At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s body bounced forward.
Boom¡ª!
Su-hyeun threw the spear with all his might. The Dragon ying Spear flew precisely and quickly toward the wound on Ouroboros. However, somehow the spear was maintaining its original state. This was a weapon that was supposed to fragmentize as soon as the user threw it.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The rumbling sound came from the Dragon ying Spear. It trembled as if something restrained it.
Su-hyeun muttered to the spear, ¡°Please hold on a little more.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Ouroboros moved its tail again. At that moment, the spear flew into the wound and stayed there.
Kiyaa¡ª!
Ouroboros screamed out for the first time. The Dragon ying Spear shattered into thousands of pieces inside of the wound. For the giant Ouroboros, the Dragon ying Spear was just a small thorn. However, it was a different story when it turned into thousands of pieces.
Whooosh¡ª
Bam¡ª!
Ouroboros swung its tail faster. Su-hyeun dashed toward the end of the coast. Ouroboros twisted its body due to the pain it had never experienced before. The creature then looked around to try and find Su-hyeun. At that moment, Su-hyeun yelled out.
¡°Go bite it!¡±
Caw, caw¡ª!
Dozens of Phoenixes flew up.
Whoosh¡ª
Boom, boom, boom¡ª!
The Phoenixes bumped into Ouroboros eyes just as they were searching for Su-hyeun. The creature closed its eyes at the burning pain.
Kiyaa¡ª!
The creature¡¯s big body shook.
Boom, boom¡ª!
Rumble¡ª
Ouroboros swung its tail randomly with its eyes closed and hit its head on the ground. The coast waspletely ruined, and the seawater rose and sshed like rain on the shore.
After feeling some relief from the pain, Ouroboros opened its eyes again and started looking around. It was hard to find the original terrain since it copsed and was ruined. Su-hyeun was nowhere to be found.
***
Boom, boom¡ª
Kiyaa¡ª!
The magicians in Moros poured into the streets after hearing the loud roars. The earth shook, and the cry of Ouroboros filled the ind. The tall wall couldn¡¯t block the sound of Ouroboros from them.
¡°Why is the creature suddenly going crazy?¡±
¡°Are the dark magicians trying to kill everybody?¡±
¡°That sound really drives me nuts.¡±
The magicians on the street buzzed with spection. Amongst them, a small bent Malcolm lifted his head. He could see the head of Ouroboros from afar.
¡°Why is Ouroboros suddenly¡ª¡±
¡°Mr. Malcolm! What is happening?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t Ouroboros your responsibility? Exin this!¡±
The magicians found Malcolm and started toin one by one. They usually treated Malcolm as an invisible person because of their resentment towards him, but if Ouroboros went crazy, Malcolm was the only person that they could turn to. He was the one who knew Ouroboros better than anyone else.
¡°W-well, I have no idea. There is no reason for Ouroboros to be acting crazy like that,¡± Malcolm said.
¡°What do you mean? How do you have no idea?¡±
¡°Yes! You are very irresponsible! What didn¡¯t you study about that¡ª¡±
¡°You shoulde up with a solution!¡±
Malcolm backed away, sweating at the sound of resentment in their voices. He knew nothing about what was happening right at the moment.
¡°I can exin this.¡±
Thump, thump¡ª
At that time, a small voice interrupted the crowd. The magicians looked back. There stood the old dark magician who wore a ck robe around his shoulders. At his appearance, the crowd of magicians dispersed and made a path for him. Malcolm stared at him with surprise as well.
¡°Raeng, what are you doing here?¡± Malcolm asked.
¡°Long time no see, Malcolm.¡± The old dark magician named Raeng approached him and said, ¡°My old friend.¡±
***
Sizzle, sizzle¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s whole body was tingling. There was fluid falling from the ceiling, and he felt a slimy liquid under his feet. He was inside a dark cave with no light at all. Su-hyeun could barely keep his bnce as he held onto the wall with his hand.
¡°Well, somehow, I didn¡¯t die.¡±
Whoosh¡ª
Su-hyeun used the me skill to illuminate the dark ce he was standing in. He could see quite a spacious area that was slightly curved into a slope. There were some puddles of ck liquid.
¡®The liquid seems to be quite a deadly poison.¡¯
Sizzle¡ª
The ck liquid that fell over his shoulder evaporated and left a burning sensation. It was fortunate that he was wearing Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor. It seemed that the armor protected him from the ck liquid with its magic.
¡°It¡¯s so humid and stuffy.¡±
Rumble¡ª
The area around him shook once more. Su-hyeun grabbed the wall tightly. It seemed like Ouroboros was moving.
¡®Well, I came in here somehow but¡ª¡¯
After Su-hyeun was discovered by Ouroboros, he jumped into the beast¡¯s mouth when it screamed. He entered the creature¡¯s body through its esophagus. He decided to attack Ouroboros from the inside.
¡®I guess the head-on match is impossible.¡¯ Su-hyeun sighed and scratched his head.
Perhaps he was bing confident, but he thought he possibly had enough power to kill Ouroboros now. The creature wasn¡¯t just big. It also had hard scales and thick skin that Su-hyeun¡¯s sword could not prate easily. It was evident that Se-hyeun would die before he could cut through the creature¡¯s skin. However, perhaps he can injure him from the inside now.
¡®Well, this monster was not for catching in the first ce.¡¯
The main purpose of this trial was not to defeat Ouroboros but to survive. The primary objective of this trial is to escape the magicians when they tried to sacrifice him in a month.
¡®I certainly digress from the main objective.¡¯
All he had to do was survive. It was natural that the achievement rate of the trials would vary depending on the course of action taken. However, Su-hyeun believed he made the right choice in his decision to fight Ouroboros.
¡°Where should I look around here anyway?¡± he muttered.
The inside of the beast was like a winding slope, so he could not navigate his way around easily. Furthermore, time was a problem. It was unlikely that he would be able to withstand a few hours of the venomous fluid in Ouroboros. Ordinary people would have probably melted as soon as they got in here.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
¡°Uh, uh?¡±
At that time, Ouroboros, who was standing upright, began to lean down slowly. Su-hyeun was now standing on the very wall he had initially been holding onto so he would not fall. Ouroboros moved its body, and the winding path straightened up.
Rumble¡ª
The area shook for a while. He was certain that Ouroboros hadid down.
¡®What is it doing all of a sudden?¡¯
His body became morefortable, but he felt anxious inside.
Syaa¡ª
Su-hyeun turned his head toward the unpleasant snake sounds and saw multiple mouths open. The inside of Ouroboros was filled with thousands of pairs of eyes staring at Su-Hyeun.
Chapter 110
Chapter 110: Chapter 110
¡°Eww. They look gross,¡± Su-hyeun muttered.
Crack, crack, crack¡ª
Su-hyeun looked down to the ground. There were eyes all over the ce. He had no idea how all those eyes suddenly appeared, but they were staring at him. It seemed like the reason why Ouroborosid down was because it noticed that Su-hyeun was inside of its body.
¡®I guess it can only focus on either the inside or outside of its body.¡¯
Su-hyeun had made the wrong decision.
¡®No way. I didn¡¯t know it was capable of noticing the stuff inside of its body. This was a mistake.¡¯
It was a mistake that he made because he was not familiar with the demonic beast. However, even if he knew about this, there would be no better alternative on how to defeat the creature. Even if he decided to attack Ouroboros from both the inside and outside, there was nobody who could help him in passing this trial.
¡®Well, I already made a mistake. It can¡¯t be helped.¡¯
Hiss¡ª
Su-hyeun turned his head in the direction of the snakes crying.
Hiss, hiss¡ª
They were not just in a couple of areas. There were snakes everywhere.
¡°Are these snakes natural inhabitants of this body? Or are they small versions of Ouroboros?¡±
Su-hyeun called them small, but each of them was bigger than an anaconda. Since many snakes had gathered in the area, they looked like wiggling worms. Although they were as big as anacondas, Su-hyeun felt like they were small inparison to Ouroboros.
¡®These snakes appear to be a part of some kind of defense system.¡¯
Just like an immune system in a human¡¯s body that kills viruses, it seemed like these snakes function in the same way for Ouroboros¡¯ safety. The ck venom and the small snakes in itsrge body seem to function like an immune system to get rid of enemies like Su-hyeun.
Shwing¡ª
Su-hyeun drew out his sword that he had put away for a while. He could see thousands of snakes right at that moment. He assumed there would be tens of thousands more in the deeper area.
¡®I will go through them.¡¯
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun prated through numerous snakes. At the same time, the snakes rushed towards Su-hyeun, revealing their ck fangs.
sh¡ª
Syaa¡ª
He cut the bodies of the snakes that jumped toward him, but no blood flowed from their wounds. These snakes were made of just flesh and had no blood or intestines. They didn¡¯t fear death either. Although many of the snakes were ughtered, many more still rushed toward Su-hyeun without hesitation.
sh¡ª
Rumble¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword moved unceasingly. Soon, snakes appeared again in the path that Su-hyeun had been clearing. It seemed that snakes kept reappearing in the area.
Kiyaa¡ª!
The fangs of the snakes rushed towards the back of Su-hyeun¡¯s neck.
He utilized the Doppelganger skill.
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun swung his sword and cut the snake¡¯s body in half. He had to pay attention to his entire surroundings since they wereing from every direction. They were weak individually, but there were too many of them.
¡®I can¡¯t hesitate.¡¯
There was a long way to go. From now on, this would be a physical battle.
¡®I have to find its heart.¡¯
He had to reserve his magic power as much as possible. He didn¡¯t know where the heart was in this huge body. Since he had no idea how long it would take to find it, he could not waste his power.
Rumble¡ª
Su-hyeun stretched his arms to ess the subspace. He grabbed a Dragon ying Spear made by Kim Dae-ho. He didn¡¯t have many of them left, but no other weapons could handle many enemies efficiently like this one.
¡®Mr. Kim will scold me about this.¡¯
Kim Dae-ho had nagged Su-hyeun to save this weapon, but he had to use it again. He had no other choice and grabbed the spear tightly. He didn¡¯t need to aim urately. Everything in front of him was an enemy that needed to be killed. Su-hyeun bent his body like a bow and threw the spear as hard as he could.
Whiz¡ª
***
The delicate scent of tea filled the room when the hot water was poured into the teacup. Dozens of the dark magicians stood behind Raeng. Malcolm looked awkwardly at the old man who was escorted by so many dark magicians.
¡°You¡¯ve changed a lot,¡± Malcolm said.
¡°Not as much as you.¡±
At Raeng¡¯s words, Malcolm turned his gaze toward the dark magicians standing behind him. The dark magicians, who usually frowned their faces at Malcolm, avoided his eyes. They didn¡¯t know Raeng, who they served, was acquainted with Malcolm.
¡°Please exin this,¡± Malcolm said.
¡°You are smart. What do I need to exin?¡±
¡°So, was it you?¡± Malcolm asked while putting the teapot on the table. ¡°The one who wanted power over Ouroboros?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t feelfortable using my friend to gain control over the creature.¡±
¡°If you truly thought of me as your friend...¡±
¡°I did consider you as a friend, and I mean it.¡±
Malcolm stared at Raeng¡¯s face while he sipped on his tea. This was the friend that he met for the first time in over ten years, but he felt more betrayed than weed.
¡°A long time ago, you said that dark magic is the study of a higher concept of magic,¡± Malcolm said as he remembered the words that Raeng had told him. ¡°Do you still think so?¡±
¡°I feel sorry.¡± Raeng put down the cup and took his hand off of it as if he did not want to drink tea anymore. ¡°We could stay good friends.¡±
¡®You were no longer my friend,¡¯ seemed to be the hidden meaning behind Raeng¡¯s words. Malcolm wasn¡¯t too shocked about this since he also did not consider Raeng as a friend of his. His response answered Malcolm¡¯s question.
Raeng had been devaluing ordinary magic, but he considered dark magic as the best to study. He was different from Malcolm. Malcolm had figured out the truth of the dark magic and turned away from it.
¡°Just tell me why you are here,¡± Malcolm said.
¡°Malcolm, there is a way for us to go back to what we used to be.¡±
¡°Used to be?¡±
¡°Yes. Wasn¡¯t it good back then? We studied together and understood everything. We walked the same path.¡±
¡°As I saidst time, I am no longer a dark magician. I am just an ordinary old man.¡± Malcolm shook his head as if it wasn¡¯t worth mentioning this anymore.
Raeng¡¯s face was slightly distorted, but he soon smiled again. ¡°I understand. You are entitled to your own opinion, of course.¡±
¡°Then¡ª¡±
¡°My request is not for you to learn dark magic again. What I want is this.¡± Raeng reached his hand out to his back and handed Malcolm a book.
¡°Chimeraposing method?¡±
Chimera making was a sorcery that was a part of dark magic. This book dealt withbining humans to animals, monsters, or demonic beasts.
¡°Why are you showing this to me? I don¡¯t know anything about chimeras.¡±
¡°No, you know something about it. Don¡¯t lie to me,¡± Raeng said as if he knew everything. He shook his head and opened the book. ¡°You also know about Ouroboros better than anyone else.¡±
At Raeng¡¯s words, Malcolm¡¯s eyes widened. Soon, Malcolm recalled the crying of Ouroboros. His face turned pale.
¡°Wait. Are you...?¡±
¡°What if humans have the same amount of power that Ouroboros has?¡± Raeng grinned and said, ¡°Wouldn¡¯t it be quite the evolution for humans?¡±
***
nk, nk¡ª
Boom, boom, boom¡ª
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun threw the Dragon ying Spear once more. It swept away the snakes in front of him. As soon as the spear left his hand, he grabbed his sword again, and he started running towards the path that he just created.
¡®I have only three spears left.¡¯
He had seven spears originally, but he had used four of them so far. He decided that today was the day he would use them all, but he felt pretty bitter about it. A lot of Ether stone was needed to make a Dragon ying Spear. It also took a long time to create.
¡®I will save my remaining spears for now.¡¯
The Dragon ying Spear was a weapon that could kill many snakes with minimal force, but he still had some strength left. So, he decided to rely on the sword more.
Da-dum, da-dum¡ª
A small beating sound came from afar. It was the heart.
¡®Found it.¡¯
Although he could hear the heart, he did not assume it was close by. The blood vessels that he was running beside at the moment were winded and irregrly connected. However, the heart was closer than he had been expecting. Su-hyeun touched the wall and tried to find the source of the sound. The sound wasing from under the esophagus and inside the wall. He had to make a hole.
¡°Sure, it was easy so far.¡±
He couldn¡¯t guess how thick the inner wall around the esophagus would be, but since there were no scales, he assumed it would be easier to cut through. It wouldn¡¯t be as difficult as it had been to cut the outside of the beast.
¡®I should say thank you to Mr. Kimter.¡¯
Chink¡ª
Su-hyeun took out the small stones that he had been keeping in the pocket of his armor. They were the magic amplifiers. Su-hyeun put them on the wall and made a circr shape.
Hiss¡ª
Kiyaa¡ª!
Of course, the snakes didn¡¯t just stand by and watch. They tried to attack Su-hyeun, revealing their teeth. At that moment, Su-hyeun turned and swung his sword.
sh¡ª
Boom¡ª!
The me that wrapped around his sword ignited brightly. It created a protective wall of mes around Su-hyeun. The snakes burned ck and fell dead, but that wasn¡¯t the end. The me didn¡¯t extinguish as it surrounded Su-hyeun like a globe and continued to burn. Even if it was only for a limited time, that was enough for him.
¡®Done.¡¯
Su-hyeun infused his magic to the magic amplifiers that were attached to the wall.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The stones shone brighter and brighter, but Su-hyeun instinctively knew that it was not enough. He focused and needed to concentrate on bursting his magic at once. One shot was crucial.
¡®A little bit more.¡¯
Hiss¡ª
Kiyaa¡ª
A few snakes pierced the wall of the me and rushed toward Su-hyeun. Sharp fangs prated the armor and bit his shoulder. As soon as the ck venom prated his skin, Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor began to detox the poison from his body. Su-hyeun remained focused. He ignored the pain in his shoulder and continued to infuse his magic.
¡®Now!¡¯
At that moment, he released the magic he had been infusing.
Swish¡ª
Su-hyeun tossed the snake that had been biting him off of his body and ran away from the spot.
Ka-boom¡ª!
Boom, boom¡ª!
The concentrated magic, which was amplified several times, caused an explosion. The explosion tore off the esophagus wall of Ouroboros.
Da-dum, da-dum¡ª
The open wall made from the explosion led to a spacious area. There was no heart in this huge dome-shaped space, but the loud beating sound was still there.
Hiss¡ª
In the enormous space, a lot of snakes were waiting for Su-hyeun instead of the heart.
¡°Damn, there are too many.¡±
Da-dum, da-dum¡ª
The heart was somewhere in here. It just wasn¡¯t visible.
¡®It is certainly here.¡¯
Su-hyeun looked carefully among the hundreds of snakes. There was a space that arge number of poisonous snakes gathered around. He could see a small sphere about the size of a watermelon within that space.
¡®That¡¯s it!¡¯
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes sparkled. It was the power source that could control this giant beast. The moment he found it, he gave strength to his legs by using the Leap skill.
Chapter 111
Chapter 111: Chapter 111
Act 1
Boooom¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s figure exploded forward like a loaded spring.
Countless snakes pounced on him. He was carrying a sword and a spear in each of his hands.
[Dragon-ying spear.]
Wuuuung¡ª
The spear gripped in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand vibrated noisily. He stopped dashing forward for a moment, stood still, and powerfully threw the spear towards the target in his front.
Swiiiiiish¡ª
Puh-pupupupupuhk¡ª!
The dragon-ying spear split into thousands of pieces and swept away the snakes blocking his path. However, that was still not enough.
There were simply far too many snakes for the dragon-ying spear to effectively reduce their numbers. The path opened up for only the briefest moment before closing back up.
<>
Su-hyeun extended his hand towards the empty air. It happened the moment he grasped one of the two remaining dragon-ying spears stored in the subspace.
His vision rocked greatly and an abnormality urred to his sense of bnce. Up and down got mixed up, and his innards tumbled so much that it felt like he¡¯d throw up at any second.
It was poison.
¡°Dammit....¡±
Grit¡ª
Su-hyeun clenched his teeth.
He released the dragon-ying spear gripped in his hand. Instead, he swung the sword held in his other hand in a huge arc and spun his entire body around.
Paaaaahk¡ª!
Snakes soundlessly pouncing on him got cut into pieces and fell on the floor.
Right afterwards, he raised his foot up and stomped hard. The head of a snake sneaking closer on the floor was crushed to bits. In the meantime, his dizzy vision regained its focus little by little and his surroundings grew brighter.
Shiiiiii, hiiissss¡ª
Innumerable snakespletely filled up Su-hyeun¡¯s vision. Never mind his front and back, every direction was utterly filled up by them. Not only that, but poison was also rapidly spreading inside his body with every passing second.
<>
Even if these things were small, each and every single one of these b*stards was Ouroboros¡¯s clones. He shouldn¡¯t take the poison these things carried lightly.
The strength of the poison itself might have been weak due to the small bodies of each clone, but now that it had begun spreading, things would only get more disadvantageous for him as time went on.
<>
He needed to reach Ouroboros¡¯s heart as quickly as possible.
Sliiiiice¡ª
His swordden with magical energy stretched forward, and the path opened up momentarily. However, snakes quickly filled it back up. Su-hyeun wrapped his entire body with the divine me and began dashing forward towards his target.
Sliiiiice¡ª!
Every time he swung the sword, dozens upon dozens of snakes were cut in half.
Perhaps hisplete disregard for defense while running forward was to me here, as several snakes managed to bite and cling onto Su-hyeun.
It couldn¡¯t be helped, though ¡ª this was a race against time from here onward. As the poison had already begun spreading inside him, he decided to not to sweat about getting bitten a few times more.
He cut, then cut down some more. And then, forced his way forward.
[Fatigue: 68.]
¡°Pant, pant....¡±
Was it because poison had spread throughout his body?
As he hadn¡¯t been holding back with his magical energy reserve while fighting, his fatigue level rose up quite high in no time at all. His health must¡¯ve fallen quite a lot as well because he kept panting heavily with every step.
Still, his reward was that the distance had closed up considerably.
While repeatedly swinging the sword, he confirmed his fatigue level, only for his eyes to gleam just then.
<>
[Fatigue: 70.]
[Trait Hero-Immortality is activating.]
[Vitality and stamina will recover rapidly. Abnormal status conditions will partially recover.]
[Overall stats will increase slightly.]
His previously-dizzy head grew clearer and energy returned to his body.
It was not just his stamina, but also his magic energy reserve that was filled right back up, perhaps even more so than before. It was because the Hero-ss skill that activated only during the moments of crisis, Immortality, had been activated.
aaash¡ª!
His powerfully-swung swords cut down countless snakes blocking his path. Su-hyeun stepped on the torn pieces of the fallen snake torsos and leaped forward once more.
There didn¡¯t seem to be an end no matter how many he cut down. Especially more so near the heart ¡ª so many snakes had bunched up together with the organ as their center that there was hardly any room to stand.
Su-hyeun extended his hand to the empty air once more. He grasped the two remaining dragon-ying spears inside the subspace.
He held both spears in one hand pulled them out. This would be really his final attack.
Creeeeeeaaaaak¡ª
As he ran forward, his arm was jerked back greatly.
His strength had doubled from his normal state due to the effects of the Immortality skill. Even his magic energy¡¯s quality had risen up far higher than before, which meant the same thing had happened to the amplification factor, as well.
The dragon-ying spears vibrated harshly as if they would shatter at any second when he poured his magical energy into them.
While gripping both spears with one hand, he restricted his own strength to make sure that the magic energy wouldn¡¯t explode out of his control. He only had one shot. So, he patiently held back and held back some more. He didn¡¯t hastily throw the spears and continued to store his power.
Kyaaaaahk¡ª!
And, moments before a snake¡¯s wide-open maw was about to swallow Su-hyeun¡¯s head whole¡ª
sh!
Su-hyeun¡¯s arm shot forward and at the same time, a blue light shed and blinded the entire area.
Kwa-kwakwakwa¡ª
Saaaash¡ª
All the snakes blocking Su-hyeun¡¯s path dissipated in an instant. The spears had shattered into small pieces and scattered, ripping and tearing apart the bodies of every creature before him in the process. And now, an empty path that used to be filled up with nothing but snakes revealed itself.
Su-hyeun rushed forward on this path. It didn¡¯t take him long to reach the small heart.
Ba-dump, ba-dump.
This small watermelon-sized heart was supplying Ouroboros¡¯s entire body with energy.
Swiiiish¡ª
aang¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword mmed down on the heart.
aaang, pang¡ª!
However, the de simply bounced away.
The sword vibrated harshly and blood seeped out from the torn webbings of his hands. A slight crack formed on the heart¡¯s surface, but it was not sliced open.
<>
Ouroboros¡¯s heart was somewhat different inposition than regr living creatures¡¯ organs. From the get-go, the gigantic snake monster didn¡¯t possess any internal organs, and just a small energy source was enough to power this massive body. This small heart was precisely that power source capable of moving a body dozens of meters wide and several kilometers long.
Ruuumble¡ª
The surrounding space rumbled and quaked, and a loud screech could be hearding from the outside. Ouroboros was howling in pain from the impact force felt on its heart.
<>
Su-hyeun swung his sword again.
aang¡ª
Su-hyeun repeatedly swung his sword down.
However, the membrane enveloping the heart wasn¡¯t easy to break; this was thest defensive measure Ouroboros had put up to protect its heart.
Even then, it still began developing cracks little by little from Su-hyeun¡¯s sword reinforced by his Immortality skill.
His sole problem was that he didn¡¯t have a lot of time left.
Hiiiiiss¡ª!
Paaaahk¡ª!
Su-hyeun spun around and swung his sword towards the snakes already pouncing on him from behind. Although he managed to clear the path once, there were still countless snakes to be found within Ouroboros¡¯s body.
From the very start, it was an impossibility to cut down all these snakes.
<>
Gya-ong¡ª!
Miru revealed its figure just above Su-hyeun¡¯s head. His dragon had nevere outside without his permission before. That was down to his strict education, but at least right now, he was really happy to see Miru acting independently like this.
¡°Miru!¡±
Ruuumble¡ª
¡°I¡¯ll leave it to you for a little while.¡±
[Breath.]
Crimson mes burst out from Miru¡¯s mouth.
Bodies of the snakes pouncing on them from all sides began melting down. Miru might not have been able to fire its Breath many times, but this attack still possessed far higher destructive power than any other skill.
He decided to leave the rear to Miru.
Su-hyeun began swinging his sword down on the heart again.
ng, aang¡ª!
Craaack¡ª
The membrane surrounding the heart broke away little by little.
He was running out of time. As Immortality was a cheat-like skill, its duration wasn¡¯t all that long.
[Breath.]
Another Breath was fired out from Miru¡¯s mouth just then.
That was already the second one. The number of Breaths Miru could fire was limited to only two.
However...
Gya-ohk, gya-ooong¡ª
Rumble¡ª
Miru squeezed out every ounce of magical energy it still had for onest time. And then, just as a snake fell from above and tried to bite Su-hyeun¡¯s head, for the first time ever, a third Breath was fired out from Miru¡¯s mouth.
Kwa-ruuuuumble¡ª
With Su-hyeun in the center, all the snakes pouncing on him were swept away by Miru¡¯s Breath once more and disappeared into thin air.
A third Breath.
He was so proud of Miru pushing itself beyond its limits to extract more power like this. The dragon¡¯s body slumped and fell to the ground as if it no longer had any energy left to even p its wings.
And now, it was his turn to answer the dragon¡¯s hard work.
Su-hyeun raised his sword up, spun it around, and reverse-gripped it. While holding it with both of his hands, he thrust the weapon down right in the middle of the heart.
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword stabbed deeply into the center of the heart.
Kyyaaaaaaahh¡ª!
Kha-aaahk, kaaaahk¡ª!
Screams of snakes reverberated from all directions. Snakes crazily pouncing on Su-hyeun suddenly began writhing around and cried out in pain.
This was none other than Ouroboros¡¯s scream.
Buzz, bzzzz¡ª
Ziiiiing¡ª
The sword stabbing into the heart began vibrating. An incredible power oozing out from the pulsing organ began gathering on the tip of the sword. And through the weapon, Ouroboros¡¯s power was being sucked right into Su-hyeun¡¯s hands. More specifically, he was sucking it in.
***
¡°Ouroboros¡¯s heart is actually a crystallized form of energy that the creature had gathered for its entire lifetime. Meaning, it¡¯s basically the purest form of concentrated energy.¡±
Advice from the gatekeeper.
The ¡°much bigger¡± reward that could be earned during the 30th floor¡¯s trial.
¡°Destroying an Ouroboros¡¯s heart basically means the same thing as killing the snake monster itself. Although it¡¯ll be impossible for you to hunt down an Ouroboros with your current skill level, entering its innards to destroy its heart should still be within your reach.¡±
¡°Is the killing of the Ouroboros this trial¡¯s ultimate objective?¡±
¡°Nope. The killing of the Ouroboros has nothing to do with the trial. No, the monster is simply a part of the trial¡¯s setting, that¡¯s all. That thing is not the trial¡¯s goal but merely a cmity that exists outside the trials of the tower.¡±
¡°If that¡¯s the case, why...¡±
¡°I told you already, didn¡¯t I? It¡¯s just an additional reward that you can earn during the 30th floor, that¡¯s all.¡±
The reward the gatekeeper was talking about was something else.
¡°You should devour that thing¡¯s heart. That is, if you can.¡±
The gatekeeper¡¯s eyes back then seemed to be asking, ¡°Can you really pull that off, I wonder?¡±
***
Wuduk, wududuk¡ª
Veins began bulging on Su-hyeun¡¯s hands still gripping the sword tightly.
His face became hideous as blood vessels began bursting open one by one. It felt like the power was overflowing throughout his entire body, so much so that it¡¯d start exploding at any second now.
The problem lied with him attempting to absorb this massive energy without any preparation, but also with Ouroboros¡¯s magical energy suddenly showing an adverse reaction inside Su-Hyeun¡¯s body, as well.
<>
Su-hyeun¡¯s brain quickly kicked into the next gear.
He wondered if he should give up here, but this felt like too much of a wasted opportunity, so he instead began thinking about some other ways to make it work. Right then, a sudden sh of inspiration brushed past his mind.
<>
While gripping the sword with one hand, Su-hyeun bent down and ced his free hand on the floor. More specifically, on the body of Ouroboros.
[You¡¯re using the transfiguration skill with Ouroboros as your target.]
[You¡¯re absorbing a portion of your target¡¯s trait.]
[Trait: Third Eye has been acquired.]
Chapter 112
Chapter 112: Chapter 112
A new eye opened on Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead.
It was a snake-like eye. At the same time, a new type of scale that didn¡¯t belong to the Imoogi began sprouting out of Su-hyeun¡¯s skin. Sensations picked up from all over his body sharpened up considerably. Everything in his surroundings could be felt vividly on his skin now.
Not just the snakes thrashing about on the floor, but even the heavy breathinging from Ouroboros¡¯s gigantic body could be felt clearly.
<>
Indeed, confirming the new trait acquired through the transfiguration skill shouldeter. The important thing now was that Su-hyeun¡¯s body became quite simr to Ouroboros¡¯s temporarily through the usage of his skill.
Vrrrr, vrrrrr¡ª
The sword still sucking in the power of Ouroboros was vibrating angrily even now. But one thing was for certain: his body epting that power had regained its stability.
At the very least, his body was no longer rejecting this power. That alone made it far easier to ept more and more of the Ouroboros¡¯s magical energy.
¡°And from now on...¡±
Su-hyeun gripped the hilt even tighter as if he was nning to never let it go.
¡°I¡¯m your master.¡±
[Magic factor has risen by one point.]
Raeng and Malcolm sat opposite of each other, choosing to not say a single word for a long while. They needed time.
Malcolm fiddled around the book Raeng had handed over. He couldn¡¯t bring himself to flip open the cover and start reading it.
¡°Do you need more time to think about this?¡±
Waiting for dozens of minutes already, Raeng pressed Malcolm for an answer. But thetter couldn¡¯t reply, simply pretending to not hear the question while touching the book¡¯s cover.
One of the dark magicians couldn¡¯t watch any longer and had to ask, ¡°Do we really need this person¡¯s aid, sir?¡±
Now normally, he¡¯d not have shown any courtesy to Malcolm, but the person in question happened to be Raeng¡¯s old friend. The dark magicians learned of this truth for the first time today; it was only obvious that their attitude in dealing with Malcolm would change ordingly.
¡°It seemed that none of you are aware of my friend¡¯s ability,¡± replied Raeng.
¡°We knew that he yed a vital role in summoning Ouroboros, but...¡±
¡°It¡¯s not that he ¡®yed a vital role,¡¯ but my friend here had performed it practically all by himself. You and I, we simply sat on the banquet table after the feast had beenid out for us, that¡¯s all.¡±
The dark magicians all shut their mouths at Raeng¡¯s words. Technically speaking, his assertion wasn¡¯t wrong. Every dark magician present could easily gorge on the feast already prepared for them.
Mere words weren¡¯t enough to express how incredible Malcolm¡¯s wealth of knowledge was.
¡°As I thought... I¡¯ll have to refuse.¡±
¡°But, Malcolm.¡±
¡°Please don¡¯t try to change my mind. As I feared, this isn¡¯t right. Even if...¡±
Crumple¡ª
Malcolm spoke as his energyless fingers crumpled the book¡¯s corner. ¡°Even if I get to meet my son again.¡±
¡°...That¡¯s unfortunate.¡±
Raeng simply stood up from the chair, looking as if he had no thought of taking the book away from Malcolm¡¯s grip. ¡°I shall leave that tome behind with you. Please have a good look through, and if you have a change of heart by any chance, thene seek me out in the tower at the center of the city.¡±
¡°You shouldn¡¯t wait for me.¡±
¡°I shall give you ten days. If you don¡¯te within that time frame...¡±
Kyyaaaaaah¡ª
Just as Raeng was hesitating with what to say next, his ears picked up Ouroboros¡¯s cry.
Kyaaah, kyaaaah¡ª!
No, this couldn¡¯t be a mere cry.
This was...
¡°A scream??¡±
It couldn¡¯t be, but he needed to confirm nevertheless. He shifted his gaze only to see Malcolm making a simr expression as his. Even thetter believed that Ouroboros couldn¡¯t possibly scream like that.
¡°S-sir, this...¡±
¡°Let¡¯s go take a look.¡± Raeng turned his paleplexion towards Malcolm still sitting in his chair. ¡°Are youing with us?¡±
Malcolm thought about it for a moment or two after hearing the question, but eventually, nodded his head.
For some reason, he kept recalling Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
A drop of hot liquid fell on Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
His tightly-shut eyes opened up all by themselves. The first thing he noticed after his trembling eyelids opened was a blurry, unclear view.
Gya-ong¡ª!
Next was Miru¡¯s cry. Su-hyeun reached towards the direction of that cry, then rubbed the dragon¡¯s slumped back still lying on the floor.
<>
It seemed that all of his energy had been exhausted and he cked out the moment the Immortality skill¡¯s duration came to an end.
He couldn¡¯t muster any strength in his body. No, more correctly, he really didn¡¯t want to move his body at all. He just wanted to lie there for a little bit longer.
¡°Good job, my boy.¡±
Growl¡ª
Su-hyeun petted the back of Miru sagging on the floor just like him.
Three Breath attacks.
This kid used to behave as if it¡¯d die of exhaustion after firing two consecutive Breath attacks, so Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t quite figure out how his dragon managed to shoot the third shot.
It did mean that Miru had grown just a little more, but it also meant that the dragon put in even more effort than ever before, too. Su-hyeun was feeling so proud and happy right now. However, they couldn¡¯t just stay here doing nothing.
¡°Urgh.¡±
He forced himself up with the trembling arms, and felt some strength return to his body little by little.
Having his torso upright, Su-hyeun was able to take a better look at his surroundings. As his mind grew clearer, his previously-blurry vision was slowly restored as well.
The floor he¡¯d been lying on felt a lot harder than before. After he took a look at his vicinity, he noticed that the snakes, Ouroboros¡¯s clones, were strewn about messily all over the ce, none of them budging an inch.
Every single one of them was dead.
<>
It was literally the difference of a hair¡¯s breadth.
If he took even a moment longer to destroy the heart and failed to perfectly absorb the power from it, then he¡¯d also be rolling around on the floor as a corpse himself by now.
In other words, he got to fully enjoy the effects of the hero-ss skill, Immortality.
<>
He still hadn¡¯t been graded for the oue of the results yet. But then again, it was obvious as to why, seeing that hunting down Ouroboros wasn¡¯t the objective of the trial in the first ce.
Of course, the remaining matters weren¡¯t going to pose much of a problem. The objective of this trial as Su-hyeun figured out wasn¡¯t fundamentally a difficult one.
<>
[Name: Kim Su-hyeun]
[Magic factor: 81] [Magic level: 8]
[Strength: 83] [Agility: 89]
[Health: 78] [Reflex: 91]
[Skill: Leap * details]
[Skill: Transfiguration * details]
[Skill: me....]
....
[Fatigue: 55]
After confirming his stats, Su-hyeun almost cried out in happiness without even realizing it. No, his cry did half-waye out of his mouth, but then he managed to swallow it back down. He didn¡¯t want to wake Miru.
[Magic factor: 81.]
[Magic level: 8.]
The first digit of his magic factor had reached 8 while his magic level had reached 8, too.
In all honesty, such numbers scarcely made any logical sense. If he let slip that he achieved this result in only half a year, no one would even believe him, that¡¯s for sure.
Su-hyeun extended his hand forward, and at the same time, the magical energy he absorbed from Ouroboros began swirling about within his outstretched palm.
Giii-iiing¡ª
Sizzzzle¡ª
His palm felt hot as if it was on fire. He furrowed his brows and stopped arousing his magical energy.
The magical power he absorbed from Ouroboros was showing an adverse reaction. He might have absorbed it, but it seemed that he hadn¡¯t fully assimted everything yet.
<>
If he tried to use more than a certain amount of magical energy, the energy he absorbed from Ouroboros would start rejecting his control. The whole thing kind of felt like his new power hadn¡¯t acknowledged Su-hyeun as its new master.
<>
It wasn¡¯t as if he couldn¡¯t think up of a way around this. Su-hyeun stood up from the spot and activated the newly-acquired trait, Third Eye.
Kii-ririririk¡ª
A snake-like eye opened up in Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead.
At the same time, he could vividly sense every little minute sound and presence in his near vicinity as if he was looking at them through his eyes. Even this darkened space brightened noticeably in his view.
<>
Although it sort of looked grotesque, he could thankfully close his new eye again. Not only that, the abilities he could enjoy when opening his third eye weren¡¯t just limited to the enhanced visual senses.
As this trait was acquired from Ouroboros, the third eye also allowed him to assimte the gigantic snake¡¯s powers as his own as well.
Was that why?
The magical energy showing signs of rejection began to quieten down gradually. Now it was acting as if it couldn¡¯t tell whether Su-hyeun was an enemy or an ally.
<>
He had acquired this power rather abruptly; it was only right that he¡¯d have to deal with this level of inconvenience. Besides, he still ended up bing much stronger than before even without resorting to Ouroboros¡¯s power.
A magical energy level of 8.
Su-hyeun knew really well the level of destructive power that signified as he had already wielded such strength before.
<>
Su-hyeun closed shut the third eye in his forehead, lifted up Miru sagging on the floor, and ced the dragon on his shoulder.
¡°Let¡¯s get out of this ce first.¡±
Act 2
¡°Son of a...¡±
¡°This can¡¯t be happening....¡±
Dark magicians arriving by the seafront formed stunned expressions while looking around the area.
The sight of the seaside that had been utterly crushed beyond recognition was one thing, but they found the spectacle of Ouroboros¡¯s corpse lying unmoving on that very location even harder to believe, despite what their eyes were telling them.
¡°Is it...is it really dead?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not breathing....¡±
¡°Maybe it¡¯s just asleep?¡±
They were unwilling to think that the creature had died.
Although some wounds could be seen on its body, they didn¡¯t see them as anything fatal when considering the overall size of Ouroboros. So, it was perhaps unsurprising that the first thing they thought was that the creature was simply slumbering away, rather than it being very much dead.
Unfortunately, the way it didn¡¯t breathe or how no hints of life could be detected behind those giant eyes ¡ª they were far closer in appearance to a rapidly-cooling corpse, instead.
¡°Just what on earth has happened here....¡± Malcolm formed a simrly stunned expression.
Of course, unlike how it was with the others, the death of Ouroboros was something to be celebrated from his perspective. Still, an unbelievable spectacle was unbelievable no matter what.
¡°That punk, he couldn¡¯t have....¡±
Raeng¡¯s already heavily-wrinkled face now crumpled like discarded paper.
Unlike Malcolm, he was aware of what had transpired in this ce. The figure of Su-hyeun dashing forward, wanting to fight Ouroboros, vividly filled his head.
¡°Malcolm. Is this the sight you¡¯ve been wishing for?¡± Raeng asked.
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°Your guest has managed to kill Ouroboros, so now ask of you, do you feel satisfied?¡±
Raeng¡¯s angry words caused confusion to overtake Malcolm¡¯s expression. Thetter simply couldn¡¯t figure out what the former was saying here.
<>
Right then, the face of a man shed inside Malcolm¡¯s mind.
¡°Kim...Su-hyeun?¡±
Moros¡¯stest guest with a strange name. Maclom recalled that man¡¯s face, the one who had disappeared after staying with him for the past few days.
¡°So, his name was Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
Raeng¡¯s deeply scowling face was now ring at Malcolm. Thetter soon felt the unchecked murderous intent oozing out from the former and ungainly took a step back.
Even if they had started learning the dark magic around the same time, Malcolm stopped in the middle of his training, so there was no way he could possibly withstand Raeng¡¯s aura.
¡°It seems that the b*stard called Kim Su-hyeun isn¡¯t around here, so...¡±
Raeng gritted his teeth and extended his hand towards Malcolm. ¡°So, you should pay for his crime, instead.¡±
¡°....Huh, huhuhuh.¡±
Malcolm stopped backing away and chuckled softly to himself.
He could see Ouroboros¡¯s gigantic corpse behind Raeng. For some reason, watching thetter¡¯s rage explode drove home the fact that Ouroboros had indeed been killed off for real.
¡°Thank you.¡±
The moment of his death hade, yet he felt rather refreshed.
He was already thinking about when he¡¯d die, anyway. He had no real reason to continue living on, other than to worry about Ouroboros suddenly going on a rampage.
And now, even his sole remaining worry had vanished.
<>
But then, just as he closed his eyes and waited for Raeng to end his life...
¡°What do you think you¡¯re doing?¡±
A human¡¯s voice suddenly came out from the massive maw of the copsed Ouroboros.
¡°Better put that hand away, or else.¡±
Chapter 113
Chapter 113: Chapter 113
Raeng, his arm still extending towards Malcolm, quickly turned his head.
With his hands supporting himself against the huge fangs of Ouroboros, Su-hyeun was emerging from the creature¡¯s huge maw.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun...¡±
Raeng¡¯s brows shot up high.
Su-hyeun, suspected of dying alongside Ouroboros, instead walked out from the dead creature¡¯s ck mouth. That could mean only one thing.
<>
That was a gamble with his life on the line. The poison found within a monster of Ouroboros¡¯s caliber would be indescribably dangerous, after all.
<>
If that was indeed the case, then he made a rather wise assessment. There wouldn¡¯t be any method to bring down that massive Ouroboros from the outside. Of course, there was still no guarantee that the oue would be any different just because you decided to fight it from the inside, either.
As the word implied, it was a gamble.
However, the odds of ¡°zero percent¡± and ¡°one percent¡± were twopletely different things.
¡°What kind of trick did you resort to?¡±
Raeng¡¯s re was fixed on Su-hyeun. It was the same story for his hand previously reaching towards Malcolm. A dozen or so dark magicians also encircled Su-hyeun and spread out, as well.
¡°Just how did you hunt down Ouroboros?¡±
¡°Is how really important?¡± Su-hyeun replied.
¡°...No, you¡¯re right. It¡¯s not important.¡±
The truly important thing was the death of Ouroboros ¡ª and with that, the dark magicians potentially losing their grip on power once more.
<>
Raeng¡¯s gaze shifted over to Ouroboros¡¯s corpse still resting on the shore. In a way, this could have very well been a blessing in disguise. The corpse of Ouroboros wasn¡¯t something you coulde across even if you searched high and low for it.
Not to forget, he had in his possession a tome rted to Chimera research. The field of study rted to Chimera could be seen as the peak of dark magic itself, and research had been carried out on the subject for a very long time, as well.
The corpse of Ouroboros, plus Malcolm¡¯s wealth of knowledge...
<>
If so, his aged body could be young once more.
Raeng ended his train of thoughts there, and while reining in his anger, formed a deep grin.
He was about to turn a dangerous moment into an opportunity. And that opportunity was standing right before his eyes.
<>
Even a casual nce made it obvious. Su-hyeun¡¯splexion was ashen and dark, and although hardly noticeable, his strides were wavering ever so slightly. The differences were slight, but the fact that he failed to even hide them meant he had to be really fatigued right now. If it was in the past, the situation might have been different, but with how things were, the dark magicians had high enough odds of victory.
¡°You know, I can already sort of tell what you¡¯re scheming in your head,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Swiiish¡ª
His sword was viciously yanked out from its sheath.
¡°This is perfect, actually. Ideal for experimenting, and also, things won¡¯t get too drawn out, which is good.¡±
A rather deeply meaningful smile floated up on Su-hyeun¡¯s lips.
The ominous foreboding was the first thing to assault Raeng; disregarding Su-hyeun¡¯s fatiguedplexion for a moment, his expression showed how alive he currently was.
Raeng had to catch himself from stepping back in fear. He forced his body to take a step forward, instead. ¡°You and your pathetic bluffing attempt...¡±
Rumble¡ª
Raeng spread both of his arms wide. At same time, dark currents suddenly enveloped the area with Su-hyeun as the center. Not too long afterward, his figure waspletely covered up by the swirling dark currents of air.
Ku-gugugugu¡ª
Massive pressure began crashing down on Su-hyeun. Raeng, believing that this wasn¡¯t going to be enough, opened his mouth with his arms still wide open. ¡°Kill him.¡±
Saash¡ª
Ten-plus dark magicians fired their magic in Su-hyeun¡¯s direction. Thick chains were sucked into the dark currents, while ck drills flew towards Su-hyeun¡¯s various vital spots.
He possessed a considerably high resistance against magic. So, rather than relying on usual dark magic, Raeng made sure to use those few spells that had actual, tangible physical forms.
As for these ten dark magicians, they were the best of the best dark magicians currently residing in Moros.
ng¡ª
Right in that instant, all the chains and drills flying towards Su-hyeun were deflected upwards by an incredible burst of power.
Thud¡ª
Chains and drills cleanly sliced through soon lost their strength and fell down to the ground. Su-hyeun, thought to be unable to lift even a finger while trapped inside the gigantic dome of pressure, actually managed to swing his sword around.
¡°But...¡±
¡°H-how did he...?¡±
That wasn¡¯t the end, however.
aaash¡ª
The space of ck current Raeng had created was chopped down. At the same time, the dark magicians surrounding this space took retreating steps.
¡°Create some distance and get ready for the next round of attacks!¡±
¡°Sir, the next magi¡ª¡±
Whoosh¡ª
The dark magician requesting Raeng for the next magic suddenly felt pain in his chest and looked down.
<>
Saash¡ª!
Every dark magician¡¯s chest had been shed wide open, and they fell to the ground while fountains of blood exploded from their wounds.
Raeng, too, patted his chest down with his fingertips. Dark crimson blood stained his hand. If it weren¡¯t for the robe enchanted with defense magic protecting his body, even his heart could¡¯ve been sliced through just now.
¡°You¡¯re one seriously resilient fellow, that¡¯s for sure,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°You...you...¡±
Su-hyeun tore the space apart and revealed himself, causing Raeng¡¯s eyes to nearly pop out of their sockets.
A third eye was revealed on his forehead, and soft-looking ck scales were covering his entire body. And most importantly, there was the concentration of magical energy that could be sensed emanating from him.
There was no mistaking it.
¡°O-Ouroboros?¡±
¡°You recognized it pretty fast.¡±
¡°But, that power, how could you....¡±
Su-hyeun had acquired Ouroboros¡¯s power. That was the power Raeng yearned for the past dozen or so years. Not only that, but Su-hyeun didn¡¯t just acquire the gigantic snake¡¯s bodily abilities. The gaze of the leader of all dark magicians met with the small eye located in his opponent¡¯s forehead.
It was a third eye, with a snake-like thin slit in its iris.
That was basically the symbol of Ouroboros¡¯s true authority, something that could never be acquired through research on Chimeras alone.
Raeng felt as if all his lengthy, difficult research up until now was all for nought.
¡°For sure, it¡¯s an incredible power, alright.¡± Su-hyeun left open his newly acquired trait, the third eye, and red at Raeng. ¡°If you can handle it, that is.¡±
¡°Give it back!¡±
The ground Su-hyeun was standing on turned ck and very malleable in an instant. And the more he tried to move forward, the deeper he got sucked underground.
<>
Raeng gritted his teeth and clenched his fists tightly. The pressure grew stronger, and Su-hyeun¡¯s feet got sucked more and more under the ground.
Poo-wook¡ª
Even though he was being sucked below, Su-hyeun¡¯s feet still strode forward slowly. It was as if nothing had happened. Not a shred of hesitation could be seen.
¡°How ironic this is,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Raeng watched Su-hyeun gradually get closer and began stumbling backward.
Perhaps due to his concentration breaking, the effect of the magic trying to suck Su-hyeun below became that much weaker. And that, in turn, caused his steps to be much faster.
¡°Those who used this power to oppress a city are about to get wiped out by this very same power instead,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°You, you...Just what are you?¡±
Su-hyeun had no thoughts of answering Raeng¡¯s question. Who or what he was wasn¡¯t important at all.
¡°Did you know who they were when you killed them?¡±
The ¡°they¡± in his question referred to those people who got served up as sacrifices to Ouroboros.
¡°You haven¡¯t even seen their faces before, have you?¡±
¡°So? What about it?¡±
Ku-wuwuwuwu¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s foot sunk in really deeply.
Cold sweat ran down Raeng¡¯s entire body. He was squeezing out every ounce of magical energy reserve still left in his body to force Su-hyeun down.
¡°Do you have any idea the level of discrimination we had to suffer? Those bastards despised us without even bothering to know who we are just because we were dark magicians! In that case, what¡¯s so wrong with killing them all?¡±
Dark magic. The field of study that had be the object of scorn, disgust, and contempt.
Raeng had spend his entire life in this field of study, and therefore, carried a massive chip on his shoulders towards all the other magicians who had looked down on him.
He lived on with the promise to punish those magicians by acquiring great power. And about a dozen or so years ago, he got to acquire that very power he had been searching for.
The power called Ouroboros.
¡°You asked me if I knew who they were, right? Yes, I knew them! I knew those eyes filled with disdain, those words that mercilessly dug deep into my heart! So, do not run your mouth off when you don¡¯t even know anything!¡±
¡°You know, that¡¯s just too bad.¡±
Split¡ª
The half-closed third eye in Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead suddenly opened up wide.
Giiiii-iiiiing¡ª
The third eye¡¯s power began to gradually force back the space Raeng had created.
Raeng was stunned by an event that had never happened before, and hurriedly increased the output of his magic. However, no matter how hard he tried, the destruction of the space he created simply couldn¡¯t be prevented at all.
¡°W-what is the meaning of...¡±
He waspletely bbergasted.
Raeng stared at the third eye in Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead. He wasn¡¯t sure what its exact ability was, but at the very least, he could tell what was happening right now.
The magic neutralization.
It was one of those abilities that neutralized your opponent¡¯s magic, something that could be used only if your opponent¡¯s skill level was far, far below yours.
<>
He just couldn¡¯t ept this. Neutralizing his magic as if it didn¡¯t even exist in the first ce ¡ª that also meant his decades-long life was now being unjustly denied.
It simply couldn¡¯t be allowed to happen.
¡°Unfortunately for you, I know a lot about dark magic.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze shifted over to Malcolm in the distance. ¡°And that¡¯s why I also know the reason for Sir Malcolm over there deciding to give up on it, too.¡±
He got to deal with these bastards calling themselves dark magicians numerous times before while experiencing various trials in the past life. With the exception of someone like Malcolm and a handful of others, the rest of that lot were always made up of seriously evil people.
Actually, one had little choice but to go through a training that harmed the sanctity of human life if one wished to reach the highest peak of dark magic. As this field of study was designed to be like that from the onset, it was not something any sane person would want to learn.
However, people that did were seduced by the dark magic¡¯s charm that allowed you to be stronger much soonerpared to regr magic, and would gradually be corrupt as a result.
¡°You got discriminated when no one knew who you were? And that¡¯s why you simply got back at them? Even your premise is wrong from the start.¡±
Su-hyeun walked towards Raeng, and looked down at the old man with a bent back. ¡°You see, it¡¯s not that hard to figure out why you lot were discriminated against.¡±
His sword was now approaching the target.
Raeng didn¡¯t close his ring eyes even as the sword reached his neck. He certainly didn¡¯t be the greatest among Moros¡¯s dark magicians with half-baked determination, after all.
¡°I...was not wrong.¡± Raeng turned his head and looked at Malcolm. ¡°I....!¡±
Swish¡ª
A very thin bloody line was drawn on Raeng¡¯s body.
¡°...Was not...wro...¡±
He couldn¡¯t finish what he wanted to say as his body split in half and fell to the ground. Su-hyeun, now unable to hear the man¡¯sst words, looked at Raeng¡¯s body with a slightly rueful expression.
This man lived by his own set of beliefs. If only his beliefs didn¡¯t stray down the wrong path, he could have been someone truly great.
¡°I pray....¡± Malcolm looked at Raeng¡¯s body before closing his eyes. ¡°...That you reach a good ce, my friend.¡±
He then shifted his gaze over to Su-hyeun. When the third eye closed and the scales covering his body disappeared, Su-hyeun immediately began tottering unsteadily.
¡°Are you alright?¡± Malcolm asked.
¡°...Yes, I¡¯m alright.¡±
He did push himself a bit too far.
Right after the battle against Ouroboros had ended, he engaged Raeng and ten-plus dark magicians in another round of fighting even before his body had a chance to recover.
Sure, it might have been a rather one-sided affair, but using a newly-acquired trait with a worn-out body was still taking things one step too far.
<>
Still, he now had a rough idea of what the effect of the new trait might be.
Although he would need a little more time to fully limate himself, he definitely didn¡¯t feel short-changed at his decision to discard the Imoogi¡¯s trait in exchange for Ouroboros¡¯s.
<>
[Achievement rate: 100%]
[Will you end your trial here?]
Su-hyeun stared at the achievement rate and thought to himself.
<<...It¡¯s finally ended.>>
Chapter 114
Chapter 114: Chapter 114
An achievement rate of 100 percent.
It needed only one more point to reach that figure after Ouroboros¡¯s death, and by killing Raeng and the dark magicians, Su-hyeun managed to fully achieve his goal.
It was unknown why Raeng was counted as that single percentage point of remaining threat despite Ouroboros being dead, but nevertheless, Su-hyeun should have been celebrating the fact that the trial of the 30th floor had been perfectly cleared.
¡°Can you stand?¡± Malcolm asked as he supported Su-hyeun¡¯s body.
Even then, the old man continued to sneak several nces at the gigantic monster¡¯s corpse. This whole thing must¡¯ve been too mystifying for him even now.
¡°I was feeling momentarily dizzy, that¡¯s all. You don¡¯t have to worry about me, sir.¡±
¡°That¡¯s good to hear. By the way, that thing just now....¡±
¡°It¡¯s the power I acquired after killing Ouroboros.¡±
¡°Can you safely handle it?¡±
Malcolm, the foremost expert on Ouroboros, was asking that question.
Indeed, Su-hyeun had to experience some real hardship during the process of acquiring Ouroboros¡¯s power. Thankfully, he managed to absorb the monster¡¯s magical energy through the transfiguration skill, but even now, utilizing this power remained a tough prospect without resorting to his trait first.
It was obvious that you¡¯d have to pay a hefty price when acquiring great power.
¡°I can,¡± replied Su-hyeun confidently.
It wasn¡¯t going to be too difficult.
<>
Su-hyeun used to be the best. He had wielded power several times greater than this one in the past, and not only that, he was in perfect control over it, too.
Indeed, the newly-acquired power that happened to be resistant to his control didn¡¯t even pose a problem. No, he wanted to start dancing in happiness from the fact that he could get stronger so much quicker now.
Malcolm seemed relieved by that reply as he began nodding his head. ¡°Well, then. That¡¯s a relief. Huhuhuh.¡±
After helping Su-hyeun up, the old man must¡¯ve lost his own strength instead as he plopped down on the ground. Then he stared at Ouroboros¡¯s corpse and opened his mouth. ¡°Thank you.¡±
¡°Sir, it was nothing much.¡±
¡°Saying that it¡¯s nothing much...No, you¡¯ve achieved a truly amazing feat.¡±
It was unimaginable that the mighty Ouroboros was killed off. To think that the karma he ¡°created¡± had been exorcised, just like that.
¡°Thank you. Truly, I¡¯m grateful. I can¡¯t even fathom how I should repay this debt....¡±
¡°Sir.¡± Su-hyeun lowered himself and held Malcolm¡¯s hand as thetter remained squatting on the ground. ¡°I¡¯m also grateful.¡±
¡°Mm? What do you mean, grateful? I haven¡¯t done anything.¡±
¡°A small goodwill shown to someone can be a great act of kindness to that person. The hospitality you have shown me is exactly that, sir.¡±
For the past few days, Malcolm treated Su-hyeun well without expecting anything in return. He provided a ce to sleep and food to eat to an unknown foreigner. That stranger with an unknown background was permitted to read any book he wanted, too.
Hell, Malcolm even taught him information regarding Miru, as well.
Even if they were all down to his guilty conscience, Su-hyeun still thought of them as an act of kindness.
¡°It can¡¯t be.¡±
¡°It is. The killing of Ouroboros was my own act of kindness to you, sir.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s words caused Malcolm¡¯s eyes to tremble greatly.
¡°Please don¡¯t be too burdened by this, sir.¡±
¡°Young man, your body, it¡¯s....¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s body was gradually getting fainter.
Not too long after that, even the hand holding Malcolm¡¯s felt like a mirage without a physical form. The old man reached out with his other hand to grasp Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder.
However, his hand simply wandered in the empty air.
Su-hyeun hadpletely vanished into thin air.
¡°Huh-uh....¡±
This was like a waking dream.
A man named Su-hyeun who used to stand right before his eyes had disappeared.
For a long while, Malcolm remained sitting on the ground, quietly ruminating on what Su-hyeun had said.
* * *
[You have acquired 500,000 achievement points.]
[You attained the maximum attainable achievement level.]
[The 30th floor¡¯s trial has been perfectly cleared.]
[Achievement ranking is being tallied.]
[You have reached first ce.]
[Stamina has increased by one...]
[....]
[Acquired the Trait Ouroboros¡¯s Third Eye. It will be recorded as a new permanent trait.]
[Your new trait is ovepping with the Transfiguration Skill: Third Eye. You can now acquire a new trait by using the transfiguration skill.]
Messages popped up one after the other in his head.
The first thing to catch his attention was the enormous amount of achievement points, as well as the acquisition of a brand new trait.
<>
A permanent trait was a term denoting a special attribute that an awakener could possess. In other words, this trait was exactly like a passive skill engraved into one¡¯s body.
The transfiguration skill allowed him to temporarily use such traits. Although him having to acquire a trait to use first was slightly inconvenient, it was still undoubtedly a cheat skill that let him use any trait he desired.
Normally, an awakener possessing a trait was a rare thing to see. It was not something that could be purchased through achievement points, so traits were deemed to be exceptionally difficult to acquire.
Even only a small handful of S-Ranks was lucky enough to possess a trait. Awakeners with traits of the dragon-like Hwang Jun-peong used their gifts to make a name for themselves.
¡°Ouroboros¡¯s trait, is it...¡±
Seeing how it won against the transfiguration skill¡¯s version, the pure third eye of Ouroboros must¡¯ve been a higher-rated trait of the two. When considering the fact that both should have been the same ¡°third eye,¡± the pure version was most likely the moreplete of the two.
<>
The third eye alone was a truly excellent trait already. He was sure of it since he had experienced its effect first hand.
Sure, it was a wee bit inconvenient that he now had to hunt for a new trait, and for some reason, it kind of felt like he didn¡¯t get any special reward for his troubles, either.
<>
Su-hyeun decided to look at it positively.
Regardless, the third eye was destined to be swapped out in the future, anyway. He had already made up his mind a long time ago on which trait he wanted to acquire through the transfiguration skill.
So, the rewards he received today would get the chance to shine brightly when he finally acquired that trait he wanted while still retaining the third eye.
¡°Besides all that...¡± Su-hyeun nced at the surrounding scenery and muttered to himself. ¡°Been a long time since I came here.¡±
¡°Here¡± was a noisy, lively center of a city. A world where bright lights sparkled everywhere while music and people¡¯sughter continued to flow by in endless streams.
<>
That was the name of the world found on the 31st floor.
Su-hyeun walked on the streets and took a look at the surroundings for a little while.
This world was the closest to the modern Earth he had been living in. Although the scientific advancement in this ce wasn¡¯t much to speak of, the residents¡¯ sentiments and living habits were so simr that many awakeners chose to reside here, and some even went as far as to give up on their original world outside to make a living in this ce.
<>
A city with good living conditions inevitably had another facet to it, a hidden face if you will. It was especially more so with the world found on the 31st floor.
If only one knew the process involved in creating a world like this one, then one would never be able to look at this ce in a favorable light ever again.
<>
Su-hyeun sought out an inn. It had a boisterous pub on its first floor, but thankfully, the noise didn¡¯t reach the room as if the establishment employed excellent soundproofing techniques.
¡°For the time being, let¡¯s just take a break.¡±
After renting and entering the room, he immediately returned to his home. Su-hyeun copsed on the bed right before his eyes and sunk deep into a restful slumber.
* * *
Su-hyeun remained in slumber for a long while. For an entire day, as a matter of fact. The battle had been intense enough to trigger the Immortality skill, and as a consequence, his fatigue had built up to a very high level.
¡°...I sure slept for a long time.¡±
Su-hyeun got up from the bed and walked out to the living room while yawning grandly.
Grrng, purrr¡ª
Miru was lying on its belly on the living room floor.
Su-hyeun rubbed his eyes and washed himself.
It had been quite a while since he felt so refreshed like this after leisurely cleaning himself with warm water in thefort of his own home.
Rrrrring¡ª
While drying his hair with a towel, he picked up the phone to make a call. He wanted to talk to the guild master of the Reaper Guild, Ji-yeon.
<>
¡°...Maybe she¡¯s not on this side?¡±
He tried to call several times but seeing how she didn¡¯t answer at all, it was quite likely that she had entered the tower of trials. The majority of S-rank awakeners rarely stopped climbing the tower, so it was only obvious that the time they spent inside that ce would be longer than the time spent outside.
<>
Su-hyeun muttered to himself and dialed a new number this time.
¡°What can I do for you?¡±
He then happily greeted the voice he hadn¡¯t heard in a while. ¡°It¡¯s been a while. Have you been well?¡±
The person on the line was an awakener affiliated with the awakener¡¯s association, Kim Do-ui.
* * *
After receiving Su-hyeun¡¯s call, Kim Do-ui hurriedly left the association¡¯s building.
The former had been out of reach for a while. No, it¡¯d be more correct to say that they didn¡¯t have much of a reason to contact each other frequently.
There wasn¡¯t a link that connected Su-hyeun to the association. If there was a rtionship between the two, then it¡¯d be the association one-sidedly amodating Su-hyeun¡¯s needs.
<>
Kim Do-ui climbed into a taxi and while watching the scenery pass by outside the window, and he began thinking to himself.
<>
He only got to learn it at ater stage, and he still wasn¡¯t any wiser to what that weakness could potentially be.
However, he knew for certain that the association had been paying Su-hyeun very close attention. No, it¡¯d be more correct to say that not just the Korean association, but the entire world was keeping their eyes on that man.
<>
Was that all?
He was the sole challenger of the tenth level trials, too.
Su-hyeun had already aplished numerous feats when your regr S-rank would¡¯ve found it hard to achieve just one. Only a short while ago, he was seen as an awakener with a bright future ahead of him, but now, he had already be one of the greatest in the world.
¡°But, why does he want to meet me...?¡±
Could it be that he had something to ask for, a favor perhaps?
Kim Do-ui¡¯s taxi stopped in front of a small cafe located in Yeouido Ind. He spotted Su-hyeun already waiting for him inside this small cafe with only a handful of tables, found in an obscure corner of the ind.
¡°You¡¯re here,¡± Su-hyeun offered his greeting first.
¡°It¡¯s been a while.¡±
Kim Do-ui extended his hand towards Su-hyeun. After the handshake, the former hurriedly ordered his coffee and asked thetter. ¡°What¡¯s going on? Did something happen out of the blue? You probably didn¡¯t call me here to see my face, am I right?¡±
¡°You¡¯re still straightforward, I see.¡±
¡°Not a fan of beating around the bush, myself. And I also suck at humoring others, too.¡±
¡°That¡¯s why I wanted to speak to you. I¡¯m also kind of like that, personality-wise, so talking to you is more convenient for me.¡±
Su-hyeun slotted a bookmark on the pages of a book he had been reading and closed the cover. Kim Do-ui saw what¡¯s on the book¡¯s cover and asked, sounding somewhat puzzled, ¡°Do you enjoy reading?¡±
¡°If only I could, I¡¯d like to stay in a ce like this for a whole day, doing nothing but just reading books. Since I have enough money, I can buy as much coffee as I want, too.¡±
¡°Why can¡¯t you?¡±
Kim Do-ui formed an even more puzzled expression.
Most people could do what Su-hyeun had said just now. And someone with his financial wherewithal as well as his authority should be able to do something that simple, surely.
¡°Well, I¡¯ll make sure to enjoy it muchter.¡±
Su-hyeun shook his head slightly as if he didn¡¯t want to talk about this anymore.
The quick-witted Kim Do-ui nodded his head and shut his mouth. His coffee arrived just then with excellent timing.
¡°Actually, I just passed the 30th floor.¡±
Kim Do-ui¡¯s hand lifting up the mug came to a brief halt. ¡°That means...you have reached the 31st floor.¡±
¡°Yes, I have.¡±
¡°It¡¯s a nice ce. In more ways than one.¡±
¡°Is that what you really believe?¡±
Kim Do-ui was unable to pick up his coffee mug after hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s question. After withdrawing his hand from the beverage, he quietly asked.
¡°How much do you know, exactly?¡±
Chapter 115
Chapter 115: Chapter 115
Now that was a deeply meaningful question.
Kim Do-ui hurriedly scanned his vicinity from the barista working on the next brew to the waitress receiving the order and the customers at the next table.
He focused his attention on all of their ears.
¡°You don¡¯t have to worry. No sound will leak outside of this,¡± said Su-hyeun.
A nearly-imperceptible thin magical barrier was currently blocking out sounds. Not just the noisesing from outside the cafe, but the conversation between the two men would not leak outside with it in ce.
Kim Do-ui felt cold sweat trickle down his back. If he had known beforehand, he¡¯d have suggested not meeting in a public cafe but instead somewhere slightly more private.
¡°You¡¯re surprisingly mischievous, aren¡¯t you?¡± asked Kim Do-ui.
¡°I didn¡¯t choose this ce as our meeting spot, though.¡±
¡°If I knew we were meeting to discuss such matters, I¡¯d have chosen another ce.¡±
¡°Should we go somewhere else, then?¡±
¡°...No, it¡¯s fine. Now, I just want to finish this quickly and go back to the office.¡±
Kim Do-ui signed grandly and took a sip of the coffee.
A short whileter, Su-hyeun opened his mouth. ¡°You asked me how much I know. It¡¯s probably as much as the association knows, actually, so just about everything.¡±
¡°If I asked how you found out....You won¡¯t answer me, am I correct?¡±
¡°Of course.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s hear it then. How much do you know?¡±
¡°The drug ring and awakeners choosing to stay there. Illegal trading of points and smuggling of drugs through the dimension order forms.¡±
¡°...So, you do know everything.¡±
¡°It began as a small-time criminal operation, but it now has ballooned into a massive scale that can¡¯t be easily dealt with. Arge amount of achievement points being funneled to that side is a problem, yes, but the bigger issue here is with the drugs being smuggled back to the outside world using the dimension order forms purchased through those points.¡±
The achievement points could be traded only within the Tower of Trials.
The current racket worked like this: drug dealing between awakeners took ce with those points acting as their currency, and when further points were acquired afterward, those were then used to bring the drugs to the real world outside.
The drug dealers working with awakeners proved to be a huge headache for the association, too.
¡°We just don¡¯t have any good ways to prosecute them. Awakeners on the floors higher than the 31st can¡¯t go back there, and when we try to do something from out here in the real world, they sniff out our attempts to close in and quickly run off back to that ce,¡± said Kim Do-ui.
¡°That means there is no other option but to hunt them down on the 31st floor.¡±
¡°But the issue with that is a bastard who had passed through the 9th level trials to get there decided to call that ce his home.¡±
A ¡°monster¡± was living on the 31st floor, an awakener who definitely didn¡¯t belong in that ce yet still decided to call that world his base. For some reason, this awakener also decided to try his hand on drugs peddling on the 31st floor¡¯s world and became the middleman in smuggling narcotics into the real world.
¡°We tried to catch him through sheer numbers, but that didn¡¯t pan out. No one wanted to take on the risk. So, basically, an awakener on the 31st floor that could possibly catch such a monster is...¡± Kim Do-ui spoke up to there before staring at Su-hyeun, his hand frozen in mid-air with a coffee mug still in his grip. ¡°...Eh?¡±
¡°What do you think?¡±
¡°W-wait, but, but...¡±
Su-hyeun had reached the 31st floor.
Kim Do-ui reflexively shot up from his seat and asked. ¡°Could it be you...?¡±
¡°You and I are on the same track,¡± replied Su-hyeun while nodding his head. ¡°That person needs to be apprehended.¡±
Kim Do-ui¡¯s expression brightened instantly.
The criminal of the 31st floor who evaded capture until now by relying on the restrictions of one being unable toe back to the floor once they went further up.
Petro.
And now, a lead that could potentially result in his arrest had finally made an entrance.
¡°For that purpose, I have a favor I need to ask of you,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Act 3
While massaging his pulsing migraine, Kim Do-ui decided to return to the association.
Su-hyeun¡¯s offer was definitely something to celebrate. The problems of the 31st floor remained a big source of headache for the longest time, after all.
Not to mention, this wasn¡¯t just a South Korean problem, either. No, it was a headache that every awakener association in the world had to experience together. And Su-hyeun was potentially the lead, the cure, that could solve this problem.
<>
It didn¡¯t matter how Su-hyeun came across this information.
The thing was, Kim Do-ui didn¡¯t even know how the world found on the 31st floor even operated or looked like. From what he heard, it was structured closest to the real world, a city where drugged-out junkies could be spotted quitemonly.
If it was such a city, then it¡¯d not be a stretch of one¡¯s imagination to think that Su-hyeun found something wrong with the 31st floor¡¯s world and decided to investigate it in detail.
<>
The issue at hand was, as expected, how to locate Petro.
After parting ways with Su-hyeun, Kim Do-ui immediately called someone on the phone. A few secondster, the other side answered the call.
¡°Director, it¡¯s me, sir. Yes. Yes, that¡¯s what happened. Looks like we might have found a solution.¡± Kim Do-ui looked behind him at the cafe with Su-hyeun still sitting inside and continued on. ¡°However, sir, there¡¯s a slight problem.¡±
* * *
Su-hyeun returned to the 31st floor immediately. The noisy, lively street and the familiar sweet scent greeted him.
He stepped onto the street and observed the people walking by. One out of every ten passersby had those unfocused, zed eyes of a junkie.
<>
Their irises were abnormally small and the whites of the eyes were very prominent, while their focus was blurry, messy. That was the symptom of addiction to the 31st floor¡¯s asmon-as-grass drug, Blending.
¡°Excuse me.¡±
Su-hyeun stopped a woman in herte twenties. Although her irises were outwardly fine, the focus within those eyes seemed just a little unstable, which was an early sign of addiction to Blending.
¡°Eh? Me?¡±
¡°Yes. Is it okay if I asked you about something?¡±
¡°Okay?¡±
¡°Do you know a person named Petro?¡±
¡°Petro...?¡± His question caused the woman¡¯s brows to furrow quite deeply as she made her reply. ¡°Why are you asking me about that criminal scum?¡±
Su-hyeun watched the displeased woman spinning on her heels to walk away, and scratched his head.
<>
Petro¡¯s name was rather well-known on the 31st floor. This criminal had his hand in almost every illegal activity you could think of, like drugs, human trafficking, and gambling. On top of this, people had high expectations of him, anticipating that he¡¯d be a world-renowned awakener one day ¡ª before he ended up on the 31st floor.
But now, the name Petro belonged to the darkly-stained hands that dealt in drug smuggling. He was now the headache of the entire world.
<>
Blending could only be purchased through dealers connected to Petro. Although the drug itself wasmonly found, that guy tightly regted Blending¡¯s flow through a powerful organization he had created around himself.
A junkie high as a kite might know the direction that could lead Su-hyeun towards where Petro was hiding, or he could even meet someone who directly purchased the drugs from Petro himself.
¡°...Mm?¡±
It was then that Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes discovered a rather familiar face.
When their eyes met, the man walking past him froze up right on the spot. Su-hyeun slowly studied this man¡¯s face before smirking rather deeply.
The man tried to walk past, pretending to not know anything, but Su-hyeun still caught his shoulder.
¡°We¡¯ve met each other before, haven¡¯t we?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°I-I-I don¡¯t, uh, think so....¡±
¡°Your name was....¡± Su-hyeun dived into his memories for a little while, before finally recalling this man¡¯s name. ¡°It¡¯s Gwon Jang-hyuk, isn¡¯t it?¡±
* * *
The profession called awakener was a really nice one. It granted a wonderful physique, special skills and abilities, and people¡¯s gazes of envy and respect.
Gwon Jang-hyuk had be an awakener about one year ago, and without even giving it a moment¡¯s deliberation, chose the lowest difficulty for his trials.
He really hated anything dangerous. And so, that¡¯s how he reached the 31st floor.
But now...
<>
Gwon Jang-hyuk couldn¡¯t even dare to look at Su-hyeun¡¯s face standing right before his eyes.
Meanwhile, Su-hyeun was inwardly thinking about how small the world could be sometimes. He never imagined running into Gwon Jang-hyuk in a ce like this, after all.
<>
The first thing Su-hyeuk saw after opening eyes in his new body was the text messages from Gwon Jang-hyuk.
¡ªHey, I heard you got hospitalized?
¡ªWhen are you getting discharged? I wanna talk to you.
¡ªThis big bro of yours is in a need for some quick cash, you see. It¡¯s fine, right?
Back then, he found it rather amusing.
Before he closed his eyes, he was busy fighting against Fafnir. But after receiving texts from a neighborhood punk threatening to kill him, he gained a renewed appreciation of how much his situation had changed.
Of course, the necessary moral education was carried out swiftly.
The second time they ran into each other was during the outbreak of Anyang city¡¯s green-colored dungeon. That happened so fast that his face was a bit of a blur back then, but still, that counted. And so, this would be their third encounter.
¡°Been a while, hasn¡¯t it?¡±
Su-hyeun dragged Gwon Jang-hyuk to a narrow side street. Thetter still didn¡¯t dare to meet the former¡¯s eyes even now.
Never mind what happened in the past, the current Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t someone Gwon Jang-hyuk could do anything about. You could easily run into Su-hyeun¡¯s name while watching a TV broadcast or the browsing inte.
<>
The youngest ever S-rank awakener.
The conqueror of the blue-colored dungeon.
The man who utterly stomped America¡¯s Dump Guild out of existence, and currently estimated to be the strongest awakener in South Korea.
Even if they were on the same floor, that didn¡¯t mean they were simr in their skill level. The difference between Su-hyeun and Gwok Jang-hyuk was as wide as heaven and earth.
¡°So, then. When did you get here?¡± Su-hyeun asked, and Gwon Jang-hyuk replied, his eyes skittishly looking around.
¡°It-it¡¯s been a m-month, sir.¡±
¡°A month? So quick?¡±
¡°Y-yes, sir...¡±
¡°The level one difficulty?¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk nodded at Su-hyeun¡¯s question. He then abruptly realized that he was talking in honorifics until now. Regardless of what happened, they were still from the same year in high school.
¡°T-that¡¯s right.¡±
Smack!
¡°Where¡¯s ¡®sir?¡¯¡±
¡°...Sir.¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk rubbed his forehead smacked by Su-hyeun¡¯s finger flick and replied in a small voice. Trying to get smart here would only result in him getting killed off or get beaten up even more.
<>
Sounding as if he heard that internal monologue just now, Su-hyeun looked down at Gwon Jang-hyuk and spoke up. ¡°That¡¯s why you should¡¯ve been a nicer guy in the past. If you were going to grovel before someone stronger than you, well, you should¡¯ve treated people weaker than you much better.¡±
¡°I-I¡¯m still reflecting on it as we speak, sir.¡±
¡°That¡¯s enough of that.¡± Su-hyeun pointed to what looked like a cigarette currently held in Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s hand and asked, ¡°That thing. Where did you get it?¡±
¡°...Eh? You mean, this?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right.¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk alternated his gaze between the cigarette and Su-hyeun before asking a question. ¡°W-would you like to have a go? This tastes really gre....¡±
Smaaack¡ª!
¡°OUCH!!¡±
¡°Hey, you. Are you smoking that while knowing it¡¯s a drug?¡±
¡°Well, that...¡±
Judging from his expression, it seemed that Gwon Jang-hyuk knew.
Su-hyeun frowned and raised his hand again. ¡°You knew, yet you wanted me to smoke that?¡±
¡°H-hold on a minute, sir! Y-you¡¯re saying that because you don¡¯t know the truth!¡±
¡°I don¡¯t?¡±
¡°Y-yes! Sure, it might be a drug, but it¡¯s asmon as grass in this ce. If a drug is cheaper than water, what¡¯s the difference between it and actual cigarettes?¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk seemed to have his own ¡°persuasive¡± reason for smoking Blending. Unfortunately, everyone who tried it had a simr train of thought as he did.
It was cheap, and it wasn¡¯t as addictive, either. And if you wanted one, you could find it quite easily, so in the end, it was not much different from a regr cigarette.
That was Blending in a nutshell.
¡°And that¡¯s what makes it truly dangerous,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°...Eh?¡±
¡°A drug that lulls you into thinking that it¡¯s not harmful. You gradually begin to think it¡¯s only obvious to use it, and eventually, you won¡¯t be able to survive a single day without it.¡±
Su-hyeun was well aware of the true dangers of Blending. He knew what would happen to the 31st floor¡¯s world in the future because of this very drug, after all.
¡°And also, it looks like you¡¯re not being upfront with me about something here...¡±
Fwhoosh¡ª
Riiiip¡ª
Su-hyeun reached towards the backpack on Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s back and tore it open.
Tumble, drop¡ª
Bundles of ¡°grass¡± wrapped in white cloth tumbled to the ground. Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯splexion paled instantly and he tried to avoid Su-hyeun¡¯s re.
¡°And where were you nning to sell those?¡±
Chapter 116
Chapter 116: Chapter 116
Gulp¡ª
Gwon Jang-hyuk swallowed his saliva at Su-hyeun¡¯s question.
The awakener association had already banned the usage of drugs like Blending in the 31st floor¡¯s world. It¡¯s just that there was no sure way to stop the sales of the drugs and therefore the practice wasrgely left alone for now, which led to thew being dered but not policed openly.
That¡¯s why he never thought it was too dangerous.
But now, the situation had changed.
¡°If it turns out that you weren¡¯t merely satisfied with smoking Blending and decided to join hands with Petro¡¯s dealers to sell their crap...¡± Su-hyeun watched Gwon Jang-hyuk cautiously picking up the bundles of Blending off the ground and spoke up. ¡°Well, I wonder if it¡¯s okay to carry out a summary conviction right here?¡±
A chill ran down Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s entire body.
The association didn¡¯t have a way to interfere in the 31st floor¡¯s matters. However, Su-hyeun was an awakener and he was currently on this very floor. On top of that, he even knew who Gwon Jang-hyuk was. He knew there was a South Korean citizen named Gwon Jang-hyuk living in Anyang city.
Basically, he had thetterpletely trapped. No paths of escape were left open for Gwon Jang-hyuk.
¡°B-b-but...¡± Gwon Jang-hyuk stammered pitifully.
¡°Cooperate or else.¡±
Su-hyeun smirked meaningfully. On the other hand, Gwon Jang-hyuk became teary-faced.
* * *
After entering the pub, Gwon Jang-hyuk began chugging down beer nonstop. His mouth was dry and his innards were burning up, so he just couldn¡¯t help himself.
Su-hyeun spoke while watching him hurriedly knock back the beer. ¡°Don¡¯t be so nervous.¡±
¡°Y-yes!¡±
Signs of nervousness were still too obvious to see. It seemed that he was fearful of being stigmatized as a criminal.
¡°...Alright, then. Let¡¯s summarize what you told me so far.¡±
Su-hyeun summarized what Gwon Jang-hyuk, sitting stiffly upright and looking back at him, had said just now.
¡°So, you¡¯re basically just a part-timer. Is that right?¡±
¡°Y-yes, that¡¯s correct.¡±
¡°You don¡¯t have any link to Petro to speak of, and your role is to simply deliver the daily allotment of goods to designated customers. After you¡¯re done distributing, you get your own share of Blending. Right so far?¡±
¡°Yes, that¡¯s the structure.¡±
¡°Does that mean there are a fair number of awakeners smoking Blending who aren¡¯t deeply connected to this whole racket, just like you?¡±
¡°Y-you¡¯re correct. Not deeply connected.¡±
¡°Hmm.¡±
¡°I-I¡¯m being honest. I¡¯m not really deeply involved.¡±
¡°...That¡¯s not what¡¯s important, is it? Should I just hand you over to the association, then?¡±
¡°I-I¡¯m sorry....¡±
Su-hyeun spat out a long groan at Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s words and began drumming on the table with his fingers.
<>
Even if Petro did whatever he pleased within the 31st floor, he was still an existence right at the heart of this city. So, he probably wouldn¡¯t have personally met with a weakling greenhorn who only managed to get here by selecting the level one difficulty.
¡°But, uhm...just what¡¯s wrong with Blending, anyway?¡± Gwon Jang-hyuk asked.
¡°You¡¯ve been smoking it, yet you can¡¯t tell?¡±
¡°Eh? About what?¡±
¡°Blending¡¯s been slowly infiltrating Britain recently. Well, not just Britain, but other countries back in the real world, too.¡± Su-hyeun reached out and grasped a handful of Blending Gwon Jang-hyuk had been carrying around and continued on. ¡°All of this has been smuggled out of here using the achievement points earned through selling Blending in this ce. The drugs thatnded in Britain got there through the dimension order forms and end up in the hands of the wealthy. It might be asmon as grass in this ce, but to them....¡±
¡°...They must think that they¡¯re also now enjoying the special privilege that only the awakeners got to enjoy.¡±
¡°Well, you aren¡¯t aplete dumbass, it seems.¡± Su-hyeun nodded his head. ¡°To them, this is no different from using money to purchase awakener¡¯s special privileges. The drug¡¯s addictive nature is simply a bonus. The real problem in this equation, though, is the wastage of achievement points on somethingpletely unnecessary.¡±
One Property of Dimension order form cost 50,000 points.
For the current Su-hyeun, that number might not be all that expensive, but for regr awakeners yet to reach the 31st floor, that was a massive tally of points.
The number of achievement points wasted on smuggling out Blending had reached past several billion by now.
¡°More importantly, awakeners deciding to stay on 31st floor because of Blending is proving to be another major issue. For now, it may only be a small portion, but once Blending¡¯s existence bes widely known, then their numbers will gradually increase.¡±
In the current year 2021, one out of every ten awakeners chose to stay on the 31st floor.
However, that figure would jump all the way up to five out of ten in the future. They would never return to reality, instead choosing to settle in the tower while utterly addicted to the drug.
If that drug didn¡¯t exist, then no awakener would choose to stay behind on the 31st floor, and billions of achievement points wouldn¡¯t be wasted unnecessarily, either. The very existence of Blending was a hindrance to humanity getting stronger, in other words.
Most importantly...
<
>
Blending was created out of a type of grassmonly found on the 31st floor¡¯s world. However, Petro used that fact to his advantage and created the current drug cartel, causing the ever-worsening abuse of Blending.
To make matters worse, Petro wasn¡¯t doing this ¡ª the distribution and sale of Blending ¡ª simply out of greed over money.
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze shifted over to the bundles wrapped up in white cloth currently resting on the table. He pondered something for a little while before opening his mouth. ¡°For now, I¡¯ll be taking them with me.¡±
¡°Eh?¡±
¡°What do you mean, ¡®eh?¡¯ You thought I¡¯d let you go on your merry way with these drugs in tow?¡±
¡°B-but, if you do...¡±
¡°Besides, you have another job.¡± Su-hyeun had thought up of something good just now. He picked up one of the bundles and addressed Gwon Jang-hyuk. ¡°Looks like you¡¯ll have to sell my name from now on.¡±
He smirked deeply and looked at thetter¡¯s scared eyes.
* * *
Petro was the king of the 31st floor¡¯s world.
No, more correctly, he lived a life fitting for a king: money, women, sweet, sweet drugs, and followers basically worshiping him.
He was living a life that anyone would dream about at least once.
Inside a residence located somewhere in the city, Petro was leaning back by its front yard and lighting up a joint of Blending. He sucked in the smoke of densely concentrated drug ¡ª then, his vision yellowed and the whole world felt dreamy and soft as if he was sinking into the sea of blissful intoxication.
¡°Fwoo-woo¡ª¡±
He sucked in and savored the smoke for a while before breathing it out. He opened his eyes to reveal yellowed irises. A topless man of a hulking physique with yellow hair and yellow eyes lied downpletely on his back.
Petro brought the rolled-up Blending joint near his eyes and muttered out. ¡°Even this has be too weak.¡±
More specifically, his body had developed resistance against Blending. With the passage of time, the drug began to hit him less and less. Although the addictive nature remained, the sense of satisfaction was nowhere close to the past.
Petro got up from his spot. A guest hade seeking him out.
¡°What is it?¡± he asked while putting on the sunsses resting to his side.
The guest was a friend he had been partnering up with for the longest time, Luke. He looked at Petro lighting up yet another Blending joint and asked, ¡°Aren¡¯t you using it too oftentely?¡±
¡°This drug is freaking everywhere, so who cares?¡±
¡°Blending eats away at the magical energy in us. If you keep smoking that crap...¡±
¡°The moment you get here, you start nagging? I ain¡¯t gonna go up to the higher floors anyway, so what does it matter?¡±
Petro red at Luke with burning eyes.
Then again, if such nagging worked on him in the first ce, then Petro would¡¯ve kicked his drug habit away a long time ago.
Exactly one month after he started using Blending, it became a drug he just couldn¡¯t stop.
Luke spat out a long sigh before changing the subject. ¡°A couple of days ago, someone snatched away a batch of Blending earmarked to be shipped out. You heard about it, right?¡±
¡°Yeah, I did. What a ballsy bastard.¡±
Petro snorted derisively.
Just one word from him, and at least one thousand awakeners residing on the 31st floor would be mobilized. But a punk fearlessly snatching his Blending away had appeared within his kingdom.
¡°A newbie distributor of ours, a Korean awakener named Gwon Jang-hyuk, came to us with information.¡±
¡°What kind of info?¡±
¡°He says he knows who stole our Blending shipment.¡±
¡°Oh, really? Who¡¯s the bastard?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun. South Korea¡¯s S-rank awakener.¡±
Petro, leisurely putting on his shirt while listening to Luke¡¯s report, hurriedly pushed up his sunsses over his head. Blending¡¯s effects that lulled him in intoxication up until a second ago felt significantly weakened by a story shocking enough to wake the dead.
¡°Who did you say it was?¡± Petro asked.
¡°Kim Su-hyeun. Haven¡¯t you heard? He¡¯s on the 31st floor at the moment.¡±
¡°No, what I want to know is why that motherf*cker decided to stay in this ce. Didn¡¯t he climb the tower without taking a single break until now?¡±
¡°Who knows. But one thing¡¯s for sure: Su-hyeun has shown his interest in Blending, which ispletely out of our expectations.¡±
¡°Goddammit....¡±
Petro did hear the news of Kim Su-hyeun reaching the 31st floor. However, he didn¡¯t pay much heed to that. Just like before, that S-rank awakener would challenge the 31st trial right away, meaning he¡¯d not be able to return to this floor ever again.
But then, that bastard chose to stay on the 31st floor, instead.
¡°Him showing interest in Blending means he now knows about its taste, right?¡± Petro asked.
¡°Most likely.¡±
¡°Son of a bitch. Pretending to be a knight in shining armor and sh*t, yet he¡¯s behaving like a damn thug.¡±
Su-hyeun snatched a Blending shipment in the middle. That meant he wasn¡¯t nning to pay for them using achievement points as currency.
¡°How should we proceed? Should we scout him? Or negotiate with him while providing a fixed amount of Blending?¡± Luke asked.
¡°Are you mad?¡± Petro¡¯s expression crumpled unsightly at Luke¡¯s suggestion. ¡°Of course we wage war.¡±
* * *
¡°...That¡¯s what they said?¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk delivered the newsing from the higher-ups. His new orders were to report immediately if he spotted Su-hyeun somewhere, and keep the target there until everyone else showed up.
¡°They want you to keep me upied, is it?¡± Su-hyeun asked back.
¡°Yes. It seems that they want to hunt you down, Mister Su-hyeun. Sir.¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk was nothing more than a gopher working for Petro¡¯s organization. Yet, ordering someone like that to keep Su-hyeun upied? That¡¯s basically telling him to go kill himself.
Of course, those bastards wouldn¡¯t care about such a thing, to begin with.
¡°So, they wish to hunt me down, is that it?¡± Su-hyeun muttered while forming a meaningful little smile.
Gwon Jang-hyuk saw that somewhat ominous smile and hurriedly asked a question whilepletely forgetting about his tea getting cold. ¡°W-what are you going to do now, sir?¡±
¡°Go and tell them.¡±
¡°A-about?¡±
¡°That I¡¯m sitting right here. That¡¯ll surely bring them over here, no?¡±
The two of them were currently sitting in a pub. Other than simple dishes and some tea, nothing had been ordered and so far, no one had recognized them yet.
¡°A-are you insane? You want to sh against them without any n?¡±
¡°What¡¯s wrong? If I die like this, wouldn¡¯t it be a good thing for you in the end?¡±
¡°Eh?¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t told anyone about you. Not one word about how you are involved in Blending¡¯s distribution or the fact that you live in Anyang city.¡±
Gwon Jang-hyuk¡¯s brain kicked into gear at Su-hyeun¡¯s words.
In that case...?
¡°As long as I die, all the loose ends will be taken care of.¡±
That was the perfect scenario for Gwon Jang-hyuk. If that happened, then he¡¯d be able to stay here as long as he wanted and live happily ever after while using Blending.
¡°If you get it, hurry up and leave. You¡¯ll probably have to work extra hard to have me killed off from here onwards.¡±
¡°Y-yes, sir!!¡±
The moment Su-hyeun finished saying that, Gwon Jang-hyuk hurriedly pushed the chair back and shot up. He then dashed outside to a certain destination.
Despite only passing through level one difficulties to get here, he was still an awakener, so his speed was rather fast.
Su-hyeun leaned back and leisurely enjoyed his tea.
<>
Ten, twenty minutes wouldn¡¯t be sufficient enough, probably.
Petro would no doubt mobilize abat force powerful enough to face an S-Rank. However, it¡¯d not be that simple to organize a troop of that size and scale even if it was him.
Su-hyeun was actually hoping for Petro to try to negotiate with him. If that happened, he¡¯d have been saved from going around a longer, harder road and would¡¯ve faced that guy directly.
Still, it didn¡¯t matter too much.
<>
He didn¡¯t need to get too worked up about this. Su-hyeun stayed put and patiently waited for his guests to arrive.
Not too long afterward, dozens, then hundreds, of awakeners descended on the near vicinity of the pub he was in.
Chapter 117
Chapter 117: Chapter 117
Act 4
¡°What¡¯s this? Did something happen? What¡¯s with all these people...?¡±
¡°Shush, don¡¯t look at them and let¡¯s just get out of here. Maybe there was a fight somewhere?¡±
¡°A fight? Petro wouldn¡¯t take that lying down. Looks like at least a few hundreds....¡±
¡°I told you, let¡¯s go.¡±
Numerous crowds of people had gathered in various parts of the street. Quite a lot of awakeners residing on the 31st floor had gathered in one spot.
All of their attention was currently focused on one particr ce, and that was a small, single-floor pub located in the middle of the very same street.
¡°He¡¯s rather rxed,¡± said Luke as he studied the face visible through the window.
Without a doubt, that was the South Korean awakener, Kim Su-hyeun. He was still rxedly enjoying his tea even now, even though he must¡¯ve sensed their approach from a while ago.
<>
Indeed, the overall level of the awakeners gathered here wasn¡¯t all that high. The highest was around B-rank, while the average was no better than C-rank.
Sure, there were a handful of A-rank awakeners including Luke himself present as well, but it was obvious that all of thembined wouldn¡¯t be able to threaten Su-hyeun, an S-Rank awakener.
However...
<>
Petro.
He was a bona fide genius who went through the ninth level of difficulty for all of his trials and eventually climbed up to the 31st floor several years ago.
His skill level was good as an S-rank. That alone might not be enough, but still, he should have been able to take on Su-hyeun regardless.
The thing was, Su-hyeun had been an S-rank for less than half a year. Regardless, no one could win against the numbers game. If hundreds of awakeners stood as his opponents, even he wouldn¡¯t be able to emerge out of here unscathed.
<>
Everything looked good in the current situation. There would definitely be some casualties, but result-wise, they had far higher odds of victory in this fight.
<>
If that really happened, then this situation might end up being a great boon for them, instead. By killing Kim Su-hyeun here, an S-rank who survived tenth level trials, the association would no longer dare to touch them ever again.
¡°Everyone in the surrounding areas has been evacuated.¡±
After receiving that report from a subordinate, Luke took a sweeping look at the surroundings before asking the same underling. ¡°Everyone, including the natives, is gone?¡±
¡°Yes, sir.¡±
¡°Very good.¡±
Unless it was an awakener, harming a native of the 31st floor would put them in a very tough spot. There existed an unspoken rule that awakeners and natives would not attack each other. If they broke that rule, then it¡¯d be that much harder to do their business here.
Thankfully, they had enough time to evacuate the natives before the fighting got underway. And during that time, additional awakeners were brought in from the nearby areas.
¡°Are you really going to give us double the normal amount of Blending once this event is over?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right, so you must carry out your jobs properly, got that? If you make this work, then forget about double, I¡¯ll triple your share,¡± said Luke.
¡°Oh, ooooh!¡±
¡°Y-yes!¡±
Luke¡¯s assured answer brought about an explosion of cheering from all directions.
The reason for them all going crazy for Blending was rather obvious. Luke, too, had been abusing the drug every single day, so he knew intimately how wonderful its effects were.
<>
Making your clientele rely solely on you with nopeting goods avable anywhere ¡ª that was a monopoly in a nutshell.
Petro used his personal organization to regte the manufacturing and trafficking of Blending. One couldn¡¯t manufacture this drug without his permission, and without his blessing, one couldn¡¯t transport or even sell it.
That was the strength Petro possessed. The power to rule, in other words.
<>
The prospect of fighting Kim Su-hyeun didn¡¯t sit too well with Luke, but since they would get to reaffirm their influence through this event, this whole event was proving to be a good thing for them in various ways.
After all the preparations were over and done with, Luke sent a message to Petro, who should be watching the proceedings from a far-off distance.
¡°No matter what happens, don¡¯t make a single move from there. You do understand that if you die here, everything will be over for us, right?¡± Luke sent that final warning message and opened his mouth. ¡°Alright then. Let¡¯s get this show...¡±
¡°He-he¡¯s on the move!¡±
An awakener¡¯s urgent cry caused Luke to snap his neck around.
Su-hyeun, who was leisurely sipping on his tea moments ago, was now on his feet and staring straight at Luke. ¡°I thought I¡¯d die of boredom while waiting for you lot.¡±
Now fully on his feet, Su-hyeun continued peer deeply into Luke¡¯s eyes.
Even though he was hidden among therge crowd of people, Su-hyeun was directly looking at Luke, and that sent creeping chills all over thetter¡¯s body.
Su-hyeun walked outside the pub all the while counting the number of people currently surrounding him. ¡°Ten, twenty...Fifty, a hundred...You really did bring quite a lot of people, didn¡¯t you?¡±
He gave up in the middle of counting. This size wasrge enough to be at least over one-tenth of all the awakeners currently residing on the 31st floor. It signified that quite arge portion of this floor¡¯s awakeners fell under Petro¡¯s influence.
<>
They just didn¡¯t have enough time ¡ª if they wanted to call for more, then without a doubt, even more reinforcements would have shown up.
The longer time went on, Petro¡¯s territory would only growrger. The only thing that could stop that man was none other than Su-hyeun after he had finally reached the 31st floor.
<>
That guy was nowhere to be seen, as if their n was to wear his stamina down beforehand. What a very smart move that was. This fight would lose its meaning if Petro was killed off right off the bat, after all.
<>
Bang¡ª
Su-hyeun smacked his fist on his palm as he walked forward.
<>
His gait was slow.
His strides were rxed, as if he was daring them into attacking him. However, the crowd had beenpletely overwhelmed by his current appearance, one where he didn¡¯t even bother to unsheathe his weapon.
¡°W-what the hell?¡±
¡°Is no one going to attack him?¡±
¡°You goddamn cowards! What the hell are you doing?¡± Luke yelled out while witnessing the scared awakeners distance themselves more and more as Su-hyeun walked closer.
The fools called out here to fight were busy retreating right now instead of doing their jobs, so how could he not be frustrated at the moment?
<>
Did that man anticipate such a reaction?
Su-hyeun¡¯s strides remained rxed even now. Luke nced at him getting closer and clenched his fists.
<>
Luke was a genius himself who had reached the A-rank. Sure, he was now a drugged-up criminal living on the 31st floor, but he used to be a respected awakener up until a few years ago.
An S-Rank and an A-Rank. The wall existing between these ranks was undoubtedly tall, but that didn¡¯t mean Luke shouldn¡¯t have a go here.
<>
The moment Luke clenched his fists and dashed forward¡ª
Ka-boom¡ª!
An explosion went off right before his nose and at the same time, his vision was dyed pitch-ck.
<<...Uh?>>
Pow¡ª!
Luke was flung away to a far-off distance and collided with awakeners at the rear. The impact force knocked them all down like a bunch of bowling pins.
And so, in the briefest of brief moments, Luke lost his grip on consciousness, not even understanding what had happened to him.
¡°He-he¡¯sing!¡±
¡°Get ready!¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s slow-moving figure suddenly gained afterburners. With both of his fists firmly clenched, he dug into the awakeners¡¯ midst and started punching their lights out.
Boom, ka-boom¡ª!
Every time he swung his fist, a person¡¯s face was caved in.
Wu-du-duk¡ª
Heads shattered and faces were smashed in. Some people copsed on the ground with their backs bent in the wrong direction, too.
¡°S-stop him!¡±
¡°Does anyone possess confinement skills?¡±
¡°Just throw everything at him!¡±
Kwa-aaahk¡ª
Wu-dududuk¡ª
A hand rising up from the ground below grabbed onto Su-hyeun¡¯s foot. At the same time, spinning chains flew in quickly and tightly wrapped around him, confining him on the spot.
¡°We did it!¡±
¡°You did what, exactly?¡±
ng¡ª
Right next second, the hand holding Su-hyeun¡¯s foot broke and returned to being soil, scattering back to the ground. Even the chains confining him snapped into pieces in an instant.
He continued to swing his fists as if nothing had happened to him.
Bang¡ª!
Thud¡ª
Yet another sound of someone¡¯s breathing cutting out, yet another body hitting the ground. Su-hyeun spun his arms around and took a sweeping look at the people still surrounding him.
¡°T-that guy, was he originally a brawler?¡±
¡°But I heard he used a sword....?¡±
¡°His sword is attached to his hips, isn¡¯t it?¡±
The crowd surrounding Su-hyeun was falling into confusion.
In that short space of time, dozens of them were already taken out of the equation. Luke was supposed tomand the battle from the frontlines but he was out ofmission already, while Petro showed no signs of making his appearance anytime soon.
¡°What do they expect us to do about such a monster?¡±
It was just one man.
Even if that¡¯s true, the differences in their skill levels were just too absolute.
¡°Where is Petro?¡± Su-hyeun asked, and the people nearby began distancing themselves even further away from him. He frowned deeply when no one answered him, before reaching towards the sword¡¯s hilt. ¡°Well, he¡¯s probably watching from somewhere anyway.¡±
His gaze was then directed to the sky above.
¡°Watch closely from wherever you are.¡±
Shu-ru-rung¡ª
The sword was unsheathed, and Su-hyeun¡¯s atmosphere shifted in an instant.
¡°Watch as everything you¡¯ve built up until nowes crashing down today.¡±
Petro was viewing the location of his choosing through a small crystal ball.
The figure of Su-hyeun fighting against his underlings was disyed on the crystal ball¡¯s surface. He was currently sweeping everything away using his stunning martial skills.
In the midst of doing that, he suddenly came to a stop and spoke up.
¡°Watch closely from wherever you are. Watch as everything you¡¯ve built up until nowes crashing down today.¡±
Su-hyeun was staring at Petro beyond the crystal ball.
What an incredible b*stard he was. To think that he detected Petro¡¯s skill despite the distance between them and decided to start a conversation first.
<>
If he wanted to, Su-hyeun could¡¯ve easily annulled Petro¡¯s skill. However, he didn¡¯t do that, instead choosing to continue on with the battle.
Saash¡ª
Crimson blood could be seen sttering around beyond the crystal ball.
In that short window of time, another dozen or so had been defeated.
Petro¡¯s shoulders quivered. ¡°This, this b*stard....¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s fist mmed into the belly of yet another target, a male awakener.
That man, staggering before copsing on the ground, didn¡¯t have any focus in his eyes, something caused by his abuse of the drugs. He just tried to attack Su-hyeun, hoping to earn his share of Blending somehow.
<>
The reason had to be one of the two. Either he wasn¡¯t callous enough to kill those opponents who weren¡¯t themselves, or...
<>
Petro hurriedly shook his head. That was impossible. It had to be a coincidence.
He watched the proceedings through the crystal ball just a little bit more. He didn¡¯t have any thoughts of stepping up at the moment.
<>
Petro clenched his fist tightly and endured. The foundation he had been building for a long time was currently crumbling away at the hands of just one man.
However, this didn¡¯t present a big problem.
<>
There were plenty of awakeners reaching the 31st floor all the time.
He knew how addictive Blending was as its manufacturer and distributor. With that drug, he could rebuild his influence and power base, once more at any time he wanted.
It didn¡¯t matter whether they died or not. For the time being, surviving this danger was his priority.
<>
Petro watched through the crystal ball and continued to buy time. But then...
¡°Found you.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s voice reached the shivering Petro and his ears.
Chapter 118
Chapter 118: Chapter 118
The middle of Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead split open and his third eye revealed itself. That eye then red straight at Petro, who was looking at Su-hyeun from an unknown location.
And in that very moment, the ends of Su-hyeun¡¯s lips widened into a smirk. ¡°Found you.¡±
It took him a little bit of time to locate his target. Petro must¡¯ve been waiting for the perfect timing to join the fight while cautiously observing Su-hyeun¡¯s status, but that only gave thetter enough time to discover the former¡¯s position, instead.
Pow¡ª
Su-hyeun smacked the face of an awakener trying to pounce on him from the front. Right after that, he strengthened his leg muscles and kicked the ground, dashing towards a certain direction.
Step, fwhoosh¡ª
He stepped on the rooftops to dash forward and scanned the passing scenery. Petro wasn¡¯t too far. Rather wisely, he was staying just beyond the edge of Su-hyeun¡¯s detection range to observe the proceedings.
Swiiiiish¡ª
A narrow, deserted backstreet in the city¡¯s outskirts.
Su-hyeun¡¯s feet stopped moving there.
¡°And so, here we are.¡±
¡°You! When did you...?¡±
Petro shot up from his spot and red at Su-hyeun at full alert. His eyes hurriedly nced at the crystal ball now rolling around on the ground. A few moments ago, the scenes reflected on the ball were changing in a very disorienting fashion, but now, it was disying a view taken from above his own head.
Now being confronted head-on, Petro could only swallow back his dry saliva in sheer nervousness.
It was not important how Su-hyeun managed to track him down. No, the moment he saw that third eye, Petro realized that his opponent for today was in possession of some kind of a special ability.
¡°If it¡¯s Blending you want, I can supply you with as much as you want.¡±
Now that things hade this far, what needed to happen was a negotiation. Petro wasn¡¯t confident in defeating Su-hyeun as things stood currently.
¡°How about it? As you may well know, Blending is...¡±
¡°Don¡¯t need it,¡± Su-hyeun tly replied.
¡°...What was that?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t climb up here to be a junkie. And also, you don¡¯t have to be so tense. I¡¯m not nning to kill you right away.¡±
Su-hyeun kept his gaze locked onto Petro whilezily leaning against a nearby wall. It sure was the sight of a man at ease, one that waspletely content with the current situation.
¡°Of course, depending on how things turn out, I may just kill you,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°...What are you scheming?¡±
¡°You should be asking about what I want in times like this. If you don¡¯t want to die, obviously.¡±
The gleam in Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes abruptly changed.
The moment Petro stared into the third eye, he was ovee by this creeping chill akin to a terrifying monster wrapping itself around his entire body.
As it turned out, he couldn¡¯t even be considered as an opponent here. He had been making a huge mistake.
<>
Actually, he had never personally met an S-Rank awakener before. However, he was still aware of the minimum standard needed to meet that criteria. And Petro was definitely skilled enough to meet that standard.
That¡¯s why he was under the assumption that there wouldn¡¯t be too much of a difference between an S-Rank and himself up until this very moment.
However, he thought he now could understand something after encountering Su-hyeun ¡ª he understood that he couldn¡¯t even touch thetter¡¯s foot.
¡°W-what is it that you want?¡±
¡°Looks like you¡¯re finally ready for a chat.¡±
Rather than a chat, this was more like an intimidation, instead.
Su-hyeun stared at Petro gritting his teeth in humiliation and continued on. ¡°I only want one thing. To stop the distribution of Blending.¡±
¡°Are you telling me to stop selling Blending?¡±
¡°Even if I tell you that, you probably aren¡¯t going to y along nicely, anyway. Bastards like you don¡¯t hesitate to say one thing while meaning something elsepletely, after all.¡±
¡°In that case, just what do you want from...¡±
¡°Since I don¡¯t trust your word, I might as well find another way to control you.¡±
Su-hyeun approached Petro and extended his hand. Thetter flinched and tried to back away. ¡°W-wait, what are you...¡±
Sssssss¡ª
The moment he looked into Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes, Petro momentarily froze up. It felt as if his entire body suddenly morphed into a dry log.
¡°Keok, keo-uh....¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s hand gripped Petro¡¯s neck tightly. The grip¡¯s strength increased gradually, and his fingernails dug into Petro¡¯s neck.
Blood vessels bulged in Petro¡¯s eyeballs.
<>
Su-hyeun let go, and right away, Petro grasped his own neck while coughing and wheezing. His eyes were bloodshot. Initially, he could only think about how he managed to survive, but not too long after that, he realized something was wrong with the condition of his body.
¡°What-what did you do to my....¡±
¡°It¡¯s kind of like a poison.¡±
¡°Poison...?¡±
¡°Technically, it¡¯s not a poison. No, it¡¯s simply a strand of magical energy with a different nature to yours. Still, it will act like a poison in the end.¡±
This was one of the abilities Ouroboros¡¯s third eye possessed ¡ª injecting a portion of the gigantic snake¡¯s magical energy currently in Su-hyeun to his opponent and having it react like a real poison.
¡°Unless you be as strong as I am, that power will eat away at least half of your body in less than a month. No need to mention what will happen after that, of course.¡±
¡°You lie!¡±
Petro had never even heard of such a thing being possible before. If this thing was really some kind of poison, fine, but using magical energy like this was an impossibility.
He just couldn¡¯t believe it.
No, more correctly, he didn¡¯t want to believe it.
¡°You¡¯ll know after a while. So, choose wisely. I¡¯ll give you enough time to figure it out, okay?¡± Su-hyeun then turned around to leave. ¡°I¡¯ll be staying in the pub from earlier, so if something happens,e find me there. I¡¯m sure experiencing it first hand will be best for a guy like you.¡±
He left with those words as his parting gift.
Petro¡¯s eyes staring at the departing back were trembling powerfully. He thought he¡¯d be killed by Su-hyeun¡¯s hands, yet something out of his expectation happened just now.
<>
If Petro wanted to, he could go into hiding. If he really chose to do so and hide back in the real world, then not even someone like Su-hyeun would be able to track him down.
However, there was a problem. That would be what Su-hyeun said just now proving to be true.
<>
Petro rubbed his neck where Su-hyeun¡¯s hand had been digging into only a few moments ago.
<>
Three dayster.
Petro came to find Su-hyeun sitting in the pub as he promised.
¡°You showed up one day quicker than I thought,¡± said Su-hyeun as he turned the chair he was sitting on around to face his visitor.
Thetter¡¯splexion was ashen in the extreme. ¡°My body...just what the hell did you do to me?¡±
¡°Did you forget what I told you? Should I exin it again?¡±
¡°That was all real?¡±
For the past couple of days, Petro kept sensing that something was wrong with himself. It felt like the blood coursing through his body was now going in the wrong direction. He tried to control it somehow, but it just didn¡¯t want to listen to him.
It was all because of that strand of magical energy Su-hyeun had injected in him. That energy really acted like poison to gradually eat away at Petro¡¯s innards.
¡°I figured that you¡¯d hold out for at least one more day. I thought you¡¯d be tenacious enough to do so, but...I guess you¡¯re a lot more attached to your life than I thought.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s mocking words caused Petro to grit his teeth.
The former shifted his gaze away from thetter busy grinding his teeth and looked outside the window. Quite a lot of spectators could be sensed now.
¡°A b*stard who managed to get this far with his own strength has morphed into a coward who can¡¯t do anything by himself now, huh?¡±
Petro didn¡¯te alone to find Su-hyeun. He also brought along numerous other awakeners with him. It seemed that he was nning to use force if things went down the drain.
¡°If you don¡¯t remove this poison from my body right now, I...¡±
¡°Your skills have gotten rusty, and you even lost your instincts, too. On top of that, you get scared more easily now, and your ego has swollen up to an unnecessary level, too.¡± Su-hyeun looked back into Petro¡¯s eyes and spoke. ¡°Okay, so? If I don¡¯t remove the poison, what then? You are going to kill me?¡±
A mocking grin floated to his lips.
¡°What, you? Kill me?¡±
Petro¡¯s body froze up stiff once more.
It happened again.
This ominous killing intent. This intense pressure that made it almost impossible to stare into the eyes of his opponent.
He came here after telling himself many times that he¡¯d not get scared and stare into Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes head-on, but too bad, everything was for naught.
<>
He could already tell the end result without even starting a fight.
A silhouette of a gigantic snake could be seen right behind Su-hyeun. A snake with jet-ck scales and vivid-yellow eyes. Just the sheer pressure emanating from that thing alone was enough to force Petro to lose his fighting intent.
He stood there, his legs shaking, before dropping his head low. ¡°J-just what is it that you want?¡±
¡°I also told you that before, didn¡¯t I? It¡¯s to stop the distribution of Blending.¡±
¡°If it¡¯s only that....¡±
¡°I don¡¯t believe in verbal promises. But then, even if I do kill you here, a second, third Petros will pop up sooner orter to continue distributing Blending. In the end, what we need is a sure-fire way to prevent that from happening,¡± said Su-hyeun, before pointing at Petro. ¡°And you¡¯re precisely it.¡±
¡°Me?¡±
¡°Unless it¡¯s me, no one on the 31st floor is capable of doing anything to you, that¡¯s why. Since you were the first one to start distributing Blending, I¡¯m sure you can also restrict the others from doing that, too.¡±
Blending was created out of grassmonly found on the 31st floor¡¯s world. As the ingredient could be found so easily, the disappearance of Petro wouldn¡¯t necessarily result in the disappearance of Blending itself.
In the end, what was really needed here was to dere the manufacture of Blending illegal, and then possess a power strong enough to enforce that.
There was no one better suited to that role than Petro himself.
¡°You...want to use me as your tool? With my life as coteral?¡±
¡°From the distribution of Blending to intimidation and murder rted to this racketeering operation, to the countless loss of lives, you being executed right this instance wouldn¡¯t be strange at all, so never forget this. You don¡¯t have any rights as a person to stand there and keep breathing this air.¡±
The straightforward judgment caused Petro to lower his head while gritting his teeth once more. None of those assertions were wrong. He was without a doubt a criminal currently being carefully observed by the various awakener associations out in the real world.
If they had a way to arrest him, then well, he probably didn¡¯t have anything to say even if they passed judgment on him.
¡°You make the decision. Wait for your death, or step forward voluntarily to stop the distribution of Blending,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°This...rather than a negotiation, it¡¯s more like an ultimatum.¡±
¡°From the beginning, I never negotiated with criminals. No, I kill them right off the bat. The only reason why I haven¡¯t done that with you is because you still have your uses.¡±
¡°You¡¯re different from what I heard. The things is, everyone thinks of Kim Su-hyeun as a man who serves the world without expecting any rewards in return, or at least that¡¯s what I heard. A hero who saves regr citizens and fights against the Dump Guild, stuff like that.¡±
Su-hyeun definitely had a different side to himpared to other awakeners. The majority of S-Ranks conquered dungeons and let the world know of their existence by showing their faces in various media outlets.
However, Su-hyeun had never acted on his own self-interest. He didn¡¯t seem to be interested in either wealth nor prestige. Even then, he rescued regr citizens and collided against the infamous Dump Guild. He even raided a blue-colored dungeon to prevent a possible outbreak, too.
The whole world thought of Su-hyeun as a real hero.
¡°So, this is your true face, then?¡±
¡°Neither side is fake, actually.¡± Su-hyeun shook his head. ¡°I answer kindness with even bigger kindness, but toward bad people, I reply with an even harsher punishment. Meaning...¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s re shifted outside the pub¡¯s window andnded on Petro¡¯s underlings, currently staring back at him. ¡°To punks like you lot, I¡¯m not such a nice guy. Get my drift?¡±
¡°A-attack him!¡±
¡°Uwaaaah!¡±
Was it because they thought Su-hyeun had discovered their presence? Petro¡¯s underlings began rushing towards the pub one by one.
It was right then that Petro raised his head and cried out. ¡°Stop!¡±
His yell caused those attacking with deeply tense expressions to freeze up right there like a bunch of dolls.
This was one of Petro¡¯s abilities.
¡°....G*ddammit.¡±
He was clenching his fists so hard that fingernails were digging into his palms. He was initially nning to use Su-hyeun¡¯s public persona to get out of this situation, but with things like this, he didn¡¯t have a choice anymore.
¡°Okay, fine. What do I have to do specifically?¡±
Chapter 119
Chapter 119: Chapter 119
¡°...And that¡¯s what happened, so using that guy from now on should not pose a problem.¡±
Su-hyeun sucked in the remaining coffee with a straw after finishing his story.
Kim Do-ui received a phone call a few days after that meeting and quickly made his way to the same cafe. And now, he was rendered speechless for a moment or two from what he had just heard. He needed some time to organize everything Su-hyeun had told him so far.
¡°S-so, what you¡¯re saying is, you want to use Petro to forcibly mp down on the distribution of Blending. Is that it?¡±
¡°Yes. I ask the association to provide the necessary system and personnel to oversee the process. I believe it¡¯ll be easy enough to find a handful of awakeners willing to reside permanently on the 31st floor.¡±
¡°For that, I¡¯ve already started my search ording to what you asked me earlier, but...¡±
To think that he¡¯d finish everything before the search had been concluded. This was way too fast.
Su-hyeun continued on. ¡°As for the strand of magical energy injected into Petro¡¯s body, the liquid solution I¡¯ll provide periodically should be sufficient enough to suppress it. Since we¡¯re allowed to take objects from reality to that side, you can simply deliver the solution via awakeners you hire in the future.¡±
¡°You havee up with a really great idea, using Petro to suppress the distribution of Blending.¡±
¡°I had been thinking of a different method initially, but things became simpler thanks to a skill I lucked upon recently. Nothing in this world should be as urgent as the matters involving your life, after all.¡±
It didn¡¯t look like Su-hyeun came up with this idea in one or two days. Indeed, this wouldn¡¯t have been possible to pull off unless you knew the power structure of the 31st floor¡¯s world as well as Petro¡¯s existence.
<>
All matters rted to Petro had been top secret even within the corridors of the association. Because they didn¡¯t have a good way to stop that man, and they were also too preupied with preventing the distribution of Blending as it began infiltrating the real would.
This was basically proof of the association¡¯s powerlessness.
Kim Do-ui spoke. ¡°I apologize, but your feat this time must be kept as a secret among ourselves. Of course, you¡¯ll be rewarded sufficiently for your efforts, but...¡±
¡°I don¡¯t mind. I didn¡¯t do it while expecting something in return.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s reply brought about a relieved expression on Kim Do-ui¡¯s face.
If, by any chance, Su-hyeun wanted to publicly dere his feat and thus raise his fame even further, that would¡¯ve put the association in a very awkward spot. Thankfully, he didn¡¯t express much interest in that regard as initially anticipated.
¡°Thank you.¡±
¡°Ah, by the way. For that reward you mentioned.¡± Su-hyeun put the empty mug down on the table before asking a question. ¡°There is this one item I¡¯d like to own, so can you get it for me?¡±
¡°You want an item...?¡±
Su-hyeun openly requesting for something like this would be the first time.
He had never before demanded rewards for the things he aplished so far ¡ª not after the Anyang city incident, and not even after finishing his battle against the Dump Guild.
<>
Kim Do-ui readily nodded his head. ¡°Please tell me, whatever it is. If it¡¯s within our means, then we¡¯ll try our best to acquire it for you.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t think it¡¯ll be that difficult to procure it, though.¡± Su-hyeun smirked and exined what he wanted from the association.
Kim Do-ui¡¯s previous expression of a man willing to fulfill any request was soon reced by a deeply troubled one. ¡°That is a bit...¡±
¡°Will it be too hard for you?¡±
¡°Well, I¡¯ll send the request upstairs, but...I can¡¯t predict how things will turn out.¡±
¡°There¡¯s no rush, so it¡¯ll be fine. Please give me a call as soon as you acquire it.¡±
Su-hyeun got up from his chair and exited the cafe while leaving behind these words, ¡°Acquire the item no matter what.¡± It seemed that he wasn¡¯t interested in anything else besides this item. But that only left Kim Do-ui feeling even more troubled.
<>
He let out a pained groan and dropped his head lower. In all honesty, there was nothing stopping him from acquiring that item. Hell, he didn¡¯t even need the time either, as the very item Su-hyeun wanted was currently being held by the association.
¡°I guess the director will yell at me once more.¡±
Kim Do-ui shook his head and stood up from his chair. For some reason, it felt like the tiresome matters needing his attention had increased in their numberstely.
Act 5
A few dayster, Kim Do-ui came to visit Su-hyeun at thetter¡¯s home. It was to report on the progress made so far, as well as to discuss the reward for this matter, as well.
¡°Thankfully, it wasn¡¯t too difficult to recruit the awakeners residing on the 31st floor. There are quite a lot of people who almost died trying to pass the 30th floor and have developed a certain aversion to climbing higher up on the tower, you see.¡±
For the past few days, Petro diligently focused on recovering all the batches of Blending circting out in the open. It seemed that, as his life was on the line, he decided to move quickly and decisively. Since he had far too much to lose now, as his attachment to life had grown just that much stronger.
¡°And also, this...is the item you asked me about earlier.¡±
Kim Do-ui, settling in the living room couch, opened his briefcase and took out a small box.
Su-hyeun received this box, opened it, and spoke up. ¡°You acquired it quicker than I thought.¡±
¡°The association happened to have it on hand, actually. When I requested the item, the higher-ups really came down hard on me, just so you know.¡±
¡°I¡¯ll gratefully ept it. Give my regards to the director, as well.¡±
¡°You think the director will be happy to hear your regards?¡±
¡°That¡¯s why I¡¯d like you to deliver it to him.¡±
¡°That makes sense. Ah, and about the incident this time....¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I know. I¡¯ll keep my mouth shut. I mean, I¡¯ve received something from you, after all. Was that everything you came to see me for?¡±
Su-hyeun packed the box away and stood up from his spot.
He then got ready to leave, prompting Kim Do-ui to ask, ¡°Are you going somewhere?¡±
¡°Yes. I have an important prior engagement, you see.¡±
¡°A prior engagement? Is it a woman?¡±
¡°No, it¡¯s a very sweaty older uncle.¡±
¡°Damn, man...¡±
That pitying look of Kim Do-ui caused Su-hyeun¡¯s expression to crumple in a rather unsightly manner.
After leaving his house along with the guest, Su-hyeun then headed towards the underground parking lot and climbed into his car. The destination he reached a little whileter was Kim Dae-ho¡¯s workshop, located in Yangpyeong.
ng¡ª
¡°Uncle, it¡¯s me.¡±
ng, ng, ng¨C!
The loud noises didn¡¯t want to stop.
Either Kim Dae-ho was too focused on his job and couldn¡¯t hear, or he was currently doing something that couldn¡¯t be stopped in the middle.
Su-hyeun waited for a bit before opening the front door to enter. As expected, Kim Da-ho was too focused on his hammering to notice a guesting to visit him.
<>
Su-hyeun stood there in silence and waited for Kim Dae-ho to finish.
For the next two hours or so, the master craftsman continued to work on the equipment with his trusty hammer before eventually standing up while trying to straighten his aching back. ¡°Urgh, my back.¡±
¡°Are you finished, Uncle?¡±
¡°Yeah...Eh?¡±
Kim Dae-ho¡¯s head hurriedly spun to his rear and spotted Su-hyeun standing there. A surprised expression quickly filled the older man¡¯s face. ¡°When did you get here?¡±
¡°It hasn¡¯t been that long.¡±
¡°Really? You hadn¡¯t been waiting for long or anything like that?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°A guy wanting to give me a present is left waiting like this and all. Why didn¡¯t you say something when you arrived?¡±
¡°I¡¯ve always been in your care, so it¡¯d be way too shameless for me to interrupt your work.¡±
¡°Oh, so at least you do know. Urgh,¡± grunted Kim Dae-ho. His back must¡¯ve been damaged after working for such long hours because his steps were rather strained. ¡°Come with me. I¡¯ll brew us some tea.¡±
Su-hyeun replied as his face brightened up in an instant. ¡°Thank you, Uncle.¡±
This would be the first time Kim Dae-ho had invited Su-hyeun into his private residence in this lifetime. Thetter couldn¡¯t help but feel that this was the sign of how much the master craftsman cared about him, so he ended up following the older man with a slightly excited frame of mind.
Unlike his rather shy workshop, Kim Dah-ho¡¯s residence was simply furnished. Like a nice Airbnb found in Yangpyeong, the house¡¯s square meter footprint was rather small.
The tea brewed in Kim Dah-ho¡¯s kitchen was soon brought out, and the master craftsmen personally poured Su-hyeun a cup of this savory refreshment. He then filled his own cup next and settled down on a chair.
While looking at Su-hyeun¡¯s face, he asked, ¡°What do you find so amusing that you¡¯re grinning nonstop like that?¡±
¡°Well, it¡¯s just that I likeing to your workshop, that¡¯s all. It¡¯s more rxing here than back in my own house.¡±
¡°Is that why you show up here way too often? Youe whenever you have downtime.¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t beening here that regrly, you know.¡±
¡°Just drink your tea.¡±
¡°Thank you.¡±
Su-hyeun blew at the piping-hot tea and sipped a little bit.
Meanwhile, Kim Dae-ho lightly drummed on his shoulders and shifted his gaze over to the small box his guest had brought along. ¡°Is that the so-called wonderful raw material you told me about?¡±
¡°Ah, yes, it is.¡±
Su-hyeun hurriedly put the teacup down and pushed the box forward.
Nothing could light the fire in Kim Dae-ho¡¯s eyes other than matters involving his workshop, so he began peering at the small box with some intensity.
¡°I did get my hands on another very good base material for you not too long ago, but my Miru ended up eating it, so....¡±
¡°Miru ate a material?¡±
Su-hyeun blurred the ends of his words in clear ruefulness, so Kim Dah-ho asked back while sounding puzzled.
Materials for equipment should be either minerals or special catalysts, so he was wondering whether it was fine or not for a divine beast to eat something like that.
Su-hyeun then exined what happened inside the blue-colored dungeon, plus how Miru swallowed up the reward from that ce.
After hearing all of that, Kim Dae-ho nodded his head. ¡°You did the right thing. I hear your dragon usually only drinks water. So, you should let it eat what he wants when he feels like it. He¡¯s a still a youngster, no?¡±
¡°H-hahaha...¡± Su-hyeun could only smile awkwardly at Kim Dae-ho¡¯s words.
The older man was saying that now because he had no clue what that item was, but once he got to learn of its true valueter on, well, he wouldn¡¯t be this rxed anymore.
<>
Su-hyeun pointed at the small box while raising the teacup. ¡°Please take a look.¡±
¡°Alright, then. Let¡¯s see....¡±
Click¨C
Kim Dae-ho lifted open the box¡¯s lid.
A small, vivid yellow stone was resting within the box. This stone, no bigger than a young child¡¯s clenched fist, outwardly seemedpletely unremarkable.
He slowly and cautiously picked it up. He inspected it by cing the stone under the rays of light, then scratched its surface with his fingernail before shifting his gaze back to Su-hyeun slowly savoring his tea.
¡°Is this...could it be that thing?¡± Kim Dae-ho asked.
¡°I believe it is indeed the thing you¡¯re thinking of.¡±
The clearly-excited Kim Dae-ho shoved his chair back noisily and shot up to his feet. ¡°This is really the adamantium?¡±
Kim Dae-ho rarely smiled, but there was an unmistakable grin spreading on his entire face right this moment. This would be Su-hyeun¡¯s second time witnessing such a grin.
¡°Yes, it¡¯s the real deal.¡±
¡°Huh, huhuh....¡±
After hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s assured reply, Kim Dae-ho remained standing on the spot and began inspecting the adamantium once more. Chuckles that rarely, if ever, left his lips now continued to leak out. No matter how many times he looked at it, he just couldn¡¯t believe it.
¡°This is the adamantium...¡±
Adamantium. A legendary metal that only appeared in myths, a substance shrouded in plentiful rumors but believed to not exist in reality.
However, a mineral that possessed the closest properties to the legendary adamantium everyone heard of made an appearance inside a green-colored dungeon that opened up in Britain a few years ago.
This was the dream of all cksmiths, as well as their ultimate fantasy.
Even the master craftsman like Kim Dae-ho was no exception. Ever since learning of the adamantium¡¯s existence, he set a clear goal for himself, which was to craft something, anything, out of that rare material.
However, he had no method of procuring it.
As all the reserve currently in existence came from that one appearance, and not even someone like Kim Dae-ho could easily procure something of adamantium¡¯s value.
But now...
¡°H-how did you get this?¡±
Now, Su-hyeun had brought some to him.
¡°I coincidentally happened upon a chance. I thought you¡¯d like it, Uncle. But, if you don¡¯t like it, then I...¡±
¡°There¡¯s no way! Of course I like it! Very much so!¡±
Kim Dae-ho¡¯s face reddened up and he roared at the top of his lungs. Su-hyeun felt his ears go numb, but he still felt chuffed by this reaction. Seeing Kim Dae-ho looking so happy like that made him feel like he managed to pay just a little bit of his debt back to the master craftsman.
<>
Indeed, he might be forgiven for using up every single dragon-ying spear that took so much work to create. Su-hyeun felt pretty good about himself as he began emptying the teacup. But then...
¡°Your sword, you¡¯re still using it, right? Was its name? Gram?¡±
Kim Dae-ho suddenly asked him an unexpected question.
Su-hyeun reflexively took the cup away from his lips and replied. ¡°Pardon? Ah, yes. I¡¯m still using it.¡±
¡°Give it to me.¡± Kim Dae-ho alternated his gaze between the sword mounted on Su-hyeun¡¯s hips and the lump of adamantium held in his hand. ¡°This gift is from you, so obviously, I shall return it to you.¡±
Chapter 120
Chapter 120: Chapter 120
The meaning behind those words seemed unclear, but Su-hyeun easily understood what Kim Dae-ho was trying to say. He wanted to ¡°return¡± the adamantium, which meant the master craftsman would use the ore to gift Su-hyeun with a new sword.
¡°With this, it¡¯s like I¡¯m requesting a new sword from you rather than giving you a thank-you gift.¡±
Su-hyeun waved his hands and politely declined.
Kim Dae-ho didn¡¯t originally intend to make a sword with the adamantium. Su-hyeun wanted to help that dreame true and that¡¯s why he gifted this rare metal ¡ª not for the sake of strengthening his own weapon.
Unfortunately, the older man¡¯s stubborn streak was far stronger than Su-hyeun¡¯s. ¡°It¡¯s already a wonderful gift to handle such material with my own two hands. So stop with your yapping and give me the sword.¡±
¡°But...¡±
¡°In that case, I can¡¯t ept it. Take it back with you.¡±
Kim Dae-ho abruptly put the adamantium back inside the box and closed the lid. Then he pushed it towards Su-hyeun as if he really meant to return it.
What a troublesome situation this was. So much more so because thetter knew how stubborn the former could be.
¡°Urgh....¡± Su-hyeun groaned, looking clearly troubled before cing both the sword and its scabbard on the table. ¡°I¡¯ll deposit the request fee at ater time.¡±
¡°No need.¡±
¡°Concede on this one, please. You may not know this, but I, too, can be quite stubborn.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s rather manly-sounding words caused Kim Dae-ho to quietly alternate his gaze between the sword and the younger man¡¯s eyes. Eventually, though, he reached down and lifted the weapon.
¡°Fine. Do what you want.¡±
Shu-rung¡ª
He then unsheathed the sword to inspect the de¡¯s edge. It seemed that he was confirming the condition of the weapon first.
¡°Looks like the de is slightly damaged.¡±
Kim Dae-ho tilted his head this way and that while inspecting the de¡¯s edge. No mere events of a simple nature would be able to damage Gram¡¯s de, yet nicks could be spotted all over it.
¡°I was trying to cut down a seriously tough creature, actually,¡± replied Su-hyeun.
¡°A tough creature?¡±
¡°Yes. I honestly believe that without Gram, I wouldn¡¯t have been able to cut that monster down.¡±
Out of all the monsters Su-hyeun had fought so far, the hide and scales of Ouroboros easily qualified as some of the strongest he had ever faced. That¡¯s how tough they were.
If he had been wielding a regr sword, it might have shattered during the very first attack. Only because it was Gram, crafted by Kim Dae-ho, did he manage to cut through the monster¡¯s scales and its thick hide.
¡°Hmm...¡±
As if he was weak against praises directed at the sword, Kim Dae-ho¡¯s expression became a bit bashful. He continued with his inspection and opened his mouth. ¡°Will it be fine if I take my time with it?¡±
¡°Wouldn¡¯t it take at least half a year or one full year at the longest?¡±
Kim Dae-ho became somewhat taken back by Su-hyeun¡¯s reply and he nced at the younger man. ¡°And how do you even know that?¡±
¡°I just made an educated guess.¡±
Su-hyeun was thinking that Kim Dae-ho might need that much of time. Thetter at his prime would only need half a year, but with his current skill set, it might need at most one full year toplete the work.
The master craftsman nodded his head at that rather urate guess and sheathe the sword back in its scabbard. ¡°Correct. I was thinking that, too. If the adamantium is as tough as all the rumors I heard, then even melting it down will pose a great challenge.¡±
He spoke up to there, smirked deeply and held the box containing adamantium tightly. ¡°A sword made by refining the highest-grade Ether stone, plus adamantium added on top, too. The greatest sword will be created out of thisbination. That I guarantee it.¡±
¡°I¡¯m looking forward to it.¡±
He wasn¡¯t just being polite here. Su-hyeun was really expecting great things.
His anticipation was even greater than the cksmith¡¯s since he had already wielded a weapon created from thisbination before.
<>
The joint effort of these three factors.
<>
The greatest sword of them all, the one Su-hyeun wielded in his previous life.
It was the defining masterpiece of the craftsman Kim Dae-ho, and the item wielded by the hero, Kim Sung-in.
Rather unexpectedly, he was about to get his hands on Balmung once more. Sure, he knew that the sword had to bepleted sooner orter, but the mere idea of waiting for just one more year for its actualpletion was making his heart palpitate so much faster.
aang, ng¡ª!
Kim Dae-ho grunted andined about his sore back only until a few moments ago, but as soon as the adamantium and Su-hyeun¡¯s sword were left in his care, he dove right back into his work.
Of course, he didn¡¯t forget to loan out the ¡°best sword avable in the workshop¡± for Su-hyeun¡¯s use for the next year or so.
While listening to the rhythmic beating of the hammer, Su-hyeun prepared to leave the workshop.
<>
A lengthy groan escaped from his mouth. For sure, things had worked out in his favor, yet he just didn¡¯t feel so good inside.
Adamantium.
To cksmiths, this thing was no longer a simple mineral, but more like a symbol.
¡°Do you know the story of Hephaestus?¡± One day, when Su-hyeun came to repair his sword, Kim Dae-ho asked him this out of the blue.
¡°Isn¡¯t that the god of cksmiths?¡±
¡°Then, do you know what kind of a hammer that guy used?¡±
Even if it was just a myth, to think that he¡¯d casually call a god ¡°that guy.¡± Now that was an appetion befitting Kim Dae-ho¡¯s personality.
¡°No, I don¡¯t know what he used,¡± replied Su-hyeun.
¡°That¡¯s right. You wouldn¡¯t know. Well, do you know what adamantium is?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t that the mineral that came out of a green-colored dungeon from eight years ago?¡±
¡°To folks in my profession, adamantium is kind of like a symbol of pride. No, wait. Should I say it¡¯s like a myth? You see, the hammer Thor wields is also made out of that adamantium.¡± Kim Dae-ho saying that seemed rather excited for some reason.
¡°Well, Hephaestus¡¯s hammer is recorded as being so big that all the adamantium in existence back then wasn¡¯t enough to recreate it, but.... Anyways, even if you¡¯re a pathetic, two-bit cksmith, you would still create the greatest equipment in history by using Hephaestus¡¯s hammer. That¡¯s what the legends say.¡±
¡°But isn¡¯t that just a legend, a myth?¡±
¡°Yup, it¡¯s a myth, alright. That¡¯s why it¡¯s so much cooler, don¡¯t you think so? There¡¯s this romantic side to it, too.¡±
Kim Dae-ho¡¯s face back then as he looked at his own hammer was filled with anticipation of sorts.
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t get to hear the next part. However, he still understood full well that the master craftsman wished to create a hammer with the adamantium, and with that very hammer, started pounding away on fire and iron.
That¡¯s why he felt so bitter right now.
¡°Looks like I¡¯ll have to find more.¡±
Back in the previous life as well as this one, Kim Dae-ho chose to create Su-hyeun¡¯s sword rather than making his dreame true.
Su-hyeun was trying to repay his debt, yet it felt like he now had more to pay instead.
And so, just as he was about to leave Kim Dae-ho¡¯s workshop by pushing open the door....
¡°Ah, I forgot.¡±
ng, ng
He remembered one other business he had in this ce. ¡°...The dragon-ying spear.¡±
He stood there and pondered for a bit before eventually leaving the workshop.
He simply didn¡¯t have the heart to tell the cksmith working hard on his sword that all of the dragon-ying spears had been used up.
In the end, Su-hyeun used the achievement points he got during thest trial to purchase some spare dragon-ying spears. The number of points he got while passing the 30th floor was more than enough to buy the spears without any worries.
<>
Indeed, doing this was better than dying thepletion of Balmung.
Besides, he didn¡¯t have an urgent need to spend the achievement points anyway. He initially wondered whether he should purchase another of the highest-grade catalyst or not, but the need for that disappeared after absorbing Ouroboros¡¯s power.
Su-hyeun bought a total of five dragon-ying spears.
<>
His dragon hadn¡¯t shown itself ever sincepletely exhausting itself during the battle against Ouroboros. Su-hyeun grew a little worried, so he called Song Hyeong-gi for advice. Thetter replied in a very excited tone of voice.
¡°Oh, that? Your kid is about to grow a whole lot bigger! That¡¯s what¡¯s happening.¡±
¡°Grow a whole lotrger? So suddenly?¡±
¡°It¡¯s kinda like a growth spurt, you see. I was worried since your Miru¡¯s rate of growth was so much slowerpared to other dragons, but maybe, things will change after this.¡±
¡°Sure, Miru is slower whenpared to Yong....¡±
¡°I can¡¯t say much about Miru¡¯s case since that kid¡¯s growth method is different from my own Yong. But, what¡¯s happening now isn¡¯t a bad thing. The ¡®hibernation period¡¯ for dragons is the same thing as their growth period, after all.¡±
The hibernation period.
That¡¯s the name Song Hyeong-gi attached to Miru, who was slumbering away. On top of that, Malcolm¡¯s book also emphasized how important hibernation was for dragons.
<>
It had been a little over half a year since Miru was hatched.
Unlike how a dragon was supposed to reach its maturity in about a year, Miru¡¯s overall size remained much smaller than other dragons.
So, Su-hyeun did worry a little. But now, Miru was about to hit its growth spurt, so he couldn¡¯t help but feel his anticipation building up.
<>
Su-hyeun spent most of his time alone, so Miru was like a cute son full of entertaining little antics. During all those times when he felt lonely, he¡¯d miss Miru behaving so lovably cute.
He soon put his thoughts of Miru away to the back of his mind and headed straight to the 31st floor¡¯s za.
[31st floor¡¯s trial ismencing.]
The view changed as soon as the trial went underway, and apletely new world spread out before his eyes.
The new setting was rather interesting, to say the least. Su-hyeun now found himself standing in the middle of a battle arena resembling the Colosseum, and monsters held inside the metal cages in the various corners of the arena were ring at him.
At a casual nce, this setting seemed somewhat simr to the first floor¡¯s trial. However, there was one very noticeable difference.
¡°Wah, waaaah, waah!¡±
¡°Kill him! Kill him!¡±
Thousands, no, tens of thousands of people filled up the Colosseum¡¯s audience seats. Their frenzied res and venomous roars were currently being directed at Su-hyeun. It was as if they were all possessed by something.
[Once every three years, Moline Empire holds an event where warriors kidnapped from other nations are served as prey to the monsters reared by the empire. You are the very first sacrificialmb of this event.]
[Choose your goal.]
[1. Bring down the Colosseum.]
[2. Escape from the Colosseum.]
[3. Survive until the end of today.]
[The difficulty is listed in descending order. The achievement rate will be decided upon the level of the selected difficulty.]
For sure, the trial was slightly moreplicated than the one found on the first floor. Not only were the levels of the monsters far higher, but the scope of his choices had also grown more varied as well.
If he chose the third option, all Su-hyeun had to do was to fight the monsters that woulde pouring out next. However, if he went with either the first or the second option, then even the knights of the empire would be his enemies, as well.
Just like how the trial¡¯s description had alluded to, it was clear to Su-hyeun which option was the hardest of the trio.
¡°Obviously...¡±
There was no need to even ponder this.
¡°...It¡¯ll be the first option.¡±
He wouldn¡¯t even have challenged the tenth level difficulty trials if he was nning to take the easy way out.
[You have chosen the first option.]
[The trial will not end until you bring down the institution of the Colosseum.]
He might have chosen the hardest path, but he actually felt d about that. On this stage, he didn¡¯t need to use his head too much. No, he simply had to destroy everything his eyes could see.
ng¡ª
The steel cages holding the monsters back began opening up one by one.
Su-hyeun observed at the drooling monsters slowly emerging from the four steel cages. They were snakilions, a lion-type monster with three snake heads serving as its tail.
Krrrr¡ª
¡°This is a perfect stage for experimenting.¡±
As a matter of fact, he was searching for an opportunity to get limated with his newly-acquired power and skills. His new trait, Third Eye, allowed him to perform various things. He tried to utilize a couple of those abilities during his brief fight against Petro, but he still hadn¡¯t explored everything in depth just yet.
¡°Sic him! Sic him!¡±
The roars of the crowd were getting louder.
It was right then that the empire¡¯s monster trainers restricting the snakilions¡¯ movements finally lowered their hands.
Bark, baaark¡ª!
The third eye in Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead opened up and red at the snakilions dashing towards him.
And then, as he extended his hand forward¡ª
¡°Sit.¡±
He spat out onemand that he was thinking about inwardly.
The backs of the snakilions dashing towards him suddenly bent down and the monsters all copsed on the ground with a thud.
Hissss¡ª
K-krrrrr¡ª
Snakilions shivered and lowered their heads in a clear disy of fear.
With this, he thought he could definitely tell what the first ability of his Third Eye was.
[Third Eye ¨C Predator]
Chapter 121
Chapter 121: Chapter 121
Snakilions¡¯ tails curled up. They were willingly lowering their tails and nting their heads on the ground.
¡°W-what¡¯s going on here?¡±
¡°Why aren¡¯t they fighting?¡±
¡°I said, go and kill him!¡±
¡°What is the meaning of this?¡±
¡°I wonder? Those monsters, they are actually bowing their heads...¡±
The rumblings within the crowd grew noisier and louder.
For sure, this was not a normal development. There had been many warriors capable of overwhelming the monsters, but not once did the monsters lower their heads first to a human being.
That was something only possible for the trainers who used food and torture to tame these creatures for a lengthy amount of time. And quite obviously, it was simply not possible for a sacrificialmb kidnapped from another nation to be a trainer.
¡°Are you saying...that the monsters bowed their heads first to a human?¡±
¡°Wait, could this be prearranged? Or some kind of an event?¡±
The crowd looked and murmured amongst themselves. Completely disregarding whether they were doing that or not, Su-hyeun issued an order to the four snakilions.
¡°Go back. And also...¡± His next correspondence was aimed at the trainers standing and waiting next to the monster cages. ¡°Go and bring out the rest.¡±
The trainers¡¯plexion grew deeply pale after meeting Su-hyeun¡¯s re, and they hurriedly made their next move. They had plenty of monsters ready to be deployed for the next two rounds.
The snakilions heeded Su-hyeun¡¯s order and returned to the cages. At this rate, it was as if he was their real trainer.
<>
Su-hyeun realized what the third eye¡¯s first ability was while observing the backs of the terrified snakilions following his orders.
<>
As the name implied, Third Eye¡¯s trait, Predator, was an ability that caused lower-ranked monsters to fall under a terrified state. At a casual nce, it might look like he was just making them scared, but with a closer look, one would realize that this ability was rather like a type of mental control.
It was quite likely that the moment snakilions met Su-hyeun¡¯s re, they all saw the figure of Ouroboros instead.
<>
Su-hyeun closed his eyes.
Creak, creeeak¡ª
At the same time, thin scales suddenly began sprouting all over his body. They seemed simr to the Imoogi¡¯s scales, yet were iparably tougher.
Kka-ahk, kka-ah-ahk¡ª!
Kki-eeeeh¡ª!
He could hear them.
He could hear eight monsters being dragged towards this ce beyond the steel bars. The number had increasedpared to earlier.
However, he simply stood there waiting, his eyes still closed.
Not too long after that, the monsters showed up from beyond the fences and were unleashed onto the Colosseum. Following the orders issued by their trainers, the eight monsters took aim at Su-hyeun and pounced.
He heard the monsters pping their wings.
<>
Although he couldn¡¯t see their movements through his eyes, he still vividly sensed them. And he wasn¡¯t even using any special abilities, either ¡ª he just knew.
Swiiiish¡ª
The head of a monster swooping in from the side was sliced cleanly off.
Swish¡ª
Swish¡ª
Swish¡ª
Right after cutting down three more monsters, Su-hyeun¡¯s figure floated up in the air.
Bam!
A tough beak crashed into the ground, right where he used to stand only a moment ago.
His foot stomped down on the crown of the monster and crushed its head and the brain at the same time. His muscr strength had be so much stronger after Ouroboros¡¯s power had been added to the mix.
Right then, all of Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes, including the one on his forehead, opened up.
Saash¡ª
The remaining four monsters were sliced into pieces, their wings and all.
ck¡ª
He sheathed his sword and scanned his vicinity.
This time, he got to confirm the physical ability of the Ouroboros¡¯s power. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t use a single drop of magical energy and simply relied on the newly-acquired physical power of the giant snake.
<>
His overall physical abilities had risen up quite high, as well.
With that, he had pretty much confirmed everything he wanted to for the time being. There was only one more ability remaining that Su-hyeun hadn¡¯t analyzed yet.
<>
Su-hyeun swept his gaze over the restless crowd. Then, he discovered a few knights and magicians eyeing him coldly from within. They were not the audience members, but the managers for this Colosseum.
He directed his next words at them. ¡°Are you going to sit back and just watch?¡±
His provocative question caused a sudden shift in the atmosphere. They had been flustered by the unexpected way this situation had developed, but once Su-hyeun began talking to them, they clearly bared their naked animosity towards him.
¡°A mere prisoner dares to...?¡±
¡°Although rather useful as a distraction, he¡¯ll prove to be an eyesore in the long run.¡±
They then shot a re at the monster trainers next. Thetter group hurriedly got ready to send out the next wave of monsters.
Su-hyeun lightly tutted and shook his head. ¡°It can¡¯t be helped since you don¡¯t want toe down here.¡±
His eyes were locked onto the crowd looking down at him from the Colosseum¡¯s audience seats. Their hostile eyes, united under the banner of their empire, were ring right back at him.
These bastards were toying with the lives of the prisoners, including Su-hyeun¡¯s, just because they came from different sides of the borders.
¡°I shall give you five minutes, starting from now. Those who want to run, run. Those who want to fight,e at me.¡±
His voice might have been small, but it spread out to the rest of the Colosseum clearly.
A lone man was actually issuing a challenge to the empire¡¯s greatest form of entertainment, the Colosseum, which was basically a fortress in its own right.
¡°This cannot be allowed to continue on.¡±
Swiiish¡ª
One of the knights leaped off a dozens-meters tall wall andnded lightly before Su-hyeun. Judging by how easy it was for this man to jump off from there, he must¡¯ve been pretty highly skilled. Or perhaps he was in possession of magical abilities of some kind.
¡°A mere prisoner daring to lecture and threaten us, now that¡¯s a sight to behold. We wished to bestow upon you the honor of bing the noble empire¡¯s source of joy before you died, but....¡±
¡°Four minutes.¡± Su-hyeunpletely disregarded the knight and just stood there while continuing on with his countdown. ¡°You now have four minutes left.¡±
¡°You stinking son of a...¡±
Pissed off after realizing that he had been roundly ignored, the knight began gritting his teeth.
He roughly yanked his sword out and pointed the weapon at Su-hyeun. Only then did thetter nce at the knight.
¡°I, Coltman, the Vice-Captain of the Moline Empire¡¯s Royal Guards, will...!¡±
Hissss¡ª
Suddenly, a deeply chilling hiss could be hearding from somewhere.
Coltman was shocked out of his skull and he hurriedly looked around. However, he couldn¡¯t identify the source of that chilling hiss.
<>
It was right then, Coltman felt a creeping chill run down his spine and raised his head.
HISSSS¡ª
Then, he saw the eyes of a massive snake.
Coltman¡¯s legs almost gave up and he nearly plopped down on his backside just then.
¡°Ah, w-wuaaaah...?¡±
A gigantic snake hadpletely wrapped around the entirety of the Colosseum. As if it was looking down on the tasty little treats, the monster was ring at him as well as every audience member.
This spectacle hadn¡¯t been witnessed only by Coltman alone, however. Everyone currently inside the Colosseum had fallen into the same hallucination as him.
¡°U-uwaaaah!¡±
¡°R-run away!¡±
¡°It¡¯s a monster!¡±
Countless people tried to escape the structure at the same time.
¡°D-do not escape! Where do you think you¡¯re going?¡±
Coltman btedly shook off the effects of the hallucination and cried out in an urgent voice.
Unfortunately for him, the panicking crowd wasn¡¯t going to heed his orders in the first ce. After falling deep into confusion and fear, they lost themselves to the singr thought of wanting to escape.
Still, quite a few of the empire¡¯s knights and some magicians remained behind in the Colosseum. They somehow managed to ovee their fear. It seemed that the effects of Su-hyeun¡¯s skill didn¡¯t influence them too strongly.
¡°T-trainer!¡± Coltman urgently called out to a trainer shivering away inside the cage. ¡°Bring out every monster inside, now! Hurry and kill that bastard!¡±
¡°If-if we do that, then controlling them will be impossible....¡±
¡°I¡¯ll take full responsibility. Hurry up!¡±
Coltman remained adamant despite the trainer¡¯s reply. His head was filled with thoughts of suppressing Su-hyeun as quickly as possible.
If left alone, he thought that Su-hyeun would pose an even greater danger. He also felt that thetter¡¯s sharp de would slice right into the frightened knight¡¯s neck, and he just couldn¡¯t stay still and do nothing.
¡°One minute.¡±
Still not giving a damn, Su-hyeun stood there and observed Coltman¡¯s and the trainer¡¯s actions. He didn¡¯t forget to count down the remaining time, of course. The thing was, though, five minutes weren¡¯t nearly enough for the terrified crowd to escape from this ce.
Sure enough, the promised time of five minutes was up when only about half of the audience had managed to evacuate.
Kiiiaaaaah!
Krrr, krrrrr¡ª
Shiiiii¡ª
With perfect timing, all sorts of colorful howls and screeches could be hearding out from the interior of the Colosseum. Those noises wereing from the countless monsters currently locked away within the building by the empire for the purpose of today¡¯s event.
The trainers had undone the shackles that tied these monsters down.
¡°C-calm down and slowly follow... Aaaaahk!¡±
¡°Dammit, as expected with these numbers, they aren¡¯t listening to ourmands anymore!¡±
¡°S-save me! Aaahck!¡±
¡°Run!¡±
Monsters let loose at the same time no longer stayed obedient. They howled out joyously, having finally regained their freedom after enduring years of forced confinement and taming attempts.
Ku-rururung¡ª
Monsters began pouring out from inside the Colosseum next.
At the same time, the empire¡¯s knights and magicians easily numbering a few hundred quickly surrounded Su-hyeun.
Despite losing the trainers, Coltman remained triumphant. Although the thought of taking responsibilitiester worried him, right now he believed that this much fighting power would be able to frighten Su-hyeun.
¡°And so, what will you do now?¡±
¡°Is this everyone?¡± Su-hyeun asked. He remained still despite going over his time limit, but finally, he unsheathed his sword.
In the meantime, hundreds of monsters filled the Colosseum and even more continued to pour outside from the structure¡¯s bowels.
However, something strange was happening here. Monsters that should have been rampaging out of control were all obediently waiting around.
¡°This is perfect. Perfect,¡± said Su-hyeun with a deep smirk.
The trial¡¯s goal was to bring down the Colosseum. He was now thinking that he¡¯d be passing this floor far, far easier and quicker than he initially predicted. Not only that, but his new trait was also proving to be very satisfactory as well.
¡°What are you all waiting for? Hurry up ande at me.¡±
Su-hyeun swept his gaze at the surrounding knights and magicians, then beckoned at them.
His disying such a rxed air when he should¡¯ve been scared silly caused Coltman¡¯s anger to shoot up to the top of his head. The knight roared out loudly.
¡°Magicians! Get ready to fire!¡±
Coltman had fought in many theaters of war for over ten-plus years, so he was able to issue the correctmand despite how agitated he was.
The monsters were currently not in a controlled state, yet for some reason, they weren¡¯t making any moves. Also, Su-hyeun was a swordsman. Coltman¡¯s side boasted a good bnce of knights and magicians. In that case, he needed to use magic first and inflict some damage before initiating the actual assault.
Woong, woooong, buzzzz¡ª
Over one hundred magicians gathered their magical powers in a single spot and drew a massive magic circle in the air.
Several elemental attributes were ovepped on top of one another. This magic was solely focused on firepower rather than any other special side effects.
Su-hyeun had some knowledge when it came to matters of magic. Obviously it wasn¡¯t to the levels of the dedicated awakeners, but he had seen enough while traversing through various worlds.
And that was why he could tell how powerful the magic circle currently being drawn up actually was.
¡°Commence attack!¡±
ording to Coltman¡¯s hand signal, the magic circle emitted bright light in an instant.
sh!
The blinding sh of light enveloped Su-hyeun. It was a man-killing magic created by one hundred-plus magicians pooling their magical energy. Its power was more than enough topletely blow away a regr-sized mansion.
However, Su-hyeun didn¡¯t dodge and simply gathered his own magical energy.
[Third Eye ¨C Neutralization]
Chapter 122
Chapter 122: Chapter 122
The massive light ray flying in towards Su-hyeun suddenly distorted and then vanished without a trace. Coltman and the magicians believed the attack could not be evaded or defended against, so rather obviously, they became flustered by it.
¡°It-it vanished?¡±
¡°Was that ¡®cancel¡¯ magic?¡±
¡°But in such a short amount of time?¡±
Learning the cancel magic that systematically analyzed and canceled out your opponent¡¯s magic wasn¡¯t all that hard. However, utilizing said cancel magic you learned was another story altogether. Quite obviously, the harder the magic you wanted to cancel, the tougher it¡¯d get to use your own cancel magic.
Not to mention, over one hundred of the empire¡¯s magicians chanted that magic to life only a few moments ago. It was simply impossible for a single individual to cancel magic like that in such a short period of time.
<
Biltor, the empire¡¯s proud magician as well as the captain of the magic division, began stumbling backward.
<>
Just how many more abilities did that thing even possess?
Su-hyeun was currently furrowing his brows a little after having blocked the magic. The third eye was already closed shut by then.
¡°I feel a bit...dizzy.¡±
One of the authorities Third Eye possessed, Neutralization, was probably the craziest cheat-like skill as far as Su-hyeun was concerned ¡ª an authority that allowed him to extinguish one of his opponent¡¯s magical machinations by consuming his own magical energy as well as mental strength.
There certainly existed specific skills that rendered the opponent¡¯s skills useless or outright canceled them, but even then, limitations would be imposed depending on the grade of the skills involved.
However, Third Eye¡¯s Neutralization wasn¡¯t bound by such restrictions.
The neutralization was limited only by the individual user¡¯s capability, meaning its limit depended on the skill user¡¯spetence and mental focus.
<>
Su-hyeun smirked inwardly.
<>
No, it was already well beyond the realm of ¡°not bad¡± at this point.
With everything he witnessed so far, his new trait was more than good enough to be ranked as one of the very best traits that he had the knowledge of. If this skill had been acquired through Transfiguration, then he most likely wouldn¡¯t have been able to explore its full potential.
<>
The dizzinesssted only for a second or two. Su-hyeun re-focused on the magic spells flying in his direction soon afterward.
[Indomitable Body.]
[Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor.]
Ka-ka-boom¡ª
Apanied by a round of explosions, scorching-hot mes of congration violently whipped about Su-hyeun¡¯s vicinity.
Now that their magic attacks had finallynded on target, both Coltman and Biltor cried out in tion inwardly.
It should¡¯ve resulted in immediate death, or at the very least, heavy injuries. That¡¯s what they believed.
Unfortunately for them...
¡°Man, that surprised me.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s figure revealed itself from between the dancing mes, lookingpletely intact. He lightly dusted his armor, now slightly burnt around the edges. ¡°You aren¡¯t supposed to hit someone when they are in a daze, don¡¯t you know that?¡±
¡°That, that...¡±
¡°B-but, how...¡±
They definitely hit him, yet none of their attacks were effective. Not only the armor, but even his unprotected skin didn¡¯t disy any hints of damage other than emitting a slight reddish glow.
Su-hyeun repeatedly clenched and unfurled his fists and sensed the hot temperature transmitted through his skin.
<>
That was slightlymentable, but wishing for that would have been him being way too greedy. Besides, defense against magic would be provided by the Falcon¡¯s Holy Armor anyway. Even if that wasn¡¯t it, he could easily get his hands on items that boosted his natural magic resistance.
With this, the experiments were over.
¡°In that case. From today onwards...¡±
[Third Eye ¨C Predator]
The eye in his forehead that was temporarily closed opened wide once more and scanned through the Colosseum.
¡°I¡¯m putting an end to your operation.¡±
Kiii-eeeeh¡ª!
At the same time, monsters finished devouring their trainers and began screeching and howling loudly.
Soon afterwards...
¡°Euh... uwaaaaah¡ª!¡±
Screams reverberated from the center of the Colosseum¡¯s battle arena.
Act 6
ng¡ª
When the part between the links connecting the chains and the keyhole was severed, the cuffs binding the man¡¯s ankles came undone.
¡°T-thank you.¡±
¡°As soon as you get out of here, don¡¯t even look back and escape back to your home country,¡± said Su-hyeun.
The man loosened his aching wrists and ankles and replied, ¡°I¡¯d like to do that, but...how do I even get out of here?¡±
¡°You won¡¯t even find a single ant outside, actually.¡±
¡°What do you mean? It¡¯s not as if you don¡¯t know where we are, so what gives?¡±
¡°You¡¯ll see once you get out of here.¡±
The man tilted his head this way and that after hearing Su-hyeun¡¯s words, but still, cautiously made his way outside.
He didn¡¯t seem to trust what Su-hyeun had told him, but he¡¯d soon understand by going outside the prison.
<>
Su-hyeun spat out a lengthy groan and plopped down on the ground.
This was definitely not a difficult trial. If he took his time clearing it, then there wouldn¡¯t be any reason for him to get this exhausted. The issue was with Third Eye, as well as his body that hadn¡¯t fully limated to the Ouroboros¡¯s magical energy.
<>
The magical energy stabilized a little after acquiring the Ouroboros¡¯s trait, but that didn¡¯t mean it was perfectly under his control.
Quite a lot of magical energy and mental strength had to be consumed every time he used the trait¡¯s skills, which naturally meant he needed time to get used to everything.
<>
Only a few months remained until the start of the Ranking Wars.
The American S-Rank awakener, Gordon Rohan, organized the greatest event in history: the Ranking Wars.
At the very least, Su-hyeun had topletely master Third Eye and Ouroboros¡¯s magical energy residing inside his body as his own before themencement of that event.
<>
Su-hyeun tightly clenched his fist.
This event might look like all fun and games at a casual nce, but the Ranking Wars Gordon Rohan organized would end up sending massive ripples to every country in the world.
A new awakener powerhouse nation would be born from the Ranking Wars, while those previously seen as one would be the setting sun instead. Su-hyeun simply had to be at the center of that storm.
<>
Su-hyeun got up from his sitting position. Every time his thoughts began running deeper like this, he¡¯d start finding taking little breaks a waste of his precious time.
[200,000 Achievement points have been acquired.]
[Highestpletion rate has been attained.]
[You have perfectly cleared the 31st floor¡¯s trial.]
[Achievement ranking is being tallied.]
[You¡¯re in the first position.]
[....]
¡°Time to go to the next floor.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s figure vanished from this world.
The year was 2021.
The world was rapidly changing.
¡ªDo you really think that the current rate of dungeon generation is normal? What about the awakeners? The world wasn¡¯t like this only a couple of years ago.
¡ªTake a look at this graph. Past 2017, then 2018, and after 2019...the rate of dungeon generation is showing a steep upward trajectory from the year 2020 onwards. And when ites to dungeons of the color level higher than yellow, it¡¯s even worse.
¡ªThe whole world is going to get destroyed soon!
Theories on the looming crisis were on the rise everywhere.
Especially so during thetter half of the year 2021, dungeon outbreaks were no longer treated as umon idents.
The mass media would often report on the news rted to various outbreaks.
The world¡¯s opinion regarding the dungeons split into two camps. One side believed that these dungeons were massive ticking time bombs that¡¯d lead the world to its destruction. And to the other, dungeons were a resource that would lead the world to prosperity.
The world was indeed changing rapidly.
¡°Isn¡¯t it amazing? This building is the first in the world to feature 200 floors. Its height alone is over 3,000 feet.¡±
A dandy man with blonde hair, sporting a golden-rimmed pair of sunsses ¡ª this man, who looked to be only in his mid-thirties, was draped in high-end luxury brands from head to toe. A regr person would¡¯ve never even seen such luxurious apparel in their lifetime, never mind even putting on some.
The man was riding on a fast-moving elevator along with a woman. He continued chatting with her. ¡°The world has be really wonderful. I mean, just take a look at this elevator. It¡¯s moving so fast, yet you can¡¯t even feel the hint of vibration or hear any noise. You think such technology would¡¯ve existed in the past?¡±
¡°It¡¯s all thanks to Ether stones, I¡¯m guessing.¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. I¡¯ve invested a huge chunk, that¡¯s for sure.¡±
¡°Just how many Ether stones did you have to use in order toplete this building?¡±
¡°I wonder. It could be around ten percent of all the Ether stones produced within the United States, I guess?¡± The woman¡¯s question was triumphantly replied to by the blonde man.
America was already famed for dungeons generating rather frequently within her borders. But to say that around ten percent of all of America¡¯s Ether stones had been spent on constructing this one building? That was a notion difficult to imagine.
¡°It¡¯s basically a golden castle, then.¡± The woman spoke of her honest impression of the ce.
The man smiled brightly, perhaps finding herparison to his liking. ¡°A golden castle, is it? Now that¡¯s damn cool.¡±
The elevator vibrated imperceptibly beforeing to a stop.
The two of them had arrived on the top floor of this building. The moment they stepped outside the elevator, they were greeted by a golden statue resembling the blonde man, with a que where his name was engraved on the surface right below it.
¡°King and God.¡±
Gordon Rohan.
It was a truly arrogant phrase. Even the mass media openly talked about how that phrase was meant to imply Gordon¡¯s unwillingness to let go of both the title of ¡°king¡± and ¡°god.¡±
The woman, Ashlyn, was an American S-Rank and affiliated with the American awakener organization. She stared at Gordon Rohan with less than impressed eyes. ¡°You sure love to say that cringeworthy thing so brazenly in public.¡±
¡°It¡¯s the truth, after all,¡± replied Gordon Rohan without a shred of hesitation. ¡°I am...the best.¡±
The mischievous gleam in his eyes until now suddenly disappeared, reced by preternatural calmness.
Being the best.
Every time he said that, Gordon Rohan transformed a little. It was as if he waspletely obsessed with being the best. But he happened to be one of the very few people alive who could say something like that with unshakable confidence.
¡°Is that the reason why you organized this event?¡± Ashlyn asked.
¡°Event? Oh, you mean the Ranking Wars?¡±
¡°Right, that.¡±
The opportunity to prove that he was the best...
¡°It won¡¯t just be me saying it, but soon, the entire world,¡± said Gordon Rohan.
He looked down on the world from the very top of the highest building in existence. ¡°They will say, Gordon Rohan is the best.¡±
Ashlyn froze up on the spot. The magical energy emitted from his body felt so painful that she thought her entire body might break.
She had felt this before, but still, Gordon Rohan¡¯s talents were truly absolute even among the S-Rank awakeners.
<>
Although they were all ced under the same banner of S-Rank, individuals like him sometimes existed ¡ª an awakener possessing abilities seemingly from another dimension.
Ashlyn barely managed to calm her trembling body and continued to walk towards Gordon¡¯s side.
¡°Five, four, three....¡± He was looking down at the cloudless scenery below while counting down the numbers. ¡°...Two, one.¡±
Bang, boom¡ª!
Fireworks went off.
These fireworks could only illuminate the top floors of the building despite being fired upwards from the ground below. Fireworks that cost tens of millions of dors exploded brilliantly to brighten the night sky.
By looking down at those fireworks, he could appreciate the fact once more that he was indeed in a very high ce.
Ashlyn muttered softly while looking at the fireworks going off. ¡°It¡¯s December.¡±
Fireworks denoting the arrival of December. They weren¡¯t weing the new year, but regardless, today would be marked in history as a far more significant date.
¡°It is, indeed.¡± Gordon Rohan grinned after hearing what Ashlyn had said and turned around. ¡°And it¡¯s the start of the Ranking Wars.¡±
The day he had been waiting for with bated breath.
The day that S-Ranks from various nations of the world would gather in one spot.
For the sake of this very day, he made sure to prevent any potential outbreaks by proactively raiding the dungeons with colors higher than green.
All thanks to that, the number of touristsing to spectate the Ranking Wars would now be recorded in the history books as unprecedented.
December.
The fireworks signaling the start of the Ranking Wars continued on for many hours afterward.
Chapter 123
Chapter 123: Chapter 123
Lee Ju-ho circled around the exact same spot right in front of the Awakener Authority¡¯s building while looking quite anxious. Su-hyeun was sitting on a nearby bench reading a book while sipping on coffee the older man had brought earlier.
Lee Ju-ho just couldn¡¯t understand Su-hyeun. ¡°We don¡¯t have much time left, yet how can you be soid-back enough to read a book?¡±
¡°Well, I don¡¯t have any reason to feel rushed, so it¡¯s fine.¡±
While making his reply, Su-hyeun flipped to the next page. His eyes moved quickly and busily as he read the words on the paper.
Seeing how rxed his demeanor was, Lee Ju-ho could only sigh and pound on his chest. ¡°In any case, why is that kid sote?¡±
¡°It¡¯s an S-Rank evaluation, after all. It¡¯s actually a relief that things are taking a while.¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°It means he avoided getting disqualified right at the beginning, doesn¡¯t it?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s reply caused Lee Ju-ho to form a dazed expression for a moment or two, but then he nodded his head in an exaggerated manner, as if he realized something just then.
¡°I-I see.¡±
¡°That¡¯s why you should also calm down and patiently wait for him. Besides, by now he should be...¡±
¡°Hey, you two!¡±
Hak-joon was running towards them from the distance.
Without a doubt, his voice came from afar, yet he must¡¯ve run so hard that he was already right in front of the waiting duo¡¯s noses.
¡°I did it! I really did it!¡±
Judging from how he was jumping around in excitement, there was no need to even ask him.
Su-hyeun closed the book and got up from the bench. And rather different from how Hak-joon was reacting, he simply smiled faintly as if he had already predicted this end result. ¡°What did I say? I told you it¡¯s nothing to worry about.¡±
¡°You were so right. It was really easy, you know?¡±
Hak-joon carried a triumphant look on his face, then pulled out a phone while looking as if he had forgotten about something and began typing text messages reserved for someone.
Lee Ju-ho, sounding unconvinced, raised his brows and asked, ¡°What about your registration certificate?¡±
¡°Ah, that. Here.¡±
Hak-joon pulled out the awakener registration certificate stuffed into his cross bag and showed it to Lee Ju-ho. It was the same thing that Su-hyeun received when he became an S-Rank one year ago.
Lee Ju-ho confirmed the certificate and breathed a sigh of relief. ¡°Now that was too close forfort.¡±
¡°If I knew it¡¯d be this easy, I would¡¯ve taken the evaluation one or two months ago. I was so nervous since I can¡¯t retake the evaluation for a year, but this...¡±
¡°No time for idle chatter, unfortunately,¡± said Su-hyeun as he lightly patted Lee Ju-ho and Hak-joon¡¯s shoulders. Then he turned around to leave. ¡°Let¡¯s hurry and be on our way.¡±
Act 7
The three men climbed aboard a private ne and departed right away for San Francisco, US.
Hak-joon had been stuck inside the tower and couldn¡¯te outside for the past half-year, all for the sake of acquiring the S-Rank qualification. So, his jaw couldn¡¯t help but drop after checking out Su-hyeun¡¯s private ne.
¡°T-t-this thing is really yours?¡±
¡°You didn¡¯t believe me when I told you before, did you?¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t this even bigger than the one we borrowed from the Reaper Guild thest time? Just how much did you pay for this ne anyway? No, wait a minute. Just where did you get the money in the first ce?¡±
¡°Out of all the Ether stones and the by-products of the monster corpses from that blue-colored dungeon, around 70% was judged to be mine. The money¡¯s from selling off all of my share of the loot.¡±
¡°70 percent?¡±
Hak-joon¡¯s jaw dropped even further.
Since he also participated, he also received some money from the aftermath of the blue-colored dungeon raid.
He figured that the reward cash was pretty generous even by his standards, but at the moment, he was failing to evenpute just how enormous the ¡°70% of the entire earnings¡± from the same dungeon could actually be.
¡°Wait, Jordan said he¡¯d yield his contributions to you, didn¡¯t he?¡±
¡°Right, and the Medical Guild¡¯s contribution was also mine, too.¡±
¡°...Umm, bro? Can you even maintain this thing?¡±
¡°I still have some money left. Besides, if it bes too much of a hassle, I¡¯ll just participate in another raid or something,¡± Su-hyeun replied while lookingpletely unbothered by it, but Lee Ju-ho and Hak-joon were forming really depressed expressions.
Especially so with Lee Ju-ho ¡ª he was shaking his head and muttering out as if he had given up already. ¡°The guy who eats tteokbokki for lunch and gimbap for dinner now owns a private ne....¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t even eat proper meals unless it was with Lee Ju-ho, yet here he was, spending his money so carefreely like this. It was a bit hard to reconcile these two images of the same man.
However, only one matter of interest would cause Su-hyeun to splurge, and that would be on how to save himself some time, even if only by a little bit.
The private ne flew non-stop for half a day.
Soon, the American continent gradually entered their visual range, and as the ne slowly descended from flying altitude, the three men catching some quick Z¡¯s woke up one by one.
¡°Ahh! Are we there yet?¡±
¡°Looks that way.¡±
After seeing the two yawn so loudly, even Su-hyeun ended up yawning, too.
The seats on the ne could be folded back almost t like real beds, which allowed him to get a fairly rxing rest. He began wondering just when was thest time he slept so soundly like this.
¡°We¡¯re notte, I hope?¡± Hak-joon asked while packing his luggage, perhaps beginning to feel a bit concerned that now he was here.
Su-hyeun confirmed the date and time once more and replied, ¡°We¡¯re notte. We still have a cushion of one day, so you don¡¯t have to worry so much.¡±
¡°That¡¯s a relief.¡±
It seemed that they still had some time before the start of the Ranking Wars.
Not wanting to bete because of unexpected dys, Hak-joon even took the S-Rank evaluation test in secret. If reporters or the guilds somehow caught wind of the situation and showed up, then that would lead to unnecessary dys.
Su-hyeun nced outside through the ne¡¯s window.
He could see a building standing tall in the center-most spot of San Francisco in the distance. A grin spread over his lips after he recalled the name of the building in question.
<>
What aughable name that was. A building named after its owner.
One might be tempted to think that such a thing wasn¡¯t strange, but Su-hyeun knew what Gordon Rohan¡¯s personality was like, so he couldn¡¯t help but chuckle.
That man would never be satisfied unless he was acknowledged as the best at whatever. Su-hyeun knew all too well why such a man decided to organize the Ranking Wars.
<>
Since when did it start?
Gordon Rohan was born into a wealthy American oil baron¡¯s family, meaning he was born a billionaire. People jokingly said that half of San Francisco belonged to him, so it was rather easy to estimate the depth of his financial wherewithal.
He was one of three men that people always mentioned when talking about the wealthiest individuals in the world.
He used his bottomless wealth to acquire a football team, and it continued to win its league every season. His corporations focusing on smart technology and Ether stone energy refinement always stayed as the number one in their respective fields. To top it all off, he even possessed talents that made others acknowledge him as the world¡¯s best awakener.
He lived with the modifier ¡°the best¡± seemingly for his entire life.
¡°The best, is it...?¡±
Su-hyeun upied that position. The spot that Gordon Rohan so desperately wished to make his.
<>
Hak-joon heard Su-hyuen¡¯s muttering from the side, so he abruptly pushed his head into thetter¡¯s line of sight to ask a question. ¡°What about the best?¡±
¡°Mm?¡±
¡°I thought you said something about the best and stuff just now.¡±
That was something he blurted out without even realizing, so Su-hyeun simply shook his head and replie?, ¡°Nah, it¡¯s nothing important.¡±
¡°What do you mean, it¡¯s nothing? It¡¯s true that the Gordon Tower is the tallest building in the world, isn¡¯t it? I can¡¯t wait to see it up close.¡±
Hak-joon looked really pumped up as if he came here to sightsee.
In the meantime, the private ne finallynded. Su-hyeun smirked and after grabbing his luggage, got up from his chair. The Gordon Tower looked even more imposing once he climbed outside the ne.
¡°I¡¯ll unpack our luggage at the lodging and find out the schedules for the Ranking Wars, so you two, go and be tourists for a while,¡± said Lee Ju-ho while checking out their itinerary through his smartphone.
They still had some time to kill. They needed to get in touch with the Reaper Guild, but as Park Ji-yeon was runningte, Su-hyeun no longer had a need to show his face.
Unlike Hak-joon, whose expression had brightened in an instant, Su-hyeun shook his head and refused the offer. ¡°No need to do all of that. Besides, what do you mean, us as tourists?¡±
¡°You may not be keen, but the dude next to you does seem to be, wouldn¡¯t you say so?¡±
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s words caused Hak-joon to flinch and quickly avoid meeting the gazes of the others. Although he hadn¡¯t said anything yet, he must¡¯ve been really looking forward to it.
Su-hyeun pondered this for a bit before nodding his head. It wasn¡¯t as if he had anything special to do whether or not he went around with Hak-joon in tow. ¡°In that case, I¡¯ll leave it to you.¡±
¡°Alright. Have fun, you two.¡±
Su-hyeun and Hak-joon went separate ways from Lee Ju-ho and grabbed a taxi.
As it turned out, the Gordon Tower that looked so imposingly tall was located pretty far away. But then again, it was massive enough to be seen no matter where you were in San Francisco. It took 30 minutes just to get there.
<>
They could¡¯ve arrived at their destination in a few minutes by doing that.
Unlike Su-hyeun, who was getting bored out of his mind during the ride, Hak-joon was busy boasting to Yun-seon over the video chat.
Eventually, they paid for the taxi fee, which was noticeably higher than in South Korea, and stood in front of the Gordon Tower.
Hak-joon¡¯s eyes widened as he scanned the building all the way up till its rooftop. ¡°Now that I look at it from close by, it¡¯s...no joke.¡±
¡°Yeah, I agree.¡±
While Hak-joon was busy looking up at the skyscraper, Su-hyeun was scanning the huge crowd of people currently surrounding the structure itself.
As he did so, his gaze soon locked on a ck man in the crowd. That man¡¯s face was rather familiar to him.
<>
Su-hyeun walked over to the building¡¯s interior while his gaze shifted in a different direction next. A white woman of Russian heritage could be spotted rather easily among the crowd.
<>
Besides these two, he could spot several other famous faces.
Every single one of them was an S-Rank awakener.
They all came to San Francisco to participate in the Ranking Wars. And since they were in the city already, it seemed that they all had the same idea ofing to take a gander at the Gordon Tower, reputedly the greatest structure in the world.
On average, only one or two S-Ranks existed per nation, or three at most ¡ª yet right here in this ce, so many could be spotted quite easily.
This was a gathering of the stars, in other words.
¡°Well, it¡¯s no joke, alright,¡± muttered Su-hyeun.
He went through all sorts of experiences in his previous life, but even then, this would be his first time participating in the Ranking Wars. Back then, Su-hyeun was merely an A-Rank. In other words, he couldn¡¯t participate as he hadn¡¯t be an S-rank on time.
<>
Not just any awakeners, but S-Ranks had gathered here in quite arge number. And not a single one of them could be ¡°controlled¡± properly.
They surely wouldn¡¯t start anything idiotic when there were so many people gathered here, but human nature was and always would be unpredictable.
Indeed, folks with a few screws loose always existed.
And sure enough...
<<...I knew it.>>
Su-hyeun hurriedly turned around and spoke. ¡°Hey, Hak-joon.¡±
¡°Dude, over th... Eh?¡±
¡°I¡¯ll call youter.¡±
¡°Ehh? Where are you...?¡±
Swiiish¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s figure rapidly fleeted in and out of the crowd. He moved so suddenly that Hak-joon failed to catch the departing back in time. He had vanished in the literal blink of an eye.
Su-hyeun entered the elevator right away. It was powered by several low-grade Ether stones and up to 50 people could ride on it.
As so many were already riding on it, the elevator kept stopping on different floors. They needed quite a lot of time to reach only the tenth floor.
<>
He would¡¯ve liked to avoid damaging another¡¯s private property, but it couldn¡¯t be helped this time.
Craaack-¡ª
Su-hyeun leapt up and broke through the ceiling of the elevator. Other passengers all screamed in fright, but he ignored them for now. He nced below, and as expected, the elevator was operating just fine with no signs of error.
Tap¡ª
Su-hyeun used the Leap skill and traveled up through the elevator shaft. This was a lot faster than the elevator¡¯s climbing speed.
The destination he reached by doing this was the highest floor of the Gordon Tower, the 200th: the ce where the entire view of San Francisco could be captured in one nce.
That ce had already sumbed to pandemonium by then.
¡°Kkyahhk¡ª!¡±
¡°It-it¡¯s a fight!¡±
There was nothing besides Gordon Rohan¡¯s statue installed on the 200th floor, yet now it was filled by the screams of the panicking people.
The handful of elevators avable hadn¡¯t arrived yet, and the emergency exit was too narrow for a lot of people to escape in a hurry.
In the midst of all this, two men were ring at each other right in the center of the 200th floor.
<>
Two S-Ranks ¡ª one from China and the other from Japan ¡ª well-known to be hostile towards each other, hade to blows in this very ce.
Chapter 124
Chapter 124: Chapter 124
Wang Wu and Sugimoto Kenya were famous for their bad blood, even among the S-ranks.
It was probably the best example of inter-guild squabbles spiraling out of control. The members from their respective guilds started fighting, and that led to issues of protecting one¡¯s pride, and eventually, these two S-Rank awakeners got involved.
Afterward, the two of them started shing against each other in a variety of minor ways, such as striking low-blows through social media posts.
The reason why no serious collision had urred until now was all due to the fact that their operational territories were different, meaning they wouldn¡¯t identally run into one another on the field. Also, the Chinese and the Japanese awakener authorities tried their best to dissuade the duo from going too far, as well.
However, this was not their home nation but a foreign one. And unfortunately, the two men ended up running into each other here.
¡°I see that you¡¯re also participating in these Ranking Wars.¡±
What with their meeting ce being what it was, Wang Wu wanted to smoothly let things slide, so he tried to greet the Japanese as friendly as humanly possible.
¡°Why does it sound like you¡¯re saying ¡®a punk like you¡¯ to me?¡± Sugimoto Kenya replied.
That answer was clearly meant to get on his nerves.
Wang Wu furrowed his brows when Sugimoto Kenya deliberately twisted what he said. Wang Wu quipped, ¡°At least you seem to know your ce.¡±
Since his opponent was showing a willingness to fight, Wang Wu decided that he didn¡¯t need to hold back anymore.
These two men would not lose to anyone as far as the depth of their pride was concerned. Especially so when it was being threatened by someone who had been growling at them for a while now.
Wang Wu spoke first. ¡°I took a real good look at the social media post you decided to send out, you cheapskate asswipe. You sure know how to polish the turds that your guild members sh*t out until they¡¯re all shiny and stuff, don¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Oh, and you¡¯re still sweating over stuff like that until now? Oh my goodness me. I feel so sorry that I don¡¯t know what to do anymore.¡±
¡°... I¡¯ll fervently pray that we run into each other during the Ranking Wars. That day will be your funeral.¡±
¡°Is there a reason to wait? What¡¯s wrong? Feeling scared right now?¡±
¡°There are people here, and...¡±
¡°You still have plenty of excuses, don¡¯t you? Piglet b*stard.¡±
Kenya¡¯s snide remark caused mes to light up within Wang Wu¡¯s eyes. The Chinese awakener had been cursed with a rather rotund physique for a very long time, and he hated being called anything pig-rted.
His patience had reached its breaking point. ¡°I¡¯ll really kill you.¡±
¡°Why don¡¯t you give it your best shot?¡±
Fwoooosh!
A powerful gust of wind whipped violently between the two men. The floor began splitting apart as their auras collided against each other.
¡°Kkyaaahk!¡±
¡°It-it¡¯s a fight!¡±
As soon as the two men emitting ominous atmospheres started shing, tourists enjoying the view from the top of the Gordon Tower all screamed in panic.
A fight between two awakeners always caused coteral damage, both big and small. Quite a few in the crowd even recognized the faces of these two men, which only made things worse.
A fight between two S-Ranks. Such a thing should be on another dimensionpared to fights involving other awakeners. One misstep and the upper floors of the Gordon Tower built with so much effort might get blown to smithereens.
¡°Come at me, fatty.¡± Kenya grinned odiously and beckoned at Wang Wu with a finger.
At that moment, Wang Wu¡¯s eyes shed coldly, and he dashed forward with a turn of speed that belied his rotund frame.
Boom!
Swooosh¡ª
The edge of Wang Wu¡¯s hand straightened like a knife. But, just as his hand was about to m into Kenya¡¯s neck¡ª
Someone grabbed his hand and stopped Wang Wu¡¯s frame from flying forward.
Kenya was in the middle of yanking his sword out from his hips, but stopped and stared at Su-hyeun appearing in the middle of everything.
¡°Why don¡¯t we call it a day here?¡± Su-hyeun asked, while his expressionless gaze was alternating between the two men. He spoke in fluent English. ¡°How were the two of you nning to deal with the aftermath?¡±
¡°Who the hell are you?¡±
Perhaps thinking that his fight had been interrupted here, Sugimoto Kenya scowled quite deeply.
On the other hand, Wang Wu recognized Su-hyeun and lowered his hand. ¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? This punk is him?¡±
He must¡¯ve at least heard of the name, since Kenya was now staring at Su-hyeun with somewhat surprised eyes.
The man famed for being the youngest S-Rank ever in South Korea, widely recognized as one of the awakener powerhouse nations on Earth.
¡°A damn hatchling dares to...?¡±
It seemed that Kenya was even more incensed by the fact that it was Su-hyeun who had interrupted his fight.
The thing was, Kenya was old enough to be Su-hyeun¡¯s father.
¡°You¡¯re old enough to know better than to start a fight in a ce like this. There are too many people here who will get sucked in, after all.¡±
¡°Are you trying to lecture me or something?¡±
¡°If that¡¯s how you feel, then yes, you¡¯re correct. If you really want to fight, go to an uninhabited mountainside first, or fight during the Ranking Wars.¡±
¡°This little punk...!¡±
aang¡ª
Despite Su-hyeun¡¯s intervention, Sugimoto Kenya still yanked out his sword. The lengthy sword draped in reddish aura flew with the momentum from the rapid unsheathing and took aim at Su-hyeun¡¯s neck.
[Indomitable Body.]
Paaah-aahk¡ª
Kenya¡¯s sword was caught by Su-hyeun¡¯s bare hand. The Japanese¡¯s eyes grew wider as he looked at what just happened.
<>
Wang Wu seemed to have calmed down somewhat, but Sugimoto Kenya must¡¯ve been the type who couldn¡¯t control his own raging emotions. He definitely had several screws loose.
¡°Mm...¡±
¡°What are you scheming now?¡± Kenya shouted out.
Cliing¡ª
The Japanese might be acting like a tough guy, but he was currently trying to retreat while swinging the sword still gripped in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand. When the human palm and the de collided once more, a bizarre metallic noise resounded out.
¡°I¡¯m beginning to think that I don¡¯t need to make a move anymore. You should thank the other guy. If not, you wouldn¡¯t have been able to participate in the Ranking Wars anymore.¡±
¡°What was that?¡±
A massive presence could suddenly be sensed, staring at them from afar. A man was walking towards them while deliberately exposing his presence. Not just Su-hyeun, but both Wang Wu and Sugimoto Kenya also shifted their gazes in that direction.
¡°Were you nning to fight in here?¡± asked the man with a pair of sunsses resting on his hair, and his hands ced deep in the pant pockets.
Even if you didn¡¯t want to, you just couldn¡¯t not recognize that face. His statue stood tall right in the center of this floor.
¡°Gordon Rohan...¡±
¡°It-it¡¯s really Gordon Rohan.¡±
His entrance caused silence to descend upon the whole area.
Kenya felt pressure so overwhelming that he could barely breathe. He didn¡¯t look like he¡¯d listen to anyone only until a second ago, but now, he was slowly and sneakily lowering his sword.
¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±
Gordon Rohan walked over to his statue, leaned against it, and beckoned at them. ¡°Go on. Carry on.¡±
He was like an adult standing before a bunch of kids. Gordon Rohan stared straight at Sugimoto Kenya as if to say, ¡°Go ahead and fight right in front of me if you dare.¡±
Kenya¡¯s pride was wounded from the American¡¯s attitude, and he began gritting his teeth and gripping his sword even harder. However, he no longer tried to rampage around unchecked. He couldn¡¯t, as a giant named Gordon Rohan was blocking his path.
<>
The way the American looked, with his hands hidden in his pockets and all, imparted this feeling of looking at a neighborhood big shoting to spectate on a fight between local hoodlums.
Contrary to his posture or expression, however, the concentration of magical energy felt from him was on another realm of existencepletely different from Sugimoto Kenya¡¯s.
<< What¡¯s his ability?>>
Something blurry and massive could be seen wavering behind Gordon Rohan like a mirage. That was the American¡¯s true ¡°nature.¡± And both Wang Wu and Kenya were not confident enough to confront it head-on.
Now that they had seen him up close, they realized the American was an unquantifiable existence covered in a shroud of mystery. Still, one thing was for certain: They couldn¡¯t even reach the toe-ends of Gordon Rohan no matter what they tried.
¡°Well, then. I¡¯ll be on my way now,¡± said Su-hyeun. He raised both his hands up slightly after Gordon Rohan made his grand appearance, and turned around towards the elevators. But then, he shifted his gaze over to the American after recalling something he had forgotten about until now. ¡°Ah, that¡¯s right. I ended up damaging the ceiling of an elevator... I hope it¡¯s not going to be a big issue. If not, I don¡¯t mind you asking for full reimbursement.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve got enough money.¡±
¡°Somehow, I knew you¡¯d say that.¡±
Su-hyeun shrugged his shoulders and climbed aboard the waiting elevator.
Gordon Rohan¡¯s unreadable eyes chased after the departing back of Su-hyeun before he opened his mouth. ¡°Hey, you two.¡±
He was addressing Wang Wu and Kenya, the duo who were about to start a big fight a few moments ago.
¡°You know who that was?¡±
Wang Wu and Kenya forgot about their fight and stared at each other.
¡°You don¡¯t know?¡±
¡°N-no, that¡¯s...Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun? That was him?¡±
Gordon also must¡¯ve heard about Su-hyeun¡¯s name somewhere because he looked slightly stunned at the moment.
<>
Gordon sensed the atmosphere of a fight threatening to break out on this floor and rushed here as soon as he could. However, someone else had arrived first ¡ª way before him no less.
That could mean one of two possibilities.
<>
Although he thought it was least likely of the two, the possibility still couldn¡¯t outright be discounted.
<<...He sensed the atmosphere faster than me.>>
If it was the former, then he didn¡¯t need to mind it. But the story would change drastically if it was thetter.
Gordon Rohan smiled as if this was proving to be rather amusing before turning around to walk away. He then abruptly recalled the reason why he rushed here in the first ce, turned his head around, and he stared at Wang Wu and Sugimoto Kenya. ¡°Ah, that¡¯s right. Don¡¯t worry about anything and do carry on with what you¡¯ve been doing. But, don¡¯t forget to share the cost of the aftermaths among yourselves, okay?¡±
With those departing words, the American also left the scene.
Almost at the same time, countless waves of people mobbed him. Wang Wu and Sugimoto Kenya watched the back of Gordon Rohan disappearing among the crowd and shook their heads.
¡°What the hell...The victor has already been decided. Is that it?¡±
Kenya spat out a groan as if the wind had been taken out of his sails and shook his head some more. He figured that he¡¯d at least be able to draw some parity with that man, but having personally witnessed Gordon Rohan, his drive had dissipated in its entirety.
¡°I wonder about that....¡±
Wang Wu, on the other hand, only half-agreed with Kenya¡¯s assertion.
In his mind, Gordon Rohan being the likeliest candidate for overall victory didn¡¯t change. But for some reason, how Su-hyeun stopped Wang Wu kept bugging him.
<>
The Chinese man rubbed his wrist held by Su-hyeun earlier. Now that the situation had calmed down, pain btedly began assaulting him from there.
<< It¡¯s broken.>>
Who would¡¯ve thought that having his wrist grabbed would lead to bones breaking like this? And then, there was the matter of that young Korean man catching Kenya¡¯s sword attack with his bare hand, too.
<>
Wang Wu rubbed his broken wrist and muttered to no one in particr.
¡°Tomorrow¡¯s going to be quite interesting.¡±
* * *
¡ªDude, where are you? I¡¯ll just look around for a bit longer and go back to our lodging. See youter, man.
Su-hyeun read the text from Hak-joon and scratched his head. Thetter wouldn¡¯t have returned to the lodging so soon, so he must¡¯ve been just a little bit angry.
<>
Su-hyeun emerged from the Gordon Tower while thinking that he should buy some souvenirs on his way back.
He didn¡¯t bother to grab a taxi this time and simply continued walking. The roads werepletely jammed, so he figured that walking would be so much faster than getting a taxi.
And so, as he walked down on the streets, he suddenly changed his direction towards a rather remote location. It was a narrow back alley where not much light entered despite it being the middle of the day.
Su-hyeun stopped walking in the middle of the alley and asked, ¡°This here is fine, right?¡±
Whoosh¡ª
A presence could be felt.
The man tailing Su-hyeun realized that he was found out and openly revealed himself.
¡°Well, the thing earlier left a sour taste in my mouth, you see.¡±
Swish¡ª
Sugimoto Kenya unsheathed his long sword in a cool manner and walked closer to Su-hyeun. ¡°Just like you said, this location is not too bad. No witnesses and no CCTV cameras, either.¡±
It seemed that he was still deeply pissed off about Su-hyuen interfering with his fight earlier. The reason why he backed off from the potential fight against Wang Wu was because of Gordon Rohan and definitely not Su-hyeun.
¡°You¡¯re correct.¡±
Su-hyeun looked back at Kenya and unsheathed his own sword.
¡°That¡¯s why I lead you here.¡±
Chapter 125
Chapter 125: Chapter 125
¡°That¡¯s why... you what?¡±
Sugimoto Kenya was expecting to see Su-hyeun¡¯s crumpled expression, so understandably, his mood took a turn for the worse. ording to what the Korean said, it wasn¡¯t him tailing the target, but being led by the nose to this ce instead.
¡°You insolent penins punk....¡±
Murderous light burned within Kenya¡¯s eyes. But then, his eyes abruptly caught the sword in Su-hyeun¡¯s hand.
<>
Su-hyeun caught Kenya¡¯s de with a bare hand. Considering that fact, the Japanese thought that his opponent¡¯s fighting style must¡¯ve been simr to a brawler.
A hand-to-hand close-quarterbat style utilizing special skills ¡ª without that exnation, stopping his de with bare hands didn¡¯t make any sort of sense at all.
¡°Are you messing with me?¡± Kenya spat out.
¡°Messing with you?¡±
¡°You better drop any ns to swing around that toy of yours ande at me with all you got. Otherwise, your wrists will go flying in the blink of an eye.¡±
Sugimoto Kenya¡¯s pride was higher than anyone¡¯s.
Only bypletely defeating the fullymitted Su-hyeun would his wounded pride be restored. So, he didn¡¯t want to see his opponent¡¯sbat strength fall because the fool decided to waste time with an unfamiliar weapon.
Unfortunately for him, his words came across as nonsensical gibberish from Su-hyeun¡¯s perspective.
¡°A toy? What are you even...?¡± He then btedly realized what Kenya meant and stopped his sentence midway. His head faltered while he tried desperately to rein in hisughter. ¡°Keuk. Hmph....¡±
¡°...Why are youughing?¡±
¡°Actually. I was kinda feeling sorry for making you think that I was messing with you.¡±
It seemed that Kenya viewed his opponent not going all out as a sign of disrespect. If true, then Su-hyeun could only apologize here because the stuff that happened earlier really was him ¡°messing around.¡±
¡°What rubbish are you...?¡±
¡°I¡¯m not a brawler but a swordsman. Actually, I can use several other weapons beside swords like spears and such, but the truth is, I rarely use my bare hands.¡± While saying that, Su-hyeun raised his left hand, the one that didn¡¯t hold the sword. ¡°As for messing with you, well, it¡¯s not this guy, but this guy over here.¡±
The act of him using his bare hands was him messing around.
Of course, Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t thinking of messing around when using his hands to confront Wang Wu and Sugimoto Kenya. No, it¡¯s just Kenya perceiving it that way.
Not a brawler, but a swordsman. Kenya¡¯s eyes trembled upon hearing that. The inside of his head became messy, as well.
<>
Enemies that confused their opponents through sophistry always existed.
<>
Having organized his thoughts in his own way, Kenya grewparatively calmer than before.
<>
For the time being, he should pretend to be falling for the trick.
Sugimoto Kenya¡¯s re was locked on Su-hyeun¡¯s neck. Making a ruckus had to be avoided, so he was nning to slice the fool¡¯s head off in one smooth stroke.
Cut his target down in one swing.
<>
The selected location couldn¡¯t be more perfect.
Fwoooosh¡ª
Kenya¡¯s figure shed behind Su-hyeun in the blink of an eye. And while looking at thetter¡¯s back remaining still, the former grew sure of his victory.
<>
THUD!
In an instant, his view became pitch-ck.
The inside of Kenya¡¯s brain was in a spinning mess. He nearly fainted from the impact forceing from his head.
<>
What just happened?
He tried to raise his head but couldn¡¯t as something was pressing down on him.
¡°Now that surprised me.¡±
That voice, it...belonged to Su-hyeun.
¡°Was that the body flicker technique? I had no idea that you possessed a space movement-rted skill, even if it¡¯s only for a short distance. No wonder you were so full of confidence.¡±
Kenya was shocked by Su-hyeun¡¯s voiceing from above his head. The skill he kept as a hidden ace up his sleeve was now exposed by his opponent. Not just its effect, but even its name, too.
<>
No, the issue was not with how that man knew. It actually had to do with how he countered the body flicker technique in the first ce. Kenya always believed that his skill could not be dodged or defended against.
BOOM!
Kenya¡¯s head mmed into the ground, apanied by the pain harsh enough for him to nearly pass out. Su-hyeun had mercilessly smashed the Japanese¡¯s head straight into the ground.
¡°Kkeuk!! Kkeuhhh...¡±
Kenya¡¯s head, driven hard into the ground, sunk deeper and deeper. Despite gasping out a pained moan, he struggled hard in order to escape from Su-hyeun¡¯s grip.
<>
Unfortunately for him, it was all for naught. His head didn¡¯t budge no matter how hard he tried to raise it. From the very start, the difference in their physical strengths was far too great.
<>
Somehow Kenya had managed to hold on to his sword until then, and he began gripping it even tighter.
¡°Just now, you were aiming for my neck from the looks of things...¡±
The moment Sugimoto Kenya heard Su-hyeun¡¯s voice, he swung the sword in that direction as hard as he could. Since he was t on his face on the ground, there wasn¡¯t much power behind the swing itself, but rather unexpectedly, the attack was still quite threatening in its own way.
That must¡¯ve been the reason why Su-hyeun didn¡¯t seem to react properly in time. Kenya thought that he finally managed to cut the Korean¡¯s head off.
But then...
<>
No cutting sensation was transmitted to his hand.
¡°What are you doing?¡±
Su-hyeun yanked Kenya¡¯s head from the dirt and raised it up. Only then did the Japanese get to confirm the condition of his sword.
¡°M-my Dragon Rending Sword?¡±
This was the favored weapon of none other than Sugimoto Kenya himself. Not only its cutting edge, but even its durability was the best among the finest katanas avable.
It was the weapon that he never stopped using ever since bing an A-Rank, right up until now. But such a brilliant sword, the Dragon Rending Sword, had been broken in half.
<>
Their fightsted for only one breath.
Sure, Kenya did rush in too rashly. But still, to think that Su-hyeun not only had enough time to break the Dragon Rending Sword, but also to grab the Japanese man¡¯s head and suppress him, too.
The hardest part to ept for him was that the Dragon Rending Sword had been broken in half so easily.
¡°As for messing with you, well, it¡¯s not this guy, but this guy over here.¡±
Su-hyeun said those words while waving around the hand that blocked the Dragon Rending Sword. Sugimoto Kenya believed that he was being tricked, but that was wrong.
<>
Su-hyeun looked at the broken Dragon Rending Sword and spoke. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you look after your weapon better? I know a highly-skilled cksmith, so should I introduce you to him?¡±
Kenya¡¯s eyes shook powerfully at Su-hyeun¡¯s mocking tone of voice.
Only a moron would fail to notice the flow of the current situation. As long as Su-hyeun wanted to, Sugimoto Kenya¡¯s head would go flying away.
¡°It-it¡¯s my loss,¡± said Kenya.
¡°I know that already.¡±
¡°I-I apologize. As you can see, my personality is a bit...¡±
¡°You were busy swinging a sword around, trying to cut my head off in one hit, but after eating some dirt, you¡¯re now groveling like a dog, is it?¡± Su-hyeun murmured before shaking his head. ¡°Nope. Rejected.¡±
¡°W-what was that?¡±
He then held the sword in reverse and promptly stabbed Kenya squarely in the Japanese¡¯s unprotected throat.
¡°If you were nning to kill someone, then you should¡¯ve been at least prepared to die yourself.¡±
¡°Kkeok, kkeook...¡±
¡°No witnesses, no CCTV cameras.¡±
Su-hyeun dropped Kenya¡¯s head and stood up from his spot.
¡°Perfect, isn¡¯t it?¡±
Act 8
Hak-joon arrived first at the lodging. The first thing he did was to turn on the TV andy down on the couch.
Lee Ju-ho returned not too long after that, his meeting with the Reaper Guild havinge to an end. He bought some takeout on his way back and started cing them on the dining table.
¡°Where is Su-hyeun?¡± he asked.
¡°I think he¡¯s gone out to take care of something.¡±
¡°You think? If he¡¯s gone somewhere, then he¡¯s gone somewhere, so what¡¯s up with ¡®I think?¡¯¡±
¡°I dunno. He just rushed somewhere without saying anything, you see?¡± Hak-joon got up from the couch and walked over to the dining table. He then picked up a cookie and began munching on it before abruptly turning his head. ¡°Ah, there he is.¡±
¡°Where?¡±
Lee Ju-ho followed after the younger man¡¯s gaze. A short whileter, the front door clunked, and Su-hyeun walked in.
Hak-joon greeted Su-hyeun. ¡°Wee back.¡±
Thetter replied. ¡°You came back sooner than I thought.¡±
¡°Well, it was kinda weird going around alone, and since I didn¡¯t know where I should meet up with you, I thought might as well juste back to the lodging and wait here. Thankfully, this ce is near the airport so finding it wasn¡¯t too hard.¡±
The way he spoke while munching on the snacks, he didn¡¯t seem ticked off at all. Su-hyeun had been feeling a bit apologetic until then, so he now could breathe a sigh of relief and walk over to the dining table.
Meanwhile, Lee Ju-ho was busy alternating his gaze between Su-hyeun and Hak-joon before grandly shaking his head.
<>
Just how and when did Hak-joon notice Su-hyeun¡¯s approach?
Lee Ju-ho knew there was a substantial difference between the ranks A and S, but after confirming that someone he thought of as his peer, Hak-joon, had stepped onto a realm above his, he couldn¡¯t help but feel strange.
Su-hyeun had skipped out on his meal earlier, so he quickly began filling his empty stomach with the burger and other food Lee Ju-ho bought.
It was then that Lee Ju-ho looked at the state of Su-hyeun¡¯s clothes and asked a question. ¡°By the way, what¡¯s wrong with your shirt?¡±
¡°My shirt? ...Ah.¡± Su-hyeun discovered that his T-shirt was sliced open around his chest area, and quickly made his reply. ¡°It¡¯s nothing much.¡±
It seemed that Sugimoto Kenya¡¯s sword managed to ever so slightly slice the tips of his clothing. His skin wasn¡¯t harmed in the slightest, and the Japanese¡¯s sword strike came in really sharply, so Su-hyeun had failed to notice it until now.
¡°Did you fight someone?¡±
¡°No way,¡± Su-hyeun smirked and replied while shoving the rest of the burger in his mouth. ¡°Wasn¡¯t even a fight.¡±
¡°Hmm...¡±
Lee Ju-ho didn¡¯t pry any further, realizing that Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t keen on talking about it.
As their mealtime drew to a close, Su-hyeun asked a question. ¡°Did you meet with the Reaper Guild?¡±
¡°Yeah. Their vice guild master came.¡±
¡°What about Park Ji-yeon?¡±
¡°Doesn¡¯t look like she¡¯s interested in participating. Apparently, she hasn¡¯t evene back from the Tower yet.¡±
¡°Well, I guess that makes sense.¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t really remember who participated in the Ranking Wars during his previous lifetime. But he was sure about Park Ji-yeon not caring much about thepetition. From the start, she didn¡¯t seem confident enough about achieving a good result in the Ranking Wars.
¡°So the preliminaries start from tomorrow, right?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. I checked, and it¡¯ll start at two in the afternoon.¡±
Hak-joon, who was watching TV, suddenly got interested and approached the other two as the topics rted to the Ranking Wars were discussed. ¡°I heard that the preliminaries will be mission-based. Has any information been released to the public on what kind of mission it will be?¡±
¡°No, nothing in particr.¡±
¡°What about the mainpetition?¡±
¡°I heard that it¡¯ll be a fight to the end, but not sure how the winner will be decided. Gordon Rohan simply said that he¡¯d seek out a fair method that will satisfy everyone involved.¡±
¡°Meaning we don¡¯t know anything.¡±
¡°Still, there should be plenty of things to look forward to. It seems that quite a few devices for the spectator safety have been installed, as well. Of course...¡± Lee Ju-ho alternated his gaze between Su-hyeun and Hak-joon before continuing on. ¡°...there is no safety for the participants.¡±
One of thepetition rules stated that murder was against regtions. However, that was merely one of the pretexts required to hold apetition of this nature. Safety precautions to enforce that rule didn¡¯t even exist.
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s concern was this one thing. ¡°Su-hyeun, I¡¯m sure you will be fine, but... Hak-joon? You gotta be very careful, okay? It¡¯s quite likely that you¡¯re the weakest participant currently in thepetition.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I know. My goal is to somehow pass the preliminaries, after all.¡±
¡°With your personality, you¡¯ll really do that?¡±
¡°What about you, Su-hyeun? It¡¯s obviously the overall victory, right?¡±
Hak-joon didn¡¯t seem too keen on being subjected to Lee Ju-ho¡¯s nagging, so he quickly changed the subject and asked Su-hyeun.
Thetter was almost done with his meal by then. He nodded his head while wiping his mouth. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t have participated if that wasn¡¯t the case.¡±
¡°That makes sense with you. In that case, let me see...I guess the biggest hurdle will be Gordon Rohan, then.¡±
¡°I wonder about that.¡±
Su-hyeun recalled Gordon Rohan¡¯s face, the one he ran into on the Gordon Tower¡¯s 200th floor. There was little doubt that that the American was an exceptional man, a fact not just him but the entire world acknowledged to be true.
However...
¡°It can very well be someone else.¡±
In the previous life, he wasn¡¯t really interested in the Ranking Wars nor did he invest much in the meaning of one¡¯s rankings, but despite all that, he still clearly remembered this one thing.
<>
Without a doubt, awakenersparable to Gordon Rohan definitely existed out there. However, what made the whole world mor noisily back then had little to do with the American failing to win thepetition.
The Ranking Wars.
This massive event initiated by Gordon Rohan became the trigger, the turning point, that dragged several hidden recluses currently slumbering away out into the open.
Chapter 126
Chapter 126: Chapter 126
Boom, boom¡ª!
Fireworks exploded. Noises of people were heard from everywhere. Su-hyeun and Hak-joon shook their heads as they watched the crowds flock to the streets of San Francisco.
¡°It is like the 2002 World Cup,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Were you on the street at that time?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°I was young, so I only remember vaguely. But I remember there were a lot of people instead of ser games.¡±
¡°Was it like this?¡±
¡°Well...maybe that time was less crowded than this....¡±
There was no ce to put their feet on the street of San Francisco. They headed back to Gordon Tower. Lee Ju-ho was already waiting in front of Gordon Tower.
¡°Over here! Here!¡±
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s voice came through the crowd. Since there were too many people, it was difficult to find each other even after contact.
¡°There are too many people! I thought I was choking to death,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°Sorry that you suffered,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Meh. It¡¯s alright. I didn¡¯te here to just watch the game, you know. I came here to look after you guys.¡±
They turned around and entered Gordon Tower. The tallest building in the world, Gordon Tower, had been out of service for several days. The inside of the tower was so quiet. It made them felt like the crowd outside was a lie.
¡°The stadium is underground,¡± Lee Ju-ho said. ¡°And we have about an hour before the game starts. I¡¯ve finished the process, so you guys just can give your name and wait in there.¡±
¡°Thank you,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Don¡¯t say that. I volunteered to do it. It was not like you guys asked me or something. Since I have such talented friends, this is the only thing I can do.¡±
The elevator began to descend underground. The elevator continued to descend beyond the tenth and twentieth floors.
¡°Hak-joon. Please, keep your temper and don¡¯t get injured. And Su-hyeun.¡± Lee Ju-ho touched Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder and said as the elevator stopped. ¡°You are going to win, right?¡±
¡°Of course.¡±
Ding¡ª
The elevator stopped. The disy did not show what floor they were on. Soon, the elevator door opened. A harsh light came through.
¡°Wow...¡± Hak-joon eximed inadvertently at the sight in front of him.
Su-hyeun was also surprised, which was rare for him. The scene revealed in front of them was unbelievable.
¡°It is so...huge,¡± Su-hyeun murmured.
¡°I was amazed, too, when I came down before. I am still amazed.¡±
It was a dome-shaped stadium. The ceiling was hundreds of meters high. It would have seated not only hundreds of thousands of but millions of people. It was bigger than the World Cup Stadium.
<>
Su-hyeun and Hak-joon thought the same thing. What Lee Ju-ho said was the answer to their question.
¡°The entire area of San Francisco is about 147,037 acres. This underground is about 0.5 percent of that, so 735 acres.¡±
¡°735 acres?¡± Hak-joon asked back as if he could not grasp that high number.
Lee Ju-ho replied, shrugging as if he knew Hak-joon would ask, ¡°You don¡¯t get it, do you? Think of it as 4 times bigger than Yeouido Hangang Park.¡±
¡°Four times?¡±
¡°Yeouido Hangang Park is about 187 acres. So, it is a little bigger than that. I didn¡¯t know either. I didn¡¯t expect people could make such a big area so deep underground.¡±
Su-hyeun could not help but feel surprised about the fact that this huge stadium was bigger than Yeouido Hangang Park.
¡°Gordon Rohan must have spent some money,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°About 10% of the Ether stones from the United States go to Gordon Rohan,¡± Lee Ju-ho said. ¡± He is involved in all fields, such as the processing and auctioning of Ether stones, and he also attacks the dungeons.¡±
¡°He was an oil giant before. Now he is an Ether stone giant....¡± Hak-joon muttered.
¡°That is why he is called the world¡¯s richest man. This huge space is a work made of Ether stones,¡± Lee Ju-ho said, smashing the wall with all his power.
Thump¡ª
They could feel a small vibration through the wall. It looked like there was some sort of device that could absorb the shock.
¡°To make this huge space at this depth, shock dispersion technology using Ether stones is essential. I think this ce was made with a lot of time and effort.¡±
¡°Interesting.¡± Hak-joon looked pretty excited about the fact that the stage was huge.
There were many cameras as well. It was broadcasting live all over the world. Even right at that moment, one camera was facing Su-hyeun and Hak-joon.
¡°If you are done to be surprised, hurry up. You guys are thest ones probably.¡±
Lee Ju-ho guided them to under the stadium. Su-hyeun and Hak-joon looked around the people sitting in the stands. Among them, there were people who recognized Su-hyeun¡¯s face and whispered his name.
<>
There were spectators looking down the stadium through some safe walls. They were millionaires in this era. They brought A-Rank awakens with them. They were people who had spent a lot of money to watch the Ranking Wars up close.
<>
He could sense how much money they had spent. At that time, one familiar face was seen.
<>
When Su-hyeun found Song Hyeong-gi, he also found Su-hyeun and waved his hand. He said something to the old man next to him and then he came out of the stands made of a transparent ss wall.
¡°Hey! It¡¯s good to see you!¡±
¡°...Wow. His voice is loud.¡± Su-hyeun sighed and approached Song Hyeong-gi.
¡°I knew you wereing. I don¡¯t know anybody here. I was so bored.¡±
¡°We don¡¯t have much time. Let¡¯s talk on the way.¡±
¡°Sure, sure.¡± Song Hyeong-gi put his arm around Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder and kept smiling as if he was so happy to see him.
After Song Hyeong-gi joined them, Lee Ju-ho waved his hand and left for the stands. ¡°I¡¯m leaving. Be careful not to get hurt. Do well.¡±
¡°Oh, yes. Thank you.¡±
Su-hyeun and Hak-joon said good-bye. Lee Ju-ho bowed to Song Hyeong-gi and headed to the stands.
As they walked to the stadium, Su-hyeun asked, ¡°So, who was he? Next to you, at the stands.¡±
¡°Oh. My father.¡±
¡°Your father?¡±
¡°F-father...?¡± Hak-joon who was listening to them widened his eyes. ¡°You mean, the CEO of Song-il Group?¡±
Song-il Group was a well-knownpany not only in Korea, but also around the world. Song Hyeong-gi was the youngest son of the that family.
¡°Yeah. He came all the way to see the game. He usually has lead in his pants. It¡¯s a rare thing.¡±
¡°Did hee to see you?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°...No. He probably didn¡¯te here to see me. He didn¡¯t say anything to encourage me.¡± Song Hyung-gi made an awkward expression as if his rtionship with father was not that great. ¡°But what can I do? Since he came here, I had to say hello. It was so awkward! It was great timing that you guys came. I came out as an excuse.¡±
¡°Was that why you looked so happy?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Of course. Why else would I be d to see you guys?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you want to see Miru?¡±
¡°Miru is an exception.¡±
Song Hyung-gi came down to the stadium with Su-hyeun and Hak-joon. But he still nced at the stands area. It seemed like he was concerned. Soon, a number of S-Rank awakeners gathered under the stadium. The huge stadium seemed pretty full when hundreds of awakeners gathered together.
<>
Even though it was an event held by Gordon Rohan, there were many people who would not participate. Considering that there would be one or two S-Rank awakeners per country, possibly three or four at most, about half of them had not participated in thispetition.
<>
Seeing S-Rank awakeners was not an easy thing. They were usually too busy, so most of them did not know each other. They were all awkward. The only group that had more than three people consisted of Su-hyeun, Hak-joon, and Song Hyung-gi.
¡°How long do we have to wait?¡± Song Hyung-gi sat down on the floor andined as if he didn¡¯t have too much patience.
It was about the time to start.
¡°It will start soon,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°When?¡±
Su-hyeun looked up the stadium and said, ¡°Probably...now.¡±
A whistle came from the ceiling above the stadium. The awakeners looked up. There was a familiar face looking down at them.
¡°Gordon Rohan.¡±
¡°Why did the hostest?¡±
¡°Who¡¯s next to him?¡±
Next to Gordon Rohan, there was another person who was covered in a robe. At the appearance of Gordon Rohan, the quiet stadium became disturbed.
Gordon Rohan opened his mouth to speak when everybody focused on him. ¡°Thank you foring, everybody. And also, I thank the viewers from all over the world for your interest in this event.¡±
Gordon Rohan¡¯s voice echoed clearly in the middle of the huge stadium. His words were immediately tranted into many othernguages, written in subtitles, and spread to the world. It seemed like Gordon Rohan had been preparing for this day from years ago.
¡°I don¡¯t like to say things long. All of you don¡¯t like boring speeches, right? I will just introduce the judge of this Ranking War.¡± Gordon Rohan pointed to the man who wore the robe next to him. ¡°I am sure you guys all know him. He is the one who invented the S-Rank awakener examination system. Johnny Brad!¡±
The awakeners buzzed at the unexpected name.
¡°Johnny Brad?¡±
¡°Really? He came here?¡±
His name was more known among the awakeners than the general public. The S-Rank awakener examination test was in use in all countries around the world. Johnny Brad was the awakener who had invented that system. He was the best awakener in hallucination skills.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
Two of the world¡¯s leading awakeners stood side by side. This was a pretty remarkable scene to announce the beginning of the Ranking Wars.
<>
Su-hyeun assumed Johnny Brad did note just for judging.
<>
His abilities were not simply divided into strengths and weaknesses. What made him special was his versatility. He was the awakener who had the most skills in the world.
¡°Now...¡±
Rumble¡ª
Along with Gordon Rohan¡¯s words, a huge glow came out from under the stadium.
Whoosh¡ª
¡°Let¡¯s start the Ranking Wars!¡±
Chapter 127
Chapter 127: Chapter 127
Rumble¡ª
The ground of the stadium started to warp. The ground rose and the sky turned upside down. Some awakeners were panicked and prepared to fight. Hak-joon also seemed a little embarrassed as well.
¡°Don¡¯t be nervous.¡± Su-hyeun shook his head and grabbed Hak-joon¡¯s arm. ¡°Nothing is going to happen.¡±
¡°...Yes?¡±
Hak-joon looked around. Most of the awakeners were still calm in this mess. Hak-joon felt shame. He slowly took his hand off from the sword and looked at the changingndscape. They waited a little more. Soon, the world changed to white just like the Tower of Trials.
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Su-hyeun lifted his head up. A small purple magic circle was drawn on the hand of Johnny Brad who was floating in the sky with Gordan Rohan. All of this was his work.
¡°Ok. Everything is ready.¡±
Puff¡ª
Johnny Brad disappeared like morning dew. At that moment, Gordon Rohan jumped down. Hended in the center of over a hundred awakeners.
¡°What do you think? I prepared a little bit for this,¡± Gordon Rohan said.
It was more than a little bit. The entire stadium was surrounded by lower-grade Ether stones. He needed a medium-grade stone to create and maintain hallucination skills at this scale.
¡°Somebody spent crazy money on this.¡±
¡°That¡¯s one of my strengths.¡± Gordon Rohan smiled at the grumbling of one awakener and continued. ¡°As you guys know, I am the host of thispetition but also a participant. So, I tried to set fair rules.¡±
¡°How can you be fair? The mission is private, and the rules of the final are also closed.¡±
One Asian awakener spoke with a disgruntled voice. He seemed to think that it was unfair for Gordon Rohan, the host of the game, to participate.
¡°The missions are not my decision. They are not Johnny Brad¡¯s decision, either.¡±
¡°Then?¡±
¡°They will be random. Setting teams is the same.¡±
¡°Teams...?¡±
¡°Are thepetitions team games?¡±
People started to wonder.
Gordon Rohan answered. ¡°There are a total of 175 participants, so we will solve the missions in teams of five.¡±
¡°How will the missions go?¡±
¡°As I said, the mission you will get is random. And the teams will be decided randomly. too.¡±
¡°How the hell do you set the missions and teams randomly¡ª¡±
Ding¡ª
Ding, ding¡ª
Numbers from one to thirty-five appeared above the heads of everybody. There were five people with the same number.
¡°People with the same number are the same team. I am sorry, but my number is 35. If I started from the beginning, the match would have an issue. So, please understand this.¡±
¡°You are doing just as you please.¡±
¡°Anyone who has a problem with me, juste out now and bring it on. I will just make you fail to qualify,¡± Gordon Rohan said, bobbing his hand.
There was no awakener who had enough nerve toe at Gordon Rohan. Some awakeners who couldn¡¯t understand English also realized Gordon Rohan was trying to provoke them. But they didn¡¯t pounce, either. Everyone knew that there was nothing good about fighting Gordon Rohan right here.
¡°If there is nobody, that is fine. Then, let¡¯s begin.¡±
Poof¡ª
Poof, poof¡ª
Five awakeners who had been standing throughout the stadium disappeared from their spots. They were the people who had number one above their heads. Su-hyeun looked at the numbers of Hak-joon and Song Hyeon-gi.
¡°Number 17 and 33...¡±
¡°You are the fastest one among us, Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Yes. You are right.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s number was three. Su-hyeun found other people who had the same number. Su-hyeun knew the faces of two out of the four.
<>
He usually knew the names of other awakeners. But it was rare to know their faces as well. He could remember their faces by chance. It was not like he knew them well.
¡°I think you guys will be bored waiting. So, let¡¯s just watch what is happening.¡±
Snap¡ª
When Gordon Rohan snapped his fingers, four huge screens appeared around them. On the screen, the image of the awakeners who just started the Ranking Wars appeared. They were summoned somewhere in the dark.
¡°Are they in Johnny Brad¡¯s hallucinations?¡±
It seemed to be a space created from the hallucination skill, just like the S-Rank examination. Perhaps, they were given a mission in that space.
<>
Su-hyeun could grasp how thepetition would work. The problem was the detailed rules.
<>
Su-hyeun took his eyes off the screen and looked around. He could sense the gaze of Johnny Brad, who was watching the yers from somewhere.
<>
It had been a long time since Su-hyeun admired someone like this. Johnny Brad¡¯s greatness was different from simple strength. His versatility even made Su-hyeun surprised. It looked like he could make everything that he could imagine.
<>
Su-hyeun, who had looked around for other four people with the same number, soon watched the screens¡¯ back.
<>
On the screen, numerous monsters appeared.
Act 9
The second-round test was over. It took 30 minutes for each test. The test had been continued for about an hour without break time. To finish all 35 teams, it would take almost a day.
¡°Good luck.¡±
¡°Good luck.¡±
The test of team number two ended quickly. Su-hyeun nodded lightly at the support of Hak-goon and Song Hyeong-gi. All five people who were given the number three rose up. Soon, their bodies disappeared.
Poof¡ª
Suddenly, Hak-joon and Song Hyeong-gi disappeared from Su-hyeun¡¯s view. Thendscape also changed. The shining white turned to a dark area. Gray walls that were difficult to measure the height surrounded him.
¡°It is a very simple background.¡±
¡°It looks like some sort of maze.¡±
All five seasoned awakeners, who were summoned to the test site, checked the theme of the test as soon as they arrived. The test¡¯s theme, background, and purpose all looked different based on the first and second tests; they could not get a hint or check the contents of the test before starting it.
Su-hyeun put his hand on the wall. He let his magic flow through the wall. He could feel the structure of the maze. Soon, a voice came from the sky.
[The third round of testing will begin.]
[You must escape the maze as a team.]
[If the wall of the maze is broken, the wall will be reconstructed in a different shape, and the location of the exit will be changed.]
[There are traps and monsters in the maze.]
[When the team escapes, your achievement points would be calcted. The two people who have the most points will be able to advance to the next game.]
[If the mission fails, all five participants will be eliminated.]
[If youmit murder, you will also be eliminated.]
It was the same dry voice as the one from the Tower of Trials. Su-hyeun was surprised that they even reproduced things this much. It was very interesting. Also, it looked like the mission would not be easy.
<>
He had topete and work as a team at the same time. This part was quite different from the trials from the Tower of Trials. They usually happened individually.
[00:29:48.]
The remaining time appeared at the ceiling. There was not much time. Fortunately, as it was nned to reduce the time to introduce each other, the number above their heads were changed to their names.
¡°Then let¡¯s begin. We will find something eventually.¡±
¡°How about dividing the team?¡±
¡°I have a detection skill. Let¡¯s find out the way with it first.¡±
Each one had a different opinion. Su-hyeun looked around them and turned his body.
¡°Where are you going?¡±
¡°Follow me,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°How do we trust you¡ª¡±
¡°I found the exit. All we need to do now is go.¡±
¡°What...?¡±
The other four became nk.
<>
¡°The structure of the wall was designed to flow the magic easily. I think it is because part of the hallucinations was made of Ether stones.¡±
¡°Are you saying that you¡¯ve grasped the surrounding structures by sending your magic through the walls?¡±
They were also S-Rank awakeners. They understood pretty quickly.
¡°Yes. You know well.¡±
¡°But how can it be that easy?¡±
¡°Well. I guess the exit was close.¡±
Perhaps the maze itself was not that difficult. But the difficulty of the traps and monsters in the middle was set to be difficult. Like Su-hyeun, they all flowed their magic to the wall to find the exit. But soon, they frowned and stared at Su-hyeun.
¡°Hey, look. It¡¯s not the structure like you said.¡±
¡°How do you say such obvious lie...¡±
They assumed the maze would be small because of Su-hyeun¡¯s words. But the maze was too huge to figure out by just letting the magic out. In order to grasp the maze at a nce, it was necessary to spread a lot of magic over all ranges. Also, they had to remember all the results from that.
However, the size of the maze was so huge. It was impossible to send magic through the entire wall. But Su-hyeun was so confident. The other awakeners naturally thought that Su-hyeun was lying.
¡°Think as you pleased.¡± Su-hyeun ignored the opinions of the four people and began to move. ¡°I will go as I found out.¡±
¡°W-what the...¡±
¡°Wait!¡±
When one of them tried to vent his anger, the only female awakener, Mirald, said, ¡°Let¡¯s just follow him for now. We don¡¯t know the way anyway, right?¡±
¡°Umm...That is true.¡±
¡°We can find the way while we go.¡±
They didn¡¯t like the fact that they had to follow Su-hyeun. But they had to hurry to find the exit anyway.
<>
Four of them thought the same thing. Su-hyeun shook his head, listening to the footsteps of the other four following.
<>
Su-hyeun got to know why Johnny Brad made such a mission. Five people teamed up, but only two people were able to go to the next stage. It was not a team activity. It was apetition to check and move forward a little bit more than each other. Moreover...
<>
With this simple rule, everyone would have realized.
<>
In other words, there was no foul.
Chapter 128
Chapter 128: Chapter 128
Stomp, stomp¡ª
It had been about 5 minutes since people started following Su-hyeun. Nothing appeared so far. It was a situation where nobody knew where and what things would appear all a sudden. If they moved without caution and got caught in a trap, it could cause trouble.
¡°Wait a minute! There is something!¡± Mirald, who was following Su-hyeun, found out something strange and shouted at him.
At that moment, a bright white light shed in front of Su-hyeun.
sh¡ª!
Rip¡ª!
A giant earthworm that soared from the ground was cut in half, and blood sshed everywhere. Su-hyeun cut the body of the monster as soon as he drew the sword out.
He spoke casually, shaking the blood from the sword. ¡°Let¡¯s keep moving.¡±
¡°...Okay.¡±
Simr things happened after that. Other people tried to warn Su-hyeun about traps or monsters to get more achievement points, but it was useless. Su-hyeun¡¯s reaction was always faster than the other four.
<>
<>
They tried to grasp the situation. More monsters and traps appeared, but Su-hyeun, who was leading the way, easily removed all of them. It was obvious that he would advance to the finals. Now, there was only one seat left.
<>
Amon thought that came to everyone¡¯s mind. At that time, a familiar voice was heard in the heads of the three people.
¡ªHey. I would like to suggest something. If you agree with that, please nod your head after listening.
Three people were startled and looked at Mirald.
¡ªDon¡¯t look at me. He will notice.
Stomp, stomp¡ª
Their gait, which had been disturbed for a moment, went back to normal. Su-hyeun, who was walking ahead, nced at the back once and started moving again. Mirald felt relieved and continued her talking.
¡ª...So, what do you think?
The three people worried for a moment but nodded one by one. It was not a bad offer. Anyway, nothing was foul in this test, except murder.
***
Crack, crack¡ª
The ground turned upside down and a giant earthworm soared. It was an earthworm with manyrge and small mouths all over its body. It was over ten meters and gushed out severe poisonous fluid from its body.
¡°Watch out! It¡¯s a meat-eating earthworm!¡± Mirald shouted the name of the monster as if she had seen it before. ¡°The clear fluid on its body is extremely poisonous. The teeth are hard enough to chew even steel.¡±
¡°How should we attack it?¡± one awakener asked.
¡°It is weak to fire. The skin is not tough, either....¡±
Whiz¡ª
While Mirald was talking, Su-hyeun stormed out and went inside of the mouth of the meat-eating earthworm. Everybody was surprised at what just happened. That time, the body of the meat-eating earthworm began to shiver.
Rip¡ª!
Drip, drip¡ª!
Kiyaaaak¡ª!
Its body was cut from the inside and burnt down. The meat-eating earthworm screamed. Screaming didn¡¯t go on for long. Soon, its body was cut in half. The dead worm fell on the ground. The other four, who had escaped to the top of the trees, were speechless. They never thought Su-hyeun would go inside of the giant worm and attack it from there.
¡°A-are you okay?¡± Mirald approached Su-hyeun and asked.
Even though everything was a hallucination, if Su-hyeun was poisoned by the meat-eating earthworm, he might be eliminated from the test.
¡°Yes. I am fine.¡±
¡°How could you possibly be okay from the poison of the meat-eating earthworm?¡±
¡°I guess a hallucination is just a hallucination. That great Johnny Brad could not incarnate the poison of the monster I assume,¡± one awakener behind of Mirald said, snorting. Then, he muttered that the contest was very crude. He bobbed his head to Su-hyeun and continued to say, ¡°If you are done, let¡¯s move again. Obviously, you will pass the test as soon as you find the exit.¡±
His tone was very sarcastic as if he was asking Su-hyeun if he was satisfied to get all achievement points by himself. Other parties¡¯ faces were not much different from him. Su-hyeun looked around their faces and nodded his head. The party started moving again. Su-hyeun touched the wall.
<>
He nced back. Other people were touching the wall like him. At this distance, they would have also located the exit. The level of traps and monsters was not so high. The level might be difficult for only one S-Rank awakener, but it was almost too easy for five of them. As Su-hyeun had guessed from the beginning, the goal of this test was not to escape the maze.
<>
As his thoughts got deeper, he stopped his steps and said, ¡°It¡¯s a trap.¡±
Hiss, hiss¡ª
Numerous snakes crawled down the walls of the maze. It was the same on the ground. From red to purple, tens of thousands of slender snakes appeared.
Su-hyeun looked down at his feet and asked, ¡°What does this mean?¡±
The ck teeth that sore up from the ground bit Su-hyeun¡¯s ankle. The teeth were hard and sharp enough to dig into his ankle. It bit tighter as if it was not going to miss his foot. Su-hyeun stared at the man behind who summoned these ck teeth.
¡°Well. If you are done guiding, you can leave the stage,¡± the man grinned and said.
Su-hyeun could not remember his name. He had seen it when they were summoned here for the first time. But it was not that important of a name, so he didn¡¯t care to remember.
¡°Guiding...¡± Su-hyeun murmured.
He looked around all four of them. They were also S-Rank awakeners, who were famous in their countries. They did not look to be that great, but that was only for Su-hyeun¡¯s position. They all went through all sorts of hardships on their owns.
¡°Are you saying one less person will make things easier for you to pass the test?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Don¡¯t be too resentful. We are not going to kill you or anything. We just ask you to be eliminated in the preliminary round. So, just yield to us.¡±
Yield. It was a good word. Yielding was virtuous and good. Su-hyeun looked at the camera, which would be watching them from somewhere. And only then, he noticed the skill of Mirald who was following from the most distance.
¡°Another hallucination that covers the hallucinations... I guess there was a talented person in this ce.¡±
¡°You noticed that well,¡± Mirald said.
At this moment, the cameras that showing the five of them would send apletely different scene because of the hallucinations created by Mirald. It was notparable to Johnny Brad¡¯s hallucination skill, which epassed the entire huge stadium, but her hallucinations were also quite brilliant. It was limited to a narrow space, but it was not easy to create another hallucination that covered Johnny Brad¡¯s hallucinations.
¡°It does not look good, you know. Four against one,¡± said Mirald.
¡°So, you do know it is a shameful work.¡±
¡°Whatever. Soon, the camera will take a shot of your elimination by the snake in this area.¡± She continued to speak in a softer voice. ¡°I am truly sorry. But you have to understand. We can¡¯t help it. The world is like this.¡±
¡°Yeah. So, why were you so greedy? If you worked together with us in the first ce...¡±
The four people surrounded Su-hyeun and spoke as if they were sorry and as if it was all Su-hyeun¡¯s fault. Su-hyeun distorted his face.
He said, ¡°It is funny that you guys can use the word ¡®understand¡¯ and ¡®yield¡¯ in this situation.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t be displeased so much¡ª¡±
¡°There are two things you guys wrong about,¡± Su-hyeun said.
Swish¡ª
Crunch¡ª
Su-hyeun lifted his feet and hit the ck teeth that were chewing on his ankles on the ground. The teeth shattered and scattered on the floor. The man who summoned the teeth frowned. That wasn¡¯t a skill that could be easily broken like that.
¡°First, you guys see the traps and monsters in this space as just simple hallucinations. Especially,¡± Su-hyeun looked at Mirald and said, ¡°you. You use hallucination skills. How could you not prate it? It is hrious.¡±
¡°I know more than you do.¡±
¡°Well. That¡¯s just your thinking.¡±
¡°Why are you so confident¡ª¡±
¡°Second.¡± Su-hyeun cut Mid off and said, ¡°You guys assumed that I would be weaker than you.¡±
Crack¡ª
The third eye, which had been hidden over Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead, opened. The yellow eye looked bizarre as if it was not a human¡¯s eye. But the four of them were not surprised. Awakeners had all kinds of skills. That kind of body change was not a big deal among them.
COMMENT
But something was indeed strange. Mirald, who was facing Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes, felt a strange ominous feeling. So did the other three. Soon, they were able to confirm the identity of the ominous feeling.
Hiss, hiss¡ª
Hiss, hiss¡ª
The snakes had not been moving since they had appeared; it was as if they stopped thinking. But now, they turned their back on Su-hyeun and stared at them. It looked like they were protecting Su-hyeun. People got chills. They never saw snakes or monsters follow the order of a human. It was something impossible.
<>
One man¡¯s name popped into Mirald¡¯s head. He was the man who created this huge hallucination space.
¡°This is unfair! How Johnny Brad can help you?¡± she shouted.
¡°Wow. You are seriously stupid,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Stomp¡ª
Looking around the snakes around him, Su-hyeun said, ¡°Johnny Brad is a great awakener. I never imagined that he would embody such details in his monsters. I doubted it at first. I never thought it would work.¡±
¡°What the hell are you talking about?¡±
¡°Even if I tell you, you won¡¯t understand since you are too stupid. The other three behind you are the same.¡±
[Third Eye ¨C Predator]
It was Su-hyeun¡¯s trait. Predator was a skill that overwhelmed monsters far below his level. It required a lot of magic to use. So, it was usually better to just cut off the enemy than use this skill. But this was a different situation.
The opponents were tens of thousands of snakes of various kinds. The trait of Predator was from Ouroboros. Ouroboros was a demonic beast, known as the god of snakes. The trait of Ouroboros had a greater effect on snakes. Johnny Brad had even applied this nature to his hallucinations.
On the other hand, unlike Su-hyeun, the other four people did not believe in the details and the level of difficulty of these hallucinations. They had been watching Su-hyeun, who had been killing monsters so easily. So, they did not take these hallucinations seriously. And that disbelief ended with this problem. They underestimated Su-hyeun.
¡°You guys told me I needed to yield and understand, right?¡±
Su-hyeun looked at the other S-Rank awakeners who were aiming their weapons at him. Su-hyeun had been thinking this mission was too easy. But now, it became more interesting.
¡°So, I want you to understand my actions as well from now on.¡±
Chapter 129
Chapter 129: Chapter 129
¡°How dare you bluff...¡±
Stomp¡ª
One awakener stepped forward as if he could not listen to Su-hyeun anymore. Su-hyeun remembered his name. He had heard this man¡¯s name in his previous life. But he was not outstanding at all, so Su-hyeun could not remember his face.
<>
The word ¡°first¡± was always considered a great modifier because it meant that person went ahead of others. But to Su-hyeun, this modifier was meaningless.
¡°You werezy.¡±
¡°Shut up!¡±
Whoosh¡ª
When John Cleese¡¯s hands hit the ground, a huge mouth soared up at Su-hyeun¡¯s feet area. This time it aimed not just his feet but his entire body.
Crunch¡ª!
Su-hyeun stamped on the wide-open mouth. The teeth in the big mouth broke and fell off.
¡°Ramic! Mr. Lowe!¡±
John Cleese called the other two people for help as if they had introduced each other or as if they were acquaintances from a long time ago. At that moment, the two men rushed toward Su-hyeun from different directions.
Whiz¡ª
sh, sh¡ª!
The two men tore apart the snakes lying everywhere. The dozens of small snakes were cut and burst out in each attack. But...
¡°I told you.¡±
¡°Argh!¡±
¡°Arg¡ª¡±
Ramic and Lowe held their hands and feet. They could not approach Su-hyeun and stopped where they were. Their hands and feet turned to blue and purple and became stone-like.
¡°Do you still think it¡¯s just a simple hallucination?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°A-argh...¡±
¡°Damn it!¡±
They struggled to remove the poison that began to spread in their bodies. Even though they did not have detoxification skills, they could prevent spreading by using their magic.
Since it was a poison made by a hallucination skill, if Johnny Brad took a little action, it could disappear soon. But that was one frightening and great point about this hallucination. If Johnny Brad did not take action, this poison would act like the real one and eventually would kill them.
¡°Shit!¡±
Mirald, who was preparing her skill while the other three were buying time, reached her hands out to Su-hyeun.
Whoosh¡ª
At that moment, thousands of insects covered Su-hyeun¡¯s body. They were bugs with extreme poison. Like the snakes created by Johnny Brad, their poison would be fatal as well. But...
Schwing¡ª
sh¡ª!
Su-hyeun cut off her hallucination skill as soon as he drew his sword out.
Boom¡ª!
The hallucination disappeared in an instant. There was no need to get rid of each insect one by one. Mirald was startled when her hallucination broke out in vain.
Whiz¡ª
Su-hyeun rushed forward. He rushed toward John Cleese, who was the closest to him.
<>
Ramic and Lowe tried to step back, looking at such Su-hyeun. But at that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes changed.
[Third Eye ¨C Predator]
Their bodies were not able to move. They were stiffened as if a giant snake had squeezed them. Although it was a brief moment, the fact that they could not move their bodies was fatal.
Crack, crack¡ª
Bam¡ª!
¡°Urgh!¡±
¡°Aargh!¡±
Su-hyeun grabbed the two men¡¯s necks in each hand mmed them on the ground.
As a response, John Cleese sped his hands together.
p¡ª
[The coffin of iron thorn spears.]
Creak, boom¡ª!
The huge ck coffin appeared to the left and right side of Su-hyeun and swallowed him up. Inside of the coffin were huge awls. ¡°The coffin of iron thorn spears¡± was a skill that made hundreds of holes in the body of the trapped person and killed them.
<> John Cleese thought.
He felt the victory.
<>
But...
Crack, crack¡ª
Creak¡ª
The closed coffin door started to open. John Cleese, who was injecting his magic into the skill, was startled and shouted with a scared voice.
¡°I-it is nonsense!¡±
Su-hyeun, who was trapped in the coffin, opened the door with his bare hands. The iron thorn spears could pierce even the steel, but they were torn apart by Su-hyeun¡¯s hands.
Crack¡ª!
Soon, the coffin created by John Cleese was smashed and lost its shape. John Cleese was in a hurry to start another skill. At that moment, he could feel the burning feeling from his head.
Whoosh¡ª
Boom¡ª!
¡°Argh!¡±
The blue me burned John Cleese¡¯s hair. With the burning feeling from his head, he grabbed his head and rolled on the ground.
¡°I was a little surprised this time.¡± Su-hyeun looked at Mirald.
She was the only one left. She sat on the ground and shivered. While the three men suffered, she could not do anything. More exactly, she just realized that nothing would work.
¡°How...the...hell...¡±
She had thought they could win since they were four of them. She never even imagined that they would lose.
But the result came out from the overwhelming difference in the level. Although the two had previously been poisoned by snakes and failed to perform properly, even so, the results were hard to believe.
However, a thought came to Mirald¡¯s mind.
¡°Y-you should not attack me right now.¡±
¡°Why?¡±
Stomp¡ª
When Su-hyeun took a step forward threateningly, Mirald flinched and continued to say, ¡°I removed the hallucination skills I¡¯ve made on the camera. If you attack me right now... It will be broadcast all over the world as it is.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡±
¡°Y-you will be in trouble if that happens, right? The guilds of those people wille to hate you. It will look like you are attacking us without any reason to the viewers.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t think it will look like I am doing that. You will make it look like that,¡± said Su-hyeun.
It was so obvious. Su-hyeun could guess what she would say next. And what she said was not far from Su-hyeun¡¯s expectation at all.
¡°Yes, you are right. Besides...if we just go exit right now, both of us can advance to the finals, right?¡±
¡°Yes. That is not bad for me either,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°I just need to advance to the final round. The prize money wille out just for that. I don¡¯t even want to win. I am not yourpetitor.¡±
<>
She wanted the enormous prizes and privileges given to participants in the finals and the honor of being a finalist of the Ranking Wars. The honor would follow if she passed the preliminary round and qualified for the final. Going to the final meant she would be one of the high-rank awakeners among the 175 S-Ranks.
The prize money itself was not huge to the S-Rank awakeners. They usually earned a lot anyway. But the matter was the privileges that she could get ording to the ranking of this Ranking Wars.
Higher rankings meant better performers. ording to this ranking, people would get priority to attack dungeons first. Also, they would obtain steady profits from the distribution of Ether stones and items in the future.
¡°So? What do you think? Isn¡¯t this quite reasonable?¡± Mirald asked.
¡°Well...¡± Su-hyeun shook his head. ¡°I don¡¯t like your idea.¡±
¡°W-what?¡±
Even with the attention of the world, Su-hyeun did not stop walking toward Mirald. Su-hyeun thought her thoughts were too shallow. She was the one who had hit his back first and now she was trying to persuade him to advance to the finals together.
¡°Y-you don¡¯t have to do this! It is just a contest. We are not enemies or something!¡± Mirald shouted.
Su-hyeun reached out his hand to her and said, ¡°I am truly sorry, too. But you have to understand. It is something we can¡¯t help, right?¡±
Su-hyeun continued while grabbing her head with one hand. ¡°The world is like this.¡±
Mirald¡¯s eyes widened. They were familiar words.
<<¡°I am truly sorry. But you have to understand. We can¡¯t help it. The world is like this.¡±>>
It was what she had said to Su-hyeun before. Su-hyeun was giving back those words now. He had no intention of overlooking her. He didn¡¯t care about other people¡¯s thinking. She realized that.
¡°I-I give up!¡± Mirald dered a disimer without hesitation.
¡°Nope.¡±
Crack¡ª!
But at the moment she dered her drop out, Su-hyeun mmed her head on the ground. The ground cracked and Mirald passed out. Unlike the other three, she was physically weak.
¡°Even if you give up, I won¡¯t stop.¡±
Su-hyeun, who had put four S-Rank awakeners on the ground, dusted his hands off. He turned his body and started to walk.
[Mirald, John Cleese, Ramic, and Lowe are considered unable to fight. They will be eliminated.]
Johnny Brad, who had been watching the fight, dropped the four people from the contest. Like that, Su-hyeun became the only one who advanced to the final in the third team.
Act 10
¡°Did this happen because that man is strong or the other four are too weak?¡± Gordon Rohan, who was watching at the screen, asked Johnny Brad.
Johnny Brad answered with a dry voice as usual, ¡°Probably the first one.¡±
¡°Right? He is quite strong.¡±
¡°Yes. Very strong.¡±
Gordon Rohan nced at Johnny Brad, who hid his face under the robe. He could not see his face, but his voice sounded quite young. It was a voice that sounded like a child mimicking an adult. As if he was trying to hide his voice, Johnny Brad rarely spoke to Gordon Rohan. But somehow, Gordon Rohan felt like Johnny Brad would not save his breath right at the moment.
¡°Do you think he has anything else?¡± Gordon Rohan asked.
¡°I think he is hiding a lot. He didn¡¯t even draw his sword.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you think that sword is a trick?¡±
¡°He didn¡¯t look like he was used to swinging his fist. Then, the only remaining thing is the sword.¡±
¡°I thought the same. If you thought like that as well, I guess it would be right.¡±
If they were right, it meant that Su-hyeun had knocked four people out without using his main weapon.
¡°He was called a rising star. But I think he is more than that,¡± Gordan Rohan said.
Su-hyeun had be known for his name as he had been climbing the Tower of Trials on level 10. When he became an S-Rank awakener, he was known as a new rising star. It was only one year ago, but now he advanced to the finals in this Ranking Wars. He had the ability to defeat four S-Rank awakeners at the same time.
<>
Gordon Rohan asked in a slightly excited voice, ¡°Do you think there will be other people like him?¡±
¡°I am not sure he would be as good as that man....¡± Johnny Brad looked at numerous awakeners from the screen. ¡°Yes. There is.¡±
¡°Yeah? Who?¡±
¡°It will be not fun if I tell you now,¡± Johnny Brad answered vaguely.
At his answer, Gordon Rohan crouched down and looked at the screen. After Su-hyeun¡¯s turn, the fourth team started taking their test.
<>
He didn¡¯t want mediocre people to advance to the finals. Gordon Rohan wanted ¡°real¡± people. He wanted the very few people who had different skills and power among S-Rank awakeners. Only when hepeted with them could prove that he was the best.
¡°It¡¯s his turn.¡±
¡°That guy is also the ¡®real¡¯ one that you were looking for,¡± Johnny Brad said.
¡°That man?¡± Gordon Rohan looked at the screen and tilted his head. ¡°I¡¯ve never seen him before.¡±
He tried to remember, but he had no idea who that person was.
Chapter 130
Chapter 130: Chapter 130
The seventh test was a team cooperation defense mission. The time limit was 10 minutes. But even before the results came out, the audience watching the test were shocked.
¡°W-what a lunatic!¡±
¡°That¡¯s... very harsh.¡±
Song Hyeong-gi and Hak-joon, who were watching the screen, frowned. The camera showed four people. The test had just begun, but three people were on the ground already. Their arms and legs were bent bizarrely. One man gave up the test when his opponent started to approach him. That man had defeated the three other participants. He broke their arms and legs with a smile.
¡°That bastard did that on purpose. They couldn¡¯t fight back,¡± Su-hyeun said, eyes glued to the screen.
Hak-joon nodded. ¡°Yea. You¡¯re right.¡±
¡°I think everyone would agree. He¡¯s quite skilled.¡±
¡°What¡¯s his name?¡±
¡°His name is Thomas Mathiras. He¡¯s from Germany. He just recently became a S-Rank awakener.¡±
¡°Recently?¡± Ha-joon looked at Thomas who was alone on the screen.
He looked in his mid tote twenties. His hair was dyed red. He was a good-looking man, that was hard to argue with. He had been smiling through the entirepetition.
¡°But he¡¯s really strong, isn¡¯t he?¡±
Counting Su-hyeun, Thomas was only the second awakener that showed such overwhelming power than other awakeners. They were watching his game through the screen, but they could feel his power. Hak-joon couldn¡¯t believe that he had be S-Rank just recently.
¡°I guess,¡± Song Hyeong-gi said, ¡°he was focusing more on climbing the Tower of Trials than on reputation, power or money as an awakener. I¡¯m sure there were many people like him. They¡¯re just not well-known since they only stayed in the tower.¡±
¡°Then why would hee to the Ranking Wars...?¡±
¡°I guess he became curious about his level. Like ¡®How strong would I bepared to other, famous awakeners?¡¯ That¡¯s just a guess, though.¡±
¡°Hmm...Possibly.¡± Hak-joon turned his eyes to the screen again.
Thomas, who had gotten rid of the other awakeners by this point, took the test alone. Since he was so talented and skilled, hepleted the test alone without showing the slightest hint of strain. There was no need to watch more. Thomas would advance to the finals.
¡°Hak-joon. If you...¡± Su-hyeun hesitated for a moment, then said, ¡°If you meet him at the finals, just withdraw from the match. Okay?¡±
¡°...Alright, I will.¡± Hak-joon studied Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
His face looked calm. But Hak-joon had been spending a lot of time with him. He could tell what he was feeling. Su-hyeun was very, very angry.
Hak-joon took the 17th round test. He was able to advance to the finals without difficulty. The people of the 17th team actually cooperated, unlike the other teams. There was one awakener from the Middle East who was known for his sense of justice. He waspetent, too. The two people who advanced to the finals from that team were that awakener from the Middle East and Hak-joon.
Hak-joon approached Su-hyeun, hopping. ¡°Brother! Did you see me?¡±
¡°I saw. I saw.¡±
¡°Yay! I¡¯ll call Yun-seon! Uh? What? Brother! I can¡¯t make a call here!¡±
¡°We¡¯re in Johnny Brad¡¯s hallucination. Of course, you can¡¯t make a call. Please, be quiet and sit down. You¡¯re distracting me.¡±
The preliminary round waspleted without any further problems. Song Hyeong-gi also passed the preliminary round without difficulty. Finally, Gordon Rohan passed the test by himself, like Suhyun.
¡°He¡¯s very strong, as I expected,¡± Hak-joon said.
Gordon Rohan took the test with his bare hands, as if to show off to Su-hyeun. He even didn¡¯t use any special skills. He injected his magic into his bare fists and made them hard. He smashed the monsters with fists as strong as iron. His ability made the other four people in his round seem shabby.
¡°Well. That¡¯s Gordon Rohan,¡± Song Hyung-gi replied as if it was an obvious thing.
And Hak-joon couldn¡¯t disagree with that. Gordon Rohan was considered to be one of the strongest awakeners in the world. Of course, he would be skilled like that.
After the preliminary round, people had a day to rest. 66 people entered the final round. Originally, 70 people were going to advance, but four teams had only one finalist. The finalists went up to the top floor of the Gordon Tower. The 190th to the 199th floors of the tower were a hotel.
¡°W-wow. This is amazing.¡±
Hak-joon looked around the huge room. His mouth hung open. Hak-joon was far from ordinary hotel life. And Gordon Tower¡¯s hotel was one of the best hotels in the world.
¡°Yes. It¡¯s amazing. But what are you doing here? Your room is next door.¡±
¡°I was bored all alone. And brother Hyeong-gi kicked me out of his room.¡±
¡°...You¡¯re a real social butterfly.¡±
Hak-joon, who Su-hyeun had met in his previous life, had been very cold and dark. But he was theplete opposite now. Su-hyeun even wondered if they were the same person or not. If he hadn¡¯t seen Hak-joon¡¯s level in this preliminary round, he might still wonder.
¡°Are you confident about the finals?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°How can I be confident against people like you, Gordon Rohan, and Thomas Mathiras?¡±
¡°I¡¯m not talking about winning.¡±
¡°Hmm... If it¡¯s not about winning...¡± Hak-joon thought for a moment and nodded. ¡°I already achieved my first goal. So, now I¡¯ll just go as far as I can.¡±
¡°But, wasn¡¯t it easier than you thought?¡±
¡°Yes, it was. There were only a few people that I thought I couldn¡¯t beat.¡±
Hak-joon was very talented. He had be an awakener at around the same time as Su-hyeun and had been climbing the tower continuously. There was a difference between them, but it wasn¡¯t a difference in talent. It was a difference in experience and knowledge.
Su-hyeun remembered his previous life. And it wasn¡¯t just memories. His body also remembered his experiences. That gave Su-hyeun a big leg up.
<>
Su-hyeun had seen how Hak-joon fought. His brilliant talent had begun to germinate. Hak-joon¡¯s abilities were clearly behind those of other S-Rank awakeners at the moment. But his head forbat was far ahead. Su-hyeun thought Hak-joon could be considered a pretty high-level awakener among S-Rank. And, in the next year or two, he would grow much stronger than he was right now.
¡°Stop ying. Go to your room and get some sleep. It¡¯s prettyte and you have to manage your condition,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°Okay!¡±
Hak-joon, who had been chattering, left the room. Then, he called someone from outside. Su-hyeun assumed he wanted to talk with Yun-seon.
Flop¡ª
When Hak-joon left, Su-hyeuny down on therge bed in the center of the room, big enough for three or four people. He didn¡¯t turn off the light. He just looked at the ceiling, thinking many things.
<>
Su-hyeun thought about the man who he had seen on the screen before. Thomas broke the other¡¯s limbs even though he could easily beat them without injuring them. For that reason, he got a warning from the management team, but he didn¡¯t seem concerned. He looked very calm, as if nothing had happened. But it was violence, notpetition. He¡¯d probably do it again in the finals.
<>
After a day for rest, the finals began. They started at 2 p.m. like the primarily round. It was nighttime in Korea.
¡°Brother! Did you look at the reactions to the Ranking Wars?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°No,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°You¡¯re a star. Check this out.¡±
As they went down in an elevator, Hak-joon showed his smartphone to Su-hyeun. It was the posting on SNS. Su-hyeun took the smartphone and checked it. People were arguing over the rankings on their own.
-I think Gordon is the best.
-That Gordon followed Kim Su-hyeun, you idiot. Didn¡¯t you see it? He fought without a weapon like him. That means Gordan paid attention to Kim Su-hyeun.
-How could he have followed Kim Su-hyeun? I know you¡¯re Korean. But I think you¡¯re letting your pride think for you.
-I think Thomas is one of the front-runners. He was a bit cruel, though. I think he¡¯s crazy.
-No, he¡¯s not.
-Yes, he is.
-To be honest, Thomas was cruel. He stabbed other people in the back first. But Kim Su-hyeun was stabbed in the back, and he just dealt with it. They¡¯re definitely different.
-Everyone shut up. Kim Su-hyeun is the best.
The title of the post was ¡®Ranking of Preliminary Round¡¯. The publisher saw the preliminary round from a subjective point of view and listed the ten strongest awakeners in order. Obviously, the rankings hadn¡¯t been decided yet, so there was a lot of controversy. The most popr names were Su-hyeun, Gordon Rohan, and Thomas.
¡°ording to this post, you¡¯re one of the three top-rank awakeners,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°Top three?¡±
¡°Yes. But most opinions think you and Gordan Rohan will be the best.¡±
¡°It would be four, not three,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Four?¡± Hak-joon asked with a puzzled look. He wondered if there was another one that Su-hyeun was thinking as a top-ranks. ¡°Who¡¯s the other one?¡±
¡°I won¡¯t tell you. But there is one more.¡±
Hak-joon asked Su-hyeun who it was, but Su-hyeun didn¡¯t answer, just headed to the stadium.
¡°Hey. What¡¯s up?¡± Song Hyeong-gi was waiting for them, holding a potato chip in his hand.
Hak-joon, who had gotten sullen because Su-hyeun didn¡¯t answer him, approached Song Hyeong-gi. His mood changed and he got some chips from Song Hyeong-gi.
¡°The stadium has changed a lot,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°It¡¯s nice to be simple. The theme is easy to understand.¡±
The stadium was white for the preliminary round, but it had been reced with an arena for the finals. Of course, it was toorge to be just a simple arena. As Lee Ju-ho said, it was a simr size to the Hangang Park.
¡°It¡¯ll be good to just fight.¡±
¡°The whole stadium is protected with shock-absorbing magic. The ground itself is quite hard, too.¡±
Su-hyeun liked theposition of the stadium. At least, it seemed that there would be no damage to the spectators in any way. Time passed and it was 2 o¡¯clock to start the final match. Gordon Rohan appeared at the top of the arena at exactly 2 p.m., as if he had been waiting for it.
¡°As we¡¯ve already announced, the first round of the finals is a one-on-one match. The winner will advance to thest round. The loser will be eliminated. Simple, right?¡±
¡°It¡¯s simple, but how do you decide who will y against whom?¡± Song Hyeong-gi raised his hand and asked.
Gordon Rohan snapped his finger and answered, ¡°Questioning is a good attitude. But it¡¯ll be the same asst time.¡±
¡°Randomly?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°Can I point out if there¡¯s someone I want to fight?¡± Su-hyeun spoke for the first time at the official meeting.
Gordon Rohan looked down at Su-hyeun as if he didn¡¯t expect him to speak. Then, he shook his head.
¡°I¡¯m sorry, but you can¡¯t. That wouldn¡¯t be fair,¡± Gordon Rohan said.
¡°I don¡¯t think your way is fair, either.¡±
¡°I told youst time. If you think so, bring it on. Challenges are always wee.¡± Gordon Rohan grinned.
It looked like he was confident that he was the best one there. At Gordon Rohan¡¯s provocation, Su-hyeun frowned a little and sighed. Su-hyeun could guess what Gordon Rohan was thinking. He didn¡¯t want to react to that. Above all, Gordon Rohan wasn¡¯t the one who Su-hyeun wanted to fight.
¡°Then, from now on, I will decide your opponent.¡±
Snap¡ª
Ding, ding, ding¡ª
When Gordon Rohan flicked his finger, the names appeared next to him. The two names were paired up and down. Su-hyeun found his name. His opponent¡¯s name was below.
[Kim Su-hyeun.]
[Thomas Mathiras.]
The corners of Su-hyeun¡¯s mouth lifted in the slightest smile.
Chapter 131
Chapter 131: Chapter 131
¡°I got lucky,¡± said Su-hyeun.
That was the opponent he had in mind, the very same man he wanted as his first fight and asked Gordon Rohan about it earlier. Su-hyeun had been ruing the missed opportunity after his request was denied, but luckily enough, he got matched up with the individual he wanted to fight anyway.
¡°Who¡¯s your opponent that you¡¯re saying you got lucky?¡± Hak-joon asked. He was busy searching for his own name until he heard Su-hyeun¡¯s muttering and began searching for thetter¡¯s name instead. And after spotting what he was looking for, he gasped in surprise and asked again. ¡°What do you mean this is luck? That¡¯s Thomas, isn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°That¡¯s why it¡¯s good.¡±
¡°Dude, could it be that you get, like, super excited and stuff when fighting strong enemies?¡±
¡°You think I¡¯m a monster? I hate fighting. I¡¯m a pacifist.¡±
¡°But then, why....That dude, he¡¯s dangerous, isn¡¯t he?¡±
Hak-joon nced at Thomas grinning away in the distance.
That man also must¡¯ve been rather pleased with who his opponent was. It was quite likely that he, too, had been conscious of Su-hyeun.
¡°You know, I just wanted to step on him at least once, that¡¯s all.¡±
Hak-joon knew that Su-hyeun was quite angry. Still, he couldn¡¯t help but worry. It probably had to do with Thomas¡¯s previous disy of ruthlessness.
¡°If you think it¡¯ll get too dangerous, please throw in the towel. Please,¡± said Hak-joon.
That was what Su-hyeun told him yesterday.
¡°If ites to that.¡±
And the reply implied that it wouldn¡¯te to that.
Hak-joon spat out a lengthy groan.
While the two of them were chatting away, Gordon Rohan began addressing everyone else.
¡°Everyone, I assume that you¡¯ve all confirmed who your opponent is by now. As for who goes first, it¡¯s coincidentally me. Well now, lucky me.¡±
Gordon¡¯s opponent was an awakener named Mirage Rowoon. Thetter sucked in deep breaths ¡ª perhaps out of nervousness ¡ª and raised a shield and a shortsword.
Mirage Rowoon was famed for his high defense and endurance. So much so that as far as defending was concerned, he was absolutely confident in enduring the whole day, even if the entire world started attacking him.
¡°Okay, then. Let¡¯s get started right away.¡±
Swiiish¡ª
With the exception of Gordon Rohan and Mirage Rowoon, all the other participants were transferred to the waiting area.
Crack, craack¡ª
Gordon Rohan¡¯s body slowly descended to the floor. ¡°Good. This is not bad for my first challenger.¡±
¡°Challenger? Are you talking about me?¡± Mirage Rowoon gripped the shield even tighter and red straight at Gordon Rohan. ¡°Sure, I might not be as strong as you, but it still feels pretty insulting to hear you looking down on your opponent even before the start.¡±
Clunk¡ª
The four-sided wooden shield began transforming little by little, and eventually, was enveloped in blue-colored metal. Its size also grew much bigger than before. Now curved in an elliptical shape, it had transformed to provide not just protection from the front, but from both sides, as well.
¡°Right, it¡¯s understandable that you feel confident about your chances. You must be pretty skilled just by the fact that I¡¯ve heard your name.¡±
Gordon Rohan was feeling quite happy with this match-up because he knew about his opponent.
¡°You allegedly said that even if you were fighting the whole world, you can stillst the entire day. Is that true?¡±
¡°That I did.¡±
[The match will begin.]
The moment Johnny Brad¡¯s start signal reached the two...
¡°Why don¡¯t we put that im to the test?¡±
Fwooosh¡ª
Gordon Rohan¡¯s figure disappeared from the spot.
At the same time, Mirage Rowoon raised the shield, having instinctively realized that an attack was iing.
Kaaaa-boooom¡ª!
Kurung, kurururung¡ª
An incredible impact force was transmitted over the shield. While being pushed back, Mirage Rowoon looked over the shield at his front.
<>
It was just a single punch with nothing special about it.
Although magical energy was injected into that one strike, it didn¡¯t look like any special skills had been activated.
But...
<>
That impact caused by a single punch was easily the strongest attack Mirage Rowoon had ever experienced so far. Even though he had heard Gordon Rohan¡¯s name many times before, not once did that name loom intimidatinglyrge like in this very moment.
¡°You¡¯re indeed quite sturdy.¡±
Gordon Rohan rolled his fist tightly. He struck so hard just now that his hand felt a bit numb. ¡°Looks like you¡¯re qualified to make that im, after all.¡±
¡°At the very least, I¡¯m not nning to easily....¡±
¡°But the thing is...¡±
Two pairs of wings suddenly unfurled right behind Gordon Rohan¡¯s back.
¡°Did you know?¡±
Right afterward, pure-white magical energy began spreading out around those wings.
It was at that moment Mirage Rowoon¡¯s unique crisis perception began ringing warning bells.
<>
The moment those wings appeared, Gordon Rohan felt like apletely different person.
Not just the density of his magical energy, but even the amount spreading out to the surroundings were on another level altogether. Up until a second ago, Mirage Rowoon believed he could somehow battle it out and endure, but now, that was no longer the case.
Mirage Rowoon injected far, far more magical energy into his shield. At the same time, every single defensive technique in his possession was wrapped around it. Never mind one day,sting for one hour would be a miracle at this stage.
¡°Did you know that everyone lives in their own little worlds?¡±
Gordon Rohan stepped forward while extending his hand in the air. ¡°A newborn baby believes the room within its field of vision is the entire world.¡±
A pure-white spear soon appeared in his hand. It was shaped like a trident, with nary a speck of imperfection or dust on it.
¡°Students think of their schools as their whole world, while adults experience the world called their workce. While riding nes, you view the world outside, and through experiencing culture, you gain knowledge and understanding. All of that is a process to broaden your horizons.¡±
¡°What the hell are you trying to say here?¡±
CLANK!
Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear mmed down on Mirage Rowoon¡¯s shield.
Despite deploying every single defensive skill on the shield, thetter still ended up stumbling backward. The moment he blocked the former¡¯s hit, an impact great enough to break his arm had been transmitted.
¡°When you said that you could defend against the world for the entire day, did I exist in your little world?¡±
That question caused Mirage Rowoon¡¯s eyes to quake unsteadily. Indeed, he didn¡¯t know about Gordon Rohan when proudly making that statement.
¡°The world is far wider and greater than you think. It¡¯s the same story for me. And that is precisely why I built the tallest tower in the world and organized thispetition.¡±
Right now Gordon Rohan wasn¡¯t addressing Mirage Rowoon. No, he was speaking to the rest of the world who should be watching his figure through the cameras currently focused on him.
¡°In order to broaden the scope of the world that I know, in other words.¡±
His desire to be the best was also the desire to stand on the very top of this world, as well.
BANG, KWA-BOOM!
Gordon Rohan continued to pound down on Mirage Rowoon¡¯s shield. Thetter felt the numbness spread all over his arm with every attack and gripped the shield as tightly as possible.
<>
Mirage Rowoon¡¯s shield began to crack apart little by little. The unexpected development took him by surprise, and just as he hesitated for a moment...
Craaack!
¡°Heo-urhk?¡±
A spear prated through the shield, and he fell on his behind while looking at its tips approaching him. Even then, he still hadn¡¯t let go of his shield. However, he didn¡¯t even get the chance to swing the sword held in his other hand once.
Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear was now pointing squarely at the fallen man¡¯s throat. The tip of the weapon ever so faintly nicked the flesh and drew small droplets of blood.
If he willed it, Mirage Rowoon¡¯s neck would¡¯ve been thrust cleanly through.
Gordon Rohan withdrew his spear and leaned it against his shoulder. And with a brightly beaming face, he extended his hand towards Mirage Rowoon.
¡°I congratte you on your world broadening one step further.¡±
* * *
The first match was quite one-sided.
The winner was obviously Gordon Rohan.
The matter of winning or losing no longer seemed important to other participants watching the proceedings through the screens.
They all got to hear the reason why Gordon Rohan organized this Ranking Wars just now.
¡°You know, he¡¯s a bit...insane but at the same time, pretty cool.¡±
Hak-joon was dazed by Gordon Rohan¡¯s promation and could only mutter those words. For sure, what he said contained a lot of hidden meanings. The American was indeed deserving of that high position.
<>
Gordon Rohan organized this event in order to broaden his horizons ¨C the world that he knew.
He was perhaps one of the ¡°greatest men¡± alive. Everyone acknowledged that. Whether it be his financial muscle or sheer physical power, it didn¡¯t matter what the category was; he couldn¡¯t be satisfied unless he was the best at it, and eventually, he achieved that status.
However, that still failed to satisfy him.
He was thinking of the world that he didn¡¯t know.
He didn¡¯t settle for the status he finally achieved and longed to find an even broader world, and was trying to prove that he was still the best even in that context.
¡°Makes sense to me why he¡¯s be so famous,¡± Hak-joon muttered as if he was impressed even more.
But Su-hyeun was thinking about something else at that moment.
Even back In the past ¡ª before he regressed ¡ª each and every phrase Gordon Rohan uttered went on to be well-known anecdotes on their own.
So, Su-hyeun should¡¯ve heard of such a promation that carried so much impact from somewhere before, yet strangely enough, he couldn¡¯t remember ever hearing about it. Sure, it wasn¡¯t as if he knew everything about Gordon Rohan, but his knowledge base should have been about the same with other people¡¯s.
<>
It was possible that he simply wasn¡¯t aware of it, but then, the thought of that not being the case abruptly entered his mind.
<>
That answer had a higher chance of being right. If so, this should be nothing more than a minor change. Even then, he couldn¡¯t help but frown at how the future began changing recently because of his interference.
¡°You¡¯re up next.¡± Hak-joon reminded him.
¡°Yeah, I saw that.¡±
The match to follow right after Gordon Rohan versus Mirage Rowoon was Su-hyeun versus Thomas.
Su-hyeun got up from his seat. He nced back and spotted Thomas also standing up while looking back at him.
Soon afterwards, two men¡¯s figures vanished.
The location they reappeared in was thepetition arena as seen through the screens. They were standing about twenty meters apart while staring at each other.
¡°Ooh, this ce is so cool!¡± Thomas eximed right after being summoned to the arena as he took a look at his surroundings. He then swept back his long, disheveled red hair and continued to grin away.
¡°Let me ask you something before we start,¡± said Su-hyeun.
He unsheathed his sword right away.
Johnny Brad was dying the start of the match as if to let the participants prepare first. It seemed that it was to prevent potential sneak attacks as soon as the summoning process waspleted.
¡°Did you really have to do that?¡±
¡°Mm? Do what exactly?¡±
Maybe his mental age was slightlycking?
Thomas was still grinning foolishly away. The old saying went that it¡¯d be hard to spit on a smiling face, but this very moment would be a rare exception to that rule.
At the bare minimum, he should¡¯ve understood what Su-hyeun was asking about.
¡°I¡¯m talking about breaking the arms and legs of those who couldn¡¯t even fight back. That was not a fight, but a disy of one-sided brutality.¡±
¡°Uh.... Oh, that?¡± Thomas pped his hands as if he finally remembered and replied. ¡°Yup.¡±
¡°...¡¯Yup?¡¯¡±
¡°Yup!¡±
Son of a.... Su-hyeun spat out some choice words under his breath.
He initially thought that Thomas would bring up some other reason. However, this guy seemed to be, simply put, a damn nutcase.
¡°Is that right? In that case....¡±
[The match will begin.]
¡°Looks like I¡¯ll have to do the same.¡±
Chapter 132
Chapter 132: Chapter 132
Su-hyeun was angry, but his expression becameposed once more.
Just like it had always been, the rational thing to do was to swallow his anger rather than letting it explode. Anger created openings and dulled one¡¯s sword and body.
It was his habit. Of course, that didn¡¯t mean he had forgotten his own emotions.
¡°You angry?¡± Thomas was tilting his head in confusion. ¡°Why?¡±
He seemed to be missing something somewhere.
To look at him, Thomas must¡¯ve been simr in age or slightly older than Su-hyeun, but the way he spoke and the looks he was giving Su-hyeun belonged to a child.
¡°You should....¡±
Swiiiish-
[Leap.]
Su-hyeun exploded forward. In the blink of an eye, he flew to a spot just above Thomas¡¯s head and swung his sword down.
aaang-!
¡°....Think about it while I beat you up!¡±
Giii-iiing-
Thomas was shoved back. A curtain, a veil of some sort with visible cracks running on it, was spread over his hands.
Was it because of the unexpected force of the impact? Thomas looked quite surprised right then. He clenched and opened his fist repeatedly before raising his head.
At that exact moment-
Craaack, aaang-!
Kwa-rummmm-!
Powerful sword strikes began raining down from all sides with Thomas caught in the middle. Even then, he didn¡¯t panic. Instead, he spread out both of his arms and moved smartly to defend against Su-hyeun¡¯s attacks.
¡°This is so cool! So cool!!¡±
Thomas was smiling brightly while blocking Su-hyeun¡¯s sword as if this whole thing was just too entertaining.
The curtain spreading out from his hands regenerated immediately right after Su-hyeun¡¯s attacks shattered it. Instead of the curtain¡¯s defensive powers, it was Thomas¡¯s control over his own powers that allowed him to quickly regenerate it, shining brilliantly for all to see.
Rumble-
[me.]
Boom, bang, bang-bang-!
Blue-colored divine mes suddenly appeared and caused a chain of explosions all around Thomas. Previously, he had been focused on the sword so he hurriedly crouched, furrowing his brows.
The explosion of divine mes blinded his sight for a short moment, and Su-hyeun¡¯s sword exploited the opening by stabbing straight at Thomas¡¯s shoulder.
Stab-!
Whiiiir-
Thomas¡¯s figure faded little by little. There was no sensationing from the tip of the de. Su-hyeun instantly swung his sword behind him.
CLAAANG-!
[Doppelganger.]
A metallic noise echoed from behind Su-hyeun. His sword had caught Thomas¡¯s hand, just about to stab him in the back.
From the sensation alone, Su-hyeun could tell what happened to Thomas¡¯s hand that had changed color to brown.
<< Is that a skill that changes a portion of your body into a specific metal of your choice? >>
He only knew one light brown metal that was blessed with such hardness.
<< Adamantium. >>
The metal that could easily be called the best in regards to either magical energy conductivity or hardness and lightness.
Even if it only transformed a portion of one¡¯s body, that skill was quite impressive to be able to change human hands into such metal in the first ce.
Not only that, Thomas¡¯s movements were rather remarkable, as well. Despite possessing several skills, he was wielding them freely, disying his mastery over them. Normally, you¡¯d be unable to deploy the right skills at the right moment if you had too many of them, and you¡¯d eventually end up neglecting certain ones.
¡°Wow, so strong! You¡¯re so strong!¡±
ng, ng, ng, ng-
Thomas increased his distance from Su-hyeun and pped his hands. His palms, modified to replicate the characteristics of adamantium, shed against each other and produced hard-edged metallic noises.
He looked as if he had lots of leeway still.
¡°Are you having fun?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Thomas stopped pping his hands abruptly and raised his arms in sheer shock.
CLAAANG-!
Gu-gugugugu-
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword, striking downwards, pressed on Thomas¡¯s body. He crossed both of his arms to defend against the attack, and he finally stopped smiling. Before he could react, Su-hyeun had disappeared once again.
¡°Why don¡¯t you keep at it, then?¡±
¡°Where...?¡±
Thomas hurriedly spun around. His opponent was definitely in the air above him just a moment before, but now, Su-hyeun was already right behind him.
ng, ng, ng-
Piiik, pii-piik-
Chwa-aaahk-
Su-hyeun darted in and out non-stop.
From the front, then the back; from above, then left and right. Su-hyeun¡¯s sword danced around disorientingly and without any set pattern, causing numerous wounds to appear on Thomas¡¯s body one by one.
¡°Why....? Are you getting faster?¡±
Thomas¡¯s voice trembled ever so slightly.
The more he blocked the attacks, the faster Su-hyeun got. He rained down more sword strikes, too many to be blocked or avoided.
[Spirit¡¯s Grace.]
[Thorn Armor.]
[Reflect.]
Tiii-iiing-
Several skills ovepped and reinforced Thomas¡¯s body, causing Su-hyeun¡¯s sword to issue a metallic cry.
Even the previously-deep wounds changed into small scratches, instead.
Thomas began smiling again. ¡°Doesn¡¯t hurt anymore.¡±
¡°Nope, wrong.¡±
Saash-!
Blood spurted from Thomas¡¯s back.
He was so sure he couldn¡¯t be sliced up anymore that he didn¡¯t recognize what had happened for a moment.
The confusion was greater in his mind than the pain. Thomas covered his head with both of his hands and curled up into a ball.
Piiik, pii-iik, pii-piik-
sh, saash-
Wounds began appearing once more on Thomas¡¯s body. Su-hyeun, in the meantime, grew so much faster that his silhouette couldn¡¯t even be seen anymore.
It was at that moment that Thomas remembered what his opponent had said earlier.
¡°That wasn¡¯t a fight, but a disy of one-sided brutality.¡±
¡°Is that right? In that case... it looks like I¡¯ll have to do the same.¡±
Not a fight, but one-sided brutality ¨C this was exactly that situation.
Right then, Thomas¡¯s smiling face distorted greatly.
¡°Euh... I don¡¯t like it, I hate it, I HATE IT!!¡±
FWOOOSH-!
Pitch-ck magical energy began whipping around him violently. At the same time, his curled-up figure grew blurry and faint, before melting into the surroundings.
Shu-sususu-
The dark magical power soon enveloped the entirety of the arena Su-hyeun and Thomas were fighting in. The former stopped his rapid movements and scanned his vicinity.
<< Isn¡¯t this... that skill? >>
His eyes widened in surprise. He had no idea that he¡¯d stumble into this very skill in this ce.
[ck Forest]
Ranked as one of the very best among all the spatial-type skills out there.
No, not just among the spatial-types. It easily qualified as one of the top ten skills ever to exist in the world, even after including all the skills yet to appear in the future. That¡¯s how high-grade the skill was.
¡°....So, it was this bastard?¡±
Thomas Mathiras.
Su-hyeun had only heard that name in passing a couple of times, but, other than what he¡¯d seen in thepetition, he didn¡¯t know anything about him. His first andst public appearance was during the Ranking Wars.
His whereabouts afterward were vague, to say the least. There wasn¡¯t even any news about his death either, so people often wondered if he had literally vanished into thin air.
But such a man had activated the skill, ¡®ck Forest¡¯.
-Please don¡¯t hit me, don¡¯t hurt me...
Thomas¡¯s voice came from somewhere in the air. It was filled with palpable fear. But, it didn¡¯t seem to be directed at Su-hyeun, somehow.
<< What¡¯s wrong with this guy? >>
Thomas definitely made his way onto Su-hyeun¡¯s cklist just by being able to use the ¡®ck Forest¡¯. There would be a news story a few years in the future¡ªthis skill got invoked in the middle of a city and caused the deaths of thousands in the process.
<< It¡¯s a relief that I got to learn early who the culprit is, but... >>
Su-hyeun raised his sword, then swung it down on the floor, just like that.
CLUNG-!
The de simply bounced away.
A sword collided against another sword. And his opponent¡¯s weapon just so happened to be exactly the same as his.
<< Reflect? No, did he fold the space, instead? >>
Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t sure about the specific effects of the ck Forest. He only knew that thousands of people would get swept up in the skill and lose their lives. As such, he didn¡¯t know of a way to cancel or invalidate this skill.
-My dear Sung-in.
A voice suddenly came to him. A gentle voice that he had forgotten about until now. The name being called out was different, too.
The current him wasn¡¯t Sung-in, but Su-hyeun.
-S-Sung-in... Please, please save me, your mother.
-There was no one beside you, but... Why did you....
-Why did you do that! Why?! If only you were here, my dad would still be alive!
-Hero? Don¡¯t make meugh. You¡¯re just pretending to be one!
The voices changed with every passing second.
Su-hyeun remembered all those voices. The ¡®voices¡¯ buried deep within his memories were leaking outside of him.
It was like a nightmare.
Rumble-
Suddenly, the image of a burning city appeared before his eyes. But it changed in an instant. Now, it showed the pitch-ck skies and the destroyed cityscape.
The voices from his past stopped guing him. Su-hyeun had been living on, forgetting about the life of Sung-in.
<< Attacking one¡¯s trauma, is that it? >>
No matter how bright your personality was, the past memories you didn¡¯t want to remember were bound to exist. People without a reverse scale didn¡¯t exist. No, the difference between them simply had to do with how much that reverse scale could painfully affect you.
The ¡®ck Forest¡¯ attacked that very reverse scale. In other words, it forcibly dragged out the past the targets didn¡¯t want to remember and crushed their minds in the process.
The scene currentlyid out before Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes was the most horrifying image he had ever seen in his life. The sight of a devastated, ruined world, and the voices of people crying out the words of resentment that squarely med him.
-I¡¯m sorry.
A man knelt in front of Su-hyeun.
It was none other than his past self, Sung-in.
-I¡¯m truly... sorry.
Su-hyeun remembered himself from back then. He couldn¡¯t forget even if he wanted to.
Back then, he had to choose between two outbreaks urring in Tokyo and London. Regardless of which one he chose, it¡¯d be toote to help the other one.
In the end, he chose to save the one nearer to him, Tokyo. And that¡¯s how countless people ended up dying in London.
<< Yeah, they really resented me back then. >>
Many people died because of me¡ªthat¡¯s how he med himself.
My family¡¯s dead because of you, they said.
He was subjected to curses and denunciation several hundred times the level of resentment he had been receiving all his life until that point. That caused his previous feather-light body to suddenly feel heavy like a ton of bricks. For a while, back then, he couldn¡¯t eat anything and even forgot how to smile.
It was the worst memory Su-hyeun possessed.
Unfortunately...
¡°Sorry about this, but...¡± Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t even remotely moved by the illusion before his eyes created by his old trauma. ¡°I¡¯ve reflected on it for so long that I can¡¯t even feel anything particr about it anymore.¡±
Ever since this life began, Su-hyeun had been moving tirelessly to change the future he knew. And, in the process, he couldn¡¯t help but retread his past.
If he was scared of the approaching future and tried to hide, then he wouldn¡¯t even have thought of changing it in the first ce.
He chose to confront the future since he had already faced it and knew it couldn¡¯t be avoided.
And that¡¯s how he got over it. The painful past was now nothing more than that¡ªthe past.
Shu-rururu-
The illusions disappeared from his eyes. It seemed that something or, rather, someone had realized Su-hyeun couldn¡¯t be shaken by these things. Although he didn¡¯t know whether Thomas or something else had made this admittedly rational choice, it was still a logical one nevertheless.
Rumble, tumble-
But that didn¡¯t seem to be the end just yet. The ck space filling up the battle arena began to quiver and wiggle around. He couldn¡¯t be sure what else was in store for him, but he definitely wasn¡¯t nning to sit back and let it happen.
<< Since I don¡¯t know how to invalidate or cancel this skill.... >>
He couldn¡¯t forget, the ¡®ck Forest¡¯ was a top-tier grade skill. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t possess a higher-grade skill that could potentially ovee it.
<< The best thing to do is to cut down the space itself. Does that mean I have to resort to a somewhat unsophisticated method? >>
Rumble, ruuumble-
mes lit up all around Su-hyeun. Pure blue mes illuminated his surroundings, their awakening causing the ck Forest to wriggle slightly and disy hints of rejection.
It wasn¡¯t enough, though.
Rumble-
The color of the divine me changed from blue to dark navy blue next.
RUUUMBLE-!
His entire body was soon wrapped up in divine me.
Light, to fight against the darkness.
<< In the end, there¡¯s a limit to the total amount and density of the magical energy that can be contained by a single skill. >>
This couldn¡¯t even be called a proper cancetion method. No, he was simply ¡®experimenting¡¯ on where the limits of the ck Forest currently trapping himy, that¡¯s all.
¡°Fine, then. Let¡¯s have it.¡±
RUUUMBLE-!
The divine mes sticking close to Su-hyeun gradually grew bigger and wider. The navy-blue colored mes were now forcing the darkness back.
The world of darkness.
This spatial-type skill was seen as one of the top ten best skills avable, even after including the skills that would appear in the future.
He didn¡¯t know how to counteract it. It wasn¡¯t even known in the first ce. But that didn¡¯t matter.
The absolute difference in power would simply ignore everything, after all.
Chapter 133
Chapter 133: Chapter 133
Rumble, ruuumble-
Bang, ka-boom-
A world of darkness where not even a speck of light existed, was illuminated brightly.
The navy blue-colored divine mes continued to drive away the darkness. As if Thomas was still struggling in his own way, the darkened world continued to fight back using various illusions, but none of them worked on Su-hyeun.
From the very start, the grade of their magical energy was too different.
<< For sure, the skill itself is a cheat alright. >>
Rumble, boom-!
In the meantime, he burned away the dark aura trying to attack him from behind. To think that there was still some leeway left to counterattack despite such a humongous magical energy was causing all sorts of chaos within it...
Not just its scope, but even the skill¡¯s durability easily exceeded his expectations.
<< Well, even then... >>
[Third Eye- Neutralization.]
The Third Eye in Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead split open wide. It scanned its surroundings, the space belonging to the world of darkness.
<< The dude controlling it is only so-so. >>
The pitch-ck darkness enveloping his surroundings was forced back even further as the skill¡¯s effect dissipated at double the rate.
¡°Ahhhk, aaaahhk!!¡±
There was a scream in the distance. The voice belonged to Thomas.
His real body began reappearing, meaning the effects of the darkened world had dissipated almostpletely now.
Step, step-
Su-hyeun went in the direction of the voice. He figured that it¡¯d be easier to locate the real body and suppress that. And so, after taking several more steps, he could clearly see Thomas¡¯s silhouette.
But then...
¡°Please don¡¯t hit me. Please don¡¯t hit me....¡±
Thomas was currently curled up into a ball, murmuring something. Since Su-hyeun¡¯s hearing was pretty exceptional, he could clearly hear it. Weirdly enough, Thomas didn¡¯t seem to be addressing him, though.
<< Don¡¯t hit me...? >>
Su-susu-
Suddenly, illusions began rising up in front of Thomas. Su-hyeun wondered if the world of darkness was throwing up yet another traumatic hallucination in his path, but that wasn¡¯t the case.
The hallucination of the darkened world created two people. Their faces were unfamiliar to him.
¡°Please don¡¯t hit me. Please don¡¯t....¡±
One of the two was a little boy. Same reddish hair as Thomas, but only about ten or so years old. And the boy was getting mercilessly punched by an older man with tattoos all over his body.
¡°I¡¯m sorry. It¡¯s my fault. It hurts.¡±
Why was the boy getting hurt like that?
The illusions soon changed. This time, it was an even younger Thomas, along with a young woman.
¡°Thomas, can you live with your papa now? You can live happily with him, right?¡±
¡°Is that old man my papa?¡±
¡°Yes. He¡¯s your papa, now. That¡¯s why, Thomas my son.... You must listen to what papa says, okay? Mommy will have to go somewhere really far for a little bit.¡±
¡°Please don¡¯t go, mommy! Please stay!¡± Thomas clung to his mother and pleaded with her.
But a young boy didn¡¯t have the necessary strength to stop a grown woman. And so, Thomas ended up living with a new ¡®daddy¡¯ who didn¡¯t share a single drop of blood with him.
The man being a new father wasn¡¯t the issue. No, the real issue was with him physically abusing Thomas because the boy¡¯s mother ran away.
She abandoned her own son and instead chose her life.
¡°Daddy, I¡¯m sorry. Daddy....¡±
¡°Who¡¯s your goddamn daddy? You motherless bastard!¡±
p, pow-!
The days where the boy got hit far outnumbered those that he didn¡¯t. Indeed, thetter instances were very rare.
The man would hit him just because their gazes met, after all.
Even then, Thomas stuck close to his new daddy. Because, he had no ce to go.
Even after getting older, even after bing an adult, it remained the same story.
His body didn¡¯t hurt anymore, not like when he was little kid. But, his heart suffered hundreds, no, thousands of times more.
But then, one day, a new ce Thomas could go suddenly materialized.
[Wee to the Tower of Trials.]
His life changed from that day onwards.
Thomas didn¡¯t return from the Tower of Trials. He didn¡¯t want to return in the first ce.
He ate, slept, and lived within the tower. Thomas, severely beaten and abused from a young age, ended up with a mind of a child trapped in the body of an adult man.
Shu-ruru-
Silhouettes of the adult version of Thomas, now possessing the powers of an awakener, and his ¡®new daddy¡¯ appeared on the other side next.
The ¡®new daddy¡¯ startedshing out at Thomas once more, while saying, ¡°How dare you run away from me like your mother?¡±
But this time, he couldn¡¯t win against Thomas¡¯s strength and got flung away, instead.
¡°P-please, don¡¯t hit me. Don¡¯t hit me.¡±
Here was a man who could¡¯ve been crushed to death with just a single flick of Thomas¡¯s hand. He now possessed more than enough strength to do it.
Even then, the ¡®new daddy¡¯ came across too scary, too big, in Thomas¡¯s mind.
And also....
¡°Please don¡¯t hate me, daddy....¡±
The new daddy was forming a new type of expression as he stared at such Thomas. That day was the very first time he heard his new daddy speak in a gentle, affectionate voice.
¡°I¡¯m sorry, my boy. Did it hurt a lot?¡±
¡°I love you, my son.¡±
The next day, Thomas received an awakener evaluation test, apanied by his new daddy, of course.
That¡¯s how he became an S-rank awakener. He must¡¯ve been feeling happy about something, because for the first time ever, Thomas started smiling brightly.
Who knew whether or not that smile came from genuine happiness? That smile, as far as Su-hyeun could see,cked so many things.
¡°Now listen well, my boy. If you enter the Ranking Wars and pass the preliminaries, Gordon Rohan will give you lots of money. You know what¡¯s money, right?¡±
¡°Money?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. Son, all you have to do is to get that money, and give it to your daddy. Can you do that, son?¡±
¡°Son of a....¡± Su-hyeun groaned.
The illusions appearing before Thomas¡¯s eyes were ¡®traumas¡¯ borne out of the darkened world¡¯s effects.
Indeed, the skill, the darkened world, hadn¡¯t disappeared yet. It was still resisting Su-hyuen¡¯s power. And this was a reaction from that. The darkened world couldn¡¯t prate his defenses and, instead, started nibbling away at its caster¡¯s mind.
It seemed that Thomas wasn¡¯t in full control of the darkened world yet.
¡°Well, now I don¡¯t feel like fighting anymore, all thanks to that imbecile.¡±
Su-hyeun had been wondering why this dude seemed a bit mentally challengedpared to how he looked, and, as it turned out, factors innate and environmental in naturebined to cause this phenomenon.
Step, step-
Su-hyeun walked over to the curled-up Thomas. He was still murmuring away, pleading with his daddy to not hit him.
¡°....Why did you return in the first ce, then?¡±
The Tower of Trials wasn¡¯t a bad ce to live. With the exception of a few floors, the rest weren¡¯t so bad even whenpared to the modern world outside. That went doubly for people with great power¡ªa talented warrior on Thomas¡¯s level should be able to live a pretty content life inside the tower without much issue.
<< It¡¯d been better for him if he didn¡¯te back to the outside world. >>
By doing that, he¡¯d have avoided running into that ¡®new daddy¡¯ of his ¨C the horrible past trauma. And he wouldn¡¯t have gone down the wrong path to hurt innocent people, either.
¡°If getting hit is painful and scary, don¡¯t fight. And don¡¯t hit anyone, too.¡±
Su-hyeun lowered himself and matched his eyeline with Thomas¡¯s.
[Third Eye- Predator.]
¡°Euh, euh, woo....¡±
After meeting Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes from up close, Thomas slowly copsed to the ground. He had exhausted a lot of magical energy trying to maintain the darkened world, and his mental state was unstable, as well. Then he was subjected to the effects of the ¡®Predator¡¯ on top of everything, so it was no wonder he passed out, just like that.
¡°Sleep for the time being. Also...¡± Su-hyeun said while standing back up, his eyes still fixed on the unconscious Thomas on the floor. ¡°I¡¯ll see youter.¡±
Shu-wuwuu-
The ck Forest¡¯s effect dissipated, and the bright light showered down on Thomas¡¯s figure.
* * *
The first round of the finals were over.
Of the 66 finalists, 33 managed to make it through. There were quite a few injuries among the eliminated. That was because the matches were one on one battles¡ªa battle that could onlye to an end after one side surrendered, or became incapacitated and couldn¡¯t continue.
Two days of rest were dered after thepetition.
Hak-joon managed to barely scrape into the second round. Rather ironically, it was Song Hyeong-gi who failed to progress.
His opponent was a bad match-up for him. Unlike how it was with Hak-joon, who got lucky and fought against someoneparatively weaker in his one on one fight, Song Hyeong-gi drew the short straw and had to fight against a famous American awakener, Ashlyn.
¡°Bro? Where are you going?¡±
Hak-joon asked Su-hyeun, who was getting ready to leave as soon as he returned to their lodging.
Lee Ju-ho finishing up with ordering food and also entered the living room. ¡°Su-hyeun? You going somewhere?¡±
¡°Yeah. I¡¯ll be away for a day or so.¡±
¡°But, it hasn¡¯t been that long since thepetition. Aren¡¯t you tired? You should get some rest first.¡±
¡°Nah, I¡¯m fine. It¡¯s not like I had to work hard, anyway.¡±
He wasn¡¯t wrong there. Not many people passed the first round as unscathed as Su-hyeun, after all.
¡°But, where are you going?¡±
¡°Well, there¡¯s a ce.¡± Hak-joon¡¯s question was simply answered by Su-hyeun as he fixed his shoes. ¡°I¡¯ll be back soon.¡±
* * *
aang, smash-
A booze bottle resting on the table rolled and dropped to the floor. The noise jolted awake a man named Mitch Hewer, sleeping on the nearby couch.
¡°Urgh, motherf*cking...¡±
Mitch Hewer massaged his forehead as if a migraine was assaulting him. He gingerly sat up from his spot. He got royally pissed off after noticing the shattered bottle and its contents spilled on the floor.
¡°Dammit, what a waste of fine booze.¡±
He managed to stand up from the couch and trudged towards the kitchen. He opened the fridge¡¯s door, only to be smacked in the face by the rotting odor.
Drop, thud-
Large bs of meat fell out from inside the fridge. He silently stared at them for a while, before picking them up and shoving them back inside.
¡°Tsk. I better do something about them, and fast.¡±
He cleaned the mess on the floor with an irritated face, then began rummaging inside the fridge. It was around then that he spotted a can of beer already resting on top of the dining table.
Pop-.
He popped the lid of can, and brought the lukewarm beer to his mouth. He might be hungry right now, but having some alcohol in his system made everything feel better just a little.
¡°Lukewarm, but it¡¯s not that bad.¡±
He continued to chug the beer down while taking a good look at the messy state of this house.
It took only a few days to turn the ce into a pigsty. Never mind the stink of booze, all sorts of trash was strewn about on the floor, barely leaving any room to stand.
¡°I guess I¡¯ll make that punk clean up the ce when hees back. Tsk.¡±
Mitch Hewer muttered to himself and headed back to the living room. He remembered that he forgot to catch up on a very important match because of his binge drinking.
¡°He did get past the preliminaries, but did he get to the finals, I wonder?¡±
The results were exceeding his wildest expectations.
Mitch Hewer chuckled happily. That boy might not be rted to him by blood, but just by passing the preliminaries and joining the Ranking Wars¡¯ finals, a huge amount of reward money was about to fall on hisps.
On top of this, that level of abilities meant that the money the boy earned in the future by going around various dungeons should be quite considerable, as well.
It was time to leave this stinky, dingy little corner of the world, indeed.
Ding-dong-
Just as he turned on the TV, someone rang the doorbell. Mitch Hewer¡¯s gaze remained locked on the TV as he stood up from the couch. The screen was now showing the results from the Ranking wars.
-The awakener who defeated Thomas Mathiras and stepped up to the final stages is the South Korean S-rank, Kim Su-hyeun...
¡°Who is it?¡±
¡°Daddy!¡±
Mitch Hewer frowned deeply from the newsing out from the TV as well as the voice from outside the door. His visitor was none other than Thomas.
The boy did enter the mainpetition, but failed to get through to the final stages and had to return home.
¡°This goddamn retard, why does he sound so damn happy...?¡±
Initially, Mitch Hewer thought that it¡¯d be excellent if Thomas just managed to pass the preliminaries. But now that the boy did manage that, of course, his greed would grow in response, as well.
He wanted Thomas to enter the final stages and bring home an even bigger cash reward, if possible, so anger spiked in his mind the moment he heard the boy¡¯s excited voice.
Creaaak-
¡°Hey, you damn punk. You goddamn failed, so why....¡±
¡°Daddy! A friend came with me!¡±
The worn-out door was flung open, and Thomas revealed himself. And there was another face, of a stranger, right behind him.
The kid¡¯s mind was unstable, and not only that, he was mentally impaired as well. But, such a kid brought home a ¡®friend¡¯?
<< A friend? This punk? >>
Something felt off.
Mitch Hewer dazedly stared at the face of the man that showed up together with Thomas. For some reason, it kind of looked rather familiar.
<< No, it can¡¯t be.... >>
¡°Hello to you.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s greeting caused Mitch Hewer¡¯s eyes to nearly jump out of their sockets. Thetter hurriedly spun his head behind and began alternating his gaze between Kim Su-hyeun¡¯s face on TV¡¯s screen as well as the man¡¯s face standing right before him.
¡°I¡¯m Thomas¡¯s friend, the name¡¯s Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes were gleaming coldly with a murderous light.
Chapter 134
Chapter 134: Chapter 134
Mitch Hewer became flustered from Su-hyeun¡¯s greeting.
It wasn¡¯t hard to understand the South Korean, since his English was rather good, but that didn¡¯t mean his motives for being here would be any easier to understand.
¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s question was met by Mitch Hewer grabbing Thomas by the arm and yanking him inside the door.
¡°Why don¡¯t you just go away, man? There¡¯s nothing to see here,¡± said Mitch Hewer.
Creak-
Whoosh-
Su-hyeun stopped the door about to close and swung it wide open. ¡°I had to travel a considerable distance to get here, so pardon my intrusion. I won¡¯t ept no for an answer.¡±
¡°What are you....¡±
He ignored Mitch Hewer¡¯s protest and stepped inside the house. Thetter panicked and started shouting at him.
¡°What¡¯s the meaning of this?! Get out before I call the cops!¡±
¡°I¡¯ll be visiting themter to write up an affidavit, so don¡¯t you worry about that now.¡±
Step, step-
Su-hyeun waltzed right into the living room. Mitch Hewer couldn¡¯t even do as he threatened¡ªcall the cops¡ªand could only nervously rack his brain.
<< Goddammit, why did this punk show up in here? >>
The TV was still talking about the news rted to the Ranking Wars. During the event, Su-hyeun just so happened to be one of the individuals who distinguished himself alongside Gordon Rohan. Even Thomas found it impossible to subdue the South Korean.
Well, he came back here after losing to Su-hyeun in the match, after all.
<< He won¡¯t find out, right? It¡¯s gonna be alright, isn¡¯t it? >>
A punk who came here with the pretense of being Thomas¡¯s friend wouldn¡¯t be rude enough to search through every nook and cranny of the house without permission, now would he?
In the meantime, Thomas was happily smiling away while utterly oblivious to Mitch¡¯s internal conflict. Mitch Hewer thought that this must be his first time seeing that red-haired idiot smile that brightly.
¡°Your house is rather squalid, isn¡¯t it.¡±
Su-hyuen¡¯s words caused Mitch Hewer to frown deeply. The first thing he said after intruding in someone¡¯s private abode was ¡°it¡¯s squalid¡±? He had to know how rude that was.
¡°If that¡¯s all you¡¯re going to say, how about getting the hell out of my ce? I don¡¯t remember inviting someone like you in.¡±
¡°Have your son¡¯s friends evere here before?¡±
¡°What was that?¡±
¡°And when your son came back home, did you ever hug him once?¡±
¡°What bullsh*t are you talking about?¡± Mitch Hewer asked, but Su-hyeun was already moving towards the kitchen. The former grew even more anxious and quickly stood in the way.
¡°Thomas! Hurry up and drag this bastard outside!¡±
His loud yell was met with Thomas¡¯s surprised expression. Thomas looked a little different than he did when he was in the arena. He looked anxious and scared of something.
¡°D-daddy, are, are you... angry?¡±
¡°Thomas! Hurry up and....¡± Mister Hewer couldn¡¯t finish his sentence and just stood there, frozen. His body stiffened, and his voice couldn¡¯te out. It was as if his body had turned into stone even though his mind was still clear.
¡°You know, I was initially nning toe here and ask you nicely to let Thomas go, but....¡± Su-hyeun said as he walked over to the fridge. The foul smell wafting around the living room steadily grew worse as he got closer to the kitchen. ¡°But, this smell is really getting on my nerves a bit, you see.¡±
Creak-
The ancient fridge creaked noisily as it opened. And the source of that disgusting smell revealed itself.
Tumble, drop-
bs of meat filling the fridge slowly cascaded down. At a casual nce, they seemed like slices of pork shoved inside without a care in the world. But a deeper look would reveal the actual truth.
Su-hyeun¡¯s expression turned unsightly as he picked up one of the bs of meat¡ªa severed human foot. ¡°Well, you can already tell that it¡¯s not a pig trotter.¡±
He knew that this guy wasn¡¯t a ¡°normal-minded¡± father figure even beforeing here. But he certainly didn¡¯t expect this Mitch Hewer bastard to be this much of a scum. A supposed father with alcohol addiction, records of domestic violence, and the ¡°hobby¡± of murder?
<< No, wait a minute. He¡¯s not really Thomas¡¯s father, is he? >>
Not a drop of blood was shared between the two, and he never treated Thomas as his son either, anyway. So, their rtionship only existed within the confines of thew, that was all.
¡°You don¡¯t have the qualifications to be a father.¡±
Vrrrrr-
This time, it was against a regr civilian without any abilities but Su-hyeun didn¡¯t even hesitate to use his powers. His magical energy spread out everywhere and began tightening around Mitch Hewer¡¯s neck.
¡°Cough, cough! Wheeze...!¡± Hewer coughed and copsed on his butt. Blood leaked out with each wheezing and cough. He realized that, at this rate, he¡¯d really die here.
Right at that moment...
¡°Stop that!¡±
Scatter-
Thomas hurriedly jumped in between the two men and scattered Su-hyeun¡¯s magical energy.
Thetter¡¯s gaze turned to Thomas, busy shaking his head and opening his mouth. ¡°You mustn¡¯t do that.¡±
¡°Cough, cough! M-my son, son...!¡±
Mitch Hewer remained copsed on his butt as he desperately called out to Thomas. It seemed that he had found his lifeline in this situation. Su-hyeun stared at Thomas blocking his path towards the murderer and asked.
¡°Do you still think of that bastard as your dad?¡±
¡°If, if daddy isn¡¯t here....¡± Thomas¡¯s head dropped as he replied in a soft murmur. ¡°I... I¡¯ll... really be alone....¡±
Su-hyeun could only look at him with pity.
What he seemed to fear the most was being left alone. It was rather likely that he was still traumatized by his mother abandoning him and running away all those years ago.
¡°T-that¡¯s right. Thomas can¡¯t live without me. No one in this world can take care of this boy except me, you hear?¡± Mitch Hewer cried out, sounding almost hysterical, after noticing that Su-hyeun was hesitating slightly from what Thomas had said.
He probably figured that Su-hyeun was trying to kill him for the sake of Thomas¡¯s wellbeing.
¡°T-Thomas, my boy. You¡¯re a good boy. Aren¡¯t you? T-take your friend and quickly leave. Your daddy¡¯s going to forgive you for everything that happened today if you do that, okay?¡±
¡°Daddy, but...¡±
¡°Don¡¯t talk back to me, and hurry the hell up! I said, take that bastard and get out of my sight already!!¡±
Maybe his fear was to me, because he kept screaming hysterically.
Thomas flinched from the scream, curled up, and began shivering away. It was a slightly different reaction from during the Ranking Wars. The trauma caused by Mitch Hewer had been that intense for him.
¡°Keep that piehole of yours shut, will you.¡±
Shuwuwu-
¡°Heuh, heuh-uh-uhk....¡±
Mitch Hewer grasped his throat with his hand as Su-hyuen¡¯s magical energy began squeezing his neck once more. It felt like an invisible hand was choking him to death.
Su-hyuen easily shut Hewer off and shifted his gaze over to Thomas.
¡°Thomas.¡±
He didn¡¯t reply ¨C too busy shivering away, even now.
¡°There¡¯s no need to lean on a piece of trash like him.¡±
¡°But, but....¡±
¡°If it¡¯s too scary being alone, give me a call. Then, you won¡¯t be alone anymore.¡±
¡°....Call you?¡±
Su-hyeun shrugged, then ced his hand on Thomas¡¯s shivering shoulder. ¡°You said I¡¯m a friend, right? Something like that is nothing between friends, you know. And besides, there are plenty of good people in this world, people who are far, far better than this scumbag. What I¡¯m saying here is...¡± He stopped there and scratched his head, not knowing what else to say, before eventually settling on his next words. ¡°All I¡¯m saying is, don¡¯t get too hung up on rtionships because you¡¯re scared of being alone.¡±
¡°...¡±
¡°Please, let me through, Thomas. That scumbag isn¡¯t worth your protection.¡±
Su-hyeun finished there. Thomas, still in the middle, alternated his gaze between the South Korean and Hewer. No matter how young you were, you were still bound to notice things. Such as, if he moved away from this spot, Mitch Hewer would be dead for sure.
¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡±
¡°T-Tho-mas....¡±
Thomas¡¯s head dropped once more, and Mitch Hewer could only cry out in sheer fluster. Of course, most of his voice failed to evene out.
Thomas nced back at his adopted father, beforepletely turning his head away.
It was at that moment Mitch Hewer thought he heard a heavy rock fall inside his mind. At almost the same time, Su-hyeun¡¯s footsteps were closing in on him.
Step, step-
Hewer¡¯s eyes grew wider and wider as Su-hyeun got closer and closer. Tears of pain began dripping down from his widened, bloodshot-eyes.
¡°Tho... ma.... s....¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I won¡¯t kill you.¡±
Wuduk, wududuk-
¡°Kkeuhk, kkeok....¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s hand grabbed Hewer¡¯s thigh, and crushed the man¡¯s bones right there and then.
¡°But your body will never be able to take another person¡¯s life. You¡¯ll rot away inside a jail cell for the rest of your life, or get judged in the court of thew ordingly.¡±
¡°P-please, don¡¯t kill....¡±
¡°Right, I won¡¯t kill you. But...¡±
Wudududuk-
¡°Uwaaaahhhk-!!¡±
Su-hyeun crushed the bones on the other thigh and continued. ¡°But, that doesn¡¯t mean you¡¯re forgiven.¡±
Sometimeter.
The arrest of the serial killer haunting New York City¡¯s low-ie neighborhoods was reported by the media, which was soon swiftly followed by the announcement of his trial and execution.
The murderer was found in his own home, unconscious, with both of his legs crushed. The person who provided the tip had vanished without a trace.
* * *
Adel Castle.
He was Europe¡¯s most famous awakener.
Currently, inside a massive conference hall, numerous awakeners had gathered around this man, who represented the 28 nations of the European Union.
¡°It¡¯s so wondrous to see all of you gathered here like this. You¡¯re all renowned for your independent personalities, after all.¡±
Adel Castle acted as their representative and got the proceedings on the way. All of the folks present were quite proud individuals, but none dared to voice a contrasting opinion from his.
It didn¡¯t matter what anyone said, he was one of the top awakeners in the world, ranked alongside the likes of Gordon Rohan. As such, he was more than qualified to lead this conference.
¡°What business do you have with us?¡±
¡°As you may well know, we¡¯re standing on a very important crossroad.¡±
¡°An important crossroad?¡±
¡°I¡¯m referring to the Ranking Wars, of course. Our honor is at stake, and so does our national prestige.¡±
¡®National prestige¡¯.
That wasn¡¯t a term often muttered by awakeners, but it was a different story with Adel Castle. Even before he gained his powers, he was already an aristocrat in Great Britain. His love for his country ran extremely deep, and so did his pride in being a British.
Besides, he wasn¡¯t wrong with his assertion.
It was rather clear that the yardstick used to measure each nation¡¯s awakenerbat strength would undergo a fundamental shift after this Ranking Wars.
If the numbers of the S-Ranks in a country was used to measure itsbat strength until now, then in the future, it¡¯d be the individual awakener¡¯s rankings that determined the ranking of each country, instead.
¡°We can¡¯t be stuck in the shadows of these three nations¡ªAmerica, South Korea, and China, forever and ever, now can we, everyone?¡±
When Great Britain was mentioned, people usually referred to it as the fourth in the rankings. It fell behind China, who had pushed forward with its massive numbers, and even to America and South Korea, who enjoyed greater numbers of high-ranked awakeners.
And the current Ranking Wars was a perfect opportunity to overturn that ranking in the blink of an eye.
COMMENT
¡°You sure know how to beat around the bush, don¡¯t you? Okay, so what? Are you suggesting everyone in the finals should all work extra hard together? Like, we should gather around, share some booze and cheer everyone on?¡±
A Swiss awakener famed for his short fuse voiced his displeasure. He failed during the first round and hadn¡¯t advanced to the finals. That¡¯s why he was thinking that there was no reason to sit here and listen to Adel Castle¡¯s stories.
¡°I have two matters to discuss with you.¡± Adel Castle raised two fingers, then folded one while continuing. ¡°First. I suggest to you the establishment of a European Awakener Federation.¡±
¡°An awakener federation?¡±
¡°So, it finally got the green-light?¡±
The European Awakener Federation.
Anyone interested in the informationing out of Europe would know what that was, since matters rted to the federation had been discussed for a long time within the European Union.
This subject was now being brought up as if it was nothing special, that it was something inevitable finally happening for real.
COMMENT
More than half of the awakeners present in the conference were already thinking about theposition of the federation. When many people joined up, the gathering would prove to be a powerful force regardless of what happened in the Ranking Wars.
¡°And the second thing is?¡±
¡°The second matter is...¡± Adel Castle folded the remaining finger. ¡°Please, lend me your aid, everyone.¡±
He spoke with a brightly-smiling face.
Lend him aid ¨C the main topic of the conference had been revealed now. But the ¡®how¡¯ was going to be tricky to discuss. His aim was, without a shadow of a doubt, overall victory in the Ranking Wars.
¡°Help you? How?¡±
¡°There are hindrances in my way.¡± Adel Castle raised two fingers once more. ¡°Two of them.¡±
¡°...Gordon Rohan, and Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
Someone murmured the two names.
Adel Castle nodded. ¡°Correct.¡±
¡°Wait, could you be...?¡±
¡°It¡¯ll be fine as long as those two aren¡¯t around.¡±
No one here was too slow to understand the gist of the story now that it hade this far.
The surroundings were stirred up in an instant.
¡°If it were only Kim Su-hyeun, fine. But....¡±
¡°Isn¡¯t Gordon Rohan a bit too dangerous?¡±
¡°You¡¯re right. A few of us can manhandle him somehow, sure. But dealing with the aftermath will be tricky.¡±
Adel Castle shook his head at those worry-filled voices. ¡°Indeed, he¡¯s insanely wealthy and possesses incredible power, but, the fact is, even the American government doesn¡¯t view him in such favorable light. He¡¯s just too independent-minded, and has frequently rejected requests from their government, after all.¡±
¡°Okay. Is this your personal request, or did the EUe up with the idea first?¡±
¡°It¡¯s both.¡±
¡°And what about the consequences?¡±
¡°There will be none.¡±
That was a confident, straightforward answer.
If indeed the EU was getting involved here, then there shouldn¡¯t be too big a problem in dealing with the aftermaths. Even more so if the American government and Gordon Rohan were at loggerheads, as imed.
¡°For now, why don¡¯t you tell us the details first?¡±
¡°You made a wise decision,¡± said Adel Castle, a deep smirk etched on his face.
Only one day remained until the start of the finals of the Ranking Wars.
The story was quietly but quickly marching forward.
Chapter 135
Chapter 135: Chapter 135
Act 2
Hak-joon was sitting in the living room with his eyes closed, thinking over the fight he¡¯d had during the Ranking Wars.
<< I got lucky. >>
He knew that he wasn¡¯t skilled enough to get to the finals. He¡¯d only managed to pass the preliminaries because the team he was assigned to didn¡¯t fight amongst themselves and got through their mission, that was all.
Then, his opponent during the first round just happened to be an awakener specializing in recovery-type skills. So far, he had been riding his luck. If he had to go through a simr path as Su-hyeun, then he¡¯d have dropped out during the prelims, that¡¯s for sure.
<< What would¡¯ve happened if I fought against Thomas....? >>
He had witnessed Thomas¡¯s strange skill through the disy screens. Although that particr skill¡¯s name was unknown, Hak-joon knew that his abilities were inadequate to break out of that.
Su-hyeun¡¯s methods always had been based on the overwhelming, absolute difference in power level between himself and his opponents. Such a method would only work for people like him and maybe Gordon Rohan and...just these two, really.
<< What if I fought against Gordon Rohan? >>
He imagined how he would fight the American in his mind. It wasn¡¯t a pretty picture.
<< What if I fought Su-hyeun, then? >>
He couldn¡¯t even picture that. Hak-joon had no clue of the true extent of Su-hyeun¡¯s abilities, since he¡¯d never seen him go all-out before.
Su-hyuen, Thomas, and Gordon Rohan.
Compared to those three, he was just too weak.
¡°Hah-ah-¡± Hak-joon sighed.
Lee Ju-ho, sitting next to him asked, ¡°Is something wrong?¡±
¡°I was thinking that I¡¯m still way behind, that¡¯s all.¡±
Lee Ju-ho¡¯s expression soured as he heard Hak-joon¡¯s reply, ¡°Is that something you should say in front of me?¡±
He¡¯d been an awakener for far longer than Hak-joon, after all.
¡°Oh, that, uh....¡± Hak-joon could only smile awkwardly and avoid meeting Lee Ju-ho¡¯s piercing gaze.
He knew he should be resting, yet his body continued to itch for some reason. He stood up from the couch, wondering if he should go somewhere to loosen up, but then...
¡°I¡¯m home.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s voice drifted from the foyer.
Hak-joon was so engrossed in his thoughts that he failed to notice Su-hyeun¡¯s return. He got up and walked over to the foyer to wee back his bro, returning from almost a full day¡¯s absence.
¡°Hey, bro. Wee ba....?¡±
¡°Uh? Both of you are here?¡±
Su-hyeun was about to greet Hak-joon, as well as Lee Ju-ho, alsoing to the entrance, but btedly noticed that both men were frozen stiff, eyes wide.
All thanks to Thomas, cautiously following behind him.
¡°B-bro, behind you...¡±
¡°Oh, him. He said he had no ce to go, so I told him toe with me. Why don¡¯t you say hello, Thomas.¡±
Thomas listened Su-hyeun and awkwardly greeted the others from behind his back. Since the greeting itself was in pretty simple English, understanding the dude wasn¡¯t a problem. No, the real problem was something else.
¡°Will this be okay?¡± Hak-joon asked.
¡°Yeah, it¡¯s fine. Let me exin what happened.¡±
Su-hyeun went on to exin Thomas¡¯s situation to Hak-joon and Lee Ju-ho. After hearing everything, they began to see Thomas in a slightly different light.
¡°Ah, that means from now on....¡±
¡°I should say that he really doesn¡¯t have anywhere to go. Until the Ranking Wars are over and we¡¯re ready to leave, he¡¯s going to crash here with us. And then I¡¯ll find him a house once we get back. He¡¯ll probably go back to climbing the tower afterward.¡±
¡°Meaning, he¡¯ll be with us until then?¡±
¡°Yeah. So, please, do try to look after him.¡±
¡°Even if you ask us that, I don¡¯t speak a lick of English, so....¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry, I¡¯ll be the interpreter,¡± said Lee Ju-ho.
¡°Bro? Since when do you know English?¡± Hak-joon asked, eyes wide.
Lee Ju-jo ignored Hak-joon and furrowed his brows ever so slightly. ¡°Su-hyeun, someone was looking for you while you were out.¡±
¡°Who was it?¡±
¡°It was the other Korean S-Rank awakener besides our little group. Name¡¯s Bak Yun-gyu. Besides the name, I don¡¯t know much about him.¡±
¡°Bak Yun-gyu....?¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s brows rose at hearing that name.
Lee Ju-ho was puzzled and asked him a question. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? You know him?¡±
¡°No, not personally. But I do know what kind of a person he is.¡±
Su-hyeun knew that he was in America as well, but since they weren¡¯t acquainted at all, he didn¡¯t expect the other side to seek him out first. Also, that man had never been too interested in other people¡¯s business, anyway.
<< Looks like I¡¯ll meet him far sooner than I thought. >>
Bak Yun-gyu.
The awakener affiliated with the Korean Awakener Authority, and also the man who taught Su-hyeun how to fight in his previous life.
More importantly, South Korea¡¯s strongest awakener, as far as Su-hyeun knew.
That was Bak Yun-gyu.
* * *
Inside a spacious cafe within the Gordon Tower:
Currently, the ce was off-limits to everyone until the end of the Ranking Wars, yet one man was using it as if he had rented the whole ce out.
He was a clean-cut man in his mid-thirties, his ck hair cropped short like a soldier¡¯s, his face angr like an actor¡¯s.
With a cup of coffee bought from the convenience store in one hand, he was observing the countryside of California spreading outside the windows.
¡°....You came faster than I thought,¡± the man said while turning around, as a familiar face walked into the cafe. ¡°Mister Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Pleasure to make your acquaintance, Mister Bak Yun-gyu.¡±
Bak Yun-gyu nodded his head at Su-hyeun¡¯s greeting and stood up from his chair. He walked closer and pushed forward another cup of coffee he bought earlier from a convenience store.
¡°This ce isn¡¯t operating at the moment, so I had one ready beforehand. We¡¯re meeting in a cafe, so I thought that at least coffee should be avable.¡±
¡°Thank you. I¡¯ll enjoy it.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not sure if such a cheap cup of coffee will satisfy your pte. People¡¯s taste buds seem to have be rather discerningtely.¡±
¡°Tastes good in your mouth but is bad for your health. In that regard, this cup is better than okay, actually.¡±
Su-hyeun received the cup, took the lid off, and emptied half of the coffee inside in one go, since Bak Yun-gyu had already finished his coffee a while ago, after growing weary from all the waiting.
The lukewarm cup of coffee had no aroma, just the bittersweet taste.
¡°You¡¯re exactly as I expected.¡±
Bak Yun-gyu was observing Su-hyeun as if he found the person before him quite interesting.
¡°In what regard?¡±
¡°You¡¯re honest, informal, yet still courteous at the same time.¡±
¡°Who did you hear that from?¡±
¡°From Kang Seung-hoon, a friend that¡¯s working for me. I¡¯m sure you don¡¯t know who he is. But he told me that he received your help during the Anyang city outbreak incident.¡±
Kang Seung-hoon.
Su-hyeun, of course, knew the name. They had worked together in his previous life, after all.
Right under Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s wings, no less.
¡°May I ask why you wished to see me?¡±
¡°At first, I wasn¡¯t interested in you. I believed that it wasn¡¯t meant to be, since you rejected the offers from the awakener authority.¡±
¡°I feel bad about how that business turned out.¡±
¡°Of course. It¡¯s quite rare for any S-Ranks to want to join the authority, after all. And it doesn¡¯t take a genius to figure out what the director said in order to entice you.¡±
Bak Yun-gyu didn¡¯t try to hide what¡¯s on his mind and spoke without holding back.
And he was just as ruthless while criticizing the director afterward. He was quite strict with the definition of right and wrong, and didn¡¯t hesitate at all to speak up or to uphold that ideal.
He was a soldier, through and through. Not only that, the most ideal, perfect soldier that everyone would picture in their heads.
That was why he wished to join the authority, as well. A life lived for one¡¯s country was the story of his life, after all.
¡°I¡¯ll be going back to South Korea tomorrow,¡± said Bak Yun-gyu.
Indeed, this meeting happened back then, too. In the middle of his participation in the Ranking Wars, Bak Yun-gyu had to return to Korea.
Su-hyeun never learned what the real reason for that was¡ªexcept that Bak Yun-gyu was assigned a special mission by the authority, and that was about it.
¡°But what about the finals?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°It¡¯s unfortunate, but it can¡¯t be helped.¡±
¡°Why are you telling me this?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sure you can already guess from what I¡¯ve said so far.¡± Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s eyes narrowed to slits as he stared at Su-hyeun. He then finally revealed the reason. ¡°I want to fight you, at least once.¡±
Thought so.
Su-hyeun sighed under his breath.
Personality-wise, Bak Yun-gyu was never a fan of fighting. There was only one reason why he wanted to fight despite his personal preferences.
<< Because he¡¯s worried about the future of South Korea. >>
No matter what anyone said, Su-hyeun was one of the top awakeners currently active. Not only that, before Hak-joon¡¯s entrance, he had been the youngest ever S-Rank.
And that was precisely why Bak Yun-gyu believed that the future of Korea rested on Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulders. He was probably curious about who ¡®Su-hyeun¡¯ the man was like, too.
If it was any other time, Su-hyeun would¡¯ve tly refused. There was nothing to gain by fighting Bak Yun-gyu.
But...
¡°Let¡¯s head to the arena,¡± said Su-hyeun.
He wanted to confirm it himself¡ªto see how wide the gap between himself and Bak Yun-gyu was.
* * *
With the Ranking Wars temporarily suspended, the underground arena was eerily empty. Su-hyeun and Bak Yun-gyu strode to the middle of this deserted arena.
On their way there, they spoke about this and that. Most of their conversation consisted of talking crap about the authority¡¯s director, though.
¡°That man, he can be just a bit too much. I wonder if it should bebeled as ¡®safety at all cost¡¯... Put nicely, that¡¯s the case. But, in all honesty, such a side can make him look very selfish, instead. There¡¯s no denying that.¡±
Bak Yun-gyu knew the director¡¯s personality very well, just as much as Su-hyeun did. Since they had worked in the same organization, it seemed that they had no choice but to know a lot about each other.
¡°How does the ¡®team¡¯ look at the moment?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Team?¡±
¡°Yes. I heard from the director that the authority was currently ¡®raising¡¯ a team. From what I hear, they went active about a year ago?¡±
The authority¡¯s awakener team built around Bak Yun-gyu consisted of people acknowledged as some of the very best in South Korea. Each and every one of those awakeners was skilled enough to upy high-ranking directorial positions in mostrge-sized guilds.
The team¡¯s existence hadn¡¯t been announced publicly yet, but those in the know already knew all about it.
¡°Well... it¡¯s not so bad. I¡¯m the only S-Ranker in the team, but our average rank has risen quite high, so it¡¯s alright.¡±
¡°But, you can do the jobs of several average S-Rankers, can¡¯t you?¡±
Su-hyeun was well aware of Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s strength. Although his prowess wasn¡¯t well known since he was affiliated with the authority, Su-hyeun believed him to be South Korea¡¯s own Gordon Rohan.
Of course, he might be ways off from the real Gordon Rohan, but still.
Bak Yun-gyu replied, ¡°Even if that¡¯s the case, there¡¯s a clear difference between one pair of hands and many. Even if I¡¯m strong, I can¡¯t raid several dungeons at once. There are definitely limitations to being just one person.¡±
Su-hyeun agreed with Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s line of thinking.
One pair of hands couldn¡¯t win against multiple¡ª admittedly, this saying had be something of a clich¨¦ by now. Right now, Su-hyeun possessed more than enough power to fight against dozens, hundreds, or even thousands all by himself, after all.
Even then, limits clearly existed.
That was why he was looking forward with bated breath to Hak-joon¡¯s growth.
¡°I guess this far will be enough.¡± Bak Yun-gyu, walking in the lead, stopped after reaching the center of the arena and turned to face Su-hyeun.
Su-hyeun raised his head and replied, ¡°Looks like we have a few spectators.¡±
¡°Spectators?¡±
Bak Yun-gyu btedly picked up the presence of people he failed to notice earlier.
Above their heads, toward the arena¡¯s ceiling¡ªtwo people were currently watching them.
¡°We got busted.¡±
¡°They found us.¡±
They were Gordon Rohan and Johnny Brad. The two men muttered in a resigned fashion.
¡°What are you two doing up there? Are you nning to peep on us or something?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Technically speaking, this here is still part of my house. So, how will that be a problem?¡± Gordon Rohan replied.
He wasn¡¯t wrong there.
Besides, Su-hyeun wasn¡¯t unduly bothered by it. He shrugged his shoulders and replied, ¡°I don¡¯t mind either way.¡±
¡°I was nning to throw both of you out if you said it¡¯s a problem, but well, aren¡¯t you a confident one. You¡¯ll probably have to fight me tomorrow, though?¡±
Gordon Rohan¡¯s question only made Su-hyeun smirk slightly.
¡°I can handle such a handicap.¡±
Chapter 136
Chapter 136: Chapter 136
Gordon Rohan¡¯s brows quivered.
¡®Handicap¡¯. Never before in his life did someone throw that word in his face. As such, he kind of felt strange. But he didn¡¯t feel that the other guy was being insolent at all.
His narrowed eyes shifted over to Bak Yun-gyu next. ¡°I heard you need to go back to your country today?¡±
¡°Yes, unfortunately. Things there need my attention.¡±
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s English was more than passable. His pronunciation might be a bit sketchy here and there, but there didn¡¯t seem to be any problems as far asmunicating his intentions was concerned.
¡°In that case, we¡¯ll have to observe the fight even if you don¡¯t like the idea. If we want you properly reflected in the rankings, that is.¡±
¡°What are you talking about?¡± Bak Yun-gyu asked as if he couldn¡¯t understand. It seemed that being reflected in the rankings was news to him.
¡°The Ranking Wars isn¡¯t simply about finding one winner, after all. As the name implies, it¡¯s also to assign appropriate rankings to everyone participating, all the way from the first ce downward, based on your skills.¡±
¡°Could the standard criteria for judging that be...?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t get any wrong ideas. It won¡¯t be me, but Johnny Brad over here who¡¯ll be assigning the rankings. Depending on the abilities you show, even if you fail at the preliminaries, you can get a higher ranking than someone who made it to the main matches. Of course, reaching the mainpetition will score you extra points, but still.¡±
It was a simple way of doing things. To think that just Johnny Brad alone, a judge of the proceedings, would use his judgment to assign different rankings. Even if his decisions proved to be fair and impartial, people were bound toin since there were no clear judging criteria.
Gordon Rohan continued, ¡°I know what you¡¯re thinking, but so what? If you¡¯ve got a problem with my decision, why don¡¯t youe up here and have a go at me? I¡¯ll acknowledge anyone as better than me as long as you manage to defeat me.¡±
Those words always automatically got a groan from all who heard them.
<< But then again, this ranking isn¡¯t supposed to be an officially recognized one, anyway. >>
The rankings created through the Ranking Wars, plus the subsequent ranking list established afterward, came from the data collected by Gordon Rohan. People used it as a yardstick because it was somewhat credible in how the rankings were assigned, and they were always quite urate, as well.
¡°The fight between you two will be observed by Johnny Brad and myself, and, by using the unofficial info, we¡¯ll assign the correct ranking for Awakener Bak Yun-gyu. Although, I don¡¯t have much to say if you¡¯re not really interested in this sort of thing.¡±
¡°Mister Gordon.¡±
¡°Mm?¡±
Bak Yun-gyu looked up at Gordon Rohan and spoke up. ¡°Next time when Ie back to San Francisco, I¡¯d like to have a match with you.¡±
RUUUMBLE-
While saying that, he began awakening his magical energy. Su-hyeun matched him, and awoke his own magical energy while unsheathing his sword.
Gordon Rohan watched the battle between the two begin, and muttered with a slick grin, ¡°You cane at me any time.¡±
Wuu-ooong-
Crack, spliiiit-
Small cracks began spreading on the arena¡¯s floor, supposed to be reinforced by the powers of Ether stones.
Both Su-hyeun and Bak Yun-gyu were using swords.
Bak Yun-gyu observed Su-hyeun¡¯s form and opened his mouth. ¡°I¡¯ll go first, then.¡±
¡°Help yourself.¡±
Pah-aaaht!
Bak Yun-gyu vanished.
No, he didn¡¯t really disappear; his speed explosively rose up so fast that it looked like he just had vanished for a moment there.
CLAAAANG-!
Su-hyeun dragged his sword up and blocked Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s de.
Magical energy enveloping their colliding des scattered through the air. At the same time, several silhouettes materialized in their surroundings.
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s ¡®swords¡¯ thrust forward from all directions. But none of them were real.
Stab-
ng-!
The swords piercing Su-hyeun¡¯s body all disappeared, nothing but illusions. As for the real sword, naked eyes couldn¡¯t see it, but Su-hyeun used his senses to find out where it wasing from and ably deflected it away.
As the light in Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s eyes trembled, Su-hyeun started his counterattack.
Rumble-
Navy blue-colored divine me wrapped around Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. The intense heat and blinding luminescence caused Bak Yun-gyu to furrow his brows. Su-hyeun¡¯s burning de stabbed in rapidly.
Swiiish-
ng-!
Bak Yun-gyu hurriedly raised his sword and blocked the iing attack with the t part of the de. The impact he felt in his hands was quite considerable. Not only that, but the heat transmitted from the mes also caused his body¡¯s temperature to rise slightly.
[Mirage- Imitation.]
Rumble-
Blue mes suddenly enveloped Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s sword, as well. The ¡®Imitation¡¯ skill allowed him to copy a portion of his opponent¡¯s skill and use it as his own. Even if it wasn¡¯t a 100% perfect copy, the strength of the imitation would rise greatly depending on one¡¯s proficiency with the skill.
The power now carried in each of the sword strikes had be greater thanks to the divine me. But the real problem didn¡¯t have much to with the strength of the skill orck thereof.
<< What kind of physical strength is this....?? >>
Not just the power of the skill proved to be problematic, but even the strength behind each of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword strikes was rming.
And this wasn¡¯t some simple strength produced by one¡¯s muscles. No, this strength came from the form of each sword strike, as well as from his experience.
Most importantly...
<< His form. >>
Swiiish, swhoosh-
ng, cling-!
Bak Yun-gyu continued to think while urgently deflecting Su-hyeun¡¯s sword strikes.
<< It somehow... resembles mine. >>
It felt rather weird to him.
It was as if Su-hyeun was imitating Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s swordsmanship.
Could it be that he possessed such skill? Even though such thoughts entered Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s mind, he had to shake them away.
<< No. His swordsmanship exceeds mine. >>
Bak Yun-gyu thought he was rather knowledgeable when it came to all things swordsmanship.
While believing that one¡¯s swordsmanship was linked to one¡¯s stats, he trained hard thinking that an awakener who used swords as their main weapon should obviously know their way around one.
And thus, Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s eyes, Su-hyeun¡¯s swordsmanship seemed simr to his but at the same time, far, far more proficient than himself.
[High-grade swordsmanship.]
This was hard to ept.
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s sword was currently subjected to not just his considerable training, but even buffs of his skill.
This skill came about after he diligently raised his proficiency in the ¡®low-grade swordsmanship¡¯. Not only did the high-grade swordsmanship add an extrayer ofbat prowess on top, but it also corrected one¡¯s form and frame of the swordsmanship, too.
<< Could it be...? >>
In that case, there could only be one possibility¡ªthat Su-hyeun knew the exact same skill as he did. Not only that, he even possessed far, far higher proficiency to boot.
<< How is that possible? >>
Just learning the ¡®High-grade swordsmanship¡¯ wouldn¡¯t be the end of the story. You need to continuously swing your sword and get familiar with it. Only then would your proficiency rise higher and your sword start disying the true power of the skill itself.
What Su-hyeun showed here far exceeded the boundaries of things that talent alone could solve. No, this level could only be attained by adding time on top of one¡¯s talents and let them mature together.
Bak Yun-gyu took a big step back, and raised his sword high up to the sky. On top of his ¡®Imitation¡¯ skill currently active, he injected a far greater amount of magical energy to his de in an instant.
[One Sword Cutting Through Everything- Cutting the Sky.]
SWOOOSH-!
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s de descended downward.
He thought that Su-hyeun would obviously try to dodge this attack. The ¡®Cutting the Sky¡¯ technique was, as implied by the grandiose-sounding ¡®One Sword Cutting Through Everything¡¯ title, an incredibly powerful skill designed to end the battle with a single strike, after all.
But the choice Su-hyeun made waspletely unexpected. Because, not only did the young man choose not to dodge, but he instead decided to block the attack.
<< He wants to block it?? >>
He wasn¡¯t even using any special skills, either.
Did that mean he was looking down on me? Bak Yun-gyu thought like that, and, while nning to shatter Su-hyeun¡¯s sword, swung his weapon down hard.
CLAAAANG-!
CRAAACK-
The moment Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s sword smashed down, the arena¡¯s entire floor was powerfully cut in two.
It wasn¡¯t just the floor, however. The chasm ran almost all the way up to the ceiling. The power behind the attack was more than enough to slice an average building in half.
But then...
¡°That¡¯s quite heavy.¡±
Creak, creaaak-
Su-hyeun managed to block the hit in a straightforward manner, without employing any special skills whatsoever.
¡°...!¡±
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s brows shot up.
He was so flustered that he ended up reacting a fraction slower.
Pah-aht-
He btedly distanced himself from Su-hyeun and leaped up. He could easily tell, just then.
<< He didn¡¯t counterattack. >>
Not ¡®couldn¡¯t¡¯, but ¡®didn¡¯t¡¯.
Su-hyeun was going easy on him right now.
Grit-
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s pride was wounded. People back home called him the best awakener in South Korea. So, it was hard to ept that the difference between them was this great.
<< One more time! >>
Wuu-uuuong-
A simmering haze suddenly began rising up behind Bak Yun-gyu. Soon, a gigantic figure was generated from the rising veil of haze¡ªthe figure of a massive giant wielding a sword and wearing huge armor.
[Heavenly Sword King.]
Shing-shing
The giant took the same pose as Bak Yun-gyu. A sword strike made by such a massive physique, would have to have considerable destructive power behind it.
<< The ¡®Heavenly Sword King¡¯, is it? How nostalgic. >>
The ¡®Heavenly Sword King¡¯. That was the highest grade skill Bak Yun-gyu possessed.
The skill created a giant that moved exactly the same as he did. Its destructive power was more than enough to be called absolutely overwhelmingpared to any other skills out there.
Su-hyeun narrowed his eyes.
The ¡®Heavenly Sword King¡¯ being invoked now potentially meant Bak Yun-gyu was betting the oue of this fight on the next attack. Because, the current him couldn¡¯tpletely control this skill yet¡ªalthough the him of a few years in the future could.
RUMBLE-!
Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s sword was raised up high. The power of the giant Heavenly Sword King was now permeating the weapon. He mmed the loudly-buzzing sword down.
KWA-AAAANG-!
Crack! Craaaaack-
The reinforced arena¡¯s floor shattered into bits and pieces, and its debris was flung off in every direction. Su-hyeun was no longer there. Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s gaze quickly scanned his surroundings and located his target¡¯s silhouette.
¡°Over there!¡±
Swiiish, fuwhooooosh-
Kwa-dudududuk-
The Heavenly Sword King swung its massive weapon ording to Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s movements.
The entirety of the arena was overturned and sliced into ribbons. If it weren¡¯t for the Ether stone reinforcement, the whole ce would¡¯ve beenpletely destroyed, not a single piece left intact.
¡°That guy isn¡¯t too shabby,¡± said Gordon Rohan with a soft whistle as he looked at the events taking ce below. He sounded quite impressed.
Among all the South Korean S-Rank awakeners, almost no one had heard Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s name. But even then, those who knew him knew his skills were among the very best. From what he had shown so far, your average, run-of-the-mill S-Rank wouldn¡¯t even stand a chance against him.
¡°Even then...¡±
ng-!
The massive weapon of the Heavenly Sword King was blocked in the middle of its swing.
Gordon Rohan muttered while staring at Su-hyeun stopping that massive sword, ¡°As I thought, that kid is the true ¡®best¡¯ among the lot.¡±
Creak, creaaak-
Bak Yun-gyu increased the downward force on the sword. Yet, it wasn¡¯t budging an inch. His eyes trembled, ever so faintly, in disbelief.
<< He actually blocked it from the front? >>
Back when Su-hyeun defended against the ¡®Cutting the Sky¡¯, a single-use skill basically meant to finish things off in one hit, Bak Yun-gyu started truly acknowledging the young man¡¯s capabilities.
Even then, he didn¡¯t expect his opponent to be able to take the Heavenly Sword King¡¯s attack head-on and defend against it...
Wuduk, wududuk-
ck scales started sprouting all over Su-hyeun¡¯s arms. He too was muttering softly under his breath, sounding genuinely impressed, ¡°Your strength is really incredible.¡±
CLANG-!
Su-hyeun shoved the de of the Heavenly Sword King to the side and raised up his own sword. ¡°Unfortunately for you, so am I.¡±
Pah-aht-
His sword extended toward the Heavenly Sword King¡¯s figure. Bak Yun-gyu reflexively swung his de down toward his opponent rushing in from the front.
ng, aang-!
¡°...!¡±
The strength permeating Su-hyeun¡¯s sword had be even stronger than before.
Initially, Bak Yun-gyu believed that he could fight evenly against his opponent, but now, Su-hyeun was exceeding the power of Heavenly Sword King¡¯s attacks.
<< I¡¯m losing in terms of strength. >>
No, not just in strength alone. It was the same in regards to speed, as well.
The truth was, he lost in speed by a fraction and had no choice but to swing his weapon from an awkward posture, which in turn meant there wasn¡¯t much power behind his attacks.
<< No, wait. Is he deliberately breaking my posture down? >>
The Heavenly Sword King¡¯s posture was the same as his. Meaning, his own posture was breaking down.
There were two reasons why such a thing was happening. One, his opponent¡¯s much faster movement and reaction speed, and, two, calcted attacks.
In other words, Su-hyeun was fighting in a far more seasoned manner than he was.
Grip-
Bak Yun-gyu sensed his stubborn streak rear up just a little.
<< I¡¯ll finish this in one go! >>
There was no chance of victory if things dragged on, anyway.
The moment Su-hyeun¡¯s figure vanished for a blink, Bak Yun-gyu raised his sword up high.
[Heavenly Sword King.]
[One Sword Cutting Through Everything- Cutting the Sky.]
The tip of the Heavenly Sword King¡¯s de also raised up to the sky.
Bak Yun-gyu kept staring at his front. At that very moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s vanished figure reappeared once more, right before his nose.
Light gleamed from his eyes.
<< I¡¯ll cut him down. >>
Swiiish-
sh-!
The massive de of the Heavenly Sword King descended from the air.
Chapter 137
Chapter 137: Chapter 137
A thick dust cloud was kicked up and covered the arena.
Gordon Rohan rubbed the dust from his eyes and muttered, ¡°Looks like it¡¯ll be impossible to fix this ce.¡±
Even though the arena was reinforced by the Ether stones, limits still existed.
The sword swung by Bak Yun-gyu just now hadpletely overturned the arena¡¯s floor. It might have been only a single sword strike, but the power behind it was more than enough to slice through a small hill.
The dust soon settled, and the battle¡¯s conclusion revealed itself.
While inwardly thinking, I knew it, Gordon Rohan muttered once more, ¡°It¡¯s over.¡±
Thud-
Shu-wuwuwu-
The Heavenly Sword King fell to the ground. Its armor fell apart, and the giant turned into a heat haze once more before scatteringpletely.
Bak Yun-gyuy t on the floor. He spoke while taking deep, heavy breaths. ¡°It¡¯s my loss.¡±
¡°Thank you for the fight.¡±
Su-hyeun sheathed his sword after hearing his opponent¡¯s admission of defeat.
Bak Yun-gyu gingerly pushed himself up and asked, ¡°When did you start going easy on me?¡±
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°I noticed it a while ago. From the get-go, it was odd to face the skills that focus one¡¯s destructive power head-on. Especially when you¡¯re so much faster than me in terms of sheer speed.¡± Bak Yun-gyu dusted his clothing and continued to speak, ¡°Isn¡¯t that so?¡±
Su-hyeun just smiled softly.
That alone was enough of an answer.
Bak Yun-gyu extended his hand toward him. ¡°Thank you. I learned a lot today. And, from now on, we¡¯ll be in your care as well.¡±
¡°Yes. Me too.¡±
Su-hyeun shook the offered hand.
Meanwhile, the light within Gordon Rohan¡¯s eyes observing the two men sharpened considerably.
Act 3
Su-hyeun and Bak Yun-gyu left the arena together.
Gordon Rohan stood in the middle of the wrecked arena and slowly opened his mouth. ¡°So, what did you think?¡±
¡°About?¡± Johnny Brad, with his hood still deeply covering his face, asked back. He knew the meaning behind the question, yet he chose to act dumb.
Gordon Rohan didn¡¯t beat around the bush and asked, ¡°Who do you think will win?¡±
¡°Between you two?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right.¡±
Johnny Brad pondered for a little while before answering. ¡°Not sure.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡±
Gordon Rohan smirked meaningfully. That reply alone made it feel like holding this Ranking Wars was worth the trouble¡ªthepetition had been threatening to turn into a bore-fest for some time.
¡°I¡¯m really liking this. You know that?¡± Gordon Rohan chuckled, then turned around to look at Johnny Brad. ¡°You should get going now. And don¡¯t waste your entire day following people around, either.¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t follow anyone around.¡±
¡°Sure. Sure thing.¡±
Gordon Rohan shrugged and walked a bit further into the ruined arena. Meanwhile, Johnny Brad transformed into smoke and vanished on the spot.
After confirming his departure, Gordon Rohan began turning his body around. Then, while staring at specific nooks and crannies of the grandstands, he raised his voice. ¡°Hey, you rat bastards.¡±
Flinch. He could sense several presences jolt from the surprise. It wasn¡¯t just one or two, either. Far more than he¡¯d initially suspected were present.
¡°How long are you nning to hide? There¡¯s only me now. I don¡¯t know what you want, but if you were thinking of attacking me, then do it already.¡± Gordon Rohan reached towards the empty air and grabbed the white spear that materialized there. He continued on with a clearly-excited voice. ¡°You see, I¡¯m really warmed up properly right now.¡±
Fifteen or so awakeners revealed themselves. Not one of them bothered to conceal their murderous intent.
Just a casual nce alone was enough to know that they were all S-Ranks. A handful of faces looked familiar, though.
¡°Mm, I don¡¯t really remember your names,¡± said Gordon Rohan, then he pointed at one of the group. ¡°But I do recognize you.¡±
¡°This will be my first time introducing myself properly.¡± The man pointed out by Gordon Rohan stepped forward.
A man with translucent skin and semi-curly hair said, ¡°It¡¯s a pleasure to make your acquaintance. My name is Adel Castle.¡±
¡°You can save your gentlemanly act, especially when you¡¯re just some cheap bastards doing cowardly things behind people¡¯s backs.¡±
¡°I pray that you¡¯re gracious enough to understand the situation.¡±
¡°Sure thing. I get it. I do. And you can all rest easy. There won¡¯t be any reprisal from me, nor will there be an aftermath for you to contend with.¡±
Gordon Rohan¡¯s deration caused the lights in the eyes of the surrounding awakeners to quake ever so faintly.
Those words weren¡¯t spoken by just anyone, but the one and only Gordon Rohan. He considered his word to be more valuable than white gold, so everything he said must be the truth.
No reprisals.
And no aftermath.
¡°Now, that¡¯s the most wee news of them all,¡± said Adel Castle as he raised his hand.
At the same time, the fourteen other awakeners quickly spread out to all corners of the arena.
¡°In that case, why don¡¯t we get this started?¡±
After seeing Bak Yun-gyu on his way, Su-hyeun returned to the Gordon Tower.
The building¡¯s first floor waspletely empty, as outsiders were barred from entering the premises. As the venue wasn¡¯t open to the public yet, there was no decorative furniture anywhere.
¡°So, then. The uninvited guest has left,¡± said Su-hyeun as he scanned the first floor. ¡°Come out. Now.¡±
¡°....¡±
Silence.
As if they were waiting for a signal.
Su-hyeun shrugged and snapped his fingers.
Rumble-
Boom-!
The moment tongues of mes popped up above his fingertips, a small explosion went off in the corner of the floor. At the same time, two figures leaped up from their hiding ce. Not just them, however¡ªseveral others also revealed themselves in every corner of the room.
There were ten of them, in total.
A few faces seemed familiar. The one overriding simrity between them was that they were all awakeners from European countries.
¡°Since when did the rtionship between European awakeners get so cozy, huh?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Look at you, overflowing with confidence and everything. You¡¯re pretty rxed, considering your current situation.¡±
Step-
One of the ten awakeners stepped forward. He was actually a fairly well-known awakener from Switzend, and his name was Stjepan.
¡°Well, there¡¯s only ten of you.¡± Su-hyeun nodded his head, then nced at the elevators while asking another question. ¡°I¡¯m guessing some of you went to Gordon Rohan as well?¡±
¡°More people went that way, sure.¡±
¡°I think I figured out what you¡¯re all aiming for, so....¡±
It was clear why these people were targeting both him and Gordon Rohan¡ªthey were the most obvious candidates to win thepetition. On top of that, every single awakener present happened to be European.
Not only that; they were all affiliated with the European Union in particr.
Awakeners working for that organization had a strong tendency to cooperate with one another.
<< They must be nning to defeat the likely candidates before the mainpetition. >>
To think that they would scheme up something like this behind people¡¯s backs.
It was infantile and simple-minded. But it also made some sense, in a way. Well, Gordon Rohan¡¯s personality meant that he wouldn¡¯t go around bbing his mouth about this sort of incident, after all.
<< Is this the reason why Gordon didn¡¯t win thepetition back then? >>
If more than ten people had cone after Gordon Rohan, then that meant more than twenty awakeners had participated in this scheme, when added to those that were present here.
Fighting more than 20 S-Rank awakeners was quite a feat, even for Gordan Rohan. So, he must¡¯ve entered the finals heavily injured back when he fought in the Ranking Wars.
Smirk-
A smirk slowly spread over Su-hyeun¡¯s lips.
That reaction, which didn¡¯t suit the current situation at all, caused the confidence on Stjepan and his fellow European awakeners to slip.
¡°What¡¯s so damn funny?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know whether you¡¯re all too stupid, or maybe I looked easier to you lot, but....¡±
¡°What was that?¡±
¡°If you were trying to beat both of us, you shouldn¡¯t have divided your group, but attacked us one at a time.¡±
Of course, Su-hyeun could understand their mindset. They probably figured that around ten should be enough. They could¡¯ve thought that, no matter how strong he was, he wouldn¡¯t be able to do much against ten S-Ranks at the same time.
Unfortunately...
¡°You asked me what¡¯s so funny, right?¡±
Hiiiss....
The silhouette of a gigantic snake suddenly rose up behind Su-hyeun. The third eye opening on his forehead scanned the ten awakeners like a predator observing its prey.
¡°Let¡¯s find out.¡±
Gulp-
Stjepan stared at Su-hyeun¡¯s third eye and gulped.
The atmosphere changed in an instant.
The feeling he got waspletely different from what he got while watching through the disy screens. They all thought this strong of abat force would be enough, judging from Su-hyeun¡¯s battle against Thomas, but now, it seemed that they have made the wrong decision.
¡°Everyone, don¡¯t let your guard down,¡± said Stjepan.
¡°We know.¡±
¡°Goddammit, was it a mistake to volunteer for this job instead of the other one?¡±
Stjepan¡¯s head was full of thoughts of picking the ¡®wrong address¡¯.
Step, step-
In the meantime, Su-hyeun began closing in gradually.
Swish, swoosh-
A sharp, deadly de and an arrow flew in from both sides. Gordon Rohan used his spear to deflect the invisible de and grabbed the arrow with his bare hand.
Crack-
Ka-boom-!
The moment he gripped the arrow hard and broke it, arge explosion went off from the projectile.
p-
Gordon Rohan¡¯s figure stepped outside the thick dust. Other than his dust-covered wings looking ever so slightly scorched, there were no visible injuries on him.
The awakener responsible for firing the arrow cried out in sheer shock. ¡°He got hit but endured it no problem?! Hurry up and trap him!!¡±
Pahk, pah-bahbahbahbahk-
Giiii-iiiing-
When one of the awakeners extended his hands forward, pure-white rings of light wrapped around and confined Gordon Rohan. The preparations must¡¯ve been made beforehand, because theposition of the magic was quite sturdy.
Gordon Rohan staggered briefly, before grabbing the rings of light confining him with his bare hand. ¡°How annoying...¡±
Wuduk, wududuk-
Thud-
The rings around his body were instantly shattered. To think that he didn¡¯t even need to use his spear, but just his bare hand was enough to cancel another¡¯s skill.
Such a thing was impossible without possessing an absolute, overwhelming might.
The awakener pouring all of his power to maintain those rings of light spat out cuss words like a scream. ¡°Crazy son of a...!¡±
He couldn¡¯t believe it. He really did think that he should be able to restrict Gordon Rohan¡¯s movements, at least a little bit.
In the meantime, three other awakeners closed in on Gordon Rohan¡¯s position.
Spin-
At the same time, the spear in his hand began spinning around in circles. The weapon spun hundreds, thousands of times in an instant before abruptly changing direction to point at the iing trio.
¡°If you don¡¯t want to die, dodge.¡±
¡°...!¡±
sh-!
The moment Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear emitted bright light...
Kwa-kwaa-booooom-!
An incredible amount of magical energy exploded from the tip of the weapon. The awakener running at the front of the pack got swept away in the storm before being torn to bloody bits and pieces.
Saash-!
Tumble, drop-
The other two hurriedly jumped out of the way and looked on with incredulous, disbelieving expressions.
The spear strike was strong enough to easily cross the massive arena. He didn¡¯t even use any particr skill, either. No, he just decisively wielded the magical energy gathered in the tip of his weapon, that was all.
¡°What are you all so surprised for?¡±
¡°Wha....¡±
Stab-
The awakener felt a chilling sensation and hurriedly looked back, only for Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear to stab him in the head.
¡°Urhk-¡±
¡°Come on now. You¡¯re making it too easy for me to kill you, looking away like that.¡±
St-!
The spear was yanked out from his head. Gordon Rohan shook the blood off his white spear and nced at his own chest. Although very small, a bloodstain was forming there. He also felt a bit of a stinging sensation, so it must¡¯ve been his own.
<< When did I get cut? >>
It seemed that he had dodged something sharp without consciously realizing it. He told himself to be more careful next time and scratched his head.
¡°H-hey, he¡¯s much stronger than we¡¯ve been told!¡±
¡°Will all of us be enough?¡±
Attacks raining down on Gordon Rohan lurched to a temporary halt. The attackers were beginning to think that the first one of them to jump in would certainly die. Two of their number had already been killed rather easily so far.
Adel was thinking the same thing.
<< Looks like we¡¯ll need help from the other team. >>
It was a mistake to split theirbat force in two in order to fight against Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan.
For things like this, they needed help from Stjepan and the other nine awakeners that went to deal with the South Korean.
<< Request additional support, and buy some time to.... >>
Just as Adel reached into his breast pocket...
Vrrrr, vrrrr, vrrrr-
A small stone resting in there began vibrating first.
Adel¡¯s brows shot up. It was the signal device that both teams shared, but it...
<< It can¡¯t be? >>
That iing signal¡ªit signified that the other group also needed support, right now.
Chapter 138
Chapter 138: Chapter 138
* * *
Boom!
ng! Rumble!
The first floor of the Gordon Tower had broken into pandemonium.
Out of ten awakeners, two had already died.
Stjepan hid, trying to avoid the battle, a single ck stone held firmly in his hand.
<< Goddammit! Please, please, let someone reply before¨C >>
In case of emergency, the European Union¡¯s awakeners had established a signaling system that allowed them to quickly send messages to one another. A stone with magical energy would vibrate dozens of times louder than any smartphone, allowing them to sense an iing signal even in the middle of battle.
<< Could it be that the other side is also...? >>
Buzz, buzz.
A reply finally came. Stjepan hurriedly yanked his smartphone out of his pants¡¯ pocket. The caller was Adel.
¡°Goddammit! What took you so damn long?!¡±
¡°What happened?¡±
¡°What do you mean, what happened?! This bastard. We can¡¯t deal with him alone!¡±
BOOM!
¡°Aaaaahk!¡±
Just then, a scream came from behind him, causing Stjepan to hurriedly turn his head around to look. One of his allies was writhing on the ground in pain, missing an arm. With that, the number ofbatants remaining in the fight dwindled to seven, including himself.
He grew even more desperate. ¡°You have some leeway there, right? Send at least five more to this side! Hurry up!!¡±
¡°We don¡¯t have any leeway either.¡±
¡°What¡¯s that?!¡±
¡°I was about to ask for aid from your group. But then...¡±
Stjepan didn¡¯t need to hear the rest of the sentence to know that both sides were struggling at the moment. That also meant that neither of them had seeded in their mission.
<< Which means... >>
His eyes shifted to Su-hyeun.
<< We need to face a monster like that by ourselves. >>
Forget about an injury. They had failed to even scratch Su-hyeun up until now. At this rate, all of their efforts would be meaningless, and the hapless European Union awakeners would die for nothing.
¡°W-what should we do now?¡±
¡°That¡¯s...¡±
Buzz, crack.
He heard the sound of something breaking through the phone, then the call disconnected.
¡°F*ck!!¡±
Crack!
Stjepan threw the phone to the floor angrily. He watched its screen shatter into pieces, and yet that didn¡¯t make him feel any better. The situation remained as bad as it could get.
¡°What do we have to do so that¨C¡±
¡°Looks like things aren¡¯t working out for you?¡±
Step, step.
Stjepan spun his head around to the voiceing from behind.
Su-hyeun was walking closer as he choked another awakener with one hand. As for the rest, they didn¡¯t dare to approach, they were too frightened by Su-hyeun to do anything.
¡°I told you, didn¡¯t I? It was a mistake to divide your forces.¡±
¡°How dare you spew out such arrogant¡ª¡±
¡°You don¡¯t even have the necessary skills, and yet, what¡¯s with that ego of yours?¡±
Su-hyeun directed a mocking chuckle in Stjepan¡¯s direction and let go of the awakener¡¯s throat.
Plop.
¡°Cough, cough!¡±
The awakener grabbed at his neck and panted heavily, clearly in agony, eyes bloodshot. A short whileter, his breathing settled down just a little. He looked up at Su-hyeun, and his terrified face became deathly pale.
¡°H-hiiieeek!!¡±
The awakener spun around and crawled away to escape. Stjepan, who was watching the unsightly spectacle, could only gnash his teeth. The odds of this battle were tilted against him for sure. Only six people, including himself, could possibly carry on with the battle.
¡°Why don¡¯t I give you all a chance?¡± Su-hyeun looked at Stjepan, who seemed to be the leader of this little group, and spoke. ¡°An opportunity for you to get out of here alive.¡±
¡°...An opportunity?¡±
¡°That¡¯s right. So, how about it? Interested yet?¡±
He felt like Su-hyeun was looking down on him, but it was also undeniable that Stjepan¡¯s ears did perk up, just a little. If they kept fighting Su-hyeun here, it would only result in their ignoble deaths. If an opportunity to save his life presented itself, then, regardless of what it was, he¡¯d grab it with both hands.
¡°W-what is it?¡± The man who Su-hyeun had choked earlier asked first, voice trembling greatly.
Stjepan got angry, and he red daggers at that awakener. But Su-hyeun made his reply a step faster than Stjepan could react.
¡°All you have to do is to run away.¡±
¡°R-run away?¡±
¡°Correct. It¡¯s easy, right? If you run away, I won¡¯te after you. I¡¯ll even forget about what happened here, too. That is, as long as you don¡¯te up with yet another underhanded schemeter on. But...¡±
Shudder, shudder.
The tone of Su-hyeun¡¯s voice, as well as the light gleaming in his eyes, changed rapidly and caused his magical energy, spreading out through the first floor, to roil and seethe ominously.
¡°But, if you insist on attacking me, I¡¯ll just kill you all right now.¡±
Grrr.
Stjepan clenched his fists and gnashed his teeth in pure rage.
Run away.
As logical as the suggestion was, nothing would be so humiliating.
The suggestion was a sign of generosity that the ¡®strong¡¯ would always disy to the ¡®weak¡¯.
<< No, wait. >>
It was then that an idea shed through Stjepan¡¯s head.
<< He wants us to run? But, why? >>
Up until now, Su-hyeun had disyed more than enough strength to overwhelm everyone present. There was no doubt about that.
There was also no reason to be generous here and let his attackers live to cause future trouble. That meant that there had to be another reason he was so willing to let them go.
<< Could it be.... >>
A smirk spread across Stjepan¡¯s face.
Su-hyeun saw that and his brows furrowed. ¡°What are you smiling about?¡±
¡°The one who needs to run isn¡¯t us, but you, isn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°...?¡±
¡°I¡¯m guessing that the price to pay for all that power is weak stamina, isn¡¯t it? I knew it. I was wondering how a punk who got his powers only three years ago got this powerful.¡±
The atmosphere, filled with choking fear, quickly shifted with Stjepan¡¯s usation.
¡°Stamina?¡±
¡°Maybe his fitness level isn¡¯t so good?¡±
¡°That makes sense, considering that he was fighting while pouring out this much magical energy...¡±
Indeed, the idea sounded logical. Even without Stjepan¡¯s usation, questions of ¡°how could he?¡± had been circling in their heads for a while already.
How could he be this strong?
How could he not be tired yet?
And now, Stjepan had just put forward a usible theory. Judging from Su-hyeun¡¯s reaction, it looked credible too.
¡°So, I¡¯m right, aren¡¯t I?¡±
Stjepan was flustered until a few seconds ago. He smiled triumphantly once more, as he regained hisposure.
His attitude also helped others to regain their confidence, as well.
¡°Phew.¡± Su-hyeun sighed softly under his breath.
Stjepan saw that and became even more convinced that he was right. He began walking toward Su-hyeun, ¡°Hah. You should¡¯ve run away while you had the power to spare, you little¨C¡±
Suddenly, his eyes nearly popped out of their sockets, and his voice froze in his mouth. He grabbed at his throat in a furious attempt to find his voice, but there was no use. His voice had been sealed away, as if something was blocking him.
<< What¡¯s going on?! >>
[Third Eye- Predator.]
Shuwuwuwu.
When he met the gaze from Su-hyeun¡¯s third eye, Stjepan finally realized it.
It was because of that eye.
He instinctively grew fearful and his entire body froze stiff. He had sensed some sort of restriction binding him a little during the fight, but this was the first time he had felt such intense, constricting pressure.
¡°It would have been better if you had run away in one piece while I was willing to let you go.¡±
Stab.
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword plunged into Stjepan¡¯s head. Stjepan¡¯s eyes grew wide as he felt the cold metallic sensationing from the inside of his head.
Never mind reacting on time, he couldn¡¯t even tell just when Su-hyeun had appeared before his eyes.
¡°What... kind of a... skill...¡±
Slice.
Even before he had finished speaking, a thin red line appeared, running vertically on Stjepan¡¯s body, top to bottom.
Right afterward...
Ssh!
Stjepan split in half and his blood sttered everywhere.
It happened in the blink of an eye. The remaining six awakeners fell into a state of unbridled panic. They had been convinced that Su-hyeun was exhausted, but, unfortunately for them, he looked even more energetic than ever before.
Su-hyeun looked down at Stjepan¡¯s corpse and asked again, ¡°Anyone else?¡±
The European awakeners stumbled backward before they took off running. He lowered his sword while he watched them escape. It didn¡¯t look like there were any other idiots with a death wish still trying to attack him.
<< What a mess. >>
The fight itself didn¡¯t take long, but the entirety of the Gordon Tower¡¯s first floor was nowpletely ruined. It seemed that the building¡¯s official grand opening would have to be postponed for quite a while.
<< What¡¯s happening downstairs, I wonder? >>
Su-hyeun headed in the direction of the elevators.
Gordon Rohan was currently fighting below.
* * *
ng!
Thump! ng! Pow!
Gordon Rohan and Adel continued with their contest of strength, their hands firmly locked in their own weapons.
A single smartphoney shattered nearby¡ª the phone that had to defend against Gordon Rohan¡¯s attack just now.
¡°That was a pretty sharp reaction. Didn¡¯t expect you to use the phone as a shield,¡± said Gordon Rohan.
¡°Well, it was quite an expensive device, you see.¡±
¡°I know. After all, mypany makes them.¡±
That smartphone was considered to be the best on the market, with a single Ether stone used as the phone¡¯s energy source. The device was sold for an enormous amount of money. It was known for its incredible hardness and an evesting operational lifetime that would never need a recharge.
¡°I should¡¯ve told my people to make it a bit softer. If I had done so, your head would be on my spear by now.¡±
¡°I¡¯m grateful that you didn¡¯t.¡±
Thump! Pow!
Adel frowned from the pain shooting up his hands. They somehow ended up grabbing each other¡¯s hands and started a contest of strength but, as expected, fighting head-on wasn¡¯t going to work.
Thump! Pow!
Suddenly, dozens of spears shot up from the ground Gordon Rohan was standing on. He quickly released Adel Castle¡¯s hands and leaped up from there. His gaze was already scanning the three or four awakeners that had closed in on them.
¡°You, damned small fry...¡±
For a moment, his eyes gleamed pure-white and the spear in his hand emitted a blinding light once more.
At the same time, two of the awakeners roused their magical energy and activated their defense skills.
Purple-colored walls spread out all over the ce, and Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear pounded on them, creating ear-ringing ripples of exploding noises.
RING!
CLANG!
The walls shattered in an instant. But, in that brief moment, Adel created distance between himself and Gordon Rohan.
The Briton shook his hand lightly, as if it ached from the strength contest earlier. ¡°I see that your physical strength is also ridiculously strong.¡±
¡°You¡¯re better than I thought.¡± Gordon Rohan too clenched and unfurled the hand not holding the spear repeatedly, before asking a question. ¡°Wait, now that I think about it, you were a fist-fighter, weren¡¯t you? I shouldn¡¯t have used my bare fists.¡±
He then fell into thought for a moment before continuing to fight.
¡°If that¡¯s your level, then let¡¯s see. You won¡¯t even touch Kim Su-hyeun, so forget him. Maybe you¡¯re about the same level as Thomas or Bak Yun-gyu? No, wait. Maybe you¡¯re a bit worse than them?¡±
His words caused Adel¡¯s expression to tense up just a little.
The Briton already knew he was nowhere near Gordon Rohan¡¯s level. But the assertion of him being weaker than Kim Su-hyeun, Thomas, and even this unknown Bak Yun-gyu was no different than spitting on his pride.
¡°You truly are filled with boundless ego, aren¡¯t you? Just for how long do you think you¡¯ll remain the¡ª¡±
¡°Nah, not yet.¡± Gordon Rohan shook his head at Adel¡¯s words.
Did the one and only Gordon Rohan deny that he¡¯s the best?
¡°Right. That¡¯s something I¡¯ll prove soon enough.¡±
¡°What are you talking about?¡±
¡°I told you, didn¡¯t I? I¡¯m hosting the Ranking Wars to prove that I am indeed the best in the world. To prove to the much, much wider world whom I haven¡¯t met yet¡ªto prove that I¡¯m truly the best,¡± said Gordon Rohan, before smirking deeply. ¡°Kim Su-hyeun.¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°That guy has shown me up before, you see. Only by defeating him, can I im to be truly the best in the world.¡±
This was the very first time Gordon Rohan had acknowledged someone¡¯s skills this much.
Adel thought to himself. <>
To think that a man who possessed this level of might wasn¡¯t sure of his chances against him.
¡°Were you publicly dering something deeply embarrassing just now?¡±
¡°...!¡±
Adel hurriedly spun his head in the direction of the voiceing from behind him. His eyes caught the figure of Su-hyeun leisurely walking into the arena where the battle was still ongoing.
Chapter 139
Chapter 139: Chapter 139
<< But, why is he here? >>
Adel couldn¡¯t believe his eyes as he blinked repeatedly to confirm Su-hyeun¡¯s face. The South Korean ought to be still fighting upstairs against the awakeners including Stjepan. So, how...
¡°What do you mean, what? We, alone, can¡¯t deal with this bastard!¡±
That was from the conversation with Stjepan, which got unceremoniously cut off by Gordon Rohan¡¯s attack. His urgent cries were ringing in Adel¡¯s ears.
He thought that the other team must be struggling too, but as it turned out, the battle there had alreadye to an end.
¡°The number of people on this side is actually higher,¡± said Su-hyeun.
He took a look at the awakeners surrounding the arena and nodded his head, prompting Gordon Rohan to ask him a question.
¡°So, did theye for you, too?¡±
¡°Yes. Ten of them showed up.¡±
¡°Did you kill them all?¡±
¡°No, I let six of them live.¡±
¡°Did they escape, or did you let them go?¡±
¡°I let them go. Who would stop the dungeons appearing in Europe if they were all dead?¡±
Su-hyeun lookedpletely at ease, judging from how he shrugged his shoulders. Despite fighting ten people, he wasn¡¯t even exhausted in the slightest.
It was already quite taxing on the European awakeners to fight against just Gordon Rohan alone. But what if Su-hyeun was to join the fray?
<< It¡¯s over. >>
Adel shook his head. Then he turned around towards Gordon Rohan. ¡°Your promise. It¡¯s still in effect, yes?¡±
¡°My promise?¡±
¡°No reprisals or consequences.¡±
¡°Ah, that?¡± Gordon Rohan rested his spear on his broad shoulder and asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Scared?¡±
¡°How can I not be? After all, you¡¯re the world¡¯s most powerful man.¡±
¡°Busy kissing my ass, aren¡¯t you?¡±
Still, all that sucking up did work wonders. Even if that wasn¡¯t strictly the case, Gordon Rohan wasn¡¯t the type to change his mind.
¡°As long as you¡¯re willing to make a promise of your own, I¡¯ll keep mine.¡±
¡°What will that be?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t run away tomorrow.¡±
¡°...?¡±
¡°I¡¯m talking about the finals, obviously. I hope you won¡¯t get scared by your failures today and run away with your tails between your legs tomorrow.¡±
Gordon Rohan¡¯s provocative remark managed to wipe away the subtle grin that was always etched on Adel¡¯s face.
Upon seeing that, the American¡¯s smile grew even wider. ¡°You¡¯ve been grinning all this time, but well, now... That expression suits you better. Makes you look more manly and all.¡±
¡°Well, then. I shall see you tomorrow,¡± Adel replied, before turning around to leave.
No one there criticized him for doing so. The dissection of their failures would have to wait untilter. Now was the time to escape from this ce.
Gordon Rohan asked Su-hyeun, ¡°Will you be fine with letting them go like that?¡±
Thetter nodded his head. ¡°As I said before, it¡¯ll be a problem if all of them died here today. After all, the shortage of S-Ranks can potentially make some dungeons impossible to raid.¡±
¡°Is that your real reason?¡±
¡°What else could there be?¡±
¡°You¡¯re kinder than I thought. No, wait. Should I change that to ¡®righteous¡¯ instead?¡±
Gordon Rohan stared at Su-hyeun as if thetter was an alien.
But then again, he was quite self-centered and individualistic. Thus, from his perspective, Su-hyeun worrying about strangers in some distantnds dide across as rather bizarre.
Their opinions on letting these fools go didn¡¯t sh, which was a relief, but despite them making a broadly simr choice, their reasons were clearly different.
¡°Those punks, they¡¯lle knocking again. Not just at me, but at you too,¡± said Gordon Rohan.
¡°Yes, I know.¡±
Su-hyeun recalled how the European Union¡¯s awakeners hurriedly escaped from there.
Although it was slightly puzzling to see them appear before him, he wasn¡¯t too surprised by them either. He was thinking that it was only a matter of time before he would sh against them.
<< I had no idea that they fought against Gordon Rohan at this point in history though. >>
The European Awakener Federation.
This organization had publicly announced its existence at the end of the year 2022 and had proved to be quite problematic in a variety of ways.
They were strictly profit-based, so as long as no benefits were promised, they would not make a single move regardless of what the issue at hand was.
At times, they even became sources of outbreaks by suddenly changing the schedules of the raids that were supposed to take ce in some other countries ¨C raids that they had already signed contracts for.
<< That¡¯s the problem with an organization that no one can control. It only seeks to bolster its own freedom and rights above all else. >>
The organization ballooned to a massive scale, and no one could control it. It boasted the membership of over thirty S-Ranks, plus tens of thousands of high-ranked awakeners too.
Another organization had to be created in order to keep them in check, and that inevitably led to endless conflicts and standoffs instigated by the awakeners worldwide.
<< They started discussing it around this time, is that it? >>
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t have much information regarding the events surrounding the Ranking Wars, so getting his hands on the news of the European Awakener Federation being established around this period was an unexpected windfall.
If he yed his cards right, then he might be able to stamp out a budding source of future troubles.
<< When going up against many... >>
Su-hyeun clenched his fist tightly, his eyes gleaming dangerously.
<< Fight with an even greater level of one¡¯s strength. >>
The stage wasn¡¯t bad at all.
This was the Ranking Wars. The attention of the entire world should be focused on thepetition. And on this very stage, he¡¯d get to meet the various members of the European Awakener Federation, including Adel.
The backdrop wasn¡¯t so bad either.
Thanks to them making a move first, it was easier for him to make his move now. The fortress he needed to bring down with much hard work since forever began crumbling all by itself.
¡°What are you so engrossed about?¡± Gordon Rohan asked.
¡°I was thinking about tomorrow, and it¡¯s making me really pumped up.¡±
¡°Tomorrow?¡± Gordon Rohan smirked. ¡°Feeling confident, aren¡¯t you?¡±
It seemed that he had misinterpreted the reply as Su-hyeun looking forward to fighting him.
Since thetter didn¡¯t feel like correcting the older man, he simply nodded his head along with his answer. ¡°Pretty much.¡±
¡°Haha, hahahah!¡±
Gordon Rohan guffawed loudly as he held on to his tummy at that confident answer.
He continued tough for a while, then pped his hands and made his much-dyed reply. ¡°I like such confidence. I really do. Honestly, I¡¯m also looking forward to tomorrow.¡±
Tap, tap-
Gordon Rohan lightly patted Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder as he walked past.
¡°I¡¯ll see you tomorrow then. Get a good night¡¯s rest, and be at the most optimal condition, okay?¡±
Having said what he wanted to say, he then stuck his hands in his pockets and strode out of the arena.
In the meantime, Su-hyeun scanned thepletely ruined arena to muttered to himself.
¡°I hope this won¡¯t pose a problem.¡±
Act 4
BANG-!
Crack-
Adel¡¯s fist mmed down, shattering a sturdy desk.
After returning to his room along with his group, he began grinding his teeth non-stop.
As for the expressions of his group nearby, they were all gloomy, to say the least.
Not only did the opportunity to win the Ranking Wars fly out of the window due to the failure of this mission, he even made enemies out of Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan.
To make matters even worse, several members of the European Awakener Federation had been killed too. This issue couldn¡¯t be overlooked as a minor slip-up anymore.
Regardless, they needed to take full responsibility for this mission¡¯s failure. As their actions had not been officially sanctioned, dealing with the consequences would prove to be much harderter on.
As Adel imagined how those governments who lost their precious S-Ranks would react at the news, he thought his vision was fogging up in wane yellow color.
¡°Goddammit....¡±
Grit-
Adel gnashed his teeth as he remembered Gordon Rohan sneering at him.
¡°Don¡¯t run away tomorrow.¡±
He just couldn¡¯t forget the American¡¯s facial expression when saying those words ¨C the words that implied how certain Gordon Rohan was of Adel¡¯s ns to run away.
It felt like he got found out while trying to n his escape, so he couldn¡¯t help but feel ashamed and deeply humiliated.
His pride was wounded, more so now than any other time.
¡°What should we do now?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know. Even if Gordon Rohan kept his promise, Kim Su-hyeun might not...¡±
¡°Winning the Ranking Wars will be difficult at this rate, won¡¯t it? That will surely make the core footing of the Federation unstable. And how will the other countries¡¯ Awakener associations react, when they entrusted us with this mission?¡±
¡°More importantly, what will happen if others found out about this event?¡±
¡°In that case, it¡¯ll be the end of us. The establishment of the federation will be impossible, and¨C¡±
¡°All of you, shut up!¡±
Adel loudly yelled out at the worried, scared voices. His words contained more than enough killing intent to jolt twenty or so awakeners present.
Once the surroundings grew deathly silent, Adel carried on as his eyes gleamed in dangerous madness. ¡°We will win. We only have to win.¡±
Tomorrow¡¯s final stage.
Just like what Gordon Rohan said, Adel was not going to run away from that very stage.
He continued, ¡°All we have to do is to kill him.¡±
¡°Kill him?¡±
¡°Who? Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± Adel powerfully nodded his head. ¡°Forget about the regtions. We can just disguise it as an ident.¡±
Even if it was for the sake of tying up a loose end, he was willing to deal with that level of condemnation.
Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t immediately go out and call the reporters today to reveal the truth. After all, he didn¡¯t look like a rash person. In that case, they needed to kill him in the middle of the match somehow, just to be on the safer side.
<< Doesn¡¯t matter how.... >>
Squeeze-
Adel clenched his fists tightly and muttered out.
¡°We will win.¡±
* * *
A day passed by.
The whole world seemed to be in a festive mood. It was all because the Ranking Wars¡¯ finals had arrived.
Thirty-three contestants had made it to the finals. However, one of them had to leave due to an emergency, and only 32 stepped up to the final stage.
For a stage called the ¡®finals,¡¯ there were quite a lot of participants, but Gordon Rohan said this during an interview earlier.
He said that this number was actually perfect.
He also didn¡¯t publicly reveal the exact rules. But he then went on to add that the rules will be fair to everyone, especially those possessing enough power ¨C just like how it always had been.
Thousands of cameras were now filming the arena. For some reason, this ce was in aplete mess.
¡°Did something happen yesterday?¡±
Hak-joon sidled up very close to Su-hyeun and whispered a question.
Thetter pretended to know nothing. ¡°Not sure.¡±
¡°So... something did happen.¡±
¡°Nah, not really.¡±
¡°Stop lying. If nothing really happened, you wouldn¡¯t have said ¡®not sure¡¯ or ¡®not really¡¯, but you have no idea instead.¡±
¡°No way.¡±
Su-hyeun avoided Hak-joon¡¯s gaze as he replied. Thetter continued to probe for answers, but the former remained firm on keeping the truth to himself.
¡°You all came pretty early.¡±
Step, step-
Gordon Rohan appeared alone. This time, he didn¡¯t float down from the top of the arena, but instead, he walked in through the entrance. Johnny Brad was nowhere to be seen. He was most likely observing the participants from somewhere within the arena.
¡°So, the people here are more or less recognizable, aren¡¯t they?¡±
While saying that, Gordon Rohan nced at Adel. Unlike yesterday, the Briton was not smiling. At all.
Gordon smirked and walked up to the front of the 32 finalists. ¡°Okay, should I briefly exin the rules then? But before that¨C¡±
Snap-
Wuuu-ooong-
Gordon Rohan snapped his fingers, causing the arena to transform.
It soon resembled a massive Colosseum. An awakener who had climbed the Tower of Trials would¡¯ve experienced such a stage at least once before.
As for the 32 finalists, they were transferred to the grandstand of the Colosseum. Gordon Rohan reappeared above the arena¡¯s sky, his arms spread out wide.
¡°This should be more than enough for us to fight to our hearts¡¯ content, right? The arena got wrecked yesterday while I was doing some light exercise alone, so don¡¯t sweat over it.¡±
Su-hyeun smiled softly at those words and nced at Adel¡¯s expression.
As expected, the Briton¡¯s face crumpled slightly from the words¡¯ light exercise¡¯. Gordon Rohan was implying that the fight between him and the Europeans only amounted to some light warm-up exercise in his view.
¡°The rules are simple. Just like the main matches, it¡¯s a one-on-one fight. I mean, let¡¯s be real. Trials withplicated rules are annoying, aren¡¯t they? Such things will probably feel like daily urrences to you guys anyway.¡±
The reason for both the mains and the finals being so simple in the structure was the personal taste of the Ranking Wars¡¯ host, Gordon Rohan.
¡°Of course, the finals will be slightly different than the main matches. You see, this will be a game where the one surviving till the end is crowned the winner.¡±
¡°Until the end?¡±
¡°Will it be a survival game? Or matches will be selected randomly this time, too?¡±
Educated guesses starteding out from here and there. Unfortunately for them, only Gordon Rohan knew the exact rules.
¡°The match type is ¡®rotation.¡¯ At the start, two hopefuls are chosen on a firste-first-serve basis, and they will go on ahead to fight. The first one to pass out, stay on the ground for more than ten seconds, or dere their intention to surrender, will be the loser.¡±
Gordon Rohan began exining the rules.
¡°The winner will ¡®survive¡¯ and fight against the next challenger. The winner of that match will meet the next challenger, and eventually, thest one standing in the arena will be dered as the final winner. So, what do you all think? It¡¯s simple, right?¡±
¡°W-what was that?!¡±
¡°What kind of rubbish...¡±
¡°How is that fair to anyone?!¡±
Indeed, the rules were quite simple. Well, the one managing to get to the end in one piece would be dered a winner.
However, this type of rule had too many loopholes. For instance, the earlier you were to make your challenge, the harder it¡¯d get for you to be the final winner.
¡°Will you listen till the end? If no additional challengers step up, then the participant can name someone he or she wants to fight. The waiting period is no more than five minutes. So, stop caring about what everyone else is doing and start challenging for the victory like the warriors you all are supposed to be.¡±
Swiiish-
Gordon Rohan floated back down to the ground. Then, he stuck his hands in the pockets like he always did and stared at other participants with a face full of confidence.
That was the image many of them had already pictured in their heads the moment he began exining the rules.
¡°So, anyone willing to challenge me, then?¡±
In the blink of an eye, Gordon Rohan turned every single finalist as his challenger instead. However, it didn¡¯te across as disharmonious in the least.
No, this current scene actually suited him even better. No one here found his actions to be foolish or short-sighted at all.
And since the host of the tournament, who was also responsible foring up with the rules, volunteered for the most disadvantageous role, there no longer exists a reason to object to his decisions.
<< Wait, we need to fight Gordon Rohan from the get-go? >>
<< Who would do something that monumentally stupid? >>
Just as the ¡®mind-what-other¡¯ s-are-doing¡¯ game was about to get underway...
¡°This isn¡¯t a challenge, but...¡±
Step-
Su-hyeun stood up from somewhere in the middle of the grandstand and stepped forward.
¡°But, let me have a go.¡±
Chapter 140 - Chapter 140
Chapter 140: Chapter 140
¡°K-Kim Su-hyeun??¡±
¡°Gordon Rohan will fight Kim Su-hyeun? In the very first match?¡±
¡°This match-up... Isn¡¯t this like watching the real final match?¡±
The other participants in the audience chambers were getting stirred up.
A handful of people were seen as potential victors of thepetition¡ªGordon Rohan, first, then Su-hyeun, Thomas, and, finally, Adel.
Of them, Thomas was expected to end up in a match against Su-hyeun, but not advance to the finals. As for Adel, many believed his skills to be inferior to either Gordon Rohan or the South Korean awakener.
Therefore, the majority had spected that, in the end, the Ranking Wars¡¯ would be won by one of two men¡ªGordan Rohan or Su-hyeun.
But even though Su-hyeun was the second favorite to win, nine out of ten people thought that Gordon would walk away as the winner.
But all those predictions were falling apart right now.
<< If those two fight now and exhaust their stamina... >>
Every participant was thinking the same thing:
<< Maybe I too stand a chance? >>
If Su-hyeun had avoided fighting Gordon Rohan and waited right until the end, the story would be much different.
Even the great Gordon Rohan himself couldn¡¯t emerge unscathed after going through 30 consecutive battles. One couldn¡¯t dismiss the problem of depleted stamina. That one factor could change everything.
Of course, it wasn¡¯t as if Gordon Rohan and Su-hyeun didn¡¯t know that either.
But, that meant...
<< He¡¯s that confident in himself? >>
Everyone present had the same thought. Both men were confidently taking a huge step that could lose them the wholepetition. Why?
For Gordon Rohan, in particr, he wished to prove himself to be the very best in the world through the Ranking Wars, so it was no surprise that he wanted to win the overall victory. He had even volunteered to go first. Perhaps, this was just evidence of his overflowing confidence.
Step, step.
Su-hyeun walked down to the arena and looked straight at Gordon Rohan.
He spoke first, ¡°The stage you prepared is truly amazing. It¡¯s the perfect stage, so no one can ever doubt you to be the world¡¯s best...¡±
Stepping into the finals and overpowering everyone all by himself. If Gordon Rohan emerged victorious from such a stage, then indeed, no one could ever deny that he was the best awakener in the world. He had set the stage magnificently.
¡°...That is, as long as you win.¡±
And that all worked in Su-hyeun¡¯s favor as well, which was why he found the stage Gordon Rohan had prepared to be very much to his liking.
It was a stage that was fair to all and would be able to determine the individual that possessed power stronger than anyone else out there. If he one, no one could deny his strength.
¡°I knew you¡¯d be the first challenger.¡±
Zing!
A pure-white spear appeared in Gordon Rohan¡¯s hand.
¡°I would have been so disappointed if it wasn¡¯t you.¡±
¡°I did wonder about it for a little while there. Maybe it might have been more interesting to fightst on a stage like this.¡±
¡°Why didn¡¯t you step upst then?¡±
¡°If I did that, people might use me of defeating an exhausted Gordon Rohan instead.¡±
¡°You think I¡¯ll exhaust all of my stamina fighting that small fry? No freaking way.¡±
¡°You won¡¯t, but all I¡¯m saying is that others might think that. In the end¡ª¡±
Ca-ching!
Su-hyeun unsheathed his sword and, at the same time, opened his third eye.
¡°This stage will mean something only by defeating you first.¡±
¡°You sure do know how to say the things I like to hear.¡±
ng!
Thump! Pow! ng!
The two men roused their magical energy simultaneously while finishing their preparations to rush right into each other the moment the starting signal was given.
Crack, split!
The arena¡¯s floor cracked and split apart by their rising magical energies.
Right at the moment when their rising energy level hit the peak...
[Thepetition willmence.]
...Johnny Brad¡¯s signal was sent out.
Buzz, buzz.
Swish! CLANG!
Immediately after the two men¡¯s silhouettes disappeared from view, a loud metallic ng resounded out from the middle of the arena.
Swish!
Gusts of wind reached the grandstands. The colliding magical energy tore into shreds and spread out to all corners of the arena.
Boom, ng, CLANG!
Crack, stter!
The spear and the sword shed.
The spear had a slightly longer reach. Gordon Rohan leaped up high, and the ends of the spear split apart into dozens upon dozens.
Pow! sh! sh!
The spear light thrust into various parts of Su-hyeun¡¯s body, his throat, shoulders, and waist, and then proceeded to stab him several times in a row.
[Doppelganger.]
Zap!
Su-hyeun disappeared from the spot. What Gordon Rohan had just stabbed was just a doppelganger that looked exactly the same as his target.
Rumble...
It was right then that he felt scorching heating from behind. He spread his wings wide and quickly crouched.
Ka-boom!
A massive burst of navy-blue colored mes swept Gordon Rohan up.
Su-hyeun, as he counted in his mind, took a shot forward next. Just before he could swing his sword down toward the searing heat, he sensed something was off and quickly leaped up.
sh!
A spear swing containing pure-white light sliced the ¡°Divine me¡± apart. Gordon Rohan lifted the wings covering his entire body and looked up at Su-hyeun above, smirking meaningfully.
¡°That was pretty hot, wasn¡¯t it?¡±
Swish, swoosh.
The atmosphere around Gordon Rohan changed. His pure-white wings spread wide and the irises disappeared from his eyes, leaving them pure white as well.
Su-hyeun knew very well what that was.
[Trait- Archangel.]
It was a trait that rivaled ¡°dragonification¡± ¨C no, maybe rated even higher than that.
Gordon Rohan had acquired the traits of an angel, getting his hands on overwhelming power and magical prowess. Most notably, the resistance against magic-rted skills his trait had endowed him with was far, far greater than any other traits out there.
<< Meaning, the ¡°Divine me¡± won¡¯t work. >>
The ¡°Divine me¡± was a skill that enjoyed a pronounced effect against monsters possessing a dark attribute. Against a trait of an angelic race that already possessed a high resistance against magic, on top of the same light-type attribute, the ¡°Divine me¡± wouldn¡¯t be very effective at all.
Su-hyeun¡¯s ¡°Divine mes¡± was a skill that Gordon Rohan would feel perfectly at home with.
<< In that case.... >>
Sizzle, rumble.
Pitch-ck scales began sprouting all over Su-hyeun¡¯s body. The third eye in his forehead opened uppletely, causing his senses to sharpen, and his body to gain strength.
His sudden transformation caused Gordon Rohan to pause for a moment. The American narrowed his eyes into slits and began spinning the spear in his hand.
¡°That¡¯s right. Let¡¯s have a proper go this time.¡±
Swish!
Swoosh!
The spear spun so fast that it couldn¡¯t be seen by the naked eye. And then Gordon Rohan powerfully swung that spinning spear in Su-hyeun¡¯s direction.
It was the same attack as yesterday, the one that utterly wrecked the arena.
Sizzle. ZAP!
Su-hyeun pointed his sword at the approaching spear energy. And, right when the attack arrived, he swung the weapon firmly held in both of his hands.
Split!
Zoom! ZAP! CLANG!
The immense power behind the iing spear light shattered and scattered in all directions.
The floor was scoured and torn asunder. But Su-hyeun didn¡¯t pay it any mind and dashed forward toward Gordon Rohan.
Swish, swoosh!
As if he was waiting for this, Gordon Rohan stopped spinning his spear and stabbed forward with it.
Pow!
Yap!
Su-hyeun grabbed the American¡¯s swung spear with his bare hand.
<< He actually caught it?! >>
For the first time ever, Gordon Rohan¡¯s eyes trembled.
It could be blocked with a sword, sure. But he had never imagined that his opponent would go and catch his spear with his bare hand.
It would have been normal to see the hand to either explode or at least tear into bits in such a case.
However...
[Indomitable body.]
Squish.
Although his hand ached, Su-hyeun thought it was still bearable. The ¡°Indomitable Body¡± had reached the highest limit in proficiency, and it helped him to catch Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear using nothing but his bare hand.
It also allowed him an opportunity tond a crucial attack.
Zoom, ng!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword was raised up toward the ceiling.
It was obvious what kind of attack woulde next, judging from how the sword was raised.
<< He¡¯s going to sh down. >>
Swish!
A massive amount of magical energy condensed on the sword in an instant. This wasn¡¯t an ordinary downward sh anymore.
<< Could it be...? >>
[One Sword Cutting Through Everything- Splitting the Great Mountain]
m!
The moment Su-hyeun¡¯s sword mmed down on top of Gordon Rohan¡¯s head.
KA-BOOM!
The arena¡¯s floor waspletely shattered and turned upside down. Debris shot into the air.
* * *
ng!
Rumble, drop, thud!
Participants stared at the devastated arena, a shocked expression on each of their faces.
No one here imagined that the arena, reinforced by Ether stones and capable of absorbing most impacts quite easily, would be damaged to such an extent.
Hak-joon was shocked, too. Especially so, since he had fought in the same arena now torn up before his eyes just days earlier.
<< I thought I had managed to close the gap just a little... >>
This was his first time witnessing Su-hyeun use this much power.
Even when Su-hyeun was betrayed by his teammates during the preliminaries or when he was facing off against Thomas, he didn¡¯t use so much power.
That was why Hak-joon had felt that ever since stepping into the S-Rank, his skills were almost close enough to touch Su-hyeun¡¯s, unlike when they met for the first time.
It felt like he could reach the same level as Su-hyeun¡¯s if he put in just a little more hard work.
But he was mistaken. Completely and utterly mistaken. The gap between them hadn¡¯t narrowed at all. No, it had grown even wider instead.
<< Just how much more do I need to do.... >>
Grip.
Theparative triviality.
He suddenly thought that he had been tooid-back and conceitedtely. He thought he had it made. Reaching the finals of the Ranking Wars had only made it worse. He was on top of the world.
He was wrong.
He still had a long way to go.
Compared to those two men, he was far too weak.
¡°I didn¡¯t quite catch it just now, but... This thing, it was because of Kim Su-hyeun swinging his sword, wasn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°Is he even alive after that?¡±
¡°Even for Gordon Rohan, this...¡±
Could Gordon Rohan survive after getting struck by such a ferocious attack head-on?
The participants watched through screens that were currently fogged up by the dust clouds and stared directly at the distant arena. Their mor gradually quieted down.
It was because the silhouettes of both Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan began revealing themselves.
Thud!
Gordon Rohan stabbed the spear onto the floor to support himself.
His legs teetered, and blood leaked out from the corners of his mouth, clear evidence of his poor condition. There was a deep wound across his chest.
¡°That¡¯s one sturdy armor,¡± said Su-hyeun as he stared at his de, which had lost much of its edge.
A thin armor could be seen beneath Gordon Rohan¡¯s clean-cut expensive brand clothing. Su-hyeun was well aware of what that pure-white armor was.
<< That¡¯s the Heavenly Soldier¡¯s Armor. He already had it? >>
It was a super rare item, only five of them had ever been found, even decades into the future.
The so-called armor of the soldiers of the sky¡ªa set of armor that possessed a truly unimaginable level of toughness.
<< Even then... >>
¡°Cough, cough!¡±
Gordon Rohan coughed up lumps of blood.
<< It was still effective. >>
Normally, that single strike would have rendered the target unable to continue fighting, but the overall damage was cut down by more than half by the defensive capabilities of the Heavenly Soldier¡¯s Armor.
That¡¯s how Gordon Rohan was still standing upright and still possessed some amount of reservebat strength.
He asked first, ¡°Just now, that thing... it¡¯s the same thing as what I saw yesterday, wasn¡¯t it?¡±
¡°You mean, ¡®One Sword Cutting Through Everything¡¯?¡±
¡°Is that the name of the skill? What a grandiose title.¡±
¡°It does have one hell of a destructive power. But my proficiency with it is much lower than Mister Bak Yun-gyu¡¯s version of the same skill.¡±
The skill, ¡°One Sword Cutting Through Everything¡± wasn¡¯t that difficult to acquire. You could easily purchase it in any of the shops found inside the Tower of Trials with sufficient points for payment.
But it was a little expensive. And, although its destructive power was amazing, there was one caveat. It could only be applied to downward attacks, so the skill itself wasn¡¯t used very often.
But both Bak Yun-gyu and Su-hyeun had raised their proficiency with the skill to a high degree.
Especially Bak Yun-gyu, who had been practicing ¡°One Sword Cutting Through Everything¡± for a very long time, his proficiency easily exceeded Su-hyeun¡¯s.
¡°But why is your version so much stronger?¡± Gordon Rohan asked.
¡°Because I¡¯m stronger than him.¡±
The reply sounded quite matter-of-factly.
But Gordon Rohan had nothing to say to that. It was indeed true that, even if the skill was the same, power could vary greatly, like heaven and earth, depending on who was utilizing it.
¡°Dammit... Is this how others feel when they look at me? I¡¯m seriously not liking this.¡±
Gordon Rohan groaned in pain and shook his head. He touched the wound on his chest, and his hand came away red.
The bleeding had been staunched by his magical energy, but, as expected, it would be tough to continue fighting as if nothing had happened.
¡°You know, I wanted to fight up close like a man if that was possible, but...,¡± Gordon Rohan raised his head and chucked the spear high in the air. ¡°...But, it looks like that¡¯s not going to happen now.¡±
Su-hyeun¡¯s gaze followed the spear the American had thrown into the air.
Swish! Swish! Swish!
Suddenly, thousands, no, tens of thousands of spears appeared in the sky. The spear Gordon Rohan threw up disappeared in the crowded skies.
p!
Immediately, another pair of wings pped majestically behind the American¡¯s back.
Initially, he was thinking of other challengers that would step up after he defeated Su-hyeun, but now, he decided not to worry about what would happenter.
[The Archangel- Divine Punishment.]
A short whileter.
Zoom, zoom!
The divine punishment created by Gordon Rohan descended to earth, and...
¡°Huh?¡±
And not long after that, the whole world witnessed a result no one would have ever predicted.
Chapter 141
Chapter 141: Chapter 141
Act 5
[The Archangel ¨C Nemesis.]
Tens of thousands of spears appeared above the stadium. It was a spectacr scene. Only one of those spears could change the game, but so many of them appeared all at the same time.
¡°...That is nonsense.¡±
¡°That is beyond imagining.¡±
Even the other S-Rank awakeners who had advanced to the finals were astonished at this scene. They imagined how they would react if they were standing in front of those spears. Half of them thought they would give up even before they actually started to fight. They could imagine the results. They didn¡¯t want to risk injury if they would lose anyway. They were amazed at the skill, but soon people made harsh judgments.
<>
<>
If Gordon Rohan could use those skills without much effort, he would have done it already. That was just who he was. No matter what anyone said, Gordon Rohan was the closest thing to the world¡¯s best awakener. And Su-hyeun was the one Gordon Rohan recognized. He would prefer to defeat Su-hyeun perfectly. That would be his ideal scenario. Nevertheless, Gordon Rohan saved his Nemesis skill against Su-hyeun so far because it was burdensome to use.
<>
<>
Gordon Rohan was the host of these Ranking Wars. And he imed the first order of this final stage even though it was the most disadvantageous position. He shouldn¡¯t have poured all his energy into this first round. Even if he won this one, he had to continue to fight through the next round. But Gordon Rohan was pouring out all of his power right at the beginning, against Su-hyeun.
<>
<>
Everyone thought the same thing. Everyone thought there would be nothing more Su-hyeun could do against those enormous spears. Su-hyeun, who had already revealed all his tricks, seemed unable to do anymore. And that meant everyone else would get an opportunity.
<>
<>
<>
People thought they might win against Gordon Rohan when he ran out of strength and magic. Moreover, he was injured by Su-hyeun. He was a beast who lost his teeth and ws, and people thought they could hunt him down.
¡°Oh well...¡± Su-hyeun sighed, looking at the many spears that filled the air above his head. ¡°I thought it would be over by now.¡±
If Gordon Rohan hadn¡¯t had Heavenly God¡¯s Armor, the game would have been over already. Su-hyeun, who had no intention of using a lot of energy in this round, shook his head, as if the game had be annoying.
¡°You still have more things to show me, don¡¯t you?¡± Gordon Rohan asked, looking at Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
Even in this desperate situation, Su-hyeun still seemed to be able to afford to hold back. It was a feeling that only he could feel since he was fighting against Su-hyeun at the closest.
¡°Don¡¯t save them. Show your everything.¡±
Gordon Rohan wanted to fight Su-hyeun when he gave all his heart and strength. It was his one desire. It was purer than anyone else. Gordon Rohan had a clear purpose, beyond enjoying the fight. Therefore, he couldn¡¯t be satisfied just by beating Su-hyeun. He didn¡¯t want to win by luck, chance, or carelessness. Gordon Rohan looked more excited than ever.
¡°You¡¯re the one,¡± Gordon Rohan said, ¡°that I can prove to myself that I¡¯m the best. Do you understand? In fact, this Ranking Wars is just a stage for you and me.¡±
Rumble, rumble¡ª
The tens of thousands of spears in the sky began to tremble wildly.
¡°So, I want you to do your best.¡±
¡°Well. You granted my request¡ª¡±
[Activate the trait ¡®Hero-Immortality.¡¯]
[The condition has not been met.]
[Vitality and Stamina will not be recovered.]
[Physical ability will increase rapidly.]
¡°¡ªyou don¡¯t have to ask me for that.¡±
The hero-grade skill named Immortality was a passive type skill that automatically activated when fatigue umted beyond a certain point. For the past half-year, Su-hyeun had been thinking about how to use this Immortality skill. It was definitely a great skill, but the conditions required to use it were extreme. But what would happen if the limitation of the conditions disappeared? The skill would be much more useful.
<> Su-hyeun thought.
But there was no problem. He could finish in that time. Su-hyeun¡¯s whole demeanor changed in a sh. Gordon Rohan could feel that something had changed, but couldn¡¯t tell exactly what it was. Su-hyeun¡¯s appearance and concentration of magic didn¡¯t seem changed.
<>
He was sure of that. Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes had a different look. Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t lower his guard or let Gordon Rohan off.
<> Gordon Rohan shivered. <>
It was a chance to prove that he was the best in one field. He was sure he was the best. He felt pleasure and fulfillment from it. Gordon Rohan grasped his hands tight, lifted them above his head, and...
¡°Here I go!¡±
Whoosh¡ª
He mmed the floor with his fist.
Boom¡ª
Swish, swish¡ª
Tens of thousands of spears began to fall toward only one target: Su-hyeun.
Swish, swish¡ª
Crack¡ª!
While hundreds of spears flew at him, Su-hyeun moved his sword. The spears shattered and fell to the floor. So did the spears that followed.
sh, sh¡ª!
Crack, crack¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword made a sound of cutting through the wind. He wielded his sword wildly. Gordon Rohan reached into the air and grabbed a spear. He used the spear to block the energy that shot from Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
Rumble¡ª
Boom¡ª!
And as it was, Gordon Rohan¡¯s body was pushed out.
<>
This power waspletely different. The shock was much greater than he had expected. Gordon Rohan grabbed his hand tight and dropped the Nemesis skill again. This time, he shot more spears, more powerfully than the first time.
Rumble¡ª
The spears began to merge. Dozens of spears merged. Thousands ofrger spears were formed. The powers of the spears grew as well. They became harder than before.
¡°Here I go again!¡±
Bam¡ª!
Gondon Rohan smashed the ground again.
[Nemesis.]
ng¡ª nk¡ª
Hundreds of spears, bigger and more powerful than before, began to fall over Su-hyeun¡¯s head. At that moment, Su-hyeun¡¯s sword ignited. Su-hyeun grabbed his sword tight. He lowered the sword first and lifted up quickly.
[me.]
[Net cutting.]
Swoosh, whoosh¡ª
ng, ng¡ª
The aura of the sword cut hundreds of spears into pieces. The spears lost their power and began to fall to the ground. Gordon Rohan¡¯s eyes widened.
<>
It was basic-grade swordsmanship that one could get easily on the 30th floor. It was a skill that any high-rank awakener would know. The skill¡¯s power itself wasn¡¯t that great. It was a skill that focused more on range than power. The only effect of the skill was when the user wielded the sword, the cutting force could cut around in the shape of a. Even though Su-hyeun used a special skill named me with it, this simple cutting skill blocked Gordon Rohan¡¯s Nemesis.
<> Gordon Rohan thought.
Grab¡ª
He clenched his fists. ¡°If you stop this too, I¡¯ll admit you.¡±
Rumble, rumble¡ª
Tens of thousands of spears that had remained in the sky werebined into one.
Zap, zap¡ª
It became a sharp, pure white spear with great magic in it. Gordon Rohan reached his hand out into the air. The pure white spear moved along with his hand gesture as if it was held by Gordon Rohan.
¡°I can use spears a little bit as well.¡± Su-hyeun took out the spear that he had been carrying on his back.
It looked shabby, especiallypared to Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear. Su-hyeun held the Dragon ying Spear, stiffened his legs and bent his body like a bow.
¡°One...two...¡±
Spark¡ª!
At the moment that Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear started to fall down¡ª
¡°Three!¡±
¡ªSu-hyeun, who bent his body like a bow, bounced forward. The Dragon ying Spear left his hand.
Spark¡ª!
Rumble¡ª!
The huge white spear and the Dragon ying Spear shed. There was a bright light and a thundering noise. Not only people who were watching the match through the screen but even participants watching the match from a distance couldn¡¯t tell what was going on. The only two people that moved in the light were Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan.
Whoosh¡ª!
Gordon Rohan¡¯s body flew in front of Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. He spread his two wings and held a long spear in his hand.
Whiz¡ª
Swish¡ª
The spear spun fast and flew to stab Su-hyeun¡¯s chest. And, even under the bright light, Gordon Rohan was sure.
<>
Su-hyeun was standing still in a position to swing the spear. In this case, Gordon Rohan¡¯s spear could prate Su-hyeun¡¯s chest exactly. It would bring him victory.
<>
Stab¡ª!
At the moment that the tip of spear prated the chest of Su-hyeun...
[Doppelganger.]
His triumph disappeared like a mirage.
<<...Uh?>>
sh¡ª
He felt a burning pain in his back. Gordon Rohan¡¯s body began to copse.
***
¡°Damn! I can¡¯t see!¡±
¡°What the hell is going on?¡±
People frowned at the harsh light. They shaded their eyes with their hands and tried to see. But they couldn¡¯t see anything. The shing light was so intense. People admired the power of Gordon Rohan, who created the bright light.
<>
<>
People were sure Gordon Rohan would be the winner even if they couldn¡¯t see what was going on. They assumed Su-hyeun could never have defended against that huge spear. But...
¡°Who¡¯s that? One person is standing in the middle.¡±
¡°Do we have a result?¡±
¡°I¡¯m sure it¡¯s Gordon Rohan...¡±
¡°No. Wait!¡± Someone who had good sight shouted, ¡°It¡¯s Kim Su-hyeun!¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun?¡±
¡°What? Kim Su-hyeun won against Gordon Rohan?¡±
One by one, people rose from their seats to see the result of the match more clearly. And, soon, they could see the result well.
¡°R-really...!¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun won!¡±
People shouted. The man on the floor was Gordon Rohan. Su-hyeun looked down at Gordon Rohan, hanging down his sword.
¡°What the f*ck,¡± Gordon Rohan cursed. He looked up Su-hyeun from the floor. ¡°I lose.¡±
¡°You were so close,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Are you consoling me? Screw that. I know I wasn¡¯t even close.¡±
Gordon Rohan pushed himself off the ground. Su-hyeun thought about helping him get up, but he didn¡¯t. He thought that would hurt Gordon Rohan¡¯s pride more.
¡°So, you caught my back...,¡± Gordon Rohan murmured, shaking his head, ¡°I totally lost.¡±
¡°...¡±
¡°You think so, too. Huh? Since you don¡¯t say anything.¡±
¡°Because the result tells us.¡±
¡°Ha. I get it. I know now how other people feel when they look at me. You¡¯re so full of yourself, but I can¡¯t anything but admit you¡¯re right.¡± Gordon Rohan, who barely got up, looked around the other participants. They were looking at him nkly. ¡°Hey, Su-hyeun. You have to win, okay? Don¡¯t lose to someone else.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t worry about that.¡± Su-hyeun followed Gordon Rohan¡¯s gaze and looked at other participants as well. ¡°I¡¯d win even if you didn¡¯t say that.¡±
Chapter 142 - Chapter 142
Chapter 142: Chapter 142
***
The world was torn apart. Not only the broadcasters broadcasting the Ranking Wars but also the hundreds of millions of viewers watching it were surprised. They couldn¡¯t ept this result, which overturned all their expectations.
¡°R-rewrite the article, quickly! Write a headline like ¡®Gordon Rohan lost the first round!¡¯ and upload the article after you summarize as much as possible what just happened!¡±
¡°Yes! Yes! Oh, what? Some newspapers already posted about it!¡±
¡°What? What crazy bastards! How did they know the results and write already?¡±
¡°What about the articles we¡¯ve already written?¡±
¡°Erase everything! From now on, write articles focused on Kim Su-hyeun. Monitor thepetition in real-time!¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
Not only the broadcasters but even the reporters got busy. It was such an unexpected scenario that Gordon Rohan would be eliminated in the first game. Even though he was fighting Kim Su-hyeun, people¡¯s opinions did not change. 5 to 95. Those were the odds between Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan.
And the reporters who had written the articles in advance, hoping for the small possibility of the five percent, hit the jackpot. At the moment of Su-hyeun¡¯s victory, they upload their articles as fast as possible and got a high view count.
Korean broadcasting stations were also busy. A Korean awakener defeating Gordon Rohan was a huge topic.
¡°It doesn¡¯t matter if he wins the Ranking Wars or not, prepare for an interview with Kim Su-hyeun right now! Take it exclusively, no matter what it takes!¡±
¡°Should we get an airne then?¡±
¡°Airne? Yes. Yes. Good idea. We have to meet him before other people do something. No! They might have already departed!¡±
¡°Sir!¡±
¡°Why? What is it? Can¡¯t you see I¡¯m busy right now?¡±
¡°The final round, sir! It seems like it won¡¯t go long!¡±
¡°...What?¡±
One producer of CBC broadcaster, busy giving orders, turned his head quickly. He watched the game on the monitor and opened his eyes wide.
¡°Is he fighting the third one already?¡±
Gordon Rohan had just lost the fight. But now, in front of Su-hyeun, a third opponent fell to the ground.
***
Boom¡ª!
Su-hyeun grabbed the opponent¡¯s neck and threw him to the floor. The opponent was assassin-type awakener who had been moving at high speed to distract Su-hyeun.
¡°If you wanted to wear out my stamina, you should have thrown your weapon from a distance at least,¡± said Su-hyeun.
¡°A-argh...¡±
The assassin¡¯s eyes turned white. He started foaming at the mouth and passed out. He had moved so fast, that it took more time to catch him than other awakeners.
¡°Next.¡±
Su-hyeun shook his hands and stood up. He looked at the stands. Two people raised their hands. Everyone was hurrying to fight with him at first, but there weren¡¯t many volunteering anymore.
Puff¡ª
A familiar face appeared before Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes. He was a Chinese awakener named Wang Wu.
¡°Thepetition was too high.¡±
He had been raising his hand ever since the fight between Gordon Rohan and Su-hyeun was over. And, finally, he raised his hand faster than everyone else. So, he could participate in the game.
¡°Hey. We¡¯ve met before, right?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Thanks to you,¡± Wang Wu said, ¡°my wrist was out. Well. I managed somehow to pass the preliminary round though.¡±
Su-hyeun had broken up a fight between Wang Wu and one Japanese awakener from the top floor of Gordon Tower before. That time, he had broken Wang Wu¡¯s wrist to subdue him.
¡°I guess you had a good doctor.¡±
¡°One of my guild members has amazing recovery skills. He can reattach a broken bone in half a day.¡±
¡°Then, why did youe out so fast?¡±
¡°I know you¡¯re going to win anyway. So, I wanted to fight with you when you had more energy,¡± Wang Wu said and put the gloves on his hands. He stared at Su-hyeun. ¡°I don¡¯t even think to win against you. I¡¯d be satisfied if I hit you just once.¡±
Bam¡ª!
When Wang Wu hit the gauntlets in both of his hands, a solid sound spread around.
¡°Then I¡¯ll go first.¡±
Whiz¡ª
Wang Wu¡¯s big body began to move and came right to Su-hyeun. He wasn¡¯t that fast, but the power in his hands was stronger than thest three people. Wang Wu¡¯s fist stretched toward Su-hyeun¡¯s head.
At that moment, Wang Wu had a revtion.
<>
Boom¡ª!
The gauntlet hit Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
[Indomitable body.]
Along with the heavy feeling, a solid impact was delivered to the fist inside the gauntlet. And it was at that moment...
Grab¡ª
¡°Ok. You hit me.¡±
¡°Argh...¡±
Su-hyeun grabbed Wang Wu¡¯s forearm tightly and said, ¡°Are you satisfied now?¡±
¡°What a crazy...¡±
Bam¡ª!
Su-hyeun punched Wang Wu¡¯s sr plexus. His back bent forward and began to copse.
Flop¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s cheek that had been hit by the gauntlet felt numb.
He stroked his cheek and murmured, ¡°I guess I should have avoided that.¡± He turned his gaze to the participants again and said, ¡°Next!¡±
***
Ten, eleven, twelve. The challengers lost one by one. The awakener whosted the longest among them was Ashlyn. She was American S-Rank awakener, an unusual female one. She was the one whosted longest but it wasn¡¯t that long, either. She was on the stage for three minutes.
Adel, who had been watching the matches, thought, <>
He started to think that way after Ashlyn lost. At first, when Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan had fought, he let out a cheer. When Su-hyeun won unexpectedly, he didn¡¯t think that it was a problem. Whoever won, if they left each other covered with wounds, that was enough for him. He hoped Su-hyeun had run out of his energy and magic and would get injured. Adel thought he could win against him, then. So, he didn¡¯t jump to fight right away and waited to see. But...
<>
Already half of the finalists had lost. But Su-hyeun was still full of energy.
[1 minute left.]
The announcement came directly to their brains. Adel collected his mind at that announcement. Nobody was trying to challenge Su-hyeun anymore. They all thought that they would wait until he ran out of energy.
<>
Time passed slowly. When the time was done, the right to decide was passed over to Su-hyeun.
[Choose a challenger.]
<>
Adel lowered his head. And he wasn¡¯t the only one. Every finalist in the arena avoided eye contact with Su-hyeun. Some people avoided his gaze explicitly. Other people pretended to look at something else. Adel was one of them.
¡°Damn it! Damn it!¡± Adel gnashed his teeth and muttered. He still lowered his head.
It had been a while since he¡¯d avoided eye-contact with someone because he was scared. He felt humiliated. His pride was broken. He hoped Su-hyeun didn¡¯t point him out. He wanted to wait until thest of thest. He wanted to fightter, when Su-hyeun would be exhausted.
¡°Adel.¡± Su-hyeun pointed out his opponent.
Puff¡ª
At that moment, thendscape in front of Adel changed. Suddenly, he was at the stadium.
¡°Did he just choose Adel?¡±
¡°For the first point, he chooses Adel!¡±
¡°Then, maybe...¡±
The spectators started to stir. It was the same for the people who were watching the game on Television. Especially European viewers responded instantly. Adel was one of the top candidates for the winner, along with Gordon Rohan. And he was the most famous awakener all over Europe.
<>
<>
<>
Being a winner of the Ranking Wars woulde with a great prize. Gordon Rohan had offered an enormous amount of money. If Su-hyeun was full of energy, there would be no chance for Adel to win against him. But Su-hyeun had fought against Gordon Rohan and had been fighting with more than ten S-Rank awakeners. So, Adel thought he might able to win. Su-hyeun and Adel looked at each other.
Su-hyeun grinned and spoke first, ¡°Hey. Long time no see.¡±
Clench¡ª
Adel snarled at Su-hyeun¡¯s greeting. Su-hyeun had pointed out Adel without any hesitation. That meant only one thing. Su-hyeun had been waiting for Adel and the chance to fight against him.
¡°Sure. Long time no see,¡± Adel said.
¡°You look very different from yesterday? Why don¡¯t youugh?¡±
Adel had been smiling the day before. He usuallyughed a lot. Even if it was faked, Adel was famous for his smiling face. Adel¡¯s distorted face wasn¡¯t something easy to see.
¡°Are you scared of me?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
Adel¡¯s eyes were shaking.
¡°Or are you scared of losing in front of so many people?¡±
¡°Stop talking nonsense!¡±
¡°Well...¡± Su-hyeun shook his head as if he was pathetic. ¡°What would be the point of saying it?¡±
Su-hyeun didn¡¯t say it exactly, but Adel could understand what he was trying to say. Su-hyeun wasughing at what had happened the day before. Adel flipped his lid. He clenched his fists and gathered his magic.
<>
Rumble¡ª
Adel¡¯s hands started to change to a golden color.
<>
Su-hyeun had used a lot of magic during the fight against Gordon Rohan. Adel assumed his physical strength was worn out as well.
<>
In that case, it was clear that Su-hyeun only could use half or less than half of his power than usual.
<>
Adel made a firm determination. They were ready to fight.
[The game starts now.]
Swish¡ª
Adelunched himself at Su-hyeun. On the other hand, Su-hyeun was standing still. Adel aimed Su-hyeun¡¯s neck and stretched his hand.
ng¡ª nk¡ª ng¡ª!
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword and Adel¡¯s hands hit each other, one after another. Adel didn¡¯t feel any pain. At first, his hands couldn¡¯t be cut by any sword, no matter how sharp.
[Adamantium gauntlets.]
Adamantium was the hardest metal in the world. It was very rare and priceless. Adel was one of the awakeners who attacked the dungeon where adamantium was found. And his gauntlets were the world¡¯s only gauntlets that had been made by smelting adamantium. Adel melted the gauntlets in his body to wear anytime, anywhere, and to use them as part of his body.
Boom¡ª!
Adel¡¯s fist hit Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. After a couple of hits, his confidence grew. He was convinced that he could win.
<>
Whoosh¡ª
Adel stretched out his fist. Huge magic gathered in the fist and started to make it turn blue.
[White Dragon Fist.]
Kiyaaa¡ª!
The shape of a giant dragon came over Su-hyeun¡¯s body. It was when the fangs of the blue dragon tried to bite Su-hyeun that he lifted his sword up. He didn¡¯t even try to avoid the attack.
<>
When Adel realized what Su-hyeun was doing, it was toote.
[One Sword Cutting Through Everything- Cutting the Sky.]
sh¡ª
Su-hyeun¡¯s sword swung down.
Boom¡ª!
The dragon¡¯s body was cut in two. The stadium went topsy-turvy again.
Chapter 143
Chapter 143: Chapter 143
Act 6
Adel knelt. He crossed his arms and blocked Su-hyeun¡¯s sword.
sh, sh¡ª
¡°Gasp!¡±
Su-hyeun gave one big shot. The power of Su-hyeun¡¯s sword was stronger than any other attack Adel had ever received. As Su-hyeun pressed down, Adel couldn¡¯t even stand up straight. He felt a burning feeling from the back of his hands that were blocking the sword.
Drip¡ª
Blood leaked through the gauntlets and ran down the back of Adel¡¯s hands.
<>
Adel was wearing gauntlets made from adamantium. Although the adamantium content was low, it was confirmed that it couldn¡¯t be broken or cut by anything. The researchers said that even if he took a hit from a missile, the gauntlets would be fine. But now his adamantium gauntlets were cut. Although they were small cuts, it was still hard to believe.
<> Adel grinned.
Gordon Rohan couldn¡¯t have stopped this attack and had gotten injured, instead.
<>
Thump¡ª
At that moment, Su-hyeun trampled on Adel¡¯s knee. Adel, who was about to rise up and to swing his fist, widened his eyes. Because of the power of Su-hyeun stepping on his knee, he couldn¡¯t stand up.
¡°Don¡¯t move. Stay still.¡± Su-hyeun lifted his sword again. ¡°Don¡¯t avoid it unless you want to get your head cut.¡±
Swish¡ª!
ng, nk¡ª!
Su-hyeun continued to strike above Adel¡¯s head. Adel couldn¡¯t escape. He just kept raising his hands to block the sword. His arms were getting tired, they felt as if they would tear apart. But, as Su-hyeun said, Adel couldn¡¯t avoid the sword.
<>
Adel thought he really might die if things went wrong. He felt like his neck would be cut if his defense fell for even just a moment. But, even so, he couldn¡¯t keep blocking like this.
Adel clenched his teeth. He began to rise up with strength in his legs. Su-hyeun moved the foot that had been steeping on Adel¡¯s knee. They increased the distance. And, in that brief moment, Adel pulled his fist back and reloaded his power.
¡°You die!¡±
Whoosh¡ª
The fist, with the adamantium gauntlet, flew to Su-hyeun¡¯s head. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t move his sword. Adel had a smile of satisfaction.
<>
Whoosh¡ª
Wham¡ª!
A Dull and heavy sound rang. Adel couldn¡¯t believe his eyes. He hadn¡¯t hit Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. Adel hit his fist. Su-hyeun blocked Adel¡¯s attack with his bare hand, without any weapons like gauntlets.
<>
Crack, crack¡ª!
But the cracking sound came from a different side. Adel looked at his fist. He couldn¡¯t believe what he was seeing. The golden gauntlet on his fist began to crack.
Crack, crack¡ª!
ng¡ª!
The shattered pieces of gauntlet fell to the floor. Adel backed off, staring at the gauntlet pieces scattered everywhere.
¡°W-what is this nonsense...,¡± Adel said in surprise.
¡°That was quite hard,¡± Su-hyeun said, shaking his fist.
¡°What the hell did you do? How... that¡¯s adamantium¡ª¡±
¡°Even though it was a great weapon, the person who used it wasn¡¯t so great. And, in this world, there¡¯s no such thing as a perfect metal.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s words, Adel asked with a doubtful look, ¡°Wait. No way. Did you n all this from the beginning...?¡±
¡°Of course. If it weren¡¯t for this, I could have finished you already.¡±
Stomp, stomp¡ª
Su-hyeun slowly walked to Adel.
¡°So? How do you feel about losing your precious weapon? It was like a body part, wasn¡¯t it? What value do you have without it?¡±
¡°Aaaagh!¡±
Rap¡ª!
Adel swung his fist instinctively. His fist hit Su-hyeun. Adel was puzzled. His reckless attack was sessful?
Thump¡ª
¡°Argh!¡±
Su-hyeun hit Adel¡¯s stomach. Adel¡¯s back bent and his knees shook with shock.
¡°Look at this,¡± said Su-hyeun.
Whack¡ª!
This time, Su-hyeun hit Adel¡¯s face. ¡°You¡¯re awful.¡±
¡°Argh...¡±
Blood began to pour from Adel¡¯s face. It looked like his nose was broken.
Grab¡ª
Su-hyeun grabbed Adel¡¯s head as he tried to step back. And Su-hyeun¡¯s fist, raised high, smashed his face again.
Whack, whack¡ª!
Adel¡¯s teeth broke, one by one, and fell to the floor. Adel, who was being beaten, hardly opened his mouth to say something.
¡°G-gi...¡±
Whack¡ª!
Su-hyeun punched Adel¡¯s mouth again. Adel didn¡¯t even get a chance to give up. Su-hyeun made Adel unable to surrender. Su-hyeun held Adel¡¯s head tight.
¡°Argh...Ar...¡± Adel moaned.
¡°You say it right now, on your own.¡± Su-hyeun¡¯s eyes turned cold and harsh. ¡°About what you did yesterday and why you did it...¡±
Adel¡¯s eyes shook. <>
As soon as he confessed, he would be doomed. Not only he would be criticized for his morality by everyone, but he¡¯d be a pariah for the rest of his life.
<>
The coalition would never even be formed. It would be impossible. Adel couldn¡¯t say it out loud.
¡°So... You don¡¯t want to say it, do you?¡± Su-hyeun asked, looking at Adel, who was held by his hand. Adel could only shake his head a little bit. ¡°Well. You¡¯ll change your mind soon.¡±
[The Curse of the Dark Psychic ¨C Pain.]
In front of Adel¡¯s eyes, a soul wearing a ck robe appeared. At that moment, the sensory organs of Adel¡¯s entire body became dozens of times more sensitive.
¡°Shake your hand whenever you change your mind.¡±
Wham¡ª!
Su-hyeun punched Adel¡¯s stomach. Adel¡¯s eyes turned white and his body bent almost in half.
¡°Argh...¡±
¡°I¡¯ll keep hitting you until then.¡±
Su-hyeun raised his hand again. One-sided violence began.
¡°Hey. Will you just watch it?¡±
At Johnny Brad¡¯s question, Gordon Rohan nodded. ¡°Don¡¯t bother them. Adel didn¡¯t say that he¡¯ll give up yet.¡±
¡°I saw his mouth. The guy tried to surrender.¡±
¡°Yes. He tried to surrender. But he didn¡¯t actually surrender, did he?¡± Gordon Rohan looked down the stadium from the top of the stand and rested his chin on his desk.
Johnny Brad looked at Gordon Rohan as if he couldn¡¯t understand him. ¡°People will criticize the Ranking Wars for allowing such one-sided violence.¡±
¡°Let them. I don¡¯t care. If they have an issue with me, they can alwayse and find me. I¡¯ll smash them all.¡±
¡°...I guess you really don¡¯t like him.¡±
¡°Who? Adel?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t like him that much. He has quite a lot of talent and skills, but he didn¡¯t try to be stronger through effort. He only thought of petty tricks,¡± Gordon Rohan said, looking at Adel, who was still being beaten up. ¡°Let Su-hyeun beat him up until Adel says ¡®surrender.¡¯ That¡¯s the rule.¡±
¡°St...o...p...¡± Adel hardly opened his mouth to say.
While Adel was being beaten, he tried to surrender over and over again. But whenever he tried to open his mouth, Su-hyeun smashed it. Like that, Adel was beaten for a few minutes.
The Curse of the Dark Psychic was a skill to maximize the pain of the subdued object. It specialized in torture. Because of this skill, Adel was now experiencing a pain that he had never felt before. He was just being hit by a fist, but he felt pain like his body was breaking down.
¡°Are you ready to say it now?¡± Su-hyeun stopped the beating. He pulled Adel up and met his eyes.
Adel shook his body. He barely opened his eyes and hardly looked at Su-hyeun. And that moment, the third eye on Su-hyeun¡¯s forehead opened.
[Third Eye ¨C Predator.]
Syaaaa¡ª
Adel¡¯s body was frozen. He couldn¡¯t move his arms or legs, as if they were tied up. His mouth trembled. Under the influence of the Predator skill, Adel felt an instinctive fear of Su-hyeun.
¡°D-don¡¯t kill me...Please...Don¡¯t kill me...¡±
¡°Then say it.¡± Su-hyeun dropped Adel and nodded his head. ¡°Say it, and I won¡¯t kill you.¡±
Adel couldn¡¯t think straight. His head was full of instinctive fear. He wanted to live. So, Adel turned his body away from Su-hyeun and knelt down on the floor.
¡°Don¡¯t kill me...¡±
At the veryst moment, Adel had a brief conflict. He still had a little bit of reason in the back of his mind. But it didn¡¯tst. He felt the presence of Su-hyeun, standing in his back.
¡°I...¡±
The CBC broadcasting station that had been broadcasting the Ranking Wars was in an uproar because of Adel. He suddenly opened his mouth and started to confess during the fight.
¡°What¡¯s happening?¡±
¡°Do you think that¡¯s true?¡±
CBC¡¯s producer, Bae Young-cheol and the writer, Kim Hyeun-su were staring at the broadcast screen. The screen was showing Adel¡¯s face. The game was paused. Adel¡¯s voice came out of the TV.
I am so sorry. I will never do such things again...
Adel was shivering and stuttering. He certainly didn¡¯t seem normal. Ordinarily, Adel was a man ofughter and always looked rxed. But now, he was scared of Su-hyeun.
¡°So, the conclusion is,¡± Bae Young-cheol said, ¡°the European Union decided to create another union of European awakeners... and to make it look good, they tried to make Adel winner of the Ranking Wars... am I right?¡±
If it was all true, it would be a huge scoop. Too many S-Rank awakeners were involved to consider it a simple fight among awakeners.
¡°Yea. I think you¡¯re right,¡± Kim Hyeun-su answered.
¡°Why the hell is he confessing, then?¡±
¡°I guess...he was afraid of dying because he was beaten up too much.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t you think maybe he was threatened while he was beaten up?¡± Bae Young-cheol asked.
¡°His story is too detailed for that. And I think there is circumstantial evidence,¡± Kim Hyeun-su said.
¡°Circumstantial evidence? Like what?¡± Bae Young-cheol asked in surprise.
¡°Some awakeners from the European Union disappeared. It¡¯s news from reporter Mr. Jeong from San Francisco.¡±
¡°Wow. He got the news fast.¡±
The story sounded convincing. In particr, just looking at the way the floor of the stadium was crushed, people could guess there was a big fight the day before.
¡°What do you think will happen now, sir?¡± Kim Hyeun-su asked.
¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°I mean Kim Su-hyeun. He looks like he¡¯s about to pick a fight with the whole European Union openly.¡±
¡°Fight? Do you think this is about to be a fight?¡±
¡°Yes?¡±
¡°This is a warning.¡±
Kim Hyeun-su tilted his head and asked, ¡°What do you mean?¡±
¡°Kim Su-hyeun resorted to violence against Adel and made him confess the reason himself.¡±
¡°Yea. And why is that...?¡±
¡°What do European Union awakeners think of that? Do you think they¡¯ll keep trying to fight with Kim Su-hyeun? Creating a Union and joining the forces? Why? For what reason?¡±
¡°Because...¡±
Kim Hyeun-su couldn¡¯t answer. And he finally realized. The European Awakener Federation was still an unclear organization. It didn¡¯t officially exist, yet. And...
¡°No one¡¯s name was revealed, except Adel.¡±
¡°Yes. That¡¯s right.¡± Bae Young-cheol ignited an electronic cigarette and sucked a sip for a long time. ¡°In this situation, if the European Awakener Federation was created and people joined? That would be like admitting you were one of the attackers.¡±
¡°Wow. That¡¯s...¡±
¡°Now do you get it why I called it a warning?¡±
What Su-hyeun wanted to say about this was very clear.
¡°With this, he¡¯s making sure the European Awakener Federation isn¡¯t going to happen.¡±
Chapter 144
Chapter 144: Chapter 144
A chaotic time had passed. The Ranking Wars continued. People decided to worry about right and wrong after the wholepetition. Su-hyeun¡¯sst opponent was Hak-joon. After Adel surrendered, some brave awakeners decided to challenge him. But they all knelt eventually. Hak-joon waited until the end. Like that, thest match of this Ranking Wars was between the two Korean awakeners. And the result, of course, was as everyone expected.
¡°Huu¡ª¡±
Hak-joon hit the mat and let out a long breath. He couldn¡¯t win, no matter how hard he tried. With Hak-joon¡¯s abilities, just blocking Su-hyeun¡¯s sword wasn¡¯t an easy thing to do.
<> Hak-joon thought.
He realized that ¡°there may be blue and better blue¡± after he had seen the fight between Su-hyeun and Gordon Rohan. The reason why he had waited until thest was because he was confident that Su-hyeun wouldn¡¯t lose to anyone else until the end.
<>
Not only did he fail to hit Su-hyeun once, he couldn¡¯tst for even five minutes. He had to admit it.
¡°Ok. I lose. I can¡¯t move any more!¡±
[The game is over.]
[The winner of the Ranking Wars is ¡®Kim Su-hyeun¡¯.]
[Congrattions.]
Ping¡ª
Pop, pop, pop¡ª!
Firecrackers burst from all over the stadium. The splendid fireworks filled the sky above the stadium, far above the cracked and broken floor.
Hak-joon, lying on the floor, looked at the mes and said, ¡°That¡¯s so cool.¡±
¡°Yea. I agree,¡± Su-hyeun said.
A loud voice came through among the beautiful and colorful mes.
¡°Congrattions!¡±
p, p, p¡ª!
It was Gordon Rohan. He was pping from above the stadium. He looked down at Su-hyeun. It looked like he had recovered enough to move.
¡°I honestly thought I would be there right now.¡±
Gordon Rohan said and threw a microphone at Su-hyeun. He had probably prepared the microphone to give his victory speech. Unfortunately, Su-hyeun had one instead. Su-hyeun caught the microphone.
¡°Why don¡¯t you tell people how you feel? How does it feel to be the best awakener in the world?¡± Gordon Rohan asked.
It was a sort of question that journalists would ask. And, also, it was a question that everyone was wondering about. It was the moment that Su-hyeun took an honored ce as the world¡¯s best awakener. It was the ce that everybody must acknowledge. It was natural to want to hear his feelings about the moment. Of course, some people who actually had fought and lost against him didn¡¯t want to hear anything about that.
¡°It¡¯s not like I¡¯m super excited or something,¡± Su-hyeun answered calmly.
It wasn¡¯t a formal response. Su-hyeun was really calm. After all, Su-hyeun had been once the strongest human being in his previous life. Now, he was just a little closer to how he had been.
¡°Oh, really? Then how do you feel?¡± Gordon asked, eyes sparkling.
The cameras kept broadcasting. Everyone all over the world was looking at Su-hyeun to hear his speech about the victory.
Su-hyeun thought for a moment and said, ¡°I don¡¯t feel any different right now. Just... I thought I finally took one step forward... I guess that is about it.¡±
It was Su-hyeun¡¯s honest feelings. There was still a long way to go, and winning this Ranking Wars was only a step toward reaching his destination. He felt like it was too early to say thoughts or words because it was just one step for him.
¡°Did you say you finally took one step?¡± Gordon Rohan¡¯s eyes sparked. ¡°Then what¡¯s your next step? And how far do you n to go?¡±
¡°To the end.¡±
¡°To the end?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°What is that? Did you already set up your goal or something?¡±
¡°Yes. I have my goal.¡±
At Su-hyeun¡¯s answer, Gordon Rohan frowned a little bit.
He asked again, ¡°Then what will happen when you reach the end, to your goal? Are you going to stop trying?¡±
¡°After that... I¡¯ll think about it when I get there. But...,¡± Su-hyeun met the eyes of Gordon Rohan and continued to say, ¡°I¡¯m going to go faster than anyone else until I get to the end. So, if you can get ahead of me, go ahead.¡±
Thump¡ª!
Su-hyeun raised his foot and stomped on the floor. Huge magic began to spread under the stadium. It was as if an earthquake urred.
¡°Whoever that is, I¡¯ll wee them.¡±
Gordon Rohan, who was disappointed for a moment, smiled again.
<>
He liked it. He liked Su-hyeun¡¯s confidence to tell the entire world to challenge him if there was anyone confident enough.
<>
¡°You wait there. I¡¯ll pass you before you reach your goal.¡± Gordon Rohan reached out to Su-hyeun.
Now, the tables had turned. Gordon Rohan, who had considered Su-hyeun as a challenger, became the challenger now. And he reached his hand out to Su-hyeun.
¡°Sure.¡± Su-hyeun held Gordon Rohan¡¯s hand back.
The fireworks, which signaled the end of the Ranking Wars, were filling the stadium without stopping.
After the Ranking Wars, Su-hyeun left Gordon Tower with Hak-joon. Not surprisingly, many people were waiting in front of the Gordon Tower. They were the people who had been watching the game on TV. They came in front of Gordon Tower to actually see the yers with their own eyes. There were reporters among them. They ran to Su-hyeun as soon as they found him.
¡°Excuse me, sir. You became the winner of this Ranking Wars. Can you give me a word how do you feel...?¡±
¡°Do you have any secret to bing the world¡¯s best awakener? If you do...¡±
¡°Is Adel¡¯s confession really true? If that is true, who were the other awakeners that joined him?¡±
There were too many questions. Su-hyeun sighed as if he was tired and shook his hands.
This time, Hak-joon stepped between Su-hyeun and the reporters and said, ¡°Sorry. Sorry.¡±
¡°...?¡± Su-hyeun looked at Hak-joon with the look as if asking ¡®what are you doing right now?¡¯
¡°I¡¯ve always wanted to try something like this,¡± Hak-joon said.
¡°What do you mean something like this?¡±
¡°Being a bodyguard? It¡¯s fun, like I expected.¡±
Su-hyeun looked at Hak-joon as if Hak-joon had grown a second head. The problem of his bodyguard, who was blocking the reporters, was that he couldn¡¯t speak English at all.
¡°Su-hyeun!¡±
¡°My friend!¡±
Beyond the reporters, the voices of Lee Ju-ho and Thomas came from one side. Thomas ran to Su-hyeun with a much brighter face than before. Thomas, who almost flew up, opened his arms and pushed through the reporters.
¡°Argh!¡±
¡°A-argh!¡±
The reporters who had been flocking around Su-hyeun hurriedly stepped aside. Thomas was pushing through them as if he was really in a hurry.
¡°Calm down. Calm down.¡±
Su-hyeun bowed to the reporters and held Thomas, who was running forward to him. He ran so quickly. He almost bumped into Su-hyeun.
¡°Congrattions! Congrattions!¡± Thomas eximed.
¡°Thank you. Thank you.¡±
Su-hyeun lifted Thomas up and put him down on the ground. It was as if he¡¯d gotten a new child. Lee Ju-ho walked after Thomas and patted his shoulder.
¡°Su-hyeun must be tired. So don¡¯t drain his energy too much, okay? I know you¡¯re very happy to see him but...¡±
¡°Oh. Yes. I see.¡± Thomas nodded a couple of times.
He cared about Su-hyeun and he didn¡¯t want to make him more tired. The reporters weren¡¯t eager to approach after being pushed aside by Thomas. As a matter of fact, Thomas was famous for his brutal appearance in this Ranking Wars.
¡°Oh, by the way. You¡¯ve got a contact,¡± Lee Ju-ho said after calming down Thomas.
¡°To me?¡± Su-hyeun asked.
¡°Yes. Do you want to hearter? I bet you¡¯re tired.¡±
¡°It¡¯s ok. Just tell me.¡±
¡°It is from Mr. Bak Yun-gyu. He asked you to call him back today if possible.¡±
¡°Did he?¡±
¡°Yes. It sounded pretty urgent. So, please, give him a call. And, since you must be tired, go back to your room and get some sleep. Okay?¡±
¡°Ok. I will.¡±
¡°And congrattions. You did a good job,¡± Lee Ju-ho said, patting Su-hyeun¡¯s shoulder lightly.
¡°Thank you.¡±
Click, click¡ª
The reporters took pictures of them. Since Thomas was right next to Su-hyeun, it looked like they wouldn¡¯t get any interviews.
Su-hyeun went back to his room andy on the bed first. His hair was messed up, and clothes were covered by dust and blood. But he had no power to take care of those at the moment.
¡°Are you tired?¡± asked Thomas, who had been following Su-hyeun.
Su-hyeun buried his face in a fluffy pillow and nodded. ¡°Yes. A little bit.¡±
¡°Oh! What should I do? What should I do?¡±
¡°There¡¯s nothing you should do,¡± said Lee Ju-ho, grabbing Thomas¡¯s cor, ¡°except don¡¯t bother the tried one and leave the room right now.¡±
¡°Aww!¡±
Thomas pouted out his lips and grumbled. Su-hyeun turned his face and looked at Lee Ju-ho and sulking Thomas.
<>
Thomas also seemed quite open to Lee Ju-ho. Thomas was much stronger than Lee Ju-ho, but he meekly let Lee Ju-ho drag him around.
<> Su-hyeun thought, <>
If Thomas couldn¡¯t live with people, what Su-hyeun had done would be just a nosy move. Fortunately, Thomas got along quite well. He connected with not only Su-hyeun but also Lee Ju-ho and Hak-joon.
¡°Oh. That¡¯s right.¡±
Su-hyeun got up from the bed. He found his smartphone that he had left in the room. He thought he would contact Bak Yun-gyu as soon as he got to the room, but he had forgotten. He turned his phone on. As expected, there was a phone call from an unknown number.
<>
Ring, ring, ring¡ª
-Hello? Mr. Su-hyeun?
¡°Yes. It¡¯s me. I¡¯m sorry I couldn¡¯t contact you sooner.¡±
-First of all, congrattions. I¡¯ve heard you won the Ranking Wars.
¡°News travels fast.¡±
-It was broadcast all over the world and everyone is talking about you right now. There¡¯s no way I could not know about it. I¡¯m so thrilled to have the world¡¯s best awakener from Korea.¡±
¡°Ah, yes...¡± Awkward at receiving praise, Su-hyeun answered bitterly.
He had been hearing congrattions for the whole day. Now, he felt more tired than d about the celebrations. Bak Yun-gyu changed the topic quickly, as if he noticed Su-hyeun¡¯s feelings.
-I have news to tell you. And I¡¯m so sorry... I have to ask you for a favor.
¡°What¡¯s it about?¡±
-A blue-colored dungeon appeared in Korea.
¡°...Yes?¡± Su-hyeun widely opened up his tired eyes.
<>
This was something Su-hyeun had never expected. He hurriedly checked a small calendar on one side of the corner of the room.
<>
This was the second time that a dungeon that shouldn¡¯t appear had appeared. The future he knew was twisted again.
<>
It was at that moment, Bak Yun-gyu said something that made Su-hyeun even more confused than he already was.
-And... there are two blue-colored dungeons.
¡°...!¡±
-We need your help. Mr. Su-hyeun.
Su-hyeun pulled his phone from his ear with a hard look. He was sure. The future had started to change.
Chapter 145
Chapter 145: Chapter 145
Act 7
Two blue-colored dungeons had appeared in Korea. Bak Yun-gyu went right out to find them as soon as he got the report.
He saw a small dungeon that appeared deep in Seorak Mountain. It was discovered a few days before. There was still some time left until the outbreak. But the problem was there weren¡¯t enough human resources.
<>
Bak Yun-gyu looked to one side There was another dungeon on the other side of the viaduct. And that dungeon was also blue. Moreover, the second dungeon was slightlyrger than the first.
<>
Such things were called twin dungeons. They were dungeons that appeared at the same time and the same ce. Those dungeons usually cause an outbreak at almost the same time. Typically, low-level dungeons appeared as twin dungeons. But this time, they were blue-colored ones.
¡°...This is so sudden,¡± Bak Yun-gyu muttered.
Even the outbreak from a green-colored dungeon had far-reaching power. It could easily destroy a small city or two. Indeed, one small town had been damaged because of a dungeon not too long ago. After that incident, people started to talk about eschatology. That was just a green-colored dungeon. Bak Yun-gyu even couldn¡¯t imagine what would happen if two blue-colored dungeons had an outbreak at the same time. Perhaps even the whole province might be a mess.
¡°Leader!¡± A big man named Kang Seung-cheol crossed the viaduct and approached Bak Yun-gyu.
Bak Yun-gyu, who was looking at the dungeon, turned his head and asked, ¡°How is it?¡±
¡°It¡¯s expected that it will outbreak in 15 days to a month.¡±
At Kang Seung-cheol¡¯s answer, Bak Yun-gyu made a ridiculous expression. ¡°Why¡¯s the error range so big?¡±
¡°We don¡¯t have much data about blue-colored dungeons. That¡¯s the best we can do.¡±
¡°It drives me nuts.¡±
<>
They always had to assume the worst. If the outbreak would ur in 15 days, they should start attacking in ten days, at thetest.
<>
Right not, there weren¡¯t enough S-Rank awakeners left in Korea. Not just Kim Su-hyeun and Song Hyeong-gi but also Choi Hak-joon, who became S-Rank only recently, went to San Francisco to participate in the Ranking Wars.
¡°Go bring Mr. Su-hyeun back as soon as possible.¡±
¡°Yes, sir!¡±
Kang Seung-cheol also knew the seriousness of this case and started to move straight away. Bak Yun-gyu stayed where he was, in case of an emergency.
<>
He held tight the handle of the sword that he wore at his waist. His eyes gleamed.
<>
In the end, Su-hyeun took a rest in the private ne, not at the hotel. It took almost half a day to get back to Korea, so they couldn¡¯t stay in San Francisco any longer. One thing had changed. There was one more person in his party.
¡°Wow...¡±
Thomas wandered around the private jet, eyes shining. Thomas never saw the ne flying above the sky. Thomas was a high-rank awakener, but riding a ne that operated so high above the ground, at such fast speed, was something exciting to him.
¡°It looks like he never knew something like this existed.¡± Hak-joon, who was just about to sleep, lifted his eye mask and looked at Thomas.
Su-hyeun replied, lying on his chair, ¡°You were the same.¡±
¡°W-was I?¡±
¡°Yes.¡±
¡°...¡±
Hak-joon felt embarrassed. He scratched his cheek and put his eye mask back. Thomas, who had been looking around the ne for a whole hour, soon got tired and sat in a chair and started reading a book.
They finally arrived after a half-day trip. It was the middle of the day in Korea. Su-hyeun woke up from a deep sleep. He let out a long yawn and got off the ne.
¡°Will you go right away?¡±
Hak-joon had heard about the blue-colored dungeons, too. So, he asked, a little nervously. He had joined the raid of a blue-colored dungeon before. So, he knew well the level of difficulty involved. And, this time, there was not just one. This time, twin dungeons had appeared.
¡°I have to stop somewhere first,¡± Su-hyeun said.
¡°Where?¡±
¡°Sorry. I can¡¯t take you. There¡¯s an ill-tempered man.¡±
¡°Oh. Are you...?¡± Hak-joon asked in surprise.
There was only one person that Su-hyeun called an ill-tempered man. He was going the cksmith named Kim Dae-ho, whose praises Su-hyeun had been singing.
¡°He said he¡¯s done.¡±
¡°Really?¡±
¡°What is this about?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Oh. You didn¡¯t hear?¡±
Su-hyeun exined to Lee Ju-ho about what he had ordered from Kim Dae-ho. After the exnation, Lee Ju-ho¡¯s eyes widened in surprise.
¡°R-real adamantium?¡±
¡°Yes. Real adamantium.¡±
¡°Didn¡¯t you say your sword was made out of the highest-grade Ether stones?¡±
¡°Yes, it was.¡±
¡°What the hell...¡± The curse came out like exmation.
His sword was made of the highest-grade Ether stones, and now adamantium, called the best metal in the world, was added. If those two werebined, that would almost be a national treasure.
<>
Adel¡¯s gauntlets, which made of a little bit of adamantium, were called one of the most powerful items in Europe. Adding such adamantium onto the highest-grade Ether stones was unprecedented.
¡°So, are you going to bring a sword?¡± Lee Ju-ho asked.
¡°Yes. Also, I want to say hello to Mr. Dae-ho.¡±
¡°Then, do you want to take a day off and move tomorrow? You came right from the Ranking Wars,¡± Lee Ju-ho said.
¡°Yes. That is fine with me...¡± Su-hyeun looked at Hak-joon.
Unlike Su-hyeun, Hak-joon seemed pretty tired. It looked like his fatigue didn¡¯t go away with a bit of sleep on the private ne.
<>
Su-hyeun recovered from physical fatigue, but his mental fatigue hadn¡¯t been relieved yet. The blue-colored dungeons wouldn¡¯t cause an outbreak in a day. ording to Bak Yun-gyu, it looked like they still had at least ten days.
¡°Then let¡¯s meet at the bottom of Seorak Mountain about lunchtime. Hey, Hak-joon, I think you should go to visit Yun-seon. You haven¡¯t seen her in a while.¡±
¡°What about me? What about me?¡± Thomas asked.
¡°Thomas, you¡¯re going to go with Mr. Ju-ho. I¡¯m sorry that I can¡¯t take you. See you tomorrow.¡±
¡°Let¡¯s meet Su-hyeun tomorrow again, Thomas. Okay?¡±
¡°Whew...¡±
Thomas lowered his head down as if he felt bad, but he didn¡¯tin. Eventually, Thomas went with Lee Ju-ho. Su-hyeun got his car that he had parked nearby. Soon, he headed to Yangpyeong.
There was no sound at Kim Dae-ho¡¯s vi in Yangpyeong. It was weird. Kim Dae-ho always struck the metals, except when he slept.
¡°Mister. I¡¯m here,¡± Su-hyeun said, knocking on the door.
¡°Come in.¡±
A voice came from a distance. Kim Dae-ho didn¡¯t strike iron at the moment, but he was still awake. Su-hyeun walked into the house, not the workshop. That was where Kim Dae-ho¡¯s voice hade from.
¡°Hey, Su-hyeun. How are you?¡±
When Su-hyeun went into the open porch, he could see Kim Dae-ho. He was lying on the sofa in the living room and waved his hand. Su-hyeun looked around the messy room. Kim Dae-ho looked a little tired.
Su-hyeun asked, ¡°What happened? Why is your house so messy? And what happened to you?¡±
¡°I didn¡¯t sleep for three days.¡±
¡°What?¡±
¡°I said, I didn¡¯t sleep for three days.¡±
Su-hyeun widened his eyes. ¡°I heard. But why didn¡¯t you sleep?¡±
¡°I haven¡¯t been sleeping because I made your sword.¡±
¡°I told you, it¡¯s not urgent. You didn¡¯t have to do that. You should take care of yourself first...¡±
¡°I¡¯m fine. I did it just because I was having fun. I was getting closer topletion, so I couldn¡¯t stop.¡±
Su-hyeun understood. He knew how much Kim Dae-ho liked making weapons. He hadn¡¯t been sleeping because he was having fun making his sword.
¡°Where¡¯s the sword?¡±
¡°I hung it up there,¡± Kim Dae-ho said, pointing to one of the weapons hanging on the wall.
Dozens of weapons hung on the wall like rubbish, but actually, they were Kim Dae-ho¡¯s masterpieces. Each one of them would cost hundreds of millions of won. And, among them, the one that stood out was Su-hyeun¡¯s sword. It looked rather ordinary. The scabbard and handle looked the same as before.
¡°You said that sword¡¯s name is Balmung, right? I didn¡¯t know because I¡¯m ignorant. But I did some research. It was the sword from some mythical story, right?¡±
¡°Yes. That¡¯s right,¡± Su-hyeun answered, taking the sword down from the wall.
¡°You have no sense in making a name. Why didn¡¯t you give it a new name? Huh?¡±
It looked like Kim Dae-ho didn¡¯t like the name of the sword. Su-hyeun didn¡¯t answer hisints. He drew the sword out slowly. The sword came out about a handspan. It reflected Su-hyeun¡¯s face.
<>
The de had a pale gold color that could only be seen when he looked closely. This was Balmung. Su-hyeun¡¯s heart thumped. The feeling waspletely different from Gram. Balmung was the sword that he used for most of his life. When he held this sword again, he got a different feeling.
<